Skip to main content

Full text of "The whole works of the late Reverend Thomas Boston, of Ettrick : now first collected and reprinted without abridgement; including his memoirs, written by himself"

See other formats


^:^  5:i  o^  i:^.  ^^^  o^  "^2- 

OF  THE 
AT 

PRINCETON,   N.  J. 
SAMUEL    AGNE^V, 


OF  P  II  I  I.  A  I)  K  L  P  H  I  A  ,  V  i 


i^ez. 


q4^o. 


^^Tiyj.C^  -^c/'/^,  -  /c^^/: 


♦  G<^^5>3  gg^g^a  9? 


M»?<«5>9-«' 


BX  8915  .B67  18A8  v. A 
Boston,  Thomas,  1677-1732. 
The  whole  works  of  the  late 
Reverend  Thomas  Boston,  of 


THE 


WHOLE  WOEKS 


LATE  REVEREND  THOMAS  BOSTON 

OF  ETTKICK; 


NOW   FIRST   COLLECTED,  AND   REPRINTED   WITHOUT 
ABRIDGMENT  ; 


INCLUDING 


HIS  MEMOIES,  WRITTEN  BY  HIMSELF. 


EDITED   BY   THE 

REV.  SAMUEL  M'MILLAN. 


YOL.  IV. 


ABERDEEN: 
GEORGE  AND  ROBERT  KING,  ST.  NICHOLAS  STREET. 


M.DCCC.XLVIII. 


SERMONS 


ON  THE  MOST 


IMPORTANT  AND  INTERESTING  SUBJECTS, 


DELIVERED  CHIEFLT  ON 


COMMUNION    OCCASIONS; 


TO  WHICH  IS  APPENDED  THE 


DISTINGUISHING    CHARACTERS 


REAL    CHRISTIANS, 


REV  THOMAS 'Boston, 

OP  ETTRICK. 


IN  TWO  VOLUMES, 
VOL.  II. 


ABERDEEN: 
GEORGE  AND  ROBERT  KING,  ST.  NICHOLAS  STREET. 

1849. 


ADVERTISEMENT 

TO 

THE    FIRST    EDITION. 

It  is  absolutely  certain  that  the  following  Discourses  are  the  genuine 
Woi'ks  of  the  worthy  Author  whose  name  they  bear :  they  have 
been  transmitted  through  the  hands  of  his  lineal  descendants. 
From  the  handwriting — which  is  such  as  was  common  in  the  begin- 
ning of  the  eighteenth  century — though  now  rather  antiquated,  as 
well  as  from  the  information  of  those  who  had  access  to  know,  it  ap- 
pears these  Sermons  were  the  original  autographs,  written  at  the 
time  of  the  dates  affixed  to  them  ;  but  to  those  acquainted  with  the 
spirit  and  manner  of  Mr.  Boston's  other  writings,  the  perusal  of  the 
Discourses  themselves  will  finally  convince  them  they  are  genuine. 
The  character  of  the  Author  as  a  judicious,  evangelical,  and  practi- 
cal writer,  is  long  ago  finally  established.  The  Discourses  now  of- 
fered to  the  public  have  been  selected  from  a  variety  of  his  manu- 
scripts, with  considerable  care,  and  faithfully  transcribed  by  one 
fully  qualified  for  this  service.  They  were  chiefly  composed  by  the 
Author  in  that  period  of  his  life  when  his  mind  was  most  vigorous, 
his  knowledge  of  the  gospel  very  enlarged,  his  religious  attainments 
highly  eminent ;  and  at  a  time,  too,  when,  from  a  variety  of  circum- 
stances, he  was  enabled  to  pay  particular  attention  to  the  formation 
of  his  Discourses.  They  are  equally  full  and  judicious  with  those 
already  published ;  and  we  are  persuaded  will  be  much  relished  by 
those  who  understand  and  value  the  most  accurate  methods  of  teach- 
ing evangelical  truth.  They  discover  that  serious  and  spiritual 
strain,  that  perspicuity  of  language,  that  happy  fertility  of  Scrip- 
tural proof  and  illustration,  which  are  conspicuous  in  his  other 
Works.  Several  respectable  Ministers  and  Christians  have  expres- 
sed an  earnest  desire  of  their  being  sent  forth  to  public  view.  As 
the  former  Works  of  this  great  and  good  man  have  been  eminently 
blessed  to  the  edification  of  many,  it  is  devoutly  hoped  the  present 

publication  will  produce  the  same  effect. 

Rev.  John  Bkown,  Minister,  Whitburn. 

Rev.  Ebenezek  Brown,  Minister,  Inverkeithing. 


THSOLC 


CONTENTS  OF  VOL.  IV. 


SERMON  I. 

CHRIST'S  PEOPLE,  A    WILLING  PEOPLE. 
PsAL.  ex.  3. — Thy  people  shall  be  willing  in  the  day  of  thy  power,  ...  It 

SERMON  II. 

THE  SOUL'S  ESPOUSAL  TO  CHRIST. 
2  Cor.  xi.  2. — For  I  have  espoused  you  to  one  husband,  that  I  may  present  you 

as  a  chaste  virgin  to  Christ,  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  22 

SERMON  III. 

SERVING  THE  LORD  IN  HOLINESS. 
Luke  i.  74,  75. — That  he  would  grant  unto  us,  that  we  being  delivered   out  of 
the  hand  of  our  enemies,  might   serve  him   without  fear,  in  holiness,   and 
righteousness  before  him,  all  the  days  of  our  life,  ...  ...  ...  31 

SERMON  IV. 

SAME  SUBJECT  CONTINUED,  39 

SERMON  V. 

THE  LEADING  PRIVILEGE  OF  THEM  THAT  KNOW  THE 

JOYFUL  SOUND. 

PsAL.  Ixxxix.  15. — They  shall  walk,  O  Lord,  in  the  light  of  thy  countenance,  44 

SERMON  VI. 

THE  LORD'S  HELPING  HIS  PEOPLE. 
1  Sam.  vii.  12. — Then    Samuel   took   a  stone,  and   set  it  between   Mizpeh  and 
Shen,  and  called  the  name  of  it  Ebenezer,  saying.  Hitherto  hath  the  Lord 
helped  us,  ...  ...  ...  ...  ■.•  •••  •••  •••  52 

SERMON  VII. 
MOURNING  THE  ABSENCE  OF  CHRIST. 
Lam.  iii.  49,  60 Mine  eye  trickleth  down,  and  ceaseth  not,  without  any  inter- 
mission, till  the  Lord  look  down  and  behold  from  heaven,  ...  ...  60 

SERMON  VIII. 

THE  SHORTNESS  OF  HUMAN  LIFE. 
Job  xvi.  22. —  When  a  few  years  are  come,  then  I  shall  go  the   way  whence  I 

shall  not  return,  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  •••       67 


VUl.  CONTENTS. 

Page. 

SERMON  IX. 

A  HEART  EXERCISED  UNTO  GODLINESS  NECESSARY  TO 

MAKE  A  GOOD   MINISTER. 

1  Tim.  iv.  7. — And  exercise  thyself  rather  unto  godliness,  ...  ...  ...       71 

SERMON  X. 

A  HEART  EXERCISED  UNTO  GODLINESS  NECESSARY  TO 

MAKE  A   GOOD  CHRISTIAN. 

1   Tim.  iv.  7. — Exercise  thyself  rather  unto  godliness,  ...  ...  ...  81 

SERMON  XI. 

PRIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES  OF  CHRIST'S  SPOUSE. 
PsAL.  xlv.  10. — Hearken,  O  daughter,  and  consider,  and  incline  thine  ear;   for- 
get also  thiue  own  people,  and  thy  father's  house,  ...  ...  ...  89 

SERMON  XII. 
SAME  SUBJECT  CONTINUED 105 

SERMON  XIII. 

CHRIST  JESUS  DULY  PRIZED. 
Phil.  iii.  8. — Yea,  doubtless,  and  I  count  all  things  but  loss  for  the  excellency 

of  the  knowledge  of  Christ  Jesus  my  Lord,  ...  ...  ...  ...  125 

SERMON  XIV. 

SAME  SUBJECT  CONTINUED,         152 

SERMON  XY. 
SAME  SUBJECT  CONTINUED, 155 

SERMON  XYI. 

SAME  SUBJECT  CONTINUED,         156 

SERMON  XYII. 

SAME  SUBJECT  CONTINUED,         163 

SERMON  XYIII. 

SAME  SUBJECT  CONTINUED, 166 

SERMON  XIX. 

SAME  SUBJECT  CONTINUED ...    181 

SERMON  XX. 

SAME  SUBJECT  CONTINUED, 188 

SERMON  XXL 

MAN'S  INIQUITIES  TESTIFYING  AGAINST  HIM. 
Jer.  xiv.  7. — O  Lord,  though  our  iniquities  testify  against  us,  do  thou  it  for  thy 

name's  sake  ;   for  our  backslidings  are  many  ;   we  have  sinned  against  thee,       195 


CONTENTS.  IS. 

SERMON  XXII. 

THE  UNEQUALITY  OF  MAN'S  WAYS. 
EzEK.  xvlii.  29. — Are  not  your  ways  unequal  ?  ...  ...  ...  ...  203 

SERMON  XXIII. 

DUTIES  OF  HUSBAND  AND  WIFE. 
Eph.  v.  33. — Nevertheless,  let  every  one  of  you  in  particular  so    love   his  wife 

even  as  himself  ;  and  the  wife  see  that  she  reverence  her  husband,  ...       209 

SERMON  XXIV. 

MYSTERY  OF  CHRIST'S  KINGDOM   KNOWN  TO  BELIEVERS. 
Mark  iv.  11. — And  he  said  unto  them,  Unto  you  it  is  given  to  know  the  mystery 
of  the  kingdom  of  God  :   but  unto  them  that  are  without  all  these  things  are 
done  in  parables,  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...     218 

SERMON  XXV. 

THE  FRUIT  OF  THE  SPIRIT, 
Epii.  v.  9. — For  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  is  in  all  goodness,  and   righteousness,  and 

truth,  228 

SERMON  XXVI. 

CHRIST  THE  LIFE  OF  THE  BELIEVER, 
Pun.,  i.  21 For  me  to  live  is  Christ,  239 

SERMON  XXVII. 

BELIEVERS  SEEKING  A  CONTINUING  CITY. 
Heb.  xiii.  14. — For  here  we  have  no  continuing  city,  but  we  seek  one  to  come,       247 

SERMON  XXVIII. 

BELIEVERS  COMMUNING  WITH  THEIR  OWN  HEARTS. 
PsAT,.  iv.  2  — Commune  with  your  own  heart  upon  your  bed,  and  b  ,•  still,    262 

SERMON  XXIX. 

BELIEVERS  LABOURING  FOR  THEIR  REWARD. 
Heb.  iv.  1 1, — Let  us  labour,   therefore,   to  enter  into  that  rest,  lest  any  man  fall 

after  the  same  example  of  unbelief,  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  268 

SERMON  XXX. 

MINISTERS  IN  THE  CHURCH  APPOINTED  BY  CHRIST. 
ErH,  iv.  II,  12. — And  he  gave  some,  apostles;   and  some,  prophets  ;   and  some, 
evangelists ;   and  some,  pastors  and  teachers  ;   for  the  perfecting  of  the  saints, 
for  the  work  of  the  ministry,  for  the  edifying  of  the  body  of  Christ,  .,.       309 

SERMON  XXXI. 

MINISTERS  TO  CONTINUE  TILL  THE  CHURCH  BE  PERFECT. 
Eph.  iv.   13. — Till  we  all  come  in  the  unity  of  the  faith,  and  of  the  knowledge  of 


X,  CONTENTS. 

Pa(;e. 
the  Son  of  God,  unto  a  perfect  man,  unto  the  measure  of  the   atature  of  the 
fulness  of  Christ,  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...    316 

SERMON  XXXII. 

BELIEVERS  HAVING  TRIBULATION  IN  THE   WORLD. 
John  xvi.  33. — These  things  1  have  spoken  unto  you,  that  in  me  ye  might  have 
peace.      In  the  world  ye  shall  have  tribulation,  but  be  of  good  cheer,  I  have 
overcome  the  world,  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...  323 

SERMON  XXXIII. 

ANGER  NOT  TO  BE  SINFULLY  INDULGED. 
Eph.  iv.  20,  27. — Be   angry,  and    sin  not ;  let  not  the  sun  go   down   upon  your 

wrath;   neither  give  place  to  the  devil,  ...  ..  ...    351 

SERMON  XXXIV. 

CHRIST  THE  PHYSICIAN  OF  SOULS. 
Matt.  ix.  12, — They  that  be  whole  need  not  a  physician,  but  they  that  are  sick,    359 

SERMON  XXXY. 

CHRISTIAN  WATCHFULNESS  STATED,  AND  ENFORCED. 
Mark  xiii.  37 And  what  I  say  unto  you,  I  say  unto  all,  Watch,  ...  ...    387 

SERMON  XXXYI. 

GOD  HIDING  HIS  FACE  FROM  BACKSLIDERS. 
IsA.  Ixiv.  7. — And  there   is   none   that   calleth   upon    thy  name,  that   stirreth  up 
himself  to  take  hold  of  thee  :   for  thou  hast  hid   thy  face  from  us,  and  hast 
consumed  us,  because  of  our  iniquities,  ...  ...  ...  ...  ...    395 

SERMON  XXXVII. 

ON  THE  GOVERNMENT  OF  THE  TONGUE. 

James  iii.  6. — The  tongue  is  a  fire,  a  world  of  iniquity,  ...  ...  ...  438 

SERMON  XXXVIII. 

ON  THE  DUTY  OF  PRAYING  FOR  THE  PEACE  OF  THE  CHURCH. 
PsAL.  cxxii.  6. Pray  for  the  peace  of  Jerusalem,  ...  ...  ...  ...      448 

SERMON  XXXIX. 

DUTY  AND  ADVANTAGE  01-   SOLEMN  MEDITATION. 
Genesis  xxiv.  26, — And  Isaac  went  out  to  meditate  in  the  field  at  the  even  tide,   -153 

SERMON  XL. 

FAREWELL   SERMON  AT   SIMPRIN. 
John  vii.  37. — In  the  last  Hay,  that  great  day  of  the  feast,  Jpsus  stood  and  cried 

saying,  If  any  man  thirst,  let  him  come  unto  me,  and  drink,  ...  ...       458 

THE    DISTINGUISHING    CHARACTERS    OF    REAL 

CHRISTIANS,         466 


COMMUNION    SERMONS 


Action  Sermon,  Simprin,  February  2,  1707. 
CHRIST'S    PEOPLE,    A    WILLING    PEOPLE. 

SERMON  I. 

Psalm  ex.  3, 

Thy  people  shall  be  willing  in  the  day  of  thy  power. 

Our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  is  this  day  erecting  his  standard  in  this 
place,  requiring  us  to  submit  ourselves  to  him.  But,  Oh  !  how 
averse  are  sinners  to  submit  to  him ;  were  it  left  to  their  own  will, 
he  should  be  a  head  without  a  body,  and  though  he  travailed  long 
and  sore,  yet  should  have  no  issue ;  but  God  hath  otherwise  secured 
it.     "  Thy  people  shall  be  willing  in  the  day  of  thy  power." 

This  is  spoken  to  Christ,  by  David,  in  the  spirit  of  prophecy. 
That  it  belongs  to  Christ,  no  Christian  can  doubt ;  for  here  David 
in  spirit  calls  him  Lord.  The  Jews,  denying  the  divinity  of  the 
Messiah,  could  not  extricate  themselves  from  that  difficulty.  "  If 
David  then  call  him  Lord,  how  is  he  his  son  ?"  But  to  us  it  is  easy, 
for  as  he  was  man,  he  was  the  son  of  David,  and  came  after  him, 
but  he  was  more  than  man,  being  God  he  was  David's  Lord,  and  so 
was  before  him.  He  is  in  this  Psalm  held  forth  as  a  priest  having 
an  everlasting  priesthood ;  and  as  a  king,  who  hath  Jehovah  for 
his  confederate,  who  sets  him  at  his  right  hand,  even  on  his  throne, 
after  he  had  overcome  death.  Rev.  iii.  2L  He  is  placed  upon  his 
throne,  with  a  promise  that  his  enemies  shall  be  made  his  footstool ; 
which  imports  his  absolute  victory  over  them,  and  the  eternal  dis- 
grace that  shall  lie  upon  them.  The  footstool  is  a  piece  of  state, 
that  both  raiseth  and  easeth  him  that  sitteth  upon  the  throne. 

In  the  second  verse  it  is  plain  David  speaks,  and  so  continues ; 
"  The  Lord  shall  send  the  rod  of  thy  strength,"  that  is,  the  gospel 
in  power,  "out  of  Zion,"  Micah  iv.  2.     Thy  kingdom  shall  begin 

Vol.  IV.  B 


12  Christ's  people 

there,  but  it  shall  extend  itself  to  the  nations.  But  how  shall  he 
reign  that  hath  so  many  enemies  ?  lie  shall  set  up  his  kingdom  in 
the  midst  of  them.  But  shall  he  have  no  kindly  subjects  ?  Yes  he 
shall.     "  Thy  people  shall  be  willing  in  the  day  of  thy  power." 

There  is  here,  1.  Something  supposed.  Namely,  that  Christ  hath 
a  people  in  the  world  where  he  erects  his  standard,  that  he  hath  a 
special  relation  to,  and  interest  in.  Thy  people,  even  his  people, 
Matth.  i.  21.  The  elect  who  are  his,  by  gift  from  the  Father,  John, 
xvii.  9,  and  by  purchase,  he  hath  bought  them  with  his  blood,  John 
X.  15.  It  is  supposed  also,  that  he  finds  these  unwilling  to  submit 
to  him,  as  well  as  the  rest  of  the  world.  The  corruption  of  the  will, 
is  common  to  them  with  others.  They  are  not  only  as  infants  who 
do  not  know  their  Father  ;  but  as  rebellious  children,  who  yield  no 
obedience  to  him. 

2.  There  is  something  here  ensured  to  the  mediator,  respecting 
this  people  of  his;  namely,  that  these  unwilling  people  shall  be 
willing,  Hebrew,  willingnesses;  which  imports  that  they  shall  sub- 
mit to  him,  and  give  away  themselves  to  him;  acknowledge  the 
right  which  Christ  hath  to  them,  and  be  his  people  by  their  own 
consent.  It  imports  that  they  shall  do  this  cordially,  with  all 
their  heart;  it  shall  not  be  a  lying  to  him,  as  hypocrites  do;  it 
shall  not  be  a  forced  pretext  only,  but  their  wills  shall  be  cast  into 
the  mould  of  his  will,  and  in  point  of  practice  conformed  to  the  will 
of  his  commandments.     See  Isaiah  xlix.  18,  and  Iv.  5. 

3.  There  is  the  time  when,  and  the  way  how  this  shall  be  done. 
"  In  the  day  of  thy  power."  That  is,  in  a  day  of  the  gospel's  coming 
with  power.  "  For  the  gospel  is  the  power  of  Grod  unto  salvation." 
There  is  a  power  which  is  Christ's  that  makes  them  willing,  that  is 
the  power  of  Christ's  spirit,  different  from  moral  suasion,  1  Thess.  i.  5. 
This  power  opens  the  heart,  dissolves  the  stone  in  it,  melts  down  the 
old  will  and  renovates  it.  Nothing  less  can  do  it,  nor  break  the  iron 
sinew  in  their  necks.  Then  there  is  a  day  for  this  power,  a  time 
appointed  from  eternity,  at  which  everlasting  love  that  was  under  a 
cloud,  shall  flash  out  on  the  faces  of  these  children  of  darkness,  and 
bring  them  forth  to  marvellous  light.  The  gospel  sometimes  it  is 
but  like  wild  fire,  that  gives  light,  but  does  not  burn  up  that  on 
which  it  falls,  but  in  this  day  it  is  big  with  power,  and  so  brings 
forth  children  to  God. 

What  follows,  is  diversely  rendered,  and  interpreted  too.  It 
seems  to  me  to  point  at  these  things :  1.  The  beauty  :  the  spiritual 
-beauty  of  those  that  are  thus  made  willing ;  they  shall  stand 
before  him  in  the  beautiful  garments  of  holiness,  as  so  many  priests 
unto  God.     2.   The  suddenness  of  this  change,  as  if  that  beauty  of 


A  -WILLING  PEOPLE.  13 

theirs  had  fallen  from  the  womb  of  the  morning  as  the  dew,  Micah 
V.  7-  And  3,  the  multitude  of  converts  who  are  Christ's  youth,  or 
young  men  being  born  again. 

DocTCiNE.  That  Christ  hath  a  people  in  the  world  that  shall  be 
willing  in  the  day  of  his  power,  cordially  submitting  to  him.     I  shall, 

I.  Touch  at  that  corruption  of  the  will,  with  which  Christ  finds 
his  people,  as  well  as  others  possessed. 

II.  Speak  of  the  willingness  of  the  soul  submitting  to  Christ. 

III.  I  will  touch  a  little  at  the  day  of  power. 

I.  I  am  to  touch  at  that  corruption  of  the  will,  with  which  Christ 
finds  his  people,  as  well  as  others  possessed,  when  he  comes  in  a 
day  of  power. 

1.  There  is  a  weakness  in  their  will,  they  cannot  will  what  is 
spiritually  good  and  acceptable  to  God.  They  cannot  produce  one 
act  of  the  will  that  is  holy,  till  grace  change  their  wills,  no  more 
than  a  dead  man  can  produce  his  own  resurrection.  For  we  are  by 
nature  without  strength.  "  It  is  God  that  worketh  in  you  both  to 
will  and  to  do  of  his  good  pleasure.  Not  that  we  are  suflicient  of 
ourselves,  to  think  any  thing  of  ourselves;  but  our  sufliciency  is  of 
God."  They  may  with  the  foolish  virgins.  Matt.  xxv.  will  grace, 
but  they  do  but  desire  it  in  a  carnal  manner. 

2.  An  aversion  to  good.  We  are  naturally  backward,  and  there- 
fore mast  be  drawn.  How  unwilling  is  the  fish  to  be  drawn  out  of 
its  element  into  another,  so  are  we  to  leave  our  own  ways.  "  Ye 
will  not  come  to  me,"  saith  Jesus,  "  that  ye  might  have  life." 

3.  There  is  a  proneness  to  evil,  a  woful  bent  of  the  will  carrying 
it  to  sin.  "  My  people,"  says  God,  "  are  bent  to  backsliding  from 
me."  Hence  they  are  mad  upon  their  idols.  Place  Christ  and  the 
devil,  life  and  death,  duty  and  sin,  before  them,  leave  the  will  to 
itself,  it  will  naturally  run  to  the  evil,  as  the  water  runs  down  a 
steep  place. 

4.  There  is  a  contrariety  in  the  will,  to  the  will  of  God.  "  Be- 
cause the  carnal  mind  is  enmity  against  God :  for  it  is  not  subject 
to  the  law  of  God,  neither  indeed  can  be."  Hence  it  is  enough  for 
us  in  this  state  to  will  any  thing,  that  God  forbids  it.  Even  the 
heathen  confessed  that  men  were  disposed  to  desire  unlawful  things, 
and  to  rush  upon  things  forbidden.  Strip  sin  naked  of  all  profit 
and  pleasure  that  may  attend  it,  yet  the  sinner  will  court  sin  for 
its  own  sake. 

5.  There  is  contumacy  in  it,  the  will  is  wilful  or  obstinate  in 
evil.  The  man  will  not  be  turned,  though  he  should  run  upon  the 
sword  point  of  vengeance.     "  Cast  away  from  you  all  your  trans- 

b2 


14  Christ's  peoplk 

gressions,  whereby  ye  have  transgressed,  and  make  you  a  new  heart 
and  a  new  spirit ;  for  why  will  ye  die,  0  house  of  Israel."  Unre- 
newed sinners,  like  the  Leviathan,  "count  darts  as  stubble,  and 
laugh  at  the  shaking  of  the  spear,"  Yea,  they  say,  in  opposition 
to  the  curse,  "  we  shall  have  peace,  though  we  walk  in  the  imagina- 
tion of  our  heart,  to  add  drunkenness  to  thirst." 

This  is  that  corruption  which  we  have  derived  from  Adam,  by 
whose  fall  all  the  faculties  of  our  souls  were  corrupted  and  dis- 
torted :  and  our  will  in  particular  made  wholly  the  devil's  captive, 
not  to  be  delivered  but  by  a  day  of  power. 

We  now  proceed  : 

II.  To  speak  of  the  willingness  of  the  soul  submitting  to  Christ. 
"  Thy  people  shall  be  willing."  What  a  wonderful  change  is  this  I 
The  same  soul  that  was  unwilling  before,  is  now  willing.  What 
makes  the  change  ?  They  are  made,  they  do  not  make  themselves 
willing.  The  Lord  changes  their  wills,  takes  away  the  evil  qualities 
of  their  will,  and  gives  new  qualities.  "  A  new  heart  also,"  says 
he,  "  will  I  give  you,  and  a  new  spirit  will  I  put  within  you,  and  I 
will  take  away  the  stony  heart  out  of  your  flesh  ;  and  I  will  give 
you  an  heart  of  flesh."  Thus  the  power  of  God  infallibly  deter- 
mines their  wills  ;  yet  not  blindly,  but  so  as  they  see  what  most  rea- 
sonably should  turn  the  balance  in  their  choice.  For,  in  every  step 
God  deals  with  them  as  rational  creatures,  giving  them  a  peculiar 
illumination  to  proceed.  We  shall  particularize  and  illustrate  this, 
by  shewing  what  they  are  now  willing  to  do,  and  how  this  willing- 
ness in  every  step  is  produced.  1.  They  are  willing  to  part  with 
sin.  "  Ephraim  shall  say,  what  have  I  any  more  to  do  with  idols." 
They  were  never  more  willing  to  swallow  the  sweet  morsel,  than 
now  they  are  to  part  with  it.  Their  hearts  were  glued  to  their 
idols,  now  a  day  of  power  melts  the  glue,  and  the  soul  is  content  to. 
part  with  sin,  cursing  the  day  that  ever  they  met.  The  soul  that 
held  fast  sin  and  refused  to  let  it  go,  would  give  a  world  to  be  quit 
of  it.  Never  was  there  a  man  that  had  drunk  a  cup  of  poison,  that 
would  more  willingly  have  vomited  it,  than  such  a  soul  would  now 
part  with  sin. 

Now,  how  comes  this  wonderful  change  ?  Surely  the  man  is  made 
willing.  There  must  needs  be  a  power  there,  to  make  the  man  loath 
above  all  things,  what  before  he  loved  above  all  things.  This  is 
plain,  if  you  consider  that  the  man  was  joined  to  his  idols,  and  unable 
to  turn  from  them.  "  Can  the  Ethiopian  change  his  skin,  or  the 
leopard  his  spots  ?"  Then  may  ye  also  do  good,  that  are  accustomed 
to  do  evil.  His  sin  was  so  rooted  in  his  heart  before,  that  no 
threatenings,  no  promises  could  separate  him  and  it.     Surely  it  must 


A  WILLING  PEOPLE.  15 

be  strong  wind  that  renJs  the  rocks,  and  lays  the  tall  cedars  upon 
the  ground  ;  and  since  he  is  willing  to  part  with  sin,  surely  he  hath 
seen  and  felt  something,  which  he  did  not  see  nor  feel  before.     Yes, 

He  hath  felt  an  uneasiness  of  conscience  rising  from  the  guilt  of 
his  sin.  Sin  hath  become  uneasy  to  him,  and  begun  to  work  and 
sting  him.  Like  Peter's  hearers,  he  is  now  pricked  in  his  heart. 
Unless  the  soul  were  ript  up,  how  would  it  thus  as  it  were  cast  forth 
its  bowels.  This  uneasiness  hath  become  intolerable.  "  A  wounded 
spirit  who  can  bear."  His  bosom  beloved  has  been  very  trouble- 
some, or  why  would  he  cast  it  out  ? 

He  hath  also  seen  something  in  God,  which  he  never  saw  before. 
The  man  would  never  have  been  willing  to  have  parted  with  sin, 
unless  he  had  seen  happiness  locked  up  in  the  enjoyment  of  God, 
and  that  sin  separates  him  from  that  God,  and  will  separate  him 
from  him  for  evermore  if  retained.  But  the  soul  sees  itself  lost  and 
undone  without  God,  and  he  is  sure  that  he  is  liable  to  his  wrath 
and  curse  for  it,  and  is  not  able  to  abide  with  everlasting  burning, 
or  dwell  in  devouring  flames. 

2.  They  are  willing  to  go  out  of  themselves,  to  be  divorced  from 
their  first  husband  the  law ;  to  cast  off  all  confidence  in  their  attain- 
ments and  duties ;  to  come  to  Christ  stript  naked  and  empty,  with 
nothing  in  them  or  on  them  to  recommend  them  to  him  but  misery 
Their  language  is,  "  For  thy  name's  sake,  0  Lord,  pardon  mine  ini- 
quity, for  it  is  great." 

Now  surely  there  must  be  power  here.  Naturally  we  take  the 
spider's  motto,  each,  saying,  I  am  indebted  to  myself  alone.  The  co- 
venant of  works  is  engrained  in  our  natures.  Work  and  gain,  do  and 
live,  is  the  first  imnciple  of  all  Adam's  posterity.  They  were  bred 
merchants,  and  they  are  ashamed  to  beg :  and  though  their  stock  is 
gone,  yet  they  will  rather  drive  a  trade  of  small  wares  than  none 
at  all.  Coming  out  of  our  own  righteousness  is  a  death,  a  dying  to 
a  husband.  "  My  brethren,"  says  Paul,  "  ye  also  are  become  dead 
to  the  law  by  the  body  of  Christ ;  that  ye  should  be  married  to  an- 
other, even  to  him  that  is  raised  from  the  dead,  that  we  should 
bring  forth  fruit  unto  God."  Does  the  spider  sweep  away  its  own 
web,  which  it  spins  out  of  its  own  bowels  ?  Does  a  mother  cast  out 
the  fruit  of  her  own  womb  ?  or  will  a  loving  wife  put  herself  to 
death,  that  she  may  be  free  of  her  husband.  And  so  we  are  made 
dead  to  the  law,  as  it  is  in  the  original.  And  therefore  the  willing 
soul  sees  that  the  best  of  their  duties  cannot  procure  the  favour  of 
God.  Is.  Ixiv.  6,  7;  Phil.  iii.  They  see  the  emptiness  and  worth- 
lessness  of  all  they  do.  Hence  they  cannot  but  loath  themselve* 
as  for  their  sins,  so  for  their  duties. 


16  Christ's  people 

They  see  and  feel  an  obsolute  need  of  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ  and 
his  righteousness.  The  person  finds  he  is  sick,  and  therefore  needs 
a  physician  ;  that  he  is  naked,  his  fig  leaves  will  not  cover  him,  and 
therefore  the  Lord  God  must  make  him  a  garment,  "  even  a  white 
raiment  that  he  may  be  clothed,  and  the  shame  of  his  nakedness  not 
appear." 

He  sees  also,  that  he  hath  nothing  in  him,  or  about  him  to  recom- 
mend him  to  Christ.  Many  spoil  all,  by  thinking  they  have  some- 
thing that  cannot  but  engage  Christ  to  take  their  cause  in  hand,  as 
their  tears,  prayers,  repentance,  deeds  of  charity.  But  the  truly 
willing  soul  takes  David's  plea,  Ps.  xxv.  11.  And  comes  as  he  is 
invited,  without  money,  that  he  may  take  the  water  of  life  freely ; 
lest  he  should  meet  with  the  entertainment  of  Simon  Magus,  and 
hear  it  said,  "  thy  money  perish  with  thee,  because  thou  hast  thought 
that  the  gift  of  God  may  be  purchased  with  money." 

He  sees,  moreover,  that  God  and  Christ  should  do  him  no  wrong, 
though  he  should  not  be  accepted,  but  be  suffered  to  perish.  He  will 
say  with  the  centurion,  "  I  am  not  worthy  that  thou  shouldst  come 
under  my  roof."  He  will  justify  God  come  of  himself  what  will, 
Ps.  li.  4.  And  thus  if  the  soul  should  meet  with  a  disappointment 
it  will  leave  its  complaint  upon  itself.  And  upon  the  back  of  any 
refusal  will  say,  *'  true  and  righteous  are  thy  judgments,  0  Lord." 

3.  They  are  willing  to  take  Christ  as  their  Saviour,  and  to  sub- 
mit to  his  righteousness.  God  proposeth  in  the  gospel  a  spiritual 
marriage  betwixt  his  Son  and  sinners,  Matth.  xxii.  Most  men  re- 
fuse the  oifer,  but  the  willing  soul  heartily  consents  to  the  bargain 
and  makes  Christ  its  choice  for  all,  instead  of  all,  and  above  all ; 
and  takes  him  for  a  husband,  as  the  captive  woman  marries  the 
conqueror.  The  soul  is  well  content  to  venture  its  salvation  upon 
this  bottom  alone,  Phil.  iii.  9.  To  appear  before  God  in  the  garment 
of  his  righteousness,  to  seek  life  in  his  death,  and  healing  only  in 
his  wounds. 

Now  there  must  be  a  power  to  make  the  soul  thus  willing.  Every 
man  naturally  is  an  enemy  to  Christ,  and  therefore  as  long  as  the 
soul  can  make  any  shift  it  will  not  come ;  there  must  be  a  drawing 
power;  yea,  such  a  power  as  wrought  in  Christ,  when  God  by  his 
mighty  power  raised  him  from  the  dead.  The  soul  being  thus  willing 
it  follows, 

That  such  a  soul  hath  seen  a  transcendant  excellency  in  the  Lord 
Jesus  Christ.  It  hath  seen  him  to  be  the  pearl  of  great  price. 
Sometimes  like  others,  they  said  to  the  Christian,  what  is  thy  beloved 
more  than  another  beloved?  But  surely  now  they  see  a  beauty  in 
him  that  captivates  their  hearts  and  makes  their  souls  love  him. 


A  WILLING  PEOPLE.  17 

The  veil  covering,  or  face  covering  is  taken  away,  and  their  eyes 
seethe  king  in  his  beauty;  a  beauty  that  dazzles  their  eyes,  that 
darkens  all  created  glory,  as  the  rising  sun  makes  the  stars  disap- 
pear. 

They  have  got  also  a  satisfying  view  and  discovery  of  the  continu- 
ance of  salvation  through  a  crucified  Saviour,  else  their  souls  could 
not  acquiesce  iu  it.  The  mystery  of  Christ  is  folly  to  the  natural  man 
when  he  comes  near  to  look  on  it,  but  the  willing  soul  gets  another 
sort  of  a  discovery  of  it,  "  determines  to  know  nothing,  save  Jesus 
Christ  and  him  crucified."  You  know  the  world's  oi)inion  of  the 
mystery  of  Christ  crucified.  "  It  was  to  the  Jews  a  stumbling-block, 
and  to  the  Greeks  foolishness."  And  that  still  remains  true. 
"Blessed  is  he  whosoever  shall  not  be  offended  in  Christ."  Two 
things  made  the  world  stumble  at  the  gospel  way  of  salvation.  Its 
supposed  unsuitableness  to  the  divine  perfections,  this  is  the  bane  of 
the  Jews,  Socinians  and  others.  Its  supposed  unsuitableness  to  the 
case  of  men,  this  stumbled  the  heathens.  To  expect  life  from  one 
crucified  seemed  a  most  gross  absurdity  to  them.  All  natural  men 
are  in  the  dark  as  to  this  still,  therefore  they  reject  him.  And 
therefore  I  conclude  that  the  man  that  is  made  willing  has  got  a 
view  of  the  suitableness  of  this  contrivance  to  the  divine  perfections. 
They  have  seen  in  it  the  manifold  wisdom  of  God.  Men  that  are 
not  careful  about  their  souls  will  venture  them  on  they  know  not 
what;  but  a  man  that  is  in  earnest  about  salvation,  will  never 
venture  it  on  that  bottom  that  is  not  made  of  God  for  that  end. 
The  man  sees  he  hath  to  do  with  a  God  that  is  wise,  just,  and  power- 
ful, as  well  as  merciful :  therefore  as  no  man  will  venture  to  sea  in 
a  ship  that  cannot  hold  out  water,  so  the  soul  in  earnest  cannot 
venture  unless  it  see  the  plan  suitable  to  the  wisdom,  justice,  and 
power  of  God.  To  such  "  Christ  is  the  power  of  God,  and  the 
wisdom  of  God." 

He  hath  also  got  a  view  of  its  suitableness  to  his  own  case.  Men 
that  see  the  worth  of  their  souls  will  not  take  a  remedy  at  random 
for  their  perishing  souls,  lest  it  be  found  poison  instead  of  medicine. 
Wherefore  the  soul  looking  about  in  the  day  of  distress,  and  finding 
nothing  in  the  world  but  miserable  comforters,  Christ  discovers  him- 
self to  that  soul,  and  the  soul  seeing  his  suitableness  resolves  to 
venture  here  as  upon  one  able  to  save,  and  every  way  fitted  for  their 
needs.     Matth.  xiii.  45,  46. 

4.  The  soul  is  willing  to  take  on  the  yoke  of  Christ's  command- 
ments. Its  language  is,  "  Lord,  what  wilt  thou  have  me  to  do  ?" 
Having  fled  from  the  fiery  law  on  Sinai,  he  is  content  to  stand  at 
Zion,  and  receive  the  same  commands.    He  is  willing  to  stoop  and 


18  cheist's  people 

take  on  Christ's  burden,  and  is  sorry  lie  cannot  bear  it  better.  Tlie 
ears  that  were  shut  before  are  now  opened.  "  Speak,  Lord,  for  thy 
servant  heareth."     Holiness  is  now  the  desire  of  his  soul.     Now, 

There  must  be  a  power  here,  what  else  could  break  the  iron  sinews 
in  their  necks,  and  tame  the  bullock  unaccustomed  to  the  yoke. 
The  wild  ass  could  never  be  tamed  till  now,  surely  then  the  month  is 
come.  Hence  it  is  evident  the  willing  soul  sees  a  beauty  in  holiness, 
a  righteousness  in  the  commandments  of  God,  and  a  loathsomeness 
in  sin.  He  considers  all  God's  precepts  concerning  all  things  to 
be  right ;  and  he  hates  every  false  way.  If  sin  be  as  sweet  as  be- 
fore, if  they  see  no  beauty  in  holiness,  surely  they  are  not  the  wil- 
ling people  ;  and  it  is  needless  to  them  to  pretend  to  the  feeling  of 
a  power,  unless  they  would  make  it  appear  that  God  makes  men 
willing  without  reason. 

5.  The  soul  is  willing  to  bear  Christ's  cross,  to  cleave  to  him  and 
his  ways,  and  to  follow  him  through  fire  and  water,  Luke  xiv.  25 — 
33.  All  that  he  hath  is  at  Christ's  service,  houses  and  lands,  rela- 
tions and  life  also.  The  smiles  of  the  world  cannot  bribe  him,  nor 
the  frowns  of  it  drive  him  away.  He  is  content  to  own  Christ,  when 
despised  and  rejected  of  men.  Now  there  must  needs  be  a  power 
here  to  make  a  man  thus  willing,  not  only  to  suffer,  but  to  suffer  for 
him,  for  his  glory,  and  to  keep  up  his  standard  in  the  world ;  rather 
to  suffer  for  him,  than  to  sin  against  him.  "  Thus  it  is  given  to 
them  in  the  behalf  of  Christ,  not  only  to  believe  on  him  but  also  to 
suffer  for  his  sake."  Hence  sin  is  more  bitter  to  the  willing  soul 
than  death,  and  all  the  sufferings  to  which  they  can  be  exposed, 
Eccles.  vii.  26.  Certainly  both  are  bitter.  Now,  when  both 
are  laid  before  them,  and  they  choose  sufferings,  this  says,  that 
sin  to  them  is  most  bitter.  Here  is  the  ruin  of  many  pro- 
fessors in  a  time  of  trial,  sin  was  never  the  most  bitter  thing 
to  them,  though  it  hath  been  bitter ;  and  therefore  the  Lord  fits  his 
people  for  suffering,  by  letting  them  experience  the  bitterness  of  sin. 
Again,  Christ  is  sweeter  to  the  willing  soul,  than  all  the  plea- 
sures and  profits  of  a  world,  else  they  could  never  be  willing  to 
forego  these  for  Christ,  Phil.  iii.  8,  9.  Alas  !  many  never  felt  so 
much  sweetness  in  Christ  as  in  a  lust,  hence  they  let  him  go,  and 
return  to  their  lusts  again.  Some  get  half  a  view  of  Christ's 
preciousness,  hence  a  half-willingness,  a  hankering  after  him.  But 
still  the  world  and  their  lusts  are  sweeter,  and  therefore  like  Orpha, 
they  depart  from  him  weeping. 

Lastly,  The  willing  soul  is  willing  to  go  away  with  Christ,  for 
altogether,  home  to  his  Father's  house.  I  am  not  saying  they  are 
all  absolutely  willing  to  die.     They  perhaps  want  assurance  of  a  safe 


A  WILLING  PEOPLE.  19 

lodging  place.  But  this  I  say,  if  Christ  would  carry  them  away  to 
his  Father's  house,  they  would  be  content  to  bid  farewell  to  all 
below,  and  go  with  him. 

Now  there  must  be  power  here,  that  reconciles  a  man  to  heaven, 
to  everlasting  communion  with  God.  "  Giving  thanks  unto  the 
Father,  who  made  us  meet  to  be  partakers  of  the  inheritance  of  the 
saints  in  light."  Hence  it  is  evident,  the  willing  soul  is  one  that 
hath  a  transcendant  love  to  Christ,  and  a  desire  of  communion  with 
him ;  even  of  such  a  communion  as  may  never  be  overclouded  nor 
interrupted.  They  are  unwilling  to  want  it,  and  their  souls  long 
for  it.     We  shall  now, 

III.  Touch  a  little  at  the  day  of  power. 

1.  Though  the  gospel  may  be  long  preached  unto  a  people,  yet 
there  are  some  special  seasons  that  may  be  looked  on  as  days  of 
power.  The  same  power  doth  not  always  accompany  the  word. 
Days  when  the  gospel  is  new  to  a  people,  days  of  persecution,  days 
when  there  is  a  spirit  of  prayer  poured  out,  and  times  of  sealing 
ordinances,  these  are  more  likely  than  others  to  be  days  of  power. 

2.  There  is  an  appointed  time  for  the  inbringing  of  all  the  elect 
of  God,  and  that  is  the  particular  day  of  power  to  them.  As  it 
was  to  the  Israelites,  when  at  the  end  of  the  appointed  time,  "  even 
the  self-same  day,  it  came  to  pass  that  all  the  host  of  the  Lord 
went  out  from  the  land  of  Egypt."  He  that  appointed  the  time  of 
their  natural  birth,  appoints  also  the  time  of  their  spiritual  or  new 
birth.  There  is  a  day  and  hour,  in  which  everlasting  love  will 
dawn  on  the  soul. 

3.  A  dark  night  usually  goes  before  this  day  of  power.  The  soul 
is  led  to  the  place  of  execution  before  the  pardon  be  given  out ;  they 
are  cast  down  before  they  be  lifted  up ;  conscience  is  awakened,  the 
heart  pained,  before  peace  and  health  be  diffused  through  the  soul. 

4.  Whenever  this  day  of  power  comes,  the  soul  is  made  willing,  the 
fort  of  the  heart  is  taken,  and  the  King  of  glory  enters  in  state, 
turns  out  the  old  inhabitants,  and  puts  in  new.  And  there  are  three 
things  done  in  that  day.  1.  Christ  gives  the  conquering  stroke,  and 
by  an  Almighty  power  opens  the  prison  door,  and  so  it  is  the  day  of 
the  captives'  deliverance.  2.  The  spirit  of  Christ  is  at  work  tra- 
vailing to  bring  them  forth,  and  so  it  is  their  birth-day.  3.  Christ 
gains  the  bride's  consent,  and  so  it  is  their  marriage  day. 

Inference  1.  Pray  earnestly  for  a  day  of  power.  There  are 
three  things  we  much  need,  and  which  a  day  of  power  would  do  for 
us.  1.  It  would  revive  the  graces  of  the  spirit  in  the  Lord's  people 
among  us,  that  are  decayed  and  languishing.  A  marriage  day  is  a 
feast  day  for  the  bridegroom's  friends,  in  which  the  bridegroom 


20  Christ's  PEOPiiB 

bestows  gifts  upon  them.  The  Lord's  people  have  need  to  be  made 
more  -willing,  to  have  the  backwardness  to  duty  taken  off  their  spirits. 

2.  It  would  bring  in  many  new  friends  to  Christ,  would  bring  many 
out  of  the  devil's  kingdom,  into  the  kingdom  of  God's  dear  Son. 

3.  It  would  make  enemies,  that  are  none  of  Christ's  purchase,  to 
feign  submission,  and  put  a  stop  to  the  open  profanity  abounding  in 
our  day.     Ps.  Ixxxi.  15. 

Inference  2.  Show  yourselves  Christ's  people,  by  submitting  to 
him.  This  day  he  is  erecting  his  standard  in  this  place,  and  we 
invite  you  in  his  name,  to  stand  out  no  longer  against  him,  but 
come  to  him  and  receive  him,  and  give  up  yourselves  to  him. 
Motives, 

1.  Consider  what  you  are,  while  you  submit  not  to  Christ.  You 
are  under  strange  lords.  If  you  be  not  Christ's  subjects,  you  are 
the  devil's  slaves ;  you  are  the  servants  of  sin.  And  what  is  it  you 
are  so  fond  of,  that  you  prefer  it  to  Christ :  is  it  pleasure  or 
profit  ?  "  What  is  a  man  profited,  if  he  should  gain  the  whole  world, 
and  lose  his  own  soul  ?  or  what  shall  a  man  give  in  exchange  for 
his  soul." 

2.  Consider  Christ  is  an  exalted  king.  He  is  placed  at  the  Father's 
right  hand,  on  his  throne.  Will  you  deny  him  a  lodging  in  your 
heart  ?  The  rejecting  of  Christ,  in  his  humiliation,  was  grievously 
punished  upon  the  Jews,  what  then  shall  become  of  the  neglectors  of 
an  exalted  Christ? 

3.  He  is  a  priest  as  well  as  a  king.  It  is  only  by  virtue  of  his 
sacrifice  and  intercession,  that  you  can  get  mercy.  Finally,  you 
must  stoop  to  him  sooner  or  later.  "  We  must  all  stand  before  the 
jundgment  seat  of  Christ.  To  him  every  knee  shall  bow,  and  every 
tongue  confess."  If  you  submit  not  willingly,  he  will  make  you  his 
footstool.     He  is  a  merciful  king. 

Use  3.  Try  whether  you  be  really  such  as  submit  honestly  to 
Christ.  Especially  you  that  are  to  sit  down  at  the  Lord's  table,  see 
if  you  be  a  willing  people.     Try  your  willingness. 

1.  Your  willingness  if  right,  will  be  a  supernatural  willingness, 
made  by  a  day  of  power.  Wild  oats  grow  without  labour,  but  bread 
corn  requires  labour  and  pains.  Willingness  lightly  gained,  lightly 
goes.  So  it  was  with  the  stoney  ground  hearers,  and  those  who  re- 
ceived the  seed  among  thorns.  The  child  that  never  found  any  bitter 
thing  on  the  breast,  easily  returns  to  it ;  and  the  soul  that  is  willing 
to  take  Christ,  but  never  felt  the  bitterness  of  sin,  it  is  like  it  will 
not  long  stay  with  him. 

2.  It  is  accompanied  with  understanding.  The  willing  soul  makes 
an  understanding  choice.     An  error  in  the  person,  (in  marriage), 


A  WILLING  PEOPLE.  21 

makes  it  null.  Many  in  their  pretended  choice  of  Christ,  make  a 
blind  choice,  not  knowing  hira,  hence  they  run  away  from  him  again. 
Mai.  iii.  1,  2. 

3.  It  is  deliberate.  The  soul  sits  down  and  counts  the  cost,  but  a 
rash  consent  will  be  retracted. 

4.  It  is  an  absolute  willingness.  Philip  said  to  the  eunuch,  *'  if 
thou  believest  with  all  thine  heart,  thou  mayest  be  baptized.  And 
he  answered  and  said,  I  believe  that  Jesus  Christ  is  the  Son  of  God." 
That  is  to  believe  with  the  whole  heart,  when  the  soul  makes  choice 
of  Christ  and  his  ways,  because  of  their  inward  beauty,  which  they 
would  do,  were  there  no  hell.  But  alas  !  many  are  willing  to  take 
Christ  just  to  be  a  bridge,  to  carry  them  over  the  water  of  God's 
wrath. 

Lastly,  It  is  for  the  present.  Real  willingness  will  admit  of  no 
delay.     Matth.  viii.  21,  22. 

Objection  1.  I  fear  I  am  none  of  Christ's  people.  Answer,  If 
thou  be  one  of  the  willing  people,  surely  thou  art  one  of  his. 

2.  I  fear  Christ  is  not  willing.  Answer,  That  is  a  dreadful  re- 
flection on  his  veracity.  Do  you  think  that  he  mocks  you  while  he 
invites  you,  and  promises  you  a  welcome  reception.  Nay,  know  if 
Christ  had  not  been  willing,  thou  hadst  not  been  willing,  "  we  love 
him,  because  he  first  loved  us,"     It  is  he  who  hath  made  you  willing. 

3.  But  I  cannot  get  my  heart  made  willing.  0  how  backward  is 
it,  and  averse  to  stoop.  Answer,  Is  that  thy  exercise  and  burden  ? 
It  is  a  good  sign.  Art  thou  willing  to  be  made  willing  ?  that  is 
some  degree  of  willingness.  Dost  thou  see  that  beauty  in  Christ, 
that  hatefulness  in  sin,  that  thou  art  grieved  that  thy  soul  cleaves 
so  fast  to  it,  thou  art  of  that  willing  people.     Amen. 


22  THE  soul's  espousal 

First  Sabbath  after  the  Sacrament,  Simprin,  Feb.  9,  1707. 
THE  SOUL'S  ESPOUSAL  TO  CHRIST. 

SERMON  II. 

2  Corinthians,  xi.  2, 

For  I  have  espoused  you  to  one  husband,  that  I  may  present  you  as  a 
chaste  virgin  to  Christ. 

It  was  a  matter  of  great  importance  we  were  about  last  Sabbath, 
espousing  poor  sinners  to  the  Son  of  Grod.  But  the  bride  is  apt  to 
forget,  till  she  be  brought  home,  and  therefore  we  would  put  you  in 
mind  of  it. 

In  this  verse,  the  apostle  shows  how  ho  stood  affected  to  them. 
"  He  was  jealous  over  them  with  a  godly  jealousy."  The  cause  of 
this  jealoxxsy  was  the  danger  in  which  they  were,  notwithstanding 
the  great  length  he  had  brought  them.  Their  danger  is  specified, 
verse  3.  The  length  he  had  brought  them  is  in  the  text,  in  which 
we  have  his  success,  "  he  had  espoused  them  to  one  husband,"  and 
the  design  of  it,  "  that  he  might  present  them  as  a  chaste  virgin 
to  Christ."  These  words  I  explained,  and  insisted  on  the  first 
clause  of  the  verse,  at  another  occasion  of  this  nature. 

Doctrine  I.  Sometimes  ministers  get  the  treaty  of  marriage 
betwixt  their  Master  and  their  people  brought  such  a  length,  that 
they  can  say  they  have  got  the  espousals  made,  and  that  with  a 
design  that  they  may  get  the  bride,  as  a  chaste  virgin,  to  present 
to  the  bridegroom,  when  the  great  marriage  day  shall  come. 

In  treating  this  subject,  I  shall, 

I.  Explain  a  little,  this  match  betwixt  Christ  and  his  people. 

I  shall  view  it  in  these  six  degrees : 

1.  The  first  degree  of  it  was  the  design  and  purpose  of  that 
match,  in  the  heart  of  God,  from  all  eternity.  It  is  no  new  thing. 
It  is  older  than  heaven  and  earth.  God  hath  had  an  eternity  to 
think  upon  it,  and  never  saw  reason  to  alter  his  purpose.  Concern- 
ing this,  we  may  notice  three  things.  1.  God  seeing  all  mankind 
in  a  lost  state,  was  pleased  from  eternity  to  have  mercy  upon,  and 
to  love  those  freely,  who  in  time  are  brought  to  Christ.  "  Accord- 
ing as  he  hath  chosen  us  in  him,  before  the  foundation  of  the  world. 
God  who  is  rich  in  mercy,  for  the  great  love  wherewith  he  loved  us, 
even  when  we  were  dead  in  sins,  hath  quickened  us  together  with 
Christ."      He  loved  them,  when  there  was   nothing  appearing  in 


TO  CUEIST.  2^ 

them  lovely.  Man  considered  as  innocent,  was  loved,  but  lie  soon 
ceased  to  be  the  object  of  that  love,  law-love.  But  God  took  man 
at  his  worst,  and  loved  him  then  with  a  love  of  good-will,  which  set 
his  mercy  on  work.  "  The  Lord  hath  appeared  of  old  unto  me, 
saying,  Yea,  I  have  loved  thee  with  an  everlasting  love ;  therefore, 
with  loving-kindness  have  I  drawn  thee."  2.  Those  whom  he 
loved,  he  designed  to  everlasting  life,  made  choice  of  them  to  be  his 
sons,  heirs  of  the  heavenly  inheritance.  He  selected  them  out  of 
the  midst  of  shipwrecked  mankind,  fully  purposing  to  bring  them 
to  Imraanuel's  land.  3.  Those  whom  he  thus  chose,  he  gave  them 
to  Christ,  to  be  his  spouse  in  time,  to  be  redeemed  and  saved  by  him. 
"  Thine  they  were,"  saith  Jesus,  "  and  thou  gavest  them  me." 
Christ  accepted  of  them,  upon  the  terms  fixed  by  the  Father,  "  Lo, 
I  come,  in  the  volume  of  the  book  it  is  written  of  me,  I  delight  to 
do  thy  will,  0  my  God  :  yea,  thy  law  is  within  my  heart."  He 
needed  them  not,  he  was  to  buy  them  dear,  yet  he  consents,  and 
therefore  they  are  called  his  people,  Psal.  ex.  3. 

2.  The  removal  of  the  lawful  impediments  of  this  match  betwixt 
the  Son  of  God  and  sinners.  When  this  purpose  was  proclaimed 
in  heaven,  there  appeared  to  object  against  the  match,  the  justice, 
law,  and  truth  of  God.  Justice  says,  the  Mediator  is  God,  and 
there  can  be  no  match  betwixt  God  and  guilty  man,  till  I  be 
satisfied.  The  law  says,  they  are  mine,  and  I  will  not  part 
with  them,  till  death  part  us.  Truth  says,  God  himself  made 
this  marriage  betwixt  them  and  the  law,  and  therefore  they  cannot 
be  married  to  another,  unless  first  death  dissolve  the  marriage. 
Bat  the  designed  bridegroom  will  not  let  the  marriage  go  back,  and 
therefore  he  removes  these  impediments,  by  his  obedience  to  the 
law,  and  by  his  death  in  our  nature,  and  in  our  stead,  which  he  did 
and  suifered  as  a  public  person,  even  as  Adam  sinned,  Gal.  ii.  20. 
By  this  means  justice  is  satisfied,  and  so  content  the  match  go  on. 
"  For,"  saith  God,  "  this  is  my  beloved  Son,  in  whom  I  am  well 
pleased."  The  sinner  dies  to  the  law  in  Christ,  and  the  law  dies  to 
the  sinner.  "  Wherefore,  my  brethren,  ye  also  are  become  dead  to 
the  law  by  the  body  of  Christ ;  that  ye  should  be  married  to  ano- 
ther, even  to  him  who  is  raised  from  the  dead,  that  we  should  bring 
forth  fruit  unto  God."  And  so  the  parties  being  thus  dead,  the 
truth  of  God  has  nothing  to  object  against  the  purpose  of  this  new 
marriage. 

3.  The  contract  is  written,  drawn,  and  ready  for  the  subscribing. 
"  He  hath  made  with  me,"  says  David,  "  an  everlasting  covenant, 
ordered  in  all  things  and  sure."  Ordered,  or  prepared.  And 
there  are  two  things  in  the  contract,  1.  Christ's  consent  to  match 


24  THE  soul's  espousal 

with  poor  sinners,  to  give  himself  to  the  captive  daughter  of  Zion 
for  a  husband,  notwithstanding  she  be  ill-favoured  and  unworthy ; 
Rev.  xxii.  17.  There  is  next  the  dowry  promised  to  the  bride,  and 
that  is  all  things  with  him  :  "  He  that  spared  not  his  own  Son,  but 
delivered  him  up  for  us  all,  how  shall  he  not  with  him  also  freely 
give  us  all  things,"  even  all  the  blessings  of  the  everlasting  cove- 
nant, grace  and  glory,  Psal.  Ixxxiv.  11,  A  large  maintenance,  and 
a  good  house ;  John  xiv.  3.  Yea,  the  contract  is  subscribed  by  the 
bridegroom  and  his  Father.  "  This  shall  be  the  covenant  that  I 
will  make  with  the  house  of  Israel,  after  those  days,  saith  the  Lord, 
I  will  put  my  law  in  their  inward  parts,  and  write  it  in  their 
hearts;  and  will  be  their  God,  and  they  shall  be  my  people."  The 
contract  is  also  sealed.  "  This  cup,"  saith  the  bridegroom,  "  is  the 
New  Testament  in  my  blood."  All  this  before  famous  witnesses, 
"For  there  are  three  that  bear  record  in  heaven,  the  Father,  the 
Word,  and  the  Holy  Grhost ;  and  these  three  are  one.  And  there 
are  three  that  bear  witness  in  earth,  the  spirit,  and  the  water,  and 
the  blood ;  and  these  three  agree  in  one."  The  whole  is  registered 
in  this  Bible. 

But  is  not  this  strange  work,  to  write,  and  sign,  and  seal  the 
contract,  before  the  bride's  consent  be  obtained,  yea,  before  she  be 
courted?  Answer.  The  reason  of  this  is,  it  is  one  of  the  articles, 
that  the  bridegroom  shall  gain  the  bride's  consent.  "  All  that  the 
Father  giveth  me,  shall  come  to  me,  and  him  that  cometh  to  me,  I 
will  in  no  wise  cast  out."  Again,  The  bride  hath  nothing,  for 
which  to  contract,  and  he  looks  for  as  little  with  her.  She  hath 
nothing  in  her,  nor  upon  her,  and  can  bring  nothing  with  her,  but 
debt,  wants,  poverty,  and  misery,  and  he  is  willing  to  take  her  as 
she  is;  Ezek.  xvi.  1 — 14. 

4.  The  courting  of  the  bride,  in  order  to  gain  her  consent.  And 
this  courtship  is  managed  in  two  places.  First,  Christ  comes  into 
her  mother's  house,  to  the  public  ordinances,  and  there  he,  by  his 
ambassadors,  courteth  her  consent.  In  the  public  ordinances  there 
is  a  good  report  given  of  Christ,  his  willingness  is  declared,  sinners 
are  invited,  exhorted,  obtested  to  give  away  themselves  to  him; 
there  is  a  moral  force  used  upon  them  by  arguments,  "  compelling 
them  to  come  in,  that  his  house  may  be  filled."  Secondly,  Christ 
comes  into  the  chambers  of  their  heart,  and  then  there  is  a  heart 
conference  betwixt  Christ  and  the  soul,  without  which  the  former 
cannot  prevail,  and  here  do  pass  these  five  things.  1.  The  Lord 
discovers  to  the  soul  its  lost  and  undone  condition ;  that  like  the 
prodigal,  Luke  xv.  it  is  perishing  with  hunger.  2.  The  Lord  tells 
the  soul  that  its  other  lovers  will  ruin  it.     Sin  will  damn  the  soul, 


TO  CHKIST.  25 

the  law  will  never  be  satisfied  with  all  that  the  soul  can  do.  3. 
The  Lord  tells  them  that  he  is  willing.  4.  He  discovers  himself  in 
his  beauty.  Lastly,  He  reveals,  stretches  out  his  arm,  and  lays 
hold  on  the  sinner  in  the  day  of  power.  "  The  soul  is  apprehended 
of  Christ  Jesns."     And  then  follows, 

5.  The  espousals.  The  soul  being  overcome,  gives  its  consent  to 
take  Christ  for  a  husband,  renouncing  all  others.  The  soul  makes 
choice  of  Christ.  With  the  whole  soul,  the  soul  makes  choice  of  a 
whole  Christ.  Their  great  desire  is,  "to  be  found  in  him,  not  hav- 
ing on  their  own  i-ighteousness,  which  is  of  the  law,  but  that  which 
is  through  the  faith  of  Christ,  the  righteousness  which  is  of  God  by 
faith.  They  esteem  him  altogether  lovely  in  his  person  and  in  his 
oflBces.  They  can  want  none  of  him.  Again,  they  make  choice  of 
him  all,  for  all,  and  instead  of  all,  saying,  "  whom  have  I  in  heaven 
but  thee,  and  there  is  none  on  earth  that  I  desire,  besides  thee." 
According  to  the  law  of  marriage  they  cleave  unto  him,  forgetting 
also  their  own  people,  and  their  father's  house.  Their  choice  of 
him  is  for  ever,  in  all  times  and  cases,  even  beyond  the  limits  of 
time,  taking  him  to  be  the  strength  of  their  heart,  and  their  portion 
for  ever.  The  soul  gives  itself  away  to  Christ.  Servants  give  work 
for  wages,  and  masters  give  wages  for  work.  Suitors  give  tokens 
and  pledges  to  draw  on  love ;  but  husbands  and  wives  give  them- 
selves to  one  another,  and  this  is  a  blessed  day.  "  Go  forth,  0  ye 
daughters  of  Zion,  and  behold  king  Solomon,  with  the  crown  where- 
with his  mother  crowned  him  in  the  day  of  his  espousals,  and  in  the 
day  of  the  gladness  of  his  heart." 

Lastly,  The  consummation  of  the  marriage  betwixt  Christ  and  the 
soul.  The  espousals  are  in  this  life,  at  our  believing,  the  marriage 
is  consummated  in  glory.  Then  shall  be  heard  the  shout,  "  Let  us 
be  glad  and  rejoice,  and  give  honour  to  him ;  for  the  marriage  of  the 
Lamb  is  come,  and  his  wife  hath  made  herself  ready."  Now  the 
espoused  bride  shall  be  presented  to  Christ,  as  the  bride  to  the 
bridegroom,  in  the  marriage  day  by  her  friends.  Hence  Christ  is 
represented  as  coming  at  the  last  day,  as  a  bridegroom  to  the  mar- 
riage, with  his  espoused  wife.  Matth.  xxv.  1 — 5.  Then  shall  the 
mystery  be  finished,  and  the  copestone  be  laid  upon  the  great  design 
of  God  in  the  gospel. 

Now  there  is  a  time  betwixt  the  esposals  and  marriage  : 
1.  This  time  is  for  the  trial  of  the  bride.  "  And  I  said  unto  her 
thou  shalt  abide  for  me  many  days,  thou  shalt  not  play  the  harlot, 
and  thou  shalt  not  be  for  another  man,  so  will  I  also  be  for  thee." 
In  the  meantime,  the  old  lovers  will  come  back  again,  and  endea- 
vour to  recover  her  afi"ections  which  they  have  lost,  and  often  do 


26  THE  soul's  espousal 

they  so  succeed,  that  they  get  hold  again   of  some  who  were  never 
sincere  in  their  espousals,  but  others  remain  firm. 

2.  This  interval  is,  that  the  bride  may  make  herself  ready.  As 
the  espoused  virgin  takes  up  her  time  providing  for  the  marriage, 
so  the  soul  by  making  progress  in  sanctification,  dying  more  and 
more  unto  their  lusts,  is  prepared  for  the  consummation  of  the  mar- 
riage in  heaven.     I  proceed, 

II.  To  shew  what  hand  ministers  have  in  this  match. 

1.  They  are  proxies  for  the  bridegroom,  sent  as  Abraham's  ser- 
vant, to  seek  a  wife  for  their  master's  son ;  because  he  is  a  king, 
yea,  the  prince  of  the  kings  of  the  earth.  They  are  ambassadors, 
and  that  of  peace;  2  Cor.  v.  18 — 20.  Their  work  is  to  commend 
their  Lord,  and  to  gain  the  bride's  consent. 

2.  They  are  witnesses,  though  not  to  the  formal  consent,  yet  to 
that  which  imports  a  consent.  They  see  how  their  message  is 
entertained,  though  indeed  they  may  be  so  far  deceived,  as  to  take  a 
feigned  for  an  unfeigned  consent. 

3.  They  are  the  attendants  of  the  bride,  to  adorn  her  for  her 
husband.  It  is  by  the  word,  that  the  espoused  soul  is  made  clean, 
and  fitted  for  Christ,  as  the  Greek  word  in  our  text  signifies. 

Lastly,  The  text  tells  us  of  another  part  of  their  work,  namely, 
their  presenting  her  to  the  bridegroom  at  the  last  day.  This  may 
import  their  joyful  account  of  their  ministry  to  their  master  at  his 
coming,  when  they  shall  be  able  to  say.  Here  am  I,  and  the  children 
whom  thou  hast  given  me.  "  For,"  says  Paul,  "  what  is  our  hope, 
or  joy,  or  crown  of  rejoicing  ?  are  not  even  ye  in  the  presence  of 
our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  ac  his  coming ;  For  ye  are  our  glory  and 
joy."     Let  us  now, 

III.  Inquire  why  the  Lord  employs  men  in  this  great  and  honour- 
able work. 

1.  It  is  in  condescension  to  our  infirmities.  If  God  had  employed 
angels,  how  would  we  have  been  able  to  have  looked  upon  them. 
Manoah  and  his  wife,  fell  on  their  faces  to  the  ground,  when  they 
saw  the  conduct  of  the  angel  that  appeared  to  them,  Judges  xiii. 
Ever  since  sin  entered  the  world,  commerce  with  spirits  is  dreadful 
to  men ;  but  here,  men  of  like  passions  with  ourselves,  transact  this 
most  important  matter. 

2.  It  is  very  agreeable,  in  regard  God  is  in  Christ,  and  the  divine 
■nature  united  with  the  human  nature,  that  therefore  men  should 
deal  with  men,  to  bring  them  to  the  man  Christ. 

3.  That  God  may  have  all  the  glory.  Were  angels  employed  to 
espouse  souls  to  Christ,  it  would  be  thought  that  the  power  was  from 
them ;  but  the  more  contemptible  the  instruments  are  the  more 
^oes  the  power  appear  to  be  of  God,  and  not  of  us. 


TO  CHRIST.  27 

Doctrine  II.  That  the  great  desigu  of  espousing  sinners  to  Christ 
here,  is  that  they  continuing  chaste  and  faithful  to  Christ  after  the 
espousals,  may  at  last  be  presented  to  Christ,  to  be  married  to  him 
in  heaven  his  Father's  house.     Ilere  we  shall, 

I.  Inquire  what  it  is  for  the  espoused  to  keep  chaste. 

II.  Consider  the  presenting  of  the  espoused  that  keep  chaste,  to 
Christ.     We  are  then, 

I.  To  inquire  what  it  is  for  ihe  espoused  to  keep  chaste. 

1.  They  must  never  be  called  by  another  name  than  their  es- 
poused husband.  They  must  hold  fast  their  profession,  come  what 
will,  Heb.  X.  23,  The  company  standing  with  the  Lamb  on  mount 
Zion,  "  have  his  Father's  name  written  in  their  foreheads,  and  they 
have  not  defiled  themselves  with  women  :  for  they  are  virgins  :  these 
are  they  which  follow  the  Larab  whithet soever  he  goeth  :  these  were 
redeemed  from  among  men,  being  the  first  fruits  unto  God  and  to 
the  Lamb."  It  must  be  known  by  our  profession,  to  whom  we  be- 
long, thinking  no  shame  to  own  him  before  the  world.  "  For  with 
the  heart  man  believeth  unto  righteousness,  and  with  the  mouth  con- 
fession is  made  unto  salvation,"  Matth.  x.  31 — 33. 

2.  They  must  never  go  back  to  their  former  husband,  for  the  soul 
that  is  really  espoused  to  Christ,  is  divorced  from  idols  and  lusts, 
and  therefore  must  not  go  back  to  them.  "  As  obedient  children, 
not  fashioning  themselves  according  to  the  former  lusts,  in  your 
iguorance."  This  gauding  after  other  lovers,  is  breaking  to  the 
heart  of  Christ,  Ezek.  vi.  6 ;  and  the  soul  giviiig  up  itself  to  them 
again,  Christ  gives  up  with  that  soul,  saying,  "  Ephraim  is  joined  to 
idols  ;  let  him  alone."  So  we  must  resolve  that  we  will  not  go  back 
from  Christ,  but  say,  "  quicken  us,  and  we  will  call  upon  thy  name." 

The  soul  espoused  indeed  to  Christ,  is  divorced  not  only  from  lusts 
and  idols,  but  also  divorced  from  the  law,  and  we  must  not  go  back 
to  it  again.  "  Wherefore  my  brethren,"  says  Paul,  "  ye  also  are 
become  dead  to  the  law,  by  the  body  of  Christ,  that  ye  should  be 
married  to  another,  even  to  him  who  is  raised  from  the  dead,  that 
we  should  bring  forth  fruit  unto  God."  Now  the  soul  returns  to 
that  husband  first,  when  it  acts  from  the  law  in  duty,  that  is,  when 
they  are  actuated  by  the  influence  of  the  covenant  of  works,  being 
stirred  up  to  duty,  only  from  hope  of  reward,  and  fear  of  punish- 
ment. The  soul  also  returns  to  this  husband,  when  it  acts  for  the 
law,  making  duties  our  righteousness  before  God,  and  going  about 
to  procure  the  favour  of  God  by  them.  On  the  contrary,  the  chaste 
soul  acts  from  Christ  out  of  love  to  him,  and  in  his  strength  :  and 
for  Christ,  to  his  glory.  Believers  are  a  chosen  generation,  a  royal 
priesthood,  an  holy  nation,  a  peculiar  people  ;  that  ye  should  shew 

Vol.  IV.  0 


28  THE  soul's  espousal 

forth  the  praises  of  him  who  hath  called  you  out  of  darkness  into 
his  marvellous  light. 

Christ  must  always  have  our  hearts,  our  love,  and  the  chief  room 
iu  our  affections.  "  If  any  man,"  saith  Jesus,  "  come  to  me, 
and  hate  not  his  father,  and  mother,  and  wife,  and  children,  and 
brethren,  and  sisters  ;  yea,  and  his  own  life  also,  he  cannot  be  my 
disciple."  Whether  they  be  lawful,  or  unlawful  comforts,  if  they 
have  more  of  our  hearts  than  Christ,  we  are  unfaithful  to  our 
espoused  husband,  and  "lovers  of  pleasure  more  than  lovers  of  God." 
Never  do  any  faithfully  give  themselves  away  to  Christ,  but  they 
have  seen  more  beauty  in  him  than  in  any  other,  and  therefore  he 
will  have  their  chief  love. 

4.  They  must  cleave  to  Christ,  over  the  belly  of  all  the  world's 
smiles  and  frowns  also.  They  must  neither  be  bribed,  nor  driven 
from  him.  Song  viii.  6,  7.  Christ's  spouse  may  lay  her  account  with 
flatteries,  to  draw  her  away  from  Christ ;  but  as  "  Moses  refused  to 
be  called  the  son  of  Pharaoh's  daughter,  choosing  rather  to  suffer 
affliction  with  the  people  of  God,  than  to  enjoy  the  pleasures  of  sin 
for  a  season,  so  ought  all  his  people  to  do."  They  will  meet  also 
with  threatenings,  and  persecutions,  and  afflictions,  but  all  they 
have  must  be  at  his  service,  they  must  part  with  their  very  lives  to 
preserve  their  chastity,  if  called  to  it. 

5.  They  must  be  separated  from  the  world  :  not  only  from  the 
world  in  their  hearts,  but  from  the  men  of  the  world,  in  their 
practices ;  therefore  they  are  held  forth,  Rev.  xiv.  4,  as  a  company 
selected  out  from  among  the  rest  of  the  world;  and  they  are 
enjoined  "  not  to  be  conformed  to  this  world,  but  to  be  transformed 
by  the  renewing  of  their  mind."  To  be  like  the  world,  neighbour 
and  other,  will  not  do.  They  must  no  longer,  as  in  time  past,  walk 
according  to  the  course  of  this  world.  They  must  cleave  to  the 
purity  of  the  gospel,  in  doctrine,  worship,  and  practice. 

Finally,  They  must  be  sincere  and  upright,  "And  in  their 
mouth  was  no  guile;  for  they  are  without  fault  before  God." 
Chaste  virgins  are  like  Nathaniel,  without  guile.  Hypocrisy  would 
spoil  all.  Our  espoused  husband  is  a  searcher  of  hearts,  and  will 
not  be  put  off  with  vain  pretences.     We  now  proceed, 

II.  To  consider  the  presenting  to  Christ  of  those  that  keep  chaste. 
Concerning  this,  I  would  notice  these  six  things : 

1.  The  time  of  it,  it  will  be  at  the  great  day.  When  Christ 
comes  as  Judge  to  others,  he  will  come  as  a  bridegroom  to  his  own. 
Matt.  XXV.  1 — 12.  At  death  they  are  presented  to  him,  and 
received  into  glory ;  but  then  both  soul  and  body  shall  be  glorified. 

2.  They,  and  they  only,  that  keep  chaste,  shall  be  presented  to 


TO  CHRIST.  29 

Christ,  as  to  a  bridegroom,  in  order  to  marriage.  The  high  priest, 
under  the  law,  was  not  to  marry  a  whore.  They  that  shall  depart 
from  Christ,  shall  be  made  to  depart  from  him  there.  "  For  there 
shall  in  no  wise  enter  into  heaven  any  thing  that  defileth,  neither 
whatsoever  worketh  abomination,  or  maketh  a  lie  ;  but  they  which 
are  written  in  the  Lamb's  book  of  life."  But  the  chaste  virgins 
shall  be  brought  to  the  king.  Psalm  xlv.  And  it  must  needs  be  so, 
for  it  is  not  consistent  with  his  honour  to  take  others,  and  not  con- 
sistent with  his  faithfulness  to  forsake  them. 

3.  The  house  out  of  which  the  bride  shall  go,  even  out  of  a  grave, 
or  out  of  the  world,  this  earth.  Some  will  be  found  alive  when  the 
bridegroom  comes,  they  shall  be  changed ;  some  in  their  graves, 
they  shall  be  raised.     Out  of  prison  they  go  to  reign. 

4.  The  bride's  attendants.  A  glorious  company  shall  be  with  her, 
when  she  is  to  be  presented  to  the  bridegroom.  Angels  shall  attend 
her,  they  that  were  witnesses  to  her  espousals,  shall  also  be  wit- 
nesses to  her  marriage.  And  0  what  a  joyful  day  will  it  be,  when 
Christ's  ministers  shall  say,  here  are  we,  and  the  children  thou  hast 
given  us. 

5.  The  place  where  the  bride  shall  be  presented  to  the  bridegroom, 
"  Then  we  which  are  alive  and  remain,  shall  be  caught  up  together 
with  them  in  the  clouds,  to  meet  the  Lord  in  the  air :  and  so  shall 
we  be  ever  with  the  Lord."  Christ  will  thus  come  more  than  half 
way  to  meet  her.     And  0  what  a  joyful  meeting  will  that  be. 

Lastly,  The  place  where  the  marriage  shall  be  solemnized,  that  is 
the  bridegroom's  father's  house,  even  in  heaven.  "  Then  shall  they 
be  ever  with  the  Lord."  0  blessed  espousals  to  Christ,  but  yet 
there  is  a  great  dilference  betwixt  the  espousals  and  the  marriage, 
as  \.  The  espousals  are  made  on  earth,  but  the  marriage  in  heaven. 
They  are  probably  espoused  in  the  temple  below,  but  the  marriage 
is  in  the  temple  above. 

2.  There  is  a  mixed  multitude  at  the  espousals,  but  not  so  at  the 
marriage.  Many  put  their  hands  to  the  pen,  and  sign  the  contract, 
who  are  not  divorced  from  their  other  lovers ;  but  there  the  door  is 
shut,  and  none  but  chaste  virgins  admitted. 

3.  The  bridegroom  appears  beautiful  at  the  espousals,  but  far  more 
beautiful  at  the  marriage,  for  then  they  shall  see  him  as  he  is,  and 
shall  say,  the  half  has  not  been  told. 

4.  The  bride  contracts  with  him  in  a  sorry  state,  giving  away 
herself  to  him,  that  he  may  make  her  beautiful.  But  at  the  mar- 
riage, the  bride  shall  be  adorned,  not  only  with  a  perfect  imputed 
righeousness,  but  also  with  a  perfect  inherent  righteousness.  The 
Lamb's  wife  shall  then  "have  made  herself  ready,  and  shall  appear 

o2 


30  THE  soul's  espousal  to  CHRIST. 

arrayed  in  fine  linen,  clean  and  white."     No  spot,  no  wrinkle  in  tlie 
bride,  but  she  shall  be  holy,  and  without  blemish. 

5.  Many  a  time,  the  bride  at  the  espousals  gives  away  herself  to 
Christ  with  sorrow  in  her  heart,  tears  in  her  eyes,  and  with  a  trem- 
bling hand  signs  the  contract,  for  fear  she  mismanage  it,  or  that  the 
bridegroom  will  not  take  her,  but  then  all  these  things  shall  be  gone. 
"They  shall  obtain  joy  and  gladness,  and  sorrow  and  sighing  shall 
flee  away." 

6.  At  the  espousals,  the  bride  sometimes  gets  some  little  gifts  to 
rejoice  her  heart ;  but  then  she  shall  get  a  fulness  of  joy,  of  which 
she  is  not  now  capable. 

Lastly,  After  the  espousals  she  is  in  hazard.  There  are  many  to 
attempt  her  chastity  now,  but  after  the  marriage  she  shall  never  be 
in  hazard  any  more. 

Use  1.  Remember  that  I  have  espoused  you  to  Christ,  and  that 
now  you  are  no  more  your  own  but  his.  There  was  a  solemn  day  of 
espousals  to  Christ  here,  last  Sabbath,  and  then  we  got  you  espoused 
to  our  Master.     Let  us  reflect  on  this  a  little. 

1.  "Was  there  not  an  ofi'er  of  Christ,  made  to  all  communicants 
and  hearers,  in  Simprin  kirk,  and  Simprin  byre,  that  day.  Were 
you  not  told  he  was  willing,  and  it  should  be  a  bargain,  if  you  were 
willing  also. 

2.  Was  there  any  one  in  either  of  the  places  of  worship,  that  said 
they  would  not  take  him  ?  Did  any  say  we  have  loved  idols,  and 
will  go  after  them  ?  Did  you  not  sit  and  stand  there  as  his  people  ? 
Why  did  you  crowd  in,  was  it  to  protest  against  Christ,  we  heard  no 
such  thing;  Nay,  did  not  your  heart  say  within  you,  even  so  I  take  him. 

3.  Did  we  not  bring  out  the  contract  to  you  and  read  it,  that  you 
might  know  what  you  were  doing?  Did  you  not  hear  the  articles, 
that  you  behoved  to  part  with  sin  and  the  world  ?  and  yet  after  all 
there  were  none  of  you  said  that  you  were  against  the  bargain. 

4.  Did  we  not  put  the  pen  into  the  hands  of  many  of  you,  gave  you 
the  bread  and  wine,  the  symbols  of  Christ's  body  and  blood  ?  Christ 
was  exhibited  in  that  sacrament.  Wherefore  was  it,  but  that  you 
might  subscribe  the  contract. 

Lastly,  Did  we  not  see  you  sign  the  contract,  give  away  yourselves 
to  Christ,  and  take  the  sacrament  of  his  body  and  blood  upon  it  ? 
Witness  then,  0  heavens  !  witness  0  earth  !  witness  0  angels  !  Be 
ye  witnesses,  0  stones  and  wood  of  Simprin  kirk  and  byre,  and  we 
ourselves  are  witnesses,  that  upon  the  second  day  of  February,  1707, 
we  espoused  this  people  unto  our  Master  Christ. 

Use  2.  And  now  I  have  but  one  request  to  you.  Behave  in  such 
a  manner,  as  you  may  be  presented  as  a  chaste  virgin,  to  Christ  the 
bridegroom,  at  the  great  day.     "  Little  children  keep  yourselves  from 


SERVlNa  THE  LORD  IN  HOLINESS.  31 

idols."  Keep  tlie  chief  room  in  your  heart  for  Christ,  and  let  not 
your  garments  again  be  defiled.  Consider,  last  Sabbath  you  were 
beginning  a  work  for  eternity,  why  did  you  consent  to  the  espousals, 
if  you  have  not  a  mind  for  the  marriage ;  and  surely  you  cannot 
think  to  go  a-whoring  from  your  espoused  husband,  unless  you  mind 
never  to  be  presented  to  him  for  the  marriage.  Alas  !  I  fear  we  will 
lose  of  our  account,  when  the  day  comes  for  presenting  the  bride. 
Suppose  you  heard  Christ,  at  that  day,  say  to  us,  "What !  did  you  es- 
pouse no  more  to  me,  than  these  ?  and  us  to  answer,  Lord,  we  espous- 
ed many  more  to  thee,  but  they  afterwards  went  back  to  their  lusts, 
now  they  are  amissing,  and  we  dare  not  present  them,  because  they 
have  not  kept  chaste. 

Objection.  Alas !  it  is  impossible  for  us  to  keep  free  of  sin. 
Answer.  It  is  not  every  slip  that  will  denominate  you  unchaste. 
Let  it  be  the  constant  bent  of  your  souls  to  keep  faithful  to  Christ. 
Struggle  against  sin ;  and  if  you  do,  though  it  may  prevail,  yet  it 
shall  not  prevent  your  acceptance,  while  you  flee  to  the  blood  of 
Christ.  You  may  say  with  David,  "  Iniquities  prevail  against  me ; 
as  for  our  transgressions,  thou  shalt  purge  them  away."  Remember 
the  case  of  the  betrothed  damsel,  Deut.  xxii.  25,  26.     Amen. 


Galashiels,  Saturdaif,  September  21,  1723. 
SERVING  THE  LORD  IN  HOLINESS. 

SERMON  III. 

Luke  i.  74,  75, 

That  he  would  grant  unto  us,  that  we  being  delivered  out  of  the  hand  of 
our  enemies,  might  serve  him  without  fear,  in  holiness  and  righte- 
ousness before  him  all  the  days  of  our  life. 

The  covenant  of  grace  is  the  great  contrivance  for  salvation  to  lost 
sinners;  it  is  the  chariot  in  which  Christ  carries  home  his  bride  to 
his  Father's  house  in  heaven.  Song  iii.  9,  10.  The  gospel  is  the 
proclamation,  and  free  offer  of  this  covenant  to  all.  Faith  is  the 
taking  hold  of  this  covenant,  the  embracing  it,  the  sinner's  personal 
entering  into  it,  the  coming  up  into  the  chariot.  The  sacraments 
are  the  seals  of  this  covenant.  Our  text  is  the  import  and  sub- 
stance of  this  covenant,  shewing  what  is  offered  to  you  all  in  th© 


32  SERVING  THE  LORD 

gospel ;  to  be  believed  and  applied  by  you  all,  to  yourselves, 
through  faith ;  and  what  shall  be  sealed  to  you  all,  who  believe,  iu 
the  sacrament.  "  Even  that  he  would  grant  unto  us,  that  we  being 
delivered,"  &c. 

This  covenant  is  a  sworn  covenant,  vers.  72,  73,  that  poor 
sinners,  who  have  a  mind  for  it,  may  have  strong  consolation, 
to  balance  their  strong  doubts  and  fears.  But  to  whom?  To 
Abraham,  ver.  73,  as  a  type  of  Christ;  that  is  really  to  Jesus 
Christ,  the  true  Abraham,  the  true  father  of  the  multitude  of  the 
faithful,  who  at  God's  call  left  heaven,  his  native  country,  and  came 
and  sojourned  among  the  cursed  race  of  mankind,  and  there  offered 
up  his  owu  flesh  and  blood,  a  sacrifice  unto  God.  And  so  became 
the  true  heir  of  the  world,  and  received  the  promises  for  his  spiritual 
seed,  whereof  this  is  the  sum,  "  That  he  would  grant  unto  us,  that 
we  being  delivered,"  &c.  Compare  Genesis  xxii.  16 — 18.  Of  which 
passage,  our  text  is  an  inspired  paraphrase.  There  are  two  things 
iu  the  text  to  which  we  shall  at  present  attend,  and  afterwards  take 
a  particular  view  of  the  other  parts  of  it. 

I.  The  conveyance  made  in  this  covenant,  "  That  he  would  grant 
unto  us,"  &c. 

II.  The  benefits  secured  to  us  in  this  conveyance.  Let  us  then 
attend : 

I.  To  the  conveyance  made  in  this  covenant.  In  this,  two  things 
may  be  observed. 

1.  The  parties  in  whose  favour  this  conveyance  is  made.  Us,  the 
seed  of  Abraham.  The  Father  has  solemnly  engaged  to  the  Son, 
that  these  shall  be  delivered  and  serve  him.  Objection.  What 
comfort  is  this  to  us  sinners  of  the  Gentiles  ?  Answer.  "  If  you  be 
Christ's,  then  are  you  Abraham's  seed,  and  heirs  according  to  the 
promise."  Therefore  believe  on  Christ  this  day;  believe  the  pro- 
mises, and  so  be  his,  and  you  are  secured  for  time  and  eternity. 
Objection.  But  I  fear  I  am  none  of  the  spiritual  seed,  the  elect  in 
whose  favour  that  covenant  conveyance  is  made.  How  then  can  I 
believe,  and  apply  the  promises  to  myself?  Answer.  The  original 
copyof  the  covenant  of  j)romises  was  filled  up  from  all  eternity,  and 
sigued  by  the  Father,  and  the  Son  as  the  second  Adam,  and  remains 
locked  up  in  the  cabinet  of  heaven.  And  in  this  question,  whether 
you  shall  believe  or  not ;  none  would  order  you  to  call  for  a  sight 
of  the  original  copy,  to  see  if  your  name  be  there,  but  the  enemy  of 
your  salvation ;  nor  would  even  he  order  you,  if  he  did  not  know 
very  well  that  a  sight  of  it  you  cannot  have,  till  you  have  believed. 
His  designs,  then,  is  to  keep  you  from  believing.  But  there  is  a 
double  of  it  in  the  gospel,  subscribed  also  by  the  Father,  aud  the  Son 


IK  HOLINESS.  3^ 

as  second  Adam,  in  which  all  the  promises  are  indefinitely  proposed 
to  all  that  hear  it,  and  as  it  were  a  blank  left  in  the  body  of  it,  in 
which  every  one  that  will,  may  fill  up  his  own  name.  So  in  this 
gospel,  the  covenant  is  held  out  to  you  all,  as  heaven's  blank  bond 
for  grace  and  glory,  that  whosoever  will,  may  fill  his  own  name  in 
it,  by  applying  the  same  to  himself  in  the  way  of  believing. 

2,  Tlie  manner  of  the  conveyance.  It  is  by  way  of  grant  or  gift, 
for  so  the  word  is.  But  observe  the  gift  is  to  us,  and  so  it  is  to  be 
understood  in  respect  of  us,  to  be  a  free  gift.  In  respect  of  the 
Lord  Jesus,  it  is  not  so.  All  the  benefits  of  the  covenant,  to  be  be- 
stowed on  his  spiritual  seed,  are  made  over  to  him  on  a  valuable 
consideration.  The  covenant  to  him  is  a  covenant  of  sale,  in  which 
he  obtains  such  and  such  things,  for  his,  because  he  hath  paid  the 
price  of  tliem.  "  We  were  not  redeemed  with  corruptible  things, 
such  as  silver  and  gold,  from  our  vain  conversation,  received  by 
tradition  from  our  fathers ;  but  with  the  precious  blood  of  Christ, 
as  of  a  lamb  without  blemish,  and  without  spot."  To  the  Lord 
Jesus  it  is  a  covenant  of  service,  in  which  the  benefits  of  it  arc  made 
over  to  him,  because  he  worked  for  them,  Gen.  xxii.  16.  God  gives 
us  to  serve  our  Redeemer,  because  Christ  served  him  perfectly  in 
our  room  and  stead.  The  covenant  is  to  him  a  disposition  of  these 
things  for  us,  upon  a  most  onerous  cause,  namely,  "  because  he  hath 
poured  out  his  soul  unto  death ;  and  he  was  numbered  with  trans- 
gressors ;  and  he  bare  the  sin  of  many,  and  made  intercession  for 
the  transgressors." 

But  in  respect  of  us,  these  things  stand  quite  otherwise.  The 
grant  to  us  is  of  mere  free  gift,  absolutely  of  free  grace.  All  the 
blessings  of  grace  are  so,  and  glory  is  so  likewise.  From  the 
foundation  stone  of  our  salvation,  to  the  copestone  of  it,  we  must 
cry  grace,  grace,  unto  it.  For  the  whole  building,  and  every  stone 
of  the  building,  is  of  grace.  And  the  putting  the  crown  of  glory  on 
the  heads  of  the  saints,  after  all  their  wrestling  and  fighting  against 
their  spiritual  enemies,  after  all  their  holy  obedience,  and  life  spent 
in  the  practice  of  good  works,  is  as  purely  of  free  grace,  as  the  giv- 
ing them  the  first  grace,  as  the  quickening  of  them  when  dead  in 
sins  is.  "For  I  have  said,  mercy  shall  be  built  up  for  ever."  "By 
grace  are  ye  saved,  through  faith ;  and  that  not  of  yourselves,  it  is 
the  gift  of  God." 

What  then  should  hinder  any  poor  soul  that  has  a  mind  for 
God's  covenant  of  free  grace,  to  embrace  it  this  day  i  Should  it 
hinder  you  to  embrace  it,  because  you  cannot  get  any  tolerable 
management  of  the  corruptions  ot  your  base  heart,  because  you 
cauuot  uork,  nor  do  any  thing  right  iu  the  service  of  God?     No, 


34  SERVING  THE  LORB 

np.      "We   may  tell    you  with   confidence,   here   you    are  to   wor  k 
nothing,  to  do  nothing  ;  but  only  by  believing,  to  receive  the  full 
treasure    of  the  covenant,  held   out   to    you  in    the  gospel,   to  be 
received  freely.     And  more  than  that,  that  day  shall  never  dawn  on 
you,  in  which  you  shall  be  able  to  work,  or  do  the  least  work  to 
purpose,   until    you  have   embraced  the  covenant  for   grace,   with 
which  to  work  and  do.     It  would  be  a  promising  token  among  our 
communicants  and  others,  if  they  were  all  coming  to  Christ  and  his 
covenant,  to  get  their  broken  arms  set,  and  strengthened  for  work, 
by  the  grace  of  the  covenant.     "  But  of  him  are  ye  in  Christ  Jesus, 
who  of  God  is  made  urito  us  wisdom,  righteousness,  sanctification, 
and  redemption."     Let  us  now  attend, 

II.  To  the  benefits  secured  to  us  in  this  conveyance,  even  the 
sura  of  the  benefits  of  the  covenant  of  grace. 

These  are  of  two  sorts  :  First,  the  principal  benefit,  serving  the 
Lord.  Second,  The  subordinate  benefit,  deliverance  from  our 
enemies. 

First,  The  principal  benefit,  which  stands  here  under  the  notion 
of  the  end,  namely,  serving  the  Lord.  "  That  he  would  grant  unto 
u  s,  that  we  being  delivered  out  of  the  hand  of  our  enemies,  might 
serve  him."  This  is  the  great  thing  promised  in  the  covenant  of 
grace,  even  as  it  was  the  great  thing  required  in  the  covenant  of 
works,  as  the  condition  of  it.  This  is  it  that  was  purchased  by 
Christ,  and  is  promised  to  poor  sinners  who  believe  in  him,  for  his 
sake,  namely,  that  God  will  give  them  to  serve  him.  And  thus  our 
serving  God  is  the  great  benefit  of  the  covenant,  bestowed  on 
believers,  for  Christ's  sake. 

0  that  men  would  learn  this  lesson,  that  any  service  we  do  to 
God,  if  right  service,  it  is  a  benefit  of  the  covenant,  bestowed  on  us, 
for  Christ's  sake.  Then  would  they  learn  that  God  is  not  debtor 
unto  them  for  it,  but  they  are  debtors  to  free  grace  on  that  very 
account.  And  the  more  they  do  for  God,  and  the  better  that  they 
do  it,  they  are  always  the  deeper  in  debt  to  free  grace.  Ephes.  ii. 
8,  9,  10. 

Then  would  they  also  learn,  that  the  only  way  for  a  sinner  to  be 
brought  to  serve  the  Lord,  is  to  embrace  the  covenant  for  that  very 
end  ;  and  that  they  are  not  to  embrace  it  because  they  have  served 
the  Lord,  as  ignorant  and  unhumbled  sinners  are  apt  to  do :  but  to 
embrace  the  covenant,  that  they  may  be  made  to  serve  the  Lord. 
"  Surely,  shall  one  say,  in  the  Lord  have  I  righteousness  and 
strength  ;  even  to  him  shall  men  come." 

This  benefit  of  the  covenant,  that  we  might  serve  him,  imports 
three  things : 


IN  HOLINESS.  35 

;  1.  The  privilege  of  God's  service.  God  is  a  master  of  infinite 
glory  and  power,  so  that  to  be  admitted  into  his  service  is  the 
greatest  privilege.  How  do  men  value  themselves,  in  that  they  are 
of  an  earthly  king's  household,  servants  to  one  who  wears  a  crown  ? 
But  what  a  small  thing  is  that,  in  comparison  of  this,  to  be  the 
fellows  of  angels,  in  being  taken  into  the  service  of  Jehovah  the 
Lord  of  heaven  and  earth.  It  is  a  great  part  of  heaven's  happiness. 
"  For  there  his  servants  sliall  sei've  him."  Man  lost  this  service  by 
his  fall,  but  God,  for  Christ's  sake,  has  granted  to  sinners  to  be 
taken  into  it  again,  and  that  in  a  more  honourable  station  than 
innocent  Adam  had,  that  is,  no  more  as  hired,  but  as  honorary  ser- 
vants. 

2.  Strength  and  ability  for  his  service.  And  I  will  strengthen 
them  in  tlie  Lord,  and  they  shall  walk  up  and  down  in  his  name, 
saith  the  Lord."  Man,  by  his  breach  of  the  first  covenant,  lost  his 
strength  for  serving  the  Lord,  so  that  whosoever  of  you  are  without 
the  covenant,  you  cannot  serve  the  Lord.  "  And  Joshua  said  unto 
the  people,  ye  cannot  serve  the  Lord ;  for  he  is  an  holy  God ; 
he  is  a  jealous  God :  he  will  not  forgive  your  transgressions  nor 
your  sins."  "  He  that  abideth  in  me,  and  I  in  hira,"  saith  Jesus, 
"  the  same  bringeih  forth  much  fruit ;  for  without  me  ye  can  do 
nothing."  Thus  in  the  new  covenant,  there  is  a  promise  of  strength 
for  this  service,  which  is  bestowed  on  all  that  believe,  of  mere  free 
grace  for  the  sake  of  Christ.  "  For  his  grace  is  sufficient  for  us, 
and  his  strength  is  made  perfect  in  weakness." 

3.  Acceptance  of  the  service.  "  Also  the  sons  of  the  stranger 
that  join  themselves  to  the  Lord,  to  serve  him,  and  to  love  the  name 
of  the  Lord,  to  be  his  servants,  every  one  that  keepeth  the  sabbath 
from  polluting  it,  and  taketh  hold  of  my  covenant ;  even  them  will 
1  bring  to  my  holy  mountain,  and  make  them  joyful  in  my  house  of 
prayer :  their  burnt-ofi'erings  and  their  sacrifices  shall  be  accepted 
upon  mine  altar;  for  mine  house  shall  be  called  an  house  of  prayer 
for  all  people."  Whatever  they  do  in  God's  service,  who  are  without 
the  covenant,  it  is,  in  point  of  acceptance,  as  if  it  were  not  done  at  all. 
God  rejects  them  and  their  services  too.  For  they  can  do  nothing  right 
nor  pleasing  in  the  sight  of  God.  For  without  faith  it  is  impos- 
sible to  please  God.  But  the  new  covenant  is  the  ministration 
of  the  spirit,  fitting  the  soul  for  service,  and  has  a  promise  of 
acceptance  of  our  service,  though  it  be  imperfect,  for  Christ's  sake. 

Well  then,  would  ye  be  admitted  into  God's  service,  have  strength 
for  it,  and  acceptance  of  your  services,  look  to  the  covenant  of 
grace  in  Christ  Jesus,  for  these  things.  Embrace  and  rely  on  the 
promise  of  the  covenant  for  all  these  things  by  faith,  which  promise 


36  SERVING  THE  LORD 

is  held  fortli  to  you  iu  the  gospel.  And  they  shall  be  sealed  to  you 
in  the  sacrament,  and  made  forthcoming  to  you,  iu  virtue  of  the 
faithfulness  of  God. 

Concerning  this  covenant  service,  two  things  are  further  to  be  re- 
marked.    First,  the  kind.     Secondly,  the  qualities  of  it. 

1.  The  kind  of  service  to  God,  in  which  sinners  are  instated  by 
the  covenant  of  grace  ;  for  there  is  a  great  difference  of  services. 
Now, 

1.  This  is  not  bond  service,  the  service  of  slaves,  who  work 
their  work  for  fear  of  their  master's  whip.  The  Spirit  of  God  hath 
purposely  abstained  here  from  using  the  very  word  that  signifies 
that  kind  of  service.  It  is  not  serving  God  for  fear  of  hell  and 
revenging  wrath.  That  is  the  first  covenant  service,  indeed,  being 
broken ;  but  not  the  second  covenant  service,  which  is  to  serve  God 
without  fear,  namely  slavish  fear.  The  covenant  of  grace  finds  all 
men  in  the  state  of  bond  service,  and  was  ^contrived  to  bring  us  out 
of  it,  through  Christ's  being  a  bondman  in  our  stead.  "He  made 
himself  of  no  reputation,  and  took  upon  him  the  form  of  a  servant, 
in  our  stead.  Wherefore  we  have  not  received  the  spirit  of  bondage 
again  to  fear,  but  we  have  received  the  spirit  of  adoption,  whereby 
we  cry  Abba,  Father." 

2.  It  is  not  hired  service,  so  much  work  for  so  much  wages.  The 
text  tells  us,  that  the  service  is  so  far  from  being  hired,  that  it  is 
a  free  grace  gift  made  to  sinners  for  Christ's  sake.  "  That  he 
would  grant  unto  us,  that  we  might  serve  him."  It  is  true  there  is 
an  ample  reward  follows  the  service  of  the  saints.  But  both  the 
service  and  reward  are  of  grace  ;  and  the  reward,  properly  and 
strictly  speaking,  is  rather  the  reward  of  the  service  of  their  head 
Christ,  than  of  the  service  of  their  hands.     But, 

3.  It  is  an  honorary  service.  So  the  word  used  by  the  Holy 
Ghost,  in  the  text,  signifies  to  minister,  which  is  an  honorary  kind 
of  service,  such  as  kings  and  priests  had  when  put  into  their  office. 
Thus  Christ  hath  made  his  people  kings  and  priests  unto  God.  They 
are  an  holy  priesthood,  to  off'er  up  spiritual  sacrifices,  acceptable  to 
God,  by  Jesus  Christ.  So  that  this  service,  bestowed  on  sinners 
through  Jesus  Christ,  according  to  the  covenant,  is  their  unspeakable 
advancement,  their  real  happiness,  to  which  they  could  never  have 
been  preferred,  but  by  means  of  the  blood  of  the  covenant.  It  is 
a  post  of  the  greatest  honour  of  which  the  sinner  is  capable.  And 
this  also  is  imported  in  the  phrase,  befoi'e  him,  which  is  an  Old 
Testament  phrase  used  of  those  in  the  courts  of  kings  who  waited 
on  the  king's  person ;  Rev.  xxii.  3,  4. 

This  may  dirtct  you  iu  your  approach  to  the  Lord's  table,  to  lay 


IN  HOLINESS.  37 

liold  on  the  covenant ;  not  to  go  about  to  turn  that  solemn  action 
into  the  making  of  a  bargain  with  God,  that  if  he  will  save  you, 
and  give  you  heaven,  you  will  serve  hira  all  your  life.  Alas  !  poor 
creature,  what  have  you  to  serve  him  with,  that  you  will  pretend  to 
make  such  a  bargain  with  him  ?  But  here  is  a  covenant  of  honor- 
ary service  to  God,  bearing  a  promise  also  of  strength  for  the 
service,  freely  offered  and  exhibited  to  you  in  the  word  of  the  gos- 
pel, under  the  great  seal  of  Heaven.  Believe  it  cordially;  accept  of 
it ;  lay  the  weight  of  your  desired  and  designed  service  to  God  upon 
it ;  and  it  is  a  bargain,  and  shall  be  sealed  by  the  sacrament.  Let 
us  now  attend, 

2c%,  To  the  qualities  of  the  service.     They  are  these  : 

1.  It  is  universal,  which  the  service  of  these  remaining  under  the 
first  covenant  never  is.  "Tlien  shall  I  not  be  ashamed,  when  I 
have  respect  unto  all  thy  commandments."  We  are  to  serve  him  in 
holiness  and  righteousness.  These  answer  to  the  whole  holy  law 
as  a  rule  of  life.  In  holiness,  serving  hira  in  first  table  duties  ;  in 
righteousness,  serving  him  in  second  table  duties.  Both  of  them 
relating  to  the  inward,  as  well  as  the  outward  man,  bearing  a  holy 
and  righteous  frame  of  heart,  as  well  as  holy  and  righteous  actions, 
as  serving  before  him,  that  is,  as  under  his  eye,  sincerely  and 
uprightly.  Here  then  is  the  true  way  to  get  heart  and  life  puri- 
fied ;  to  get  an  irregular  life,  in  a  profession  of  religion,  made 
uniform.  That  grace  is  held  forth  in  the  covenant,  which  you  are 
to  embrace  for  sanctificalion,  as  well  as  justification.  And  it  is  a 
full  covenant  for  that  purpose,  as  for  all  other  purposes  of  sal- 
vation. 

2.  It  is  a  perpetual  and  lasting  service.  The  first  covenant 
required  a  lasting  service,  but  secured  not  man  from  breaking  the 
service.  But  the  second  covenant  secures  the  perpetuity  of  the  ser- 
vice, that  however  fickle  the  believer  is,  yet  he  shall  serve  the  Lord 
all  the  days  of  his  life.  This  imports  two  things:  1.  That  he  shall 
serve  the  Lord  as  long  as  he  lives  in  this  world,  and  shall  never  be 
either  put  away,  nor  break  away  from  the  blessed  service.  The 
covenant  shall  keep  him,  if  he  cannot  keep  it.  "  I  will,"  says  God, 
"  make  an  everlasting  covenant  with  them,  that  I  will  not  turn 
away  from  them,  to  do  them  good ;  but  I  will  put  my  fear  in  their 
hearts,  that  they  shall  not  depart  from  me."  By  this  covenant, 
God  takes  home  sinners  to  his  service,  never  to  part  for  the  terra  of 
life.  Oh !  is  not  this  a  blessed  bargain,  for  one  who  is  groaning 
under  the  weight  of  a  vain,  fickle,  inconstant  heart.  Gome  into  it 
then,  joyfully  and  confidently.  Here  is  heaven's  security  for  the 
keepiug  of  it.     Then  look  to  the  Lord  in  his  covenant  this  day,  and 


38  SERVINO  THE  LORD 

say,  Lord,  into  thine  hands,  stretched  out  in  this  covenant,  I  com- 
mit my  spirit.  2.  It  imports  that  he  shall  serve  the  Lord  for  ever 
and  ever,  in  heaven,  after  death.  To  confine  the  great  benefit  of 
the  covenant  to  this  short  life  here,  is  unsuitable  to  the  everlasting 
covenant.  Nay,  this  benefit  contains  heaven's  happiness.  For  in 
heaven  his  servants  shall  serve  him ;  and  they  shall  see  his  face ; 
and  his  name  shall  be  in  their  foreheads.  There  it  is  that  it  hath 
its  full  accomplishment.  The  covenant  finds  the  designed  servants 
dead  in  sin,  and  therefore  it  must  give  them  life  before  they  can 
serve ;  and  that  life  is  eternal  life,  never  to  expire,  from  the 
moment  it  is  given.  "  He  that  believeth  on  the  Son  hath  everlast- 
ing life;"  and  they  shall  serve  hira  all  the  days  of  that  life,  given 
lliem  on  purpose  for  the  service,  that  is,  through  the  ages  of 
eternity. 

Comfort  yourselves,  0  believers,  with  this,  ye  that  are  depressed 
with  a  sense  of  your  unfitness  for  the  service  of  God  here,  and  your 
mismanagement  in  it.  Behold,  the  day  of  your  redemption  ap- 
proacheth,  in  which  you  shall  be  able  to  serve  God,  according  to 
your  desire,  in  the  mount  of  glory.     We  are  now  to  consider. 

Secondly,  The  subordinate  benefit,  namely,  deliverance  from  our 
enemies,  which  stands  here  as  a  mean  in  order  to  the  end,  namely, 
God's  service.  "  That  we  being  delivered  out  of  the  hand  of  our 
enemies,  might  serve  him."  It  is  evident  from  the  structure  of  the 
words,  both  in  our  version,  and  in  the  original  especially,  that  the 
service  is  the  end  of  the  deliverance,  and  the  deliverance  the  means 
of  the  service.  As  God  said  of  Israel  in  Egypt,  so  doth  he  say  of 
all  his  people ;  "  Let  my  son  go,  that  he  may  serve  me."  To  this 
event  our  text  alludes.  They  cannot  serve  the  Lord  till  once  they 
be  delivered.  How  should  they  do  it,  while  they  are  lying  among 
the  feet  of  their  enemies.  The  service,  the  enemies,  and  the  deliver- 
ance, are  all  spiritual ;  therefore  they  must  have  a  spiritual  deliver- 
ance, before  they  can  perform  the  spiritual  service.  And  if  it  is  the 
design  of  the  covenant,  that  they  shall  work  and  serve  the  Lord,  it 
must  secure  and  convey  to  th«m  salvation  or  deliverance,  in  the  first 
place ;  so  this  is  a  benefit  of  the  covenant,  as  well  as  the  others  are. 

This  may  also  direct  you  in  your  managtmeut  of  this  solemn  oc- 
casion of  grace  and  salvation. 

1.  If  ever  you  would  be  capable  to  serve  the  Lord,  seek  that  you 
may  be  delivered  from  your  spiritual  enemies,  taken  out  of  their 
hands  who  keep  you  in  bondage.  While  you  are  in  bondage  to  them, 
in  respect  of  your  state,  it  is  not  possible  you  can  serve  the  Lord, 
"  No  man  can  serve  two  masters." 

2.  If  ever  you  would  obtain  that  deliverance  from  your  spiritual 


IK  HOLINESS,  39 

enemies,  seek  it  in  the  covenant,  in  a  way  of  believing.  There  it  is 
offered  and  exhibited  to  you  ;  and  whosoever  does  by  faith  lay  hold 
on  this  covenant  shall  have  it.  So  the  Son  makes  thera  free,  who 
believe  on  him,  as  their  deliverer,  from  all  their  enemies.  "  And  if 
the  Son  make  you  free,  you  shall  be  free  indeed." 

Lastly,  Seek  that  deliverance,  that  you  may  serve  the  Lord. 
Many  seek  deliverance  by  Christ,  that  they  may  live  at  ease  in  the 
embraces  of  their  lusts,  free  from  the  fear  of  hell.  But  none  shall 
ever  find  it  so,  for  they  seek  it  not  in  the  right  way,  and  for  the 
right  end. 


Galashiels,  Sunday  Afternoon,  September  22,  1723. 

[The  same  subject  continued.] 

SERMON  IV. 

Luke  i.  74,  75, 

That  he  would  grant  unto  us,  that  ive  being  delivered  out  of  the  hands  of 
our  enemies,  might  serve  him.  without  fear,  in  holiness  and  righteous- 
ness before  him  all  the  days  of  our  life. 

Doctrine — That  the  covenant  deliverance  is  freely  bestowed  on 
God's  covenant  people,  that  they  may  serve  him,  after  the  manner  of 
the  covenant,  namely  the  new  covenant.     Here  I  shall  take  notice, 

I.  Of  the  covenant  deliverance  bestowed. 

II.  Of  the  covenant  service,  which  is  the  design  of  this  deliver- 
ance. 

III.  Of  the  necessary  connection  betwixt  the  covenant  deliverance? 
and  covenant  service. 

I.  The  covenant  deliverance  bestowed.  We  being  delivered  out 
of  the  hands  of  our  enemies.     I  shall  reduce  these  to  four. 

1.  They  are  delivered  from  the  law.  Not  from  the  law  as  a  rule 
of  life  in  the  hand  of  a  Mediator,  standing  in  the  covenant  of  grace  ; 
but  from  the  law  as  a  covenant,  under  which  all  men  are,  in  their 
natural  state.  The  scripture  is  most  express  on  this.  Rom.  vi.  14, 
15.  They  are  delivered  from  the  curse  of  it.  It  cannot  reach 
them.  "  Christ  hath  redeemed  us  from  the  curse  of  the  law,  being 
made  a  curse  for  us."     From  the  commanding  power  of  it.     For  how 


40  SERVTNO  THE  LORD 

can  it  have  a  commanding  power  over  tliera  who  are  not  under  it  ? 
It  was  the  fault  of  the  Gralatians,  that  some  of  them  desired 
to  be  under  it.  Did  they  desire,  think  you,  to  be  under  the 
curse  of  it  ?  No,  surely,  but  under  the  commanding  power  of  it. 
Not  observing,  that  if  once  they  were  under  the  commanding  power 
of  it,  they  should  be  under  the  cursing  power  of  it  also  ;  since  whom 
the  law  cannot  command,  it  can,  and  certainly  will  curse,  in  case  of 
transgression,  Gal.  iii.  10,  compared  with  Rom.  iii.  19.  But  they 
are  as  completely  freed  from  it,  as  death  can  make  a  wife  free  from 
her  husband.  "  They  are  become  dead  to  the  law  by  the  body  of 
Christ,  that  they  should  be  married  to  another,  even  to  him  who  is 
raised  from  the  dead,  that  we  should  bring  forth  fruit  unto  God." 

2.  From  sin.  Though  they  are  not  free  from  the  indwelling  of  it 
iu  this  life,  and  molestation  by  it,  yet  they  are  freed  from  its  guilt 
of  eternal  wrath,  by  which  it  binds  over  the  sinner  to  the  revenging 
wrath  of  God.  "  There  is  therefore  now  no  condemnatian  to  them 
that  are  in  Christ  Jesus."  The  covenant  secures  believers  as  much 
against  that  recurring  on  them,  as  God's  oath  secures  the  world 
from  a  second  deluge.  "  For  this  is  as  the  waters  of  Noah  unto  me ; 
for  as  I  have  sworn  that  the  waters  of  Noah  should  no  more  go  over 
the  earth  ;  so  have  I  sworn  that  I  should  not  be  wroth  with  thee, 
nor  rebuke  thee."  They  are  freed  also  from  the  dominion  of  sin. 
"  Sin  shall  not  have  dominion  over  you,  for  you  are  not  under  the 
law,  but  under  grace."  The  bond  by  which  it  held  the  sinner,  was 
strong  as  death  ;  but  it  is  broken  so  as  never  to  be  joined  again. 
"  For  the  law  of  the  spirit  of  life  in  Christ  Jesus,  hath  made  me 
free  from  the  law  of  sin  and  death." 

3.  From  death.  Though  they  are  not  free  from  that  shadow  of 
death,  that  nominal  death,  which  serves  to  separate  the  believer's 
soul  from  his  body  for  a  while,  therefore  called  the  death  of  the 
body;  yet  they  are  delivered  from  the  real  death  of  the  man,  even 
that  terrible  thing  wrapt  up  in  the  threatening  of  the  covenant  of 
works,  which  was  the  penalty  of  it.  "  In  the  day  thou  eatest 
thereof,  thou  shalt  surely  die."  Even  stinged  death,  universal 
death,  which  alone  is  death,  properly  so  called;  as  appears  in  the 
case  of  the  body,  in  which  though  a  leg  or  arm,  a  member  or  mem- 
bers, be  mortified  as  dead  as  if  they  were  iu  the  grave ;  yet  none 
will  reckon  the  body  a  dead  corpse,  but  still  a  living  body,  till  such 
time  as  death  hath  gone  over  the  whole  of  it.  Now  as  soon  as  man 
sinned  by  breaking  the  covenant  of  works,  death's  sting  pierced 
him  to  the  very  soul;  cold  death  went  over  the  whole  man,  and  left 
him  speechless,  motionless,  and  lifeless,  as  to  any  thing  truly  good. 
And  the  whole  creation  could  not  raise  the  dead  man  to  life  again. 


IX  HOLINESS.  41 

Now  from  this  death  God's  covenant  people  are  delivered.  "  Even 
when  we  were  dead  in  sins,  he  hath  quickened  us  together  with  Christ." 
This  is  in  virtue  of  their  union  with  Christ.  They  may  now  sing, 
"  0  death  where  is  thy  sting  ?  0  grave  where  is  thy  victory  ?  The 
sting  of  death  is  sin  :  and  the  strength  of  sin  is  the  law.  But 
thanks  be  to  God,  who  giveth  us  the  victory,  through  our  Lord 
Christ."  And  it  shall  never,  never  from  the  moment  of  their  enter- 
ing into  the  covenant,  come  back  upon  them  again.  Our  Lord's 
words  are.  Verily,  verily,  I  say  unto  you,  if  a  man  keep  my  saying, 
he  shall  never  see  death. 

Lastly,  From  Satan,  though  not  from  molestation  by  him  in  this 
life ;  yet  from  under  his  power  and  dominion.  God  sends  the  gos- 
pel "  to  open  their  eyes,  and  to  turn  them  from  darkness  to  light, 
and  from  the  power  of  Satan  unto  God,  that  they  may  receive  for- 
giveness of  sins,  and  inheritance  among  them  that  are  sanctified  by 
faith  that  is  in  Christ  Jesus."  When  man  sinned,  and  death  seized 
him,  he  was  Satan's  lawful  captive  ;  Is.  xlix.  24.  Satan  having 
the  power  of  death  as  executioner,  Jesus  our  Saviour,  took  our  na- 
ture, "that  through  death  he  might  destroy  him  that  had  the  power 
of  death,  that  is,  the  devil."  But  now  believers  are  delivered  from 
him,  "  for  God  hath  delivered  them  from  the  power  of  darkness,  and 
translated  them  into  the  kingdom  of  his  dear  Son."  Satan  shall 
never  recover  his  power  over  them,  "  for  the  God  of  peace  shall 
bruise  him  under  their  feet  shortly."  And  so  shall  all  the  other 
parts  of  the  delivery  not  yet  bestowed  on  them,  be  shortly  given 
them,  and  so  the  deliverance  be  completed.     Let  us  now, 

II.  Take  notice  of  the  covenant  service,  which  is  the  design  of 
this  deliverance;  and  not  only  the  design  of  the  deliverance,  but  also 
of  the  deliverer ;  which,  therefore,  shall  certainly  take  effect  in  the 
delivered.  I  take  it  up  in  three  things,  according  to  the  texi. 
They  shall  serve  the  Lord, 

1.  As  sons  serving  their  Father.  "And  they  shall  be  mine, 
saith  the  Lord  of  hosts,  in  that  day  when  I  make  up  my  jewels ; 
and  I  will  spare  them,  as  a  man  spareth  his  own  son  who  serveth 
him."  Possibly  they  made  a  fashion  of  serving  the  Lord,  before 
they  came  into  a  covenant  of  grace.  But  then  their  service  was 
after  the  manner  of  the  covenant  which  they  were  under.  They 
served  him  as  bond  servants.  Slavish  fear  of  hell,  and  servile  hope 
of  heaven,  being  the  great  springs  of  their  obedience.  But  now 
they  will  serve  him,  in  a  new  manner,  even  in  "  newness  of  spirit, 
and  not  in  the  oldness  of  the  letter."  Love  to  their  Father  will  set 
them  to  work.  The  whole  with  them  is  "  a  work  and  labour  of 
lovo."     Gratitude   to  their  God  and  Redeemer,  will  bind  them  to 


42  SERVING  THE  LORD 

it.  They  ever  cry,  "  what  shall  we  reuder  to  the  Lord  for  all  his 
benefits  towards  us.  They  are  a  chosen  generation,  a  royal  priest- 
hood, an  holy  nation,  a  peculiar  people,  that  they  should  shew  forth 
the  praises  of  him  who  hath  called  them  out  of  darkness  into  his 
Djarvellous  light."  Meanwhile,  they  depend  entirely  on  Christ's 
work  and  service,  not  on  their  own,  for  the  whole  of  their  salvation. 
*'  For  we,"  say  they,  "  are  the  circumcision,  which  worship  God  in 
the  spirit,  and  rejoice  in  Christ  Jesus,  and  have  no  confidence  in  the 
flesh." 

2.  They  shall  serve  him  universally,  "  Then  shall  I  not  be 
ashamed,  when  I  have  respect  to  all  thy  commandments."  The  old 
covenant  servants  are  ever  partial  in  the  law.  There  is  not  one  of 
them  but  discovers  what  spirit  they  are  of,  by  baulking  some  of  its 
commandments.  Wherefore,  if  our  obedience  be  not  more  extensive 
than  theirs,  we  will  never  see  heaven.  "  For  except  our  righteous- 
ness shall  exceed  the  righteousness  of  the  Scribes  and  Pharisees,  we 
shall  in  no  case  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven."  But  the  new 
covenant  servants  "  esteem  all  God's  precepts  concerning  all  things 
to  be  right."  Their  religion  will  neither  lack  piety  nor  charity. 
They  will  be  holy  towards  God,  righteous  toward  their  neighbour, 
and  sober  with  respect  to  themselves.  They  will  serve  the  Lord 
internally  and  externally.  They  desire  to  know,  and  to  comply 
with  all  God's  will,  that,  like  David  the  sou  of  Jesse,  they  may 
fulfil  all  his  will. 

3.  They  will  serve  him  constantly.  "  I  have  inclined  mine  heart 
to  perform  thy  statutes  alway,  even  unto  the  end."  They  shall 
never  totally  nor  finally  fall  away  from  their  service.  The  old 
covenant  servants  are  still  breaking  away  from  their  service,  for 
the  spirit  of  old  Adam,  a  spirit  of  apostacy,  reigns  in  them,  and 
"  leads  them  to  draw  back  to  perdition."  But  new  covenant  ser- 
vants are  not  of  this  kind.  (Greek,)  we  are  not  of  defection,  but 
of  faith,  even  "  of  them  that  believe  to  the  saving  of  the  soul,"  Heb. 
X.  39. 

The  new  covenant  servants  once  entered  home  to  their  service, 
never  change  masters  again,  but  will  hold  by  their  new  master 
while  they  live.  And  the  reason  of  the  diflference  is,  the  former  are 
bond  servants,  the  latter  filial  s^ervants.  '*  Now  the  servant  abideth 
not  in  the  house  for  ever ;  but  the  son  abideth  ever."  Now  remem- 
ber he  that  shall  endure  to  the  end,  the  same  shall  be  saved.  Let 
us, 

III.  Show  the  necessary  connection  betwixt  the  covenant  deliver- 
ance and  covenant  service. 

1.  None  can  serve  the  Lord  in  this  right  manner,  till  once  in  the 


IX  HOLINESS.  43 

first  place,  they  are  delivered  as  said  is,  no  more  tlian  a  dead  corpse 
can  rise  and  serve  you.  Eph.  ii.  1 — 10.  You  will  not,  I  think, 
question  the  truth  of  this,  with  respect  to  the  dominion  of  sin, 
death,  and  tlie  devil ;  but  will  readily  grant  there  can  be  no  true 
serving  of  God,  till  once  a  soul  is  delivered  from  these.  But  as  to 
the  soul's  deliverance  from  the  law  and  sin's  guilt  of  eternal  wrath, 
perhaps  you  observe  not  the  necessity  of  being  delivered  from  them, 
before  we  can  thus  serve  the  Lord.  But  truly,  according  to  the 
scriptures,  these  four  things,  are  four  links  of  one  chain,  each  hold- 
ing fast  another,  and  all  together,  holding  fast  the  poor  sinner,  that 
he  cannot  serve  the  Lord. 

"Wherein  lies  the  power  of  the  devil  over  a  man  ?  It  lies  in 
death.  He  hath  the  power  of  death,  Heb.  ii.  14,  and  by  it  he  holds 
the  man  fast.  So  there  is  no  getting  out  of  the  devil's  hold  without 
loosing  the  bands  of  death,  and  delivering  from  its  power. 

In  what  lies  the  sting  and  strength  of  death  ?  It  lies  in  sin. 
"  The  sting  of  death  is  sin."  In  the  guilt  of  sin  primarily,  by  which 
the  soul  is  bound  over  to  death.  So  there  is  no  getting  out  of 
death's  chains,  without  loosing  the  band  of  sin,  namely  its  guilt  of 
eternal  wrath. 

Now  in  what  lies  the  strength  of  sin  ?  It  lies  in  the  law.  "  The 
sting  of  death  is  sin,  and  the  strength  of  sin  is  the  law."  By  this 
the  guilt  of  eternal  wrath  is  fixed  on  the  sinner,  that  moment  he 
transgresses  its  commandments.  So  there  is  no  getting  out  of  the 
chains  of  sin,  without  loosing  the  band  of  the  law  from  off  the  sin- 
ner. 

So  that  while  a  poor  sinner  is  under  the  law,  namely  as  a  cove- 
nant he  is  under  sin ;  while  under  sin,  he  is  under  death  ;  while 
under  death,  he  is  under  the  power  of  the  devil :  So  he  cannot 
serve  the  Lord,  while  under  Uie  law  as  a  covenant,  Romans  vii. 
5,6. 

2.  The  soul  being  once  thus  delivered,  will  certainly  serve  the 
Lord,  "in  holiness  and  righteousness  before  him."  The  deliverance 
will  infallibly  produce  the  service ;  and  that  both  from  the  design 
of  God,  which  cannot  misgive ;  he  delivering  them  for  that  very 
end ;  as  also  from  the  nature  of  the  thing,  whereby  the  bands  of 
death  are  removed,  and  a  new  life  given,  which  must  exert  itself  in 
actions  agreeable  to  the  nature  of  it. 

Use  1.  The  sanctificatiou  of  sinners  is  the  chief  subordinate  end 
of  the  covenant  of  grace,  or  of  the  gospel,  standing  next  to  the 
glory  of  God.  And  faith,  justification,  deliverance  from  the  law, 
sin,  death,  and  the  devil,  are  subordinated  to  sanctificatiou,  as  means 
for  reaching  that  end.     Therefore  the  covenaut  hath  its  full  perfec- 

YOL.  lY.  D 


44  PRIVILEGE  OF  KNOWING 

tion,  or  accomplishment  in  heaven,  when  the  man  is  so  sanctified  as 
to  serve  God  perfectly,  and  work  perfectly  good  works.  "Where- 
fore, invert  not  the  order  of  God's  covenant,  in  seeking  deliverance 
by  your  works.  But  make  use  of  God's  covenant,  and  the  cove- 
nant daily,  for  the  deliverance,  that  you  may  be  holy,  and  may 
perform  good  works. 

Use  2.  They  in  whom  the  spirit  of  legalism,  hypocrisy,  and  apos- 
tacy  reigns,  have  no  part  nor  lot  in  this  matter. 

Lastly,  As  ever  you  would  evidence  yourselves  God's  covenant 
people,  partakers  of  this  deliverance,  serve  no  more  the  devil,  and 
your  own  lusts.  But  serve  the  Lord  as  his  children,  universally, 
and  constantly,  "  without  fear,  in  holiness  and  righteousness  before 
him,  all  the  days  of  your  life."     Amen. 


Ettncky  Sabbath  Afternoon. 

THE    LEADING    PRIVILEGE    OF  THEM    THAT    KNOW    THE    JOYFUL 

SOUND. 

SERMON.  V. 

PsAiiJvi  Ixxxix.  15, 

They  shall  walk,  0  Lord,  in  the  light  of  thy  countenance. 

Here  begins  the  account  of  the  happiness  of  those  that  know  the 
joyful  sound  of  the  gospel.  They  have  many  special  privileges, 
and  this  is  the  leading  one,  "  They  shall  walk,  0  Lord,  in  the  light 
of  thy  countenance." 

Here  is  first  their  motion  at  the  joyful  sound.  The  gospel  is  a 
sound  for  motion  and  and  action.  They  that  know  it  not  sit  still, 
no  moving  heaven-wards  by  them :  but  they  that  know  it  are 
quickened  by  it,  they  are  set  on  a  march,  and  go  forward.  They 
will  walk  on,  and  walk  vigorously,  as  the  word  imports,  through 
the  several  steps  in  the  wilderness  journey.  "We  have  next  the 
advantage  which  they  may  have  from  the  joyful  sound  for  their 
walking.  "  They  shall  walk  in  the  light  of  thy  countenance." 
Light  is  a  great  help  to  walking  on  a  journey.  It  is  neither  safe 
nor  comfortable  to  walk  in  the  dark.  They  shall  walk  in  the  light 
of  the  Lord's  countenance,  or  face,  which  is  more  lightsome  to  those 
that  know  it,  than  the  united  light  of  sun,  moon,  and  stars.     They 


THE  JOYFUL  SOUND.  45 

shall  have  the  sunny  side  of  the  brae,  of  all  the  rest  of  the  world. 
Their  way  shall  be  a  Goshen  for  light,  while  others  sit  in  Egyptian 
darkness. 

The  Psalmist's  directing  his  speech  to  God  here,  shows  his  firm 
confidence  as  to  the  thing,  and  how  much  his  own  heart  was  set  upon 
enjoying  that  privilege. 

Doctrine. — As  men  know  and  believe  the  joyful  sound  of  the 
gospel,  so  shall  they  walk  on  their  way  heavenward,  in  the  light 
of  the  Lord's  countenance.     In  prosecuting  this,  I  shall, 

I.  Consider  the  duty  to  which  the  joyful  sound  known  and 
believed,  eftectually  excites  men.     They  shall  walk. 

II.  I  shall  consider  the  privilege  which  they  that  know  the 
joyful  sound,  shall  thereby  have,  in  their  walk  heavenwards.  I  am 
then, 

I.  To  consider  the  duty  to  which  the  joyful  sound  known  and 
believed,  elfectually  excites  men.     They  shall  walk. 

1.  They  shall  not  sit  still,  doing  nothing  to  purpose  for  God  and 
their  immortal  souls,  like  the  rest  of  the  world,  dead  in  trespasses 
and  sins.  The  sound  of  the  gospel  is  the  most  powerful  of  all 
alarms.  The  law  may  terrify  a  sinner  ;  yea  it  may  toss  a  dead  soul, 
as  a  dead  corpse  is  tossed  hither  and  thither  in  the  earth  by  an 
earthquake,  but  can  never  put  life  into  it.  It  is  not  a  mean 
appointed  by  God  for  that  end.  It  is  the  ministration  of  death  and 
condemnation,  not  of  life,  2  Cor.  v.  7 — 8.  But  the  joyful  sound 
of  the  gospel,  quickens  the  dead  sinner  to  a  spiritual  life.  "  The 
dead  shall  hear  the  voice  of  the  Son  of  God,  and  they  that  hear 
shall  live."  And  this  life  will  exert  itself  in  its  proper  actions, 
namely,  in  holy  obedience.  So  they  have  not  known  the  joyful 
sound,  who  are  not  excited  to  walk  on  the  way  heavenward.  The 
unholy  are  without  doubt  unbelievers. 

2.  They  shall  not  go  back  to  their  former  lusts  in  their  ignorance. 
Apostates  were  never  true  believers.  "  If  any  man  draw  back," 
says  God,  "  my  soul  shall  have  no  pleasure  in  him."  "  But,"  says 
Paul,  "  we  are  not  of  them  that  draw  back  to  perdition,  but  of  them 
that  believe,  to  the  saving  of  the  soul."  It  was  those  among  the 
Israelites,  that  believed  not,  that  were  for  making  a  captain,  and 
going  back  to  Egypt.  They  looked  on  the  promise  of  Canaan,  as 
a  thing  that  would  not  hold,  and  therefore  they  would  see  to 
themselves  otherwise.  Thus  do  many  bewray  their  unbelief  of  the 
gospel,  by  a  greedy  return  to  the  world  and  tlieir  lusts  after  a  com- 
mnnion,  looking  upon  tlie  world  as  a  tiling  certaiu,  and  what  is  iu 
the  promise  as  a  thing  uncertain  and  distant. 

3.  They  shall  hold  forward  in  their  way  iu  spite  of  all  opposition, 

i>2 


46  PRIVILEGE  OF  KNOWING 

and  not  give  over  till  they  get  to  tlie  journey's  end,  whatever 
weather  blow.  "  The  righteous  also,  shall  hold  on  his  way  ;  and  he 
that  hath  clean  hands  shall  wax  stronger  and  stronT;er."  The  faith 
of  the  gospel  is  the  spring  of  perseverance,  according  to  that  saying, 
"  the  just  shall  live  by  his  faith  ;"  aud  unbelief  is  the  great  cause 
of  apostacy.  It  is  "  the  evil  heart  of  unbelief  that  leads  men  to 
depart  from  the  living  God."  It  was  the  unbelief  of  the  spies,  and 
of  those  who  credited  them,  that  made  their  carcases  fall  in  the 
wilderness;  while  Caleb  and  Joshua  believed  the  joyful  sound  of 
the  promise,  and  got  safe  to  Canaan,  Faith  makes  a  man  righteous 
in  the  sight  of  Grod,  and  so  frees  him  of  the  burden  of  the  curse,  and 
guilt  of  eternal  wrath.  And  sooner  shall  a  prisoner  laden  with 
irons,  make  his  way  up  a  steep  hill,  and  not  fall  by  the  way,  than 
an  unjustified  sinner  setting  out  in  God's  way,  shall  hold  on. 
Faith  listening  to  the  joyful  sound,  inspires  the  soul  with  new 
vigour.  "  Tliey  that  wait  upon  the  Lord  shall  renew  their  strength  ; 
they  shall  mount  up  with  wings  as  eagles ;  they  shall  run  and  not 
be  weary,  and  they  shall  walk  and  not  faint," 

Lastly,  They  shall  walk  on  in  the  sight  of  the  Lord,  as  he  who 
walketh  in  the  light,  walks  in  the  sight  of  the  sun,  "  Walk  before 
me,"  said  God  unto  Abram,  "and  be  thou  perfect."  Faith  believ- 
ing the  gospel,  calls  the  name  of  the  Lord,  speaking  to  the  sinner, 
"  Thou,  God,  seest  me  ;"  as  Hagar  did  in  another  case,  Gen.  xvi.  13. 
They  will  walk  before  him  as  under  his  eye,  considering  him  as  the 
witness  to  all  their  actions,  and  who  will  be  their  judge.  While 
unbelievers  forget  him,  and  have  little  or  no  regard  to  his  all-seeing 
eye,  and  all-hearing  ear.     We  now  proceed, 

:  II.  To  consider  the  privileges  which  they  that  know  and  believe 
the  joyful  sound,  shall  thereby  have  in  their  walk  heaven-wards  ; 
"They  shall  walk,  0  Lord,  in  the  light  of  thy  countenance." 

1.  They  shall  be  ever  in  a  state  of  favour,  peace,  and  reconcilia- 
tion with  God.  "  Being  justified  by  faith,  we  have  peace  with  God, 
through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ."  God  is  no  more  their  enemy,  but 
they  are  in  inviolable  friendship  with  him.  The  darkness  of  a 
natural  state  is  over  with  them,  and  shall  never  return.  The  true 
light  is  come,  the  sun  of  righteousness  is  risen  on  them,  in  the  joy- 
ful sound  known  and  believed,  and  shall  never  go  down  on  them 
again.  "  For  ye  were  sometimes  darkness,  but  now  are  ye  light  in 
the  Lord;  walk  as  children  of  the  light." 

2.  No  cloud  of  revenging  wrath  shall  ever  gather  above  their 
Iieads  any  more,  no  curse  of  the  law,  no  guilt  of  eternal  wrath. 
Such  a  cloud  would  extinguish  the  light  of  the  Lord's  countenance, 
for  the  time  it  staid,  and  reduce  them,  for  the  time,  to  the  state  of 


THE  JOYFUL  SOUND.  47 

enmity  and  wrath,  in  which  they  were,  before  they  knew  the  joyful 
Bound.  The  joytul  sound  of  the  everlasting  covenant,  secures  them 
for  ever,  against  all  such  clouds  returning  after  the  rain  of  reveng- 
ing wrath,  poured  out  on  Christ,  in  their  room  and  stead,  "  For 
this  is  as  the  waters  of  Noah  unto  me ;  saith  the  Lord  :  for  as  I 
have  sworn  that  the  waters  of  Noah  should  no  more  go  over  the 
earth ;  so  have  I  sworn  that  I  would  not  be  wroth  with  thee,  nor 
rebuke  thee." 

3.  Wliatever  cloud  may  gather  above  their  head  in  their  way 
heavenward,  it  shall  never  be  so  thick,  but  the  light  of  the  Lord's 
countenance  shall  shine  through  it,  Psal.  Ixxxix.  31 — 34.  Though 
God  will  never  resume  the  face  of  a  wrathful  revenging  judge 
against  them,  yet  he  may  be  an  angry  Father,  and  they  may  be 
under  clouds  of  fatherly  anger.  But  in  the  blackest  of  all  these, 
there  are  rays  of  love  and  favour  to  be  seen.  "  For  whom  the 
Lord  loveth  he  chasteneth,  and  scourgeth  every  sou  whom  he  re- 
ceiveth.  As  many,"  saith  he,  "  as  I  love,  I  rebuke  and  chasten." 
The  sharpest  arrows  shot  against  them,  shall  be  winged  with  love  ; 
and  their  bitterest  potions  shall  be  medicinal.  Though  the  light 
of  the  Lord's  couutenance  do  not  always  shine  alike  full  upon  them, 
it  shall  never,  iu  their  darkest  hours,  suffer  a  total  eclipse. 

4.  They  shall  be  directed  in  their  way.  "  I  will  instruct  thee, 
and  teach  thee  in  the  way  which  thou  shalt  go  :  I  will  guide  thee 
with  mine  eye."  They  walk  through  a  wilderness,  where  ofttimes 
it  is  hard  to  know  the  right  way,  where  there  are  many  to  lead 
them  out  of  the  way.  But  the  Lord  will  be  eyes  to  them  iu  the 
wilderness.  Listening  to  the  joyful  sound,  they  shall  hear  a  voice 
behind  them,  saying,  "  This  is  the  way,  walk  ye  in  it ;  when  ye  turn 
to  the  right  hand,  and  when  ye  turn  to  the  left."  The  way  through 
the  world  is  so  filled  with  stumbling  blocks,  that  they  who  have  not 
this  light,  cannot  escape  to  fall  over  them  and  perish.  But  they 
shall  walk  in  the  light  and  be  directed  in  their  way.  "  For  this 
God  is  our  God  for  ever  and  ever;  he  will  be  our  guide  even  unto 
death." 

5.  They  shall  be  strengthened  in  their  way,  for  this  light  is  the 
light  of  life.  Solomon  observes,  "  that  in  the  light  of  the  king's 
countenance  is  life,  and  his  favour  is  as  a  cloud  of  the  latter  rain." 
How  much  more  in  the  light  of  the  Lord's  countenance,  is  there  life 
and  refreshment.  The  joyful  sound  of  the  gospel,  known  and  be- 
lieved, brings  a  strengthening  light  with  it.  "  They  that  wait  upon 
the  Lord,  shall  renew  their  strength,  they  shall  mount  up  with 
wings  as  eagles,  they  shall  run  and  not  be  weary,  and  they  shall 
walk  and  not  faint."     Many  a  time  hath  the  child  of  God,  by  this 


46  PRIVILKGK  OF  KNOWING 

means,  out  of  weakness  been  made  strong ;  and  upon  the  tasting  of 
the  sweetness  of  the  word  of  promise,  been  made  to  say  as  Jonathan, 
in  another  case,  "  See,  I  pray  you,  how  mine  eyes  have  been  en- 
lightened, because  I  tasted  a  little  of  this  honey." 

Lastly,  They  shall  be  cheered  and  comforted  in  their  way.  Solo- 
mon tells  us,  "  Truly  the  light  is  sweet,  and  a  pleasant  thing  it  is 
for  the  eyes  to  behold  the  sun."  But  no  such  sweetness,  no  such 
comfort  in  any  light,  as  in  the  light  of  the  Lord's  countenance  lifted 
tipon  a  soul.  David  witnesseth  it  from  his  experience.  "  There  be 
many  that  say,  who  will  shew  us  any  good  ?  Lord,  lift  thou  up  tlie 
light  of  thy  countenance  upon  us.  Thou  hast  put  gladness  in  my 
heart,  more  than  in  the  time  that  their  corn  and  their  wine  in- 
creased. None  can  keep  the  way  heavenward,  but  they  will  meet 
with  many  things  from  within  and  from  without,  tending  to  their 
discouragement.  But  God  has  secured  their  comfort  in  the  way  of 
believing,  and  the  faith  of  the  gospel  will  carry  them  comfortably 
through  under  the  heaviest  burdens,  Heb.  xi. 

Use  I.  Of  information.     Hence  we  may  learn, 

1.  Whence  it  is  that  many  communicants  are  nothing  bettered  by 
gospel  ordinances,  but  even  go  away  as  they  come,  a  prey  to  their 
lusts  and  an  evil  world.  They  sit  down  to  the  feast,  but  they  rise 
not  up  to  the  journey.  They  eat,  but  they  are  not  refreshed,  nor 
strengthened  to  their  proper  work  after  a  communion.  Why  ? 
Alas  !  they  never  get  into  the  saving  knowledge  of  the  joyful  sound. 
They  are  ever  learning,  but  they  never  come  to  the  knowledge  of 
the  truth.  They  hear  it,  but  they  do  not  believe  it.  They  believe 
it  not  with  application  to  themselves.  Hence  it  hath  no  quickening, 
nor  sanctifying  influence  on  them.  They  go  away  morally  serious, 
to  ply  their  duty,  and  to  reform  their  life.  But  not  having  the 
faith  of  the  promises  of  the  gospel,  the  only  channel  of  spiritual  life 
and  strength,  they  are  like  a  soldier  going  to  the  battle  without  his 
weapons,  who  presently  gives  back.  Take  heed  then,  brethren, 
"  lest  there  be  in  any  of  you  an  evil  heart  of  unbelief,  in  departing 
from  the  living  God." 

2.  Whence  it  is  that  many  of  the  saints  are  so  weak,  and  com- 
fortless in  their  way  heavenward,  walking  so  much  in  the  dark.  It 
is  all  owing  to  the  small  measure  of  their  faith  of  the  joyful  sound. 
Whatever  be  the  hard  pieces  of  work  put  into  the  hand  of  any  of  the 
Lord's  people,  whatever  be  their  temptations,  trials,  and  afflictions, 
there  is  as  much  in  the  joyful  sound,  as  if  it  were  plentifully  brought 
into  the  soul  by  a  lively  faith,  would  make  them  go  through  all 
these,  like  a  giant  refreshed  with  wine.  And  the  Lord  said,  "  If  ye 
had  faith  as  a  grain  of  mustard  seed,  ye  might  say  unto  this  syca- 


THE  JOYFUL  SOUND.  49 

mine  tree,  be  thou  plucked  up  by  the  root,  and  be  thou  planted  in 
the  sea,  and  it  should  obey  you." 

3.  That  the  faith  of  the  gospel  is  the  sovereign  remedy  in  all 
darkness  and  distresses,  in  which  a  person  can  be.  Believing  is  a 
duty  that  can  never  be  out  of  season.  This  is  the  way  to  bring  one 
out  of  darkness  into  the  light.  "  Who  is  among  you  that  feareth 
the  Lord,  that  obeyeth  the  voice  of  his  servant,  that  walketh  in 
darkness,  and  hath  no  light  ?  Let  him  trust  in  the  name  of  the 
Lord,  and  stay  upon  his  God.  The  promises  of  the  gospel  are 
full  of  suitable  help  for  all  diseases  and  distempers ;  and  faith  is  the 
mouth  of  the  soul,  whereby  applying  the  promise  to  one's  self,  the 
nourishment  contained  in  it  is  brought  into  the  soul.  "  The  Lord 
is  my  strength  and  my  shield,  my  heart  trusted  in  him,  and  I  am 
helped  :  therefore  my  heart  greatly  rejoiceth,  and  with  my  song 
will  I  praise  him."  If  then  thou  art  in  desertion,  temptation,  or 
aflfiiction,  go  to  the  promise  and  embrace  it  by  faith. 

4.  Hence  learn  whether  you  have  a  right  to  the  seal  of  the  gospel 
covenant  or  not.  All  Christ's  sheep  have  this  ear  mark.  They 
know  the  joyful  sound.  "  My  sheep,"  says  he,  "  hear  my  voice, 
and  I  know  them,  and  they  follow  me."  They  have  discerned  it  as 
the  voice  of  the  living  God.  The  gospel  is  the  savour  of  life  unto 
them.  They  have  been  let  into  the  kernel  of  it,  while  others  break 
their  teeth  upon  the  shell.  "  For  our  gospel,"  says  Paul,  "  came 
not  unto  you  in  word  only,  but  also  in  power,  and  in  the  Holy  Ghost. 
and  in  much  assurance."  It  has  not  been  always  to  them  a  dry 
channel,  a  dead  letter,  but  the  ministration  of  the  spirit  of  faith  and 
holiness  to  them.  "  Therefore,"  says  the  apostle  Peter,  "  As  new 
born  babes,  desire  the  sincere  milk  of  the  word,  that  ye  may  grow 
thereby :  If  so  be  ye  have  tasted  that  the  Lord  is  gracious."  The 
Lord  has  drawn  aside  the  vail,  and  they  have  seen  the  hidden  beauty 
of  it ;  opened  the  cabinet,  and  discovered  the  treasure  there. 

Again,  they  savour  it  as  the  suitable  nourishment  for  their  souls. 
'*  They  know  it  is  not  a  vain  thing  for  them,  because  it  is  their  life." 
As  living  creatures  have  their  proper  nourishment,  so  one  delights  in 
what  another  cares  not  for.  The  new  creature  is  nourished  by  the 
gospel,  and  it  is  natural,  for  the  saints  had  their  life  by  it.  "  They  have 
been  born  again  of  incorruptible  seed,  by  the  word  of  God  which 
liveth  and  abideth  for  ever."  So  they  have  a  peculiar  savour  of  it 
while  others  regard  it  no  more  than  the  dogs  do  hay. 

Once  more  all  their  hopes  are  in  it.  "  It  is  all  their  salvation  and 
all  their  desire.  They  have  been  beaten  off  from  hopes  in  the  law, 
in  their  own  works,  doings,  sufferings  and  services :  and  have  be- 
taken themselves  to  the  word  of  God's  grace,  as  the  only  anchor  of 


50  VRIVILEGE  OF  KNOWING 

their  souls.  And  all  their  doings  and  sufferings,  are  to  them  in  that 
point,  as  if  they  had  done  just  nothing.  "  Blessed  are  the  poor  in 
spirit,  for  theirs  is  the  kingdom  of  heaven." 
y'  Question. — The  stony  ground  hearers  received  the  word  with  joy. 
How  then  shall  we  distinguish  betwixt  that,  and  the  true  knowledge 
of  the  joyful  sound,  the  genuine  savour  of  the  gospel  of  God's 
grace  ? 

1.  The  true  convert  receives  the  joyful  sound  of  the  gospel,  as 
the  most  joyful  sound  for  him,  overcoming  and  overpowering  all 
others,  and  therefore  rests  his  heart  there.  "  Thy  testimonies  have 
I  taken  as  an  heritage  for  ever ;  for  they  are  the  rejoicing  of  my 
heart."  It  contains  the  one  thing  that  is  to  him  the  maiu  thing, 
and  instead  of  all  other  things.  The  hypocrite  may  receive  it  as  a 
joyful  sound,  but  yet  there  is  still  some  sound  more  joyful  to  him. 
The  bleating  of  sheep,  and  lowing  of  oxen,  is  a  more  joyful  sound 
to  some  ;  the  sound  of  created  comforts,  is  more  taking  with  the 
most  part,  than  all  the  comforts  of  the  gospel.  Christ  may  be 
sweet  to  a  hypocrite,  but  the  mischief  is,  still  some  hue  lust  or  other 
is  sweeter.  So  like  Orpah,  they  leave  him,  not  without  some  affec- 
tion to  him. 

2.  The  convert  gets  his  savour  of  the  gospel,  by  finding  the 
extreme  bitterness  of  sin.  Like  those  who  heard  Peter  and  the  rest 
of  the  apostles,  "  they  have  been  pricked  in  their  heart,  and  made 
to  say,  men  and  brethren,  what  shall  we  do?  Others  come  more 
easily  by  theirs.  Like  the  stony  ground  hearers,  they  at  once  receive 
it  with  joy.  Many  savour  the  sweetness  of  the  gospel,  to  whom  sin 
either  never  was  made  bitter ;  or  if  it  was,  yet  never  the  bitterest  of 
all  things ;  so  their  saviour  of  the  gospel  is  but  superficial.  But 
God  makes  his  own  feel  sin  more  and  more  bitter,  till  it  become  of 
all  bitters  the  most  bitter,  even  more  bitter  than  death.  And  then 
they  know  to  purpose,  the  sweetness  of  the  joyful  sound. 

Lastly,  The  convert  savours  the  whole  of  the  joyful  sound.  There 
Is  always  some  one  note  or  other  in  it,  that  an  unsound  heart  savours 
not.  They  have  not  respect  to  all  God's  commandments.  They 
that  know  the  joyful  sound,  savour  it  for  sanctification,  as  well  as 
for  justification  ;  for  the  cross  as  well  as  the  crown.  But  many  are 
like  Herod,  who  heard  it  gladly,  till  his  beloved  lust  was  touched. 

Use  2.  Of  exhortation.  Believers,  you  that  know  the  joyful 
sound,  bless  God  for  what  your  ears  do  hear,  and  for  what  your  eyes 
do  see.  Seek  for  more  of  this  blessedness.  As  ever  ye  would  walk 
on  your  way  heavenward,  safely  and  comfortably,  labour  more  and 
more  to  know  the  joyful  sound;  and  to  know  it  so  as  to  believe  it; 
and  to  believe  it,  so  as  to  apply  it  to  your  own  souls,  according  to 
your  several  exigencies.     Consider, 


THE  JOYFUL  SOUND.  51 

1.  It  is  too  precious  and  dear  bought  a  sound,  to  be  neglected  by 
poor  sinners.  It  had  never  been  heard  in  the  world,  had  not  the  son 
of  God  in  our  nature  purchased  it  by  his  sufferings  and  death.  There 
was  a  dreadful  sonnd  of  a  deluge  of  wrath  falling  on  hira,  which 
made  him  to  groan  out  his  soul  on  the  cross.  And  had  not  that 
been,  this  had  never  been.  Wo  to  them  to  whom  it  will  be  a  fruit- 
less sound. 

2.  It  is  a  sound  which  has  the  matter  of  all  joy  in  it,  to  be  drawn 
forth  in  the  way  of  believing.  Now  the  God  of  hope  fill  you  with 
all  joy  and  peace  in  believing,  that  ye  may  abound  iu  hope,  through 
the  power  of  the  holy  Ghost."  It  comprehends  the  whole  covenant, 
with  all  the  benefits  thereof,  which  are  suited  to  all  the  necessities 
of  a  soul,  for  time  and  eternity.  The  gospel  is  the  offer  and  ex- 
hibiting of  all  to  you,  the  setting  before  you  the  whole  covenant  of 
promises,  and  declaring  you  welcome  to  intermeddle,  take  possession 
of,  and  use  them  for  your  own  behoof.  They  will  perish  miserably, 
who  perish  under  such  a  full  covenant  table,  because  they  will  not 
put  out  their  hand  to  take  it. 

3.  It  is  a  sound  that  will  not  sound  always  in  your  ears.  If 
death  come  on  before  ye  know  it,  ye  can  never  know  it  more. 
"Behold,  now  is  the  accepted  time  ;  behold,  now  is  the  day  of  sal- 
vation." In  hell  it  is  not  to  be  heard,  therefore  the  light  of  the 
Lord's  countenance  can  never  rise  there ;  but  they  are  wrapt  up 
there,  in  the  blackness  of  darkness  for  ever.  The  Sinai  trumpet 
will  sound  for  ever  most  dreadfully  through  all  the  corners  of  that 
dark  vault ;  but  not  the  least  whisper  of  Zion's  trumpet. 

Lasthi,  It  is  both  your  duty  and  interest  to  know  it.  There  is 
no  saving  knowledge  of  God  but  by  it,  for  by  the  gospel  only  we 
know  him  in  the  face  of  Jesus.  The  faith  of  it  is  the  way  of  sancti- 
fication,  "  we  are  sanctified  by  faith  which  is  in  Christ  Jesns."  And 
it  is  the  way  of  solid  comfort,  "we  are  filled  with  joy  and  peace  in 
believing."  And  the  more  a  person  has  of  the  faith  of  the  gospel, 
he  will  be  the  more  holy,  and  the  more  joyful  in  the  Lord. 

"Wherefore  study  the  gospel  of  Christ,  and  cry  for  the  Spirit  to 
cause  you  know  it.  Christ  is  a  veiled  Saviour,  and  the  gospel  is  a 
veiled  gospel  to  many.  It  is  hid  to  them  that  are  lost.  If  you  do 
not  believe  it,  it  will  be  worse  for  you  than  if  you  had  never  heard 
it.  Cry  then  for  the  Spirit,  and  for  God  to  reveal  Christ  in  your 
hearts,  the  hope  and  the  earnest  of  glory.     Amen. 


62  ,  THE  lord's  helping 

Ettrick,  3Iai/  4.  1707. 

[First  Sabbatb  after  my  Admission.]} 

THE  LORD'S  HELPING  HIS  PEOPLE. 

SERMON  VI. 

1  Samuel  vii.  12. 

Then  Samuel  took  a  stone,  and  set  it  between  Mlzpeh  and  Shen,  and 
called  the  name  of  it  Ebenezer,  saving,  Hitherto  hath  the  Lord  helped 
us. 

If  we  look  back  to  the  former  chapter,  we  find  Israel  brought 
to  a  very  low  state.  By  the  sword  of  the  Philistines,  chap, 
iv.  10,  thirty  thousand  footmen  were  slain ;  and  by  the  sword 
of  the  Lord,  chap,  vi  19,  "  Fifty  thousand  and  threescore  and 
ten  men  were  smitten."  After  this  the  ark  was  brought  to  Kirjath- 
jearim,  a  city  of  the  Levites  in  the  tribe  of  Judah.  There  it 
remained  till  David  brought  it  up,  2  Samuel,  vi.  Psal.  cxxxii. 
Only  it  was  twenty  years  there,  ere  the  children  of  Israel  lamented 
after  the  Lord,  chap.  vii.  2.  Now  Israel  was  in  a  great  strait; 
the  Philistines  were  strong  and  could  not  be  resisted ;  God  angry 
and  would  not  be  entreated;  they  lamented  after  him  but  found  him 
not.  In  this  sad  case  Samuel  adviseth  them  to  deep  humiliation 
and  a  complete  reformation,  vers.  3 — 5.  They  fall  in  with  his  advice 
in  some  measure,  vers.  4 — 6.  They  gather  for  humiliation  and 
fasting  in  Mizpeh,  a  city  on  the  borders  of  Benjamin  and  Judah, 
lying  in  the  heart  of  the  country,  and  so  proper  for  such  a  meeting. 
The  Philistines  are  alarmed  at  this,  looking  upon  it  as  a  rendezvous 
of  rebellion,  and  so  bring  an  army  against  Israel.  It  is  well  they 
were  found  at  their  duty,  which  was  a  good  pledge  of  the  Lord's 
help.  While  Samuel  is  sacrificing  and  praying,  the  Philistines 
draw  near  to  battle,  and  God  himself  takes  the  cause  in  hand, 
thunders  against  the  enemy,  so  that  Israel  had  nothing  more  to  do 
but  to  pursue,  ver.  10, 11. 

The  text  gives  us  an  account  of  the  setting  up  of  a  monument  of 
this  great  victory  and  glorious  deliverance.  The  monument  itself 
is  a  stone  set  up.  A  stone  is  a  most  durable  substance,  and  very 
proper  to  perpetuate  the  memory  of  this  glorious  victory.  The 
person  who  set  it  up  was  Samuel,  that  is,  it  was  set  up  by  his  order 
and  direction.     He  was  their  Prophet  and   their   Judge.     By    his 


HIS  PKOPLE.  53 

means  especially  was  tLe  victory  procured  ;  and  he  is  careful  to  set 
up  this  monument  of  thankfulness.  The  place  where  it  was  set  up 
was  between  Mizpeh  and  Shen,  a  rock  over  against  Mizpeh.  It  is 
set  up  there  where  they  got  the  deliverance  and  near  to  the  place 
where  they  prayed  for  it.  We  have  also  the  name  which  was  put 
upon  the  monument,  Ebenezer.  We  read  of  it  before,  chap.  iv.  1. 
Tlie  place  is  called  in  the  history,  Ebenezer,  by  way  of  anticipation. 
In  that  very  place  they  got  a  sore  disaster  before,  but  now  a  signal 
deliverance.  Ebenezer,  that  is,  the  stone  of  help,  including  a  re- 
spect to  God,  and  bearing  not  only  a  remerabrauce  of  the  victory, 
but  that  it  was  obtained  not  by  them  but  by  the  Lord. 

We  have  the  reason  of  the  name.  Hitherto  hath  the  Lord  helped 
us.  It  is  a  grateful  ackowledgmeut  of  the  Lord's  help  for  the 
time  past,  to  raise  their  confidence  in  him  for  the  time  to  come.  He 
hath  helped  us,  and  shewn  himself  on  our  side;  not  only  helped  us 
to  bear  our  burdens,  but  he  hath  taken  them  off  our  shoulders  and 
wrought  for  us. 

Doctrine — It  is  the  duty  of  the  Lord's  people  to  keep  the  me- 
morial of  the  experience  which  they  have  of  the  Lord's  helping  them. 
I  shall  discuss  this  point  under  two  general  heads. 

I.  I  shall  speak  of  the  Lord's  helping  his  people. 

II.  I  will  speak  to  the  keeping  up  of  the  memorial  of  the  experi- 
ences which  they  had  of  his  helping  them.     I  am  then,  • 

I.  To  speak  of  the  Lord's  helping  his  people.  Here  I  shall 
answer  two  questions.  1.  How  doth  the  Lord  help  his  people; 
and,  2.  Why  doth  he  help  his  people  ? 

First,  How  doth  the  Lord  help  his  people  ?     Here  I  reply, 

1.  Sometimes  the  Lord  helps  his  people,  by  working  all  for  them, 
they  themselves  contributing  nothing  to  their  deliverance.  Moses 
said  unto  the  people,  "  Fear  ye  not,  stand  still,  and  see  the  salva- 
tion of  the  Lord,  which  he  will  shew  you  to-day;  for  the  Egyptians 
whom  ye  have  seen  to-day,  ye  shall  see  thera  again  no  more  for 
ever.  The  Lord  shall  fight  for  you,  and  ye  shall  hold  your  peace." 
Many  times  the  children  of  God  may  be  brought  to  that,  that  they 
can  do  nothing  for  themselves,  but  commit  their  cause  to  God,  and 
depend  upon  him,  but  even  then  their  case  is  not  despair.  "  Com- 
mit thy  way  unto  the  Lord ;  trust  also  in  him  ;  and  he  shall  bring 
it  to  pass,"  Psal.  cxlii.  4 — 7.  Thy  Lord  can  do  all  things,  said 
Luther  to  a  person  solicitous  about  a  future  event. 

2.  Sometimes  the  Lord  assists  his  people  in  working.  They  en- 
deavour their  own  deliverance  in  God's  way,  and  he  fits  them  to  act, 
and   blesseth  their  exertions  crowning   them  with    success.      Like 


54  THE  lord's  uelpino 

Paul,  "  they  labour,  yet  not  they,  but  the  grace  of  God  who  is  with 
them."  In  this  God's  help  is  to  be  acknowledged,  for  all  depends 
on  him.  "  For  except  the  Lord  build  the  house,  they  labour  in  vain 
that  build  it."  We  must  be  at  our  work,  and  look  to  God  for  his 
assistance.     Pray  and  labour. 

3.  Sometimes  God  helps  his  people  by  appointing  means.  Thus 
in  the  case  of  Hezekiah,  Isaiah  said,  "  Let  them  take  a  lump  of  figs, 
and  lay  it  for  a  plaster  upon  the  boil,  and  he  shall  recover."  When 
God  intends  to  help  his  people  and  to  m.ake  use  of  means  and  in- 
struments for  it,  he  can  easily  bring  them  about  and  raise  them  up. 
Sometimes  no  way  appears  for  their  help,  but  the  Lord  brings  them 
about  unexpectedly,  so  that  "  when  the  Lord  turned  again  the  capti- 
vity of  Zion,  we  were  like  them  that  dream."  If  he  intends  to  have 
his  people  brought  out  of  Babylon,  he  raiseth  up  Cyrus  for  that  pur- 
pose. If  Elijah  must  be  fed  in  his  hiding  place,  the  ravens  shall  bo 
employed  rather  than  he  suffer  want.  And  often  their  help  comes 
by  such  unexpected  means  that  they  must  say  as  Jacob  did  of  his 
son's  venison.  "How  is  it  that  thou  hast  found  it  so  quickly,  my 
son?     And  he  said,  because  the  Lord  thy  God  brought  it  unto  me." 

4.  Sometimes  without  means.  "  Not  by  might,  nor  by  power,  but 
by  my  spirit,  saith  the  Lord  of  Hosts.  God  is  not  bound  to  means, 
as  he  can  work  without  them,  A  word  from  the  Lord  will  bring 
about  his  people's  help.  Pie  can  speak  peace  to  them,  and  so  create 
it.  And  often  when  he  hath  tried  his  people's  patience,  by  frustrat- 
ing of  means,  he  will  bring  about  their  help  without  them. 

5.  Sometimes  by  contrary  means,  as  our  Lord  cured  the  blind 
man  by  laying  clay  upon  his  eyes.  God  does  not  only  bring  light 
after,  but  out  of  darkness.  The  troubling  of  the  waters  of  Bethesda 
made  them  healing  waters ;  and  the  whale  that  swallowed  up  Jonah 
was  the  ship  in  which  he  came  ashore.  Christ's  going  away  filled 
the  disciples'  hearts  with  sorrow.  "  Nevertheless,"  said  he,  "  I  tell 
you  the  truth,  it  is  expedient  for  you  that  I  go  away ;  for  if  I  go 
not  away,  the  comforter  will  not  come  unto  you ;  but  if  I  depart,  I 
will  send  him  unto  you."  The  promise  guides  the  ship  of  provi- 
dence, and  will  make  a  cross  wind  drive  them  to  the  harbour. 
"  Out  of  the  eater  came  forth  meat,  and  out  of  the  strong  came  forth 
sweetness.  For  all  things  shall  work  together  for  good  to  them 
that  love  God,  and  are  the  called  according  to  his  purpose." 

Secondly,  Let  us  inquire  why  the  Lord  helpeth  his  people. 

1.  Because  they  are  in  covenant  with  him.  There  is  a  league 
offensive  and  defensive  betwixt  Christ  and  his  people.  They  have 
common  friends,  and  common  enemies.  Hence  all  the  attributes  of 
God  are  engaged  for  them,  and  their  help.     The  promise  is  made  ; 


HIS  PEOPLE.  55 

He  shall  call  upon  me,  and  I  will  answer  him;  I  will  be  with  him 
in  trouble,  I  will  deliver  him  and  honour  him.  Thus  the  power  of 
God  is  made  the  ground  of  Abraham's  comfort  by  virtue  of  the 
covenant,  Gen.  xvii.  1,  2. 

2.  Because  of  their  special  relation  to  him.  Christ  is  the  be- 
liever's head.  Hence  if  the  foot  be  hurt,  the  head  in  heaven  cries 
out,  Acts  ix.  4.  He  who  is  their  maker,  is  their  husband,  their  fa- 
ther, and  elder  brother ;  in  a  word  they  are  one  with  him,  one 
spirit.  This  is  the  ground  of  sympathy  betwixt  Christ  and  his 
people,  and  secures  their  help.  "  For  he  that  touclieth  them  touch- 
eth  the  apple  of  his  eye." 

3.  Because  they  look  to  him  and  trust  in  him  for  their  help.  The 
91st  psalm  has  in  it  a  great  many  blessed  promises,  but  see  to  whom 
they  belong.  "  The  Lord  is  a  buckler  to  all  those  that  trust  in 
him."  The  Lord  gives  this  for  the  reason  why  he  would  help  and 
deliver  Ebedmelech  the  Ethiopian;  "because  thou  hast  put  thy 
trust  in  me,  saith  the  Lord." 

It  lies  upon  the  honour  of  God  to  help  those  who  trust  in  him. 
Trust  on  an  ingenuous  man  will  engage  him  to  answer  the  trust  put 
in  him ;  and  God  will  see  to  those  that  trust  in  him,  that  they  shall 
not  be  ashamed. 

4.  Because  the  Lord  brings  his  people  into  straits  for  this  very 
end,  that  he  may  have  the  glory  of  helping  them  ;  and  they  may  get 
the  greater  experience  of  his  kindness.  A  good  friend  is  best  known 
in  adversity  :  and  the  Lord  will  let  his  people's  case  grow  darker 
till  it  be  near  past  hope,  and  then  he  will  arise.  "  For  the  Lord 
shall  judge  his  people,  and  repent  himself  for  his  servants,  when  he 
seeth  that  their  power  is  gone,  and  there  is  none  shut  up,  or  left." 
For  the  lower  tliey  are,  the  greater  is  the  glory  of  God  in  deliver- 
ing them.  "  For  great  is  thy  mercy  toward  me,  saith  David,  and 
thou  hast  delivered  ray  soul  from  the  lowest  hell."  And  none  have 
such  rich  experience  of  the  Lord's  goodness  as  they  that  are  most 
in  straits,  Hos.  ii.  14.     We  now  proceed, 

III.  To  speak  of  the  keeping  up  of  the  memorial  of  the  experi- 
ences which  they  have  had  of  the  Lord's  helping  them.  Here  tliree 
things  demand  our  attention.  First,  What  it  is  to  keep  up  this  me- 
morial. Secondly,  What  of  these  experiences  of  the  Lord's  helping 
should  be  recorded  and  kept  in  memory.  And,  Thirdly,  why  should 
we  keep  up  such  a  memorial. 

First,  What  it  is  to  keep  up  the  memorial  of  the  Lord's  helping 
us. 

1.  It  implies  an  observing  of  the  dispensations  we  meet  with,  for 
our  help  in  the  course  of  our  life.     If  the  thing  itself  be  not  ob- 


66  THE  lord's  iiklpixo 

served,  we  cannot  keep  up  the  memorial  of  it.  "  Who  is  wise  and 
will  observe  these  things,  even  they  shall  understand  the  loving 
kindness  of  the  Lord."  Many  times  the  Lord  helps,  when  we  are 
sleeping  and  do  not  observe  it.  And  this  makes  us  like  the  unjust 
steward  in  recounting  our  mercies,  setting  down  fifty  for  a  hundred. 

2.  A  discerning  of  the  Lord's  hand  in  the  help  we  receive. 
Alas !  men  are  ready  to  sacrifice  to  their  own  net,  and  burn  incense 
to  their  drag :  it  requires  wisdom  to  see  the  hand  of  the  Lord  in 
tlie  good  things  we  meet  with.  "  For  she  did  not  know,  saith  the 
Lord,  that  I  gave  her  corn,  and  wine,  and  oil,  and  multiplied  her 
silver  and  gold,  which  they  prepared  for  Baal." 

3.  Laying  up  these  experiences  and  recording  them,  if  not  in  a 
book  yet  in  a  faithful  memory.  "And  all  they  that  heard  them, 
(the  things  said  of  John  Baptist  at  his  birth)  laid  them  up  in  their 
hearts,  saying,  what  manner  of  child  shall  this  be  !  And  the  hand 
of  the  Lord  was  with  liim."  Many  instead  of  laying  such  things 
up,  lay  them  down  in  the  grave  of  forgetfulness,  and  instead  of 
setting  up  a  stone,  lay  a  stone  upon  them,  burying  them  out  of 
sight.  They  forget  that  God  remembered  them  in  their  low  estate. 
"  My  people,"  says  God,  "  have  forgotten  me,  days  without  number." 
But  if  these  experiences  were  carefully  laid  up,  the  former  part  of 
our  life  would  help  the  latter,  and  the  longer  we  live  the  richer  we 
would  grow.  As  in  wars  former  success  encourages  to  future  exer- 
tions, so  is  it  with  the  Christian  warfare.  "  Thy  servant,"  said 
David,  '*  slew  both  the  lion  and  the  bear ;  and  this  uncircumcised 
Philistine  shall  be  as  one  of  them,  seeing  he  hath  defied  the  armies 
of  the  living  God."     Let  us, 

Secondly,  Inquire  what  of  these  experiences  of  the  Lord's  helping 
should  be  recorded  and  kept  in  memory. 

1.  We  should  record  the  timing  or  seasonableness  of  them. 
There  is  often  a  weight  lies  on  this  very  circumstance ;  that 
the  help  came  at  such  a  time  and  not  another  is  worthy  to  be 
remembered.  Many  instances  of  this  kind  occur  in  scripture,  Gen. 
XXV.  45  ;  Judges  vii.  13.  The  church  remembers  the  time  of  her  deli- 
verance, Ps.  cxxvi.  L  The  Lord's  help  comes  always  seasonably, 
though  not  at  our  time,  yet  at  his  time  which  is  the  best.  This  will  let 
us  see  the  frame  of  spirit  in  which  the  help  did  overtake  us,  some- 
times when  we  were  looking  for  it,  sometimes  when  we  were  not. 

2.  The  efi"ects  of  them  on  our  spirits.  How  we  are  affected  with 
them  when  they  come.  "  Then,"  says  the  church,  "  was  our  mouth 
filled  with  laughter  and  our  tongue  with  singing."  Many  times  the 
Lord  helps  his  people  in  such  a  manner  that  the  experience  of  his 
goodness  fills  them  with  shame,  looks  their  doubts  and  fears  out  of 


HIS  PEOPLE  67 

coantenance,  proves  their  unbelief  to  be  a  false  prophet,  and  makes 
them  resolve  never  to  distrust  God  again  and  fills  them  with  thank- 
fulness. Isaiah  xxxviii.  10,  12  ;  Psal.  Ixxiii.  22,  2'^•,  and  cxvi.  11, 
12,     0  how  useful  would  this  be  afterwards  to  the  Christian. 

3.  Their  harmony  and  agreement  with  the  promise.  If  help  come 
not  by  virtue  of  a  promise,  little  use  can  be  made  of  it  this  way,  and 
for  want  of  recording  this,  many  of  the  Lord's  people  do  often 
question  their  experiences.  Experiences  are  the  bread  which  the 
saints  have  to  feed  upon  in  their  mournful  hours  ;  but  the  promise 
is  the  staff  and  stay  of  this  bread  without  which  there  will  be  no 
nourishment  in  it.  Now  as  face  answereth  to  face  in  a  glass,  so 
God's  works  answer  his  words.  As  we  have  heard,  so  have  we  seen 
in  the  city  of  the  Lord  of  Hosts.  Thus  David  records  his  experi- 
ence, saying,  "  Thou  hast  dealt  well  with  thy  servant,  0  Lord, 
according  to  thy  word.  The  promises  in  the  Bible  are  all  written 
over  in  the  experiences  of  the  saints.  "  There  failed  not  ought, 
said  Joshua,  of  any  good  thing  which  the  Lord  had  spoken  unto  the 
house  of  Israel ;  all  came  to  pass." 

4.  Their  agreement  with  their  prayers.  Gen.  xxiv.  45.  What 
are  the  Christian's  experiences  but  returns  of  prayers.  Such  was 
that  in  the  text.  This  seems  to  be  the  ground  of  that  conclusion; 
"  By  this  I  know  that  thou  favourest  me,  because  mine  enemy  doth 
not  triumph  over  me."  It  is  of  great  importance  to  notice  this,  for 
a  mercy  that  is  an  answer  of  prayer  is  a  double  mercy  ;  and  mercies 
are  certainly  obtained  by  prayer,  are  enjoyed  with  thankfulness,  as 
in  the  text.  Only  there  is  need  of  wisdom  here,  for  sometimes  God 
answers  prayer  not  with  the  blessing  itself  that  was  desired  but 
with  as  good  :  as  instead  of  removing  Paul's  thorn  in  the  flesh,  he 
said  to  him,  "  my  grace  is  sufficient  for  thee :"  and  sometimes  ex- 
periences of  the  Lord's  helping  us  with  our  expression  in  prayer, 
though  not  with  the  pressure  of  our  own  spirits,  Rom.  viii.  26,  27. 

Lastly,  Even  the  very  place  of  our  experiences  should  be  re- 
corded. The  stone  was  set  up  where  the  victory  was  obtained. 
There  are  some  golden  spots  on  earth,  where  the  Lord  has  enter- 
tained his  people,  whereof  the  very  remembrance  hath  been  refresh- 
ful to  them  afterwards.  "  I  will  remember  thee,"  says  David, 
"  from  the  land  of  Jordan  and  of  the  Ilermonites,  from  the  hill 
Mizar;"  Gen.  xxviii.  11 — 19.  And  the  Lord  loves  to  have  his 
people  remember  these  blessed  places.  Gen.  xxxi.  13;  and  xxxv.  1. 
Let  us  now, 

Thirdly,  Inquire  why  we  should  keep  up  the  memorial  of  these 
things. 

1.  We  owe  this  to  God :     In  point,  of  obedience,  when  we  meet 


68  THE  Lonn's  helpixg 

with  experiences  of  his  goodness  he  calls  us  to  set  up  our  Ebenezcr. 
"  We  are  to  remember  his  marvellous  works  that  he  hath  done, 
his  wonders,  aud  the  judgments  of  his  month."  It  is  very  grieving 
to  the  Spirit  of  God  to  let  these  things  slip ;  aud  God  complains  of 
his  people  for  it,  Jer.  ii.  81,  32.  We  owe  it  to  him  in  point  of 
gratitude;  acknowledgment,  and  the  remembrance  of  the  benefit,  is 
the  tribute  we  owe  to  God  for  his  goodness.  They  called  the  stone 
Ebenezer;  thereby  to  make  acknowledgment  that  it  was  not  they 
that  got  the  victory,  but  God  for  them.  0  monstrous  ingratitude 
to  forget  experiences. 

We  owe  it  to  him  also,  in  point  of  compliance  with  his  design  in 
giving  experience  of  his  help  to  his  people.  God  intends  his  people 
more  comfort  by  a  mercy,  than  the  mercy  itself  singly  considered. 
Ho  intends  it  as  a  ground  to  hope  for  more.  He  gives  the  valley  of 
Achor  for  a  door  of  hope.  But  how  can  they  comply  with  this 
design  unless  they  remember  them.  "  Thou  brakest,  says  Asaph, 
the  head  of  the  leviathan  in  pieces,  and  gavest  him  to  be  meat  to 
the  people  inhabiting  the  wilderness."  The  heads  of  the  leviathan 
are  the  princes  of  Pharaoh.  God  in  that  help  which  he  gave  to  his 
people  at  the  Red  Sea,  would  have  them  not  ouly  feast  themselves 
on  it  for  the  present,  but  carefully  lay  it  up  in  their  memories,  that 
their  faith  might  not  want  support  in  the  wilderness. 

2.  We  owe  this  to  ourselves  in  point  of  interest.  If  we  would 
consult  our  own  advantage,  we  would  not  let  them  slip.  For  for- 
former  experiences  of  the  Lord's  help  are  very  supporting  to  the 
soul  in  a  dark  night.  Sometimes  a  Christian's  spiritual  rest  is 
broken,  then  it  is  useful  to  read  the  records  of  his  experiences. 
Sometimes  a  little  writing  is  found  in  a  man's  study  that  saves  his 
estate  and  keeps  him  out  of  prison.  In  such  times  "  we  should  re- 
member the  years  of  the  right  hand  of  the  most  high."  This  may 
revive  our  hopes. 

These  experiences  are  pledges  of  further  mercies.  Some  pro- 
mises have  their  day  of  payment  here,  others  after  this  life.  The 
performing  of  the  former,  is  an  earnest  given  to  faith  to  look  for 
the  other.  "  Thou  shalt  guide  me  with  thy  counsel,  and  afterwards- 
receive  me  to  glory."  Every  mercy  a  child  of  God  receives,  may 
be  called  Joseph,  for  the  Lord  shall  add  another  to  it.  It  is  not  so 
with  others,  and  the  two  reasons  shall  be  found  in  these  words  :  "  0 
continue  thy  loving-kindness  to  them  that  know  thee,  and  thy 
righteousness  to  the  upright  in  heart."  The  mercies  bestowed  on 
the  Lord's  people  flow  from  solid  love,  and  love  knows  not  an 
enemy.  The  son  abides  in  the  house,  the  servant  goes  away  at  the 
term.     The  saint's  mercies  are  made  over  to  him  by  promise.     It  is 


HIS  PEOPLE.  59 

remarkable,  2  Sam.  v.  12,  that  David  gathers  his  establishment  in 
the  kingdom,  by  his  prospering  to  that  time.  Saul  too  prospered  at 
first,  but  was  not  established  ;  the  reason  was,  David's  establishment 
was  a  special  promise.  The  word  of  promise  gives  not  only  bread 
to  the  eater,  but  seed  to  the  sower.  These  experiences  then,  are 
good  arguments  iu  prayer.  "We  find  the  saints  often  pleading  with 
God  upon  former  experience.  "  Thy  vows  are  upon  me,  0  God :  I 
will  render  praises  unto  thee.  For  thou  hast  delivered  my  soul 
from  death."  It  is  not  the  way  to  plead  with  men,  but  it  is  a 
notable  way  to  plead  with  God,  for  he  is  unchangeable,  ''  whom  he 
loves,  he  loves  to  the  end." 

3.  We  owe  this  to  others.  It  is  a  duty  to  communicate  our 
experiences  of  the  Lord's  goodness  to  our  fellow  Christians.  "  Como 
and  hear,  all  ye  that  fear  God,  and  I  will  declare  what  he  hath 
done  for  my  sofll."  But  how  can  we  do  this,  unless  we  record  them, 
and  keep  up  the  memory  of  them.  It  must  be  very  encouraging  to 
distressed  Christians,  to  hear  that  others  have  been  plunged  in  the 
same  or  similar  depths,  and  yet  have  been  delivered.  "  For  this 
shall  every  one  that  is  godly  pray  unto  thee,  in  a  time  when  thou 
raayest  be  found :  surely  in  the  floods  of  great  waters,  they  shall 
not  come  nigh  unto  him." 

Use  1.  To  Christians,  whose  work  it  is  to  look  to  the  Lord  for 
his  help,  being  sensible  of  their  own  weakness.     "We  say  to  you, 

1.  Record  your  experiences,  keep  up  the  memory  of  them.  It  is 
a  soul  enriching  trade  to  gather  experiences.  It  makes  a  strong 
Christian.  It  makes  one  ready  to  suff'er  for  Christ,  and  to  venture 
for  him. 

2.  Improve  your  experiences  for  strengthening  your  faith  and 
hope  for  time  to  come,  in  the  promises  of  God.  And  to  help  you  to 
this,  take  these  notes.  The  same  God  that  helped  thee  formerly 
still  lives:  His  arm  and  power  are  as  strong  as  ever.  Doubting  of 
the  Lord's  willingness  to  help,  is  a  sad  leak,  bat  the  ship  will  never 
sink,  till  faith  let  go  its  hold  of  the  power  of  God. 

Though  awful  distempers  break  out  in  the  people  of  God  in  time 
of  affliction,  yet  he  will  still  perform  his  word  to  them.  He  will 
save  his  people  notwithstanding,  Psal.  cxvi.  11,  12.  If  it  were  not 
so,  we  could  not  have  been  out  of  hell  till  this  time.  The  Psalmist 
makes  this  a  ground  of  hope  to  others.  Psal.  xxxi.  22 — 24.  If  thou 
be  a  Christian,  God  hath  delivered  thee  from  greater  straits  than 
any  in  which  thou  now  art.  "  He  hath  delivered  your  soul  from 
death."  Objection,  But  though  God  deliver  in  one,  yet  he  lets  a 
man  fall  iu  another  strait.  Answer,  Even  affliction  itself,  a  valley 
of  Achor,  may  be  a  door  of  hope,  a  door  by  which  a  great  mercy 

YoL.  IV.  E 


60  MOURNING  THE  ABSENCE 

may  enter ;  so  was  Joseph's  prison,  and  Daniel's  den.  A  debt  may 
be  paid  either  with  money,  or  something  equal  in  value.  If  God  do 
not  take  away  the  trouble,  but  give  strength  to  bear  it ;  if  he  remove 
not  sickness,  but  remove  the  sick  saint  to  heaven,  he  is  no  loser. 

Use  2.  A  word  to  all.  Go  to  God  for  your  help  in  all  cases. 
Let  God  be  your  helper.     Consider, 

1.  You  have  many  and  strong  enemies.  You  are  not  able  to 
grapple  with  Satan,  the  world,  and  the  flesh.  These  will  ruin  thee, 
if  God  help  thee  not. 

2.  He  is  a  present  help.  He  is  not  far  off.  He  is  within  hearing 
of  your  cry.     Men  may  perish  when  help  is  far  away. 

3.  He  is  willing. 

4.  He  is  able  to  help  thee  in  all  cases,  and  at  all  times.  "When 
friends  can  do  nothing  but  close  the  eyes,  and  prepare  the  funeral 
rites,  Christ  can  take  thy  soul  to  his  Father's  glory,"  and  present  it 
there  with  exceeding  joy.     Amen. 


Swinton,   July   28,    1706,    Sermon   after   the   Action. 
MOURNING  THE  ABSENCE  OF  CHRIST. 

SERMON  YII. 

Lamentations   iii.   49,   50. 

Mine  eye  tnckleth  down,  and  ceaseth  not,  ivithout  any  intermission^  till 
the  Lord  look  down  and  behold  from  heaveu. 

Wonder  not,  that  upon  this  occasion,  we  have  read  a  mournful  text 
to  you ;  for  I  suppose  if  every  one  of  us  were  taking  liberty  to  ex- 
press the  affections  and  present  frame  of  our  hearts,  it  would  be  as 
Ezra  iii.  12,  13,  "  when  some  wept  with  a  loud  voice,  and  many 
shouted  aloud  for  joy  :  so  that  the  people  could  not  discern  the  noise 
of  the  shout  of  joy,  from  the  noise  of  the  weeping  of  the  people." 
So  among  us,  some  would  weep,  and  some  rejoice ;  and  in  the  mean- 
time, others  would  stand  as  unconcerned  spectators,  who  have  not 
found  Christ,  and  therefore  cannot  rejoice ;  and  do  not  feel  the  want 
of  him,  and  therefoi-e  cannot  lament  after  him.  Yea,  perhaps,  some 
would  be  found,  who  with  one  eye  would  look  joyfully,  because  they 
have  got  so  much  ;  and  with  the  other  weep,  because  they  have  not 
got  more.     But  alas  !  it  is  the  misery  of  many  that  they  are  too  soon 


OF  CHRIST.  61 

pleased.  They  may  begin  in  the  course  of  mourning  with  the  church 
here,  but  cannot  hold  up  with  her,  but  stand  still,  long  before  "  the 
Lord  look  down  and  behold  from  heaven,"  and  so  lose  the  things 
which  they  have  wrought.     In  tlie  text  we  have, 

1.  The  church's  present  exercise,  and  that  is  mourning.  The 
ground  of  her  mourning  was  guilt  and  heavy  affliction,  chap.  v.  16, 
Her  grief  was  great,  "mine  eye  trickleth  dowu."  Her  sorrow 
was  such  as  if  her  eye  had  been  turned  into  a  fountain  of  tears, 
and  her  head  into  waters.  It  was  lasting,  it  ceased  not:  It  was 
not  for  a  iit  and  away  again,  and  so  ended ;  but  it  was  without 
intermission,  a  continual  sorrow. 

2.  The  term  of  the  continuance  of  this  exercise.  "  Till  the  Lord 
look  down,  and  behold  from  heaven."  She  would  take  no  comfort 
till  the  Lord  should  give  it  to  her.  She  was  seeking  the  Lord  sor- 
rowing, and  her  eyes  cannot  dry  till  she  And  him.  It  was  the 
light  of  his  couutenance  only,  that  could  restore  her  joy.  She  was 
resolved  her  cry  should  be  continually  going  to  the  throne,  till  ho 
that  sits  upon  it,  should  look  in  mercy  on  her,  and  deliver  her. 

Doctrine. — As  it  is  the  duty,  so  it  is  the  disposition  of  the  godly, 
exercised  under  the  hidings  of  the  Lord's  face,  not  to  give  over, 
uor  to  sit  down  contented,  till  such  time  as  the  Lord  be  pleased 
to  give  them  a  favourable  look.  We  see  it  thus  with  Jacob.  He 
said  to  God,  "  I  will  not  let  thee  go,  except  thou  bless  me."  Gen. 
xxii.  26 ;  Hosea  xii.  4.  And  the  woman  of  Canaan.  Matt.  xv. 
22—28.     I  shall  here. 

I.  Shew  what  this  imports. 

II.  Give  reasons  why  they  are  thus  disposed.     I  am  then, 
I.  To  shew  what  is  imported  in  this.     It  imports, 

1.  That  a  child  of  God  may  be  uuder  the  hidings  of  God's  face. 
When  it  is  said.  "  till  the  Lord  look,"  this  imports  that  the  Lord 
refused  to  look  on  them  for  the  time.  "  Thou  didst  hide  thy  face," 
says  David,  "  and  I  was  troubled."  God  will  have  a  difference  be- 
twixt the  upper  and  lower  houses.  When  the  saints  are  above,  all 
the  shadows  flee  away,  but  now  clouds  may  intercept  the  light  of 
his  countenance.  This  implies  that  a  controversy  is  apprehended 
betwixt  Christ  and  the  sonl.  The  soul  conceives  the  Loid  is  angry, 
for  the  turning  way  of  the  face  is  the  way  how  we  signify  our 
displeasure.  When  the  Lord  turns  his  back,  conscience  turns  its 
face  to  the  soul,  and  tells  that  the  Lord  is  displeased.  And  0! 
how  bitter  must  God's  anger  be  to  that  soul  that  knows  him.  Is 
his  favour  sweet  as  life,  then  his  anger  must  be  bitter  as  deatli. 
It  implies  also  au  apprehension  of  the  Lord's  laying  aside  any 
special  concern  about  them.     I  do  not  say  but  it  is  a  mistaken  ap- 

c  2 


62  MOUKNING  THE  ABSENCE 

prehension,  but  sure  such  a  thing  is  here  implied ;  for  the  wife  will 
be  ready  to  think  that  her  husband  has  forgot  her,  when  he  locks  up 
himself  in  his  chamber,  and  does  not  give  her  a  look  through  door  or 
window.  This  was  David's  exercise  when  he  said,  "  How  long 
wilt  thou  forget  me,  0  Lord  ?  for  ever  ?  how  long  wilt  thou  hide 
thy  face  from  me?"  This  was  Zion's  conclusion,  though  she  was 
mistaken,  Isa.  xlix.  14,  15.  The  children  of  God  maybe  under  that 
apprehension,  that  their  high  priest  hath  let  them  out  of  his  mind, 
though  he  remembers  them  still,  and  doth  them  many  good  offices, 
which  they  know  not,  till  afterwards.  But  it  is  so  long  between 
visits,  that  they  think  he  hath  forgotten  them. 

2.  It  imports  that  the  hidings  of  the  Lord's  face,  may  continue 
long  with  a  child  of  God.  The  tears  for  his  absence,  may  trickle 
down  long,  ere  he  come  and  wipe  them  away.  "  I  am  afflicted," 
says  Heman,  "and  ready  to  die  from  my  youth  up."  Sovereignty 
hath  the  disposal  of  the  time,  and  sometimes  may  prolong  it,  so  as 
it  may  appear  a  kind  of  eternity.  Hence  such  complaints  as,  "  the 
harvest  is  past,  the  summer  is  ended,  and  we  are  not  saved."  God 
will  have  his  people's  faith  and  patience  tried,  and  therefore  makes 
their  clouds  return  after  the  rain. 

3.  A  holy  dissatisfaction  with  all  things,  while  Christ  hides  his 
face.  The  soul  is  difficult  to  please  when  the  Lord  is  gone.  No- 
thing will  stop  the  fountain  of  tears  here,  till  the  Lord  look  down 
from  heaven.  The  word  will  not  please  them,  and  ordinances  will 
not  please  them,  without  him,  Psal.  vi.  6,  7,  and  xxvii.  4.  An 
angel's  presence  could  not  satisfy  Moses,  Exod.  xxxiii.  15;  nor  dry 
Mary's  cheeks,  while  her  Lord  was  taken  away.  Their  life  is 
bound  up  in  his  favourable  looks,  and  as  Rachel  weeping  for  her 
children,  refuses  to  be  comforted,  because  they  are  not,  so  they  can- 
not be  comforted  till  he  return  : 

4.  A  wearisome  longing  after  the  Lord,  Job  vii.  2,  3 ;  and  xxiii. 
3,  4.  The  soul  is  looking  for  his  appearance,  as  the  traveller  in  the 
night  longs  for  the  day-breaking.  Most  of  the  causes  of  weariness 
concur  here,  as  solitude.  The  wife  lives  but  a  solitary  life,  when 
the  husband  is  from  home,  though  the  house  be  thronged  with  ser- 
vants ;  so  does  the  child  of  God,  while  the  Lord  hides  his  face. 
Darkness  also  causeth  weariness.  It  is  a  pleasant  thing  to  behold 
the  sun  ;  but  now  the  Sun  of  Righteousness  hides  his  face,  and  it  is 
a  dark  hour  with  the  soul,  Job  xxix.  2,  3.  Here  also  there  is  some 
toil.  A  time  of  desertion,  is  a  toilsome  time  to  the  people  of  God. 
"  I  am  weary  with  my  groaning,"  says  David.  Duties  are  hard 
work,  when  Christ  withdraws.  Labour  in  vain  much  more  causeth 
weariness.     Hope  deferred  makes  the  heart  sick.     Sometimes  they 


OF  ClIUIST.  63 

no  sooner  call  but  God  hears,  then  they  need  not  weary.  0  but  to 
be  standing  alone,  in  the  dark  hour  of  the  night,  trying  to  break. 
up  heaven's  gates,  to  get  corruptions  mortified,  and  temptations 
overcome,  and  all  without  felt  success,  how  wearisome  must  that  be  ? 
A  man's  not  seeing  the  end  of  his  work,  makes  weary  work.  It 
refresheth  the  labourer,  to  think  that  when  the  sun  goes  down,  he 
will  go  to  his  rest ;  but  the  people  of  God,  in  this  case,  see  not  their 
signs,  nor  know  the  time  how  long.  They  know  not  what  hour  of 
the  night  it  is,  and  how  long  it  will  be  till  day-break.  Finally, 
continued  disappointments  from  every  quarter,  from  which  the  soul 
expects  ease,  makes  wearines  in  full  measure.  Job.  xxiii.  8,  9  ;  Jer. 
viii.  15. 

5.  Some  hope  that  the  Lord  will  yet  look  down,  and  behold  from 
heaven,  Psal.  xliii.  5.  Should  they  lose  all  hope,  they  lose  all.  It 
is  true  their  hope  may  be  very  low :  yet  likely  they  will  be  able  to 
say,  who  knows  but  he  may  return  and  leave  a  blessing  behind. 
Sometimes  they  may  drav/  hasty  and  heavy  conclusions  against 
themselves,  but  hope  will  yet  set  up  its  head,  and  make  them  say 
with  Jonah,  "  yet  I  will  look  again  towards  God's  holy  temple  ;'* 
though  it  may  be  sometimes  sunk,  but  all  is  not  lost  that  is  iu 
hazard,  Lam.  iii.  18 — 21.  Hope  feeds  those  weary  labourers, 
and  God  never  allows  his  people  to  sink  so  low,  but  everlasting 
arms  are  still  beneath  them,  to  keep  them  from  falling  to  the 
bottom. 

Lastly,  A  resolute  persisting  in  duty  till  the  Lord  return  :  The 
soul  resolves  never  to  give  over,  and  so  holds  on,  till  the  Lord  look 
down  and  behold  from  heaven.  Sense  may  often  bring  bad  news, 
and  tell  them  they  have  already  got  the  last  look  of  him,  but  the 
soul  is  resolute,  and  will  not  give  over.  If  it  must  die,  it  resolves 
to  die  in  the  bed  of  honour,  even  at  the  Lord's  footstool,  and  to  d  g 
its  grave  at  his  door.     We  now  proceed, 

II.  To  give  some  reasons  why  they  are  thus  disposed.  I  shall 
oflfer  only  these  few. 

1.  Felt  need  of  Christ  engageth  them  to  this  course.  You  know 
what  determined  the  lepers  that  sat  at  the  gate  of  Samaria.  Many 
see  a  want  of  Christ,  that  feel  not  their  need  of  him  ;  hence  a  few 
cold  wishes,  and  if  that  will  do,  well  and  good  ;  but  if  not,  they 
must  even  live  without  him.  But  the  gracious  soul  cannot  live 
without  him.  They  say  with  Peter,  "  Lord,  to  whom  shall  we  go  ? 
Thou  hast  the  words  of  eternal  life.  Now,  necessity  hath  no  law, 
and  hunger  will  dig  through  stone  walls.  And  if  it  cannot  dig 
through  them,  it  will  leap  over  them.  The  soul  still  cries,  Lord 
help  me. 


64  JIOUHNING  THE  AHSKNCK 

2.  Superlative  iove  to  liini,  engagetli  tliem  to  this,  Song  viii.  6,  7- 
Love  can  endure  any  thing  but  absence,  or  the  loss  of  the  beloved 
party.  Christ  hath  appeared  in  his  beauty  to  the  gracious  soul,  and 
hath  captivated  his  heart,  and  it  is  so  fixed  with  the  sight  of  his 
transcendent  excellency  and  fulness,  that  he  cannot  take  it  back 
again.  The  eyes  of  the  soul  are  opened,  and  can  see  no  happiness 
in  any  other.  But  in  the  meantime,  the  soul  cannot  cease  to  desire 
to  be  happy,  and  therefore  can  never  rest,  till  the  Lord  look  down, 
and  behold  from  heaven. 

Use  \.  Hence  we  may  see  why  so  many  professors  fall  short  of 
Christ.  They  are  utter  strangers  to  this  disposition  of  the  godly. 
There  are  many  who  have  not  so  much  sense  as  to  complain 
of  the  Lord's  distance  from  them,  because  their  consciences  were 
never  so  much  touched  with  any  notable  common  work  of  the  Spirit 
of  God  on  them.  There  are  others,  whose  character  may  be  that, 
"  ever  learning,  and  never  coming  to  the  knowledge  of  the  truth," 
they  have  some  movings  upon  their  souls,  and  they  complain  ;  but 
their  complaints  are  dead,  heavy,  and  inactive.  They  may  at  a 
communion  or  so,  have  something  like  mourning  after  the  Lord,  but 
all  their  exercise  is  like  a  slight  shower,  that  wets  only  the  surface 
of  the  earth,  which  a  little  wind  presently  dries  up,  ere  it  can  do 
any  good.  The  concern  of  their  souls  for  Christ  does  not  last  till, 
but  is  gone,  ere  the  Lord  look  down,  and  behold  from  heaven. 
Reasons  of  this  are, 

1.  They  have  not  the  living  spirit  of  Christ  in  them,  and  so  they 
cannot  follow  the  Lord  fully.  Numb.  xiv.  24  ;  John  iv.  14.  It  is 
but  awakening,  and  not  changing  grace  they  have  ;  therefore  it  de- 
cays by  little  and  little,  as  the  light  after  sunset,  till  it  grow  to  per- 
fect darkness.  Their  reigning  sloth  being  only  covered,  not  sub- 
dued, rises  again,  and  overspreads  the  soul,  as  weeds  do  in  the 
spring.  Take  a  branch  and  ingraft  it,  it  will  keep  green  a  while  ; 
but  if  it  do  not  take  with  the  stock,  and  unite  with  it,  it  withers. 
"  If  a  man,"  says  Jesus,  "  abide  not  in  me,  he  is  cast  forth  as  a 
branch,  and  is  withered." 

2.  There  are  difficulties  in  the  way  to  heaven,  which  their  hearts 
cannot  digest.  Few  see  heaven  ;  and  why  ?  ease  is  sweet,  and  the 
gate  is  strait.  They  love  gold,  but  they  cannot  exert  themselves  to 
dig  for  it.  "  The  desire  of  the  slothful  killeth  him,  for  his  hands 
refuse  to  labour."  They  see  heaven  afar  off,  and  would  fain  be 
there.  But  there  is  a  great  gulph  between  them  and  it,  that  they 
dare  not  venture  to  swim.  Heaven  will  not  drop  down  into  their 
mouths,  hence  finding  the  fruitlessness  of  their  attempts,  they 
despair  of  mending  their  case,  and  then  sit  down  to  contrive  ways 
to  smooth  their  consciences. 


OF  CHRIST.  65 

3.  The  world  and  their  lusts  were  never  m.ide  sapless  to  them, 
but  still  have  the  chief  room  in  their  hearts.  Hence,  when  Christ 
will  not  answer,  they  have  another  door  to  go  to.  They  are  unlike 
those  who  said  to  Jesus,  "  Lord,  to  whom  shall  we  go  ?  thou  hast 
the  words  of  eternal  life."  They  find  rest  is  sweet,  so  sit  down, 
and  fall  short  of  Christ.  They  are  like  a  wife  called  to  go  forth 
and  meet  her  husband  ;  but  her  children,  in  whom  she  delights,  cry 
after  her,  and  hold  her  still.  And  thus  many  part  with  Christ,  as 
Orpah  with  Naomi. 

Use  2.  You  are  in  earnest  for  Christ,  yet  under  the  hidings  of 
his  face,  and  all  things  else  insipid  to  you  without  him,  you  see  here 
how  you  are  to  behave ;  you  must  hold  on  seeking  till  the  Lord  look 
down  from  heaven.  Take  up  with  no  comfort  in  the  world,  till  you 
get  it  from  himself,  and  from  his  blood  ;  and  be  resolute  that  you 
will  never  give  over  till  he  look  down  from  heaven,  and  be  sure  you 
shall  get  a  healing  look  from  the  Lord.  "  Shall  not  God  avenge 
his  own  elect,  which  cry  day  and  night  unto  him,  though  he  bear 
long  with  them  ?"  Have  you  missed  him,  have  you  come  short  of 
what  Grod  promiseth  to  his  people  ;  of  what  is  necessary  to  your 
case  ;  of  what  you  desired  of  him  ?  then  go  from  this  place,  resolved 
to  hang  about  his  hand,  and  to  cry  for  it  till  you  obtain  it ;  pro- 
testing that  nothing  shall  satify  you,  till  the  Lord  look  down  and 
behold  from  heaven  ;  and  be  sure  you  shall  get  your  communion 
yet,  though  the  table  be  drawn,  and  no  more  bread  and  wine  on  it. 

OBjECTio>r  L  I  dare  seek  him  no  more,  guilt  so  stares  me  in  the 
face,  that  prayer  is  a  terror  to  me.  Answer,  This  is  a  fit  of  indis- 
position you  are  under,  and  sometimes  Christians  are  carried  away 
with  it.  But  if  you  belong  to  Clirist,  you  will  even  take  up  with 
prayer  again,  seeing  yourself  the  greater  fool,  that  ever  you  laid  it 
aside,  if  it  were  ever  so  short  a  while.  But  0  hear  what  Christ 
himself  says  to  you.     Song  ii.  14. 

Objection  2.  But  I  am  burdened  with  a  hard  heart,  I  cannot  mourn 
after  the  Lord  ;  could  I  seek  him  to  purpose,  I  would  have  hope 
that  he  would  look  down,  and  behold  from  heaven.  I  fear  he  has 
nothing  to  do  with  me.  I  see  I  am  all  wrong,  but  I  can  do  nothing 
to  help  it.  Answer  I  suppose  you  may  find  three  hopeful  things, 
even  in  that  case.  1.  Self-dissatisfaction.  There  is  a  secret  discon- 
tent with  yourselves  in  you.  "SVeak  grace  is  frowning  on  corrup- 
tion, though  it  is  not  able  to  master  it.  2.  Self-condemnation.  The 
man  is  the  vilest  creature  in  his  own  eyes.  He  has  nothing  to  com- 
mend him  to  Christ,  and  he  would  wonder  if  he  would  cast  him  a 
crumb ;  saying,  "  it  is  of  the  Lord's  mercies,  that  I  am  not  consumed, 
and  because  his  compassions  fail  not.     But  to  this  man,  sailh  the 


66  MOURNING  TUE  ABSENCE  OF  CHRIST. 

Lord,  will  I  look,  even  to  him  that  is  poor,  and  of  a  broken  and  a 
contrite  spirit,  and  trembletli  at  my  word."  3.  There  is  a  spark  of 
kindness  to  Christ  in  the  heart,  though  the  soul  has  written  the  bill 
of  divorce,  and  put  it  in  Christ's  hand,  yet  the  soul  would  not  sign 
it  for  thousands  of  worlds.  Well  then,  if  you  cannot  mourn,  will 
you  sigh  and  groan  after  him.  Rom.  viii.  26,  27.  If  you  cannot 
sigh,  will  you  give  him  an  earnest  look.  "  I  am  cast  out  of  thy 
sight,"  said  Jonah,  "  yet  I  will  look  again  toward  thy  holy  temple." 

Objection  3.  The  Lord  has  let  me  fall  into  such  a  gross  sin  as 
has  wounded  my  conscience,  and  I  fear  he  has  shaken  me  off,  by  let- 
ting me  fall  into  it.  And  whenever  that  comes  in  my  mind,  1  can- 
not think  that  the  Lord  will  ever  look  more  to  me.  Answer.  Have 
you  fled  to  Christ  for  refuge.  If  you  have,  then  your  greatest  sins 
may  hide  God's  face,  but  shall  never  part  God  and  you.  Psal. 
Ixxxix.  30 — 34,  "  The  blood  of  Jesus  Christ  cleauseth  from  all  sin." 
The  Lord  has  designs  of  good,  even  in  permitting  his  people  to  fall. 
He  raises  profit  to  them  out  of  it.  Thus  God  left  Hezekiah,  in  the 
business  of  the  Babylonian  ambassadors,  "  to  try  him,  that  he  might 
know  all  that  was  in  his  heart."  It  also  brings  a  revenue  of  glory 
to  himself,  by  his  having  mercy  upon  them.  And  for  your  continual 
disquiet,  look  that  you  have  not  trusted  more  to  your  repentance 
for  your  sin,  than  to  the  blood  of  Christ,  which  "  alone  can  purge 
the  conscience  from  dead  works  to  serve  the  living  God." 

Objection.  4.  I  have  met  with  so  many  disappointments,  that  I 
can  scarcely  think  but  I  must  give  it  over.  Answer.  You  are  not 
the  first  that  have  met  with  them.  Job  xxiii.  Song  iii.  Disappoint- 
ments are  needful  for  us  in  several  respects.  But  if  you  should 
meet  with  one  on  the  back  of  another;  till  your  dying  hour,  if  Christ 
come  at  last,  you  have  no  reason  to  repent  your  waiting  on ;  and 
come  he  will,  to  them  that  will  not  want  him.  There  are  three 
signs  when  your  disappointments  may  be  near  an  end.  1.  When 
your  heart  is  duly  humbled,  and  you  are  as  a  weaned  child  ;  when 
you  leave  off  limiting  God  ;  resolving  to  wait  on  God,  but  to  pre- 
scribe no  time  to  him.  "  Lord  thou  hast  heard  the  desire  of  the 
humble  ;  thou  wilt  prepare  their  heart,  thou  wilt  cause  thine  ear  to 
hear."  2.  When  you  get  your  case  touched,  and  laid  open  in  the 
public  ordinances.  "  The  watchmen  that  go  about  the  city,  found 
me,"  says  the  spouse,  "  and  after  this  she  soon  found  her  beloved." 
3.  When  you  are  carried  above  means,  to  look  over  them  all  to 
Christ  himself;  even  passing  on  from  the  watchmen,  till  you  find 
him  whom  your  soul  loveth. 

Lastly,  My  case  grows  worse  and  worse,  heavier  and  heavier,  and 
always  the  longer  the  more  hopeless.     Answer.  Wait  on  till  the 


THE  SHORTNESS  OF  HUMAN  LIFE.  67 

Lord  look  down.  There  is  hope  in  Israel,  concerning  this  thing. 
Men's  extremity  is  God's  opportunity,  Isa.  xli.  17,  18.  "  For  the 
Lord  shall  judge  his  people,  and  repent  himself  for  his  servants, 
when  he  seeth  their  power  is  gone,  and  there  is  none  shut  up  or  left." 
Christ  usually  times  his  visits,  so  that  he  may  be  the  more  welcome 
when  he  comes.  It  is  as  with  Hagar,  who  never  saw  the  well,  till 
she  gave  over  the  child  for  death.  The  darkest  hour  is  readily  be- 
fore day-break.     Amen. 


Ettrick,  Jmmary  3,  1725. 
THE  SHORTNESS  OF  HUMAN  LIFE. 

SERMON  YIII. 

Job  xvi.  22. 

When  a  few  years  are  come,  then  I  shall  go  the  way  whence  I  shall  not 

return. 

Time  is  in  constant  motion.  Years  are  like  rivers  flowing  fast 
away,  and  still  running  a  straight,  but  no  hope  of  their  running  a 
backward  course.  The  year  now  gone  will  never  return,  and  that 
now  come  will  run  on,  till  it  also  run  out.  Meanwhile,  our  life  here 
is  also  running  to  an  end. 

Our  text  mentions  an  important  removal,  that  is  abiding  all. 
This  is,  "  we  shall  go  the  way  whence  we  shall  not  return."  Death 
is  the  going  to  that  place,  that  state.  A  removing  from  time  to 
eternity,  from  the  world  of  sense,  to  the  world  of  spirits.  There 
will  be  a  return  of  the  body  from  the  grave,  but  no  return  from 
eternity. 

"We  have  also  the  longest  terra  fixed  for  this  removal.  It  may  be 
within  a  few  months,  weeks,  days,  hours,  that  we  shall  be  called 
away.  But  without  all  peradventure,  the  term  of  removing  will  be 
to  all  of  us  within  a  few  years.  "  When  a  few  years  are  come,"  by 
that  time  we  will  be  gone. 

Doctrine.  The  coming  in  of  a  few  new  years,  will  set  us  out  of 
this  world,  never  to  return  to  it.  However  vain  men  make  new 
years,  new  occasions  of  renewing  their  follies,  superstitions,  carnal 
mirth,  and  jollities.  They  thus  act  as  those  in  whom  madness  is 
in  their  hearts  while  they  live,  and  after  that  they  go  to  the  dead. 


68  THE  SIIOUTNESS  OF 

I  see  not  how  serious  persons  can  fail  to  have  this  serious  thought 
on  such  an  occasion.     Hero  I  shall  very  shortly, 

I.  Shew  in  what  respects,  we  can  have  but  a  few  years  to  come. 

II.  Why  is  the  coming,  and  not  the  going  of  these   few  years 
mentioned. 

III.  When  the  few  years  have  sent  us  off,  there  is  no  returning. 
We  are  then, 

I.  To  shew  in  what  respects,  we  can  have  but  a  few  years  to 
come. 

1.  In  comparison  of  the  many  years  to  which  man's  life  did 
sometimes  extend;  namely,  in  the  ages  before  the  flood,  Gen.  v. 
When  man's  life  was  of  that  great  extent,  an  ill  use  was  made  of 
it ;  and  Enoch,  the  best  man  of  that  period,  had  the  shortest  life, 
namely,  three  hundred  and  sixty-five  years.  Now  our  years  are 
dwindled  into  so  small  a  number,  that  the  odd  number  even  of 
Enoch's  years,  is  a  long  life  with  us,  which  few  comparatively, 
reach. 

2.  In  comparison  of  the  years  of  the  world  that  are  past,  now 
about  five  thousand,  seven  hundred  and  twenty-four.  If  we  con- 
sider what  of  the  world's  time  was  run  before  we  knew  it,  how  late 
incomers  we  are,  and  how  soon  we  must  be  gone,  we  must  needs  say, 
we  have  but,  at  most,  few  years  to  come.  Our  life  is  but  a  short 
visit  made  to  the  world  of  sense. 

3.  In  comparison  of  the  great  work  which  we  have  to  do,  namely, 
our  salvation,  and  generation  work.  If  we  were  to  live  hundreds 
of  years,  we  have  as  much  work  laid  to  our  hands,  as  might  fill  it 
all  up ;  and  we  would  be  convinced  of  that,  if  once  we  would  rightly 
consider,  that  we  have  both  our  own  souls  to  attend  to,  and  to  be 
useful  for  God  in  the  world. 

4.  In  comparison  of  eternity.  If  our  life  was  lengthened  out  to 
a  hundred  times  the  length  of  the  ordinary  period  of  it,  it  would  be 
no  more  in  that  case,  than  a  drop  of  water  to  the  ocean,  or  a  grain 
of  sand  to  a  mountain.  How  few  then  must  our  years  be,  which  we 
probably  have  to  come.     But  let  us  inquire, 

II.  Why  is  the  coming,  and  not  the  going  of  the  few  years  men- 
tioned. 

1.  Because,  that  by  the  time  they  are  fully  come  in,  they  are  gone 
out ;  so  that  the  coming  and  the  going  of  a  year,  are  all  one  upon 
the  matter.  It  is  not  one  or  two,  or  a  month,  or  eleven  months  of 
days,  that  make  a  year;  till  the  last  day  and  hour  of  a  year  is  come, 
and  then  it  is  gone  by  that  time.  How  quick  is  our  time,  then,  in 
its  motion ;  how  soon  do  our  years  pass,  which  no  sooner  are  come, 
than  they  are  gone  again. 


HUMAN  LIFE.  69 

2.  Because  that  year  will  at  length  begin  to  come  in,  which  wo 
will  never  see  the  going  out  of.  Every  year  is  that  to  some,  and  to 
which  of  us,  this  year  may  be  it,  who  knows.  But  in  the  ordinary 
course  of  providence,  it  cannot  fail  to  be  so,  to  some  or  other  of  us, 
in  the  place.  The  term  of  the  year  should  certainly  suggest  this 
serious  thought  to  us.     "We  are  now, 

III.  To  shew  that  when  the  few  years  have  sent  us  off,  there  is  no 
returning. 

1.  Men  cannot  come  back.  Job.  xvi.  14.  If  men  cannot  keep 
themselves  alive,  far  less  can  they  restore  themselves  to  life,  and 
return  after  death  hath  carried  them  away.  Nothing  less  than  an 
omnipotent  hand  can  loose  the  bands  of  death,  make  up  the  ashes 
into  a  body  again,  and  re-unite  the  soul  to  it.     And, 

2.  Grod  will  not  bring  them  back  again.  "  It  is  appointed  unto 
men  once  to  die,  but  after  this  the  judgment."  God  has  appointed 
this  life  for  the  time  of  a  trial,  when  it  is  ended,  the  sentence  is 
passed,  and  no  place  remains  for  a  new  time  of  trial.  With  respect 
to  the  godly  after  death,  their  souls  are  at  rest  with  God,  in  heaven ; 
their  bodies  rest  in  the  grave,  sleeping  in  Jesus.  He  will  not  pluck 
them  out  of  their  rest.  As  for  the  wicked,  they  have  had  their  time, 
and  it  is  out,  the  sentence  is  passed,  and  there  is  no  reversing  of  it. 
For  improvement, 

Let  the  going  out  and  coming  in  of  years  be  so  noticed  and  im- 
proved by  you,  as  that  you  may  apply  your  hearts  to  wisdom  on 
that  occasion.  I  cannot  think  that  the  observing  of  such  a  time  in 
the  way  of  carnal  mirth,  feasting,  and  giving  of  gifts  and  handsells, 
is  becoming  Christianity.  It  is  certain  that  was  the  manner  of  the 
heathens ;  and  it  is  as  certain,  that  God  strictly  forbade  his  people 
to  symbolize  with  the  heathen,  and  follow  their  customs.  "  You 
shall  not,"  said  he  to  them,  "  walk  in  the  manner  of  the  nations, 
which  I  cast  out  before  you ;  for  they  committed  all  these  things, 
and  therefore  I  abhorred  them."  But  it  appears  very  proper  in  such 
a  time, 

1.  That  men  seriously  weigh  with  themselves  that  they  are  now  a 
great  step  nearer  another  world  than  they  were.  A  year  is  a  very 
considerable  part  of  one's  life,  for  there  are  not  many  of  them  in  our 
whole  life.  And  if  you  be  in  case  for  passing  into  another  world, 
you  may  lift  up  your  heads  with  joy,  "for  now  is  your  salvation 
nearer,  than  when  you  believed."  But,  hearer,  if  you  be  not,  you 
should  be  stirred  up  the  more  to  make  ready. 

2.  That  they  take  a  humbling  back-look  of  their  way,  and  con- 
sider, the  many  wrong  steps  which  they  have  made  in  their  past 
years,  and  particularly  in  the  year  last  passed.     The  way  of  provi- 


70  THE  SIIORTXESS  OF  HUMAN  LIFE. 

dence  towards  tliera  in  it ;  what  mercies,  what  rods,  what  deliverances 
they  have  met  with,  and  what  improvement  has  been  made  of  them. 
Taking  up  resolutions,  in  the  strength  of  grace  to  walk  more  closely 
with  God  in  all  time  coming. 

3.  That  they  renew  their  acceptance  of  the  covenant,  and  lay 
down  measures  for  their  safety  in  another  world,  what  time  soever 
their  few  years  shall  come  to  an  end.  That  is,  that  in  prospect  of 
their  going  out  of  the  world  at  the  time  appointed  by  God,  they  do 
what  they  would  do,  if  it  were  told  they  should  never  see  the  end  of 
the  year.  Ezek.  xlv.  18 — 21.  And  it  would  be  proper  to  take  a  par- 
ticular time  for  this,  shorter  or  longer,  for  tlie  more  solemn  managing 
of  the  work.  None  should  bind  themselves  to  any  time  to  which 
God  hath  not  bound  thera  ;  but  it  were  good  to  take  the  time  most 
convenient  for  the  work. 

1.  Consider  how  many  years  have  gone  over  our  heads,  and  how 
short  way  our  business  for  eternity  is  come,  nay,  with  many  of  us  it 
is  not  yet  begun.  They  who  have  a  long  journey  before  them,  and 
have  loitered  in  the  morning,  had  much  need  to  mend  their  pace, 
■when  the  day  is  far  spent.  For  every  seven  years  any  of  us  have 
lived,  we  have  had  a  whole  year  of  sabbaths.  And  at  this  rate, 
several  years  of  Sabbaths  have  passed  with  most  of  us.  But  how 
unprepared  are  we  as  yet,  for  the  eternal  sabbath  in  the  heavens. 

2.  How  quickly  do  years  run  out,  and  make  no  stay.  They  pass 
like  a  tale  that  is  told.  And  if  we  have  more  years  yet  to  come, 
these  that  are  to  come,  will  post  away  with  no  less  speed  than  those 
that  are  now  gone,  and  will  never  return. 

3.  We  know  what  is  past,  but  what  may  be  to  come,  we  know  not. 
The  lower  end  of  our  sand  glass  of  time  is  within  our  view,  and  we 
see  what  is  run  out.  But  the  upper  end  is  covered  to  us ;  we  know 
not  how  much,  or  how  little  remains  to  run. 

4.  Our  years  once  gone,  there  is  no  bringing  thera  back  again.  If 
our  work  has  been  neglected  in  them,  it  must  lie  for  ever  undone 
for  them ;  and  we  must  either  do  and  make  up  the  former  neglect, 
by  improving  the  present  opportunity,  or  we  are  for  ever  ruined. 

Lastly,  Eternity  is  a  business  of  the  greatest  weight.  It  is  that 
in  which  we,  and  the  world  itself  too,  will  together  be  swallowed 
up.  The  great  glass  of  time  for  the  world's  duration,  was  set  up 
in  the  beginning.  Gen.  i.  It  is  not  to  be  turned  for  this  world,  but 
when  it  runs  out,  the  world  ends :  and  we  may  be  sure  it  is  towards 
the  end  by  this  time.  Now  the  happiness  of  the  other  world  is  too 
great  for  us  to  be  indifferent  about  it,  and  to  be  cheated  out  of 
it  by  Satan  and  our  vain  hearts.  The  misery  of  the  other  world  is 
too  great  a  burden  to  be   easy  about,  while  we  are   not  secured 


GODLY  EXERCISE  NECESSARY,  &C.  71 

against  it.  The  punishment  of  loss,  and  the  punishment  of  sense, 
are  things  which  require  our  utmost  care  and  concern  to  escape. 
The  eternity  and  unchaugeableness  of  these  things,  add  immensely  to 
their  weight.  There  is  no  change  there  for  ever.  But  once  happy, 
happy  for  evermore;  and  once  miserable,  miserable  for  evermore. 
Finally,  when  it  will  come  upon  us,  we  know  not.  Our  few  years 
being  come,  then  we  go,  and  shall  know  in  our  experience  what  that 
is,  about  which  we  have  so  often  heard  so  much.     Amen. 


A  Seiinon  preached  at  the    Ordination  of  Mr.  Robert  Lithgow,    at 
Askirk,  March  7,  1711. 

A  HEART  EXERCISED  UNTO    GODLINESS,  NECESSARY  TO  MAKE  A 
GOOD  MINISTER. 

SERMON  IX. 

1  Timothy  iv.  7, 

And  exercise  thyself  rather  unto  godliness. 

Two  things  are  necessary  to  make  a  good  minister  of  Jesus  Christ ; 
namely,  sound  doctrine,  and  a  holy  godly  life.  A  good  minister  is 
one  nourished  up  in,  or  with  the  words  of  faith,  verse  6.  He  does 
not  only  hold  forth  the  breasts  of  the  word  to  others,  but  sucks 
them  himself,  and  grows  by  them.  The  apostle  will  have  Timothy 
to  study  a  holy  accuracy  in  both  these ;  so  to  hold  by  the  words  of 
faith  grounded  on  divine  testimony,  as  to  refuse  all  profane  and  old 
wives'  fables:  that  is  all  impertinent  discourses  that  have  no  foun- 
dation in  the  word  of  God,  and  have  no  tendency  to  the  promoting 
either  of  faith  or  holiness.  These  he  doth  in  contempt  call  old 
wives'  fables,  which,  whether  true  or  false,  are  yet  unprofitable  and 
profane;  or  impure  and  muddy,  unworthy  of  the  heavens  and  stars, 
according  to  the  notion  of  the  word  ;  and  therefore,  as  a  Greek,  not 
to  be  brought  to  the  temple.  In  the  text  he  calls  him  to  the 
diligent  study  of  true  godliness,  in  which, 

1.  Consider  the  connection.  And,  or  but  exercise  thyself  rather 
unto  godliness.  The  refusing  of  the  one,  and  embracing  of  the 
other,  must  go  together.  There  is  an  opposition  betwixt  the  two. 
Such  impertinences  may  nourish  men's  lusts,  but  cannot  feed  their 
souls  in  godliness.     There  is  no  suitableness  in  them  for  that  end, 


72  GODLY  EXERCISE  NECESSARY 

more  than  in  ashes  to  feed  our  bodies.  They  have  no  word  of  divine 
appointment  for  that  end,  which  though  they  were  suitable,  yet 
would  be  absolutely  necessary  for  their  efficacy ;  and  therefore 
men's  souls  will  lose  by  them  instead  of  gaining.  But  there  is  a 
pleasant  harmony  betwixt  the  words  of  faith  and  true  godliness. 
The  words  of  faith  are  the  doctrine  according  to  godliness.  There 
is  a  suitableness  between  them.  And  the  words  of  faith  have  a 
■word  of  divine  appointment,  making  them  the  means  of  holiness. 
John  xvii.  17;  Rom.  x.  17-  Holiness  again  casts  a  divine  splendour 
about  the  truths  of  Grod,  to  discover  them  in  their  glory.  "  For  if  a 
man,"  said  our  Saviour,  **  will  do  his  will,  he  shall  know  of  the  doc- 
trine, whether  it  be  of  God,  or  whether  I  speak  of  myself."  Hence 
the  Christian's  practice  is,  walk  in  the  truth  ;  and  his  faith  of  the 
principles  of  religion,  is  speaking  the  truth  in  love,  Eph.  iv.  15  ; 
■which  shews  us,  that  were  truth  more  received  in  the  world,  there 
would  be  fewer  of  profane  lives :  and  were  there  more  holy  hearts 
exercised  unto  godliness,  there  would  not  be  so  many  unsound 
heads. 

2.  The  exhortation  itself,  which  is  not  to  be  taken  comparatively,  as 
if  of  two  good  things  here,  exercising  unto  godliness  were  the  best,  but 
simply  and  absolutely.  The  ministers  of  Christ,  that  would  be  good 
ministers  of  Jesus  Christ,  are  simply  to  refuse  these  profane  and 
old  wives'  fables,  and  in  opposition  to  them,  to  exercise  themselves 
to  godliness ;  to  bend  their  studies  towards  the  advancing  of  godli- 
ness in  themselves,  and  in  the  people.  Godliness  here,  comprehends 
the  whole  of  religion.  It  is  a  conformity  to  God  in  the  whole  man. 
To  this  end  we  must  exercise  ourselves.  The  word  properly  signifies 
such  exercise  as  wrestlers  and  runners  use,  to  which  the  apostle  fre- 
quently alludes;  which  was  with  all  their  might  and  skill, that  they 
might  gain  the  victory,  being  trained  up  to  it  by  frequent  practice. 
It  is  plain  from  the  following  verse,  that  the  apostle  opposeth  the 
exercise  unto  godliness,  unto  bodily  exercise,  which  denotes  ex- 
ternal exercises  in  religion,  by  which  the  body  is  exercised,  but  not 
the  spirit,  to  its  advancing  in  holiness  ;  which,  therefore,  are  not 
religion  indeed,  or  godliness.  Such  as  abstaining  from  certain 
meats,  marriage,  and  such  like  things,  verse  3.  Man  is  not  a  mere 
machine,  a  lump  of  earth,  and  therefore  godliness  cannot  consist  in 
bodly  exercise.  He  haih  a  soul  which  is  his  better  part.  It  is  a 
spirit,  as  God  is  a  spirit,  and  religion  exists  there.  The  exercise 
unto  godliness  then,  is  heart  exercise,  soul  exercise  ;  labouring  and 
wrestling  to  get  the  soul  wrought  up  into  a  conformity  to  God,  in 
holiness,  which  may  sometimes  be  alone,  (without  bodily  exercise,) 
acceptable  unto  God.     But  bodily  exercise  can  never  be  acceptable 


TO  MAKE  A  GOOD  MINISTER.  73 

without  it,  seeing  it  derives  all  its  value  from  the  soul  exercise, 
which  spiritualizeth  it.  The  apostle  does  not  simply  condemn 
bodily  exercise.  Men  may  fast,  abstain  from  marriage,  and  do  such 
things  as  may  best  contribute  to  the  prosperity  of  the  soul.  They 
may,  and  must  exercise  their  tongues,  in  praying,  preaching,  and  the 
like ;  but  in  all  these  things  they  must  be  spiritual,  exercising 
their  hearts  unto  godliness,  which  lies  inwardly. 

DocTEiNE. — A  heart  exercised  unto  godliness,  as  it  is  necessary 
unto  all ;  so  it  is  especially  necessary  to  hira,  that  would  be  a  good 
minister  of  Jesus  Christ.     In  discoursing  upon  this,  I  shall, 

I.  Shew  what  this  heart  exercise  unto  godliness  is. 

II.  The  necessity  of  the  exercise  of  the  heart  to  godliness,  to  make 
a  good  minister  of  Jesus  Clirist. 

I.  I  am  to  shew  what  tliis  heart  exercise  unto  godliness  is. 

1.  It  pre-supposeth  a  man  to  be  truly  godly.  That  professor  or 
minister  that  is  not  godly  can  never  exercise  himself  to  godliness. 
It  is  impossible  to  act  without  a  principle  of  acting,  and  exercise 
doth  naturally  require  a  power  of  it.  He  can  never  exercise  himself 
to  running,  that  wants  feet  to  ruu  with  ;  or  to  wrestling,  who  wants 
arms  ;  nor  the  ungodly  exercise  themselves  to  godliness ;  on  the 
contrary,  "  an  heart  they  ha"e  exercised  with  covetous  practices." 
There  is  more  haste  than  good  speed,  when  men  run  to  be  leaders  of 
the  Lord's  people,  ere  ever  they  have  been  taught  to  follow  Christ 
among  them.  Serious  men  will  not  dare  adventure  on  that  great 
work,  till  they  have  examined  themselves  in  the  point  of  personal 
holiness,  and  had  some  comfortable  account  of  themselves  therein. 
Our  very  calling,  supposeth  us  to  be  holy.  Dent,  xxxiii.  8.  A  slave 
to  Satan  and  lusts,  cannot  be  very  meet  to  be  a  man  of  God,  nor 
does  it  suit  well  to  preach  the  words  of  life,  with  the  grave  cloths  of 
an  unregenerate  state  upon  us.  Where  it  is  so,  it  is  sad.  For  the 
minister  himself,  that  is  an  awful  hedge  about  the  mountain  ;  "  Unto 
the  wicked  God  saith,  what  hast  thou  to  do  to  declare  my  statutes, 
or  that  thou  shouldst  take  my  covenant  in  thy  mouth  ?  seeing  thou 
hast  instruction,  and  castest  my  words  behind  thee."  It  is  a  dreadful 
work  to  be  ferrying  over  others,  with  our  own  backs  to  Iramanuel's 
land.  The  conversion  of  every  graceless  man  is  a  wonder,  but  the 
conversion  of  a  graceless  minister  is  a  double  wonder;  therefore, 
when  the  word  of  God  increased,  and  the  number  of  the  disciples 
multiplied  in  Jerusalem  greatly,  it  is  added,  and  a  great  company 
of  the  priests  were  obedient  to  the  faith.  There  is  here  particular 
notice  taken  of  the  conversion  of  priests.  The  more  frequently 
holy  things  go  through  men's  hands,  and  do  not  make  them  better, 


74  GODLY  EXKnCISE  NECESSARY 

they  harden  them  the  more.  It  is  sad  also  for  the  people.  They 
that  begin  not  at  home,  in  their  own  breasts,  to  ruin  the  devil's 
kingdom,  will  not  readily  set  themselves  to  do  much  execution 
against  it  abroad.  And  if  the  Lord  begin  a  good  work  in  a  soul 
it  is  hard  for  people  in  the  pangs  of  the  new  birth,  to  fall  into  the 
hands  of  those  who  have  had  no  experience  of  these  things  in  their 
own  souls. 

2.  Making  religion  our  business.  In  this  the  apostle  gave  him- 
self a  pattern  to  us.  "Herein,"  says  he,  "do  I  exercise  myself 
to  have  always  a  conscience  void  of  offence,  toward  God  and  toward 
men."  Godliness  should  be  our  great  work,  how  to  advance  it  in 
ourselves  and  others.  Now  we  will  make  religion  our  business,  if 
we  take  it  not  only  by  fits  and  starts,  but  make  it  our  daily  work, 
as  men  exercise  themselves  in  their  callings.  That  is  a  sad  character 
of  whom  Job  saith,  "will  he  delight  himself  in  the  Almighty?  will 
he  always  call  upon  God  ?"  But  see  our  duty  as  angels  of  the 
churches,  Rev.  iv,  8.  "  They  rest  not  day  and  night,  saying,  Holy, 
holy,  holy.  Lord  God  Almighty,  which  was  and  is,  and  is  to  come." 
The  priests  and  Levites,  in  their  attendance  in  the  temple,  "  were  to 
lift  up  their  hands  in  the  sanctuary,  and  bless  the  Lord."  Godli- 
ness is  that  holy  fire,  which  we  are  to  watch,  that  it  go  not  out  at 
any  time,  in  ourselves  or  others.  For  ministers  or  people  to  make 
religion  only  their  sabbath-day's  work  is  but  Pharaoh's  religion,  to 
serve  God  when  we  have  nothing  else  to  do.  If  the  heart  be  al- 
lowed to  rove,  and  lie  carnal  all  the  week,  no  wonder  that  it 
be  ill  to  gather  for  a  sabbath  ;  and  that  the  affections  be  ill  to 
kindle,  that  lie  drenched  all  the  week  in  carnal  worldly  things. 
Again,  we  make  religion  our  business,  if  whatever  our  exercise  be, 
we  make  godliness  still  the  scope  of  it.  "For  me  to  live,"  says 
Paul,  "  is  Christ,  and  to  die  is  gain."  This  then,  should  be  the 
scope,  that  all  the  several  lines  of  our  life  and  actions,  may  meet 
there  as  in  the  centre.  We  have  many  things  to  do  as  Christians, 
and  much  as  ministers  ;  but  happy  they,  that  make  this  the  scope 
of  all,  in  public  and  private.  The  most  holy  minister  on  earth, 
while  he  is  feeding  others  with  the  one  hand,  hath  need  to  be  put- 
ting into  his  own  mouth  with  the  other;  and  it  would  likely  do 
others  the  more  good,  that  we  had  the  relish  of  it  on  our  souls. 
How  sweet  might  our  work  of  preaching,  catechising,  reading,  and 
studying,  be  to  us,  when  thus  followed ;  not  studying  and  preach- 
ing just  for  preaching's  sake,  but  for  godliness's  sake :  that  is, 
in  effect,  for  God's  sake.  And  if  in  reading  and  meditation, 
we  be  obliged  to  go  even  without  the  compass  of  the  holy  ground, 
yet  to  manage  it  so,  as  to  bring  and  consecrate  the  spoil  to  the 
service  of  the  tabernacle. 


TO  MAKE  A  GOOD  MINISTER.  75 

3.  It  imports  a  vigorous  following  of  it,  as  wrestlers  and  runners 
ply  their  work  vigorously.  The  apostle  will  have  those  that  serve 
the  Lord  "  to  be  fervent  in  spirit ;"  seething  hot,  as  the  word 
imports;  Rom.  xii.  11.  The  word  of  the  Lord,  in  Jeremiah's 
breast,  was  as  a  burning  fire  shut  up  in  his  bones.  When  it  is  thus 
as  a  fire  in  the  heart,  it  will  not  readily  die  in  our  mouths.  Though 
burning  lips  with  a  dead  heart,  is  but  bodily  exercise  that  will  not 
profit;  and  though  it  may  gain  credit  with  men,  God  will  account 
of  it  no  more  than  as  a  potsherd  covered  over  with  silver  dross.  It 
was  John  the  Baptist's  commendation  "  that  he  was  a  burning  and  a 
shining  light."  Much  need  have  we  to  be  lively,  for  our  own  sake, 
and  the  sake  of  others. 

4.  A  resoluteness,  over  the  belly  of  all  opposition.  "  Thou, 
therefore,"  says  Paul  to  Timothy,  "  endure  hardness  as  a  good  sol- 
dier of  Jesus  Christ ;"  we  must  thus  act,  as  those  who  strive  for  the 
mastery.  Levi  will  always  finds  himself  the  son  of  the  hated,  if  he 
set  himself  to  answer  his  name,  and  set  himself  to  join  his  own 
heart,  and  the  heart  of  others  to  the  Lord.  Satan  will  oppose  the 
exercise  of  godliness  in  all,  but  especially  in  ministers;  because  a 
lively  minister  is  most  likely  to  make  a  lively  people,  and  a  dead 
minister  can  scarcely  fail  to  make  a  dead  people.  To  be  a  little 
more  particular,  I  will  touch  at  four  things. 

1.  We  should  exercise  ourselves  to  the  knowledge  of  these  things 
pertaining  to  godliness,  that  we  may  be  full  of  eyes,  and  "  by  rea- 
son of  use,  have  our  senses  exercised  to  discern  both  good  and  evil." 
Therefore,  "  we  must  meditate  upon  these  things,  and  give  our 
hearts  wholly  to  them,  that  our  profiting  may  appear  to  all." 
Solomon  lay  down  ignorant,  and  arose  wise  as  an  angel  of  God. 
Bezaleel  and  Aholiab  got  the  art  of  making  all  manner  of  work  and 
utensils  for  the  tabernacle,  in  an  extraordinary  way  from  the  Lord, 
but  others  behoved  to  learn  it,  and  be  taught  by  them.  We  must 
be  at  pains  to  get  knowledge,  and  therefore  give  attendance  to 
reading.  We  will  find  many  books  useful,  but  there  are  four,  the 
study  of  which  are  necessary  to  make  a  good  minister  of  Jesus 
Christ.  These  are,  1.  Jesus  Christ  himself,  who  is  that  body  of 
divinity  which  the  Holy  Ghost  teacheth  all  his  scholars,  particu- 
larly those  whom  he  fits  for  the  work  of  the  ministry.  "  For  we 
preach  not  ourselves,  but  Christ  Jesus  the  Lord.  For  God  who 
commanded  the  light  to  shine  out  of  darkness,  hath  shined  in  our 
hearts,  to  give  the  light  of  the  knowledge  of  the  glory  of  God,  iu 
the  face  of  Jesus  Christ."  There  is  no  saving  knowledge  of  God, 
but  in  him.  All  is  in  him,  not  only  subjectively,  but  objectively, 
"  In  him  are  hid  all  the  treasures  of  wisdom  and  knowledge.     And 

V^OL.  IV.  i 


76  GODLY  EXERCISE  NECESSARY 

in  him  dwelleth  all  the  fulness  of  the  Godhead  bodily."  Ah  !  how 
foolish  are  they  that  turn  over  many  volumes,  while  this  lieth  by 
neglected.  "  The  labour  of  the  foolish  wearieth  every  one  of  them  ; 
because  he  knoweth  not  how  to  go  to  the  city."  This  the  apostle 
resolved  to  make  his  study.  "  For  I  determined,"  says  he,  "  not  to 
know  any  thing  among  you,  save  Jesus  Christ,  and  him  crucified." 
Shame  and  blushing  may  cover  our  faces  when  we  think  on  this. 

The  second  book  is  that  of  our  own  hearts,  ourselves.  The 
beasts.  Rev.  iv.  8,  were  full  of  eyes  within.  It  is  sad  when  the 
heart  is  a  sealed  book.  Three  things,  said  Luther,  make  a  good 
minister,  temptation,  prayer,  and  meditation.  Temptation  makes 
the  man  know  his  own  heart,  if  he  be  attentive  to  observe  it :  for  it 
makes  characters  both  of  grace  and  corruption  appear.  It  is  likely 
to  be  the  best  sermon  that  is  taken  out  of  this  book,  among  the 
rest. 

The  third  book  is  God's  word,  the  Bible.  "  All  scripture  is 
given  by  inspiration  of  God,  and  is  profitable  for  doctrine,  for 
reproof,  for  correction,  for  instruction  in  righteousness.  That  the 
man  of  God  may  be  perfect,  thoroughly  furnished  unto  all  good 
•works."  If  we  would  be  good  Christians,  or  good  ministers,  we 
must  study  this,  not  simply  as  a  book  of  knowledge,  that  we  may 
speak  of  the  truths  contained  in  it ;  but  as  a  book  of  saving  know- 
ledge, that  we  may  feel  the  power  of  the  truths  of  it  on  our  hearts, 
and  may,  as  the  original  hath  it,  Rom.  vi.  17,  be  delivered  into  that 
form  of  doctrine,  as  melted  metal  cast  into  a  mould,  comes  out  with 
the  form  thereof  upon  it. 

The  works  of  God  make  the  fourth  book.  Providence  is  a  river 
continually  bringing  down  golden  ore,  in  gathering  of  which  much 
of  the  exercise  of  godliness  consists.  "  Whoso  is  wise,  and  will  ob- 
serve these  things,  even  they  shall  understand  the  loving-kindness 
of  the  Lord."  And  it  should  be  the  exercise  of  ministers  in  parti- 
cular, who  are  to  be  full  of  eyes  before,  to  observe  the  motions  of 
their  great  Master  in  his  works  as  well  as  otherwise.  The  watch- 
man that  is  not  asleep,  is  supposed  to  see  the  sword  coming. 

2.  We  should  be  exercised  in  combating  the  lusts  of  our  hearts, 
beginning  the  war  against  the  devil  at  home.  Like  Paul,  "  we 
should  keep  our  bodies  under,  and  bring  them  into  subjection ;  lest 
that  by  any  means,  when  we  have  preached  to  others,  we  ourselves 
should  be  castaways."  How  sad  will  it  be,  if  we  be  keepers  of  the 
vineyards  of  others,  yet  keep  not  onr  own,  but  let  it  be  as  the 
garden  of  the  sluggard  !  We  never  want  matter  for  this  exercise  ; 
if  we  be  secure,  at  any  time,  it  is  not  because  our  foes  are  expelled 
from  the  house,  but  because  we  see  them  not,  or  have  lost  heart  for 
the  struggle. 


TO  MAKE  A  GOOD    MINISTER.  77 

3.  "We  should  be  exercised  to  the  performing  of  our  duties,  and 
that  in  a  spiritual  manner.  Many  are  the  duties  of  Christianity 
and  of  the  ministry,  and  we  should  have  that  mark  of  sincerity, 
"  that  we  have  respect  unto  all  God's  commandments."  TTe  need 
eat  no  idle  bread.  And  we  must  exercise  ourselves  to  be  spiritual 
in  them  all,  acting  from  a  right  principle,  in  a  right  manner,  for  a 
right  end.  "  Blessed  is  that  servant,  whom  his  Lord  when  he 
coraeth,  shall  find  so  doing."  If  these  things  be  wanting,  what  we 
do  will  be  but  loathsome  bodily  exercise.  What  avails  it  though 
we  speak  with  the  tongue  of  angels,  without  a  principle  of  love  to 
God,  and  the  good  of  souls.  Though  we  should  waste  our  lungs 
and  whole  bodies,  it  is  of  no  avail,  if  meanwhile  the  base  heart  be 
swelling  with  pride.  If  our  work  be  a  sacrifice  to  self,  the  fatter 
the  more  abominable  to  God. 

4.  "We  should  be  exercised  in  the  life  of  faith,  without  which,  in 
vain  will  we  attempt  the  other  parts  of  the  exercise  of  godliness. 
"  We  must  live  by  the  faith  of  the  Son  of  God,  who  loved  us  and 
gave  himself  for  us."  I  take  this  to  be  the  soul's  constant  travelling 
betwixt  the  fulness  in  Christ,  and  the  emptiness,  nothingness,  misery 
and  poverty  in  itself.  This  we  may  take  up  in  these  two  things. 
1.  A  continual  use-making  of  the  blood  of  Christ,  to  take  away 
our  guilt,  and  new  defilement,  which  we  contract  in  every  thing. 
The  laver  stood  beside  the  altar,  in  which  they  were  to  wash  their 
hands  and  their  feet  before  they  approached  the  altar,  though  in  the 
morning  they  had  bathed  themselves.  "  Even  he  that  is  washed, 
still  needs  to  wash  his  hands  and  his  feet."  2.  A  continual  use- 
making  of  the  Spirit  of  Christ,  for  sanctification.  The  coals  with 
which  the  priests  were  to  burn  incense  in  the  temple,  were  to  be 
taken  from  the  altar  of  burnt-offering.  And  without  the  Spirit  of 
Christ,  we  and  our  duties  will  be  but  a  dead  lump.  There  is  a 
fulness  of  merit  and  spirit  in  him.  Happy  they  who  are  exercised 
by  faith  to  bring  it  in  as  a  flood  into  their  guilty  and  barren  souls. 
We  now  proceed, 

II.  To  shew  the  necessity  of  the  exercise  of  the  heart  unto  god- 
liness, to  make  a  good  minister. 

1.  It  is  necessary  to  make  a  man  faithful  in  his  work,  and  to 
cause  him  take  God  for  his  party,  with  whom  he  hath  to  do. 
"  Knowing  the  terror  of  the  Lord,  we  persuade  men."  If  the  fear 
of  the  Lord  be  not  on  our  spirits,  to  counterbalance  the  fear  of  men, 
we  cannot  avoid  being  ensnared  in  unfaithfulness.  But  a  heart 
exercised  to  godliness,  will  lead  us  on  to  act,  as  in  the  sight  of  God, 
whether  in  public  or  in  private,  that  no  souls  perish  through  our 
default.      Hence   a   man    will   not   offer  what   cost  him  nothing ; 

r2 


78  GODLY  EXERCISE  KECEfiSAEY 

because,  let  the  people  be  ever  so  few  or  injudicious,  lie  is  to  offer 
it  to  the  Lord.  Tie  will  not  keep  up  any  thing  of  the  mind  of 
God  that  may  be  profitable  to  souls,  for  God  is  his  party. 

2.  It  is  necessary  to  give  a  man  a  sense  of  the  weight  of  the  work, 
and  the  worth  of  souls,  without  which  he  cannot  be  a  good  minister. 
2  Cor.  V.  9,  10.  It  is  a  weighty  work.  "  For  we  are  unto  God  a 
sweet  savour  of  Christ,  in  them  that  are  saved,  and  in  them  that 
perish.  To  the  one  we  are  the  savour  of  death  unto  death  ;  and  to  the 
other,  the  savour  of  life  unto  life  :  and  who  is  sufficient  for  these 
things  ?"  But  it  will  sit  light  on  men  that  are  not  exercised  to  godli- 
ness, for  how  can  we  have  a  sense  of  the  worth  of  the  souls  of  others, 
if  we  keep  not  up  the  sense  of  the  worth  of  our  own  souls  ? 

3.  It  is  very  necessary  to  fit  a  man  to  suffer  for  truth.  The  Lord 
sometimes  calls  ministers  to  seal  the  truths  which  they  have  preached, 
with  their  blood.  Such  days  have  been,  and  yet  may  be.  And  a 
good  minister  must  say,  "  None  of  these  things  move  me,  neither 
count  I  my  life  dear  to  myself,  so  that  I  may  finish  my  course  with 
joy,  and  the  ministry  which  I  have  received  of  the  Lord  Jesus,  to 
testify  the  gospel  of  the  grace  of  God."  But  alas !  how  will  we 
be  able  for  this,  if  we  feel  not  the  power  of  truth  on  our  own  souls. 
The  exercise  of  godliness  has  carried  out  some  to  suffer  for  Christ, 
when  they  could  speak  little  for  him  ;  while  many  learned  heads 
but  ungodly  hearts,  have  betrayed  him. 

4.  It  is  necessary  to  give  a  man  insight  into  the  mind  of  God. 
"The  secret  of  the  Lord  is  with  them  that  fear  him,  and  he  will 
shew  them  his  covenant."  Heavenly  truths  appear  certainly  in  an- 
other lustre  to  the  exercised  soul  than  to  others.  And  the  interrup- 
tion of  this  exercise,  will  make  the  great  things  of  God's  law  appear 
even  as  a  strange  thing  to  them,  who  before  have  tasted  the  sweet- 
ness of  them.  "When  the  heart  is  sealed,  the  Bible  will  be  found 
sealed  too.  If  they  be  not  sensible  of  it  in  the  time,  they  will  be 
sensible  of  it  after  the  vail  is  taken  away.  An  exercised  heart  is 
one  of  the  best  commentaries  on  the  Bible,  when  the  soul,  upon  the 
reading  of  it,  can  say,  "  As  we  have  heard,  so  have  we  seen  in  the 
city  of  our  God." 

5.  To  make  a  man  one  that  has  interest  in  the  court  of  heaven.  I 
intend  not  to  put  the  exercise  of  godliness  in  the  room  of  Christ's 
intercession.  But  sure  it  is,  that  the  prayers  of  those  who  are  fa- 
vourites of  heaven,  have  much  influence.  It  is  of  importance  to 
think  how  the  prophet,  to  convince  the  priests  that  God  was  dis- 
pleased with  them,  puts  them  to  try  their  interest  in  the  court  of  hea- 
ven, Mai.  i.  9,  "And  I  pray  you  beseech  God,  that  he  will  be  gra- 
cious unto  us :  this  hath  been  by  your  means  :  will  he  regard  your 
persons  ?  saith  the  Lord  of  Hosts." 


TO  AlAKE  A  GOOD  MlNISTJiR.  79 

Lastly,  It  is  most  necessary  to  fit  us  for  the  performance  of  the 
several  duties  of  our  calling,  whether  in  preaching,  administering 
the  sacraments,  visiting  families,  or  the  sick.  Our  great  busi- 
ness is  to  bring  souls  to  Christ,  and  to  preach  bis  unsearchable 
riches ;  and  the  law  itself  must  be  preached  still,  in  view  to  Christ, 
as  the  only  way  to  union  with  God,  and  communion  with  him,  and 
as  the  alone  fountain  of  true  holiness ;  and  not  to  feed  people  with 
barren  discourses  of  Christless  morality.  This  is  a  great  work: 
the  apostle  calls  for  prayers  lor  his  help  in  it.  Col.  iv.  3,  4. 
Much  need  of  personal  acquaintance  with  him,  for  that  end.  For 
God  to  reveal  his  Son  in  us,  that  we  may  preach  him  among  the 
people.  Alas  !  What  hopes  can  we  have,  that  the  word  should  have 
weight  with  others,  if  it  have  none  with  ourselves.  That  is  a  sting- 
ing word,  "But  if  they  had  stood  in  my  counsel,  and  had  caused 
my  people  to  hear  my  words,  then  they  should  have  turned  them 
from  their  evil  way,  and  from  the  evil  of  their  doings."  If  they 
did  not  turn,  but  would  goto  hell,  they  should  go  with  a  witness.  To 
speak  powerfully  in  the  demonstration  of  the  Spirit,  this  is  necessary. 
The  heart  makes  the  best  oratory.  If  lusts  live  at  peace  in  our  own 
bosoms,  then  preaching  against  them  in  others,  we  will  hear  a  voice 
from  within  to  cool  our  zeal,  saying,  as  David,  "  deal  gently  with  the 
young  man  for  my  sake."  But  if  a  man  be  exercised  in  combating 
his  own  lusts,  it  will  put  an  edge  on  his  own  zeal,  when  he  comes  to  his 
own  weak  side.  It  is  exercise  unto  godliness  that  makes  a  man  speak 
seasonably,  and  to  the  cases  of  the  people  ;  and  he  that  is  most  exer- 
cised about  his  own  heart,  bids  fairest  for  opening  up  the  hearts  of 
others ;  for  as  face  answereth  to  face  in  water,  so  doth  the  heart  of 
one  Christian  to  that  of  another.  And  for  this  very  cause,  are  matters 
of  exercise  laid  in  to  ministers.  "  God,"  says  Paul,  "  comforteth  us 
in  all  our  tribulation,  that  we  may  be  able  to  comfort  them  which 
are  in  trouble,  by  the  comfort  wherewith  we  ourselves  are  comforted 
of  God.  And  whether  we  be  afflicted,  it  is  for  your  consolation  and 
salvation,  wliich  is  effectual  in  the  enduring  of  the  same  sufferings 
which  we  also  suffer  :  or  whether  we  be  comforted,  it  is  for  your 
consolation  and  salvation. 

Let  us  then,  my  brethren,  study  the  exercise  of  godliness.  Let 
this  be  our  great  work,  if  we  would  either  save  our  own  souls,  or  tho 
souls  of  others.  This  will  be  our  only  comfort  in  a  dying  hour, 
"that  in  simplicity  and  in  godly  sincerity,  not  by  fleshly  wisdom, 
but  by  the  grace  of  God,  we  have  had  our  conversation  in  the  world, 
holding  forth  the  word  of  life;"  and  this  will  be  our  comfort,  when 
we  must  leave  our  pulpits  to  others,  and  go  to  tiie  tribunal  of  our 
Master.     The  crown  ol  glory  will  be  sure  to  such  wrestlers.     But 


80  GODLY  EXERCISE  NECESSAKV  &C. 

doubly  miserable  will  we  be,  if  while  we  preach  to  others,  we  our- 
selves be  castaways. 

To  you,  the  people,  I  would  say:  1.  Embrace  godliness,  and  be 
exercised  unto  it.  It  belongs  to  you  as  well  as  to  us.  You  have  no 
dispensation  to  be  vile  more  than  we.  Ungodliness  will  ruin  you 
eternally ;  "  for  without  holiness  no  man  shall  see  the  Lord." 
Study  to  be  a  lively  people.  A  dead  people  will  do  much  to  make 
a  dead  minister.  Many  a  time  the  minister  comes  out  to  the  people, 
in  bands  laid  on  for  their  sake. 

2.  Take  kindly  whatsoever  is  said  or  done  by  us  for  the  advanc- 
ing of  godliness.  It  is  your  good  the  Lord's  servants  will  seek. 
And  true  wisdom  would  learn  you  to  love  him  best,  that  crosseth 
your  corruptions  most,  whether  in  doctrine  or  discipline. 

We  are  dying  ministers,  preaching  to  dying  people.  Other  persons 
will  shortly  get  our  pulpits,  and  your  seats.  Let  this  be  oar  joint 
exercise  while  we  live,  and  then  we  will  not  be  afraid  to  die. 

In  vain  will  we  press  men  to  bring  forth  fruit  to  God,  while  they  are 
not  married  to  Christ,  and  there  is  no  marriage  with  Christ,  without 
dying  to  the  law.  Rom.  vii.  4.  Dare  any  look  God  in  the  face  with 
their  best  works,  but  through  the  vail  of  the  flesh  of  Christ  ?  Will  we 
press  men  to  conformity  to  God,  and  not  send  them  for  it  to  Jesus, 
"  who  is  the  brightness  of  his  Father's  glory,  and  the  express  image  of 
his  person,"  whom  he  sent  down  from  heaven,  that  men  beholding  him 
by  faith,  "  might  be  transformed  into  the  same  image,  from  glory  to 
glory,  even  as  by  the  spirit  of  the  Lord."  An  eternal  barrenness  will 
be  on  our  souls,  if  influences  of  grace  for  duty,  come  not  from  heaven  ; 
and  the  falling  dew  shall  sooner  make  its  way  through  the  flinty  rock, 
than  influences  of  grace  come  from  God  to  us,  but  through  him  whom 
the  Father  hath  constituted  the  head  of  influences.  "  For  it  pleased 
the  Father,  that  in  him  should  all  fulness  dwell."  There  can  be  no 
good  fruit  but  what  grows  on  this  vine,  John  xv.  1 — 6.  Let  men 
otherwise  exercise  themselves  to  the  greatest  strictness  and  mortifi- 
cation, it  will  be  found  at  length,  not  exercise  to  godliness,  but  to 
ungodliness  ;  "  seeing  he  that  honoureth  not  the  Son,  honoureth  not 
the  Father  who  sent  him."     Amen. 


GODLY  EXKRCISE  NECESSARY,  &C.  81 

Yarrow,  March  18,  1711. 

A  HEART  EXERCISED  UNTO  GODLINESS  NECESSARY   TO  MAKE 
A  GOOD  CHRISTIAN. 

SERMON  X. 

1  Timothy  iv.  7, 
Exercise  thyself  rather  unto  godliness. 

Exercise  unto  godliness  is  now  almost  worn  out  of  the  world. 
Many  casting  off  the  very  bodily  exercise  in  religion;  few,  very 
few,  keeping  up  the  heart  exercise  of  it ;  and  it  is  our  work  to 
strive  against  the  stream.  This  is  all  the  apology  I  shall  make  to 
you,  for  preaching  upon  a  text  that  several  of  you  heard  me  upon, 
elsewhere,  not  long  ago.  There  it  was  ray  business,  to  stir  up  my- 
self, and  my  brethren  in  the  ministry,  to  the  exercise  of  godliness, 
in  order  to  make  us  good  ministers ;  and  now  I  am  to  stir  you  up 
to  it,  in  order  to  make  you  good  Christians. 

The  apostle  gives  us  here  a  short,  but  substantial  description  of 
the  Christian  life.  It  is  an  exercise,  it  is  not  a  name.  People 
must  not  think  to  take  on  a  profession  of  religion,  as  men  set  their 
foot  in  a  boat,  and  sit  there  at  their  own  ease,  till  they  be  set 
ashore.  Persons  may  reach  hell  in  this  way,  but  they  will  not 
arrive  at  heaven.  For  time  runs  with  a  rapid  course,  and  sleep 
we,  or  wake  we,  carries  us  swiftly  down  the  stream  to  eternity. 

Again,  Christianity  is  not  an  easy  exercise,  but  such  as  wrestlers 
or  runners  used,  exerting  all  their  might  and  skill  to  gain  the  vic- 
tory. We  are  not  to  expect  two  summers  in  one  year,  or  rest  here, 
and  in  heaven  also.  We  are  also  reminded,  that  Christianity  is 
heart-soul-exercise,  for  it  is  opposed  to  bodily  exercise.  It  is  not 
the  saying  of  a  prayer,  reading  a  chapter,  hearing  a  sermon,  giving 
every  one  their  due,  and  the  like.  Though  the  tongue  cry  to  God, 
as  if  it  would  rend  the  clouds,  and  the  eyes  should  help  it  forward 
with  a  flood  of  tears,  the  hands  should  deal  among  tlie  poor  all  that 
a  man  hath,  and  his  mouth  should  keep  shut  to  macerate  his  body 
with  fasting,  the  knees  should  become  hard  as  horns  with  praying, 
and  after  all  this,  the  feet  should  carry  away  the  skeleton  to  be 
burned  for  religion :  yet  if  there  be  no  more,  and  that  of  another 
kind,  it  is  all  but  vile  bodily  exercise,  that  will  leave  the  soul 
ruined  and  undone  at  the  latter  end.  "  For,"  says  Paul,  "  though 
I  bestow  all  my  goods  to  feed  the  poor,  and  though  I  give  my  body 


82  GOBLY  EXERCISE  NECESSARY 

to  be  burned,  and  have  not  charity,  it  profiteth  me  nothing."  As 
if  he  had  said,  if  ray  soul  within  me,  burn  not  as  clear  in  sincere 
love  to  God,  as  my  body  in  the  flame,  T  will  but  go  out  of  one  fire 
here,  into  another  in  hell.  So  then  true  religion  is  an  inward  thing. 
Once  more,  the  Christian  life  is  a  heart  exercise  to  the  most  noble 
end,  even  to  godliness.  It  is  not  to  get  a  name ;  nay,  it  is  not  to 
get  just  as  much  grace  as  may  keep  people  out  of  hell,  which  is  the 
utmost  bounds  of  the  ambition  of  some  ;  and  by  this  they  declare 
that  godliness  hath  never  yet  touched  them  at  the  heart.  But  it  is 
godliness,  a  conformity  to  God  in  the  whole  man.  This  is  the  scope 
of  their  exercise;  this  only  will  satisfy  the  holy  ambition,  with 
which  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord  hath  fired  their  hearts. 

Doctrine.  The  true  Christian  life  is  heart  exercise  to  godliness. 
For  illustrating  this,  I  shall, 

I.  Shew  some  weighty  truths  imported  in  this. 

II.  Some  things  in  which  the  exercise  to  godliness  consists.  I 
am  then, 

I.  To  shew  some  weighty  truths  imported  in  this, 

1.  Habitual  godliness  is  absolutely  necessary  to  salvation.  For  as 
a  man  cannot  wrestle,  that  wants  the  power  of  his  arms ;  so  neither 
can  a  man  lead  the  Christian  life,  who  is  not  a  Christian  indeed. 
"  Except  a  man  be  born  again,  he  cannot  see  the  kingdom  of  God." 
There  must  be  a  new  nature,  ere  there  be  a  new  life  pleasing  to  God ; 
for  a  new  life  with  an  old  heart,  is  but  superficial,  and  mere  bodily 
exercise.     One  dead  in  sin  will  never  exercise  himself  to  godliness. 

2.  No  person  goes  to  heaven  sleeping.  The  Christian  life  is  an 
exercise.  They  have  much  to  do,  the  Christian  race  is  to  run,  there 
are  many  enemies  to  wrestle  with,  and  the  kingdom  of  heaven  to  be 
taken  by  violence.  Most  men  look  as  if  they  expected  heaven  would 
drop  into  their  mouth,  while  lying  on  the  bed  of  sloth.  It  is  not 
our  exercise,  indeed,  that  procures  heaven,  but  it  is  a  rest  procured 
not  for  loiterers  but  labourers. 

3.  They  must  have  true  courage  that  shall  come  to  heaven.  "He 
that  overcometh  shall  inherit  all  things,  and  I  will  be  his  God,  and 
he  shall  be  my  son.  But  the  fearful  and  unbelieving  shall  have 
their  part  in  the  lake  that  burneth  with  fire  and  brimstone,  which  is 
the  second  death."  True  Christians  must  be  like  Caleb  and  Joshua 
among  the  spies,  having  their  foreheads  steeled  to  encounter  diflicul- 
ties.  It  is  only  overcomers  that  carry  away  the  crown.  The  Christ- 
ian may  have  sharp  exercise  in  wrestling.  Like  Jacob,  he  may 
have  to  wrestle  with  God  himself.  Genesis  xxxii.  24 — 30.  The  soul 
hath  hard  exercise  in  the  field  of  divine  trials,  as  in  the  case  of  a 


TO  MAKE  A  GOOD  CHRISTIAN.  83 

call  to  some  more  than  ordiuary  work,  as  wlieu  Abraham  was  called 
to  offer  up  his  son  Isaac.  In  such  cases,  armies  of  discouragements 
and  carnal  reasonings  will  attack  the  man.  These  overcame  Jonah 
for  a  time,  but  Abraham  went  actively  through.  In  the  case  of  de- 
sertions from  the  Lord  ;  here  the  Christian  is  often  wrapped  up  in  a 
cloud  of  darkness,  and  left  without  light :  armies  of  doubts  and  fears 
attack  him,  dragging  him  sometimes  to  the  very  borders  of  blas- 
phemy, Psal,  Ixxvii.  7 — 10.  He  is  carried  captive  from  Zion  to 
Sinai.  "  For  thou  writest  bitter  things  against  me"  says  Job,  "  and 
makest  me  to  possess  the  iniquities  of  my  youth."  Job  had  hard 
work,  when  he  said,  "  though  he  slay  rac,  yet  will  I  trust  in  him." 
They  have  also  to  wrestle  with  the  devil,  even  "against  principalities 
and  powers,  against  spiritual  wickedness  in  high  places."  Some 
people  find  no  difficulty  here ;  they  are  Satan's  sleeping  children, 
whom  he  will  be  very  unwilling  to  awaken  or  disturb;  but  if  any 
have  a  mind  for  heaven,  they  will  get  a  black  band  of  hellish  temp- 
tations to  wrestle  through. 

They  have  to  wrestle  also  with  the  world.  No  man  can  go  through 
it  to  heaven,  but  he  will  find  it  a  place  filled  with  snares,  and  that 
will  require  courage  to  face  the  difficulties  in  it.  "  Whatsoever  is 
born  of  God  overcometh  the  world  :  and  this  is  the  victory  that 
overcometh  the  world,  even  our  faith."  They  must  also  wrestle  with 
their  own  lusts.  They  will  have  a  war  withiu,  as  well  as  without. 
"  For  the  flesh  lusteth  against  the  spirit,  and  the  spirit  against  the 
flesh."     But  of  these  more  afterwards. 

4.  People  must  either  give  up  the  name  of  Christians,  or  else 
abandon  their  old  exercise  to  sin  and  ungodliness.  There  is  no  con- 
sistency betwixt  the  two.  "  For  whosoever  is  born  of  God  doth  not 
commit  sin  ;  for  his  seed  remaiueth  in  him,  and  he  cannot  sin  because 
he  is  born  of  God."  Every  one  has  some  exercise.  The  soul  is 
never  idle.  A  watch  frequently  goes  faster  when  wrong,  than  when 
right ;  so  that  we  call  you  not  to  more  but  to  other  exercise.  If 
there  be  a  principle  of  godliness  withiu,  however  low  it  be,  it  will 
break  forth  into  action  at  length,  and  act  like  itself.  Grace  in  the 
heart,  like  a  spring,  though  stopped  with  mud,  will  seek  a  vent  one 
way  or  another. 

Lasthj,  The  Christian  life,  is  a  spiritual  life.  "  That  which  is  born 
of  the  spirit  is  spirit."  What  avails  a  carcase  of  duties,  without 
the  life  and  power  of  godliness.  In  the  sacrifices  of  the  heathens, 
the  priest  used  to  look  to  the  lieart,  to  see  if  it  was  sound.  God 
looks  to  that  cliicfiy.  The  Christian  is  the  spiritual  man,  1  Cor. 
ii.  16.  and  his  worship  is  spiritual.  "  lie  worships  God  in  spirit  and 
in  truth."     We  now  proceed, 

II.  To  shew  some  things,  in  which  the  exercise  to  godliness  consists. 


84  GODLY  EXERCISE  NECESSARY 

1.  In  carrying  ou  a  constant  trade  with  heaven,  through  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ.  They  say  our  "  conversation  is  in  heaven,  from 
whence  also,  we  look  for  the  Saviour,  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ."  They 
keep  up  communion  with  God,  through  the  Mediator.  "  Their 
fellowship  is  with  the  Father,  and  with  his  Son  Jesus  Christ." 
This  trade  consists  in  import  and  export.  I  may  well  put  them  in 
that  order ;  for  all  the  traders  with  heaven,  go  there  empty-handed 
at  first,  and  have  never  anything  to  export  that  is  worthy,  but  what 
is  the  product  of  Immanuel's  land.  The  soul  exercised  is  taken  up, 
1.  In  exporting  all  its  guilt,  and  importing  pardons  daily.  The 
exercised  soul  finds  guilt  a  heavy  load  to  the  conscience,  yet  its 
weakness  is  such,  that  it  is  still  contracting  new  guilt,  therefore 
takes  it,  lays  it  before  the  Lord,  and  sues  out  for  pardon,  and  this 
only  through  Christ.  The  soul  dares  not,  like  the  vile  hypocrite  in 
his  bodily  exercise,  lay  down  a  confession,  a  resolution  to  mend, 
drop  a  tear,  and  then  snatch  up  a  pardon ;  but  he  goes  by  faith  to 
Christ,  dips  in  that  blood  that  is  the  blood  of  God,  and  comes  away 
clean.  He  dares  not  for  his  very  soul  touch  a  pardon,  but  what  is 
written  in  blood.  "  We  have  redemption  through  his  blood,  the 
forgiveness  of  sins,  according  to  the  riches  of  his  grace." 

Again,  the  exercised  soul  is  employed  in  exporting  his  weakness, 
poverty  and  wants,  and  importing  strength  and  fulness  from  God. 
'*  They  that  wait  upon  the  Lord,  shall  renew  their  strength."  They 
receive  also  light  and  life.  "  Cast  thy  burden  upon  the  Lord,  and 
he  shall  sustain  thee."  He  shall  never  suflPer  the  righteous  to  be 
moved.  The  soul  comes  before  the  Lord  shaken  out  of  itself,  hold- 
ing out  its  empty  vessel,  that  the  oil  of  grace  may  run  into  it ;  but 
in  the  meantime  applies  immediately  to  Christ  as  the  golden  pipe, 
through  which  alone  the  golden  oil  is  conveyed.  "  And  of  his  ful- 
ness have  all  we  received,  and  grace  for  grace."  The  exercised 
soul  knows  that  there  are  no  saving  influences  but  through  him,  no 
streams  of  light  but  what  shines  through  the  vail  of  the  flesh  of 
Christ,  and  no  life  but  what  comes  through  him  "  that  was  dead 
and  is  alive,"  and  no  strength  but  comes  from  him  "  that  hath  the 
seven  Spirits  of  God." 

The  soul  is  also  employed  in  exporting  particular  petitions,  and 
importing  answers  of  prayer,  and  returning  praises.  "  Praise  wait- 
eth  for  thee,  0  God,  in  Zion :  and  unto  tliee  shall  the  vow  be  paid. 
0  thou  that  hearest  prayer,  unto  thee  shall  all  flesh  come."  What 
are  the  prayers  of  many  but  just  bodily  exercise.  They  neither 
come  from  the  heart,  nor  does  the  heart  go  with  them,  nor  after 
them,  to  see  what  success  they  have  at  the  throne.  The  exercised 
soul  will  have  particular  suits  before  tlie  Lord,  and  will  be  waiting 


TO  MAKli  A  UOOD  CHRISTIAN  85 

on  while  the  suit  is  in  dependence,  that  a  gracious  return  may  at 
length  come.  "  My  voice  shalt  thou  hear  in  the  morning,  0  Lord  ; 
in  the  morning  will  I  direct  my  prayer  unto  thee,  and  will  look  up." 
And  this  will  be  returned  again,  in  the  voice  of  praise.  And  all 
through  Christ,  "in  whom  we  have  boldness,  and  access  with  con- 
fidence, by  the  faith  of  him."  It  was  the  custom  of  the  Molossrans, 
when  they  were  to  seek  a  favour  of  their  prince,  to  take  up  his  son 
in  their  arms. 

2.  In  a  spiritual  performance  of  duties.  Christians  "  exercise 
themselves  to  have  a  conscience  void  of  offence  towards  God,  and 
towards  man."  Leaving  the  corpse  of  duties,  which  of  itself  is  but 
bodily  exercise,  I  shall  touch  at  the  life  and  soul  of  duties,  in  which 
the  exercise  to  godliness  consists.  The  exercise  to  godliness  in  this 
point,  consists  in  these  six  things : 

1.  In  getting  the  soul  fixed  in  that  point,  what  is  sin  and  what  is 

duty  in  particular  cases,  before  we  put  hand  to  it.     "  Trust  in  the 

Lord  with  all  thine  heart ;  and  lean  not  to  thine  own  understanding. 

In  all  thy  ways  acknowledge  him,  and  he  shall  direct  thy  paths." 

It  is  surely  gross  religion,  when  people  find  a  thing  in  itself  lawful, 

they  make  no  more  questions  about  it,  and  ask  not  counsel  at  the 

mouth  of  the  Lord.     Remarkable  is  that  word,  "  ponder  the  path  of 

thy  feet,  and  let  all  thy  ways  be  established."     That  is,  though  a 

thing  seem  very  easy  to  us  at  first,  as  to  sin  or  duty,  yet  examine  it 

accurately  as  in  a  pair  of  balances.     Here  is  matter  of  exercise,  in 

which  the  soul  will  find  much  need  of  careful  noticing  of  the  word 

of  the  Lord,  that  is  a  lamp  to  the  feet,  looking  to  the  law  and  to  the 

testimony.     There  is  need  also,  of  a  wise  observation  of  Providence, 

which  in  subserviency  to  the  word,  is  the  Lord's  eye  set  on  his  people 

to  guide  them.     This  is  an  eminent  part  of  the  exercise  of  godliness. 

"  For  whoso  is  wise,  and  will  observe  these  things,  even  they  shall 

understand  the  loving-kindness  of  the  Lord.     This  must  be  attended 

with  an  humble  dependence  on  the  Lord  for  light.     "The  meek  will 

he  guide  in  judgment,  and  the  meek  will  he  teach  his  way."     This 

dependence  is  the  union  of  faith  and  self-denial,  by  which  the  soul  is 

laid  before  the  Lord  in  any  matter,  as  a  sheet  of  clean  paper,  that  he 

may  write  on  it  what  his  own  mind  is,  keeping  the  soul  in  suspense, 

till  the  Lord  himself  cast  the  balance;  not  like  those  who  dissembled 

in   their   hearts,  when    they    sent    Jeremiah    to    pray  for   them   to 

the  Lord,  "  saying  declare  unto  us,  and  we   will  do  it ;"  but  when 

he  declared  the  answer,  "  they  did  riot  obey  the  voice  of  the  Lord 

their  God."     .Jor.  xlii.  20,  21. 

2.  In  doing  the  duty  because  it  is  the  will  of  God,  which  must  be 
not  only  the  rule,  but  also  tlie  reason  of  your  duties,  otherwise  tluy 


86  GODLY  EXERCISE  NECESSAUV 

are  but  bodily  exercise.  "  I  seek  not  mine  own  will,"  said  Jesus, 
"  but  the  will  of  him  that  sent  me."  As  the  belief  of  a  truth  is  not 
faith,  unless  a  man  believe  because  God  hath  said  it;  so  a  duty  is 
not  a  part  of  godliness,  unless  it  be  done  because  God  hath  com- 
manded it.  "  I  will  keep,"  says  David,  "  the  coiumandmcnts  of  my 
God."  Now  if  a  person  does  a  thing  because  God  commands  it,  he 
will  not  stick  at  any  thing,  where  he  sees  the  will  of  God  plain, 
Gen.  xxii.  The  Christian  course  is  a  walk  unto  all  well-pleasing, 
not  of  men's  selves,  but  of  God. 

3.  In  doing  our  duty  to  the  glory  of  God.  "  Whether,  therefore, 
ye  eat  or  drink,  or  whatsoever  ye  do,  do  all  to  the  glory  of  God." 
The  end  in  all  things  is  a  piiucipal  thing,  and  a  perverting  of  this, 
perverts  the  whole  work.  Seeing  God  is  the  first  principle  of  all 
goodness,  natural  or  moral,  he  must  be  the  chief  end  of  it  also,  to 
whom  all  must  be  referred,  as  the  waters  being  lifted  up  from  the 
sea  to  the  clouds,  return  to  it  again.  And  men  may  even  as  law- 
fully make  themselves  their  God,  as  their  chief  end  in  their  actions, 
Zech.  vii.  5,  6.  God  will  never  be  the  rewarder  of  that  duty,  of 
which  he  is  not  the  end.  What  though  a  servant  work  very  busily, 
if  he  be  working  for  himself  will  the  master  own  it?  Let  a  man 
pray,  mourn,  watch,  and  do  every  duty,  all  that  is  not  enough  !  if 
God  be  not  your  chief  end  in  all  these,  they  are  but  a  costly  sacri- 
fice to  the  idol  self:  for  we  know  "  that  skin  for  skin,  yea  all  that  a 
man  hath  will  he  give  for  his  life."  Alas !  is  not  all  turned 
upside  down  with  the  most  part.  God  is  made  the  mean,  our- 
selves the  end ;  so  that  the  good  works  of  many,  are  but  a 
serving  themselves  of  God,  not  a  serving  of  God.  The  Jewish 
doctors  called  God  Place,  intimating  that  the  godly  soul  dwells 
not  in  the  barren  region  of  self,  but  in  God  ;  even  as  the  needle 
in  the  compass,  touched  with  a  good  loadstone,  turns  still  to  the 
north,  whatever  winds  blow. 

4.  In  doing  our  duties  in  the  strength  of  Christ.  "  Whatsoever 
ye  do  in  word  or  deed,  do  all  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  Jesus,  giving 
thanks  to  God  and  the  Father  by  him."  "  Even  the  devils,"  said 
the  disciples  to  their  Lord,  "  are  subject  to  us  through  thy  name." 
You  have  no  more  warrant  to  act  in  duty  from  your  own  strength, 
than  to  depend  upon  your  own  righteousness.  You  can  only  say, 
"  I  will  go  in  the  strength  of  the  Lord  God  :  I  will  make  mention 
of  thy  righteousness,  even  of  thine  only."  Men  must  act  as  they 
live,  now  the  godly  soul  lives  by  Christ.  "  He  that  eateth  my  flesh, 
and  drinketh  my  blood,"  saith  Jesus,  "  dwelleth  in  me,  and  I  in  him. 
He  that  eateth  me,  even  he  shall  live  by  me."  The  Christian 
then  must  act  by  him.     Do  you  think  that  any  fruit  will  relish  in 


TO  JfAKE  A  GOOD  CHRISTIAN  87 

heaven,  but  that  which  grows  upon  the  true  vine.  The  hypocrite  is  a 
tree  that  hath  its  own  root  in  the  ground,  hence  he  turns  into  himself, 
summoning  together  all  his  natural  powers  for  duty.  "  Thus  saith 
the  Lord,  Cursed  be  the  man  that  trusteth  in  man,  and  maketh  flesh 
his  arm,  and  whose  heart  departeth  from  the  Lord ;  for  he  shall  be 
like  the  heath  in  the  desert,  and  shall  not  see  when  good  cometh." 
But  the  godly  person  is  a  branch,  whose  fruit  depends  upon  influ- 
ence from  the  stock  to  which  it  is  united  :  hence  he  dares  not  trust 
to  his  natural  powers,  gifts,  nor  inherent  graces,  seeing  these  depend 
on  Christ,  as  light  on  the  sun,  and  are  but  rays,  not  the  fountain  of 
light.  But  he  goes  out  of  himself,  in  the  way  of  believing,  for 
duties,  saying,  "  I  can  do  all  things,  through  Christ  which  strength- 
eneth  me."  Let  men  in  their  bodily  exercise,  like  common  boatmen, 
serve  themselves  with  their  oars ;  the  soul  exercised  to  godliness, 
will  depend  on  Christ,  for  the  influences  of  his  Spirit,  saying,  "Awake, 
0  north  wind ;  and  come  thou  south  ;  blow  upon  my  garden,  that 
the  spices  thereof  may  flow  ont.  Let  ray  beloved  come  into  his 
garden,  and  eat  his  pleasant  fruits."  Isaac  was  born  of  a  barren 
woman. 

5.  In  doing  it  out  of  love  to  God  in  Christ.  I  say  in  Christ ;  for 
whatever  deluded  enthusiasts  say ;  whatever  Christless  hypocrites 
and  moralists,  who  know  not  God,  think ;  it  is  impossible  for 
a  guilty  creature  to  love  God  but  in  Christ,  seeing  God  out  of 
Christ  is  a  consuming  fire.  ""We  love  him,  because  he  first  loved  us." 
Our  love  to  God  is  but  the  reflex  of  God's  love  to  ns.  God's  love 
darts  its  beams  to  ns  no  way  but  through  the  vail  of  the  flesh  of 
Christ;  and  it  is  through  the  same  vail  our  love  returns  to  him. 
Now  the  Christian  labour  is  a  work  and  labour  of  love.  What 
comes  not  to  God  out  of  love  he  regards  not ;  for  in  that  case  he  gets 
the  hand,  but  not  the  heart. 

Lastly,  In  directing  all  our  duties  to  God,  through  Christ.  As 
grace  for  duties  comes  from  the  Lord,  so  duty  rightly  managed,  is 
the  returning  of  that  grace  to  God,  in  duty  ;  as  the  men  that  got 
the  talents,  improved  them  for  their  master.  Now  as  there  is  no 
saving  receipts  from  heaven,  but  through  Christ ;  so  no  acceptable 
returns  but  through  him.  God  will  not  hear  praise  but  through 
him,  and  the  exercised  soul  will  not  dare  offer  it  to  him  ;  but 
through  Christ.  "  Blessed  be  the  God  and  Father  of  our  Lord 
Jesus  Christ,  who  hath  blessed  us  with  all  spiritual  blessings  in 
heavenly  places  in  Christ."  Nor  a  prayer  but  what  comes  through 
his  mouth,  1  Kings  viii.  39;  nor  a  good  work  will  he  receive, 
but  what  is  dipped  in  his  blood,  though  it  were  a  sacrifice  of  our  own 
blood  for  his  cause.     The  martyrs  "  have  all  washed  their  robes,  and 


88  GODLY  EXERCISE  NECESSARY,  &C. 

made  tlieni  white  in  the  blood  of  the  Lamb."  The  Holy  One  of 
Israel  will  not  touch  an  offering,  but  what  comes  through  the  hands 
of  the  holy  Jesus.  Alas  !  many  if  they  get  some  victory  over  a 
lust,  some  steps  walked  cleanly,  they  will  go  even  forward  to  God 
with  them,  because  they  know  not  God.  Bullocks  offered  on  the 
altar  at  Bethel  were  abominable,  when  turtles  were  accepted  on  the 
altar  at  Jerusalem. 

3.  The  exercise  of  godliness  consists  in  an  habitual  and  actual 
mortification  of  lusts.  They  that  are  Christ's,  have  crucified  the 
flesh,  with  the  affections  and  lusts. 

4.  In  resisting  temptations  from  the  devil.  Above  all,  taking  the 
shield  of  faith,  wherewith  ye  shall  be  able  to  quench  all  the  fiery 
darts  of  the  wicked  one. 

5.  In  keeping  ourselves  unspotted  from  the  world,  the  things  of 
the  world,  and  the  men  of  the  world. 

6.  In  rightly  managing  the  cross,  and  extracting  the  sweet  of  it. 
Lastly,  In  the  proper  management  of  divine  trials.     The  length 

of  the  preceding  part  of  the  discourse,  prevents  me  from  illustrating 
these  particulars.  I  can  only  add  for  the  use  of  what  hath  been 
said, 

1.  It  may  strike  terror  on  the  profane  world,  who  are  exercised 
to  nothing  but  wickedness.  "  An  heart  they  have  exercised  with 
covetous  practices ;  cursed  children."  Many  will  not  so  much  as 
meddle  with  the  bodily  exercise  of  religion,  but  soul  and  body,  both 
are  devoted  to  the  service  of  the  devil.  Tour  exercise  is  coming 
when  you  will  neither  rest  day  nor  night.  "  For  if  the  righteous 
scarcely  be  saved,  where  shall  the  ungodly,  and  the  sinner  appear." 

2.  It  may  strike  terror  on  formal  hypocrites,  vrho  know  nothing 
of  religion  but  bodily  exercise,  as  if  they  were  serving  an  idol  that 
had  eyes,  but  saw  not ;  ears,  but  heard  not :  or  they  were  mere 
lumps  of  spiritless  clay,  and  the  soul  were  for  no  use  in  the  body, 
but  to  keep  it  a  while  from  rotting.  Ah  sirs !  if  this  be  religion 
that  we  have  been  speaking  of,  then  there  is  little  religion  in  the 
world.  Some  that  have  been  of  long  standing  in  a  profession,  may 
even  begin  again.  Consider  where  you  are  and  in  what  this  will 
end. 

3.  It  may  fill  the  faces  of  sleeping  Christians  with  shame.  These 
things  have  been  their  exercise,  but  they  are  not  much  engaged  that 
way  now.  Arise,  and  go  to  your  work  again.  God  will  awaken 
you  at  length,  it  may  be  in  a  very  terrible  manner;  that  though  you 
may  be  saved,  yet  it  may  be  so  as  by  fire. 

Lastly,  Let  me  exhort  all  to  godliness,  and  to  the  exercise  of 
godliness.     It  is  the  most  pleasant  life,  even  a  heaven  on  earth. 


PRIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES,  &C.  89 

"  For  wisdom's  ways  are  ways  of  pleasantness,  and  all  her  paths  are 
peace."  It  is  the  most  profitable  exercise  :  "  for  godliness  is  profit- 
able unto  all  things,  having  the  promise  of  the  life  that  now  is,  and 
of  that  which  is  to  come."  Go  to  Christ  for  it,  for  the  residue  of 
the  Spirit  is  with  him.  He  hath  the  seven  Spirits  of  God  for  dead 
souls.     Amen. 


Ettnck,   August   29,    1714. 

[Sabbath  after  the  Sacrament.] 

SEEMON    XI. 

PSALJI  Xlv.   10, 

Hearken  0  daughter,  mid  consider,  and  incline  thine  ear  ;  forget  also 
thine  own  people,  and  thy  father's  house. 

This  Psalm  is  a  marriage  song.  It  celebrates  the  marriage  of  king 
Jesus,  with  the  daughter  of  Zion,  the  church  of  believers ;  and  has 
no  respect  to  Solomon's  marriage  with  Pharoah's  daughter,  as  many 
have  thought.  For  the  royal  Bridegroom  is  here  represented  as  a 
mighty  warrior,  vers.  3,  4,  5 ;  whereas  Solomon  was  no  ways  such, 
"but  eminently  a  man  of  peace.  Besides,  how  can  what  is  said,  ver. 
6,  any  way  agree  to  Solomon.  The  apostle  expressly  determines  that 
it  is  said  to  Christ,  Heb.  i.  8.  The  first  part  of  the  psalm  is  directed 
to  Christ.  The  second  part,  which  begins  with  the  text,  is  directed 
to  his  spouse.  The  scope  of  these  words  is  not  to  solicit  the  bride's 
consent.  She  is  supposed  to  be  gained  already,  and  espoused  to 
king  Jesus,  vers.  9,  13.  But  the  design  of  the  text  is  to  shew 
Christ's  espoused  bride,  how  she  may  be  most  acceptable,  and  best 
please  her  husband,  ver.  11.  If  it  be  asked,  "Who  is  the  speaker? 
Not  to  insist  upon  the  various  conjectures  about  it,  I  think  the  same 
person  who  saith  to  the  Son,  ver.  6,  "  Thy  throne  0  God,  is  for  ever 
and  ever,"  in  the  text  speaks  to  the  spouse ;  that  is,  God  the  Father, 
Heb.  i.  8,  compared  with  ver.  5. 

These  words  then,  are  the  Father's  advice  to  the  newly  espoused 
bride,  how  she  may  please  her  husband,  his  Son.  And  in  them  is  to 
be  considered, 

1.  The  appellation  given  to  the  soul  espoused  to  Christ :  Daughter. 
Here  is  the  name  which  believers    receive.     The  person  that  natu- 


90  PHrVILEOE  AXD  nCTIES 

rally  was  a  child  of  the  devil,  on  the  espousals  with  the  Son  of  God, 
becomes  a  child  of  Ood.  Christ's  Father  accounts  the  soul  espoused 
to  his  Son,  his  daughter.  Though  he  brings  home  a  spouse  out  of 
an  ill  house,  and  has  nothing  with  her,  yet  his  Father  welcomes  her 
into  his  family,  and  gires  her  no  worse  word  than  daughter. 

2.  The  advice.  Many  consider  the  last  clause  only  as  the  advice  ; 
and  the  first  only  as  a  preface  to  it,  to  stir  up  the  spouse  to  take  the 
advice.  But  the  pointing  in  the  Hebrew,  plainly  shews  there  are 
two  purposes  in  this  verse,  and  the  connecting  of  them  with  it,  also 
confirms  it,  which  otherwise  would  be  redundant.  So  there  are  two 
parts  of  this  advice  ;  or  two  advices  here  to  the  .spouse,  how  she  is 
to  please  her  husband. 

1.  She  niu.-it  be  very  obsequious  to  her  husband,  and  in  all  things 
to  follow  him  as  his  own  shadow.  This  is  proposed  in  these  words, 
Jipyirkeri  and  comvi.er.  Hebrew,  Jiear  and  hok ;  namely,  to  thy  hus- 
band. Let  thine  ear  and  eye  be  upon  him,  to  hear  and  receive  his 
orders,  that  you  may  obey  them.  Thus  God  said  to  Abraham,  "  in 
thv  seed  shall  all  the  nations  of  the  earth  be  blessed  ;  becuuse  thou 
hast  obeyed  my  voice."  You  must  look  to  him  to  observe  his  mo- 
tions and  countenance,  that  you  may  suit  yourself  to  him  in  all 
thintrs.  This  is  what  a  dutiful  wife  owes  to  her  husband.  While 
one  is  a  single  woman,  she  Ls  mistress  of  herself,  but  when  once 
espoused  to  her  husband,  she  is  no  more  .so,  "  Her  de.sire  must  he 
to  her  husband,  and  he  shall  rule  over  her."  Her  husband's  will 
must  be  hers.  Her  ear  must  be  to  him,  and  her  eye  upon  him,  that 
she  may  please  him  well  in  all  things  lawful,  and  suit  herself 
to  his  de.sires.  So  while  you  were  not  espoused  to  Christ,  you 
took  your  own  will  ;  but  it  is  not  your  duty  to  determine  for  your- 
self, but  to  hear  and  obey  what  be  determines  you  to  do.  Your 
eye  was  upon  your  own  inclinations  to  gratify  them,  but  no«r 
it  must  be  upon  your  husband  to  suit  yourself  to  his  desires. 
"  Behold,"  says  the  psalmist,  "  as  the  eyes  of  servants  look  unto 
the  hands  of  their  masters,  and  as  the  eyes  of  a  maiden  unto  the 
hand  of  her  mistress,  so  our  eyes  wait  upon  the  Lord  our  God.  until 
that  he  have  mercy  upon  us." 

The  pointing  of  the  words  is  eraphatical.  "  Hear  0  daughter," 
are  two  words  joined  in  one,  which,  according  to  the  propriety  of  the 
language,  denotes  acceleration  from  a  vehemency  of  affection ;  so 
they  point  out  the  vehement  love  of  Christ's  Father  to  his  Son's 
spouse — his  earnestness  that  she  may  please  her  husband — and  the 
readiness  of  that  obedience  which  she  owes  to  him. 

Thoucjh  hearing  and  looking  are  two  different  act*,  yet  they  are 
here  joined  together;  denoting  that  they  do  both  together,  hear 
him,  and  look  to  him  at  once. 


OF  CHRIST  S  SPOUSE 


91 


This  is  amplified  by  the  manner  in  which  she  should  hear  him  ; 
inclining  her  ear,  as  people  do  that  do  not  hear  well,  or  that  would 
be  sure  to  hear  and  understand  well  wliat  is  spoken.  So  it  notes 
the  utmost  diligence  in  Christ's  spouse,  to  understand  her  Lord's 
mind,  and  comply  with  it. 

2.  She  must  renounce  and  leave  all  others  for  her  husband.  This 
also  according  to  the  law  of  marriage  in  the  text.  "  Forget  also 
thine  own  people,  and  thy  Father's  house."  She  must  not  so  much 
as  entertain  a  secret  desire  after  her  Father's  house.  The  more  she 
minds  them,  the  less  pleasing  will  she  be.     More  of  this  afterwards. 

Doctrine  1.  It  is  the  privilege  of  the  soul  espoused  to  Christ,  to 
be  a  child  of  the  house  of  heaven,  or  Christ's  spouse  is  the  Father's 
daughter.  This  is  the  believer's  privilege,  and  this  is  the  way  by 
which  it  is  attained.  "  To  them  that  believe  on  him,  Jesus  gives 
power  to  become  the  sons  of  God,  even  to  them  that  believe  in  his 
name."     I  shall  here  only  in«^uire  a  little  what  they  have  by  it. 

1.  That  they  may  call  God  Father,  and  that  is  of  more  value 
than  a  thousand  worlds.  The  most  profane  wretch  may  call  him 
Lord,  the  hypocrite  may  call  him  Master;  but  Father  is  a  kindly 
name,  which  only  believers  may  call  him.  They  may  at  all  times 
cry  unto  him,  "  Abba,  Father."  Abba  is  the  same,  read  it  back- 
ward or  foreward ;  and  in  all  the  changes  of  dispensation,  God  is 
still  the  espoused  soul's  Father.  Hypocrites  will  call  him  so,  but 
God  disowns  the  relation,  and  says  to  them,  "  Ye  are  of  your  father 
the  devil,  and  the  deeds  of  your  father  you  will  do."  But  he  en- 
courages his  people  to  do  it,  saying,  "  Wilt  thou  not  from  this  time, 
cry  unto  me,  my  Father,  thou  art  the  guide  of  my  youth." 

2.  Access  to  God.  They  come  much  nearer  to  him  than  others. 
They  may  come  forward,  when  others  must  stand  back.  "  In  Christ 
they  have  boldness,  and  access  to  God  with  confidence,  by  the  faith 
of  him."  God  allows  them  a  holy  boldness  and  confidence  with  him 
as  children,  to  pour  their  complaints  in  his  bosom,  to  tell  him  all 
their  wants;  and  never  did  a  father  take  so  much  delight  in  the 
talking  of  his  children  to  him,  as  God  doth  in  hearing  his  people. 

3.  Special  immunities  and  freedom.  Kings'  children  have  great 
immunities.  They  are  free  of  tribute.  But  God's  children  have  the 
greatest.  They  are  free  from  the  law  as  a  covenant  of  works,  which 
is  a  yoke  wreathed  about  the  necks  of  all  others.  Free  from  the 
curse,  which  lies  hard  and  fast  on  all  others.  Free  from  all  con- 
demnation, thundered  out  against  others  every  day.  Nay,  from  the 
hart  of  every  thing.  "  Nothing,"  says  their  husband,  "  shall  by  any 
moans  hurt  you."  Death  itself,  that  kills  others,  shall  not  hurt 
them,  Rom.  viii.  35 — 39. 

Vol.  IV.  a 


92  PKIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES 

4.  Pity,  provision,  and  protection.  The  severe  avenger  of  sin 
pities  their  infirmities,  as  a  father  pitieth  his  children.  He  that 
fights  against  the  wicked  as  an  enemy,  will  protect  them.  "  In  the 
fear  of  the  Lord  is  strong  confidence,  and  his  children  shall  have  a 
place  of  refuge."  Come  what  will,  they  shall  be  provided  for. 
Though  the  Lord  make  not  provision  for  their  lusts,  he  will  see  to 
provide  for  their  necessities.  Matth.  vi.  30 — 82. 

5.  Seasonable  correction.  "  For  whom  the  Lord  loveth  he  chasten- 
eth  and  scourgeth  every  son  whom  he  receiveth."  This  is  a  benefit 
of  the  covenant,  Psal.  Ixxxix.  30 — 32  Nothing  more  true  in  the 
way  of  privilege,  than  that  some  may  better  steal  a  horse,  than 
others  look  over  the  dyke.  Some  smart  more  severally  for  a  lustful 
look,  than  others  for  taking  their  full  swing  that  way;  some,  more 
for  deadness  in  prayer,  than  others  for  neglecting  it  altogether. 
What  is  the  reason?  A  small  fault  in  a  child  will  be  checked, 
when  a  greater  in  another  will  be  overlooked. 

6.  Perseverence.  "  The  servant  abideth  not  in  the  house  for  ever, 
but  the  son  abideth  ever."  The  term  day  is  coming,  when  Grod  and 
such  as  are  not  espoused  shall  part,  but  they  that  are,  never.  If  a 
child  wander  from  his  father's  house,  he  must  be  sought,  and  brought 
back  again.  A  servant  of  the  house,  may  be  turned  out  of  doors,  as 
Hagar  was ;  nay,  a  son  of  God  by  nature,  may  be  turned  off,  as 
Adam  and  the  fallen  angels  were;  but  they  that  are  God's  children, 
by  being  espoused  to  his  Son,  can  never,  Psalm  Ixxxix.  30 — 34, 

Lastly,  They  have  a  portion  according  to  their  Father's  quality. 
"  They  are  heirs,  heirs  of  God  and  joint  heirs  with  Christ."  So  all 
is  theirs.  Grace  is  theirs,  glory  is  theirs.  Their  portion  will  tell 
out  through  all  eternity.  Their  Father  gives  them  of  his  moveables 
as  he  sees  meet,  and  these  may  be  removed,  but  their  portion  is  not 
of  these ;  they  shall  receive  a  kingdom  which  cannot  be  moved. 

Use. — Exhortation  1.  To  such  as  are  not  espoused  to  Christ. 
Let  this  move  you  to  come  into  this  match,  that  hitherto  have  not 
given  yourselves  away  to  Christ  in  the  marriage  covenant.  "While 
you  are  so,  you  are  children  of  the  house  of  hell.  Your  father  the 
devil  has  hindered  you  from  this  match,  having  a  mind  to  bestow 
you  upon  lusts,  which  you  like  better  than  the  Lord.  But  remember 
I  tell  you,  if  any  break  not  off  this  match  in  time,  it  shall  be  con- 
summated, so  as  you  and  your  sins  shall  never  part  through  the  ages 
of  eternity.  Sin  comes  to  its  perfection  in  hell,  as  well  as  grace  in 
heaven. 

2.  You  that  are  espoused  to  Christ,  believe  that  you  are  children 
of  the  house  of  heaven ;  believe  your  privilege,  that  you  may  have 
the  free  use  of  it.      If  the   people  of  God  could  follow  it  with 


OF  cheist's  spouse.  93 

application,  it  would  be  a  powerful  mean  of  holiness.  They  would 
abhor  sin  as  below  their  dignity ;  they  would  hate  it  as  offensive  to 
their  Father;  they  would  despise  the  world  as  too  mean  a  thing  for 
one  so  highly  advanced.  The  unbelief  and  doubts  of  Christ's 
spouse,  are  no  friends  to  her  sanctification.  I  hope  some  of  you 
have  been  iu  good  earnest  engaging  with  Christ  in  the  marriagj 
covenant;  now  I  would  have  you  to  believe  that  your  husband's 
Father  calls  you  daughter,  and  looks  upon  you  as  a  child  of  his 
house. 

Objection.  How  will  I  ever  get  it  believed  ?  Answer.  If  you 
cast  not  your  eye  on  free  grace,  and  expect  not  something  from  God 
that  is  not  after  the  manner  of  men,  you  will  never  get  it  believed. 
But  I  will  offer  you  some  helps. 

1.  Have  you  accepted  of  Christ,  as  he  offered  himself  in  the  mar- 
riage covenant,  in  all  his  offices.  Were  your  hearts  joined  to  Christ 
as  well  as  your  hands ;  that  is,  that  your  souls  within  you,  did 
take  him  for  your  lord  and  husband,  for  all  and  instead  of  all, 
without  any  known  reserve ;  after  you  had  considered  his  holiness 
as  well  as  his  mercy,  his  cross  as  well  as  his  crown  ;  then  I  declare 
you  espoused  to  Christ;  John  i.  12;  Psal.  Ixxiii.  25;  and  therefore 
children  of  the  house  of  heaven,  according  to  the  text. 

2.  Are  you  striving  to  be  like  the  house  of  heaven.  One  newly 
married  and  broiight  home  out  of  her  father's  house  to  her  Hus- 
band's Father's  house,  will  be  labouring  to  suit  herself  to  the  house 
into  which  she  is  come,  and  to  lay  aside  the  manners  of  the  house 
from  which  she  came ;  especially  if  the  two  houses  are  enemies  to 
one  another,  as  in  this  case,  that  she  may  please  her  husband  and 
his  Father.  If  it  be  not  so  with  you,  though  you  be  communicants, 
I  will  not  bid  you  believe  that  you  are  children.  But  if  it  be  so, 
why  do  you  not  believe  it;  1  John  iii.  1 — 3.  Sin  and  self,  are  the 
things  in  which  the  houses  differ. 

3.  Is  the  interest  of  the  house  of  heaven  your  interest,  have  you 
joined  interest  with  that  house  ?  AVhile  the  damsel  remains  at 
home,  she  joins  interest  with  her  Father's  house ;  but  as  soon  as  she 
is  clothed  with  a  husband,  her  interest  is  divided  from  that  of  her 
father's  house,  and  she  joins  interest  with  that  of  her  husband's,  for 
now  she  is  of  that  house.  And  if  you  be  children  of  the  house  by 
espousals  with  the  Sou,  though  you  never  had  any  kindly  concern 
for  the  interest  of  Christ  before,  you  will  have  it  now :  You  will 
have  a  kindly  concern  for  the  honour  of  the  house,  the  ordinances, 
and  laws  and  manners  of  the  house,  the  children  of  the  house,  and 
all  that  you  know  belongs  to  it.  Only  let  me  tell  you  all  that  con- 
cern will  centre  in  holiness  and  the  power  of  godliness,  which  is  the 

g2 


94  PRIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES 

main  interest  that  house  is  carrying  on  in  the  world.  Your  zeal 
for  pure  ordinances,  discipline,  and  government  of  the  church,  will 
be  because  of  their  tendency  to  holiness.  Lord,  T  have  loved  the 
habitation  of  thy  house,  and  the  place  where  thine  honour  dwelleth. 
Gather  not  my  soul  with  sinners,  nor  my  life  with  bloody  men. 

Doctrine  2.  It  is  the  duty  of  the  espoused  to  Christ,  carefully  to 
hear  his  will,  and  observe  his  motions,  so  as  they  may  suit  them- 
selves to  his  pleasure  in  all  things.  Tliis  I  take  to  be  the  meaning 
of  this  first  clause.     For  explaining  this  doctrine,  I  shall, 

I.  Show  what  is  imported  in  it. 

II.  "What  it  is  for  Christ's  spouse  to  hear  his  will. 

III.  How  she  is  to  eye  him  and  observe  his  motions,  so  as  she 
may  suit  herself  to  his  pleasure. 

IV.  Give  reasons  of  the  doctrine.     We  are  then, 
I.  To  show  what  is  imported  in  it.     It  imports, 

1.  That  Christ's  spouse  is  not  left  to  walk  at  random.  She  is  to 
notice  every  step  of  her  carriage.  "  See  then  that  ye  walk  circum- 
spectly, not  as  fools,  but  as  wise."  The  careless  walking  at  all 
adventures,  is  walking  contrary  to  the  Lord,  and  is  opposed  to 
hearkening;  Lev.  xxvi.  2L  The  espoused  are  not  under  the  law  as 
a  covenant  of  works,  but  they  are  not  lawless,  but  under  the  law  to 
Christ.  The  iron  yoke  of  the  first  covenant  is  oif,  but  the  soft  yoke 
of  the  second  covenant  is  on  them. 

2.  That  those  that  are  espoused  to  Christ,  must  renounce  their 
own  will,  and  not  seek  to  please  themselves.  "  If  any  man,"  saith 
Jesus  "  will  come  after  me,  let  him  deny  himself,  and  take  up  his 
cross  and  follow  me."  Our  corrupt  self  will  seek  this,  and  that,  to 
please  itself,  as  it  was  wont  to  get  in  our  Christless  condition  ;  but 
we  must  deny  its  cravings  now,  forasmuch  as  by  our  espousals  with 
Christ,  we  have  put  our  desires  into  the  hand  of  another,  to  grant 
them  or  not,  as  he  thinks  fit,  according  to  the  law.  Gen.  iii.  16. 
In  our  espousals  we  made  this  renunciation  of  our  own  will,  let  us 
not  draw  back,  when  it  comes  to  the  point  of  practice,  lest  we  shew 
we  are  but  mocking,  not  in  earnest. 

3.  That  our  great  aim  in  all  things,  must  be  to  please  our  Lord 
and  husband,  this  is  the  law  of  marriage.  "  She  that  is  married, 
careth  for  the  things  of  the  world,  that  she  may  please  her  husband." 
This  is  the  law  of  Christ  to  his  spouse,  "  That  we  walk  worthy  of 
the  Lord,  unto  all  pleasing,  being  fruitful  in  every  good  work,  and 
increasing  in  the  knowledge  of  God."  Displease  whom  we  will,  we 
must  please  him.  Be  they  the  greatest  on  earth,  and  be  the  danger 
of  displeasing  them  ever  so  great,  we  must  not  run  the  risk  of  our 
Lord's  displeasure  for  them  all;  even  as  a  dutiful  wife  will  never 


OF  cubist's  spousk,  95 

lay  the  pleasing  of  her  husband  and  his  servants  in  a  balance.  So 
Daniel  and  his  fellows,  would  not  please  the  king,  by  worshipping  the 
golden  image  which  he  set  up. 

4.  That  we  must  trample  upon  our  own  inclinations  when  con- 
trary to  his,  and  suit  ourselves  to  his  will,  as  Abraham  did  with  re- 
spect to  offering  up  his  son.  Is  our  inclination  to  the  world  ?  it  is 
not  his  will,  therefore  we  must  subdue  this  carnal  inclination.  Is  it 
our  desire  to  be  rich  and  honourable  ?  perhaps  this  is  not  his  will, 
but  that  we  should  be  poor  and  under  a  cloud  :  we  must  suit  our- 
selves to  his  pleasure,  and  "  learn  in  whatsoever  state  we  are,  there- 
with to  be  content." 

5.  That  when  Christ's  will  and  pleasure  and  our  own  go  together, 
our  main  end  must  not  be  to  please  ourselves,  but  to  please  him. 
"  Whether  we  eat  or  drink,  or  whatsoever  we  do,  do  all  to  the  glory 
of  God."  Otherwise,  we  do  not  hearken  to  our  husband,  but  to  our- 
selves ;  as  those  who  will  please  their  husband  in  those  things  in 
which  they  please  themselves,  and  which  they  would  do,  whether 
they  pleased  their  husband  or  not.  Do  we  profess  to  hear  and  obey 
him  ?  Let  us  then  do  these  things,  that  we  may  give  contentment  to 
the  heart  of  our  Lord.  Do  we  eat  and  drink  ?  Let  it  be  because 
Christ  says,  "  thou  shalt  not  kill."  Do  we  marry  ?  Let  it  be  be- 
cause he  says,  "  do  not  commit  adultery."  Do  we  work  ?  Let  it  be 
because  he  says,  "  do  not  steal." 

6.  That  we  must  not  think  to  please  him  with  our  own  devices. 
Christ's  spouse  hearkens  and  considers  what  her  Lord  says,  that  she 
may  do  it.  The  whore  of  Rome  speaks  and  commands  for  pleasing 
Christ,  what  she  never  heard  from  himself,  and  thereby  declares 
herself  as  an  imperious  whorish  woman.  So  does  the  Church  of 
England,  contrary  to  the  duty  of  the  spouse  of  Christ ;  in  that  they 
suit  themselves  to  their  own  pleasure,  not  to  Christ's.  '*  But  in  vain 
do  they  worship  me,  teaching  for  doctrines  the  commandments  of 
men."  So  many  take  up  opinions  and  practices  which  they  never 
learned  from  Christ;  and  while  they  think  to  please  him  with  them, 
they  incur  his  displeasure,  for  thinking  to  please  him  with  the  pro- 
ductions of  their  own  fancy. 

Lastly,  That  our  ear  must  be  to  himself,  our  eye  on  him,  that  we 
may  know  his  will  to  do  it.  Psal.  cxxiii.  2,  quoted  above.  This 
implies  these  things,  that  we  must  be  content  to  know  sin  and  duty. 
Many  sit  with  much  ease  under  the  covert  of  ignorance.  What 
the  ear  hears  not,  the  heart  receives  not.  By  their  conduct, 
they  say  unto  God,  "  depart  from  us,  for  we  desire  not  the  know- 
ledge of  thy  ways."  They  entertain  their  lusts,  as  some  did  in- 
tercomrauned  persons  in  time  of  persecution  ;  they  are  content  they 


96  rRIVILEtJK  AND  DUTIES 

be  in  the  house,  but  they  do  not  desire  to  know  it.  That  not 
hearkening,  they  think  they  have  not  to  obey.  Again,  we  must 
learn  what  is  sin  and  what  is  duty  from  himself.  The  apostle 
tells  "  wives,  that  if  they  would  know  any  thing,  let  them  ask 
their  husbands  at  home."  Our  husband  is  in  heaven,  we  on  earth, 
yet  we  may  learn  of  him.  His  word  is  in  our  hands.  His  spirit 
is  into  our  hearts,  if  we  be  espoused  to  him.  We  want  not  the 
holy  oracle  to  consult,  if  willing  to  learn.  Farther,  we  must  apply 
ourselves  diligently,  to  learn  of  him  our  duty.  We  must  incline 
our  ear.  We  are  so  dull  and  slow  at  taking  up  our  duty,  there  is 
so  much  din  about  us  by  our  unruly  hearts,  while  our  Lord  puts 
our  lesson  into  our  hands,  that  if  we  do  not  take  very  great  care,  we 
may  mistake.  Finally,  we  must  hearken  with  a  readiness  to  obey, 
as  the  servant  hears  his  orders  to  do  tliem,  and  a  dutiful  wife  hears 
her  husband's  pleasure  to  suit  herself  to  it.  Ileariug  that  is  not 
for  obeying,  our  Lord  regardeth  not. 

Use. — Let  us  exhort  you  to  hear  and  observe  Christ's  motions,  so 
as  to  suit  yourselves  to  your  husband's  pleasure. 

Motive  1.  This  would  be  a  noble  evidence  that  indeed  you  are 
espoused  to  Christ.  Would  you  not  fain  know,  that  you  were 
espoused  to  Christ  for  ever,  at  the  communion  last  sabbath  ?  Would 
not  your  hearts  leap  for  joy,  to  know  that  Christ  and  you  have  met, 
never  to  part.  This  will  evidence  it.  "  For,"  saith  Jesus,  "  whoso- 
ever shall  do  the  will  of  my  Father  which  is  in  heaven,  the  same 
is  my  brother,  and  sister,  and  mother." 

2.  For  what  end  did  you  take  the  royal  bridegroom  by  the  hand  ? 
You  heard  the  laws  of  the  espousals,  that  you  were  to  renounce  your 
wills  particularly,  and  take  him  wholly,  only,  and  for  ever.  Will 
you  stand  to  it,  or  will  you  draw  back  ? 

3.  AVhich  of  the  two,  the  bridegroom  or  his  spouse,  is  most  fit 
to  be  the  guide  in  the  married  state  ?  Did  you  not  acknowledge  you 
were  not  fit  to  guide  yourselves  through  this  wilderness,  and  there- 
fore gave  up  yourselves  to  him  as  a  prophet ;  not  able  to  manage  and 
protect  yourselves,  and  therefore  gave  up  yourselves  to  him  as  a 
king  and  husband,  to  rule  and  defend  you?  Are  you  wiser  or  abler 
now  ?     Do  you  already  repent  your  choices  ? 

Lastly,  Thus  you  would  have  a  comfortable  state  till  the  great 
day  of  the  marriage.  You  shall  be  your  husband's  delight,  Psal. 
xlv.  11 ;  but  if  not,  you  discover  your  hypocrisy,  or  at  best  you 
will  grieve  his  spirit,  and  make  your  own  condition  uncomfortable. 

IL  We  proceed  to  shew,  what  it  is  for  Christ's  spouse  to  hear  his 
will.  Besides  what  hath  been  already  said,  you  must  consider  for 
this,  how  Christ  speaks  to  his  spouse,  signifying  his  will. 


OF  Christ's  spousb.  97 

1.  By  his  works.  All  the  works  of  God,  are  speaking  works. 
He  speaks  by  the  works  of  creation,  these  silent  preachers  of  his 
will,  Psal.  xix.  2 — 4.  See  how  the  Psalmist  heard  and  answered 
this  voice  of  his :  "  When  I  consider,"  said  he,  "  the  heavens  the 
work  of  thy  fingers,  the  moon  and  the  stars  which  thou  hast  or- 
dained :  What  is  man,  that  thou  art  mindful  of  him  ?  and  the  son 
of  man,  that  thou  visitest  him  ?"  The  very  heathens  are  rendered 
inexcusable,  by  this  voice  of  the  Lord,  how  much  more  Christ's 
spouse,  if  she  hear  it  not.  The  work  of  redemption  is  a  speaking 
work :  and  what  is  the  language  of  it?  "  It  is  we  are  bought  with 
a  price,  therefore  glorify  God  in  your  body,  and  in  your  spirit,  which 
are  God's."  Nay,  all  the  ten  commandments  come  to  Christ's 
spouse  in  the  language  of  the  Redeemer's  blood :  "  I  am  the  Lord 
thy  God,  which  brought  thee  out  of  the  land  of  Egypt,  out  of  the  house 
of  bondage.  He  speaks  to  his  spouse  by  the  works  of  providence. 
There  is  not  a  mercy  but  it  hath  a  voice,  nor  a  rod  thou  meetest 
with,  but  it  speaks.  "  Hear  t.hen,  0  daughter,  the  rod,  and  who  hath 
appointed  it. 

2.  By  our  own  consciences.  That  is  the  bosom  preacher,  our 
Lord's  deputy-governor,  whom  he  hath  placed  in  every  man's 
breast;  and  every  deaf  ear  turned  to  it  speaking  from  the  word,  is 
a  refusing  of  him  that  speaketh  from  heaven,  "  The  spirit  of  man 
is  the  candle  of  the  Lord,  searching  all  the  inward  parts  of  the 
belly." 

3.  He  speaks  to  us  by  the  word.  He  speaks  to  us  in  the  word 
read.  The  Bible  is  the  book  of  instructions,  which  Christ  puts  into 
the  hands  of  the  espoused,  to  shew  them  how  they  are  to  please  him, 
till  the  marriage  of  the  Lamb.  "  For  whatsoever  things  were 
written  aforetime,  were  written  for  our  learning,  that  we  through 
patience,  and  comfort  of  the  scriptures,  might  have  hope."  Tliere- 
fore,  they  who  intend  to  perform  their  vows  of  espousals,  will  be 
conversant  with  tlie  Bible.  He  speaks  also  by  the  word  preached. 
'•  He  that  heareth  you,"  said  Jesus  of  his  disciples,  "  heareth  me." 
Taking  Christ,  you  took  him  for  a  prophet,  and  by  the  minister  of 
the  word,  he  exerciseth  the  office.  So  they  that  wish  to  know  how 
to  please  Christ,  will  wait  on  the  ordinances  for  that  end. 

4.  By  his  Spirit,  whereby  we  have  the  mind  of  Christ.  "  The 
Comforter,"  saith  Jesus,  "  which  is  the  Holy  Ghost,  whom  the 
Father  will  send  in  ray  name,  she  shall  teach  you  all  things,  and 
bring  all  things  to  your  remembrance,  whatsoever  I  have  said  unto 
you."  And  your  not  hearing  him,  thus  grieves  the  Spirit,  and 
provokes  him  to  depart.  Now  our  duty  with  respect  to  these  con- 
sists in  these  two  ; 


98  PRIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES 

1.  We  mast  discern  Christ's  voice  in  one  and  all  of  these,  saying 
with  the  spouse,  "  It  is  the  voice  of  my  beloved  that  knocketh." 
Samuel  heard  the  voice  of  God,  but  thought  it  had  been  Eli's.  So 
alas  !  when  we  hear  our  duty,  ofttimes  we  do  not  take  up  God  as  the 
party  speaking  to  us,  hence  we  are  nothing  bettered. 

2.  We  must  comply  with  his  voice.  "  This,"  saith  God,  "  is  my 
beloved  Son,  hear  ye  him."  To  hear  and  not  obey,  is  but  to  expose 
yourselves  to  double  stripes.  He  is  our  Lord  and  king,  and  must 
have  oar  obedience  to  his  will  which,  in  the  day  of  espousals,  we 
take  for  our  law.  This  is  the  hearing  which  the  text  requires.  And 
so  we  must  hear  him  only  whoever  speak.  Satan,  the  world,  and 
our  lusts,  will  each  of  them  have  their  word,  and  their  will  is  always 
contrary  to  Christ's  will.  But  whatever  you  did  before,  being  now 
espoused  to  Christ,  you  are  to  hear  him  only,  giving  a  deaf  ear 
to  all  other. 

Again,  We  must  hear  him  without  disputing.  Christ's  subjects 
are  not  to  dispute  his  will,  but  to  obey.  Any  intimation  of  his  will, 
is  sufficient  to  determine  us  to  a  compliance.  "  As  soon  as  they 
hear  of  me,  they  shall  obey  me."  So  did  Abraham  obey ;  at  the 
call  of  God  he  "  went  out,  not  knowing  whither  he  went."  They  to 
whom  Christ's  bare  will  and  command,  is  not  a  sufficient  reason  for 
compliance,  give  no  evidence  of  their  being  espoused  to  him.  Fin- 
ally, we  must  hear  and  obey,  because  it  is  his  will.  To  do  his  will, 
but  not  because  it  is  his  will,  is  not  near  him  ;  for  Christ's  will 
must  be  the  reason,  as  well  as  the  rule  of  our  obedience.  Thoa 
hast   commanded   us   to   keep  thy   precepts   diligently.      We   are 

BOW, 

III.  To  shew  how  Christ's  spouse  is  to  eye  him  and  observe  his 
motions,  so  as  she  may  suit  herself  to  his  pleasure. 

1.  We  must  eye  him  as  our  Lord  and  Master,  whose  will  must  be 
our  law.  "  Behold,  as  the  eyes  of  servants  look  unto  the  hand  of 
their  masters ;  and  as  the  eyes  of  a  maiden  unto  the  hand  of  her 
mistress,  so  our  eyes  wait  upon  the  Lord  our  God,  until  that  he 
have  mercy  upon  us."  "  Have  we  given  our  ears  to  be  bored,  that 
we  might  be  his  servants  for  ever,  then  let  us  look  to  him  as  our 
master,  and  never  more  say  in  word  or  deed,  who  is  Lord  over  us. 
Let  OS  never  refuse  any  work  which  he  puts  into  our  hand,  whether 
doing  work  or  suffering  work. 

2.  Eye  him  as  our  teacher.  Christians  are  Christ's  disciples. 
Scholars  among  the  Jews,  sat  at  the  feet  of  their  masters,  as  Paul 
at  the  feet  of  Gamaliel ;  so  must  we  sit  at  our  Lord's  feet  meekly, 
and  humbly  to  learn  of  him.  It  is  little  we  know  of  God  or  our 
duty,  and  for  that  end,  we  profess  to  have  taken  Christ  for  our 


OF  Christ's  spouse.  99 

teacher.     "We  must  then  learn  of  him  what  we  are  to  do,  and  what 
to  forbear. 

3.  Eye  him  as  our  guide  and  leader.  "We  are  in  a  wilderness, 
where  we  are  apt  to  mistake  our  way.  We  will  never  get  our 
way  to  heaven  without  a  guide.  God  hath  given  Christ  for  that 
purpose,  even  a  leader  and  commander  to  the  people,  and  we 
have  been  professing  to  receive  him  as  such ;  let  us  then  keep  our  eye 
on  our  leader,  to  follow  him  whithersoever  he  goes.  "  For  this  God 
is  our  God  for  ever  and  ever;  he  will  be  our  guide  even  unto 
death." 

4.  Eye  him  as  our  last  and  chief  end,  to  whose  honour  we  may 
direct  the  whole  course  of  our  life.  I  have  set  the  Lord  always 
before  me ;  because  he  is  at  my  right  hand,  I  shall  not  be  moved. 
Self  must  no  more  be  the  mark  we  aim  at,  but  God  must  have  the 
room  of  self,  endeavouring  to  please  him  in  all  things.  Thus  the 
apostle  made  Christ  the  end  of  his  life.  "  For  me  to  live  is  Christ, 
and  to  die  is  gain." 

5.  Eye  him  as  our  witness  in  all  things.  "Wherever  we  are,  he  is 
present  with  us.  Let  us  walk  as  under  the  view  of  his  pure  eyes. 
He  sees  what  is  within  us,  as  well  as  without  us.  Let  us  take  heed 
to  our  spirits,  as  under  the  inspection  of  the  heart-searching  God. 

6.  Eye  him  as  our  Judge,  for  to  him  we  must  give  an  account. 
Did  the  thief  see  the  eye  of  the  judge  upon  him,  while  his  eyes  go 
out  after  his  covetousness,  it  would  oblige  him  to  hold  up  his  hands. 

Lastly,  Eye  him  as  our  husband.  That  is  a  name  of  love  and 
authority,  which  as  it  binds  us  to  obedience,  so  it  should  kindly 
draw  us  to  it.  And  here  should  we  observe  what  pleaseth,  and 
what  displeaseth  him,  that  we  may  carefully  follow  the  one,  and 
avoid  the  other.  This  we  may  know  both  by  the  word  and  by  expe- 
rience. An  observant  Christian  might  have  a  well  confirmed  rule 
hereby,  how  to  walk  ;  and  this  should  be  the  glass  by  which  Christ's 
spouse  should  dress  herself,  taking  up  what  pleaseth,  and  laying 
aside  what  displeaseth  her  husband. 

^e  should  also  diligently  observe  his  countenance  towards  us, 
whether  it  be  with  us,  or  turned  from  us  ;  that  if  with  us,  we  may 
be  careful  to  keep  it ;  if  turned  from  us,  that  we  may  recover  it. 
Two  things  in  which  the  spouse  of  Christ  often  shews  her  neglect  of 
her  husband. 

We  should  also  observe  his  dispensations,  and  way  of  his  dealing 
with  us.  "  Whoso  is  wise,  and  will  observe  these  things,  even  they 
shall  understand  the  loving-kindness  of  the  Lord."  Some  courses 
deprive  us  of  the  communications  of  his  love  and  Spirit.  Some 
others  make  to  us  a  prosperous  time  while  we  follow  them.     Let  us 


100  rniVILEGE  AND  DUTIKS 

eye  these,  to  follow  the  one  and  avoid  the  other.     It  now  remains, 

IV.  To  give  reasons  of  the  doctrine. 

1.  Why  these  that  are  espoused  to  Christ  should  suit  themselves 
to  his  pleasure  : 

1.  Because  we  owe  this  to  him  as  our  Lord  and  Husband,  by 
virtue  of  our  marriage  covenant,  whereby  we  have  taken  him  as  our 
Lord,  our  head ;  and  by  virtue  of  the  relation  of  which  we  claim 
the  privileges,  we  must  also  comply  with  the  duties.  "For  a  son 
honoureth  his  father,  and  a  servant  his  master."  If  we  have  any 
respect  then,  to  our  own  voluntary  covenant,  the  ordinance  of  God, 
and  the  duty  of  that  honourable  relation,  we  should  suit  ourselves 
to  his  pleasure.  This  God  has  made  the  due  of  every  husband  from 
his  relative,  and  shall  it  not  be  given  to  the  great  Lord  and  Hus- 
band of  our  souls.  "  Therefore,  as  the  church  is  subject  unto 
Christ,  so  let  the  wives  be  to  their  husbands,  in  every  thing." 

2.  Because  he  is  our  Lord  God  to  whom  we  owe  absolute  un- 
limitted  obedience.  "  For  he  is  thy  Lord,  and  worship  thou  him." 
Our  Maker  is  our  husband,  and  therefore  double  ties  are  upon  us  to 
suit  ourselves  to  his  pleasure.  Shall  not  the  Creator's  will  be  the 
creature's  law  ?  He  that  made  us,  have  dominion  over  us  ?  What 
a  strange  matter  is  it  that  the  potsherds  should  rise  up  against  the 
potter  ;  the  will  of  man  to  offer  to  take  place  of  the  will  of  God. 

3.  Because  without  controversy  he  is  fittest  to  be  head.  In  other 
cases,  the  husband  is  not  always  fitted  to  be  head  in  respect  of 
wisdom ;  yet  even  in  such  a  case,  "  the  woman  ought  not  to  usurp 
authority  over  the  man."  How  much  more  then  ought  we  to  be 
subject  to  this  husband,  who  is  light  while  we  are  darkness,  who  is 
the  wisdom  of  the  Father,  and  undoubtedly  knows  better  what  is 
good  for  us,  than  we  ourselves  do. 

4.  This  is  the  very  end  for  which  we  are  espoused  to  Christ. 
"I  have  espoused  you,"  says  Paul,  to  believers,  "  to  one  husband, 
that  I  may  present  you  as  a  chaste  virgin  to  Christ."  Man's  will 
by  Adam's  fall,  fell  to  be  at  variance  with  the  will  of  God ;  whereas 
before,  it  lay  straight  with  it.  To  recover  man  to  this  rectitude,  he 
is  united  to  Jesus  Christ,  as  to  a  husband.  And  therefore,  whenso- 
ever the  marriage  of  the  Lamb  is  consummated,  the  end  shall  be 
fully  obtained.  There  shall  never  more  be  the  least  jarring  betwixt 
the  will  of  God  and  the  saints. 

2.  Why  we  should  hear  him  and  observe  his  motions  to  that  end, 
that  we  may  suit  ourselves  to  his  pleasure. 

1.  Because  we  are  naturally  in  the  dark  as  to  what  is  his  plea- 
sure. Unknown  as  it  is,  our  hearts  are  against  it,  our  will  is  oppo- 
site to  his,  and   we  cannot  learn  it  but  from  himself.     "No  man 


OF  Christ's  spouse.  101 

hath  seen  God  at  any  time ;  the  only  begotten  Son,  which  is  in  the 
bosom  of  the  Father,  he  hath  declared  him.  Never  was  a  wild  ass 
more  nntractable  than  we  are,  much  need  then  to  learn, 

2.  Because  we  will  never  suit  ourselves  to  his  pleasure,  if  we  do 
not  humbly  keep  our  ears  and  eyes  on  him;  for  our  will  and  plea- 
sure are  the  contrary  way :  so  that,  in  scripture  phrase,  for  a  man 
to  do  what  seems  good  in  his  own  eyes,  is  the  same  as  to  do  what  is 
hateful  in  the  eyes  of  the  Lord. 

3.  Because  we  are  in  a  state  of  trial,  in  which  we  must  lay  our 
account  to  have  ill  advice  from  the  devil  and  the  world,  and  our 
ears  will  be  forced  to  hear  many  things  wrong.  So  that  there  is  a 
necessity  to  stop  our  ears  to  all  others,  and  to  keep  them  open  to 
him  alone. 

3.  Why  ought  we  to  hear  so  carefully,  inclining  the  ear  ? 

1.  Because  even  Christ's  spouse  is  dull  of  hearing.  Jesus  said, 
even  to  his  disciples,  "  0  fools  !  and  slow  of  heart  to  believe  all 
that  the  prophets  have  spoken."  Our  ears  open  easily  to  Satan's 
temptations,  but  when  Christ  speaks,  our  ears  are  heavy.  "  God 
speaks  once,  yea  twice,  yet  man  perceiveth  it  not." 

2.  Because  ofttimes  we  are  at  a  distance  from  him  when  he  is 
speaking  to  us.  Yea,  a  locked  door  between  him  and  us ;  Song  v. 
2.  Tea,  a  partition  wall  to  interrupt  the  communication;  Song  ii. 
9.  There  is  also  much  noise  about  us,  occasioned  by  Satan,  the 
world,  and  our  evil  hearts,  while  Christ  speaks  so  that  we  cannot 
bear  him. 

Use.  Of  Exhortation. — 0!  then,  whosoever  pretends  to  be  espoused 
to  Christ,  suit  yourselves  to  his  pleasure  in  all  things,  and  carefully 
hear  and  observe  his  motions  for  that  end.  Let  his  will  be  your 
will.  Suit  yourselves  to  the  will  of  his  commandments,  saying, 
"  Lord,  what  wilt  thou  have  us  to  do  ?"  To  the  will  of  his  provi- 
dence.    Do  it  cheerfully,  and  without  grudging. 

Motive  1.  Consider  what  he  did  for  us,  suiting  himself  to  our 
case.  AVhat  Zipporah  said  to  Moses,  he  may  say  to  his  spouse  :  A 
bloody  spouse  hast  thou  been  to  me.  If  cords  of  love  will  bind  us 
to  our  duty,  in  this  we  need  not  waut  them.  He  left  the  bosom  of 
his  Father,  the  hallelujahs  of  angels,  took  upon  him  our  nature,  and 
died  for  us;  and  shall  we  not  behave  dutifully  to  him,  who  did  all 
this  for  us.  Consider  Christ  pleased  not  himself,  that  he  might 
save  us  ?  His  Father  put  a  cup  of  unmingled  wrath  into  his  hand, 
and  bade  him  drink  it,  otherwise  his  designed  spouse  should  drink 
it  for  ever.  His  holy  human  nature  shivered  at  it,  saying,  "0 
Father  !  if  it  be  possible,  let  this  cup  pass  from  me  ;"  but  he  suited 
himself  to   his  Father's  will,  for  our  sake.     Besides,   has  he  not 


102  PKIAILEOE  AND  DUTIES 

bought  the  satisfaction  of  our  dutiful ness  to  him,  at  a  dear  enough 
rate.  We  had  never  stood  espoused  to  him,  had  he  not  by  his 
death,  removed  the  impediments  which  lay  in  the  way  of  it.  And 
on  every  part  of  the  spouse's  duty  to  him,  may  be  written,  "  The 
price  of  blood !" 

2.  The  angels  in  heaven,  suit  themselves  to  his  pleasure,  in  all 
things.  His  will  is  done  in  heaven.  They  run  at  his  command. 
They  stand  and  wait  his  orders,  and  the  least  piece  of  service  put  in 
their  hand,  they  refuse  not.  They  are  more  excellent  creatures 
than  we  ;  and  shall  we  not  be  ashamed  to  be  refractory  to  him,  whom 
all  the  angels  obey.  He  is  their  head  indeed,  as  well  as  ours,  but  he 
is  not  their  husband,  that  is  the  peculiar  privilege  of  the  saints. 

3.  His  pleasure  is  that  which  is  best  for  us.  He  bids  us  do  no- 
thing but  what  is  for  our  good;  yea,  for  our  best.  That  which 
seems  heaviest  in  his  pleasure  concerning  us,  is  really  for  our  advan- 
tage. "  He  even  chastens  us  for  our  profit,  that  we  might  be  par- 
takers of  his  holiness."  He  hath  so  linked  together  our  duty  and 
and  interest,  that  it  is  impossible  to  separate  them.  We  cannot 
consult  our  own  happiness,  but  by  suiting  ourselves  to  his  pleasure. 
We  cannot  be  miserable,  but  by  slighting  his  directions.  Consider 
"we  need  but  our  own  will  to  ruin  us.  It  is  a  fearful  thing  for  a  man 
to  be  given  up  to  himself,  Hosea  iv.  17.  Let  us  carve  for  ourselves, 
and  certainly  we  will  be  like  the  child  that  cuts  his  own  fingers. 
0  !  what  a  work  do  we  make  to  get  our  own  will,  and  yet  a  more 
fearful  plague  we  cannot  meet  with  out  of  hell.  A  man  left  to  him- 
self, will  be  his  own  ruin.  Whereas  on  the  contrary,  we  need  but 
suit  ourselves  to  his  pleasure,  and  we  are  happy.  We  have  then 
a  sure  hold  of  our  true  interest.  Whatever  is  his  will  concerning  his 
spouse,  is  really  best  for  her.  For  why,  is  it  the  product  of  infinite 
wisdom  mixed  with  infinite  love.  Could  we  but  believe  this,  how  easy 
would  it  be.     If  it  be  his  pleasure  thou  be  poorjand  afflicted,  it  is  best. 

4.  It  will  be  a  great  satisfaction  to  thy  Lord  and  husband,  if  thou 
suit  thyself  to  his  pleasure ;  and  would  you  not  desire  to  give  con- 
tentment to  the  heart  of  Christ,  '*  that  he  may  see  of  the  travail  of 
his  soul  and  be  satisfied  ?"  Would  you  be  lovely  in  his  eyes,  and 
have  communion  with  him,  this  is  the  way  to  attain  it,  "  for  so  shall 
the  King  greatly  desire  thy  beauty."  0  !  the  many  sweet  hours  of 
fellowship  with  heaven,  the  ravishing  sweetness,  the  blessed  com- 
munications of  the  love  of  the  Lord,  of  which  Christ's  spouse  robs 
herself,  by  neglecting  her  husband. 

5.  Your  neglect  and  refractoriness,  will  be  grieving  to  his  spirit. 
The  wicked  world  despise  his  will,  and  will  have  their  own,  if  it 
should  ruin  them.     But  shall  he  be  grieved  also  with  your  wilful- 


OF  Christ's  spouse.  103 

ness  ?  The  nearer  tbe  relation  is,  in  which  you  stand  to  him,  the 
more  piercing  is  your  neglect  of  him.  Psal.  Iv.  12.  And  the  griev- 
ing of  his  Spirit  will,  sooner  or  later,  bring  a  fearful  confusion  to 
your  case. 

9.  There  is  a  necessity  for  suiting  yourselves  to  his  pleasure. 
The  rejecting  of  his  commandments  doth  but  lay  up  matter  for  re- 
pentance for  you,  and  it  will  be  bitterness  in  the  end,  go  as  it  will, 
here  or  hereafter.  Your  struggle  with  the  will  of  his  providence  is 
a  vain  struggle,  "  for  his  counsel  shall  stand,"  and  what  he  will 
have  crooked,  thou  shalt  not  make  straight.  It  makes  it  more 
heavy  than  it  would  be.  For  fight  against  God  who  will,  he  will 
always  be  the  conqueror. 

7.  The  honour  of  your  Lord  and  husband  requires  it,  so  shall  you 
be  a  crown  to  him,  but  otherwise  a  dishonour  to  him.  Oh  !  how  is 
the  name  of  God  blasphemed  by  the  uudutiful  conduct  of  those 
espoused  to  Christ. 

8.  While  you  suit  not  yourself  to  his  will,  you  suit  yourself  to 
the  will  of  his  enemies.  There  is  no  midst.  And  what  can  you  ex- 
pect, but  the  fire  of  his  jealousy  to  burn  against  you. 

Advice.  Put  that  will  of  yours  into  the  Lord's  hand,  that  he  may 
mould  it  into  a  conformity  to  his  own.  And  believe  that  he  will  do 
it,  and  in  the  faith  of  the  promise  use  the  means.  Endeavour  to 
get  the  firm  faith  of  this,  that  what  is  his  will  is  best  for  you,  and 
apply  that  to  particulars  and  your  own  spirit. 

Advice  1.  Put  that  will  of  yours  in  the  Lord's  own  hand,  that  he 
may  mould  it  into  a  conformity  to  his  own.  "  Thy  people  shall  be 
willing  in  the  day  of  thy  power."  The  will  of  man  is  a  refractory 
piece,  which  we  can  no  more  master  of  ourselves,  than  a  child  can 
master  a  giant.  There  is  no  forcing  of  it,  and  we  cannot  bow  it  of 
ourselv^es.  Lay  it  then  before  the  Lord  often,  with  that,  "Thou 
hast  chastised  me,  and  I  was  chastised  as  a  bullock  unaccustomed 
to  the  yoke :  turn  thou  me,  and  I  shall  be  turned :  for  thou  art  the 
Lord  my  God."  He  is  a  husband  that  can  cure  the  wilfulness  of  his 
spouse,  can  give  her  heart  a  set  that  it  shall  be  according  to  his 
own.  He  is  the  only  physician  for  the  stone  of  the  heart;  and 
though  you  cannot  break  it,  put  it  in  his  hand  that  he  may  do  it. 
You  may  tell  him  where  you  are  pained,  as  the  child  cried  to  his 
mother,  my  head,  you  may  cry  to  him,  my  heart.  You  may  tell  him 
it  is  your  burden,  and  you  would  fain  be  freed  of  it,  but  you  cannot. 
You  may  lay  it  over  on  him,  that  he  may  do  that  for  you,  which 
you  cannot  do  for  yourselves. 

Advice  2.  Believe,  in  order  to  the  getting  of  your  will  suited  to 
your  Lord's  will.     Would  you  have  tliis  mountain  removed,  it  must 


104  PRIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES 

be  done  in  the  way  of  believing.  There  are  three  things  I  would 
have  you  to  believe,  1.  That  you  are  not  fit  to  be  your  own  choosers. 
All  the  saints,  in  one  voice,  have  given  this  verdict  of  them- 
selves. "  He  shall  choose  our  inheritance  for  us,  the  excellency 
of  Jacob,  whom  he  loved."  God  from  heaven  has  witnessed  it,  in  his 
giving  Christ  to  be  a  leader,  a  head  and  husband  to  them  ;  thereby 
not  trusting  them,  but  him,  with  bringing  the  children  to  glory. 
Christ  himself  has  put  this  lesson  into  our  hands  teaching  us  to  deny 
ourselves,  and  to  be  jealous  of  ourselves  The  event  has  proved  it 
often,  in  that  people  getting  their  own  will,  has  been  their  ruin. 
Psalm  Ixxviii.  29  ;  and  the  best  of  the  saints  getting  the  reins  in 
their  own  hand,  have  set  all  on  fire. 

Again,  Believe  that  whatever  is  the  Lord's  will  is  always  best  for 
you.  All  our  wilfulness  proceeds  on  a  mistake.  We  think  sinful 
liberty  best  for  us,  ease,  plenty,  and  the  like.  God  knows  it  is 
otherwise,  and  therefore  he  will  have  us  hear  him  for  our  good.  To 
help  you  to  believe  this, 

1.  Consider  God's  will  is  the  product  of  infinite  wisdom,  and  may 
we  not  trust  that  infinite  wisdom  that  contrived  the  world  with  the 
guiding  of  it?  Will  we  hold  up  our  taper  to  the  sun  shining 
in  its  brightness,  or  shall  our  weakness  pretend  to  tell  him  what  is 
best  for  his  creatures  ?  "Why  do  we  not  then  sink  down  into  our 
seats  and  say,  good  is  the  will  of  the  Lord,  and  let  him  do  what 
seemeth  him  good. 

2.  Christ  loves  his  spouse  more  dearly,  and  cares  more  for  their 
good  than  they  do  themselves,  and  so  whatever  is  his  will  for  them 
is  best  for  them.  He  loved  them  so  as  to  lay  down  his  life  for  them, 
and  may  not  that  evidence  his  will  to  be  best  for  them.  "  As  the 
Father,"  saith  he,  "  hath  loved  me,  so  have  I  loved  you."  Why 
doth  the  Father  hedge  up  his  unruly  child,  why  does  he  refuse  him 
his  will,  but  because  he  loves  him  ? 

3.  By  virtue  of  the  covenant  of  grace,  God's  glory  and  his 
people's  good  are  both  in  one  bottom,  and  cannot  be  separated.  Is 
his  will  then  always  most  for  his  own  glory,  consequently  it  is 
most  for  his  people's  good. 

4.  His  will  is  ever  right ;  it  is  seldom  but  our  will  is  wrong,  and 
never  right  when  opposite  to  his,  Deut.  xxxii.  4.  There  is  no  flaw 
in  the  way  and  will  of  God  ;  and  whatever  hardsliips  those  espoused 
to  Christ,  may  now  seem  to  see  in  it,  when  they  come  to  the  other 
world,  they  will  make  their  recantation,  and  say,  he  has  done  all 
things  well. 

Lastly,  Consider  your  experience.  Have  you  not  seen  many 
times,  how  God  has  done  you  good  against  your  wills,  good  which 
you  would  never  have  got,  had  he  given  you  your  will. 


OF  Christ's  spouse.  105 

Moreover,  consider  that  God  will  make  out  his  promise  of  suiting 
your  will  to  his,  who  have  put  it  into  his  hands,  Ezek.  xxxvi.  26,  27. 
How  shall  we  get  the  good  of  the  promises,  but  by  believing  them. 
Have  you  given  up  your  will  to  him,  to  be  rectitled  by  him,  believe 
that  he  will  do  it,  aud  it  shall  be  done. 

Advice  3.  In  the  faith  of  the  promise,  use  the  means.  Stretch 
out  the  withered  hand  to  Christ.  Labour  to  drag  your  hearts  to  a 
compliance  with  his  will  in  all  things.  "  For  to  him  that  hath  shall 
be  given."  Study  also  to  be  heavenly,  and  much  in  converse  with 
your  husband.  While  the  heart  grows  cold,  it  grows  stiff  also  ;  but 
warmed  with  love,  it  becomes  pliable.  Consider  also  the  relations 
in  which  he  stands  to  you,  as  a  Father,  Husband,  your  King,  and 
your  God.  Finally,  consider  the  vows  of  God  are  upon  you,  for 
that  effect. 


[Same  subject  continued] 

SERMON  XII. 

Psalm  xlv.  10, 

Forget  also  thine  own  people,  and  thy  father'' s  house. 

This  is  the  second  advice  given  to  the  sponse  of  Christ,  in  order  to 
the  pleasing  of  her  husband,  namely,  that  for  him,  she  renounce  all 
that  formerly  was  dearer  to  her  than  he  was.  The  advice  is  de- 
livered in  figurative  terms,  and  in  it  there  is  a  plain  allusion  to  that 
law  of  marriage,  Gen.  ii.  24,  by  which  married  persons  are  obliged 
to  prefer  their  relatives  to  their  natural  parents,  in  point  of  affec- 
tion and  interest.  "When  a  woman  is  single,  and  at  home  in  her 
father's  house,  her  affection  runs  strongest  to  her  father's  family. 
Her  interest  is  joined  with  theirs,  and  she  conforms  herself  to  them. 
But  being  married,  her  husband  and  his  family  takes  the  place  with 
her;  her  affection  must  run  strongest  towards  her  husband  and  his 
family. 

The  advice,  I  think,  is  equivalent  to  that,  "  That  ye  put  off,  con- 
cerning the  former  conversation,  the  old  man,  which  is  corrupt,  ac- 
cording to  the  deceitful  lusts."  Or  that,  "  as  obedient  children,  not 
fashioning  yourselves  according  to  the  former  lusts  in  your  ignor- 
ance."    As  if  he  had  said,  seeing  ye  arc  now  espoused  to  Christ, 


106  PRIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES, 

bring  not  your  old  manners  and  ways  into  your  new  state,  but  for- 
sake and  forget  them,  and  behave  no  more  as  your  father's  daughter; 
but  as  Christ's  spouse.     In  the  words  there  is, 

1.  The  natural  relations  of  Christ's  spouse  pointed  at,  in  contra- 
distinction to  those  of  her  husband.  She  wants  not  relations, 
indeed,  but  they  are  such  as  she  can  have  no  credit  nor  good  from 
them,  but  will  be  the  worse  of  them,  and  therefore  her  husband  has 
taken  her  out  from  among  them,  and  would  have  her  to  forget  them. 

She  has  some  that  are  her  natural  country  people,  her  own  people. 
Who  are  these,  but  the  world  that  lieth  in  wickedness;  and  before 
she  was  espoused  to  Christ,  she  was  one  of  their  own,  but  he  hath 
chosen  her  out  of  the  world.  Every  country  hath  its  own  fashions, 
and  in  former  times  she  followed  the  fashions  of  the  country  as  well 
as  the  rest. 

She  has  also  a  father's  house  in  that  country.  "Who  is  her  father 
naturally  but  the  devil  ?  John  viii.  44,  and  though  she  has  left  the 
house,  yet  he  keeps  house  there  still,  with  his  children  and  servants ; 
Luke  XV.  15.  It  denotes  the  state  of  unregeneracy,  which  men  are 
in  while  in  the  black  state  of  nature,  out  of  which,  when  they  are 
brought  to  Christ,  they  are  brought  as  it  were  out  of  their  father's 
house.  Every  house  has  its  own  fashions,  and  Christ's  spouse  fol- 
lowed the  fashion  of  the  house  as  well  as  others,  while  she  was  in  it, 

2.  There  is  the  duty  of  Christ's  spouse  with  respect  to  these. 
She  must  forget  them,  both  of  them.  And  here  there  is  something 
supposed,  that  is,  that  Christ's  spouse  is  apt  to  have  a  hankering 
after  her  own  people  and  father's  house,  even  after  she  has  left 
them,  as  Laban  alleged  that  Jacob  sore  longed  after  his  father's 
house.  There  may  be  eager  looks  back  again,  while  the  soul  minds 
them,  and  that  with  too  much  affection,  not  sufficiently  weaned  from 
them. 

There  is  something  also  expressed,  that  Christ's  spouse  ought  to 
forget  them.  Not  absolutely,  for  she  not  only  may,  but  ought  to 
mind  them  for  her  own  humiliation  and  thankfulness.  "  For  we 
ourselves  also,  were  sometimes  foolish,  disobedient,  deceived,  serving 
divers  lusts  and  pleasures,  living  in  malice  and  envy,  hateful,  and 
hating  one  another."  But  in  respect  of  affection,  her  heart  must 
be  weaned  from  them,  she  must  not  desire  to  return  to  them ;  aud 
in  respect  of  practice,  she  must  no  more  conform  herself  to  them. 
She  must  forget  also  her  people,  must  not  conform  herself  to  the 
world.  Rom,  xii.  2.  She  must  forget  also  her  father's  house,  her 
former  lusts  in  her  ignorance.  A  man's  country  is  dear  to  him,  but 
his  father's  house  is  dearer.  So  what  is  dearest  to  us  in  the  world, 
must  be  forsaken  for  Christ. 


OF  Christ's  spouse.  107 

DocTUTNE  1.  The  hearts  of  those  espoused  to  Christ,  are  often 
found  much  unweaned  from  their  father's  house  and  former  lusts, 
therefore  is  she  taught  to  forget  them.  As  it  is  with  a  childish  new- 
married  woman,  they  have  a  foolish  hankering  after  the  house  from 
which  they  came. 

I.  I  shall  show  in  what  this  unweanedness  appears. 

II.  Whence  it  is  that  those  who  are  espoused  to  Christ  are  so 
much  un weaned  from,  and  cannot  forget  their  father's  house  and 
former  lusts.     We  are  then, 

I.  To  show  in  what  this  unweanedness  from  their  father's  house 
and  former  lusts  appears. 

1.  lu  the  cooling  of  our  zeal  against  our  father's  house,  and  the 
fashions  thereof.  Our  husband's  house  and  our  father's  are  at  war 
with  each  other;  and  this  war  is  zealously  prosecuted  on  both  sides, 
by  Michael  and  the  dragon.  When  Christ's  spouse  then  remits  her 
zeal  against  sin,  she  appears  partial  in  favour  of  her  father's  house. 
Christ  finds  fault  with  her,  because  "  she  hath  left  her  first  love." 
And  so  far  as  she  is  not  with  Christ,  in  prosecuting  the  quarrel  vigor- 
ously, she  is  so  far  against  him.  So  far  as  she  is  not  gathering  with 
him,  she  is  scattering  abroad.  But  0  !  how  quickly  does  the  heart 
harden,  and  how  soon  does  sin  turn  from  being  such  a  frightful 
spectacle,  as  it  was  before,  and  at  the  espousals. 

2.  In  kindly  reflections  on  the  entertainment  in  our  father's  house, 
remembering  with  any  delight  or  pleasure  our  former  ways.  The 
Israelites  were  not  sufficiently  weaned  from  the  house  of  their 
bondage  in  Egypt,  and  they  gave  evidence  of  this  by  weeping,  and 
saying,  "  who  shall  give  us  flesh  to  eat."  We  should  never  reflect 
on  our  former  evil  ways,  but  with  shame  and  sorrow ;  but  often,  by 
kindly  reflecting  on  these  things,  we  as  it  were  return  to  our  vomit. 
And  the  looking  back  on  them  stirs  up  love,  not  loathing. 

3.  In  uneasiness  under  the  restraints  of  our  husband's  house,  saying, 
with  the  Israelites,  "  here  there  is  nothing  at  all  besides  this  manna, 
before  our  eyes."  A  heart  used  to  sinful  liberty,  cannot  easily  take 
up  with  the  restraint.  The  soul  used  to  gadding  abroad,  will  not 
easily  become  a  keeper  at  home.  But  were  the  soul  duly  weaned, 
it  would  be  very  easy  under  all  the  holy  restraints  of  the  house  of 
heaven,  and  would  find  a  free  walk  within  the  inclosure  of  the 
divine  law.  The  soul  will  say  with  David,  "  I  will  walk  at  liberty, 
for  I  seek  thy  precepts." 

4.  In  hankering  after  our  father's  house,  and  fornur  lusts,  in  our 
hearts  turning  back  to  Egypt.  Notliing  can  be  more  plain  evi- 
dence, than  these  rueful  looks  to  our  old  lusts.  This  was  the  fault 
of  Lot's  wife,  for  which  she  was  turned  into  a  pillar  of  salt,  yet  it 

Vol.  IV,  H 


1U8  TRIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES 

is  most  incident  to  the  children  of  men.  When  Adam  was  in  para- 
dise, his  heart  was  hankering  after  the  forbidden  fruit ;  and  though 
Christ  brings  sinners  into  a  paradise  on  earth,  yet  they  are  still 
greedily  looking  over  the  hedge. 

5.  In  kindly  entertaining  any  sent  from  our  father's  house ; 
by  this  people  express  their  old  kindness  to  the  house.  Our  father, 
as  long  as  we  are  in  the  world,  will  be  sending  to  us  ;  we  will  not 
want  messengers  of  Satan,  even  temptations  to  our  old  sins  ;  but  if 
we  were  duly  weaned  from  the  house,  we  would  deny  them ;  we 
would  deny  ungodliness  and  worldly  lusts.  We  would  do  with 
them,  as  Elisha  did  with  the  messenger  whom  the  king  of  Israel 
sent  to  take  away  his  head ;  we  would  shut  the  door,  and  hold  them 
fast  at  the  door,  saying.  Is  not  the  sound  of  their  master's  feet  be- 
hind them. 

But  alas !  they  are  readily  received,  they  are  welcomed  and  fed 
by  us,  according  to  their  kind.     2  Sam.  xii.  4. 

6.  In  serving  our  husband  after  the  fashion  of  our  father's  house ; 
like  a  new  married  woman,  who  though  she  has  changed  the  house, 
yet  she  keeps  the  fashions  of  that  from  which  she  came.  So  though 
the  man  will  not  neglect  prayer,  hearing,  and  other  duties,  yet  he 
is  so  far  unweaned,  that  he  performs  these  often  only  as  they  do 
who  are  still  in  his  father's  house.  This  our  Lord  peremptorily  dis- 
charges :  "  When  thou  prayest,"  says  he,  "  thou  shalt  not  be  as 
the  hypocrites  are."  He  will  have  his  own  work  done  after  the 
fashion  of  his  own  house. 

7.  In  our  stealing  visits  to  our  father's  house,  and  secret  tam- 
pering with  former  lusts.  Stealing  it  must  be,  for  our  Lord  and 
Husband  will  never  give  his  consent  to  the  meeting  again.  Ezek.  vi. 
9.  But  alas  !  how  often  is  Christ's  spouse  missed  out  of  her  hus- 
band's house  ;  her  Lord  is  seeking  her,  but  she  is  not  at  home,  but 
gadding  abroad,  even  lying  in  the  embraces  of  former  lusts  and 
lovers.  And  though  the  soul  that  is  truly  married,  will  never  rest 
there,  but  return  to  her  first  husband,  Hosea  ii.  7,  yet  that  woeful 
departing  is  a  sad  appearance  of  a  heart  unweaned  from  former  lovers. 

Lastly,  Many  that  have  been  espoused  to  Christ  before  the  world, 
but  not  from  the  heart,  quite  forsake  their  husband,  and  go  back, 
for  altogether,  to  their  father's  house  by  their  apostacy.  Like  the 
mixed  multitudes  that  came  out  of  Egypt,  but  ere  they  were  gone 
far  in  the  wilderness  sounded  a  retreat  back  to  the  place  from 
which  they  came.  "  The  dog  is  thus  turned  to  his  vomit  again  ;  and 
the  sow  that  was  washed  to  her  wallowing  in  the  mire.  These  are 
they  that  draw  back  into  perdition."  The  case  of  many,  alas  !  is 
like  that  of  the  Levite's  concubine ;   Judges  xix.     Concubines  were 


OP  Christ's  spouse.  109 

indeed  wives  contracted  to  tlieir  husbands,  though  not  with  so  great 
solemnity  as  proper  wives ;  but  they  were  bond  servants,  not  free, 
not  mistress  of  the  family,  nor  could  their  children  inherit.  She 
played  the  harlot  and  went  back,  to  her  father's  house  ;  and  though 
means  were  used,  yet  she  never  came  back  to  her  husband's  house, 
but  perished  in  the  way  she  had  chosen.     We  now  proceed, 

II.  To  show  whence  it  is  that  those  who  are  espoused  to  Christ 
are  so  much  unweaned  from,  and  cannot  forget  their  father's  house 
and  former  lusts.  There  are  some  who  have  been  joined  to  Christ 
only  by  the  hand,  who  have  given  him  the  hand,  but  never  gave 
him  the  heart.  They  are  hypocrites,  who  have  in  profession  only 
accepted  of  Christ  in  the  marriage  covenant.  Others  are  joined  to 
him  with  the  heart  who  have  really  given  themselves  away  to  Christ 
without  any  dissimulation,  as  all  true  believers  have  done.  Both 
these  may  fall  under  this  charge,  though  they  cannot  go  back  an 
equal  length  to  their  former  ways.     Now  for  the  reasons  : 

1.  The  consent  of  many  to  Christ  is  an  involuntary  consent.  It 
was  but  a  forced  pretence,  that  ever  they  came  into  the  covenant, 
no  wonder  then  that  they  quickly  look  back.  There  are  many 
things  that  may  force  a  consent  to  the  gospel  covenant  from  a  man  ; 
such  as  the  power  of  the  rod,  an  awakened  conscience,  and  the  like, 
may  do  it.  Psal.  Ixxviii.  34,  36,  37-  The  stone  thrown  up  in  the 
air,  will  fall  down  of  its  own  accord,  when  the  force  ceaseth.  So 
will  a  rod  forcibly  bowed  together  extend  itself  again,  when  the 
hand  that  bowed  it  is  removed  ;  and  a  sow  brought  into  a  palace, 
will  return  to  wallow  in  the  mire,  as  soon  as  the  restraint  is  re- 
moved. So  will  the  heart  return  that  is  driven,  but  not  drawn  by 
love,  into  the  covenant. 

2.  Because  the  heart  has  not  been  freely  loosed  from  some  one  sin 
or  another.  Satan  sometimes  makes  such  an  offer  to  his  vassals,  as 
Pharaoh  did  to  Moses.  "  I  will  let  you  go,"  said  he,  "that  you 
may  sacrifice  to  the  Lord  your  God  in  the  wilderness ;  only  you 
shall  not  go  very  far  away."  They  accept.  They  go  a  great  length 
with  that  young  man,  Mark  x.  20,  bnt  still,  as  he,  so  they  lack  one 
thing,  verse  21.  There  is  some  one  lust  or  another,  with  which 
they  can  never  freely  part.  Any  thing  but  that  they  will  do, 
and  when  they  seem  to  be  putting  their  lusts  iu  Christ's  hands  to  de- 
stroy them,  the  secret  voice  of  their  hearts  concerning  that  one  is, 
what  David  charged  Joab  concerning  Absalom,  "Deal  gently  with 
the  young  man."  And  this  serves  Satan  as  a  handle,  by  which  he 
draws  them  back. 

3.  Because  sin  has  never  been  made  bitter  enough  to  them,  they 
have    never   been   thoroughly    weaned   from   their   father's   house. 

u2 


110  PRIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES 

Hence,  they  are  as  the  drunkard,  who  says,  "  they  have  stricken  mo, 
and  I  was  not  sick  ;  they  have  beaten  me,  and  I  felt  it  not :  when 
shall  I  awake  ?  I  will  seek  it  yet  again."  Men  will  never  forget, 
nor  cease  to  suck  the  breasts  of  their  lusts,  till  God  lay  gall  and 
wormwood  on  them  in  such  measure  as  to  make  the  enjoyment  of 
them  more  bitter  than  the  want  of  them.  What  lightly  comes, 
lightly  goes.  They  who  never  had  the  fallow  ground  of  their  hearts 
ploughed  up,  and  ploughed  deep  enough,  must  needs  sow  among 
thorns.  Jer.  iv.  3,  4.  The  child  that  never  fouud  bitterness  on  the 
breasts,  is  easily  set  on  again ;  and  the  soul  that  never  tasted  the 
bitterness  of  sin,  will  break  over  purposes,  vows  and  resolutions,  to 
get  to  it  again. 

4.  Because  by  reason  of  their  not  living  by  faith  on  Christ,  they 
fiud  not  that  soul  satisfaction  in  him  which  they  expected.  No 
wonder  she  long  to  be  back  at  her  father's  house,  who  is  disap- 
pointed of  comfort  in  her  husband's.  The  heart  of  man  is  an  empty, 
hungry  thing,  that  must  always  have  something  to  feed  upon;  and 
if  it  feed  not  on  Christ,  it  will  go  back  to  feed  on  lusts.  The  mixed 
multitude  that  came  out  of  Egypt,  not  being  brought,  as  they  ex- 
pected, to  Canaan  directly,  they  soon  began  to  long  after  the  enjoy- 
ment of  Egypt. 

5.  Because  there  is  a  principle  of  corruption  in  the  best,  which 
still  inclines  the  wrong  way.  "  Bui,  I  see,"  says  Paul,  "  another  law 
in  my  members  warring  against  the  law  of  my  mind,  and  bring- 
ing me  into  captivity  to  the  law  of  sin  which  is  in  my  members." 
Hence  the  best  have  deceitful  hearts;  "yea,  deceitful  above  all 
things,  and  desperately  wicked."  They  are  as  deceitful  bows,  ever 
ready  to  carry  beside  the  mark.  They  are  difficult  to  be  known, 
and  unworthy  to  be  trusted.  The  root  of  all  sin,  the  spawn  of  all 
iniquity  is  in  them. 

We  are  naturally  simple  souls.  However  resolute  and  peremp- 
tory we  may  be  in  things  carnal,  we  are  all  of  an  easy  temper,  easily 
led  aside  to  our  own  spiritual  loss :  easily  beguiled  in  things  that 
concern  our  souls'  welfare.  Esau,  though  a  cunning  hunter,  was 
easily  betrayed  in  the  matter  of  the  birthright. 

We  are  also  unstable  souls.  Unstable  as  water.  A  good  frame 
is  hard  to  get,  and  easily  lost.  It  is  like  letters  written  in  the 
sand,  that  a  blast  of  wind  doth  obliterate.  Hence  the  soul  often 
turns  aside  very  quickly,  and  on  very  slender  occasions,  as  Peter  at 
the  voice  of  a  maid,  and  that  even  soon  after  some  remarkable 
manifestations  from  the  Lord.  Thus  it  is  said,  that  even  "the  dis- 
ciples considered  not  the  miracles  of  the  loaves,  for  their  heart  was 
hardened." 


OF  Christ's  spouse.  Ill 

Lastly,  Because  those  of  our  father's  house  are  still  exerting  them- 
selves to  make  those  espoused  to  Christ  to  keep  up  their  former 
correspondence  with  them.  While  we  are  in  the  world,  we  will  not 
want  temptations.  Satan  is  very  diligent  to  improve  all  opportu- 
nities to  make  Christ's  spouse  deal  falsely  in  her  covenant.  "  Be 
sober,  be  vigilant,  because  your  adversary  the  devil,  as  a  roaring 
lion,  walketh  about,  seeking  whom  he  may  devour."  He  is  a  subtile 
enemy,  and  has  his  devices,  by  which  to  entrap  unwary  souls.  So 
we  may  blame  our  unwatchfulness  for  this. 

Use  1.  This  may  serve  for  our  conviction  and  hnrailiation.  "We 
may  lament  and  be  ashamed  of  this  bias  of  our  hearts,  so  ready  to 
look  back  to  our  former  lusts,  and  after  vows  to  make  inquiry. 
Alas  !  are  we  not  already  found  guilty  in  this  point.  How  quickly 
is  our  zeal  gone  against  our  father's  house,  &c. 

Use  2.  Beware  of  looking  back,  and  of  hankering  desires  after 
your  father's  house  and  former  lusts.     For  motives,  consider, 

1.  The  evil  of  this,  the  retaining  any  kindness  to  your  former 
lusts  in  your  ignorance,  will  be  very  grievous  to  the  Spirit  of  Christ, 
whom  you  call  your  Lord  and  Husband.  And  no  wonder,  will  you 
love  thera  that  hate  the  Lord,  will  you  retain  kindness  to  the 
enemies  of  your  Lord ;  will  you  embrace  those  that  were  the  cause 
of  his  death,  and  long  to  return  to  these,  to  deliver  you  from  which 
Christ  has  done  and  suffered  so  much. 

2.  It  will  mar  your  communion  with  Christ.  If  you  grieve  his 
Spirit,  he  will  depart.  If  you  do  not  leave  off  your  adulterous 
glances  to  your  idols,  it  will  procure  you  his  frowns  instead  of  his 
smiles.  If  we  regard  iniquity  in  our  hearts,  the  Lord  will  not  hear 
us.  So  much  of  our  hearts  as  our  lusts  get,  so  much  Christ  loseth  of 
them ;  and  so  much  as  we  enjoy  of  them,  so  much  we  lose  of  the 
enjoyment  of  the  Lord.  Our  loss,  therefore,  will  be  far  greater 
than  our  gain. 

3.  It  will  keep  you  still  unfixed  and  unstable  in  religion,  so  as 
you  shall  not  make  progress  in  it.  They  will  never  look  to  purpose 
to  the  house  of  their  husband,  nor  duly  take  his  interest  to  heart, 
that  do  not  forget  their  father's  house.  A  divided  heart  will  never 
be  hearty  for  the  Lord. 

4.  It  is  very  dishonourable  to  Christ.  Is  not  this  blessed  match 
with  the  Son  of  God  sufficient  to  compensate  the  loss  of  what  you 
had  in  your  father's  house.  Can  any  tiling  be  more  dishonourable 
than  that  the  soul  should  still  be  hankering  to  be  away,  as  if  they 
repented  the  bargain  with  the  Lord  of  glory. 

Lastly,  It  is  the  fountain  of  apostacy.  They  that  are  often  look- 
ing away,  will  be  fair  to  break  away  at  length.     The  way  of  siu  is 


112  PKIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES 

down  the  hill,  from  less  to  greater.     This  is  the  blowing  of  the  coal, 
which  in  time  may  proceed  to  a  consuming  flame. 

Doctrine  2.  Those  that  are  espoused  to  Christ,  must  forget  their 
own  people  and  their  father's  house.  There  are  two  points  here  : 
namely,  first,  the  forgetting  of  our  own  people ;  and  secondly,  the 
forgetting  of  onr  father's  house.  I  will  speak  to  these  in  order. 
And  in  speaking,  first,  of  forgetting  onr  own  people,  I  shall, 

I.  Shew  who  are  our  own  people,  whom  we  must  forget. 

II.  In  what  respects  we  must  forget  them. 

III.  Why  we  must  forget  them.      1  am  then, 

I.  To  shew  who  are  our  own  people,  whom  we  must  forget.  In  a 
word,  it  is  the  wicked  livrorld,  "  the  children  of  disobedience,  among 
whom,  in  time  past,  we  had  our  conversation."  When  the  soul 
comes  to  Christ,  it  must  say  as  Ruth  to  Naomi,  "  thy  people  shall 
be  my  people,  and  thy  God  my  God."  When  Christ  calls  a  soul  to 
himself,  he  calls  it  out  of  the  world.  The  church  is  a  congregation 
gathered  out  of,  and  separated  from  the  world ;  though  not  in  place, 
yet  in  respect  of  affection,  which  is  the  greatest  separation.  But  to 
be  more  particular,  a  saint  may  know  who  are  his  own  people,  by 
taking  a  look  of  himself,  as  corrupt  and  carnal. 

1.  Then  they  are  our  own  people,  who  are  yet  living  in  darkness, 
unacquainted  with  the  corruption  of  their  nature,  and  misery  of  it ; 
strangers  to  the  spirituality  of  the  law  of  God ;  strangers  to  the 
majesty  and  holiness  of  God,  their  absolute  need  of  Christ,  and  his 
preciousness  and  excellency.  The  saints  may  remember  the  day  in 
which  they  lived  in  that  same  region  of  darkness,  and  knew  not 
more  of  these  things  than  they,  and  may  hence  conclude  these  are 
their  own  people.  "  Be  not  ye  therefore  partakers  with  them. 
For  ye  were  sometimes  darkness,  but  now  are  ye  light  in  the  Lord  : 
walk  as  children  of  the  light." 

2.  They  who  are  living  in  the  same  way  and  manner  that  the 
spouse  of  Christ  did  before  her  espousals ;  they  are  their  own  people 
walking  on  in  the  way  which  they  have  left ;  Eph.  ii.  2,  3.  Are 
they  following  the  course  of  the  world  ?  do  they  venture  frankly 
over  the  hedge  of  God's  laws?  You  may  know,  then,  by  your 
former  conversation,  that  they  are  your  own  people,  from  amongst 
whom  Christ  plucked  you,  as  brands  out  of  the  burning. 

3.  They  who  are  going  the  same  way  your  carnal  hearts  would  go, 
if  they  were  left  to  their  own  corrupt  choice.  These  are  your  own 
people ;  for  as  in  water  face  answers  to  face,  so  do  your  hearts, 
as  corrupt,  answer  to  theirs.  It  is  grace  only  that  makes  the  differ- 
ence, for  the  same  nature  is  in  both,  only  the  power  of  that  corrupt 


OF  CHRIST  S  SPOUSE.  113 

nature  is  broken  in  those  that  are  espoused  to  Christ,  but  it  is  entire 
in  others.  There  is  another  principle  beside  it  in  the  godly,  but  it 
is  alone,  and  sways  all,  in  others. 

4.  They  who  are  living  in  the  same  barren  region,  in  which  the 
saints  lived,  before  their  espousals  to  Christ.  The  state  of  nature 
is  that  barren  region  ;  that  is  a  far  country,  far  from  God  and  his 
covenant,  and  therefore  there  is  no  communication  betwixt  God  and 
them,  no  influences  for  making  them  fruitful  in  the  works  of  holi- 
ness ;  but  a  fulness  of  these  our  grapes  of  wickedness.  These  are 
our  own  people  :  "  For  we  ourselves  also  were  sometimes  foolish, 
disobedient,  deceived,  serving  divers  lusts  and  pleasures,  living  in 
malice  and  envy  ;  hateful,  and  hating  one  another."  We  now  pro- 
ceed, 

II.  To  shew  in  what  respects  we  must  forget  them. 

1.  We  must  forsake  their  company;  it  is  evil  company,  unbe- 
coming Christ's  spouse.  "  Forsake  the  foolish  and  live,  and  go  iu 
the  way  of  understanding."  While  we  are  in  the  world,  indeed, 
there  is  no  shunning  of  evil  men  altogether  ;  but  you  must  not  make 
wicked  men  your  familiar  friends,  you  must  not  choose  their  com- 
pany ;  and  if  necessity  lead  you  into  their  company,  you  must  take 
heed  to  yourselves  in  it,  and  haste  out  of  it  as  a  plague  house. 
They  that  are  espoused  to  Christ,  and  yet  keep  wicked  company  as 
before,  give  no  great  evidence  of  their  sincerity.  Birds  of  a  feather 
flock  together,  and  you  may  know  what  a  man  is,  by  the  company 
which  he  loves  best. 

2.  We  must  not  conform  ourselves  to  them,  nor  be  like  them  in 
their  way.  The  command  is,  "  be  not  conformed  unto  this  world.' 
If  we  pretend  a  difference  in  our  state  from  theirs,  let  there  be  a 
visible  difterence  betwixt  our  way  and  theirs.  Do  Satan's  drudges 
bear  the  devil's  mark,  let  ns  hate  to  take  it  on,  or  learn  of  them 
their  ways.  All  that  have  a  mind  for  heaven,  must  be  nonformists 
to  the  world,  because  the  way  of  the  world  is  against  God  and  his  law. 

3.  We  must  forget  them  in  aftection,  saying,  Depart  from  me,  ye 
bloody  men.  Though  we  are  to  wish  well  to  the  persons  of  all  men, 
we  must  hate  their  evil  ways,  saying  with  David,  "  I  hate  the  work 
of  them  that  turn  aside,  it  shall  not  cleave  unto  me."  We  must  no 
more  esteem  their  way  as  we  were  wont,  nor  desire  to  return  into  it. 
Have  we  been  coming  out  of  Sodom,  we  must  not  look  back  with  a 
rueful  look,  otherwise  we  are  not  fit  for  the  kingdom  ot  God. 

III.  Why  we  must  forget  them. 

1.  Because  they  are  not  going  our  way.  All  men  are  on  a  jour- 
ney to  heaven,  or  to  hell.  There  is  a  strait  and  narrow  way  that 
leads  to  heaven,  a  broad  way  to  hell.     If  we  are  espoused  to  Christ, 


114  I'KIVILEaE  AND  DUTIES 

tlieu  we  arc  on  tlic  narrow  way  ;  and  liow  can  wc  but  forsake  tlieni 
tliat  are  going  tlie  quite  opposite  way.  Nothing  is  more  opposite 
than  the  way  of  holiness,  and  the  way  of  the  world;  therefore  we 
must  either  give  up  pretences  to  Christ,  or  give  up  with  the  way  of  the 
world,  "  wherein  in  time  past  we  walked  according  to  the  course  of 
tliis  woiM." 

2.  Beer  use  tlie  godly  and  the  wicked  world  are  on  two  different 
sides,  under  two  opposite  heads,  Christ  and  the  devil.  All  the 
world  is  divided  betwixt  these  two,  the  Saviour  of  the  world,  and 
the  god  of  the  world.  Christ's  party  are  his  spouse,  brethren,  mem- 
bers of  his  body.  The  devil's  are  his  captives,  prisoners,  slaves. 
And  though  these  of  Satan's  party  may  come  over,  yet  the  truly 
godly  will  never  mix  with  them  iu  their  ways.  "  Thou  shalt  keep 
them,  0  Lord,  thou  shalt  preserve  them  from  this  generation  for 
ever." 

3.  Because,  in  consenting  to  Christ,  we  give  up  with  tliera.  If 
you  take  me,  let  these  go  their  way.  Their  company  is  infectious. 
"  Evil  communications  corrupt  good  manners."  Their  way  is  de- 
structive, therefore  let  not  your  hearts  go  after  them  and  their 
ways.  "When  you  engaged  with  Christ,  you  engaged  against  both, 
and  said,  "  thy  people  shall  be  my  people,  and  where  thou  goest  I 
will  go." 

4.  Because  the  world's  friendship  is  enmity  with  God.  James 
iv.  4.  What  is  wicked  company  but  a  combination  against  God,  to 
trample  on  his  laws,  dishonour  his  Son,  and  grieve  his  Spirit.  What 
are  the  ways  of  the  world,  but  a  direct  opposition  to  God.  So  far, 
then,  as  we  go  with  them,  so  far  we  go  away  from  God.  So  much 
as  they  and  their  ways  get  of  our  affections,  so  much  we  lose  of 
affection  to  Christ. 

Lastly,  Because  there  will  be  a  total  separation  at  last  of  the 
godly  and  wicked,  Matth.  xxv.  Grace  begins  it  here.  Grace  gives 
a  new  nature,  new  principles,  new  designs,  and  new  motives,  all 
which  make  a  new  conversation,  opposite  to  the  way  of  the  world. 
Therefore  if  we  would  not  lodge  with  them  in  eternity,  we  must  give 
up  vv^ith  them  in  time. 

Use.  Be  exhorted  then  to  forsake  evil  company,  to  stand  at 
a  distance  from  it,  and  conform  not  yourselves  to  the  way  of  the 
world. 

Motive  1.  Consider  how  unaccountable  it  is,  that  Christ's  sheep 
should  be  found  among  the  devil's  goats;  and  Christ's  servants  join- 
ing issue  with  the  devil's  slaves  ?  2  Cor.  vi  14 — 16.  If  you  have 
given  up  your  name  to  Christ,  why  are  you  found  on  the  devil's 
gtound.     Let  the  swine  of  the  world  feed  together  on  the  husks  of 


OF  Christ's  spouse,  116 

sill,  lie  down  together  on  the  duughill  of  their  filthy  lusts;  but 
what  has  any  to  do  among  them  that  pretends  to  be  a  child  of 
God. 

2.  The  closer  you  are  linked  with  them,  the  farther  are  you  from 
God.  Mix  with  the  world  and  their  way,  and  God  will  not  know 
you  as  his.  He  commands  a  separation  from  these,  if  you  would 
have  a  reception  from  him.  "  Wherefore,"  says  he,  "  come  out  from 
among  them,  and  be  ye  separate,  saith  the  Lord  ;  and  touch  not  the 
unclean  thing,  and  I  will  receive  you."  Men  must  go  to  the  one 
side  or  the  other;  there  is  no  keeping  up  with  both  God  and  ungod- 
ly company.  Will  men  be  swearing  a  covenant  with  God  one  day, 
and  swearing  with  profane  swearers  another  ;  drinking  at  the  Lord's 
table,  and  at  the  table  of  drunkards,  1  Cor.  x.  21.  God  will  never 
own  such  vagrants  for  members  of  his  household.  See  their  doom, 
Jude  13. 

3.  It  hardens  the  wicked  in  their  way.  It  is  Solomon's  observation, 
"  they  that  forsake  the  law,  praise  the  wicked  ;  but  such  as  keep 
the  law  contend  with  them."  The  sins  of  professors,  going  the  way 
of  evil  men,  is  a  practical  testimony  to  the  way  of  sin,  emboldening 
the  wicked  to  go  on  in  their  way.  Whereas  a  testimony  is  to  be 
kept  up  for  God  in  the  world,  by  a  walk  contrary  to  the  way  of  the 
■world.  Thus  Noah  contended  against  the  security  and  wickedness 
of  the  world,  by  a  holy  life,  "  by  which  he  condemned  the  world, 
and  became  heir  of  the  righteousness  which  is  by  faith." 

4.  Evil  company  is  an  aifecting  plague.  "  Evil  communications 
corrupt  good  manners."  How  many  fair  blossoms  of  religion  have 
been  killed  in  the  bud,  by  the  poisonous  breath  of  evil  company  ? 
How  many  have  been  dragged  over  the  belly  of  good  principles, 
vows,  and  resolutions,  by  the  violence  of  it.  There  is  a  mi(rhty 
efficacy  in  it  to  advance  the  devil's  kingdom,  and  men  being  once 
drawn  in,  it  is  a  thousand  to  one  if  they  go  not  far  beyond  these 
bounds  which  they  had  prescribed  to  themselves.  For  the  devil's 
agents  have  that  oif  their  master,  let  them  once  get  in  a  finger,  and 
they  will  endeavour  to  get  the  whole  hand  to  follow. 

Lastly,  If  you  do  not  be  separated,  you  will  share  with  them. 
Weighty  is  that  word,  "  a  companion  of  fools  shall  be  destroyed." 
How  many  have  cursed  the  day  that  ever  they  saw  the  face  of  those 
by  whom  they  have  been  first  led  into  sin,  and  next  to  ruin.  It  will 
be  no  comfort  to  suffer  God's  wrath  with  company,  whatever  may  be 
in  sinning  together.  If  we  go  in  the  way  with  the  wicked,  we  must 
go  to  the  same  place  with  thtm.  And  though  mercy  should  rescue 
you,  it  will  be  so  as  by  fire,  as  we  see  in  Lot's  case. 

Let  all  take  this  warning,  and  observe  it  in  their  occasional  eu- 


116  PBIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES 

counters,  that  they  be  on  their  guard,  and  likewise  in  their  fixed 
communications,  in  all  changes  of  our  lot,  choose  good  company  ; 
and  when  you  see  that  you  are  inevitably  connected  with  naughty 
companions,  mark  them,  that  you  may  avoid  them  as  much  as 
possible. 

II,  I  proceed  now  to  speak  of  the  forgetting  of  our  father's  house. 
This  father  is  our  father  the  devil,  who  keeps  house  in  a  wicked 
world,  and  in  every  unregenerate  heart.  But  we  must  give  up  with 
it,  if  ever  we  would  see  the  house  of  our  father  in  heaven.  Here 
we  shall, 

I.  Shew  with  what  of  our  father's  house  we  must  give  up. 

1.  You  must  part  with  the  master  of  the  house,  Satan,  and  re- 
nounce your  relation  to  the  house.  Though  you  have  no  express 
compact  with  him,  you  have  need  to  do  this.  There  is  a  twofold 
relation  all  natural  men  have  to  the  house.  They  are  servants 
of  the  house,  hence  it  is  said,  ye  were  the  servants  of  sin ;  their 
work  is  sin,  and  their  wages  is  death.  It  is  sad  work,  mis- 
erable wages;  for  he  is  the  worst  of  masters,  and  they  are  the 
meanest  sort  of  servants.  Sinners  have  no  term  when  they  may  leave 
their  master,  for  they  are  slaves  to  Satan,  and  wholly  in  their 
master's  power,  taken  captive  by  him  at  his  will.  He  has  a  three- 
fold title  to  them  as  his  slaves.  They  are  his  slaves  taken  in  war,  "  for 
of  whom  a  man  is  overcome,  of  the  same  he  is  brought  in  bondage." 
The  devil  having  proclaimed  war  against  heaven,  attacked  man  as 
heaven's  ally  and  confederate,  and  gained  the  victory  over  him. 
He  is  pursuing  this  war  still  against  mankind,  and  driving  the  un- 
renewed world  before  him  as  prisoners  of  war,  and  so  at  his  will.  Isa. 
xlix.  24,  25.  They  are  also  his  bought  slaves.  Men,  in  general, 
like  the  Israelites,  "  have  sold  themselves  to  do  evil  in  the  sight  of 
the  Lord,  to  provoke  him  to  anger."  Where  there  issuch  a  sale, 
Satan  must  needs  be  the  buyer.  It  is  a  very  low  price,  indeed,  even 
for  nought.  The  foolish  sinner  thinks  not  so,  while  he  makes  the  bar- 
gain ;  but  when  the  latter  end  comes,  he  will  see  it  is  all  naught  he 
has  gained,  in  comparison  of  the  soul  that  is  lost.  Rome  drives 
this  trade.  Rev.  xviii.  13.  Where  have  they  learned  it,  but  from 
the  devil,  who  early  set  it  up,  buying  our  first  parents  for  a  par- 
cel of  forbidden  fruit,  and  had  the  impudence  to  order  the  second 
Adam  to  fall  down  and  worship  him.  He  is  daily  buying  a  drunk- 
ard for  some  strong  drink,  a  covetous  worldling  for  a  little  pelf,  a 
hypocrite  for  a  name,  unjust  persons  and  liars  for  a  very  little 
thing.  They  are  also  his  born  slaves,  born  in  his  house,  Eph.  ii.  3. 
Many  are  born  of  parents,  slaves  to  the  devil,  themselves,  all  their 
days;    even  those  who  themselves  are  free,  yet  their  children  are 


OF  Christ's  spouse.  117 

not  therefore  free  too,  for  "  they  were  shapen  in  iniquity,  and  in 
sin  did  their  mothers  conceive  them."  It  is  not  the  first  birth,  but 
the  second,  that  will  make  us  free  men.  Now  we  must  give  up 
that  relation  to  the  house.  We  must  renounce  our  service,  and 
break  away  from  our  old  master,  and  betake  ourselves  to  Christ, 
as  a  new  master,  who  makes  all  his  servants  free  men. 

They  are  sons  of  the  house.  "  Ye  are  of  your  father,  the  devil," 
said  our  Lord  to  the  Jews.  A  sad  sonship,  for  it  is  an  ill  house; 
it  is  to  be  a  son  of  hell,  a  prison  house,  a  dark  house,  a  dreadful 
house.  Never  was  a  child  liker  a  father,  than  unregenerate  per- 
sons are  like  the  devil.  His  nature  is  enmity  against  God  and  his 
law,  so  is  theirs.  He  is  fallen,  and  so  are  they ;  lying  in  wicked- 
ness, and  so  are  they. 

Now  we  must  give  up  that  relation  to  the  house.  We  must  be 
born  again,  we  must  be  new  creatures,  or  we  will  be  ashamed  of  our 
pretended  espousals  to  Christ.  For  if  any  man  be  in  Christ  he  is  a 
new  creature :  old  things  are  passed  away ;  behold  all  things  are 
become  new."  The  image  of  Satan  must  be  defaced,  the  image  of 
God  restored  in  sanctification,  and  that  work  advanced  in  daily  mor- 
tification to  sin,  and  living  to  righteousness. 

2.  You  mast  quit  the  work  of  the  house.  We  must  cast  oflfthe  works 
of  darkness.  There  is  never  an  idle  person  about  our  father's  house. 
Satan  keeps  all  his  children  and  servants  busy  at  their  task,  that  so 
they  may  not  think  of  ways  to  escape,  or  of  leaving  him,  as  Pharaoh 
did  with  the  Israelites.  And  what  are  they  always  about  that  keeps 
them  busy.  They  are  always  at  one  of  two  things,  they  are  either  weav- 
ing the  spider's  web,  or  hatching  the  cockatrice  egg.  "  They  are 
weaving  the  spider's  web."  They  are  very  busy  doing  nothing. 
Nothing  for  God,  their  souls,  or  eternity.  Their  webs  will  not  be- 
come garments,  neither  shall  they  cover  themselves  with  their 
works.  All  that  they  are  busy  about,  will  do  no  more  to  help  their 
souls  in  the  day  of  wrath,  than  a  cobweb  will  clothe  a  man  to  de- 
fend him  against  the  cold.  The  besom  of  death  will  sweep  them 
and  it  away  together ;  and  about  this  heads  and  hands  are  em- 
ployed. Or  "  they  are  hatching  the  cackatrice'  eggs.  He  that  eat- 
eth  of  their  eggs  dieth ;  and  that  which  is  crushed  breaketh  out 
into  a  viper.  They  weary  themselves  to  commit  iniquity.  They 
draw  iniquity  with  cords  of  vanity,  and  treasure  up  wrath  against 
the  day  of  wrath."  This  is  work.  It  is  hard,  toilsome,  and  dark 
work,  soul-ruining  work.  Yet  it  is  the  work  of  the  house,  in  which 
each  strives  to  outdo  another,  and  undo  themselves.  But  as  in 
other  houses  some  are  employed  in  coarser  work,  and  others  in  finer, 
so  it  is  in  this  house.     The  master  of  the  house   puts  his  coarser 


118  PKIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES 

■work  ill  the  hands  of  the  profane,  ignorant,  earth  worm,  that  has  not 
so  much  as  a  form  of  godliness  ;  and  their  task  is  "  to  fulfil  the 
lusts  of  the  flesh,"  He  employs  their  tongues  in  swearing  and  ly- 
ing, their  bellies  in  gluttony  and  drunkenness,  their  bodies  in  un- 
cleanness,  their  hands  in  picking  and  stealing ;  and  their  heads, 
hearts,  hands  continually  about  the  world;  so  that  on  their  belly 
they  must  go,  and  can  never  get  up  their  head  above  the  world,  and 
their  eye  must  never  be  satisfied  with  seeing,  nor  their  ear  with 
hearing,  but  like  the  grave,  cry  give,  give  ;  and  loading  themselves 
with  thick  clay,  which  they  will  never  let  go,  till  death  separate 
them. 

He  puts  his  finer  work  in  the  hands  of  the  hypocritical  professors, 
who  work  such  a  coat  to  themselves,  as  they  shine  in  it  like  angels 
of  light,  and  their  task  is,  "  to  fulfil  the  desires  of  the  mind."  He 
employs  them  to  deceive  the  world  with  their  hypocritical  pretences 
to  piety,  and  to  deceive  themselves  also.  Their  business  is  to  op- 
pose themselves  to  the  very  heart  and  life  of  the  gospel,  by  their 
unbelief,  self-righteousness,  pride,  and  self-conceit ;  and  to  keep  in 
the  life  of  some  lusts  by  their  form  of  religion,  and  shelter  them 
under  a  cover  of  religious  duties ;  to  do  much  mischief  to  the 
church  of  God,  and  stumble  and  bring  to  ruin  many  poor  souls. 

Now  you  must  quit  the  work  of  the  house,  of  whatever  sort  it  be. 
You  must  not  be  like  those  that  will  give  over  their  master,  engage 
with  another,  and  yet  come  back,  and  fall  to  their  work  agin. 
You  must  take  other  work  in  hand  :  I  do  not  say  more  work,  for 
as  the  watch  that  goes  wrong,  goes  as  fast  as  that  which  goes  right, 
you  will  have  as  much  work  in  your  father's  house  as  in  your  hus- 
band's. 

3.  You  must  part  with  the  provision  and  entertainment  of  the 
house.  People  use  to  get  their  meat  where  they  work  their  work, 
and  Satan's  slaves  get  their  meat  also  in  their  father's  house.  And 
what  is  their  entertainment  ?  He  sets  them  down  "  to  eat  dust 
with  the  serpent,"  Is.  Ixv.  25.  He  feeds  them  on  filthy  lusts,  which 
may  nourish  their  corruptions,  but  is  poisonous  to  their  souls. 
Satan  did  once  eat  angel's  food  in  the  enjoyment  of  God,  but  now 
dust  is  his  meat  with  the  serpent,  that  is,  as  it  was  the  meat  and 
drink  of  Christ  to  do  the  will  of  his  Father,  so  it  is  Satan's  to  sin 
against  God  and  to  do  mischief,  all  the  pleasure  he  hath  lies  there. 
So  it  is  with  Christless  sinners,  the  sweetest  milk  which  they  suck  is 
out  of  the  breasts  of  their  lusts  ;  the  enjoyment  of  God  was  never 
so  sweet  to  those  whose  god  is  their  belly,  as  meat  and  drink  ;  the 
dishonest  person  hath  not  so  much  pleasure  in  the  gospel  treasure, 
as  in  some  thing  that  he  can  catch  to  please  the  covetous  heart. 


OF  cueist's  spouse.  119 

He  sets  tliem  also  "  to  etit  husks  with  the  swine,"  Luke  xv.  16. 
He  feeds  thera  with  the  empty  dry  things  of  the  world,  and  they  are 
dressed  up  according  as  every  one  likes  best.  Some  get  the  pleasures, 
others  the  profits,  others  the  honours  of  it  set  before  them,  and  on 
these  they  feed.  So  the  voluptuous  man  has  more  delight  in  carnal 
pleasures  than  in  communion  with  God  ;  "  for  they  are  lovers  of  plea- 
sure more  than  lovers  of  God."  The  worldling  hath  more  pleasure 
in  his  goods  and  chattels,  than  in  all  the  spiritual  gains  of  true 
godliness.  These  things  are  to  him  but  shadows,  but  what  he  can 
hold  is  substance.  "  I  am  become  rich,"  says  he,  "  I  have  found  me 
out  substance,"  The  ambitious  man  hath  more  delight  in  a  name 
and  honour  among  men,  than  in  the  honour  of  God's  approbation. 
"  How  can  ye  believe,  which  receive  honour  one  of  another,  and 
seek  not  the  honour  that  cometh  from  God  only." 

Now  you  must  quit  the  entertainment  of  the  house,  and  betake 
yourself  to  the  entertainment  and  provision  of  the  house  of  heaven. 
"  Wherefore  do  ye  spend  money  for  that  which  is  not  bread,  and 
your  labour  for  that  which  satisfieth  not  ?  hearken  diligently  unto 
me,  and  eat  ye  that  which  is  good,  and  let  your  soul  delight  itself 
in  fatness."  You  ask  bread  in  your  father's  house,  and  he  gives 
you  a  stone,  for  what  he  gives  is  not  bread,  and  satisfies  not  the 
soul.  The  dust  of  lusts  is  not  good,  change  your  dust  then,  and 
"  eat  that  which  is  good."  God,  grace,  communion  with  God,  and 
all  the  benefits  of  the  covenant  are  good.  They  are  good  for  the 
soul  and  the  body,  for  time  and  eternity.  The  husks  of  the  world 
have  no  fatness  in  them,  change  them  therefore,  and  "  let  your 
souls  delight  themselves  in  fatness."  Spiritual  things  are  full  of 
sap,  and  will  make  your  souls  prosper. 

4.  You  must  quit  the  fashions  of  the  house.  Every  house  hath 
its  own  fashions,  and  so  hath  your  father's ;  but  that  must  not  keep 
them  up,  "  Be  not  conformed  unto  this  world."  They  are  evil 
fashions,  you  are  not  to  bring  them  along  with  you  to  your  hus- 
band's house.  The  fashion  of  the  house,  in  natural  actions,  is  to 
follow  these  actions  in  a  mere  selfish  way,  to  gratify  a  carnal  appe- 
tite, without  any  eye  to  God  in  them,  or  fitting  us  thereby  for  his 
service.  You  must  quit  it,  and  must  not  be  like  your  father's  house 
in  them.  Modesty  and  sobriety,  and  referring  all  to  the  honour  of 
God,  is  the  fashion  you  must  fall  in  with,  as  the  fashion  of  yc  ur 
husband's  house.  "  "Whether,  therefore,  ye  eat  or  drink,  or  what- 
soever ye  do,  do  all  to  the  glory  of  God."  The  fashion  of  your 
father's  house,  in  civil  actions,  is  to  be  sunk  and  swallowed  up  in 
these  things,  to  be  minding  them  more  "  than  the  one  thing  need- 
ful," and  to  have  no  respect  to  the  command  nor  honour  of  God  in 


120  PRIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES 

them  ;  and  so  to  make  these  things  either  justle  out  duty  to  God 
altogether,  or  to  take  such  a  lift  of  them,  that  uo  vigour  of  spirit, 
and  sometimes  even  no  strength  of  body,  is  left  for  duty  to  God* 
To  be  untender  in  these  things,  and  even  to  give  conscience  a 
stretch,  if  a  person  can  gain  any  profit  or  ease  by  it.  To  count 
truth  in  words,  and  exact  uprightness  in  dealing,  and  to  do  no  other 
way  to  others,  than  we  would  they  should  do  to  us,  but  needless 
nicety.  If  you  quit  not  these  fashions,  you  will  never  see  the  house 
of  heaven.  Luke  x.  41,  42;  1  Cor.  vi.  8,  9  ;  1  Thess.  iv.  6.  If 
ever  men  get  more  religion,  they  will  get  more  moral  honesty. 

The  fashion  of  your  father's  house  in  religious  actions,  (for  there 
is  some  religion  even  in  that  house,  but  it  is  of  the  fashion  of  the 
house),  that  is  to  hold  with  the  one  half,  and  that  too  the  worst 
half,  the  outer  half,  the  mere  form  of  godliness.  To  hold  with 
bodily  exercise,  but  endeavour  not  to  worship  God  in  spirit.  So  that 
men  in  that  house  shut  the  eyes  of  their  bodies,  yet  their  hearts  are 
going  after  their  covetousuess  ;  they  bow  their  knees,  but  their 
hearts  remain  inflexible.  It  is  their  custom  to  seek  to  please  them- 
selves more  than  God,  Matth.  vi.  2.  To  go  about  these  duties  that 
they  may  sin  the  more  freely,  and  so  make  a  covering  of  them 
to  some  lust,  Prov.  vii.  14,  15.  They  put  them  in  Christ's  room, 
"  going  about  to  establish  a  righteousness  of  their  own."  If  you 
quit  not  these  fashions,  you  are  not  God's  people,  "  for  God  is  a 
spirit,  and  they  that  worship  him,  must  worship  him  in  spirit  and 
in  truth."  "  His  people  are  the  circumcision,  who  worship  him  iu 
spirit,  rejoice  in  Christ  Jesus,  and  have  no  confidence  in  the  flesh.'* 
Hypocrisy  is  a  mask  which  God  will  pluck  ofl". 

5.  You  must  quit  the  garb  of  the  house.  Under  the  Old  Testa- 
ment, when  people  were  to  make  any  solemn  appearance  before  God, 
they  were  called  to  change  their  garments.  Gen.  xxxiv.  2.  And 
if  you  would  shew  yourselves  Christ's  spouse,  you  must  part  with 
the  garb  of  the  house,  off  which  you  are  come.  You  must  part  with 
the  inner  garment  of  the  house,  "  that  is  the  old  man  with  his  deeds." 
Ephes.  iv.  22  ;  Col.  iii.  9.  The  old  man  is  the  corrupt  evil  nature ; 
his  deeds  are  the  corrupt  workings  of  that  nature  iu  heart  and  life. 
These  cleave  close  to  us,  as  a  girdle  to  the  loins  of  a  man,  but  we 
must  be  putting  them  off  by  daily  mortification.  In  vain  do  we  pre- 
tend to  be  espoused  to  Christ,  if  we  still  retain  our  former  lusts. 
Christ  has  another  garment  for  his  spouse,  which  we  must  put  on,  if 
ever  we  see  heaven,  that  is  "  the  new  man,"  the  new  nature  with  a 
new  life,  Ephes.  iv.  24.  It  is  made  up  of  two  pieces  :  righteousness, 
the  whole  of  our  duty  to  man ;  and  holiness,  the  whole  of  our  duty 
to  God.  For  true  religion  is  universal,  and  therefore  it  is  called  a 
man ;  not  a  member  or  two  of  a  man,  but  a  whole  man. 


OF  Christ's  spousk.  121 

You  must  also  part  with  the  upper  garment  of  the  house,  that  is 
the  filthy  rags  of  your  own  righteousness,  Is.  Ixiv.  6 ;  Zech.  iii.  4. 
The  way  in  our  father's  house,  is  to  cover  their  unrighteousness  with 
their  own  righteousness,  their  evil  with  their  good,  their  sins  with 
their  duties.  But  alas !  all  this  is  but  a  covering  of  rags,  that  will 
not  hide  thy  shame  before  the  Lord  ;  a  covering  of  filthy  rags,  that 
will  make  thee  more  vile.  Christ  hath  provided  the  white  raiment 
of  his  own  righteousness  for  thee,  that  must  be  put  on  by  faith  ; 
and  all  thou  doest  must  be  washed  in  the  blood  of  the  lamb,  or  thou 
wilt  be  ruiued  with  it.  You  must  learn  that  lesson  in  your  husband's 
house,  that  never  one  could  yet  learn  in  their  father's  house,  even 
to  work  in  religion,  as  if  you  were  to  win  heaven  by  working,  and 
then  to  overlook  all,  as  if  you  had  done  nothing. 

Lastly,  You  must  quit  the  interest  of  the  house.  People  readily 
are  concerned  for  the  interest  of  the  house  of  which  they  are  mem- 
bers, and  none  more  than  the  members  of  our  father's,  that  do  their 
utmost  to  support  it.  Now,  if  you  mind  for  heaven,  you  must  quit 
this  interest,  and  pursue  the  interest  of  the  house  of  heaven.  You 
must  not  interest  yourselves  in  the  quarrels  of  that  house.  That 
house  hath  a  quarrel  against  the  image  of  God,  the  power  of  god- 
liness, and  the  people  of  God,  Gen.  iii.  15  ;  and  all  the  members  of 
the  house  interest  themselves  in  the  quarrel,  one  way  or  another,  to 
bear  down  the  exercise  of  godliness.  Persecutors  strike  it  down  ; 
mockers  jest  upon,  and  laugh  at  it;  the  worldly  man  gravely  pro- 
nounces it  to  be  folly ;  the  hypocrite's  heart  rises  bitterly  against  it, 
and  bears  it  down  and  smothers  it,  with  contention  and  strife  about 
outward  things.  All  join  together  in  the  quarrel,  though  they  go 
different  ways  to  work.  But  you  must  stand  upon  the  side  of  god- 
liness. 

You  must  not  support  the  interest  of  your  father's  house.  Christ 
was  sent  to  pull  it  down,  "to  destroy  the  works  of  the  devil;"  do 
not  you  put  to  your  hand  to  hold  it  up.  The  members  of  the  house 
are  very  much  concerned  to  hold  it  up.  They  will  not  give  their 
help  to  curb  sin,  but,  upon  the  contrary,  they  encourage  one  another 
by  example  and  otherwise,  like  Babel-builders,  to  go  on  with  the 
work.  Let  none  that  mind  for  heaven,  support  the  interest  of  Satan 
in  the  family,  or  in  any  place  where  they  are.     We  now  proceed, 

II.  To  give  reasons,  why  these  that  are  espoused  to  Christ,  must 
forget  their  father's  house. 

1.  Because  our  father's  house,  and  husband's  house,  are  quite 
contrary  the  one  to  the  other,  as  heaven  and  hell,  light  and  dark- 
ness, and  there  is  no  reconciling  them,  2  Cor.  vi.  14,  15.  There- 
fore we  must  renounce  our  part  in,  and  relation  to  the  one,  if  we 


122  VUIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES 

mind  to  plead  a  part  in,  and  relation  to  the  other.  They  never 
shall  mix.  "  God  will  preserve  his  people  from  this  generation,  for 
ever."  They  uever  can  mix.  "  You  cannot  serve  God  and  mam- 
mon." The  heads  of  these  houses  are  opposite,  the  work,  the  enter- 
tainment, the  fashions,  and  interests;  therefore,  as  you  would  not 
renounce  your  part  in  Christ,  forget  your  father's  house. 

2.  Because,  as  our  husband's  house  is  most  honourable,  so  our  fa- 
ther's house  is  most  base.  These  that  are  espoused  to  Christ,  as 
Christ  is  their  husband,  they  are  God's  children  ;  they  are  of  the  same 
family  with  the  angels  ;  nay,  the  very  angels  are  ministering  spirits, 
to  take  care  of  them  who  are  joint  heirs  with  Christ.  They  are 
honourable  in  their  relations,  and  rich  in  their  title  to  heaven  and 
glory.  But  our  father's  house  has  nothing  in  it  but  baseness,  for  it 
is  a  fallen  house,  fallen  from  honour  to  the  deepest  disgrace,  from 
happiness  to  extreme  poverty  and  misery.  For  us  to  follow  the 
ways  of  it,  is  as  if  one  brought  into  a  noble  family  could  not  forget, 
but  bring  along  with  her,  the  way  of  the  beggarly  family  from  which 
she  came. 

3.  Because  we  will  never  apply  ourselves  to  the  way  of  our  hus- 
band's house,  if  we  forget  not  our  father's  house.  While  the  hearts 
of  the  Israelites  were  set  on  the  flesh  pots  of  Egypt,  they  could 
make  no  progress  in  their  journey  to  Canaan.  Laban  knew  that 
Jacob  could  not  enjoy  his  service,  when  he  much  longed  after  his  fa- 
ther's house.  The  afl^ectiouate  remembrance  of  the  work  and  pro- 
vision of  our  father's  house  will  be  a  dead  weight  on  those  that  have 
begun  to  run  the  race  set  before  them;  and  always,  the  more  we  give 
way  to  our  corruptions,  the  more  tenderly  we  handle  our  lusts,  reli- 
gion will  be  the  more  difficult. 

4.  Because  it  is  the  worst  of  houses.  No  wonder,  for  the  devil, 
the  worst  of  masters,  is  the  master  of  the  house.  No  slavery  like 
the  service  of  that  house.  It  is  soul  slavery.  No  entertainment 
like  it,  for  it  can  never  satisfy  ;  nay,  it  is  destructive  to  the  soul. 
The  work  thereof  is  sin,  the  wages  death,  eternal  death.  The  fa- 
shions of  the  house  are  the  very  reverse  of  all  that  is  good.  The 
interests  of  the  house  are  the  dishonour  of  God,  the  ruin  of  man- 
kind. The  garb  of  the  house  is  filthy  rags,  and  the  shame  of  their 
nakedness  will  at  length  appear  before  the  world. 

Use  1.  Of  Information.     It  informs  us, 

1.  In  vain  do  we  pretend  to  be  espoused  to  Christ,  if  we  do  not 
reform  our  lives  according  to  the  rules  of  the  gospel,  but  still  hold 
on  the  old  way,  2  Cor.  v.  17.  The  old  life,  with  a  new  profession 
and  an  engagement  to  be  the  Lord's,  will  make  men  but  whited 
sepulchres  ;  or  like  an  old  rotten  wall  new  plastered,  that  will  burst 
out  fearfully,  and  go  to  ruin. 


OF  Christ's  spouse.  123 

It  is  not  enough  to  be  like  neighbour  aud  other.  It  is  but  a  sorry 
character.  All  the  people  of  God  must  be  nonconformists  to,  and 
dissenters  from  the  world.  The  broad  gate  is  room  enough  for  mul- 
titudes, but  they  that  will  be  at  heaven,  must  be  a  singular  sort  of 
people,  for  they  are  men  wondered  at ;  content  to  take  on  them  the 
hatred  of  their  native  country,  and  father's  house. 

Use.  2.  It  reproves  those  that  will  not  forget  their  father's  house, 
bat  cleave  to  it  and  to  the  way  thereof.     And  who  are  these  ? 

1.  Those  that,  in  the  midst  of  gospel  light,  yet  continue  in  the 
darkness  of  the  house  ;  even  all  grossly  ignorant  persons.  They 
that  are  brought  out  of  their  father's  house  to  Christ,  are  brought 
out  of  darkness  to  light,  though  they  know  not  a  letter.  "  They 
were  sometimes  darkness,  but  now  are  they  light  in  the  Lord."  If 
people  remain  ignorant  under  gospel  means,  we  know  what  is  the 
cause,  their  father  has  put  out  their  eyes.  2  Cor.  iv.  8,  4.  This 
will  end  in  eternal  darkness.  "  It  is  a  people  of  no  understanding, 
therefore  he  that  made  them  will  not  have  mercy  on  them  ;  and  he 
that  formed  them,  will  shew  them  no  favour." 

2.  Those  that  retain  the  language  of  the  house.  "When  Peter 
spoke,  the  damsel  knew  what  countryman  he  was.  "  Thou  art  a 
Galilean,  for  thy  speech  bewrayeth  thee."  And  what  shall  we  say 
of  thee,  that  art  a  curser,  a  swearer,  a  liar,  a  filthy  speaker,  but 
thou  art  a  Hellilean.  I  appeal  to  your  own  consciences,  what  sort 
of  language  that  is,  whether  it  sounds  like  heaven  or  hell.  To  hear 
a  man  speak  as  if  hell  were  opening  ;  breathing  out  lies,  as  if  in- 
spired by  the  father  of  them ;  speaking,  as  if  an  unclean  devil  were 
speaking  out  of  him  ;  what  can  one  think  in  such  a  case,  but  that 
the  person  speaks  like  the  house  to  which  he  belongs.  But  if  you 
will  not  forbear  that  language,  it  will  turn  to  blaspheming  at  length 
through  a  long  eternity.  For  the  former  is  the  language  of  the 
house  in  time,  the  other  in  eternity. 

3.  Those  that  wear  the  badge  of  the  house  on  their  breasts,  the 
master  of  the  house's  mark  on  their  foreheads,  so  that  those  who  go 
by  may  easily  know  who  they  are.  Profane  people.  You  that 
will  not  bow  a  knee  to  God.  "  The  wicked,  through  the  pride  of 
his  countenance,  will  not  seek  after  God."  You  that  take  room  to 
yourselves  in  all  licentiousness,  that  have  nothing  to  do  with  re- 
ligion, but  to  shew  aversion  to  all  that  is  good;  if  not  to  mock  and 
reproach  others  that  seem  to  be  religious.  Will  you  pretend  to  any 
portion  in  Christ?  No,  no,  you  know  not  Christ,  and  he  will  dis- 
own you.  A  dumb  devil  possesseth  you  now,  that  you  cannot,  will 
not  pray  to  God  now ;  the  day  will  come,  that  you  will  cry  to  the 
hills  to  fall   upon  you,  and  hide  you  from  the  face  of  the  judge. 

Vol.  IV.  I 


124  PRIVILEGE  AND  DUTIES,  &C. 

You  will  have  a  nierry  life  of  it  now,  but  you  shall  weep;  you  will 
make  a  jest  of  religion  now,  but  that  will  make  you  roar  at  length. 
Your  heart  is  averse  to  all  that  is  good  now,  the  copestone  will  be 
put  on  it  in  hell.  You  care  not  for  prayers,  godly  discourse, 
examinations,  or  sermons ;  but  some  of  you  will  go  to  the  hill  with 
the  beasts,  Sabbath  after  Sabbath,  and  desire  no  person  to  take  that 
task  off  your  hand.  Well  were  it  for  you,  if,  as  you  live  with  the 
beasts,  you  were  to  die  with  them  also. 

4.  Those  that  give  up  themselves  to  the  trade  of  the  house, 
minding  nothing  but  the  world,  earthly  things.  They  have  no 
trade  with  heaven.  They  know  not  what  communion  with  God 
means.  They  will  have  their  work  on  earth  as  far  advanced  as 
their  neighbours,  but  their  work  for  eternity  is  yet  to  begin.  They 
are  so  busy  they  cannot  get  time  for  it.  They  have  so  much  to 
do  otherwise,  they  cannot  get  anything  done  to  purpose  for  their 
perishing  souls.  That  is  folly,  for  the  world  will  be  consumed  in 
flames,  when  that  soul  of  yours  shall  continue  to  exist,  to  be  either 
eternally  happy  or  miserable,  as  it  is  now  seen  to  be  in  time. 

Lastly,  Those  that  are  the  hidden  servants  of  the  house.  It  has 
been  said  of  some,  that  they  have  stealed  away  to  heaven,  without 
being  observed ;  but  there  are  others  that  steal  away  to  hell,  and 
the  world  never  hears  the  sound  of  their  feet :  even  deep  veiled 
hypocrites,  whited  sepulchres.  *'  They  are  disobedient,  deceiving, 
serving  divers  lusts  and  pleasures."  They  wear  Christ's  livery,  but 
yet  are  Satan's  drudges.  There  are  always  some  lusts  that  have 
such  persons  absolutely  under  their  power.  The  broad  way  is  wide 
enough,  so  that  they  can  easily  get  a  bye  path  in  it,  to  go  by  them- 
selves to  destruction,  without  mixing  with  the  profane  rabble  that 
keep  the  highway.  However,  all  come  to  one  lodging  at  length. 
*'  As  for  such  as  turn  aside  to  their  crooked  ways,  the  Lord  shall 
lead  them  forth  with  the  workers  of  iniquity." 

Use  of  ExHORTATioisr.  Be  exhorted  to  forget  your  father's  house. 
Leave  the  master  of  the  house,  the  work,  and  the  provision  of  the 
house.  Renounce  the  devil,  the  world,  and  the  flesh,  and  betake 
yourselves  to  Christ  and  his  service. 

Motive  1.  Your  father's  house  will  remove,  and  it  will  be  a  sad 
removing.  Our  Lord's  family  will  remove  also,  but  it  will  be  a 
happy  removing.  Christ  hath  a  higher  house  in  heaven,  to  which  he 
will  remove  all  the  family  he  hath  on  earth.  The  devil  hath  a 
higher  and  a  lower  house  also.  His  higher  house  is  in  this  world, 
and  it  is  a  throng  house ;  but  the  day  is  coming  that  his  family 
will  remove  into  the  lower  house,  the  bottomless  pit,  so  as  not  one 
shall  remain  behind.     There  are  some  removing  out  of  it  daily,  and 


CHRIST  JESUS,  &C.  125 

tlicu  the  rest  that  remained  behind  are  secnre,  bnt  it  will  not  be 
always  so.  There  was  a  horrible  cry  at  Dathau  and  Abiraiu's 
removing,  Numb.  xvi.  31 — 34 ;  what  a  cry  will  there  be  when  the 
family  goes  away  together,  and  "  shall  all  be  cast  into  the  lake  of 
fire,"  which  is  their  new  house !  Leave  it  then  quickly,  lest  ye 
perish  with  it. 

Motive  2.  It  is  highly  reasonable,  if  you  will  have  any  part  in 
Christ.  You  can  have  no  part  in  him,  but  as  espoused  to  him  ;  and 
if  espoused,  then  "  you  must  leave  your  father  and  mother,  and 
cleave  to  your  husband."  Did  he  not  say  to  you  in  the  ofter  made, 
If  you  take  me,  let  these  go  their  way.  "Will  you  come  into  this 
house,  and  not  forget  your  father's  house  ?  Nay,  if  you  do  not,  he 
will  pursue  you  as  he  did  Israel,  like  those  who  break  wedlock. 
Ton  have  all  professed  your  acceptance  of  the  marriage  covenant, 
all  have  had  the  seal  of  it  in  baptism,  and  some  of  you  in  the  ordi- 
nance of  the  supper.  Remember,  then,  you  have  lifted  up  your 
hands  to  the  Lord,  and  cannot  go  back. 

Lastly,  Consider  the  motive  in  the  following  verse,  "  So  shall  the 
king  greatly  desire  thy  beauty."  From  this  you  have  several  argu- 
ments, your  leaving  off  these  will  truly  beautify  you  in  the  sight  of 
the  Lord.  Holiness  is  a  beauty,  it  is  soul  beauty,  a  lasting  beauty. 
Now,  thus  beautified,  you  shall  be  amiable  and  acceptable  in  the 
sight  of  thy  Lord  and  Husband,  and  he  will  take  pleasure  in  thee. 
He  is  a  King  worthy  to  be  pleased,  and  his  favour  worthy  to  be 
sought.  Finally,  thou  shalt  be  at  no  loss,  whatever  you  part  with 
for  his  sake.  Communion  and  fellowship  with  him  will  make  up 
all  your  losses.     Amen. 


May  1,  1712. 
CHRIST  JESUS  DULY  PRIZED. 

SERMON  XIII. 

Philippians  iii.  8, 

Yea,  doubtless,  and  I  count  all  things  but  loss,  for  the  excellency  of  the 
knoivledge  of  Christ  Jesus  my  Lord. 

The  apostle,  in  the  preceding  verse,  having  spoken  of  his  privileges 
in  his  unconverted  state,  and  told  how  meanly  he  thought  of  them 

I  2 


126  CHRIST  JESTTS 

for  Christ ;  doth  in  this  go  out  with  full  sail,  in  running  down  all 
things  whatsoever,  in  comparison  of  Christ.  In  the  words.  Con- 
sider how  things  weighed  in  his  esteem.  That  which  was  of  the 
greatest  weight  with  him,  and  was  absolutely  highest  in  his  esteem, 
was  the  excellency  of  the  knowledge  of  Christ.  That  is  the  excel- 
lency of  the  practical  knowledge  of  Christ,  saving  acquaintance 
with,  and  interest  in  him.  Next  what  was  downweighed  by  it,  all 
things ;  not  only  his  good  works  done  in  his  unconverted  state,  but 
even  these  really  good,  done  by  the  influence  of  the  Holy  Ghost. 
In  a  word,  all  things  imaginable,  without  Christ,  he  counts  loss  ; 
and  in  comparison  of  Christ.  "We  have  also  his  certainty  in  this 
•matter.  He  was  not  in  doubt  about  this  reckoning,  but  with  the 
utmost  certainty  was  come  to  a  point,  "  Tea,  doubtless." 

"We  have  a  remarkable  evidence  of  a  superlative  esteem  of 
€hrist ;  namely,  that  whereas  he  had  suffered  the  loss  of  all  things 
for  him,  on  a  review  thereof,  he  counted  himself  no  loser,  but  fully 
made  up,  so  as  he  might  but  win  Christ.  So  much  for  a  general 
view  of  the  words.  More  particularly,  before  we  enter  on  the 
matter  of  the  text,  we  shall  attend, first,  to  the  apostle's  manner; 
and,  secondly,  to  his  grand  scope. 

I.  Let  us  consider  the  manner  in  which  the  apostle  delivers  him- 
self upon  this  great  subject.  He  speaks  with  openness,  with  the 
utmost  certainty,  and  the  greatest  affection.  I  shall  illustrate 
these  three  points  in  their  order. 

1.  He  openly  professeth  his  esteem  of  Christ  above  all.  He  does 
not  deliver  this  truth  in  the  general,  that  Christ  is  to  be  preferred 
above  all,  but  lays  it  out  in  his  own  experience,  that  they  might  see 
that  he  had  good  reason  for  what  he  said.  This  teaches  us,  that  it  be- 
comes the  saints  openly  and  avowedly  to  profess  their  superlative 
esteem  of  Christ.  It  is  not  enough  to  have  that  esteem  of  him  in  the 
heart,  but  it  should  have  a  vent  outwardly.  "  For  with  the  heart 
man  believeth  unto  righteousness,  and  with  the  mouth  confession 
is  made  unto  salvation."  This  confession  must  be  made  for  the 
glory  of  God.  One  great  end  of  our  regeneration  and  marriage  with 
Christ  is,  that  we  may  sound  forth  his  praise  in  the  world.  "  This 
people,"  says  he,  "  have  I  formed  for  myself,  they  shall  shew  forth 
my  praise."  If  his  heart  has  been  opened  to  receive  us,  why  should 
our  mouths  be  shut  to  his  praise.  We  have  no  more  to  render,  but 
the  calves  of  our  lips.  It  serves  also  for  the  good  of  others,  that 
they  may  fall  in  love  with  Christ.  "  I  will  make  thy  name  to  be 
remembered  in  all  generations,  therefore  shall  the  people  praise  thee 
for  ever."  The  recommendations  which  the  saints  give  to  Christ 
have  often  a  good  effect.      They  say  that  the  dropping  of  the  lily 


DULY  PKIZKD.  127 

begets  other  lilies,  so  the  saints  beget  others  to  Christ,  by  the  drop- 
ping of  their  lives,  which  have  an  attractive  virtue,  1  Pet.  iii.  1,  2, 
The  drops  of  their  blood  are  generative  of  saints.  The  blood  of  the 
martyrs  is  the  seed  of  the  church.  Yea,  the  very  droppings  of 
their  mouths  for  Christ  are  beneficial,  Song  vii.  9.  It  is  then  no 
part  of  religion  for  persons  to  keep  their  religion  to  themselves. 
There  is  much  hypocritical  profession ;  but  we  must  not  hide  our 
love  to  Christ,  if  we  have  any,  because  of  that.  We  must  not  be 
dumb  in  the  cause  of  Christ  and  religion,  because  many  give  him  fair 
words,  and  no  more.  Blessed  is  that  professor,  in  whom  Kaphtali's 
blessing  and  Joseph's  do  meet,  goodly  words,  and  a  fruitful  bough. 

Let  the  saints  learn  then  to  be  more  open  mouthed  for  Christ. 
Let  them  commend  him  to  others,  and  commend  him  from  their  own 
experience ;  first,  to  their  fellow  saints,  saying,  "  Come,  and  hear, 
all  ye  that  fear  God,  and  I  will  declare  what  he  hath  done  for  my 
soul."  0 !  should  not  Christ's  friends  be  commending  their  friend 
one  to  another.  This  would  be  a  most  seasonable  work  at  this  day, 
in  which  religion  is  decaying ;  and  if  ever  Christ  comes  again,  to  the 
spirits  of  his  people  in  this  land,  this  neglected  work  will  be  revived. 
0  !  it  would  be  like  a  coal  of  fire,  to  set  love  to  Christ  in  motion. 
Will  two  cold  flints,  sti'iking  one  another,  kindle  a  fire ;  how  much 
more  two,  in  which  there  is  some  fire.  "  How  did  our  heart  burn," 
said  the  disciples,  "  within  us,  while  he  talked  with  us  by  the  way, 
and  while  he  opened  to  us  the  scriptures." 

Let  them  also  commend  him  to  strangers.  Song  v.  9 — 16.  Drop  a 
word  for  Christ  to  such,  you  know  not  what  it  may  do.  Many  times 
a  word  forgotten  by  the  speaker  has  been  minded,  with  time  and 
place,  by  the  person  to  whom  it  was  spoken  in  Christ's  behalf,  and 
has  been  like  seed  dropped,  that  has  sprung  up  sweetly  afterwards. 
0  sirs !  when  we  come  to  a  death-bed,  and  ask  ourselves  what  have 
we  done,  what  have  we  spoken  for  Christ,  we  will  have  but  a  sorry 
reflection  on  it,  if  we  do  not  exert  ourselves  more  in  that  way  than 
we  are  like  to  do. 

Let  us  also  speak  in  his  cause  and  interest  in  the  world.  We 
should  do  that  especially  in  those  things  that  are  opposed  in  our 
day  ;  to  be  sure  to  hold  by  the  truth  of  Christ,  against  all  opposi- 
tion, Mark  viii.  38.  If  we  esteem  one  highly,  it  is  natural  to  take 
his  part,  and  to  do  what  we  can  to  support  his  interest  and  honour ; 
and  if  Christ  have  our  hearts,  he  will  get  our  endeavours  that  way 
also. 

2.  The  apostle,  in  the  text,  expresseth  himself  with  the  utmost 
certainty,  "  yea,  doubtless."  lie  was  not  halting  between  two  opinions, 
but  goes  with  full  sail,  to  determine  iu  Christ's  favours,  upon   tho 


128  CHKIST  JESUS 

competition  of  afly  thing  whatsoever  with  him  :  "  Yea,  doubtless, 
and  I  count  all  things,"  &c. 

Doctrine,  In  matters  of  religion,  we  should  labour  to  be  doubt- 
less.    We  should  be  at  a  point,  fully  resolved,  at  a  full  assurance. 

This  holds  in  these  two  things :  First,  In  the  truths  of  religion 
without  us.  Secondly,  In  the  truth  of  religion  within  us.  So  Paul 
was  doubtless  in  these  two  points.  He  did  not  doubt  but  he  so 
counted  and  esteemed  Christ  above  all.  He  as  little  doubted,  but 
so  counting,  he  counted  right. 

I.  Then  we  should  labour  to  be  doubtless  in  the  truths  of  religion, 
especially  the  main  points  of  religion.  "  Rooted  and  built  up  in 
him,  and  stablished  in  the  faith  as  ye  have  been  taught,  abounding 
therein  with  thanksgiving."     This  is  necessary, 

1.  Because,  however  doubts  of  these  may  be  our  affliction,  yet 
they  are  our  sin  also.  Satan  may  be  the  father  of  them,  indeed ; 
but  it  is  a  dark  and  unbelieving  heart  which  is  the  womb  in 
which  these  doubts  are  conceived,  and  by  whose  breasts  they  are 
nourished.  It  is  the  filthy  mire  of  a  corrupt  heart,  from  which 
doubts  as  a  thick  mist  do  arise,  to  darken  the  light  of  the  truth 
shining  in  the  word  of  God. 

2.  Because  these  doubts  are  enemies  to  faith.  It  is  true,  doubt- 
ing is  not  altogether  inconsistent  with  faith  ;  namely,  with  the  exist- 
ence of  faith  in  the  soul.  May  it  not  be  said  that  true  faith  is  the 
legs  of  the  soul ;  doubts  are  the  lameness  of  these  legs,  so  that 
though  the  man  may  walk  with  them,  yet  he  walks  halting  by  them. 
And  so  far  as  they  are  opposite  to  faith,  they  are  dishonourable  to 
Grod,  and  impeach  his  truth.  "  He  that  believeth  on  the  Son  of  God, 
hath  the  witness  in  himself:  be  that  believeth  not  God,  hath  made 
him  a  liar ;  because  he  believeth  not  the  record  that  God  gave  of 
his  Son." 

3.  Because  they  are  the  spring  of  apostacy  and  defection  from 
the  truth.  They  first  set  men  a-wavering;  they  are  carried  about 
with  every  wind  of  doctrine ;  they  were  never  truly  rooted  in  the 
truth ;  and  after  they  have  gone  hither  and  thither  in  their  prin- 
ciples, at  last  they  come,  in  a  time  of  temptation,  to  fall  off  alto- 
gether. 

Lastly,  Because  they  are  enemies  to  growth  in  religion.  A  float- 
ing head  makes  a  barren  life.  Like  a  tree  that  never  takes  with 
the  ground,  but  is  always  loose,  it  cannot  bring  forth  fruit  while  it 
is  so,  Eph.  iv.  14,  15. 

Labour  then  to  be  at  a  point  in  the  truths,  especially  the  main 
truths  of  religion.     An(f.  for  this  cause, 


DULY  PRIZED.  129' 

1.  Study  the  word  of  truth,  which  is  God's  testimony  to  the  truth. 
"  To  the  law  and  to  the  testimony ;  if  they  speak  not  according  to  this 
word,  it  is  because  there  is  no  truth  in  them."  The  word  of  God  is 
the  only  foundation  of  faith.  Tou  may  take  up  things  upon  your 
own  fancy,  or  the  testimony  of  others,  and  then  hold  fast  what  you 
have  so  received.  But  that  is  not  faith  which  is  not  founded  on 
divine  testimony.  Hence  many  cannot  be  said  to  be  doubtless,  as 
to  the  foundation  points  of  religion,  because  their  belief  of  them 
is  not  founded  on  the  testimony  of  the  word  of  God  having  weight 
with  tlieir  consciences,  hence  their  belief  of  them  is  as  a  house 
built  on  sand. 

2.  Give  up  yourself  to  the  teaching  of  the  spirit  of  truth.  Lay 
your  souls  down  before  the  Lord,  to  be  taught  by  his  Spirit.  "  It 
is  written  in  the  prophets,  And  they  shall  be  all  taught  of  God." 
When  Peter  said  to  Jesus,  "Thou  art  the  Christ,  the  Son  of  the  living 
God,"  Jesus  said  unto  him,  "  Blessed  art  thou  Simon  Bar-jona : 
for  flesh  and  blood  hath  not  revealed  it  uuto  thee,  but  my  Father 
which  is  in  heaven."  The  Spirit  of  God  teaches  men  experimentally, 
making  them  not  only  to  see,  but  to  feel  the  truth  and  its  power 
upon  their  own  hearts.  He  brings  them  "  to  obey  from  the  heart 
that  form  of  doctrine  which  is  delivered  unto  them."  Their  souls 
are  cast  into  the  mould  of  it.  And  for  this  cause,  there  is  need  of 
much  humility  and  self-denial,  and  a  readiness  to  hear  what  the  Lord 
will  say.  "The  meek  will  he  guide  in  judgment,  and  the  meek  will 
he  teach  his  way." 

Lastly,  "Walk  in  the  truth.  "  If  any  man  will  do  his  will,  he  shall 
know  of  the  doctrine,  whether  it  be  of  God,  or  whether  I  speak  of 
myself."  There  is  a  certain  harmony  betwixt  the  truths  of  God, 
and  a  tendency  in  them  to  holiness  of  life;  so  as  close  walking  with 
God  inspires  a  man  with  a  certain  relish,  by  which  he  is  enabled  to 
discern  betwixt  truth  and  error;  having  his  spiritual  senses  exer- 
cised, he  judgeth  of  them,  as  the  month  tastes  meat.  We  now  pro- 
ceed, 

11.  To  shew  that  we  should  labour  to  be  doubtless  as  to  the  truth 
of  religion  within  us,  as  to  the  reality  of  grace,  and  not  satisfy  our- 
selves with  a  continued  uncertainty  in  that  point,  whether  Christ 
hath  the  chief  room  in  our  heart  or  not.  We  should  seek  after  this 
certainty,  with  respect  to  our  personal  religion. 

1.  Because  the  saints  may  attain  to  it.  It  is  promised.  "He 
that  hath  my  commandments,"  saith  Jesus,  "  and  keepeth  them,  he 
it  is  that  loveth  me:  and  he  that  lov.th  me  shall  be  loved  of  my 
Father,  and  I  will  love  him,  and  will  manifest  myself  to  him."  It  is 
cumuiaudcd.  '•  Wherefore  the  rather,  brethren,  give  diligence  to  make 


130  CHRIST  JESUS 

your  calling  and  election  sure  ;  for  if  ye  do  these  things,  ye  shall 
never  fall."  Again,  "  Let  us  draw  near  with  a  true  heart,  in  full 
assurance  of  faith  ;  having  our  hearts  sprinkled  from  an  evil  con- 
science, and  our  bodies  washed  with  pure  water.  Not  only  scripture 
saints,  as  David,  Hezekiah,  Thomas,  Peter,  Paul,  but  even  many 
others  of  lower  size  have  attained  it. 

2.  Because  doubts  in  this  case  are  hurtful.  Such  doubts  are  like 
thistles  among  corn ;  though  it  is  possibly  not  the  worst  ground  on 
which  they  grow,  yet  they  are  hurtful  weeds,  and  are  to  be  plucked 
up.  Doubts  are  injurious  to  God,  and  spoil  him  of  his  praise.  They 
are  injurious  to  the  saints  themselves,  spoiling  them  of  their  comfort, 
strength,  and  confidence,  which  they  might  otherwise  have,  2  Peter 
i.  10.  A  doubting  Christian  is  always  a  weak  Christian  ;  therefore 
I  will  add, 

Lastlj/,  The  case  of  our  day  calls  for  it.  There  is  so  little  doubt 
of  our  being  put  to  the  trial,  that  we  should  now  be  labouring  to  be 
doubtless  about  it.  For  a  doubting  Christian  is  very  unfit  to  act  for 
Christ  in  a  difficult  time,  and  more  unfit  to  suff'er  for  Christ.  "When 
we  have  nothing  in  the  world  sure,  we  should  endeavour  to  have  our 
religion  sure.  Therefore  in  suffering  or  difficult  times,  the  Lord 
uscth  to  give  this  assurance  to  his  people,  as  to  Moses,  Paul,  &c. 

Directions.  1.  Labour  to  get  out  of  au  ill  frame,  if  you  would  be 
doubtless  as  to  your  state.  It  is  difficult  for  a  man  to  know  in 
what  state  he  is,  when  asleep ;  so  in  the  spiritual  state  of  security, 
our  evidences  sleep  with  us ;  therefore,  awake.  Nor  can  a  man 
judge  of  his  state  when  in  a  faint ;  so  in  the  spiritual  faint  of  deser- 
tion, we  are  not  fit  to  read  our  evidences,  when  the  light  of  the 
Lord's  countenance  is  gone  out  with  us.  Nor  can  a  man  judge  of 
his  state,  when  stunned  with  a  sore  fall :  thus  also  spiritual  falls, 
especially  relapses,  put  a  man  out  of  his  spiritual  senses.  As  a  man 
when  he  is  in  a  thicket  of  thorns,  so  are  men  sometimes  in  tempta- 
tions, they  are  no  sooner  out,  than  they  are  taken  hold  of  again. 
Wrestle  then  to  get  out  of  entangling  temptations. 

2.  Labour  to  have  a  close  walk  with  God.  "  Herein,"  says  Paul, 
*'  do  I  exercise  myself,  to  have  a  conscience  void  of  ofi'ence  to- 
wards God  and  toward  men."  This  hath  the  promise  of  assurance. 
"  Whoso  ofi'ereth  praise  glorifieth  me  :  and  to  him  that  ordereth  his 
conversation  aright,  will  I  shew  the  salvation  of  God."  Such  a  con- 
versation makes  conscience  our  friend,  and  cherisheth  the  Spirit,  by 
which  we  are  sealed.  "  Beloved,  if  our  heart  condemn  us  not,  then 
have  we  confidence  toward  God." 

3.  Attend  carefully  to  the  duty  of  self-examination.  "  Examine 
yourselves  whether  ye  be  in  the  faith ;  prove  your  ownselves  ;  know 


DULY  PRIZED.  131 

ye  not  your  own  selves,  how  that  Jesus  Christ  is  in  you,  except  ye 
be  reprobates,"  God  has  given  us,  in  his  word,  marks  of  the  soul's 
being  in  Christ,  these  we  should  apply. 

Lastly,  Cry  much  to  God  for  his  Spirit,  to  teach  you  to  know  the 
things  that  are  freely  given  to  you  of  God,  and  for  his  Spirit  "  to 
bear  witness  with  your  spirit,  that  you  are  his  children." 

Having  thus  seen  the  apostle  openly  professing  his  esteem  of 
Christ  above  all,  and  expressing  himself  with  the  utmost  certainty  ; 
we  go  on,  thirdly,  to  observe  that  the  apostle  delievers  himself  here 
very  affectionately,  and  with  an  enlarged  heart.  The  more  he  speaks 
of  Christ,  he  still  riseth  the  higher.  Some  things  he  counted  loss, 
but  here  all  things  ;  not  only  loss,  but  dung.     Now, 

This  teacheth  us,  that  the  excellency  of  Christ  is  a  subject  that 
natively  fires  a  gracious  heart.     It  doth  this, 

1.  Because  all  their  hopes  are  in  him.  Whatever  they  have  in 
hand,  or  in  hope,  of  pardon,  peace,  joy,  assurance,  all  is  built  on  him 
as  the  foundation.  "  For  they  are  dead,  and  their  life  is  hid  with 
Christ  in  God.  When  Christ,  who  is  their  life,  shall  appear,  then 
shall  they  also  appear  with  him  in  glory." 

2.  Because  all  their  desires  are  in  him.  "  Whom  have  I  in 
heaven  but  thee,  and  there  is  none  on  earth  that  I  desire  besides 
thee."  He  is  to  them  a  satisfying  portion,  in  whom  they  see  enough 
to  satisfy,  and  to  give  rest  to  their  spirits. 

Use  1.  It  is  a  sad  sympton  when  people's  spirits  are  not  affected 
with  the  preaching  of  Christ.  When  people  find  their  hearts 
touched  and  affected  with  the  thunderings  of  the  law,  but  remain 
unmoved  with  the  still  small  voice  of  the  gospel.  When  things 
relating  to  the  public  raise  their  spirits,  and  the  preaching  of  Christ 
is  tasteless  to  them,  as  the  white  of  an  egg ;  it  is  the  sign  either  of 
a  dead,  or  a  distempered  soul. 

2.  Let  the  saints  then  think,  speak,  and  hear  of  Christ,  as  the 
best  way  to  fire  their  coldrife  hearts  and  affections.  It  is  by  him 
alone  we  partake  of  divine  influences ;  and  to  his  saints,  "  his  name 
will  ever  be  as  ointment  poured  forth,  therefore  do  the  virgins  love 
him."  The  more  the  soul  thinks  on  hira,  the  more  precious  will  he 
be  in  its  eyes ;  for  he  is  an  object  that  will  abide  a  look. 

II.  Let  us  consider  the  grand  scope  of  the  apostle  in  this  verse. 
It  is  to  shew  the  incomparable  excellence  of  Christ.  Every  clause 
in  the  text  breathes  out  this.  "  Yea,  doubtless,  and  I  count  all 
things  but  loss,  for  the  excellency  of  the  knowledge  of  Jesus  Christ 
my  Lord." 

Doctrine.  Jesus  Christ  is  an  absolutely  matchless  one.  He  is  a 
nonsuch.     All  sheaves  must  bow  lo  his.     The  subject  of  the  match- 


132  CHRIST  JESUS 

less  excellence  of  Christ,  is  a  subject  tliat  can  never  be  exhausted.  I 
shall  only  drop  a  few  things.  There  are  three  ways  to  prove  the 
transcendent  excellence  of  Christ. 

I.  By  testimony. 

II.  By  real  evidence. 

III.  By  comparison. 

I.  By  testimony.  Heaven  and  earth  concur  to  bear  witness  to 
the  transcendent  excellence  of  Christ.     He  hath, 

1.  God's  testimony.  The  Father  declares  him  to  be  his  delight, 
Isa.  xlii.  1.  He  gave  him  to  the  world  as  the  greatest  demonstra- 
tion of  his  love,  John  iii.  16.  He  declared  by  a  voice  from  heaven, 
"  that  he  is  his  Son,  in  whom  he  is  well  pleased ;"  not  only  with 
himself,  but  with  sinners  for  his  sake.  This  was  done  with  great 
solemnity,  "  for  lo  !  the  heavens  were  opened  to  him,  and  he  saw 
the  Spirit  of  God  descending  like  a  dove,  and  lighting  upon  him." 

2.  The  testimony  of  angels.  An  angel  brought  the  news  of  his 
birth,  and  an  host  of  them  sung  for  joy  at  the  great  event,  Luke 
ii.  10 — 14.  In  another  place,  we  find  thousands  of  thousands  of 
them,  giving  their  testimony  to  him,  in  these  words  :  "Worthy  is  the 
Lamb  that  was  slain,  to  receive  power,  and  riches,  and  wisdom,  and 
strength,  and  honour,  and  glory,  and  blessing." 

3.  The  testimony  of  the  saints  in  heaven,  who  have  got  a  place 
among  them  that  stand  before  the  throne.  This  we  may  learn  from 
that  which  is  borrowed  from  their  practice,  to  shew  the  exercise  of 
the  church  militant.  "  They  rest  not  day  and  night,  saying  Holy, 
holy,  holy.  Lord  God  Almighty,  which  was,  and  is,  and  is  to  come. 
They  fall  down  before  him  that  sitteth  upon  the  throne,  and  worship 
him  that  liveth  for  ever."  They  cast  their  crowns  before  the  throne, 
saying,  "  Thou  art  worthy,  0  Lord,  to  receive  glory,  and  honour, 
ar.d  power:  for  thou  hast  created  all  things,  and  for  thy  pleasure 
they  are,  and  were  created."  Could  we  have  access  to  them,  they 
would  give  us  that  testimony  of  him  which  the  queen  of  Sheba  gave 
of  Solomon.  "  Behold  the  half  was  not  told  me  :  thy  wisdom  and 
prosperity  exceedeth  the  fame  which  I  heard.  Happy  are  thy  men ; 
happy  are  these  thy  servants,  which  stand  continually  before  thee, 
and  hear  thy  wisdom." 

4.  The  testimony  of  the  saints  on  earth,  who  concur  in  this,  that 
he  is  a  matchless  one.  "  Thou  art  fairer,"  say  they,  "  than  the 
children  of  men  ;  grace  is  poured  into  thy  lips  :  therefore  God  hath 
blessed  thee  for  ever."  Says  Asaph,  *'  Whom  have  I  in  heaven  but 
thee,  and  there  is  none  upon  earth  that  I  desire  besides  thee." 
Says  Solomon,  "  For  wisdom  is  better  than  rubies ;  and  all  the  things 
that  may  be  desired,  are  not  to  be  compared  to  it."     But  why  should 


DULY  PRIZED. 


133 


we  stand  upon  particulars,  all  have  given  a  real  testimony,  in  joining 
with  Paul,  in  the  text.  They  know  him,  and  therefore  their  testi- 
mony is  to  be  regarded. 

5,  His  very  enemies  bear  testimony  to  him.  We  hear  them  say, 
Never  man  spake  like  this  man. 

All  that  profess  his  name,  give  him  that  testimony,  though,  alas  ! 
many  of  them,  indeed,  prefer  others  to  him. 

II.  By  real  evidence,  whereof  take  these  following  : 

1.  He  is  God.  "  He  is  the  true  God,  and  eternal  life ;"  therefore 
his  excellence  is  infinite.  "  lu  him  dwelleth  all  the  fulness  of  the 
Godhead  bodily."  "  He  is  the  brightness  of  his  Father's  glory,  and 
the  express  image  of  his  person,  upholding  all  things  by  the  word 
of  his  power."  Angels  and  men,  and  all  their  works,  are  but 
created  things,  the  workmanship  of  his  hands.  He  is  the  Creator,  the 
beginning :  "  All  things  wei'e  made  by  him ;  and  without  him  was 
not  any  thing  made  that  was  made." 

2.  Christ  is  commensurate  to  the  desires  of  the  soul,  which  all 
creatures,  conjunctly  or  severally,  are  not.  All  things  besides  him 
have  the  bounds  of  their  goodness ;  one  of  them  is  good  for  one 
thing,  another  for  another;  none  of  them  for  all  things.  But  there 
is  an  universal  fitness  in  him,  "  for  it  pleased  the  Father,  that  in 
him  should  all  fulness  dwell."  He  is  the  storehouse,  from  which  all 
the  saints,  from  Adam,  have  derived  the  supply  of  their  wants. 
"  In  him  are  hid  all  the  treasures  of  wisdom  and  knowledge." 
What  would  we  have,  it  is  all  in  him. 

3.  Whatever  excellency  or  perfection  is  in  any  thing  else,  it  is 
derived  from  him.  The  most  desirable  creatures  shine  with  light 
borrowed  from  him.  There  is  no  perfection  in  the  creature,  but 
what  is  eminently  in  himself,  as  the  first  cause.  "  That  was  the 
true  Light,  which  lighteth  every  man  that  cometh  into  the  world." 

4.  All  things  beside  Christ  cannot  make  a  man  happy ;  but 
the  enjoyment  of  Christ  alone  can  do  it.  There  are  two  things 
wanting  in  all  the  creatures,  that  are  to  be  found  in  him.  These 
are,  First,  sufficiency ;  nothing  can  make  one  happy,  but  what  is 
completely  satisfactory ;  for  if  there  be  the  least  want,  it  mars 
happiness;  now  nothing  besides  Christ  is  such.  In  the  most  pros- 
perous condition  there  is  something  wanting,  as  in  paradise.  Clirist 
alone  is  completely  satisfactory,  Psal.  Ixxiii.  25.  "He  is  all  in 
all;"  virtually  all  things.  He  is  the  heir  of  all,  and  they  who  have 
him,  have  all.  Secondly,  certainty ;  what  is  liable  to  change  can- 
not make  men  happy;  but  all  things  beside  Christ  arc  so,  Prov. 
xxiii.  5;  but  he  is  unchangeable,  "the  same  yesterday,  to-day,  and 
forever."     All   fuluoss  dwells   in  hiin;  they  that  eisjoy  him  uoid 


134  CUKIST  JESUS 

fear  no  change ;  not  in  this  life,  "  for  he  loves  unto  the  end ;"  nor 
in  the  life  to  come,  "  for  they  shall  be  ever  with  the  Lord."  No 
change  with  respect  to  the  subject,  they  shall  never  be  taken  from 
him,  Rom.  viii.  38 ;  nor  with  respect  to  the  object,  he  shall  never  be 
taken  from  them. 

5.  When  no  other  thing  can  make  help  to  a  man,  Psal.  cxlii.  3, 
4.  Thus  while  the  cisterns  of  created  comforts  run  dry,  the  saints 
live  in,  and  by  him.  Thus  when  David  was  spoiled  of  all,  in 
Ziklag,  "  he  encouraged  himself  in  the  Lord  his  God."  Thus 
Habakkuk  resolved,  that  whatever  should  befall  him,  "  he  would 
rejoice  in  the  Lord,  and  joy  in  the  God  of  his  salvation."  So  when 
death  comes,  they  have  him  "  to  be  the  strength  of  their  hearts,  and 
portion  for  ever." 

Lastly,  He  can  do  for  us  what  no  other  can  do,  procure  for  us 
pardon  of  sin,  peace  with  God,  a  right  to  heaven,  things  which 
angels  and  men  cannot  do. 

III.  By  comparison.  No  person,  no  thing  is  to  be  compared  with 
him. 

1.  Men  on  earth  ;  what  are  they,  in  comparison  of  Christ.  Great 
men ;  they  are  all  but  his  vassals,  who  is  King  of  kings  ;  they  have 
but  a  borrowed  glory.  Wise  men  ;  their  wisdom  is  but  folly,  in  com- 
parison of  the  wisdom  of  God.  Good  men ;  their  goodness  is  no- 
thing, in  comparison  of  him. 

2.  Saints  in  heaven;  what  are  they,  but  so  many  bright  stars 
shining  with  light  from  the  Sun  of  Righteousness,  wonders  of  his 
mercy,  and  monuments  of  his  love.  They  are  like  the  lilies,  wearing 
a  glory  for  which  they  never  toiled. 

3.  Angels  are  all  servants.  He  is  their  head.  When  an  angel 
was  offered  to  go  before  the  people,  Moses  was  not  content,  but  said, 
"  If  thy  presence  go  not  with  me,  carry  me  not  up  hence." 

4.  The  devils  have  great  power :  the  god  of  this  world.  Christ 
hath  the  devils  in  a  chain. 

No  things  are  to  be  compared  with  him,  no  affluence  of  worldly 
things.  They  are  all  of  them  greater  in  expectation  than  in  enjoy- 
ment. All  broken  cisterns  that  soon  run  dry.  All  bitter  sweets. 
All  insufficient  to  satisfy  the  heart. 

Even  spiritual  things  are  not  to  be  compared  to  him.  Grace  and 
glory  are  his  gifts ;  but  the  giver  must  be  above  the  gift. 

Use  1.  They  have  a  poor  portion  who  are  without  Christ.  They 
never  can  be  happy. 

2.  They  have  made  a  good  choice  that  have  received  Christ.  Be 
their  case  what  it  will,  they  have  no  reason  to  complain ;  Christ  is 
theirs.     Though  they  have  little  in  hand,  they  have  much  in  hope. 


DULY  PRIZED.  135 

3.  "We  are  to  stand  on  nothing,  so  as  we  may  gain  Clirist ;  and  to 
be  satisfied  with  nothing,  if  so  we  must  lose  him. 

This  subject  reproves  all  the  slighters  of  Christ.  Such  are  profane 
persons,  carnal  worldlings,  moralists,  hypocrites  however  refined, 
and  all  such  as  undervalue  the  glory,  honour,  kingdom  and  interest 
of  Christ  in  the  world. 

Let  what  hath  been  said  commend  Christ  to  us  all. 

ALL    THIXGS    BUT    LOSS    FOR    THE    EXCELLENCY,  &C. 

I  COME  now  particularly  to  the  words.  Here  is  the  excellency  of 
the  knowledge  of  Christ,  held  forth  as  before  all  things.  "What  is 
meant  by  the  knowledge  of  Christ  ?  By  the  knowledge  of  Christ 
here,  I  understand  a  saving  interest  in,  and  enjoyment  of  Christ.  So 
it  is  taken,  "  This  is  life  eternal,  that  they  might  know  thee  the  only 
true  God,  and  Jesus  Christ  whom  thou  hast  sent."  So  our  Lord  tells 
the  foolish  virgins,  "  I  say  unto  you  I  know  you  not."  They  plead 
an  interest  in  him,  hereby  he  disowns  them  as  none  of  his.  And  so 
"  seeing  of  God,"  Matth.  v.  8,  and  "  seeing  of  the  kingdom  of  God," 
John  iii.  3,  is  put  for  an  interest  in,  and  enjoying  of  God.  And  so 
the  text  must  be  understood ;  for  certainly  it  is  not  the  notional, 
speculative  knowledge  of  Christ,  which  Paul's  adversaries  here  ne- 
glected not ;  but  the  saving,  practical,  experimental  knowledge  of 
him,  as  is  evident  from  the  context,  ver.  9.  This  is  that  for  which 
he  throws  away  all  things  else,  taking  and  desiring  to  have  him 
instead  of  all.     And  this  is  called  the  knowledge  of  Christ, 

Because  Christ  is  a  spiritual  object ;  an  object  for  the  soul,  and 
not  for  the  senses;  "whom,  having  not  seen,  we  love."  The  soul 
must  rise  from  sensible  things  and  occupy  itself  in  the  contemplation 
of  his  perfections,  uniting  with  him,  so  that  the  soul  finds  that  sweet- 
ness in  him  that  satiates  it,  so  that  the  happiness  of  heaven  consists 
in  the  seeing  of  God  and  of  Christ,  "  whom  we  shall  see  as  he  is;" 
that  is,  the  enjoying  of  them. 

Doctrine  1.  That  only  is  the  true  knowledge  of  Christ  which  ter- 
minates in  an  interest  in,  and  enjoyment  of  him.  All  other  know- 
ledge that  comes  short  of  this  is  unworthy  of  the  name.  As  the 
least  brook  that  is,  however  shallow,  differs  from  the  deepest  standing 
pool,  while  it  runs  into  the  sea,  and  resteth  not  till  it  be  there  ;  so 
the  least  measure  of  saving  knowledge  differs  from  all  the  light  a 
hypocrite  hath,  in  that  it  terminates  in  an  embracing  of,  and  uniting 
with  Christ,  while  the  other  stands  idle  and  inefficacious  in  that 
matter.     To  confirm  this,  consider, 

1.  That  all  the  knowledge  of  Christ  which  men  have,  that  brings 
them  not  to  him,  is  but  splendid  ignorance,  according  to  the  word. 


136  CHRIST  JESUS 

Henco  they  are  branded  everywhere  as  fools ;  men  whose  hearts 
cannot  be  right,  because  their  heads  are  not  right;  foolish  builders, 
foolish  virgins ;  they  are  blind  also.  Some  persons  can  talk  so  as 
they  are  admired  of  the  ignorant,  but  when  knowing  persons  come 
to  try  their  knowledge,  they  find  they  do  not  understand  what  they 
speak,  nor  whereof  they  affirm.  So  is  it  with  those  that  have  not 
the  saving  knowledge  of  Christ ;  their  knowledge  is  but  gilded  ig- 
norance. 

2.  That  knowledge  of  Christ,  which  issues  not  in  an  interest  in 
in  him,  is  not  so  much  knowledge,  as  mere  opinion;  which  is  dubi- 
ous and  uncertain.  "  The  natural  man  receiveth  not  the  things  of 
the  Spirit  of  God,  for  they  are  foolishness  unto  him;  neither  can 
he  know  them,  because  they  are  spiritually  discerned."  Natural 
men,  to  speak  properly,  have  not  the  knowledge  of  Christ  ,though  they 
can  preach  him ;  but  only  an  opinion,  a  good  opinion  of  him,  as  men 
have  of  many  points  that  are  in  controA^ersy,  in  which  they  are  far  from 
an  absolute  certainty.  They  think  well  of  Christ,  but  yet  they  will 
not  commit  themselves  to  him,  because  they  are  not  sure.  When  you 
meet  with  a  stranger  at  an  inn  when  travelling,  you  find,  perhaps, 
the  man  a  very  discreet  person,  and  you  form  a  good  opinion  of  him, 
that  he  is  a  very  honest  man,  and  therefore  you  will  converse  with 
him  a  while ;  but  yet  you  will  not  commit  your  money  to  him,  be- 
cause though  you  have  a  very  good  opinion  of  him,  he  is  a  stranger 
to  you,  you  do  not  know  him.  Just  so  it  is  with  those  who  have 
only  a  speculative  knowledge  of  Christ.  They  do  not  know  him  so 
well  as  to  put  their  trust  in  him.  There  are  two  points  of  saving 
knowledge,  by  which  I  may  exemplify  this. 

1.  The  superlative  worth  and  excellency  of  Christ.  That  he  is 
more  precious  than  all  things  else,  as  in  the  text;  and  that  all  the 
things  that  may  be  desired  are  not  to  be  compared  to  him.  Now, 
no  doubt,  each  in  this  congregation  would  answer,  if  asked,  that 
they  know  this.  But  mistake  it  not,  there  is  a  difterence  betwixt 
knowledge  and  opinion.  As  for  most  of  us,  it  is  bixt  opinion,  not 
knowledge,  otherwise  we  would  take  him  for,  and  instead  of  all, 
Matth.  xiii.  45,  46.  If  one  should  offer  a  pearl  to  an  ordinary 
merchant  for  all  that  he  hath,  his  attention  would  be  excited,  his 
heart  and  eye  would  be  in  the  pearl  indeed,  but  he  dare  not  venture 
on  the  bargain ;  for  though  he  has  some  notion  that  perhaps  that 
one  pearl  is  better  than  all  the  goods  he  hath,  yet  he  is  not  sure. 
But  should  a  jeweller  come  and  tell  him,  assuring  him  that  it  is 
worth  double  of  all  his  ware,  he  would  take  it,  and  give  up  all  his 
ware  with  heart  and  good  will.  Thus  saith  Jesus,  "if  thou  knew- 
est  the  gift   of  God,  and  who  it  is  that  saith  to  thee,  Give  me 


I>ULT  PRIZED.  137 

to  drink  ;   thou  wouldest  have  asted  of  him,  and  he  would  have 
given  thee  living  water." 

2.  Christ's  sufficiency.  That  Christ  is  able  to  bear  all  the  sinner's 
weight  for  time  and  eternity.  That  he  is  just  such  an  high  priest  as 
became  us.  We  all  think  we  know  this ;  and  certainly  the  saints 
that  have  believed,  and  rolled  all  their  weight  upon  him,  have 
known  it.  They  can  say,  each  for  himself,  "  I  know  whom  I  have 
believed,  and  am  persuaded  that  he  is  able  to  keep  that  which  I 
have  committed  to  him  against  that  day."  But  really,  to  the  most 
part,  it  goes  no  fai'ther  than  a  bare  opinion,  which  never  brings  them 
to  venture  all  freely  upon  him.  They  are  like  a  man  fallen  into  a 
deep  pit,  a  rope  is  let  down,  he  looks  to  it  again  and  again,  thinks 
it  is  strong  enough  ;  yet  when  he  comes  to  try  it,  he  starts  back, 
cannot  venture  for  he  is  not  sure,  and  therefore  falls  a  climbing  up, 
till  he  fall  and  rnin  himself.  Now  the  true  knowledge  of  Christ 
differs  exceedingly  from  this  opinion  of  hira.  Says  Paul  to  the 
Thcssalonians,  "  Knowing,  brethren  beloved,  your  election  of  God. 
For  our  Gospel  came  not  unto  you  in  word  only,  but  also  i:i  power, 
and  in  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  in  much  assurance." 

3.  The  true  knowledge  of  Christ  engages  the  heart,  and  captivates 
the  soul.  "  And  they  that  know  thy  name,  will  put  their  trust  in 
thee ;  for  thou,  Lord,  hast  not  forsaken  them  that  seek  thee." 
"When  the  gospel  comes  in  power  and  demonstration  of  the  Spirit, 
the  heart  of  a  sinner  is  overpowered,  that  as  it  cannot  hinder  itself 
to  assent  to  clear  truth,  so  it  cannot  but  embrace  him  as  the  chief 
good.  "  Because  of  the  savour  of  thy  good  ointments,  thy  name  is 
as  ointment  poured  forth,  therefore  do  the  virgins  love  thee."  As 
the  loadstone  draws  iron  to  it,  so  there  is  a  divine  virtue  in  spiritual 
illumination,  to  draw  the  sinner  to  Christ.  As  some  waters  have  a 
healing  virtue  coming  through  minerals,  so  Christ,  riding  in  triumph 
in  his  glory  through  the  soul,  certainly  gains  the  heart  consent  of 
those  that  behold  him.  So  that  that  light,  like  the  fire  of  the  fur- 
nace, burns  off  the  children's  bonds  wherewith  they  were  held  be- 
fore. 

4.  The  saving  knowledge  of  Christ  differs  not  in  kind,  but  in  de- 
grees, from  heaven's  happiness.  It  is  the  commencement  of  eternal 
life  in  the  soul,  John  xvii.  3,  "But  we  all  with  open  face  beholding  as 
in  a  glass  the  glory  of  the  Lord,  are  changed  into  the  same  image, 
from  glory  to  glory,  even  as  by  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord."  Here  the 
knowledge  of  hira  is  through  a  glass  darkly,  there  face  to  face.  As 
in  heaven,  then,  there  is  a  complete  happiness  and  enjoyment  of  God, 
from  that  knowledge  of  him  there ;  so  there  is  a  real  interest  and 
enjoyment  of  hira  here,  in  some,  in  which  the  knowledge  of  him  here 


138  CHRIST  JKSU3 

doth  issue.  "What  did  it  avail  the  rich  man,  to  see  Abraham,  and 
Lazarus  in  his  bosom,  afar  off;  this  contributed  to  his  torment.  So 
what  avails  any  knowledge  of  Christ,  without  an  interest  in  him? 
As  James  says  of  faith  without  works,  "  Can  faith  save  you  ?"  So 
may  we  say  of  mere  speculative  knowledge.  Can  it  save  you  ? 

Lastly,  The  true  knowledge  of  Christ  is  not  an  idle  speculation, 
but  a  practical  experimental  knowledge,  ver.  9.  It  is  to  know  him, 
that  we  may  be  partakers  of  him.  Saving  knowledge  is  transform- 
ing, 2  Cor.  iii.  18.  Men  do  not  dig  into  the  bowels  of  the  earth  to  see 
gold,  but  to  enjoy  it;  nor  do  they  know  the  treasure  in  Christ, 
whose  business  it  is  not  to  make  it  their  own. 

Use  1.  Of  Information. 

1.  Many  of  those  who  want  not  knowledge  of  the  truths  of  reli- 
gion in  some  sort,  may  begin  again  to  learn  the  A,  B,  C,  of  Christian 
knowledge.  How  many  learned  ignorants  are  there  in  the  world, 
that  know  something  of  all  things,  but  the  one  thing  needful.  This 
is  a  certain  rule.  A  man  has  no  more  of  Christ  in  his  head,  than  he 
has  of  him  in  his  heart.  And  if  that  be  so  truly,  for  as  far  as  most 
of  us  are  on,  we  may  be  brought  back  to  the  first  question  of  grace's 
catechism,  "  "What  is  his  name,  and  what  is  his  Son's  name,  if  thou 

^  canst  tell  ?" 

2.  True  knowledge  carries  a  man  out  of  himself  to  Christ,  and 
so  fills  a  man  with  humility  and  self-denial.  "  I  have  heard  of 
thee  by  the  hearing  of  the  ear,"  says  Job,  "  but  now  mine  eye 
seeth  thee,  wherefore  I  abhor  myself,  and  repent  in  dust  and  ashes." 
That  knowledge  which  puffeth  up  is  none  of  the  right  sort,  for  were 
it  of  the  right  kind,  it  would,  as  a  river,  run  into  the  sea  of  the  excel- 
lency of  Christ,  and  raise  him,  and  empty  and  humble  men's  selves 
in  their  own  eyes.  No  more  knowledge  of  Christ  have  we,  than  we 
have  of  humility  and  self-denial.  They  to  whom  Christ  is  all,  will 
themselves  be  nothing  in  their  own  eyes. 

3.  Surely  Christ  is  a  veiled  beauty  to  those  who  are  not  interested 
in  him.  They  that  know  him  cannot  but  love  and  embrace  him, 
they  cannot  refuse  him.  If  Christ  has  not  yet  got  thy  heart,  surely 
thine  eyes  are  held,  that  thou  canst  not  perceive  him,  Song  v.  9 — 
16,  compare  chap.  vi.  1.  Thou  couldst  not  prefer  any  thing  to  him, 
if  thou  didst  but  behold  his  glory,  therefore  thou  knowest  no  more 
of  l\ini  than  he  has  of  thy  heart. 

4.  In  whatever  measure  any  thing  besides  Christ  carries  away 
the  heart,  the  knowledge  of  Christ  is  so  far  lost.  The  heart  of  man  is 
an  empty  thing  that  must  needs  be  seeking  satisfaction  in  the 
enjoyment  of  something.  If  thy  heart  be  inordinately  going  out 
after  the  enjoyment  of  the  creatures,  it  is  an  evidence  that  it  has  so 


DULY  PRIZED.  11^9 

far  lost  the  knowledge  of  his  excellence ;  so  far  as  that  is  gone,  so 
far  hast  thou  lost  the  true  knowledge  of  him.  And,  therefore,  for 
recovery,  turn  the  eyes  of  thy  mind  towards  him  to  behold  his  glory, 
which  is  the  readiest  way  to  darken  created  excellence. 

Lastly,  The  best  way  to  obtain  true  knowledge  of  Christ,  is  to  be 
much  in  seeking  and  conversing  with  hira,  that  is  the  way  to  enjoy 
him.  "  My  soul  shall  be  satisfied  as  with  marrow  and  fatness,  and 
my  mouth  shall  praise  thee  with  joyful  lips,  when  I  remember  thee 
upon  my  bed,  and  meditate  on  thee  in  the  night  watches."  "  If 
any  man  will  do  his  will,  he  shall  know  of  the  doctrine,  whether  it 
be  of  God,  or  whether  I  speak  of  myself."  Practical  religion  is  the 
best  way  to  attain  to  more  of  the  knowledge  of  Christ.  As  those 
with  whom  we  would  be  acquainted,  we  must  be  much  in  their  com- 
pany, and  converse  with  them  frequently ;  so  this  is  the  way  in 
which  Christians  get  the  secrets  of  the  covenant  manifested  to  them. 

Use  2.  Let  me  exhort  you  to  labour  to  know  Christ,  and  to 
improve  your  knowledge  of  him  to  an  interest  in,  and  enjoyment  of 
him;  and  never  satisfy  yourselves  with  a  knowledge  of  him  that 
comes  short  of  that.  Never  reckon  you  know  more  than  you  enjoy 
and  feel  in  your  souls  of  Christ,  or  than  you  really,  in  believing, 
make  use  of,  and  improve  for  your  souls.     Consider, 

1.  Such  knowledge  is  very  useless  to  you,  whatever  it  may  be  to 
others,  for  whom  God  can  serve  himself  of  it,  to  lead  them  in  the 
way  of  truth.  "What  would  it  avail  a  man  to  know  the  remedy, 
while  he  neglects  to  apply  it;  would  not  such  an  one  die  of  his  dis- 
ease. Sinners,  what  will  it  avail  you,  that  you  know  Christ  is  a 
Saviour,  if  you  do  not  employ  him  ?  What  the  better  is  a  man, 
that  he  dies  within  sight  of  the  physician  ?  What  would  it  avail  if 
a  man  had  ever  so  much  knowledge  of  the  law,  if  yet  he  suffer  men 
to  wheedle  him  out  of  his  estate,  while  he  neglects  to  plead  his 
right?  And  what  tbongh  you  know  what  to  do  to  be  saved,  if 
you  do  it  not  ?  What  the  better  are  you  to  know  Christ  to  be  an 
up-making  portion,  if  you  take  him  not  for  your  portion  ? 

2.  Nay,  such  knowledge  is  noxious.  It  doth  for  the  present  ag- 
gravate your  sin.  Sins  against  light,  are  of  all  sins  the  most  heavy. 
For  the  future,  it  will  aggravate  your  condemnation.  Alas  !  what 
is  that  knowledge,  that  serves  only  as  a  lantern  to  light  men  into 
everlasting  darkness  ? 

3.  Our  disease  lies  more  in  our  hearts  than  in  our  heads.  There 
was  some  knowledge  left  after  the  fall,  Rom.  ii.  15  ;  but  there  was 
no  goodness,  no  heart  holiness.  If  physic  be  taken,  yet  if  it  do  not 
operate  to  carry  off  the  ill  humours  of  the  body,  a  person  is  nothing 
the  better,  but  rather  the  worse  ;  so  is  it  when  knowledfo  comes 

Vol.  IV.  K 


140  CHRIST  JESUS 

into  the  head,  but  sinks  not  into  the  heart.  Men's  minds  should 
usher  in  the  truth  received,  into  the  heart ;  but  instead  of  that,  they 
are  often  as  jailors,  to  lock  it  up  in  prison  that  it  cannot  stir, 
"  They  hold  the  truth  in  unrighteousness." 

Lastly,  God  will  not  own  his  knowing  of  any,  but  those  in  whom 
he  has  a  special  interest,  Matth.  xxv.  12.  And  if  ye  would  reckon 
as  God  will  do,  you  would  reckon  thus  also. 

Use  3.  Of  comfort  to  those  that  have  seen  as  much  of  Christ,  as 
that  they  cannot  rest  without  an  interest  in  him ;  and  have  some 
enjoyment  of  him,  but  may  be  discouraged  under  a  sense  of  weak- 
ness of  knowledge.  But  be  comforted,  it  is  true  knowledge.  And 
as  a  little  gold  is  far  more  precious  thau  much  brass,  so  the  lowest 
degree  of  true  knowledge  is  far  better  than  great  stores  of  mere 
speculative  knowledge. 

Doctrine  II.  All  things  are  but  loss  in  comparison  of  an  inte- 
rest in  Christ,  and  the  enjoyment  of  him.  This  is  a  point  that  runs 
counter  to  the  judgment  of  all  the  unregenerate  world,  who  conut 
highly  of  other  things,  but  make  light  of  Christ  and  an  interest  in 
him.  This  is  confirmed  by  the  daily  practice  of  all  out  of  Christ. 
Here  I  shall, 

I.  Shew  in  what  respects  all  things  are  but  loss  in  comparison  of 
an  interest  in  Christ,  and  the  enjoyment  of  him. 

II.  I  shall  confirm  this  point  by  proofs  and  illustrations.  I  am 
then, 

I.  To  show  in  what  respects  all  things  are  but  loss,  in  comparison 
of  an  interest  in  Christ,  and  the  enjoyment  of  him. 

1.  There  is  not  one  thing  in  all  the  creation,  but  it  is  loss,  in  com- 
parison of  the  enjoyment  of  Christ  as  ours.  Turn  over  all  the  crea- 
tures, and  all  created  perfections  in  the  world,  single  out  the  best  of 
them,  and  the  most  desirable,  take  the  choicest,  it  will  be  but  refuse 
in  comparison  of  Christ. 

2.  All  of  them  together,  are  but  loss  in  this  respect.  Suppose 
you  were  possessed  of  the  whole  inventory  of  good  things  ;  profit- 
able pleasant  things,  lawful  and  unlawful,  that  what  is  wanting  in 
one,  may  be  made  up  to  you  in  another ;  lay  the  possession  of  them 
in  one  balance,  and  the  enjoyment  of  Christ  in  another,  they  would 
all  be  weighed  down.  If  the  whole  constellation  of  created  perfec- 
tions should  arise  upon  you,  Christ,  as  the  Sun  of  Righteousness, 
would  darken  them  all.  Had  you  Solomon's  riches  and  wisdom, 
Samson's  strength,  Absalom's  beauty ;  should  all  the  created  com- 
forts ever  man  had,  or  ever  will  have,  fall  down  together  into  your 
bosom,  all  would  be  nothing  in  comparison  of  an  interest  in  Christ, 
and  the  enjoyment  of  him.     All  is  but  loss.     All  are  of  no  value  in 


DULY  PRIZED.  141 

comparison  of  an  interest  in  Christ.  The  best  of  them  are  not 
worthy  to  be  named  with  hira  in  one  day.  Health  and  strength  are 
good,  and  outward  accommodations  and  privileges  are  good,  but  as 
the  glorious  stars  hide  their  heads  when  the  sun  appears,  so  must  all 
these  things  before  Christ.  They  are  all  to  be  thrown  away,  when 
we  cannot  have  Christ  with  them.  If  it  comes  to  that,  that  we  must 
part  with  Christ  or  part  with  them,  then  we  have  reason  to  say, 
farewell  profits,  pleasures,  honours,  liberty,  life  itself,  and  all  things, 
and  welcome  Christ.  They  are  to  be  lost  in  that  case,  but  in  no 
case  must  we  agree  to  lose  him.  The  man  is  at  no  loss  that  loseth 
them,  but  gains  Christ.  He  loseth  but  loss,  which  no  man  will 
grudge.  He  is  sufficiently  made  up  in  the  want  of  them  all,  by  the 
enjoyment  of  Christ. 

Finally,  He  has  a  poor  bargain  of  it,  that  has  all,  but  wants 
Christ.  His  gain  may  be  soon  told,  his  loss  cannot  be  reckoned  up. 
We  now  proceed, 

II.  To  confirm  this  point  by  proofs  and  illustrations.  0  to  be- 
lieve it !  The  belief  of  it  would  turn  the  current  of  our  desires  and 
endeavours  another  way. 

1.  An  interest  in  Christ  makes  God  ours,  for  he  is  God;  "the 
fulness  of  the  Godhead  dwells  in  him."  So  runs  the  covenant,  in 
which  God  makes  over  himself,  in  Christ,  to  sinners :  "  I  will,"  says 
he,  "  be  to  them  a  God,  and  they  shall  be  to  me  a  people."  He  is 
their  portion  and  their  heritage.  They  are  children  and  heirs, 
*'  heirs  of  God,  and  joint  heirs  with  Christ."  Now  what  is  all  the 
world  in  comparison  of  God  himself  ?  While  others  can  say,  this 
land,  this  house  is  mine,  the  Christian  can  say,  God  is  mine,  for 
Christ  is  mine  :  "Lo  this  God  is  our  God."  An  interest  in  Christ, 
then,  is  absolutely  the  greatest  treasure.  Men  nor  angels  cannot 
make  an  inventory  of  the  Christian's  portion,  which  is  summed  up 
in  this,  God  is  theirs.  The  greatest  abundance  of  earthly  things 
may  be  reckoned,  and  you  will  soon  hear  that  there  is  no  more. 
*'  But  eye  hath  not  seen,  nor  ear  heard,  neither  have  entered 
into  the  heart  of  man,  the  things  which  God  hath  prepared  for  them 
that  love  him."  The  infinite  perfections  of  God  are  their  treasure, 
and  this  treasure  will  tell  out  to  all  eternity.  It  is  also  absolutely 
the  most  valuable  treasure,  for  what  proportion  can  there  be  betwixt 
the  perfections  of  God,  and  those  of  the  creature.  Worldly  men 
may  have  some  streams  of  good  things  let  out  to  them,  but  the 
Christian  has  the  fountain  of  all.  Now,  whei'e  the  water  is  good,  it 
is  best  in  the  spring.  Sure  then  the  enjoyment  of  God  must  be  best. 
God's  goodness,  love,  and  all-sufficiency  is  theirs. 

2.  An  interest  in  Christ  is  the  one  thing  necessary.    "  One  thing" 

k2 


142  CHRIST  JESUS 

says  our  Lord,  *'  is  needful."  All  things  must  go  for  necessaries. 
A  man  parts  with  his  money  and  goods  for  his  health,  and  will  part 
with  all  for  his  life.  He  reckons  all  nothing  in  comparison  of  that, 
because  he  can  live  without  other  things,  but  none  of  these  things 
can  avail  him,  if  he  lose  his  life,  Matth.  vi.  25.  Even  so  an  interest 
in  Christ  stands  by  itself,  and  is  not  to  be  reckoned  among,  but 
above  all  things  else. 

Other  things  are  conveniencies  to  be  thankfully  received,  but  not 
necessaries  that  cannot  be  wanted.  Man's  great  desire  is  to  be 
happy.  This  is  the  end  which  all  propose  to  themselves.  Now,  I 
say,  other  things  besides  Christ  are  not  absolutely  necessary  for 
this  end.  It  is  not  necessary  that  you  may  be  rich,  you  may  be 
happy  without  riches.  Lazarus  was  happy,  though  poor;  the 
apostles,  though  despised,  and  counted  as  the  off-scouring  of  all ;  Job, 
without  either  health  or  wealth ;  the  saints  in  heaven  are  stripped 
of  the  comforts  of  this  life,  yet  perfectly  happy ;  therefore  happiness 
may  be  without  them. 

But  an  interest  in  Christ  is  absolutely  necessary.  No  happiness 
without  it.  Though  you  were  compassed  about  with  all  the  profits 
and  pleasures  of  the  world,  yet  in  this  case  the  sword  of  vengeance 
hangs  above  thy  head.  Thou  art  but  as  a  condemned  malefactor  set 
down  at  a  well  covered  table,  but  knoweth  not  how  soon  he  may  be 
raised  and  led  to  execution.  Though  the  earth  smiles  on  thee,  yet 
heaven  frowns;  though  men  bless,  God  curseth  thee,  and  may  say 
to  thee,  "  thou  fool,  this  night  shall  thy  soul  be  required  of  thee  ;  then 
whose  shall  those  things  be  which  thou  hast  provided  ?" 

Again,  nothing  can  make  up  the  want  of  an  interest  in  Christ ; 
but  an  interest  in  him  can  make  up  the  want  of  all  things  else.  All 
the  gold  of  the  Indies  will  not  buy  a  pardon,  nor  the  greatest  earthly 
honours  keep  from  everlasting  contempt.  Have  what  you  will,  if 
you  have  not  Christ,  you  are  under  a  loss  that  cannot  be  made  up 
another  way ;  but  that  makes  up  all  other  wants,  Philip,  iv.  18. 
"Whatever  you  want,  if  Christ  be  yours,  you  have  what  is  better. 

Finally,  Every  thing  that  one  really  needs  is  comprehended  in  it, 
so  that  the  way  to  get  all  our  needs  compendiously  answered,  is  to 
get  an  interest  in  Christ.  Our  wants  are  far  more  than  our  needs. 
We  reckon  our  needs  more  than  they  are;  but  once  in  Christ, 
then  one  may  well  expect  to  get  all  he  really  needs  made  out  to  him. 
"  He  that  spared  not  his  own  son,  but  delivered  him  up  for  us  all, 
how  shall  he  not  with  him  also  freely  give  us  all  things."  "  For  the 
Lord  will  give  grace  and  glory;  no  good  thing  will  he  withhold 
from  them  that  walk  uprightly."  Whatever  his  people  need,  God, 
as  a  Father,  will  provide  for  them,"  Matth.  vi.  32. 


DULY  PRIZED.  143 

3.  An  interest  in  Christ  is  satisfying  to  the  soul,  while  nothing 
else  can  give  satisfaction.  You  may  as  soon  grasp  your  arms  full 
of  dreams,  and  embrace  your  own  shadow,  as  suck  satisfaction  out 
of  the  dry  breasts  of  the  creatures.  But  in  Christ  there  is  what  will 
satisfy  the  soul,  answer  its  desires  in  breadth  and  length.  There 
are  two  things  necessary  to  give  satisfaction.  First,  Suitableness. 
Now  Christ  is  a  suitable  enjoyment  for  the  soul.  He  is  suitable  to 
the  nature  of  the  soul,  which  is  spiritual,  and  the  enjoyment  of  him 
is  the  enjoyment  of  spiritual  blessings.  "  God  blesses  us  with  all 
spiritual  blessings  in  heavenly  places  in  Christ."  The  soul  is  im- 
mortal, and  so  an  interest  in  Christ  is  durable ;  "  for  durable  riches 
and  righteousness  are  with  him."  He  is  suitable  to  the  necessities 
of  the  soul,  for  pardon,  peace,  and  every  blessing ;  whereas  all  things 
of  the  world  are  nothing  so. 

Again,  fulness  is  necessary  to  satisfaction.  Now  there  is  a  ful- 
ness of  these  suitable  blessings  in  him.  "  It  hath  pleased  the  Father, 
that  in  him  should  all  fulness  dwell."  What  can  be  wanting  in  an 
infinite  good.  Here  then  "  we  eat  that  which  is  good,  and  our  souls 
delight  themselves  in  fatness." 

4.  An  interest  in  Christ  is  the  most  enriching  interest.  "Were  an 
estimate  to  be  made  of  what  the  meanest  Christian  is  worth,  and 
what  the  richest  monarch,  the  Christian's  would  be  found  infi- 
nitely beyond  his.  The  Christian  has  a  right  to  more,  for  he  hath  a 
right  to  all  through  Christ.  "  All  things,"  says  Paul  to  believers, 
"  are  yours."  The  Christian  has  married  the  heir  of  all  things,  and 
so  may  set  his  name  on  all  that  is  his.  What  though  he  hath  but 
little  in  hand,  yet  look  his  papers,  read  his  charter,  his  bonds 
under  the  hand  of  God  himself,  containing  the  promises  of  this  life 
and  that  which  is  to  come,  and  the  greatest  riches  of  the  graceless 
world,  is  rank  poverty  in  comparison  of  that. 

Nay,  the  Christian  hath  more  in  actual  possession  than  the 
greatest  on  earth.  The  most  precious  and  valuable  riches  are  ordi- 
narily least  in  bulk.  A  little  gold,  or  a  small  pearl,  is  more  valuable 
than  a  bag  full  of  brass  coin.  Reckon  thus,  and  the  man  that  is 
interested  in  Christ  hath  more  in  hand  than  the  richest  in  the 
world.  His  grace  is  more  precious  than  gold,  his  power  over  his 
own  spirit  better  than  dominion  over  kingdoms.  What  is  so  great 
on  earth  as  a  kingdom  ?  What  kingdom  so  great  as  that  of  heaven  ? 
The  Christian  has  it:  "  For  behold  the  kingdom  of  God  is  within 
yon."  And  this  leads  us  to  observe,  that  the  Christian,  by  his 
interest  in  Christ,  hath  all  within  himself,  that  he  needs  not  go  out 
for  it.  You  will  say  such  a  man  has  a  well  furnished  house  and 
table,  some  things  he  got  from  such  a  place,  and  some  things  from 


144  CHRIST  JKSUS 

another.  0  !  but,  say  you,  there  is  another  man  hath  all  things 
Avithiu  liimself,  the  last  is  preferable.  So  in  this.  What  an  ungodly 
man  doth  most  value,  generally  it  is  without  himself.  His  riches 
are  in  his  coifers,  his  plenty  in  his  barns,  his  dominion  is  given  him 
by  others,  and  can  be  taken  away  ;  his  honour  also  depends  on 
others.  But  the  Christian  hath  all  within  himself,  because  Christ 
is  in  him.  Yes,  "  Christ  is  in  him,  the  hope  of  glory."  "  A  good 
man,"  it  is  said,  "  shall  be  satisfied  from  himself."  Christians 
*'  know  in  themselves,  that  they  have  in  heaven  a  better  and  an  en- 
during substance."  He  hath  a  kingdom  within,  that  contains  what 
is  suitable  for  every  case. 

Here,  also,  I  would  remark,  that  the  little  that  one  hath,  that 
hath  an  interest  in  Christ,  is  more  valuable  than  the  greatest  abun- 
dance of  a  Christless  man.  "  A  little,"  saith  the  Psalmist,  "  that  a 
righteous  man  hath,  is  better  than  the  riches  of  many  wicked." 
Better  than  the  riches,  even  than  the  riches  of  many.  But  how 
can  that  be  ?  I  answer,  the  little  they  have,  they  have  it  with  the 
love  of  God ;  and  whatever  others  have,  they  have  it  with  his  wrath 
and  anger.  "  The  curse  of  the  Lord  is  in  the  house  of  the  wicked, 
but  he  blesseth  the  habitation  of  the  just."  What  the  Christian 
hath,  comes  from  God's  love,  and  is  a  token  of  his  love ;  and  yOu 
know  tokens  are  valued  more  for  the  sake  of  the  giver,  than  the  gift 
itself. 

Again,  the  Christian  hath  the  sanctified  use  of  what  he  possesses. 
All  that  they  have  comes  to  them  through  the  channel  of  the  cove- 
nant, and  tends  to  their  good.  "  For  we  know  that  all  things  work 
together  for  good  to  them  that  love  God,  to  them  who  are  the  called 
according  to  his  purpose,"  whereas  others,  by  virtue  of  a  secret 
curse  that  is  in  what  they  have,  are  thereby  injured.  There  is  death 
in  the  pot.  *'  The  prosperity  of  fools  shall  destroy  them."  Many 
have  been  nourished  and  supported  with  coarse  fare,  when  kings  and 
emperors  have  had  poison  mixed  with  their  most  delicious  meats. 
So  it  is  here. 

Besides,  the  little  that  the  Christian  hath,  he  hath  it  freely,  no- 
thing to  pay.  It  is  paid  for  already  by  the  blood  of  Christ.  But 
others  will  have  a  dear  reckoning  that  will  pay  for  all  at  the  latter 
end.  They  may  write  on  all  their  enjoyments  this  motto.  The  price 
of  blood.  "  For  what  is  a  man  profited,  if  he  shall  gain  the  whole 
world,  and  lose  his  own  soul  ?  or  what  shall  a  man  give  in  exchange 
for  his  soul  ?"  The  world  is  as  a  commodious  inn,  perhaps  the  chil- 
dren there  do  not  fare  so  well  as  the  stranger.  But  then  the 
stranger  gets  his  bill  ere  he  go  away,  when  he  must  pay  dear  for  all 
he  hath  got. 


DULY  PRIZED.  145 

The  Christian,  also,  hath  a  far  better  right  to  his  little,  than  the 
other  hath  to  his  abunilance.  A  covenant  right,  it  is  the  purchase 
of  Christ.  It  was  precious  water  that  was  brought  to  David,  out  of 
the  well  of  Bethlehem,  more  precious  than  wine,  because  it  was 
the  price  of  blood. 

Others  have  but  a  right  by  common  providence.  Their  good 
things  are  bones  cast  to  dogs.  It  is  but  as  a  supper  which  a  male- 
factor enjoys  before  he  is  led  forth  to  execution. 

Lastly,  The  little  which  the  Christian  hath,  is  an  earnest  of  more 
mercy.  You  may  call  it  Joseph,  for  God  will  add  another  to  it. 
Now,  a  little  given  as  an  earnest,  is  better  by  far  than  a  great  sum, 
after  which  no  more  is  to  be  expected.  Even  the  Christian's  wants 
are  better  than  the  abundance  of  others,  even  as  the  want  of  strong 
liquor  is  better  than  to  have  it  to  put  us  in  a  fever. 

0.  An  interest  in  Christ  is  the  only  abiding,  lasting  interest.  It 
will  abide  when  we  must  lose  all  other  things.  We  see  that  a 
little  thing  coming  in  yearly,  is  preferred  to  great  sums  in  hand, 
which  may  soon  be  all  spent.  An  interest  in  Christ  cannot  be 
taken  from  us  as  other  things  may,  Matth.  vi.  19.  The  philosopher 
called  riches  the  vomit  of  fortune ;  if  so,  we  find  the  vomit  is  often 
resumed.  Job  in  his  time  saw  himself  rich  and  poor  to  a  proverb, 
Prov.  xxiii.  5.  But  once  in  Christ,  always  in  him.  The  landed  man 
may  have  his  crop  destroyed,  but  his  land  abides.  Other  things  are 
lent  us,  but  this  is  an  irrevocable  gift. 

We  cannot  be  taken  from  it,  Matth.  vi.  20.  The  man  that  dies 
interested  in  Christ  is  his  own  heir,  and  carries  his  interest  into 
another  world  with  him.  The  worldly  comforts  men  have,  are  like 
servants  in  an  inn,  that  wait  upon  persons  while  they  continue  there, 
but  go  not  away  with  them,  but  abide  to  serve  others  that  come  after 
them. 

Lastly,  I  shall  prove  it  by  an  induction  of  particulars  upon  which 
men  set  their  hearts  more  than  upon  Christ. 

1.  Knowledge  of  other  things  besides  Christ,  is  no  way  compar- 
able to  the  knowledge  of  Christ.  The  pleasure  which  men  find  in 
it,  is  infinitely  below  that  which  they  find  in  the  knowledge  of  Christ. 
It  can  do  no  good  at  death,  and  they  will  have  no  more  use  for  it 
through  eternity,  while  the  other  will  continue  as  the  saint's  eternal 
happiness.  "  This  is  life  eternal,  that  they  might  know  thee  the 
only  true  God,  and  Jesus  Christ  whom  thou  hast  sent."  They  are 
like  men  going  through  a  city,  gazing  at  every  thing  about  them, 
while  they  never  look  to  their  own  way,  and  neglect  their  own  busi- 
ness. Each  of  them  may  say  with  Grotius,  All  !  I  have  destroyed 
life,  laboriously  doing  nothing. 


146  CHRIST  JESUS 

2.  Riches  are  vain,  and,  laid  in  the  balance  with  an  interest  in 
Christ,  are  lighter  than  vanity.  They  are  uncertain  as  the  wind, 
and  can  never  fill  the  heart,  Prov.  xxiii.  5.  Nay,  they  enlarge  the 
desires,  where  grace  does  not  narrow  them  ;  for  worldliness  is  a  sort 
of  spiritual  drunkenness,  that  the  more  one  gets,  the  more  he  wonld 
have. 

They  cannot  profit  in  the  day  of  wrath.  It  is  with  Christians  and 
others,  as  with  Abraham's  children.  Abraham  gave  all  that  "  he 
had  unto  Isaac.  But  unto  the  sons  of  the  concubines  which  Abraham 
had,  he  gave  gifts,  and  sent  them  away  from  Isaac  his  son."  Christ- 
ians are  with  the  first,  they  are  heirs ;  others  get  but  moveables, 
and  they  are  made  over  to  them  with  the  burden  of  danger,  for  saith 
Jesus;,  "  how  hardly  shall  they  that  have  riches  enter  into  the  king- 
dom of  God."  There  is  danger  in  an  evil  time  from  men  by  them. 
The  tall  oaks  are  torn  up  by  the  roots,  while  the  low  shrubs  escape  ; 
and  they  are  at  all  times,  but  especially  in  evil  times,  a  snare  to  the 
soul.  They  are  a  handle  by  which  Satan  holds  men  ;  so  that  while 
they  cleave  to  them,  Satan  draws  them  to  himself.  They  have  also 
a  burden  of  duties.  God  requires  more  of  rich  persons  than  of 
others.  "To  whom  much  is  given,  from  them  much  shall  be  re- 
quired," They  have  accounts  to  give.  They  are  but  stewards,  and 
the  more  they  have  among  their  hands,  their  accounts  will  be  the 
greater,  Luke  xvi.     But  an  interest  in  Christ  shall  never  be  lost. 

3.  Honour  and  reputation.  What  vain  things  are  they,  depend- 
ing upon  the  uncertain  thoughts  of  others;  and  where  men  have  them 
at  many  hands,  they  may  be  wanting  at  that  hand  where  they  might 
do  them  most  good.  How  easily  is  reputation  stained,  and  it  is  at 
the  mercy  of  every  calumnious  detractor.  It  is  a  windy  bubble  of 
water  that  has  no  solidity  in  it,  and  quickly  is  gone.  But  he  that 
has  an  interest  in  Christ,  though  he  should  lie  among  the  pots 
while  he  lives  here,  shall  shine  in  that  honour  which  is  eternal, 
hereafter. 

4.  An  easy  and  pleasant  life  in  the  world  is  a  vain  thing,  much 
desired  and  pursued,  to  the  neglect  of  an  interest  in  Christ.  But 
let  us  do  our  utmost  to  make  our  bed  soft  here,  there  shall  ever  be 
found  some  thorn  of  uneasiness  in  it.  No  sound  ease  but  in  Christ. 
When  world's  ease  is  got,  it  bears  hard  on  the  soul,  which  as  readily 
corrupts ;  while  troubles  in  the  world  set  men  to  their  duty.  And 
how  suddenly  is  men's  ease  and  pleasure  interrupted;  and  the  more 
they  had  of  it,  they  can  the  worse  bear  the  want  of  it. 

5.  Friends  able  to  do  one  a  kindness  are  much  valued.  They 
that  have  them,  value  themselves  upon  them ;  they  that  want  them, 
think  they  would  be  well  if  they  had  them.     But  alas !  how  oft  do 


DULY  PRIZED.  147 

tliey  prove  like  brooks  dried  up,  Job  vi.  15 ;  and  bow  quickly  may 
we  be  in  such  a  case,  that  if  even  our  best  friends  were  never  so 
willing,  they  are  utterly  unable  to  help  us.  Christ  is  a  friend  that 
can,  and  will  help  in  all  cases. 

6.  Comfortable  relations;  a  husband,  wife,  or  children,  dutiful 
and  comfortable.  Great  mercies  indeed,  but  loss  in  comparison  of 
an  interest  in  Christ.  How  difficult  is  it  for  us  to  have  them  such 
and  not  make  gods  of  them  ?  How  difficult  to  rejoice,  and  not  over- 
joy in  them  ?  And  many  times  where  people  have  thought  to 
find  their  greatest  comfort,  there  they  have  found  their  greatest 
cross.  And  however  comfortable,  yet  they  must  part;  and  when 
they  go,  the  more  comfortable  they  were,  the  deeper  is  the  wound 
they  leave  behind  them. 

7.  Liberty  is  what  every  person  prizes ;  there  is  always  no  man 
who  would  not  rather  choose  to  be  stripped  of  all,  and  to  wander  to 
find  her  for  himself,  than  to  be  penned  up  in  a  palace.  But  what 
serves  that  liberty,  while  a  man  is  still  in  the  devil's  chain,  and  has 
the  eternal  prison  abidinor  him  ;  that  though  he  can  go  where  he 
will,  yet  he  can  go  no  where  but  where  Satan  is  with  him,  and  in 
him.  How  much  more  worthy  is  an  interest  in  Christ.  Though 
the  body  be  imprisoned,  confined,  or  banished,  yet  the  soul  has  access 
at  all  times  to  the  throne  of  God. 

8.  Life  is  dearer  than  all  these,  yet  is  but  loss  in  comparison  of 
an  interest  in  Christ.  What  a  vain  thing  is  the  life  of  man  on 
earth,  liable  to  a  thousand  accidents,  and  which  even  a  blast  of  in- 
fected air  can  take  away.  The  lamp  goes  out  at  length,  the  oil 
being  wasted  ;  and  while  it  remains,  may  be  clogged  with  such  miseries 
as  may  make  life  itself  a  burden,  and  men  to  court  their  disso- 
lution, that  they  may  rest  in  a  grave.  To  none  of  these  is  an  in- 
terest in  Christ  liable,  it  is  that  which  secures  an  eternal  life. 

Lastly,  In  a  word,  self  is  what  most  men  seek,  neglecting  Christ. 
But  what  a  vain  thing  are  we  ourselves.  It  will  not  be  amiss  to 
give  here  some  self-debasing  considerations.  Consider,  then,  we  are 
nothing.  Whatever  figure  we  make,  we  are  nothing ;  that  is  to  say, 
we  are  worth  nothing.  However  great,  we  are  but  fair  nothings. 
I  Am,  is  God's  name.  Take  away  the  parts  of  a  compound,  and 
then  it  is  nothing.  Let  God  take  back  his  own  from  us,  and  we  are 
nothing.  You  will  see  some  men  make  a  great  appearance,  and 
you  think  they  are  rich  men ;  but  others  that  know  their  affairs 
will  tell  you  that  they  are  worth  nothing,  for  it  is  all  other  people's 
property  that  they  have  among  their  hands  ;  and  that  if  every  one  had 
their  own,  they  would  be  brought  to  nothing.  "  Without  me,"  saith 
Jesus,  "  ye  can  do  nothing."     We  are  but  mere  tools  in  the  Lord's 


148  CUEIST  JESUS 

hands :  without  liirn  we  can  do  nothing  in  grace  or  nature.  As  our 
being  is  from  hira,  so  is  our  working.  Again,  we  deserve  nothing.  We 
are  unprofitable  servants.  Our  demerit  is  great,  our  merit  nothing. 
We  deserve  hell  indeed,  but  deserve  not  the  least  mercy.  Yea,  we 
are  worse  than  nothing,  as  being  sinful  creatures,  even  as  a  cup  full 
of  poison  is  worse  than  an  empty  cup. 
Use  1.  Of  information. 

1.  How  foolish  are  men,  then,  who  are  very  busy  and  diligent  to 
get  other  things,  but  who  neglect  to  get  an  interest  in  Christ.  Like 
Martha,  they  are  careful  and  troubled  about  many  things,  while 
they  neglect  the  one  thing  needful,  the  better  part.  With  what 
carefulness  do  men  manage  their  business  for  their  bodies,  who  are 
careless  of  their  souls.  Surely  this  interest  is  the  great  project  we 
should  be  driving  in  the  world,  and  not  be  seeking  after  that  which 
is  lost,  to  the  neglecting  of  the  great  gain. 

2.  They  have  made  but  a  poor  purchase,  have  what  they  will, 
that  have  not  an  interest  in  Christ.  Can  they  be  happy,  though 
they  were  monarchs  of  the  world?  They  cannot,  for  their  all  is  but 
a  heap  of  loss  and  dung,  they  have  nothing  substantial  and  durable. 
Have  what  you  will,  what  will  all  these  things  avail  you,  if  you 
have  not  Christ. 

3.  The  righteous  is  more  excellent  than  his  neighbour.  The 
poorest  saint  on  earth  is  richer  than  the  greatest  man  on  earth 
that  is  a  Christless  man.  He  hath  that  which  is  of  more  worth  than 
all  the  world.  0  !  but  fretting  and  discontentment  ill  becomes  a 
Christian  for  want  of  any  worldly  thing.  Does  not  Jesus  say,  Am 
I  not  better  to  thee  than  ten  sons.  Surely  it  is  because  they  see 
not  their  stock. 

4.  Men  are  no  losers,  lose  what  they  will  for  Christ.  We  have 
no  reason  to  grudge  to  suffer  the  loss  of  all  for  him. 

Use  2.  Of  exhortation.  I  exhort  you  then  to  seek  and  secure  an 
interest  in  Christ  for  yourselves.  Make  this  your  great  business. 
I  have  often  called  you  to  this,  and  it  has  been  the  great  scope  of 
all  my  preaching  among  you  to  lead  you  to  Christ.  And  now  when 
the  Lord  is  threatening  to  draw  our  table,  and  separate  ministers 
from  their  iiocks,  I  desire  once  more  to  call  and  invite  you  to  an 
interest  in  Christ.  And  if  I  could  prevail,  though  I  should  never 
more  have  access  to  serve  you  in  the  gospel,  I  would  think  I  had 
got  my  errand. 

Motive  1.  Christ  is  willing  to  receive  you.  There  is  a  match 
proposed  betwixt  the  King  of  Griory  and  the  daughter  of  Zion, 
Christ  and  sinners.  And  I  declare  there  is  nothing  to  hinder  it  on 
lleaveu'.s  part.     "  For  the  Spirit  and  the  bride  say,  Come,     And  let 


DULY  PRIZED.  149 

him  that  heaveth  say,  Come.  And  let  him  that  is  athirst  come. 
Aud  whosoever  will,  let  him  take  of  tlie  water  of  life  freely." 
Young  sinners,  that  are  setting  out  in  the  world,  he  is  content  to  be 
yours.  "  I  love  them  that  love  me,"  says  he,  "  and  they  that  seek 
me  early  shall  find  me."  Old  sinners,  he  is  content  to  be  yours, 
though  you  have  refused  many  calls.  He  excludes  none  of  you,  do 
not,  I  beseech  you,  exclude  yourselves.  "  Ho !  every  one  that 
tliirsteth,  come  ye  to  the  waters ;  and  he  that  hath  no  money,  come 
ye,  buy  and  eat ;  yea  come,  buy  wine  and  milk  without  money  and 
without  price."  And  to  evidence  his  willingness  to  be  yours,  con- 
sider, 

"Why  did  he  come  the  long  journey  from  heaven  to  earth,  but  to 
relieve  the  captive  daughter  of  Zion.  Are  you  the  lost,  Luke  xix. 
10.  Why  did  he  leave  the  Father's  bosom,  but  to  bring  these  back 
to  it,  whom  sin  had  shaken  out.  Why  suffered  he,  but  that  they 
might  be  saved  ?  Why  was  he  bruised,  but  that  he  might  become 
bread  to  the  hungry  soul  ?  Why  shed  he  his  blood,  but  to  remove 
the  lawful  impediments  of  this  match  ? 

In  vain  did  he  shed  his  blood,  if  sinners  amongst  men  be  not 
partakers  of  it.  Whom  had  he  in  his  eye  for  reconciliation  ?  Not 
angels,  not  devils,  Heb.  ii.  6.  It  was  men,  "  Unto  you,  0  men,  I 
call ;  and  my  voice  is  to  the  sons  of  men."  Not  to  the  righteous, 
there  were  none  such ;  and  if  there  had  been,  they  had  not  needed 
him.  Answer  to  your  name  then,  0  sinners  !  for  such  Christ  came 
to  call ;  he  really  offers  himself  to  you  in  his  word  preached  by 
his  ambassadors.  How  then  can  you  doubt  his  willingness.  Our 
offer  is  really,  though  ministerial,  Christ's  own  offer,  for  we  have 
his  commission  to  bear  us  out  in  it.  Our  commission  and  office 
•we  had  not  from  the  magistrate,  therefore  it  is  not  in  their  power 
to  deprive  us  of  it,  as  they  may  deprive  men  of  offices  civil  and 
military,  which  come  from  them.  But  our  commission  is  from 
Christ.  We  teach  not  but  what  Christ  has  commanded  us,  and 
therefore  he  will  be  with  us  in  it ;  which  these  have  no  ground  to 
pretend  to,  that  teach  for  doctrines  the  commandments  of  men, 
whom  this  Church  is  in  hazard  of  having  thrust  in  upon  her ;  2  Cor. 
V.  20.  We  are  proxies  for  the  Lord  of  Glory,  come  to  you  with 
his  own  word,  by  his  orders.  Would  you  have  himself  leave  his 
glory  a  second  time,  to  offer  himself  to  you  ?  Or  would  you  have 
him  come  in  his  glory.  You  know  not  what  you  ask.  It  would 
become  you  better  to  do,  as  1  Sam.  xxv.  40,  41. 

Our  offer  of  him  in  his  own  name,  is  so  really  his,  that  you  will 
be  eternally  ruined,  if  you  refuse  it,  Mark  xvi.  15,  16;  John  xvii. 
20. 


150  CHRIST  JESUR 

Consider,  also,  liow  long  he  has  waited  upon  you,  and  after  many- 
refusals  has  still,  and  is  courting  your  consent,  Rev.  iii.  20.  Why 
did  he  not  go  away  at  your  first  or  second  refusal  ?  No,  but  you 
have  still  line  upon  line.  Finally,  he  knows  very  well  what  is  in 
you  and  about  you  ;  yet  hath  he  declared,  that  nothing  shall  hinder 
the  match,  if  you  be  willing.  Though  you  be  poor  and  miserable, 
he  is  willing  to  take  you,  to  enrich  you,  to  clothe  you,  and  nourish 
you  for  ever  ;  and  is  he  not  then  willing  to  be  yours. 

Motive  2.  Consider  what  you  are  without  him.  Wretched  and 
miserable  is  the  state  of  every  Christless  soul.  If  you  saw  your 
case  by  the  light  of  the  Spirit,  you  would  be  much  affected.  Let  us 
glance  at  a  few  parts  of  your  picture,  as  it  is  presented  in  the  glass 
of  the  word.  Sinner,  thou  art  God's  enemy.  "  The  carnal  mind  is 
enmity  against  God."  Thou  camest  into  the  world  in  a  state  of 
enmity  against  God.  The  reconciliation  is  not  yet  made  up,  for 
there  is  no  peace  with  God,  but  through  Christ.  Hast  thou  no  in- 
terest in  Christ,  then  what  hast  thou  to  do  with  peace,  who  hast  no- 
thing to  do  with  the  great  peacemaker.  There  is  wrath  in  God's 
heart,  in  his  word,  and  in  his  hand  against  thee. 

Again  thou  art  debtor  to  justice.  Sin  is  thy  debt,  which  thou 
art  not,  and  never  will  be  able  to  pay.  Thou  art  in  the  hand  of  an 
inexorable  creditor.  Thou  hast  no  cautioner  to  be  surety  for  thy 
debt.  Thou  wilt  not  get  thy  debt  denied.  Conscience  will  be  in- 
stead of  a  thousand  witnesses  against  thee.  Thou  wilt  be  pursued 
for  principal  and  interest,  and  the  debt  will  be  pursued  at  thy  own 
expense.  Thou  art  also  the  law's  criminal.  God  hath  a  law,  and 
by  that  law  thou  must  die.  "  For  the  wages  of  sin  is  death."  The 
law  condemns  thee,  takes  away  thy  life  as  a  traitor  to  God,  an 
enemy  to  heaven.  Thou  livest  but  as  a  malefactor,  by  the  benefit 
of  a  reprieve,  and  thou  knowest  not  how  soon  it  may  expire. 

Thou  art,  moreover,  Satan's  slave,  captive,  and  prisoner.  Thou  art 
under  "  the  power  of  Satan,  and  taken  captive  by  him  at  his  vrill." 
In  this  case  Christ  finds  all  those  to  whom  he  comes.  Behold  thy 
drudgery  work,  the  sign  of  thy  slavery,  thy  chains,  thy  captivity, 
thy  prison  garments  that  are  on  thee. 

Thou,  0  sinner !  in  thy  Christless  state,  art  to  every  good  work 
reprobate.  Thou  canst  do  nothing  good  or  acceptable  in  the  sight 
of  God.  Thy  prayers  are  but  howling,  thy  sacrifice  an  abomination, 
thy  throat  an  open  sepulchre. 

Besides,  in  thy  Christless  state,  sinner,  thou  art  a  stranger  to  the 
covenant  of  grace,  and  all  the  benefits  of  it,  Eph.  ii.  12.  Thou  hast 
not  married  the  heir,  and,  therefore,  what  hast  thou  to  do  with  the 
benefits  of  the  contract.  Thou  canst  have  no  pardon  nor  peace  in 
your  present  state. 


DULY  PRIZED.  151 

Thou  art  a  burdeu  to  the  earth,  Rom.  viii.  22.  Every  creature  is 
thiue  enemy.  The  very  meat  which  thou  eatest,  waits  a  com- 
mand to  dispatch  thee.  Thou  art  an  abomination  to  heaven,  that 
will  have  nothing  to  do  with  thee.  "  For  there  shall  in  no  wise 
enter  into  it  any  thing  that  defileth,  neither  whatsoever  worketh 
abomination,  or  makoth  a  lie."  Thou  art  a  prey  to  the  pit's  de- 
vouring mouth  that  waiteth  for  thee. 

Motive  3.  An  interest  in  Christ  is  the  best  interest  which  you 
can  have  in  the  world.  Consider  that  it  is  an  interest  for  soul  and 
body  both,  A  man's  purchase  in  the  world,  may  furnish  him  some- 
thing in  the  world  for  his  body,  food  and  raiment,  and  the  like ;  but 
nothing  for  the  soul.  This  will  furnish  you  peace,  pardon,  and  all 
the  benefits  of  the  everlasting  covenant.  Yea,  and  for  the  body,  it 
makes  it  a  member  of  Christ,  a  temple  for  the  Spirit,  and  ensures  a 
glorious  resurrection.  It  is  an  interest  both  for  heaven  and  earth. 
It  makes  them  to  inherit  the  earth,  Matth.  v.  5,  by  their  right  to  it 
in  Christ,  and  their  contentment  with  what  they  have  of  it,  as  if 
they  had  it  all,  and  this  interest  entitles  them  to  glory.  It  is  then 
both  for  time  and  eternity,  "  It  is  profitable  unto  all  things,  having 
the  promise  of  the  life  that  now  is,  and  that  which  is  to  come,"  It 
is  the  best  security  for  a  through-bearing  here,  and  will  be  an  inte- 
rest of  which  you  will  reap  the  fruits  for  ever. 

Motive  4.  Consider  the  case  of  the  day  in  which  we  live,  calls 
loudly  for  us  to  secure  our  own  interest  in  Christ,  And  we  can 
make  no  good  use  of  the  reelings  of  the  times,  if  they  do  not  lead  us 
to  this.  Have  we  not  need  of  something  which  men  cannot  take 
from  us  ?  And  what  is  that,  but  an  interest  in  Christ,  with  the 
benefits  depending  thereon  ?  We  are  threatened  with  persecution 
and  with  the  sword,  in  which  the  Church  and  land  were  once  in- 
volved, what  in  such  a  case  have  men  they  can  call  their  own  ? 
Have  we  not  need  of  something  that  may  be  comfortable  to  us, 
under  the  loss  of  all  things  ?  Indeed,  the  man  that  hath  an  interest 
in  Christ  may  say,  I  have  a  refuge,  a  portion. 

If  you  be  called  to  suffering,  what  a  sad  thing  is  it  to  suffer  for 
one  in  whom  you  have  no  interest.  You  will  be  ready  to  turn 
your  back  upon  him  ;  and  yet,  shunning  suffering  for  a  good  cause, 
you  may  be  brought  to  suffer  dishonourably,  whether  you  will  or 
not,  so  as  sinning  will  not  keep  you  from  suffering. 

When  snares  are  abroad,  and  a  course  of  defection,  how  can  you 
think  to  escape  that  have  no  interest  in  Christ?  And  when  the 
Lord  is  threatening  to  remove  the  gospel  from  you,  it  calls  you  at 
length  to  answer  his  call. 

Motive  5,  and  last.  Let  the  consideration  of  eternity  stir  you  up. 


152  rURTST  JKSUS 

What  will  you  do  without  an  interest  in  Christ,  when  death  arrests 
you?  The  soul  and  body  must  part.  Who  will  keep  you  from  the 
second  death  ?     When  time  is  gone,  thou  must  pass  to  eternity. 

What  will  you  do  when  the  resurrection  comes  ?  What  hill  or 
mountain  will  cover  the  sinner  from  the  face  of  the  Lamb  ? 

When,  0  sinner  !  thou  must  stand  before  the  tribunal,  and  that 
very  Saviour  whom  thou  now  slightest  will  be  thy  Judge,  who  will 
then  plead  thy  cause  ? 

Directions.  Yiew  your  sinfulness.  Get  a  deep  sight  of  your 
misery  without  Christ,  your  utter  inability  to  help  yourselves,  and 
the  helplessness  of  all  creatures.  Give  away  yourselves  solemnly 
to  Christ,  and  all  that  is  yours,  taking  him  for,  and  instead  of  all. 
Amen. 


[Same  subject  continued.] 

SERMON  XIY. 

Philippians  iii.  8, 
3Ii/  Lord. 

Here  the  apostle  asserts  his  interest  in  Christ,  calling  him  his 
Lord ;  not  only  as  Christ  had  an  interest  in  him  and  lordship  over 
him,  but  in  so  far  as  he  had  an  interest  in  Christ.  '*  My  beloved  is 
mine,  and  I  am  his." 

Doctrine.  Saints  may,  and  ought  to  plead  an  interest  in  Christ  as 
their  Lord.  The  Lord's  people  sometimes  fall  iuto  the  hands  of 
strange  lords,  who  are  hard  lords  to  them.  But  in  the  worst  of  times 
a  child  of  God  may  tell  a  fivefold  tale  of  Christ,  which  their  grace- 
less enemies  cannot.     Every  saint  may  say  of  Christ, 

1.  He  is  my  Lord  God.  For  as  low  as  his  work  and  cause  are, 
the  believer's  Lord  is  God,  and  his  God,  John  xx.  28.  "  The  fulness 
of  the  Godhead  dwells  in  him."  "  He  is  God  manifested  in  the 
flesh."  Now  an  interest  in  God  as  our  God,  is  an  interest  above 
expression.  His  infinite  wisdom  is  theirs  to  dii'ect,  his  power  to 
protect  them.  "  Happy  is  that  people  that  is  in  such  a  case  ;  yea 
happy  is  that  people  whose  God  is  the  Lord."  Why  then  should 
they  be  afraid  of  men,  however  severe  masters  they  be  ? 

2.  My  Lord,  proprietor,  master  and  owner.  We  and  all  ours  are 
the  Lord's,  therefore  he  may  dispose  of  us  as  he  will,  and  we  are  to 


DULY  PRIZED.  163 

submit.  In  the  day  of  the  soul's  closing  with  Christ,  we  gave  up 
ourselves  and  all  our's  to  the  Lord,  and  so  must  we  say,  "  we  are 
thy  servant's,  0  Lord  !  truly  we  are  thy  servants."  But  of  others, 
Satan  is  their  lord  and  proprietor. 

3.  My  Redeemer.  "  He  gave  himself  for  us,  to  redeem  us  from 
all  iniquity."  When  our  lives  were  forefeited  to  the  justice  of 
God,  he  came  and  bought  them  with  his  precious  blood.  And  shall 
any  thing  be  too  dear  to  us  to  lose  for  him. 

4.  My  Lord  and  husband.  He  sought  the  believer  in  spiritual 
marriage,  who  has  consented  to  him,  and  so  he  is  their  husband.  A 
noble  relation  !  "  For  thy  maker  is  thy  husband,  the  Lord  of  Hosts 
is  his  name."  And  therefore  it  is  below  a  child  of  God  to  prosti- 
tute himself,  his  soul  and  conscience,  to  the  lusts  of  men,  or  pollute 
them  to  please  the  greatest  on  earth. 

Lastly,  My  Lord  and  King.  He  has  subdued  them  to  himself. 
They  have  accepted  him  as  their  King  and  Lawgiver.  His  throne 
is  in  their  hearts,  and  his  laws  are  there ;  and  therefore  they  can 
do  nothing  contrary  to  their  allegiance  to  him,  command  it  who  will, 
under  the  most  severe  penalties.  And  in  the  strict  observation  of 
his  laws,  they  may  expect  such  protection  and  provision  from  him 
who  is  the  King  of  kings,  as  he  sees  good  for  them. 

The  saints  may  plead  this  relation  to  him  and  interest  in  him,  for 
they  really  have  it.  Though  their  real  state  be  capable  of  degrees, 
and  one  is  more  holy  than  another,  yet  this  honour  have  all  the 
saints,  and  that  equally.  He  is  as  much  the  Lord,  God,  Husband, 
and  King  of  the  meanest  soever,  as  of  the  strongest.  And  they 
ought  to  plead  it. 

1.  It  is  very  pleasing  to  God,  Jer.  iii.  4.  God  loves  to  have  his 
children  know  their  relation  to  him,  and  therefore  are  the  Scrip- 
tures written  and  the  Spirit  given,  that  we  may  know  the  things 
freely  given  us  of  God.  "We  need  not  blame  any  but  ourselves,  if 
we  walk  in  darkness.  It  is  the  weakness  of  our  eyes  that  keeps 
us  from  seeing  our  privileges,  and  it  robs  God  of  the  sacrifice  of 
praise. 

2.  It  is  very  comfortable  and  strengthening  to  the  saints  them- 
selves, 2  Pet.  i  10.  This  would  not  only  heighten  our  comforts  in 
the  worst  of  times,  but  heighten  our  graces,  our  love,  repentance, 
obedience,  our  trust  in  him,  and  dependence  upon  him. 

Use  I.  0  !  the  happy  state  of  the  saints,  beyond  all  the  world. 
Christ  is  theirs.  Mine  is  a  sweet  word,  especially  when  it  is  joined 
to  the  most  glorious  object.  Nebuchadnezzar  could  say,  my  king- 
dom, ray  majesty ;  but  my  Lord  and  my  God,  is  a  note  of  an  infi- 
nitely higher  strain.     This  is  a  property  that  is  above  all  other, 


154  CHRIST  JESUS 

that  may  comfort  in  the  want  of  all,  and  will  supply  all  other  wants, 
and  is  a  property  which  none  can  take  from  us. 

2.  Let  the  saints  inipiove  their  faith  to  this  degree  of  assurance, 
that  they  may  confidently,  though  humbly,  call  Christ  their  Lord. 
But  of  this  before.  It  is  the  weakness  of  the  saints,  that  they  dare 
not  say,  My  Lord.  It  is  no  presumption  in  a  gracious  soul  to  say 
so,  who  has  taken  Christ  for  his  Lord.     Thou  mayest  say  it. 

1.  If  Christ  be  Lord  of  thy  heart,  having  the  chief  room  in  thy 
affections,  Psal.  Ixxiii.  25,  hast  thou  seen  a  glory  in  him,  that  has 
darkened  all  created  excellency,  so  that  he  reigns  in  thy  affections, 
and  thy  heart  is  his  captive,  so  that  he  is  dearer  to  thee  than 
what  is  dearest  in  the  world  ? — call  him  then  thy  Lord,  for  he  is  Lord 
of  thy  heart. 

2.  If  he  be  Lord  of  thy  life,  so  that  thou  endeavourest  continually  to 
live  to  him  and  not  to  thyself,  not  to  thy  lusts,  Phil.  i.  21.  The  great 
design  thou  hast  in  the  world  is  to  please  him,  and  to  walk  beforejhira 
to  all  well  pleasing,  in  heart,  lip  and  life  ;  and  what  is  displeasing  to 
him,  is  displeasing  and  a  burden  to  thee  also.     Call  him  then  thy  Lord. 

3.  If  he  be  Lord  of  thy  all,  so  that  thou  art  content  to  part  with 
all  that  is  dear  to  thee  rather  than  with  him,  his  favour,  his  truths, 
his  work,  and  cause,  Luke  xiv.  26.  If  thou  hast  laid  down  thy  all 
at  his  feet,  to  be  disposed  of  what  way  he  will,  call  him  then  Lord. 

Lastly,  Let  the  people  of  God  follow  their  duty  to  Christ  as  their 
Lord,  in  spite  of  all  opposition  from  the  world.  If  the  commands 
of  men  go  cross  to  the  commands  of  Christ,  though  they  were  the 
highest  powers  on  earth,  let  us  remember  we  are  to  obey  our  Lord 
God  rather  than  men ;  and  let  us  never  do  a  thing  to  please  our 
lords  on  earth,  that  will  displease  our  Lord  from  heaven.  This  day, 
alas  !  is  a  day  in  which  the  commands  of  our  rulers  on  the  ministry 
of  this  Church  cannot  be  obeyed  in  the  judgment  of  many  worthy 
ministers,  without  disobeying  our  great  Lord  and  Master  ;  though 
others  are  not  of  that  mind.  This  threatens  to  rend  this  Church 
asunder,  to  separate  ministers  from  their  flocks,  and  to  shut  up 
many  kirk  doors,  and  yours  among  the  rest.  Prepare  for  snares, 
and  cleave  to  the  Lord  whatever  come.  If  God  baffle  not  the  designs 
of  our  enemies,  they  will  not  rest  here,  but  having  begun  at  the 
sanctuary,  there  will  be  a  proceeding  to  the  city  ;  and  though  mini- 
sters may  smart  first,  professors  will  not  want  their  share.  But 
cleave  ye  to  the  Lord,  to  the  purity  of  doctrine,  worship,  discipline  and 
government  instituted  by  himself;  and  though  the  laws  of  men 
should  overturn  all  these,  choose  you  rather  to  sit  by  the  house  of 
God,  though  lying  in  rubbish,  than  to  embrace  that  in  religion  which 
has  no  stamp  but  that  of  human  authority,  for  he  is  our  Lord, 
and  his  orders  we  must  obey  on  all  hazards. 


T)ULY  PRTZBD,  156 

[Sime  subject  continued.] 

SERMON  XV. 

Philippians  iii.  8, 
For  whom  I  have  suffered  the  loss  of  all  things. 

This  is  a  day  in  which  sufferiug  or  sinning  is  set  before  many  in 
this  church  ;  and  though  our  case  is  extraordinary,  yet  our  good 
Lord  sends  us  this  in  our  ordinary,  which  gives  an  evidence  of  a 
due  esteem  of  Christ,  which  the  saints  have. 

1.  We  have  in  the  words,  the  apostle's  lot,  which  tried  his  esteem 
of  Christ,  by  his  suffering  for  him.  He  had  spoken  much  to  the 
commendation  of  Christ,  but  many  will  give  Christ  a  good  word, 
who  will  not  take  a  frown,  an  ill  word,  or  a  buffet  for  his  sake  ;  but 
Paul  suffered  for  him. 

We  have  next  what  he  suffered  ;  the  loss  of  all  things.  When  he 
says  all,  he  excepts  nothing  which  might  come  in  competition  with 
Christ,  external  good  things,  yea,  and  internal  also,  as  in  competi- 
tion with  him.  We  have  also  the  cause  of  his  sufferings ;  they  were 
for  Christ,  for  the  sake  of  that  precious  one. 

Doctrine.  God  tries,  and  the  saints  give  proof  of  their  due  esteem 
of  Christ,  by  their  suffering  the  loss  of  all  things  for  him,  as  they 
are  called  to  it.  There  are  two  things  aimed  at  in  the  text,  namely, 
external  good  things.  Saints  suffer  the  loss  of  these  two  ways  for 
Christ :  1.  In  affection,  when  they  lose  the  predominant  affection  to 
them,  Luke  xiv.  26 ;  when  the  heart  is  so  far  weaned  from  them,  as 
they  are  content  to  part  with  them,  rather  than  Christ.  This  is  a 
suffering,  in  so  far  as  it  is  not  easy,  but  opposite  to  nature  to  be  con- 
tent to  let  them  go  for  Christ.  2.  In  action,  when  they  actually  lose 
them  for  Christ  and  his  cause,  and  let  them  go  rather  than  a  good  con- 
science. Sometimes  storms  arise  in  the  church,  so  as  men  must 
either  part  with  Christ,  his  way,  and  his  truths,  or  else  let  all  they 
have  go  for  his  sake. 

Next  internal  good  things.  The  saints  suffer  the  loss  of  these  in 
point  of  confidence,  when  all  their  confidence  is  carried  off  them,  and 
laid  on  Christ  alone.  Both  of  these  are  aimed  at  in  the  text.  I 
will  now  speak  a  word  to  the  first,  namely,  external  things.     And, 

I.  I  will  touch  at  those  things  which  the  saints  always  suffer  t!ie 
loss  of  in  affection,  and  often  in  action,  for  Christ.  They  must  lay 
their  account, 

1.  With  the  loss  of  their  credit,  esteem,  and  reputation.     "  We 

Vol.  IV.  L 


156  CUEIST  JESUS 

are  fools,"  says  the  apostle,  "  for  Christ's  sake."  None  can  be  wise 
to  the  Lord,  who  are  not  content  to  be  the  world's  fools.  None  will 
go  to  heaven  but  their  reputation  will  run  a  risk  sometime  or  other. 
The  worldly  wise  will  look  upon  them  as  a  company  of  weak  men, 
and  the  wicked  will  be  ready  to  count  them  madmen.  Nay,  they 
may  lay  their  account  with  their  credit  getting  a  jog,  even  among 
professors  also. 

2.  The  loss  of  their  worldly  goods,  Heb.  x.  34.  "When  Joseph  is 
flying  from  the  temptation,  the  devil  takes  hold  of  the  mantle  of 
worldly  substance,  and  they  must  either  leave  Christ,  or  they  shall 
not  know  how  to  live  in  the  world. 

3.  The  loss  of  ease  and  quiet.  Sometimes  they  sit  every  one  under 
his  vine,  each  at  his  own  table  and  fireside,  but  when  persecutions 
arise  they  may  be  hunted  as  partridges,  and  not  have  where  to  lay 
their  heads. 

4.  The  loss  of  outward  comforts  and  conveniencies.  The  saints 
have  often  got  caves  for  their  houses,  been  exposed  to  the  want  of 
all  things,  to  hunger,  thrist,  nakedness,  with  no  certain  dwelling- 
place. 

5.  The  loss  of  their  relations.  Husbands  dragged  from  their 
wives,  and  wives  from  their  husbands.  In  such  cases  they  lose 
liberty,  and  sufter  confinement,  imprisonment  or  banishment.  Racks, 
tortures,  and  scourges,  are  inflicted  upon  them,  and  these  often  ter- 
minate in  the  loss  of  their  lives,  and  even  after  death  their  bones 
are  not  allowed  to  rest  in  their  graves.     Now  let  us  enquire, 

II.  What  it  is  to  suff'er  these  things  for  Christ.  It  is  to  suff'er 
them  for  Christ's  sake.  The  saints  get  pardon,  peace,  and  every 
blessing  from  God,  for  Christ's  sake ;  and  they  must  take  stripes  and 
blows  from  the  hands  of  men.  But  more  of  this,  when  God  gives 
another  opportunity. 


Novennber,  2,  1712. 

[Same  subject  continued.] 

SERMON  XVI. 

PiiiLippiANS,  iii.  8, 

For  whom   I  have  sufered  the  loss  of  all  things. 

The  last  Lord's  day,  I  told  you  several  things,  with  the  loss  of 
which  the  saints  might  lay  their  accounts  for  Christ.     There  is  one 


DULY  PRTKED.  157 

tiling,  wliicli,  from  experience,  we  are  tanglit  tliey  may  lay  their 
account  to  lose,  namely,  the  countenance  and  protection  of  the  civil 
magistrate  in  their  duty.  This  is  in  itself  a  great  loss.  And  seeing 
God  has  promised  to  a  church,  when  he  is  well  pleased  with  her, 
"that  kings  shall  be  her  nursing  fathers,  and  their  queens  her  nurs- 
ing mothers;"  the  withdrawing  of  it  must  be  a  sign  of  the  Lord's 
displeasure.  Yea,  and  if  we  trace  the  sins  of  rulers  that  bear  hard 
on  the  people  to  their  first  spring,  we  will  find  that  it  is  some  quarrel 
that  God  hath  with  the  people,  2  Sam.  xxiv.  1.  This  should  humble 
us,  and  stir  us  up  to  pray  for  them,  and  be  dutiful  to  them,  to  whom 
the  Lord  has  said,  "  ye  are  gods,"  in  every  thing  that  is  not  incon- 
sistent with  your  duty  to  God  himself.  But  this  is  a  trial  to  us, 
whether  we  will  regard  God  or  man  most;  and  the  saints  will  ever 
prefer  the  countenance  of  the  Lord,  to  the  countenance  of  the  highest 
powers  on  earth  ;  and  depend  upon  his  protection  alone,  when  they 
are  deprived  of  all  other. 

I  told  you,  likewise,  Avhat  it  is  to  suffer  the  loss  of  any  thing  for 
Christ.  I  said,  1.  It  is  to  suffer  for  Christ's  sake.  2.  For  the 
truths,  the  ways,  and  the  cause  of  Christ.     I  will  now  add, 

3.  It  is  to  suffer  upon  Christ's  call  to  suffering.  "We  are  not  to 
cast  ourselves  into  suffering,  even  for  a  good  cause,  at  random.  We 
are  not  lords  of  ourselves,  and  therefore  must  not  throw  away  our 
peace,  goods,  liberty,  or  life,  but  when  God  calls  for  them,  and 
when  that  is  the  case,  then  all  should  be  at  his  service.  Now  God 
calls  us  to  it,  when  it  is  brought  to  that,  to  suffer  or  sin.  "  We  must 
choose  rather  to  suffer  affliction  with  the  people  of  God,  than  to 
enjoy  the  pleasures  of  sin,  which  are  but  for  a  season."  If  people 
cannot  get  over  the  waters  of  suffering  but  in  the  devil's  boat, 
which  is  always  a  sieve  to  sink  a  good  conscience,  though  it  may 
save  men's  persons  and  goods,  they  must  even  be  content  to  swim. 
If  the  cross  lie  just  in  the  way  of  duty,  and  there  be  no  way  of  get- 
ting by  it,  but  by  going  out  of  the  way,  we  must  even  take  it  up 
and  be  going. 

4.  To  suffer  for  the  love  of  Christ.  "  Many  waters  cannot  quench 
love,  neither  can  the  Hoods  drown  it."  This  is  more  than  merely  to 
suffer  for  his  sake.  Many  a  man,  in  time  of  the  church's  trouble, 
gets  a  blow  for  Christ's  sake,  that  deserves  it  not  at  the  enemy's 
hand ;  for,  at  the  bottom,  they  are  even  men  of  their  own  party,  the 
seed  of  the  serpent,  though  found  among  Christ's  doves  ;  mere  hypo- 
crites, they  suffer  not  for  Christ,  seeing  it  is  not  for  love  to  him,  of 
which  they  are  void.  A  Roman  spirit  may  outbrave  death  itself; 
a  rugged,  opposing  spirit  may  put  men  to  sufter  the  hardest  things, 
rather  than  yield.     Yea,  self  is  such  a  salamander   as  can  live  in 

l2 


158  CHRIST  JESUS 

fire,  for  a  good  cause.  Though  we  give  our  bodies  to  he  burned,  and 
have  not  charity,  it  profitoth  us  nothing.  But  the  hearts  of  honest 
sufferers  are  hardened  against  opposition  of  men,  by  soft  love  to  the 
Lord  himself;  to  his  work,  cause,  and  truths,  for  his  own  sake. 
"  Thou,  Lord,  hast  given  a  banner  to  them  that  fear  thee,  that  it 
may  be  displayed  because  of  the  truth." 

Lastly,  It  is  to  suffer  as  a  member  of  the  body  of  Christ.  "  If 
any  man  suffer  as  a  Christian,  let  him  not  be  ashamed ;  but  let  him 
glorify  God  on  this  behalf."  There  was  a  measure  of  sufferings  laid 
out  for  Christ  personal,  and  he  alone  did  bear  them  :  "  He  endured 
the  cross."  But  there  is  a  measure  of  sufferings  for  Christ  mysti- 
cal, which  is  divided  amongst  the  members  of  Christ,  as  their  head 
sees  meet,  and  every  one  must  take  their  share  ;  and  thus  "  fill  up 
that  which  is  behind  of  the  afflictions  of  Christ  in  their  flesh  ;  for 
his  body's  sake,  which  is  the  church."  Some  must  give  in  of  their 
goods,  some  their  liberty,  some  their  blood,  to  fill  up  this  measure. 
And  thus  they  suffer,  that  suffer  for  Christ.     I  come  now  to  the 

III.  Thing,  Why  the  Lord  trysts  his  people  with  suffering  the 
loss  of  all  things  for  him. 

1.  Because  there  are  no  things  which  they  can  long  guide  well, 
and  he  will  not  permit  them  to  destroy  themselves  with  them.  The 
father  gives  his  child  a  knife  in  the  sheath,  to  divert  himself  with 
it ;  but  within  a  little,  the  child  draws  out  the  knife,  and  plays  with 
it.  "  Go,"  says  the  father,  "  take  it  from  him,  for  he  will  hurt  him- 
self with  it."  So  God  gives  his  people  ease,  peace,  and  wealth  ; 
and  so  long  as  these  are  swallowed  up  with  them  in  the  love  of 
God,  they  can  do  them  no  harm  ;  but  alas  !  they  often  childishly 
throw  aside  the  love  of  the  Lord,  and  solace  themselves  with  the 
bare  worldly  enjoyments,  and  love  to  these  things  gets  uppermost 
in  their  hearts ;  then  comes  the  word  from  the  Lord,  Take  them 
from  them.  Such  a  man  has  made  a  pillow  of  security  of  such  a 
thing,  he  is  sleeping  upon  it,  and  minds  not  his  work  :  go,  draw  the 
pillow  from  under  his  head,  that  he  sleep  not  to  death  upon  it.  It 
is  no  wonder  to  see  wasters  want.  We  have  had  long  peace  in  the 
enjoyment  of  ordinances.  God  removes  that  peace,  that  he  may 
make  us  thankful  of  the  crumbs  which  sometimes  fall  from  our 
tables.  Then  the  word  of  the  Lord  becomes  precious,  when  there  is 
no  open  vision. 

2.  To  exercise  and  quicken  their  graces,  to  make  them  thrive  the 
better  inwardly.  "  By  this,  therefore,  shall  the  iniquity  of  Jacob  be 
purged ;  and  this  is  all  the  fruit,  to  take  away  their  sin."  The 
Christian,  like  the  palm-tree,  or  camomile  bed,  the  more  he  is  af- 
flicted, the  more  he  grows.      The  fire  burns  hottest  in  a  cold  frost. 


DtriiY  PKIZED.  159 

and  the  wind  of  persecution  makes  grace  to  flame,  and  blows  away 
tiie  ashes.  The  waters  of  affliction  cast  on  the  faces  of  fainting 
Christians  has  often  made  them  recover.  And  sure  this  generation 
needs  such  an  awakening.  Sufferings  tend  to  the  conviction  of  men, 
Jer.  ii.  23,  35.  Solomon  tells  us,  *'  that  oppression  maketh  a  wise 
man  mad;"  and  a  greater  than  he  lets  us  see  it  will  make  a  mad 
man  wise,  as  in  the  case  of  the  prodigal,  Luke  xv.  17.  No  doubt, 
sufferings  will  make  all  of  us  see  faults  in  our  way,  which  we  had 
no  will  to  acknowledge  in  our  prosperity.  Sufferings  also  make  sin 
bitter.  "  Thine  own  wickedness  shall  correct  thee,  and  thy  back- 
slidings  shall  reprove  thee  ;  know  therefore,  and  see,  that  it  is  an 
evil  thing  and  bitter,  that  thou  hast  forsaken  the  Lord  thy  Grod." 
Sin  is  like  Ezekiel's  roll,  sweet  in  the  mouth,  but  bitter  in  the  belly. 
When  the  Lord  writes  the  sin  in  the  punishment,  the  smart  of  the 
wound  will  make  sin  bitter.  It  will  then  be  as  gall  and  wormwood 
on  the  breasts,  to  wean  the  child.  They  are  also  a  hedge  in  the  sin- 
ner's way,  Hosea  ii.  6.  Many  are  riding  post  away  from  the  Lord, 
till  the  cross  meet  them,  as  the  angel  did  Balaam,  and  makes  them 
stand.  And  truly,  if  the  Lord  did  not  so  with  us,  where  would  we 
be  in  a  little  time.  It  is  God's  goodness  to  the  Church  of  Scotland, 
that  he  doth  not  allow  her  to  have  a  long  time  in  sinning,  but  takes 
her  quickly,  when  she  is  going  away  from  him.  Afflictions  also  stir 
up  the  saints  to  take  hold  of  a  departing  God,  Hos.  ii.  7.  Suffer- 
ings are  the  devil's  wedges,  driven  to  separate  the  saints  from 
Christ.  But  God  makes  them  cords  to  draw  them  to  him,  and  make 
them  cleave  to  him  with  purpose  of  heart,  as  the  child  cleaves  to 
the  nurse  the  more  that  one  offers  to  pluck  it  from  her. 

3.  To  learn  them  to  live  by  faith.  "  I  will  also  leave  in  the 
midst  of  thee  an  afflicted  and  poor  people,  and  they  shall  trust  in 
the  name  of  the  Lord."  There  is  never  so  much  glory  given  to  God 
in  believing,  as  in  a  suffering  time  ;  the  promises  of  the  covenant 
never  smell  so  sweet  as  then.  Nay,  there  are  many  promises  in  the 
Bible,  of  which  the  saints  never  taste  the  sweetness  till  then. 
While  their  worldly  enjoyments  stand  entire  about  them,  they  live 
much  by  sense.  While  they  live  at  ease  in  their  own  houses,  the 
shelter  that  is  in  that  promise,  "  Lord,  thou  hast  been  our  dwelling- 
place  in  all  ages,"  is  not  so  sweet  as  when  they  have  nothing  else 
to  depend  upon.  The  daily  bread  in  the  promise  is  not  so  sweet 
when  we  have  plenty,  as  when  we  are  in  needy  circumstances. 

4.  To  be  a  real  testimony  before  the  world  of  the  superlative  ex- 
cellency of  Christ,  and  the  reality  of  religion.  While  the  world 
sees  men  whom  they  cannot  deny  to  be  otherwise  wise  and  sober, 
and  having  a  due  concern  about  their  worldly  enjoyments,  yet  suffer 


160  CUEIST  JESUS 

tlie  loss  of  all,  rather  than  part  with   Christ  and  his  way,  it  must 
needs  leave  a  conviction  on  their  consciences  of  these  things.    While 
they  see  this,  it  is  a  testimony  before  them  to  this,  that  Christ's 
favour,  and  way,  are  better  than  all  the  world  ;  preferable  to  rela- 
tions, goods,  yea,  and  life  itself.     For  his  favour  with  them  weighs 
down  the   world's  frowns;  and  the   testimony  of  their  conscience, 
that  bird  within  their  breast,  makes  the   sweetest  of  all  melody. 
This  conduct  of  the  saints  under  sufferings  is  also  a  testimony  to 
the  life  to  come  against  an  atheistical  generation.      What  do  they 
fear,  that  they  choose  suffering  rather  than  sinning ;  not  the  wrath 
of  him  "  that  can  only  kill  the  body,"  for  sinning  were  the  way  to 
preserve  it ;  but  the  wrath  of  him  "  that  can  destroy  both  soul  and 
body  in  hell."     What  do  they  hope  for,  great  things  in  the  world  ? 
No,  they  lose  what  they  have,  they  therefore  look  for  a  reward  and 
recompense  in  another  world.     It  is  also  a  testimony  to  the  power 
which  there  is  in  religion,  to  wean  the  heart  from  the  world.     "  Job 
is  but  a  dissembler,"  says  the  devil,  "  but  put  forth  thine  hand  now, 
and  touch  all  that  he  hath,  and  he  will  curse  thee  to  thy  face." 
But  Job  makes  the  devil  a  liar.     There  is  a  power  in  religion,  which 
makes  them  suffer  the  loss  of  all.     It  in  like   manner  establishes 
this  grand  truth,  that  there  is  a  power  in  religion  to  make  men  live 
without  these  things,  which  the  carnal  world  cannot  want;   that 
there  is  a  communication  betwixt  God  and  the  soul,  that  can  supply 
the  want  of  all  things.     God  will  let  his  people  see  he  can  make 
them  live  very  well  without  these  things,  and  he  will  let  the  world 
see  it  too,  John  siv.  19. 

5.  It  is  to  make  them  long  for  heaven,  and  so  to  prepare  them 
for  a  place  among  them  that  stand  at  his  right  hand.  If  they  were 
not  so  harshly  entertained  in  the  world,  they  would  not  so  much 
long  to  be  home.  But  the  rugged  way  which  they  find  in  the  wil- 
derness makes  them  long  to  see  the  land  of  Canaan.  While  the 
sea  of  this  world  is  calm  to  the  people  of  God,  they  are  in  hazard 
of  saying,  "  It  is  good  for  us  to  be  here."  Therefore  the  Lord 
raiseth  a  storm,  the  ship  is  tossed  to  and  fro,  then  they  long  to  be 
on  shore  in  Immanuel's  land. 

6.  That  what  they  get,  they  may  the  better  see  from  what  a 
blessed  hand  it  comes.  God  loves  to  have  his  people  know  that 
they  are  in  his  common  for  what  they  have  in  a  world.  When  men 
have  all  at  hand,  they  do  not  so  well  understand  their  holding  ; 
therefore  he  calls  in  his  own  benefits  sometimes,  to  keep  them  from 
hand  to  mouth ;  and  make  them  many  errands  to  the  throne  of 
grace,  that  what  they  had  before  in  a  more  ordinary  way,  may  come 
to  them  as  an  answer  of  prayer. 

Use  1.  Of  information.     It  lets  us  see, 


DULY  PRIZED.  161 

1.  That  no  man  is  a  saint  indeed,  but  he  to  whom  Christ  is  dearer 
tlian  what  is  dearest  to  him  in  the  world,  Luke  xiv.  26.  Every 
child  of  God  is  a  martyr  either  in  action  or  affection.  Grace,  when 
it  comes  into  the  heart,  so  looseth  all  worldly  things  at  the  root, 
that  if  ever  it  come  to  that,  that  the  man  must  either  lose  Christ,  or 
lose  all,  he  will  suffer  rather  the  loss  of  all  things. 

2.  That  Christ  hath  not  his  due  esteem  in  the  heart,  where  the 
man  can  by  no  means  suffer  the  loss  of  all  for  him.  The  shifting  of 
the  cross,  by  sinning  against  the  Lord,  however  it  may  prevail  some- 
times on  the  saints,  if  it  be  a  man's  habitual  practice,  will  prove 
him  to  be  none  of  his,  for  it  says  that  the  love  of  the  world  is  pre- 
dominant in  such  a  person. 

Use  2.  Of  exhortation.  Let  me  exhort  you  then  to  be  ready  to 
evidence  your  esteem  of  Christ,  by  suffering  the  loss  of  all  things 
for  him,  when  he  calls  you  to  it.  Be  not  offended  at  the  cross  of 
Christ,  but  embrace  it.  And  be  not  chooseis  of  the  cross.  Some 
will  be  willing  to  part  with  such  a  thing  for  Christ,  but  there  is  an- 
other they  cannot  part  with.  But  you  must  make  no  reserve. 
Alas  !  that  this  exhortation  is  so  very  seasonable.  The  half  hour's 
silence  in  the  heaven  of  this  Church  seems  to  be  at  an  end.  The 
plough  that  made  sucli  deep  furrows  on  the  back  of  this  Church 
formerly,  stands  now  yoked  again ;  the  cords  of  it,  which  the  Lord 
cut,  are  knit  again,  and  how  soon  the  word  may  be  given  to  drive 
on,  we  know  not.  But  if  it  were  once  set  agoing,  it  is  very  like  it 
may  make  deeper  furrows  on  the  back  of  the  Church  of  Scotland 
than  ever  it  yet  made  since  her  youth,  though  we  hope  it  shall  be 
loosed  sooner.  Idolatrous  papists  and  superstitious  bigots  make 
furious  drivers.  "  Let  us  contend  for  the  faith  once  delivered  unto 
the  saints,"  and  cleave  to  that  purity  of  doctrine,  worship,  disci- 
pline, and  government,  to  which  this  Church  hath  by  the  mercy  of 
God  attained ;  to  which  she  stands  engaged  by  the  covenants ;  and 
which  has  been  handed  down  to  us,  sealed  with  the  blood  of  many 
martyrs.  "  Let  us  stand  fast  in  the  liberty  wherewith  Christ  hath 
made  us  free."  Let  our  esteem  of  Christ,  his  truths,  ways  and 
work,  be  displayed  in  our  suffering  the  loss  of  all  things,  rather 
than  give  up  with  them. 

Motive  1.  We  will  betray  Christ's  cause,  if  we  shift  his  cross. 
And  woe  be  to  that  man  who  doth  this.  It  is  impossible  in  the  way 
of  God's  dispensation  laid  down  in  the  Scripture,  that  the  church 
should  continue  in  the  world  without  sufferings.  "  For  we  muat 
through  much  tribulation  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  God.  Yea,  and 
all  that  will  live  godly  in  Christ  Jesus,  shall  suffer  persecution." 
Do  we  think  that  ever  the  seed  of  the  woman  and  the  seed  of  the 


162  CHRIST  JKStrS 

serpent  will  be  at  peace  ?  that  ever  the  ship  of  the  church  will  get  to 
the  haven,  without  the  devil's  raising  a  storm  to  sink  her?  Where 
had  Christianity  been  this  day,  if  the  primitive  Christians  had 
complied  with  their  pagan  persecutors,  and  refused  to  suffer  ?  "Where 
had  the  Protestant  religion  been,  if  bloody  cruelties  could  have 
frightened  our  ancestors  into  popery  ?  And  where  had  our  Church 
been  this  day,  if  the  fining,  imprisoning,  banishing,  executing  of 
the  opposers  of  abjured  prelacy,  had  frightened  all  into  a  tame  com- 
pliance with  the  course  of  defection  then  carried  on.  So  that  whoso- 
ever shall  choose  to  sin  rather  than  suffer,  will  for  his  part  give 
Christ  and  his  work  freedom  to  depart  out  of  our  coasts. 

2.  Consider  the  danger  of  apostacy  from  the  good  ways  of  the 
Lord,  because  of  the  cross.  "  If  any  man  draw  back,"  saith  God, 
"  my  soul  shall  have  no  pleasure  in  him."  This  makes  men  unsa- 
voury salt,  withered  branches,  and  ordinarily  ends  in  the  candle  of 
their  life  going  out  with  a  stink  ;  either  going  off  in  fearful  stu- 
pidity, or  horror.  "Hold  fast,  then,  the  form  of  sound  words  as 
ye  have  been  taught"  for  many  years,  and  however  you  may  bo 
afterwards  trysted,  let  it  appear  that  you  have  not  heard  nor  pro- 
fessed in  vain.  And  though  grievous  wolves  enter  among  you,  let 
it  be  seen  that  you  are  Christ's  sheep  that  discern  his  voice,  and 
that  will  not  refuse  even  his  fire  mark,  rather  than  to  be  marked 
for  another. 

3.  Consider  that  whatever  Christ  shall  mark  out  for  his,  among 
the  things  you  have,  whenever  he  has  said,  give  up  with  it  for  me, 
it  will  not  be  worth  the  keeping  longer.  For  what  ?  It  will  be 
like  the  manna,  which  the  people  kept  until  the  morning,  against 
the  express  command  of  God,  which  stank  and  bred  worms.  The 
plague  of  God  will  be  in  it,  and  it  will  never  after  do  you  good. 
"  It  is  a  snare  to  the  man  who  devoureth  that  which  is  holy,  and 
after  vows  to  make  inquiry."  If  Christ  shall  say,  Man,  give  up 
with  your  ease,  goods,  liberty,  life,  for  me  ;  thou  hadst  better  be  har- 
rassed,  tossed  and  stripped  of  thy  substance,  than  be  at  ease  in  thy 
own  house,  amidst  all  thy  enjoyments.  Nothing  in  the  world  can 
be  more  to  us  than  what  God  makes  it  be.  We  can  get  no  good  of 
what  we  have,  but  what  goodness  God  puts  in  it.  But  in  this  the 
substance  is  out  of  it.  An  evil  conscience  will  put  a  sting  in  it, 
and  either  silently  or  violently  suck  the  sap  out  of  it. 

4.  What  is  lost  for  Christ  will  be  the  surest  and  best  laid  out 
thing  in  your  possession.  It  is  good  lending  to  the  Lord.  You  will 
have  his  bond  for  it.  "  And  every  one  that  hath  forsaken  houses, 
or  brethren,  or  sisters,  or  father,  or  mother,  or  wife,  or  children, 
or  lands,  for  my  name's  sake,  shall  receive  an  hundred-fold,  and 


DULY  PRIZED.  163 

sliall  inherit  eternal  life."  See  here  the  interest  secured,  and  that 
is  a  very  extraordinary  interest,  an  hundred  for  one.  That  is  peace  of 
conscience,  joy  in  the  Holy  Ghost,  sweet  contentment,  with  any  thing 
that  is  left,  and  a  blessing  in  it.  A  little  for  present  support, 
served  up  in  the  dish  of  a  promise  and  a  particular  providence, 
which  you  will  see  as  if  you  saw  the  face  of  God ;  which  is  an  hun- 
dred-fold better  than  any  thing  lost  for  him.  See  also  the  prin- 
cipal secured,  but  exchanged  into  eternal  life,  in  heaven. 


November  9,  1712. 

[Same  subject  continued. J 

SERMON  XVII. 

Philippians  iii.  8, 

For  whom  I  have  suffered  the  loss  of  all  things. 

Now,  let  me  urge,  by  a  few  motives,  that  ye  be  not  choosers  of  the 
cross,  but  let  all  without  reserve  be  at  his  service. 

Motive  1.  Absolute  resignation  of  ourselves  to  the  will  of  the 
Lord  is  necessary  to  evidence  our  sincerity.  There  is  no  reality 
where  there  is  any  reserve,  for  where  Christ  has  the  chief  room  in 
the  heart,  every  thing  will  give  place  to  him,  Acts  xx.  24.  The 
will  must  be  the  first  sufferer,  if  ever  a  man  suffer  to  purpose.  It 
must  be  melted  down  into  an  universal  compliance  with  the  will  of 
God. 

2.  Christ's  standard  will  never  be  kept  up  in  the  world  by  a 
company  of  men  who  have  any  thing  with  which  they  cannot  part 
for  Christ.  Persecution  is  like  a  fire,  that  will  burn  on  and  con- 
sume, aye  and  until  it  meet  with  something  that  will  not  burn. 
The  wicked's  malice  will  not  end,  till  they  can  go  no  farther. 

3.  It  is  in  some  sort  all  one  what  we  sufter  for  Christ ;  for  in  our 
own  strength  we  cannot  acceptably  sufter  the  loss  of  any  thing  for 
him;  but  in  his  strength  we  are  able  to  sustain  the  greatest  loss, 
and  yet  say,  "  we  have  all,  and  abound."  Peter  denied  Christ,  at 
the  voice  of  a  maid ;  but  wheu  strengthened  by  his  Master's  grace, 
his  boldness  was  so  astonishingly  great,  "that  even  the  rulers  took 
knowledge  of  him  that  he  had  been  with  Jesus."     The  Lord  gives 


1G4  CHKIST  JESUa 

people  strength  suited  to  their  burden.  It  is  as  easy  for  a  strong 
man  to  lift  a  stone  weight,  as  for  a  child  to  lift  a  pound. 

4.  The  small  things  we  lose  for  Christ,  are  lost  indeed  as  to 
divine  acceptation,  when  not  willing  to  part  with  all  for  him.  He 
will  not  be  served  by  halves,  nor  according  to  our  will,  Mai.  i.  13; 
2  John  viii. 

Lastly,  Christ  stood  at  no  loss,  as  too  hard  for  us.  He  took  the 
whole  cup,  and  wrung  out  the  dregs  of  it.  "What  had  become  of  us, 
had  Christ  dealt  with  the  Father,  as  we  do  with  him  ?  No,  but  he 
was  content  to  be  the  Father's  servant  in  all,  Psal.  xl. 

Directions.  1.  Labour  to  get  your  hearts  loosed  from  the  world. 
"  Love  not  the  world,  neither  the  things  of  the  world.  If  any  man 
love  the  world,  the  love  of  the  Father  is  not  in  him."  Xow  if  you 
would  be  thus  loosed  from  the  world,  then  let  your  hearts  be  going 
out  more  after  heaven.  I  must  put  these  together,  for  there  is  no 
parting  of  them.  The  heart  will  never  give  up  its  hold  of  the  world 
till  it  be  to  fix  on  heaven.  So  you  must  do  with  your  hearts  as 
they  do  with  children,  when  they  offer  to  take  one  thing  from  them, 
they  must  do  it  by  putting  another  thing  in  their  hand.  Now  if 
the  heart  were  loosed,  worldly  things  would  fall  off  easily,  as  ripe 
fruit  from  a  tree ;  and  the  affections  set  on  heaven,  fit  for  suffering, 
Phil.  iii.  18,  19,  20. 

2.  Strive  to  get  the  coal  of  holy  zeal  blown  up  in  your  spirits. 
A  bird  shall  as  soon  fly  without  wings,  as  one  suffer  aright  without 
zeal  for  God.  Zeal  is  an  heat  of  the  affections  to  Christ,  his  cause, 
his  truths,  and  way.  It  is  properly  an  affection  that  is  betwixt 
married  persons,  by  which  they  resent  the  affronts  pat  upon  their 
yoke-fellow,  especially  with  respect  to  their  chastity.  "  For  I  am 
jealous  over  you,"  says  Paul,  "  with  godly  jealousy,"  2  Cor.  xi.  2,  3. 
(Greek,)  zealous  over  you  with  zeal.  And  if  ever  there  was  a  time 
for  this  zeal,  it  is  now,  when  so  many  are  crying,  let  Ziou  be  defiled, 
when  they  are  setting  themselves  to  deal  with  our  mother  as  with 
an  harlot. 

3.  Study  experimental  religion.  There  is  no  disputing  against 
sense  and  feeling.  Hence  the  unlearned,  but  experienced  Christ- 
ian has  stood  it  out,  when  the  disputers  of  this  world  have  fallen. 
Study  to  keep  up  the  power  of  godliness,  communion  with  God  in 
duties,  and  to  feel  the  power  of  truth  upon  your  hearts.  Personal 
holiness  in  men's  private  walk  is  an  excellent  help  to  their  keeping 
right  in  public  trials. 

4.  Renew  your  repentance,  and  let  there  be  no  standing  quarrel 
betwixt  God  and  you.  Unmortified,  unrepented  sin,  leaves  a  sting 
ill  the  conscience,  deprives  us  of  confidence  with  God,  and  so  unfits 
us  for  bearing  the  cross. 


DULY  I'EIZKD.  165 

Lastly,  Live  by  faith.  "  The  just  shall  live  by  faith."  Let  faith 
be  employed  to  cast  your  burdeu  on  the  Lord ;  the  burden  of  your 
duty,  protection,  provision,  and  through-bearing  on  Christ,  and  to 
keep  in  your  eye  the  promised  reward,  Ileb.  xi.  26. 

I  should  now  come  to  speak  of  these  things  of  which  the  saints 
suffer  the  loss,  in  point  of  confidence,  for  Christ.  But  I  have  before, 
on  the  third  verse,  spoken  of  these  things,  internal  and  external, 
with  which  they  give  up  in  point  of  confidence.  I  will  only  hint  at 
two  things  : 

1.  The  saints  suffering  the  loss  of  their  sufferings  for  Christ,  in 
point  of  confidence  in  them.  Sirs,  you  heard  what  you  may  be 
obliged  to  lose  for  Christ ;  but  I  will  tell  you  one  thing  more  which 
you  must  give  up  for  him,  when  you  have  suffered  the  loss  of  all 
these  ;  and  that  is,  all  confidence  in  these  your  sufferings,  or  else 
you  will  lose  them  all  indeed;  as  when  you  have  done,  so  when  you 
have  suffered,  "  you  must  say  you  are  unprofitable  servants."  They 
will  perish  in  their  suft'erings,  who  make  their  sufferings  their  con- 
fidence before  the  Lord.     Consider, 

1.  This  has  been  the  way  of  all  honest  sufferers,  Gal.  vi.  14  ; 
compai'e  2  Cor.  xi.  23.  See  also  Rev.  vii.  14,  15.  "When  they  have 
lost  all  for  him,  they  have  renounced  confidence  in  all,  and  fled  naked 
to  the  horns  of  the  altar,  and  durst  not  plead  for  his  favour  for 
their  sufferings,  but  for  the  Lord's  sufferings. 

2.  To  plead  upon  sufierings  for  Christ  is  a  dreadful  mark  of 
a  graceless  sufferer,  Matth.  xx.  12 — 16.  It  is  a  sign  men  seek 
themelves  and  not  the  Lord  in  their  sufferings,  therefore  they  get 
their  penny,  the  credit  and  reputation  among  the  saints  that  they 
were  seeking,  and  that  is  all. 

3.  What  is  the  Lord  obliged  to  us,  when  we  have  suffered  the  loss 
of  all?  Have  we  done  more  than  our  duty;  yea,  than  our  interest 
led  us  to  ?  If  a  beggar  should  come  in,  and  crave  his  alms  as  debt, 
because,  forsooth,  he  stood  at  your  door,  and  would  not  go  away, 
though  a  heavy  rain  was  falling  on  him  all  the  time,  what  would 
you  think  of  his  plea?  So  it  is  with  us,  if  we  plead  the  merit  of 
our  sufferings. 

4.  None  of  our  suft'erings  will  abide  the  trial  of  the  law,  so  that 
in  our  best  performances  that  way  there  is  sin  to  condemn  us.  So 
that  if  God  would  enter  into  judgment  with  us  for  our  suft'erings,  we 
would  be  ruined  by  them.  The  greatest  patience  wants  not  a 
mixture  of  impatience,  and  the  strongest  faith  some  remaining 
unbelief. 

Lastly,  It  is  our  honour  to  suffer  for  Christ,  and  considering  our 
uuworthiness  and  sinfulness,  we  may  wonder  if  ever  God  honour 


166  CHRIST  JESUS 

the  like  of  us  to  bear  his  cross.  And  therefore  such  persous  are 
deeper  iu  debt  to  free  grace  than  other  persons ;  because  that  they 
had  any  thing  to  lose  for  Christ,  wliich  many  have  not,  and  that 
when  they  had  it,  they  had  a  heart  to  part  with  it  for  him. 

2.  I  would  take  notice  of  the  difficulty  of  parting  with  these 
things,  in  point  of  confidence.  Such  a  difficulty  it  was  to  the 
apostle,  that  it  was  a  perfect  suffering  on  his  part.  He  had  a  diffi- 
culty in  renouncing  them,  but  yet  he  did  it. 

1.  It  is  difficult,  for  it  is  above  nature  to  do  it.  It  is  harder  for 
a  man  to  renounce  confidence  iu  his  suffering,  than  it  is  to  suffer  ; 
or  in  his  duties  when  done,  than  it  is  to  do  them.  The  latter  are 
not  beyond  the  power  of  nature,  the  former  are,  Phil.  iii.  3  ;  Matth. 
V.  3.  The  influence  of  the  law  may  bear  a  man  out  to  the  latter, 
but  gospel  grace  is  necessary  to  the  former. 

It  is  contrary  to  nature  to  do  it.  Not  only  nature  cannot  do  it, 
but  cannot  but  resist  the  doing  of  it.  Nature  bends  always  to  the 
way  of  the  covenant  of  works,  which  was  to  depend  upon  the  good 
done  by  the  man  himself,  and  is  opposite  to  the  way  of  believing, 
which  carries  a  man  out  of  himself  to  Christ.  This  is  a  suffering 
to  a  proud  heart,  to  have  its  beautiful  feathers  thus  pulled  down 
and  trampled  in  the  dust.  To  be  obliged  to  another  for  life,  while 
it  thought  it  had  a  sufficiency  of  its  own.  To  be  at  pains  to  do  and 
suffer  for  the  Lord,  and  after  all  to  be  obliged  to  renounce  all  it  has 
done  and  suffered,  and  betake  itself  to  the  doing  and  suffering  of 
another :  to  work  for  the  winning  of  heaven,  and  then  to  overlook 
all  as  if  they  had  done  nothing.  It  is  no  evidence  of  acquaintance 
with  the  heart,  where  men  find  nothing  of  this  difficulty.  This 
weed  grows  in  all  men's  hearts  naturally,  however  few  do  sweat  at 
the  plucking  it  up.     Amen. 


[Same  subject  continued.] 

SERMON  XYIII. 

Philippians  iii.  8, 
And  do  count  them  but  dung,  that  I  may  win  Christ. 

Many  are  mistaken  in  their  first   accounts,  and  therefore  throw 
away  what  they  would  gladly  take  up  again,  when  thoy  have  made  a 


PULY  PRIZED.  167 

second  reckoning.  Sucb  are  the  foolish  builders,  Luke  xiv.  29.  But 
the  apostle,  who  first  counted  all  loss,  and  then  parted  with  them  for 
Christ,  upon  a  review  counts  them  but  dung  or  dog's  meat,  such 
things  as  are  only  fit  to  be  cast  to  the  dogs  :  and  so  repents  not  his 
parting  with  them,  but  takes  his  heart  away  from  them  all,  that  he 
may  gain  Christ.  This  was  his  grand  object  in  the  world,  to  which 
all  things  behoved  to  yield.  And  gaining  Christ  with  the  loss  of  all, 
counts  himself  a  great  gainer. 

Doctrine  I.  It  is  the  Christian's  grand  object  in  the  world,  and 
should  be  the  grand  design  of  every  one,  to  win,  or  gain  Christ. 

0,  my  brethren  !  what  is  your  grand  object  or  design  in  the  world  ? 
what  is  the  great  business  which  you  have  in  view?  No  doubt  it  is 
to  win  something.  But  what  is  that  something  which  you  chiefly 
set  yourselves  to  win  ?  Is  it  to  win  preferment  ?  to  win  an  estate  ? 
a  stock  to  yourselves,  and  your  families  to  live  upon,  after  you  ?  To 
win  a  livelihood  ?  Are  these  your  grand  objects  in  the  world  ?  I 
fear  most  of  us  rise  no  higher.  These  are  too  mean,  too  grovelling. 
I  shew  you  a  more  excellent  way.  If  you  make  not  this  your  choice, 
you  will  be  fools  indeed. 

1.  I  will  shew  you  what  it  is  to  win  Christ,  and  how  we  are  to 
win  him. 

II.  Give  the  reasons  of  the  point.  Let  us  then, 
I.  Shew  what  it  is  to  win  Christ,  and  how  we  are  to  win  him. 
To  win  or  gain  Christ,  is  to  get  him  to  be  ours.  To  get  an  interest 
in  him,  and  enjoy  him.  This  we  have  always  to  seek  till  we  come  to 
heaven,  where  we  will  have  the  full  enjoyment  of  him.  This  is  that 
which  is  the  grand  object  of  some,  and  should  be  of  us  all.  Now 
this  winning  of  Christ  imports,  that  naturally  we  are  without  Christ, 
Eph.  ii.  12.  He  is  not  ours  naturally.  This  spiritual  relation  to 
Christ  must  be  by  the  sinner's  consent,  who  must  take  him  for  Lord 
and  Husband,  and  then  he  is  theirs.  But  all  naturally  are  destitute 
of  an  interest  in  this  blessed  treasure.  It  imports,  also,  that  Christ 
is  gain.  They  are  great  gainers  that  get  him.  He  is  an  inestimable 
treasure,  "  the  treasure  hid  in  the  field."  "  The  one  pearl  of 
great  price."  They  are  enriched  for  ever  that  have  him  to  be  theirs. 
Lose  who  will,  they  are  gainers.  The  blind  world  see  no  beauty  for 
which  he  is  to  be  desired.  But  it  is  no  wonder  to  see  the  most  gain- 
ful bargain  slighted  by  fools,  who  have  a  price  put  into  their  hand 
to  get  it,  but  have  no  heart  for  it.  It  imports  that  this  gain  may  be 
got.  We  may  have  Clirist  for  the  winning.  Tlie  treasure  is  hid  in 
the  field,  they  may  have  it  that  will  dig  for  it.  Christ  is  revealed 
and  offered  in  the  gospel.  The  door  of  access  to  him  is  open.  The 
proclamation  is  made,  "  whosoever  will,  let  him  take  the  water  of 


168  r'lrnisT  jkstts 

life  freely."  It  is  our  own  fault  if  we  want  liim.  But  they  tliat 
will  have  him  must  win  him  ere  they  can  get  him.  People  must  not 
think  to  sit  at  ease,  and  wait  till  heaven  drop  down  into  their 
mouths;  or  that  an  interest  in  Christ,  and  the  enjoyment  of  him,  will 
be  obtained  by  drowsy  wishes,  with  folded  hands.  No,  we  must  lay 
this  bargain  to  heart,  and  leave  no  stone  unturned  to  make  it  ef- 
fectual ;  nay,  in  order  to  win  him, 

1.  We  must  work  and  win  as  labourers  do.  "Work  out  your 
own  salvation  with  fear  and  trembling."  It  will  cost  working,  and 
sore  working.  What  severer  work,  than  that  of  those  who  dig  in 
mines.  "  If  thou  seekest  her  as  silver,  and  searches!  for  her  as  for 
hid  treasures,  then  shalt  thou  understand  the  fear  of  the  Lord,  and 
find  the  knowledge  of  God."  Up  then,  you  lazy  souls,  if  you  would 
have  a  Christ ;  you  must  put  your  hand  to  work ;  yea,  your  heart 
must  be  set  to  work.  '*  Ye  shall  seek  me  and  find,  saith  the  Lord  ; 
when  you  shall  search  for  me  with  all  your  heart."  God  gives 
Christ  freely ;  but  I  assure  you  it  is  to  labourers,  not  to  loiterers, 
that  gift  is  made.  You  will  toil  sore  to  win  something  for  the  body, 
but  what  are  you  doing  to  win  Christ  ? 

2.  We  must  fight  and  win  as  soldiers.  "  The  kingdom  of  heaven 
suffcreth  violence,  and  the  violent  take  it  by  force."  If  you  have  a 
mind  for  Christ,  to  come  even  to  his  seat,  you  must  fight  your  way 
to  it.  "  To  him  that  overcometh,"  saith  he,  "  will  I  give  to  sit  with 
me  on  my  throne ;  even  as  I  also  overcame,  and  am  set  down  with 
ray  Father  in  his  throne."  Whenever  a  soul  is  on  the  way  to  Christ, 
the  alarm  is  sounded  in  hell,  and  if  the  soul  will  have  him,  it  must 
have  him  in  opposition  to  flesh  and  blood,  principalities  and  powers. 
You  must  fight  your  way  through  the  white  band  of  the  world's  smiles, 
profits,  and  pleasures  ;  and  refuse  to  be  held  by  these  silken  cords, 
which  the  devil  uses  to  keep  souls  from  Christ ;  and  also  through 
the  black  band  of  temptations,  doubts,  fears,  discouragements,  that 
he  will  muster  up  against  you;  and,  by  all  appearance,  the  red  band 
too,  so  that  it  may  cost  you  to  resist  unto  blood,  Heb.  xii.  4.  Some- 
times Satan  gets  plunderings,  prisons,  tortures,  yea,  and  death,  set 
up  between  Christ  and  them  that  would  be  at  him ;  but  you  must 
fight  and  win,  saying,  in  all  these  things,  "we  shall  be  more  than 
conquerors,  through  him  that  loved  us." 

3.  We  must  wrestle  and  win,  as  those  do  who  strive  for  the  mas- 
tery, Eph.  vi.  12 — 14.  There  will  be  a  combat,  in  which  you 
must  be  engaged  against  your  own  lusts,  "for  the  flesh  lusteth 
against  the  Spirit,  and  the  Spirit  against  the  flesh,"  If  you  tamely 
yield,  truly  you  will  never  win  Christ,  You  must  in  his  strength 
cast  them  down,  get  them  nailed  to  his  cross,  and  make  your  way 


DULY  PRIZED.  1C9 

over  them,  to  the  enjoyment  of  himself.      You  must  cut   off  right 
hands,  and  pluck  out  right  eyes,  that  yon  may  win  Christ. 

4.  We  must  run  and  win  as  racers  do.  "  So  run  that  ye  may 
obtain."  "  Lay  aside  every  weight,  and  the  sin  that  doth  most 
easily  beset  yon,  and  run  with  patience  the  race  set  before  you." 
There  is  a  race  proposed  by  the  Lord,  namely,  the  profession  of  the 
truth,  and  practice  of  holiness.  The  Lord  Christ  and  his  apostles 
opened  the  race,  and  ever  since  that  time  there  have  been  many 
who  engaged  to  run  that  race.  But  as  soon  as  it  was  opened,  the 
devil  planted  thorns  on  the  race  ground,  kindled  fires,  set  up  gibbets, 
laid  misery,  shame,  grief,  poverty,  and  temptations  of  all  sorts  in 
the  way.  Many  foil,  many  turned  back,  a  great  many  run  faintly, 
but  all  go  forward  that  win  Christ.  In  the  world,  men  suppose  but 
two  fixed  points,  the  highest  and  the  lowest ;  the  bodies  betwixt  the 
two  are  in  continual  motion.  In  the  rational  world,  the  glorified 
are  in  the  highest  point,  the  damned  in  the  lowest.  Both  fixed, 
neither  of  them  can  go  farther.  We  that  are  betwixt  the  two,  are 
in  motion  either  to  heaven  or  hell.  If  we  would  win  Christ,  then, 
let  us  set  our  face  heavenward,  and  run  and  win. 

5.  We  must  trade  and  win  as  merchants  do.  "  The  kingdom  of 
heaven  is  like  unto  a  merchantman  seeking  goodly  pearls  ;  who, 
when  he  had  found  one  pearl  of  great  price,  went  and  sold  all  that 
he  had,  and  bought  it."  And,  as  spiritual  merchants,  we  must  be  at 
pains ;  we  must  exchange  and  win,  as  they  do.  They  that  have  a 
mind  for  Christ,  have  much  business  in  the  royal  exchange  of  hea- 
ven. And  you  will  say  they  win  indeed,  if  you  consider  what  they 
exchange  with  the  Lord.  "  A  new  heart  also,"  says  he,  "  will  I 
give  you,  and  a  new  spirit  will  I  put  within  you ;  and  I  will  take 
away  the  stony  heart  out  of  your  flesh,  and  will  give  you  a  heart  of 
flesh."  Christ  takes  off  their  rags,  and  gives  them  his  robes  of 
righteousness.  He  frees  them  from  the  curse,  and  sends  them  away 
with  the  blessing.  You  must  also  sell  and  win,  as  merchants  do.  I 
had  occasion,  on  another  subject,  to  tell  you  how  you  must  sell  all  you 
have  at  the  market  of  free  grace,  Mark  x.  22,  and  condescended  on 
the  particulars  which  you  are  to  sell.  Be  sure  this  is  a  gaining 
trade. 

You  must  also  buy  and  win,  as  merchants  do.  I  find  three 
things,  which  the  spiritual  merchant,  who  would  win  Christ,  is  this 
day  called  to  buy.  Precious  truth.  "  Buy  the  truth,  and  sell  it 
not."  It  can  never  be  too  dear  bought ;  whatever  people  may  pay 
for  it,  they  are  gainers.  This  is  like  to  be  a  time  for  selling  of  the 
truth,  and  persons  of  Judas'  trade  will  never  be  wanting,  saying, 
"  what  will  you  give  me,  and  I  will  deliver  him  unto  yon."     But 


170  CHRIST  JESUS 

let  men  get  for  it  what  they  will,  they  will  find  at  length  that  they 
have  made  a  fool's  bargain,  and  they  will  be  losers  at  the  end  of 
the  day.  "  For  what  is  a  man  i)rofited,  if  he  shall  gain  the  whole 
world,  and  lose  his  own  soul  ?  Or  what  shall  a  man  give  in  ex- 
change for  his  soul  ?"  A  second  thing  you  ought  to  buy,  is  precious 
time.  "  Redeeming  the  time,"  says  Paul.  We  have  had  a  long 
time  of  selling  it,  and  squandering  it  away,  though  we  have  not 
enriched  ourselves  with  the  price.  We  have  allowed  onr  precious 
opportunities  of  communion  with  God  to  go  for  trifles.  But  buy 
again  now,  for  the  days  are  evil.  That  is,  as  the  merchant  who  has 
foolishly  neglected  his  business  most  of  the  day,  plys  it  most  eagerly 
when  he  sees  the  market  is  near  a  close,  if  by  any  means  he  may 
make  up  his  former  loss.  So  do  you.  The  third  thing  you  must 
buy,  is  the  precious  riches  of  Christ.  "  I  counsel  thee,"  says  he, 
"  to  buy  of  me  gold  tried  in  the  fire,  that  you  may  be  rich  ;  and 
white  raiment,  that  you  may  be  clothed."  His  merit ;  that  is,  gold 
able  to  purchase  heaven.  His  righteousness  ;  raiment  for  your  souls. 
His  Spirit ;  salve  for  your  blind  eyes.  It  is  a  blessed  market  this. 
You  cannot  but  be  gainers.  Here  we  are  to  "  buy  without  money 
and  without  price."  For  I  hope  you  will  not  count  upon  renoun- 
cing yonr  own  merits,  righteousness  and  wisdom,  as  a  price  for 
these  things.  You  must  also  export  and  import,  as  merchants  do. 
Our  trade  to  heaven  consists  much  in  our  export  to  Immanuel's 
land.  And  what  have  we  to  export,  but  the  home  product  of  guilt, 
weakness,  poverty  and  wants.  But  let  us  carry  them  all  away  to 
the  Lord,  we  will  gain  by  it,  leaving  them  there.  We  must  import 
the  products  of  the  King's  country,  consisting  of  pardons  for  our 
guilt,  strength  for  our  weakness,  and  fulness  for  our  wants,  and 
then  we  will  gain  indeed.     We  now  proceed, 

XL  To  give  reasons  of  the  point.  It  is  the  Christian's  great  ob- 
ject to  win  Christ,  and  should  be  the  great  object  of  all. 

1.  Because  if  we  win  Christ,  we  gain  all.  This  is  the  shortest 
way  to  make  up  a  stock,  a  treasure  that  will  enrich  us  for  ever,  in 
time  and  eternity.  He  thought  so  who  said,  "  one  thing  have  I  de- 
sired of  the  Lord  ;  that  will  I  seek  after."  So  also  did  the  wise  mer- 
chant, Matth.  xiii.  45,  46.  He  were  a  foolish  man  who  would  spend 
his  time  in  making  a  great  number  of  petty  bargains,  by  which  he 
gained  but  little,  and  would  neglect  a  bargain  that  would  make  up 
for  all  his  days,  when  in  his  ofi'er.  Thou  art  the  man,  whose  great 
object  is  not  to  win  Christ.  If  you  win  Christ,  you  are  made  up  for 
time.  "  Godliness  is  profitable  unto  all  things,  having  the  promise 
of  the  life  that  now  is."  What  would  you  have  for  time  ?  Would 
you   have   food   and   raiment  ?    win   Christ,   and   you   shall   have 


DULY  PRIZED.  171 

tliem.  With  tlio  kingdom  of  God  your  great  object,  "  all  these 
things  shall  be  added  unto  you."  It  will  be  a  very  bad  time 
indeed,  in  which  Christ's  spouse  may  not  promise  herself  food  and 
raiment.  It  is  not  an  uncertain,  but  sure  thing :  "  Bread  shall  be 
given  her,  her  water  shall  be  sure,"  She  wants  then  only  a  dwell- 
ing-place :  well,  "  she  shall  dwell  on  high  ;  yea,  the  Lord  himself  is 
her  dwelling-place,  in  all  generations."  But  some  people  would  have 
land  too.  Then  there  is  no  such  sure  way  to  make  a  purchase  as 
this,  win  Christ.  He  is  Lord  of  all  the  land  in  the  world,  and  the 
whole  earth  is  thine  in  the  right  of  thy  husband,  Matth.  v.  5.  But 
what  will  people  do  for  money  ?  Win  Christ,  and  you  shall  not 
want  it.  "The  Almighty  shall  be  thy  defence,  and  thou  shalt  have 
plenty  of  silver."     (Hebrew,)  gold;  and  the  silver  of  thy  strength. 

Objection.  Yes,  says  the  unbeliever,  these  are  brave  words,  but 
depend  upon  them,  and  see  what  they  will  bring  in  to  thy  treasure, 
Answer.  They  are  God's  words,  and  his  good  words  are  better  than 
all  the  world's  good  deeds,  God  gives  some  persons,  for  whom  he 
hath  no  special  care,  their  portion  in  their  hand,  and  sends  them 
away ;  and  others,  his  dearest  children,  he  gives  them  the  good 
words  of  a  promise,  and  keeps  them  at  home  with  himself.  Say 
now,  who  has  the  best  of  it,  Matth.  xxv.  34,  "  Ye  blessed  of  my 
Father;"  (Greek,)  you  to  whom  ray  Father  hath  spoken  well.  God's 
good  words  have  always  good  deeds  in  their  bosom.  He  will  not 
approve  of  those  who  say  to  the  needy,  "be  ye  clothed,  be  ye  fed, 
but  give  not  the  things  that  are  needful  for  the  body."  And  will 
he  be  found  such  an  one  himself?  No,  no.  Many  of  the  saints  have 
depended  upon  his  words,  and  they  have  been  fed  and  clothed,  and 
left  their  experience  on  record,  Psal.  xxxiv.  6 — 10.  They  have  de- 
clared, that  like  the  disciples,  "they  had  lacked  nothing."  The 
mistake  of  the  unbeliever  is,  he  thinks  God's  bond  cannot  be  paid, 
unless  it  be  paid  in  cash,  the  very  thing  itself.  No,  God  can  make 
it  out  another  way,  and  his  people  can  say,  "  as  having  nothing, 
and  yet  possessing  all  things."  Had  Moses  any  reason  to  complain, 
when  he  wanted  meat  forty  days,  when  God  so  supported  him,  that 
he  needed  it  not.  Adam  lived  very  well  at  first,  when  the  heaven 
was  the  roof  of  his  house,  the  earth  his  floor,  the  grass  his  seat,  and 
the  shade  of  trees  his  bed-chamber.  He  did  not  complain  of  the 
want  of  a  house,  when  God  was  his  God,  and  he  was  so  provided. 
Stamped  leather  has  sometimes  gone  for  money,  and  they  that  had 
enough  of  it  were  even  as  rich  as  they  that  have  the  silver  and  gold 
now  ;  and  if  it  was  as  good,  I  hope  you  may  allow  the  Almighty  him- 
self to  be  better  than  gold. 

Again,  thou  art  made  up  for  eternity.     "  Godliness  is  profitable 

Vol.  IV.  '  m 


172  CHRIST  JESUS 

unto  all  things,  having  tlie  promise  of  the  life  that  now  is,  and  of 
that  which  is  to  come."  Come  death  when  it  will,  thy  lodging  is 
taken  up  on  the  other  side  of  Jordan.  Thou  hast  won  the  Lord  of 
the  land  to  be  thine,  how  canst  thou  be  but  welcome  there?  John 
xiv.  2.  The  law  cannot  lay  aught  to  thy  charge,  for  he  has  satisfied 
it,  and  thou  mayest  say,  "  I  am  crucified  with  Christ,  nevertheless 
I  live."  Justice  cannot  apprehend  thee,  for  the  debt  is  paid  and 
Christ  has  got  up  thy  discharge.  When  the  gain  of  other  people, 
who  are  winning  the  world,  is  at  an  end,  thy  gain  is  but  in  some 
sort  beginning  to  come  in,  but  it  is  a  gain  that  will  tell  out  through 
the  ages  of  eternity. 

2.  Because  if  we  win  not  Christ,  we  win  nothing,  we  lose  all.    We 
lose  our  souls,  and  where  is  our  gain  then  ?  Matth.  xvi.  26.    "Without 
Christ,  without  hope,  for  he  is  the  only  way  to  the  Father,  John  xiv. 
6.     The  wise  people  of  the  world  need  not  boast  of  their  winning  ; 
they  are  penny  wise  and  pound  foolish,  win  what  they  will,  seeing 
they  win  not  Christ.     Whatever  they  are  winning,  there  is  a  thou- 
sand times  more  going  to  destruction  in  the  meantime.     Would  he 
be  a  wise  man  that  would  go  abroad  in  the  harvest,  and  while  he  is 
winning  by  some  little  bargain,  his  whole  crop  in  the  meantime  is 
shaken  with  the  wind,  and  rotten  with  the  rain.     That  is  thy  case, 
0  man  !  thou  art  abroad  winning  the  world,  but  all  is  going  wrong 
at  home  within  thy  own  soul.    And  when  thou  comest  home  to  thyself, 
at  death,  or  otherwise,  it  will  be  sad.     Whatever  you  are  winning, 
is  but  like  children  winning  of  their  fellows,  that  will  never  make  them 
rich,  never  buy  meat  nor  clothes  to  them.     It  is  money  "  for  that 
which  is  not  bread,  and  labour  for  that  which  satisSeth  not."     A 
thousand   worlds  will  not    purchase   a  pardon ;    a  heaven  to   you, 
without  which  you  will  be  miserable.     It  is  a  poor  trade,  where  a 
man  is  not  winning  Christ.     It  will  never  bring  him  the  one  thing 
necessary,  and  what  winning  can  be  there  ? 

Whatever  you  are  winning,  if  you  would  count  what  you  give 
out,  as  well  as  what  you  get  in,  you  would  find  all  your  winning  is 
worse  than  nothing.  Count  your  days,  your  precious  time,  precious 
opportunities  of  grace  and  salvation,  your  precious  souls  laid  out 
in  winning  the  things  of  the  world,  but  not  Christ ;  each  of  which 
is  far  more  precious  than  what  you  can  win  that  way,  and  you  will 
see  you  win  nothing  by  the  bargain,  but  are  great  losers. 

Use  1.  It  reproves  several  sorts  of  persons ;  and  first,  those  who 
are  taken  up  about  nothing  but  to  win  the  world,  utterly  neglecting 
to  win  Christ,  and  to  get  an  interest  in  him.  There  is  little  dif- 
ference between  such  and  the  brutes.  They  work,  and  eat,  and  sleep  ; 
these  are  the  all  of  the  beasts,  and  the  all  of  some  who  are  worse 


DULY  PRIZED.  lY^i 

than  the  beasts.  They  never  seriously  set  themselves  to  get  mat- 
ters right  for  their  souls.  It  were  their  advantage  that  they  could 
die  as  the  beasts,  as  they  live  like  them. 

You  whose  business  it  is  to  win  Christ,  but  it  is  not  your  main 
business.  It  is  but  a  bye-hand  work  with  you.  It  is  the  world  that 
is  nearer  your  hearts  than  an  interest  in  Christ,  and  the  enjoyment 
of  him.  You  walk  with  God  at  all  adventures.  Assure  yourselves 
that  no  man  will  stumble  upon  Christ  by  accident,  or  snapper  into 
heaven,  or  fall  into  it  by  guess.  If  you  make  it  not  your  chief  busi- 
ness, you  may  gain  a  name,  but  you  will  never  win  Christ. 

Those  who  sell  the  truth  and  a  good  conscience,  that  they  may 
get  the  world  kept.  People  that  will  sail  with  every  wind,  and 
keep  always  on  the  side  that  is  upmost  in  the  world,  are  not  in  the 
way  to  win  Christ ;  "  For  we  can  do  nothing  against  the  truth,  but 
for  the  truth."  Take  heed  to  yourselves,  our  time  is  like  to  be  an 
ensnaring  time.  You  will  be  fair  to  lose  the  world  and  its  counte- 
nance, or  to  lose  Christ.  But  be  you  ready  to  let  all  go  which  you 
cannot  hold  in  his  own  way,  Avith  his  favour. 

Those  who  will  not  stand  to  sell  soul  and  conscience,  to  win  some- 
thing of  the  world,  if  they  can  but  get  their  hands  on  it.  They  are 
careful  for  nothing  but  their  credit,  which  is  in  hazard  too,  if  so  be 
they  can  gain  some  little  thing  iu  the  world.  It  seems  we  have  such 
persons  among  us,  by  the  frequent  complaints  people  are  making  of 
their  losses  that  way,  not  only  by  picking,  but  stealing.  May  the 
good  Lord  discover  them  for  a  terror  to  others !  0  !  how  are 
people's  consciences  thus  seared,  and  their  hearts  hardened  to  defy 
that  curse,  that  roll  of  curses  that  God  has  said  he  will  send  into 
the  house  of  the  thief,  Zech.  v.  4;  that  bill  of  eternal  exclusion  from 
heaven,  passed  against  the  unrighteous,  1  Cor.  vi.  9,  10.  Read 
their  doom,  Deut.  xxix.  19,  20. 

Use  2.  I  exhort  you  to  make  it  your  main  business  in  the  world 
to  win  Christ.  Consider  this  is  the  way  iu  which  every  person  may 
win,  the  poor  as  well  as  the  rich.  It  is  not  much  the  most  part 
of  us  can  rationally  propose  to  win  to  ourselves  in  the  world.  It  is 
difficult  to  win  much,  unless  people  have  a  good  stock,  and  be  very  di- 
ligent also.     But  come  here  and  win,  even  you  that  hath  no  money. 

You  have  been  at  pains  to  win  something  of  tiie  world.  Some 
of  you  have  won,  some  of  you  have  lost;  many  of  you  have  real 
difficulty  to  win  your  daily  bread.  You  have  tried  the  one,  will  you 
not  do  so  much  as  try  the  other  also.  Sirs,  if  you  will  not,  your 
toil,  sweat,  and  Aveariness,  in  winning  the  world,  will  be  a  witness 
against  you  before  the  Lord,  that  you  could  be  at  pains  for  other 
things,  but  at  no  pains  for  Christ. 

M  2 


174  f'limsT  JESUS 

This  is  the  shortest  way  of  winning.  No  man  will  choose  the  win- 
ning by  many  small  bargains,  when  he  can  win  all  that  and  more  by 
one  great  bargain.  This  is  the  case,  win  Christ  and  you  win  all. 
In  short,  it  is  a  safe  and  sure  way  of  winning.  The  best  traders 
that  ever  carried  on  merchandise  have  lost  of  some  bargains  ;  but 
never  one  was  a  loser  here.  You  will  be  sure  to  win  if  you  set  your- 
self to  win  Christ,  and  your  winning  will  be  beyond  your  expectation. 

Lastly,  It  is  a  durable  winning  that  can  never  be  lost.  People 
will  be  winners  one  year,  and  lose  all  that  and  more,  another  year ; 
win  of  one  bargain,  and  lose  it  again  of  another  :  but  win  Christ 
once,  and  you  will  never  again  lose  your  winning. 

Use.  3.  Of  trial.  Yon  may  see  whether  you  be  Christians  or  not. 
Try  what  is  your  grand  object.  Is  it  to  win  Christ,  or  not  ?  You 
may  know  it  by  what  follows. 

Doctrine.  II.  They  whose  grand  object  in  the  world  is  to  win 
Christ,  will  count  all  but  dung  that  comes  in  competition  with  this 
bargain.     For  explication  of  this,  they  will  count, 

1.  Nothing  too  much  for  him,  but  be  content  to  have  Christ  on 
any  terms.  They  will  say,  "  Lord,  what  wilt  thou  have  me  to  do." 
Dung  is  a  worthless  thing,  that  nobody  makes  account  of.  They 
will  think  no  pains  too  much  for  him ;  and  they  that  think  other- 
wise, never  saw  the  worth  of  the  pearl,  Prov.  ii.  4,  5.  They  will 
hang  on  about  his  door,  and  think  they  speed  well,  if  they  be  heard 
at  length.  They  will  count  no  cost  too  much.  Sometimes  men  have 
a  cheap  religion ;  but  it  is  not  to  be  supposed  that  they  will  always 
get  the  Lord  served  with  that  which  cost  them  nothing.  It  is  very 
like  that  God  will  have  a  costly  sacrifice  of  the  hand  of  these  na- 
tions ;  to  which  both  his  own  people,  and  the  enemies  of  religion  and 
of  his  work,  shall  be  obliged  to  contribute  both  of  their  goods  and  of 
their  blood.  These  lands  are  defiled  with  blood.  So  many  murder- 
ers escaping  unpunished ;  and  the  blood  of  the  saints  shed  in  these 
nations  remains  unpurged,  though  it  is  like  there  may  be  more  put 
to  it,  and  the  land  may  get  blood  to  drink.  It  nearly  concerns  us 
that  God  hath  said,  "  I  will  bring  a  sword  upon  you,  that  shall 
avenge  the  quarrel  of  my  covenant."  We  have  mixed  with  the  na- 
tions and  learned  of  them  their  ways,  and  justly  may  the  Lord  send 
the  instruments  of  his  vengeance  from  the  places  from  which  we 
have  brought  the  atheism  and  profanity  of  the  day.  But  cost  what 
it  will,  the  saints  will  think  nothing  too  much,  so  as  they  win  Christ. 

2.  Cost  what  it  will,  they  Avill  not  think  that  they  are  even  hands,  but 
that  they  are  gainers,  if  they  can  win  Christ.  Whatever  be  laid  in 
the  balance  with  Christ,  it  is  but  so  much  dung  and  dross  for  so  much 


1>ULY  PKIZED.  175 

gold.  They  must  lay  out  for  Christ,  lusts  dear  as  right  eyes ;  yea, 
it  may  be  also  goods,  liberty,  and  life.  The  carnal  world  cannot 
see  how  they  can  hold  their  own  with  such  trading,  and  therefore 
will  trade  no  such  way.  But  he  whose  grand  object  is  to  win  Christ, 
considers  it  the  most  gainful  bargain  ;  even  a  hundred-fold  got  in, 
for  one  given  out,  Matth.  xix.  29. 

3.  Have  what  they  will,  they  will  count  they  have  nothing,  while 
they  have  not  Christ.  "What  avail  barns,  and  coffers  full  of  dung, 
to  a  man  ?  What  do  food  and  clothing,  riches  and  honour,  avail 
to  a  man  who  sees  the  need  and  the  worth  of  Christ  ?  Will  he  not 
be  ready  to  say,  what  wilt  thou  give  me,  if  I  go  Christless  ?  These 
things  can  do  no  more  to  my  poor  soul,  than  dung  to  my  body. 
Could  the  soul  dwell  and  feed  with  the  swine,  they  would  have 
enough,  while  they  have  dog's  meat.  This  says,  few  make  it  their 
grand  object  to  win  Christ,  seeing  so  many  can  live  and  reign  as 
kings  without  him  ;  and  give  them  the  world  aud  their  lusts,  and 
they  have  the  desire  of  their  hearts. 

4.  Win  what  they  will,  they  will  count  they  win  nothing,  if  they 
win  not  Christ.  It  is  but  dung  they  can  win  that  way.  The  world 
thinks  godly  people  fools,  while  they  care  not  for  winning,  as 
they  do.  But  see  the  world's  fool's,  while  they  lose  so  egregiously, 
yet  count  themselves  gainers.  Achan  was  no  gainer,  when  he 
brought  into  his  tent  a  wedge  of  gold,  and  a  weight  of  wrath  far 
heavier  than  the  wedge.  That  meat  is  but  dog's  meat,  that  has  a 
bone  in  it  to  stick  in  the  throat  of  the  eater.  The  open  fields  are 
better  than  a  house  in  which  brimstone  is  scattered  on  the  habita- 
tion. Wealth;  with  the  want  of  God's  favour,  is  but  dung  in  compa- 
rison of  want,  with  God's  good  will.  I  am  afraid  there  are  but  few 
who  count  this  way. 

5.  Be  about  them  what  will,  if  Christ  be  not  in  them,  they  will 
count  themselves  loathsome  with  it  all,  like  persons  that  have  no- 
thing but  dung  about  them,  Job  ix.  31  ;  therefore  they  count  wicked 
men  vile  men,  Psal.  xv.  4.  Rags,  with  righteousness,  are  more  de- 
sirable to  them  than  robes  aud  gay  apparel,  where  there  is  a  naked 
soul.  What  is  a  throne  for  the  body  but  dung,  while  Christ  has 
not  the  throne  of  the  heart ;  or  riches,  while  men  are  not  rich  to- 
ward God. 

6.  Be  in  their  way  what  will,  to  hinder  them  from  Christ,  they 
will  shovel  it  out  of  their  way  as  dung,  rather  than  be  kept  back 
from  Christ,  Song  viii.  6.  7-  Him  they  cannot  want,  him  they  must 
have.  "  Cast  ye  up,  cast  ye  up,  prepare  the  way ;  take  up  the 
stumbling-block  out  of  the  way  of  my  people."  They  must  be  at 
Zion  J  and  if  they  should   cut  their  way  through   rocks  aud  over 


176  ohhist  JESUS 

niouniains,  tliey  must  be  there;  if  a  Red  Sea  were  before  them,  it 
shall  not  stop  them.  0  !  how  easily  are  the  most  of  us  kept  back 
from  Christ !  Little  thing  will  stand  betwixt  him  and  us,  which  we 
will  be  as  loathe  to  cast  out  of  our  way,  as  if  it  were  gold. 

Lasthi,  If  they  cannot  shovel  it  out  of  their  way,  they  will  tread 
and  trample  on  it  as  dung,  that  they  may  win  Christ.  "  Thus  Levi 
said  unto  his  father,  and  to  his  mother,  I  have  not  seen  him ; 
neither  did  he  acknowledge  his  brethren,  nor  knew  his  own  children; 
for  they  have  observed  thy  word,  and  kept  thy  covenant."  The 
street  of  the  New  Jerusalem  is  laid  with  gold,  for  the  citizens  there- 
of will  tread  on  gold,  and  on  what  is  most  valuable  in  the  world, 
that  they  may  get  forward  to  God.  If  waters  be  in  their  way,  they 
will  pass  through  them  ;  and  if  fires,  they  will  walk  over  them,  and 
therefore  all  the  travellers  to  Zion  "  have  their  feet  shod  with  the 
preparation  of  the  gospel  of  peace." 

Use  1.  Of  information.  This  lets  us  see  that  there  are  few  iu 
the  world  whose  grand  object  is  to  win  Christ ;  so  far  are  they  from 
counting  that  dung  which  comes  in  competition  with  Christ.  Nay, 
instead  of  that,  people  are  worshipping  dung  gods,  so  the  original 
calls  idols.  The  gods  of  many  are  no  other  than  gods  coming  out  of 
the  earth.  It  is  the  earth,  and  what  is  in  it,  that  has  most  of  their 
hearts.  The  belly  is  the  god  of  many,  the  world  of  others,  for  co- 
vetousness  is  idolatry ;  yea,  who  is  the  god  of  this  world,  but  the 
devil,  Beelzebub  ;  that  is,  the  god  of  dung,  (Syriac.) 

They  are  also  wallowing  in  the  mire  of  profanity,  2  Pet.  ii.  22. 
Mire,  the  word  properly  signifies  the  dung  that  is  carried  out  of 
stables  in  which  swine  wallow.  And  what  are  these  profane  courses, 
but  that  which  comes  out  of  the  vile  stable  of  an  unrenewed  heart, 
Mark  vii.  21.  And  alas  !  many  washed  swine  are  found  there,  who 
sometimes  appeared  another  thing  than  they  are  now. 

They  are  loading  themselves  with  the  thick  clay  of  the  world, 
Hab.  ii.  6.  Taking  a  complete  burden  of  the  world,  pressing  them 
so  that  they  cannot  get  up  their  heads  toward  heaven.  Surely  these 
count  not  the  world  dung,  or  less  of  it  would  serve  them.  The  cares 
of  it  stretch  their  minds  like  tenter  hooks,  and  are  Satan's  cords 
binding  them  down  to  the  earth,  that  they  cannot  lift  up  their  souls 
to  ^.he  Lord.  Thus  the  houses  of  many  are  but  dunghills,  where  all 
is  for  the  world,  nothing  for  God  and  themselves,  but  dung  to  fatten 
the  earth,  not  to  help  to  replenish  heaven.  Dust  is  their  meat,  for 
they  are  the  serpent's  seed,  Isaiah  Ixv.  25.  That  is  to  say,  they 
fetch  their  satisfaction  from  their  lusts,  they  cannot  rejoice  in  God, 
nor  in  the  ways  of  holiness.  These  things  are  tasteless  to  them, 
and  nothing  relishes  with  them,  but  the  husks  of  sin,  which  the 
swino  of  the  world  eat. 


DULY  PKIZED.  177 

Finalli/,  The  worship  of  mauy  is  but  dung  and  loathsome.  God 
says  to  them,  "  I  will  spread  dung  on  your  faces,  even  the  dung  of 
your  solemn  feasts."  Tliere  is  nothing  of  spirit  in  their  worship.  It 
is  but  a  loathsome  carcase  of  bodily  exercise,  which  is  good  for  no- 
thing but  to  be  cast  out.  They  may  value  it  themselves,  for  some- 
times dung  was  valued  highly,  when  "  a  fourth  part  of  a  cab  of  it 
was  sold  for  five  pieces  of  silver,"  but  God  abhors  it.  There  was  a 
gate  in  Jerusalem  called  the  dung-gate,  Neh.  ii.  13.  Such  may  be 
in  the  church,  but  they  will  be  carried  out  at  the  dung-port  by  death, 
or  otherwise ;  and  see  their  end,  "they  shall  perish  forever,  like 
their  own  dung ;  they  who  have  seen  them  shall  say,  where  are 
they  ?" 

Use  2.  Evidence  yourselves  true  Christians,  by  counting  thus. 
There  are  three  parts  of  counting,  which  the  carnal  world  cannot 
learn,  but  Christians  learn  them  at  the  school  of  Christ: 

1.  Counting  days.  "So  teach  us,"  says  Moses,  ''to  number 
our  days,  that  we  may  apply  our  hearts  to  wisdom."  The  carnal, 
when  they  begin  to  count  their  time,  they  number  by  years,  and 
many  years,  Luke  xii.  19 ;  and  hence  they  always  fool  away  the 
present  time.  But  the  Christian  will  count  by  days,  and  these  few 
days  short  and  uncertain,  Gen.  xlvii.  9 ;  and  "  so  apply  their  hearts 
unto  wisdom." 

2.  Counting  afflictions  and  trials  to  be  gainful.  The  carnal 
world  can  make  nothing  of  these  that  is  desirable,  but  the  total  of 
them  is  still  grief,  sorrow,  and  loss;  they  cannot  see  how  to  make 
more  of  them.  But  the  godly  are  taught  to  count  them  light,  mo- 
mentary, and  gainful ;  yea,  "  as  working  for  them  a  far  more  ex- 
ceeding and  eternal  weight  of  glory."  They  count  them  all  joy,  and 
that  they  are  happy  that  endure  them,  James  i.  2,  and  v.  11. 

3.  Counting  things  of  this  world,  in  competition  with  Christ,  to 
their  true  value.  The  world  is  ever  completely  wrong  in  this  count- 
ing. Here  they  count  their  mites  to  talents;  and  instead  of  fifty, 
set  down  an  hundred.  They  count  them  ever  above  their  worth, 
better  than  Christ  and  his  favour.  But  Christians  have  learned  to 
count  them  at  another  rate,  all  loss  and  dung  for  Christ;  and  I 
would  have  you  count  so.     Consider, 

1.  How  God  accounts  of  them.  The  verdict  of  the  Spirit  con- 
cerning all  is,  "  vanity  of  vanity,  all  is  vanity."  "  Riches  are 
that  which  is  not."  Agrippa's  great  pomp  is,  in  the  language  of  the 
Holy  Ghost,  much  fancy,  (Greek,)  Acts  xxv.  23.  God  is  no  accepter 
of  persons.  None  of  these  tilings  commend  us  to  God,  more  than  if 
we  were  naked  and  bare  ;  the  judgment  of  God  is  according  to  truth. 
Consider, 


178  (JHKIST  JESUb 

2.  How  you  will  account  of  them  when  you  are  going  into  an- 
other world,  and  when  you  are  there.  "When  death  stares  you  in  the 
face,  and  gives  you  a  warning  away  from  all  you  possess,  what  will 
you  think  of  them  then?  When  you  are  in  another  world,  and 
standing  before  the  judgment-seat  of  Christ,  whether  will  grace  or 
gold,  robes  or  righteousness,  Christ  or  the  world,  be  of  greatest  value 
in  your  eyes  ? 

3.  Consider  you  will  never  honour  Christ,  and  if  so,  he  will  never 
houour  you.  You  will  never  honour  him  in  your  hearts,  while  you 
prefer  every  thing  to  him  ;  nor  in  your  lives,  by  doing  much,  or 
suffering  for  his  cause.  A  man  that  counts  not  thus,  is  not  fit  for 
such  a  time  as  this,  in  which  God  seems  to  be  about  to  put  it  to  the 
trial,  what  men  think  of  the  world,  in  comparison  of  Christ. 

Labour  then  to  get  a  view  of  the  glory,  riches,  and  excellency  of 
Christ,  and  then  you  will  count  all  things  but  duug  for  him.  If  men 
knew  the  worth  of  Christ,  they  would  think  nothing  too  much  for 
hira. 

Doctrine  III.  They  are  truly  winners,  lose  what  they  will,  that 
gain  Christ.     To  confirm  this  point,  consider, 

"What  he  is  in  himself.  He  is  God,  and  so  if  he  be  yours,  God  is 
yours,  for  he  is  God;  the  Son  of  God  begotten  by  the  Father,  by  an 
eternal  unspeakable  generation,  so  that  he  has  life  in  himself.  He 
is  man,  God-man,  fairer  than  the  children  of  men.  The  human 
nature  is  united  to  the  divine  in  the  person  of  the  Son,  and  so  lies  at 
the  fountain  head,  as  the  bowl  in  Zechariah's  candlestick. 

2.  Consider  what  he  is  to  us  : 

1.  "Winning  Christ,  we  gain  a  ransom  for  our  souls.  "  He  gave 
himself  for  us,  to  redeem  us  from  all  iniquity."  If  one  were  a  slave 
to  the  Turks,  what  matter  what  he  lost,  if  he  gained  a  ransom  for 
himself.  We  are  debtors  to  justice,  criminals  in  law,  prisoners  of 
Satan,  bound  over  to  the  wrath  of  God  by  nature.  Now  the  soul's 
redemption  is  precious.  If  we  could  gain  the  whole  world,  that 
could  not  ransom  us,  Hos.  xiii.  14 ;  Job  xxxiii.  24. 

2.  Winning  Christ,  we  gain  a  purchase.  He  not  only  ransoms  us 
from  the  wrath  of  God,  but  purchaseth  heaven  to  us.  He  gives  us 
gold  tried  in  the  fire,  to  enrich  us.  If  Christ  be  thine,  he  communi- 
cates his  merit  to  thee  for  thy  justification,  and  title  to  eternal  life ; 
so  that  it  is  a  righteous  thing  for  thee  to  get  heaven,  2  Thess. 
i.  6,  7. 

3.  Winning  Christ,  we  gain  a  treasure  ;  the  treasure  hid  in  the 
field.  Consider  that  whatever  you  can  lose  for  Christ,  if  you  wiu 
hira,  you  win  a  treasure,  when  you  lose  but  some  small  mite  for  it. 
Christ  is  a  treasure  for  preciousness,  everything  in  Christ  is  pre- 


DULY  PRIZKD.  179 

cious.  When  Solomon  counted  all  that  was  in  the  world,  he  sets 
down  the  total  in  two  great  cyphers,  vanity  and  vexation.  And  is 
this  the  prize  for  our  sweat  and  cares  ?  Why  so  eager  on  vanity, 
so  fond  of  vexation.  But  all  in  Christ  is  precious.  Is  not  grace, 
pardon,  peace,  precious?  They  were  purchased  with  his  precious 
blood,  1  Pet.  i.  19 ;  they  are  wrapped  up  in  precious  promises, 
2  Pet.  i.  4.  0  precious  promises  !  where  happiness  is  wrapt  up  in 
words  and  syllables.  Eternity  couched  in  a  sentence  !  an  eternal 
weight  of  glory  in  a  word  !  Christ  is  also  a  treasure,  for  variety 
and  abundance  of  precious  things.  The  treasure  of  worldly  things 
is  soon  counted.  We  have  the  inventory  of  it,  consisting  but  of 
these  three  things,  "  the  lust  of  the  eye,  the  lust  of  the  flesh,  and 
the  pride  of  life."  But  it  "  hath  pleased  the  Father,  that  in  Christ 
should  all  fulness  dwell."  "  Eye  hath  not  seen,  nor  ear  heard, 
neither  hath  it  entered  into  the  heart  of  man  to  conceive,  the  things 
which  God  hath  laid  up  for  them  that  love  him."  I  will  only  tell 
you  of  the  following  things  in  it.  The  whole  constellation  of 
graces,  each  more  precious  than  gold,  of  more  worth  than  a  world. 
The  whole  privileges  of  the  saints :  an  eternal  weight  of  glory. 
Finally,  the  whole  Trinity.  Christ  is  also  a  treasure  in  respect  of 
secrecy.  Hid  to  the  unrenewed  world,  and  even  to  believers  in  a 
great  measure.  "  It  doth  not  yet  appear  what  we  shall  be ;  but  we 
know  that,  when  he  shall  appear,  we  shall  be  like  him ;  for  we  shall 
see  him  as  he  is."  But  even  in  glory,  they  will  never  see  to  the 
end  of  it. 

4.  Winning  Christ,  we  gain  that  which  will  turn  every  thing  to 
our  advantage.  "All  things  shall  work  together  for  our  good." 
This  is  the  stone  that  turns  all  to  gold.  If  we  be  in  Christ,  death 
shall  be  profitable  to  us  as  an  inlet  to  eternal  bliss ;  the  grave,  a 
place  of  rest,  as  God's  field,  where  the  seed  sown  shall  spring  up 
with  increase ;  the  wind  of  afliictions  shall  drive  us  more  speedily  to 
our  harbour ;  our  crosses  shall  be  for  crucifying  our  lusts ;  our 
losses  shall  be  our  gain  to  bring  an  hundred-fold.  Thus,  in  a  word, 
all  things  shall  work  for  our  good. 

5.  Winning  Christ,  we  gain  an  heirship.  We  "  become  heirs  of 
God,  and  joint  heirs  with  Christ."  More  by  far,  than  if  we  were 
heirs  of  the  greatest  monarch  on  earth.  By  this  you  will  be  heirs 
of  the  promises,  young  heirs  of  glory.  Attended  by  angels,  and 
duly  provided  for  while  in  your  minority,  and  at  length  admitted 
to  your  inheritance.     Yea,  all  is  yours. 

6.  There  is  nothing,  then,  which  we  have  to  lose  for  Christ,  that 
is  worthy  to  be  laid  in  the  balance  with  him.  The  loss  is  infinitely 
made  up  in  him.     What  are  our  worldly  goods,  in  comparison  of 


180  CURIST  JESUS 

the  gooduess  laid  up  -for  those  that  are  in  Christ.  May  not  tlie 
relation  to  Christ  and  his  Father  make  up  all  the  loss  of  other 
relations?  The  glorious  liberty  of  the  sons  of  God,  make  up  the 
loss  of  our  liberty  in  the  world ;  and  an  eternal  life,  our  natural 
life. 

Lastly,  It  is  below  the  honour  of  God  to  let  sinners  be  losers  at 
his  hand.  He  will  not  be  behind  with  his  creatures.  They  shall 
bare  good  measure,  pressed  down  and  running  over.  "But  now 
they  desire  a  better  country,  that  is,  an  heavenly ;  wherefore  God  is 
not  ashamed  to  be  called  their  God,  for  he  hath  prepared  for  them  a 
city. 

Use  1.  Of  information.  The  worldly  man  is  penny  wise  and 
pound  foolish.  "  He  strains  at  a  gnat  and  swallows  a  camel."  He 
will  be  loath  to  lose  a  sixpence,  but  he  can  let  a  talent  of  glory  slip 
through  his  fingers.  He  watcheth  a  little  gilded  earth,  lays  it  up 
securely,  holds  it  fast  in  his  hand,  nay,  in  his  heart ;  but  he  can  let 
a  crown,  a  kingdom,  a  heaven,  a  Christ  go.  Though  it  is  difficult 
to  beguile  him  in  other  things,  he  will  be  cheated  out  of  these  for  a 
trifle,  like  a  child.  Esau  was  a  cunning  man,  yet  he  was  as  easily 
cheated  of  the  blessing  as  if  he  had  been  a  fool  or  idiot. 

2.  In  a  time  of  giving  out  for  Christ,  they  are  not  the  greatest 
gainers  that  lose  nothing  for  him.  "Wlien  the  trial  is  over,  and 
every  one  counts  their  winning,  the  greatest  losers  will  be  found  the 
greatest  gainers.  The  greatest  outgiving  has  the  greatest  income, 
as  in  the  parable  of  the  talents.  Alas  !  what  is  the  winning  of 
others,  but  that  they  have  saved  the  shoe,  but  lost  the  foot ;  saved 
the  cabinet,  but  lost  the  jewel ;  saved  the  body,  but  lost  the  soul ; 
the  world  is  gained,  Christ  is  lost. 

Use  2.  Of  exhortation.  "  Buy  the  truth,  and  sell  it  not."  "Win 
Christ  at  any  rate,  lose  him  at  no  rate.  Remember  you  cannot 
make  too  dear  a  purchase  in  this  point.  There  are  three  cases  in 
which  I  would  have  you  to  walk  by  this  principle, 

1.  When  sin  comes  to  you,  like  Potiphar's  wife  to  Joseph,  and 
offers  you  deadly  poison  in  a  golden  dish.  Now  Christ  and  a  lust 
are  in  competition.  Now  here  is  a  goodly  price  offered  you  for  the 
Lord's  favour  and  countenance  ;  but  sell  it  not,  for  all  you  can 
make  by  it  will  not  clear  the  cost,  but  it  will  be  bitterness  in  the 
end.  Now  you  must  have  him  at  the  rate  of  plucking  out  a  right 
eye,  yet  buy  the  truth,  assure  yourself  it  is  cheap  enough  of  all. 

2.  When  sloth  comes  to  you,  as  Peter  to  Clirist,  covering  a  sharp 
sword  with  words  softer  than  oil,  saying,  "  Master,  spare  thyself," 
what  needs  all  this  trouble  about  religion  ?  What  needs  such 
bitter  repenting,  wrestling  in  prayer,  watching  over  heart  and  life  ? 


DULY  PRIZED.  181 

What  needs  this  exposing  yourself  for  a  sermon  ?  Now  sloth  and 
Christ  are  come  in  competition.  Here  is  a  goodly  price  for  Christ, 
a  sound  sleep  on  the  sinnei's  soft  bed,  a  way  strewed  with  roses, 
pleasant  carnal  company,  and  a  warm  fireside  ;  but  sell  it  not  so 
cheap :  all  that  is  not  worth  one  smile  of  his  face  :  nay,  of  one 
check  from  him.  Take  him,  though  at  the  rate  of  the  most  exqui- 
site diligence,  the  most  painful  exercise,  most  difiicult  and  grating 
to  the  flesh,  and  cheap  enough. 

3.  When  the  enemies  of  Christ  and  his  work  come  to  you,  as  the 
chief  priests  to  Judas,  offering  you  thirty  pieces  if  you  will  betray 
him  ;  and  when  you  are  jiut  to  loss  in  his  cause,  say,  like  Judas  to 
the  honest  woman  that  bestowed  a  box  of  ointment  on  Christ, 
"  What  needs  all  this  waste  ?"  Now  Christ  and  the  world  are  in 
competition.  Here  is  a  goodly  price  for  Christ.  You  may  keep 
what  you  have,  and  also  get  more  ;  you  shall  get  the  world's  smiles, 
if  you  will  venture  on  his  frowns.  Let  them  guide  God's  house  .is 
they  will,  and  you  shall  dwell  in  ceiled  houses.  Take  the  mark  of 
the  beast  in  your  foreheads,  or  in  your  hands,  and  you  shall  obtain 
leave  to  buy  and  sell.  But  sell  him  not.  The  world's  offer  is  not 
worth  the  hearing ;  it  is  but  dung  for  gold,  counters  for  pearls. 
But  in  such  a  case  you  cannot  have  him,  but  at  the  expense  of  the 
world's  counteuauce,  loss  of  means,  and  perhaps  liberty  and  life 
itself,  but  he  cannot  be  too  dear  bought. 

Motive.  You  will  get  all  in  Christ  that  you  are  seeking  to  win  in 
the  world,  and  more.  If  you  would  have  a  name,  you  shall  get  one, 
better  than  that  of  sons  and  daughters.  Would  you  have  honour? 
you  shall  have  it.  "  Him  that  honoureth  me,"  says  God,  "  I  will 
honour."  Would  you  have  gold  ?  you  shall  have  it.  The  very 
streets  of  heaven  are  paved  with  gold.     Amen. 


[Same  subject  continued.] 

SERMON  XIX. 

Philippians  iii  9, 

And  be  found  in  him. 

Here  is  another  thing  which  the  apostle  hath  in  his  eye,  namely,  to 
be  found  in  Christ.     This  suppostth  that  they  who  win  Christ  are 


182  CHUIST  JESUS 

in  him,  united  to  liim,  and  that  they  who  are  united  to  him  will  be 
found  in  him,  when  God  searcheth  for  them.  Having  before  handled 
the  doctrine  of  union  with  Christ,  I  shall  only  speak  to  this. 

Doctrine.  It  should  be  men's  great  care,  to  provide  that  when 
God  comes  to  search,  they  may  be  found  in  Christ.     Here  I  shall, 

I.  Shew  how,  or  when  God  comes  to  search,  and  the  saints  are 
found  in  Christ. 

II.  How  and  where  they  shall  be  found,  that  are  found  in  Christ. 

III.  Give  the  reasons  of  the  point,  and  then  subjoin  some  improve- 
ment.    I  am  then, 

I.  To  shew  how  or  when  God  comes  to  search,  and  the  saints  are 
found  in  Christ.  This  world  is  a  confused  heap,  and  many  times 
the  counterfeits  are  found  among  the  jewels,  undiscerned  ;  but  God 
hath  searching  times,  in  which  he  will  search  out  men.  "  I  will," 
says  he,  "search  Jerusalem  with  candles,  and  punish  the  men  that 
are  settled  in  their  lees,  that  say  in  their  heart,  The  Lord  will  not 
do  good,  neither  will  he  do  evil." 

1.  One  searching  time  is,  a  time  of  plain  searching,  preaching  of 
the  word.  The  word  is  God's  candle,  which  he  kindles  to  let  men 
see  through  their  state  and  condition.  "  The  word  of  God  is  quick 
and  powerful,  sharper  than  any  two-edged  sword,  piercing  even  to 
the  dividing  asunder  of  soul  and  spirit,  and  of  the  joints  and  mar- 
row, and  is  a  discerner  of  the  thoughts  and  intents  of  the  heart." 
God  carries  this  candle  through  the  man's  spirit,  and  searcheth  him 
thoroughly.  Thus  Paul  tells  us,  that  by  such  searching  preaching 
"  even  an  unbeliever,  or  unlearned  man,  is  convinced  of  all,  he  is 
judged  of  all ;  and  thus  are  the  secrets  of  his  heart  made  manifest ; 
and  so,  falling  on  his  face,  he  will  worship  God,  and  report  that 
God  is  in  you  of  a  truth."  Now  the  false  wares  of  the  hypocrite 
appear  naught,  the  mask  is  drawn  off  between  God  and  their  own 
consciences,  Malachi  iii.  1 — 3.  But  then  the  believer  is  found  in 
Christ,  for  the  word  is  never  an  enemy  to  the  grace  of  the  Spirit, 
"  for  he  that  doeth  truth,  cometh  to  the  light,  that  his  deeds  may  be 
made  manifest,  that  they  are  wrought  in  God." 

2.  A  time  of  temptation  is  a  searching  time.  This  is  a  sieve 
which  Satan  is  allowed  to  manage  for  the  discovery  of  the  true  grain. 
"  Satan,"  said  our  Lord,  to  Peter,  "  hath  desired  to  have  you,  that 
he  might  sift  you  as  wheat.  Sometimes  Satan  is,  as  it  were,  let 
loose,  and  temptations  abound,  iniquity  is  established  by  law,  and 
then  good  and  bad  are  put  to  the  trial.  Then  the  light  corn 
uud  chaff  appear,  being  driven  away  before  the  wind  ;  the  world 
begins  to  wonder  after  the  beast,  stars  fall.     Then  goes  the  earthly, 


Bn-Y  pmzET).  183 

carnal-minded  professor  to  the  earth  ;  the  heady,  unsettled,  light  pro- 
fessor, unstable  as  water,  falls  away  ;  the  proud,  conceited  professor 
appears  as  he  is,  like  a  tall  barren  tree.  But  then  saints  are  found 
in  Christ,  sealed  and  safe  ;  "  for  it  is  impossible  to  deceive  the  elect," 
Rev.  vii.  1 — 3. 

3.  A  season  of  the  church's  trouble,  and  of  persecution  for 
the  gospel,  is  a  searching  time.  A  true  friend  is  known  in  adversity. 
The  stony  ground  receives  the  word  and  holds  green,  till  the  sun  of 
persecution  arise,  and  then  it  withereth.  When  Christ  rides  in  tri- 
umph, many  cry,  Hosanna,  who  will  afterwards  cry,  Crucify  him. 
Many  run  after  Christ  in  a  day  of  peace,  that  will  run  as  fast  away 
from  him  in  a  day  of  trouble.  This  is  God's  sieve,  with  which  he 
searcheth.  They  are  brought  to  the  waters  of  suffering,  and  then 
bowers  down  go  away  back.  But  the  saints  are  now  found  in 
Christ,  so  that  when  "  Israel  is  sifted  as  corn,  not  the  least  grain 
falls  to  the  ground." 

4.  The  time  of  death  and  judgment :  this  is  the  main  thing,  though 
not  the  only  thing  aimed  at  in  the  text.  Possibly  some  may  escape 
all  the  former  searches,  but  none  can  escape  this.  Now  the  King 
indeed  comes  in  to  see  the  guests,  and  if  there  be  but  one  hypocrite, 
he  will  instantly  discover  him.  At  present  the  corn  and  chaff  are 
mixed,  but  then  he  will  thoroughly  purge  his  floor.  Now  foolish 
and  wise  virgins  cannot  easily  be  distinguished,  but  then  it  clearly 
appears  who  are  wise  and  who  are  foolish.  Now  goats  and  sheep 
intermingle,  but  then  they  shall  be  for  ever  separated.  Then  the 
saints  shall  be  found  in  Christ,  and  placed  on  his  right  hand.  We 
now  proceed, 

II.  To  shew  how  and  where  they  shall  be  found,  that  are  found 
in  Christ. 

1.  They  shall  be  found  in  him,  as  branches  in  the  true  vine,  John 
XV.  1 — 6.  Being  thus  in  him,  they  are  in  no  hazard  of  the  axe 
of  Grod's  wrath.  Barren  trees  may,  and  shall  be  cut  down  for  the 
fire ;  but  Christ  mystical  is  a  tree  which  the  axe  may  not,  yea, 
cannot  approach.  "  I  the  Lord  do  keep  it ;  I  will  water  it  every 
moment  lest  any  hurt  it;  I  will  keep  it  night  and  day."  The 
pruning-knife,  indeed,  may  come  to  it,  to  cut  off  the  twigs  of  cor- 
ruption;  but  this,  instead  of  injuring,  will  render  it  more  fruitful. 
They  are  in  no  hazard  of  the  wind,  blow  from  what  quarter  it  will. 
The  wind  of  temptation  and  trouble  may  indeed  shake,  but  cannot 
break  nor  remove  the  branches  that  are  in  Christ.  They  may  bo 
made  by  a  violent  blast  to  sweep  the  ground,  but  they  will  never  be 
broken  off. 

2.  They  shall  be  found   in  a  sanctuary,  in  a  place  of  refuge. 


184  rilRlST  .TKSUS 

"  The  Lord  shall  be  for  a  sanctuary  to  them."  They  have  fled  to 
him  for  refuge,  and  so  shall  find  shelter  in  the  worst  of  times. 
"  Come,  ray  people,"  says  he,  "  enter  thou  into  thy  chambers,  and 
shut  thy  doors  about  thee :  hide  thyself  as  it  were  for  a  little 
moment,  until  the  indignation  be  overpast."  "When  God  came  by  a 
,deluge  to  search  the  old  world,  he  found  them  all  eating  and  drink- 
ing; Noah  only  he  found  in  the  ark,  and  there  he  was  safe.  They 
who  are  in  Christ,  have  laid  hold  on  the  horns  of  the  altar:  law 
and  justice  cannot  drag  them  from  it.  They  are  within  the  city  of 
refuge,  where  one  drop  of  wrath  cannot  fall. 

3.  They  shall  be  found  under  a  covert,  and  in  a  hiding-place. 
The  man  Jesus  shall  be  to  them  as  an  hiding-place  from  the  wind, 
and  a  covert  from  the  tempest.  This  is  a  covert  of  blood,  the 
Mediator's  blood,  under  which  the  guilty  creature  may  sit  safply, 
and  abide  the  search  of  a  holy  God ;  for  he  sits  there,  clothed  with 
an  everlasting  righteousnes,  a  white  raiment,  in  which  omniscience 
can  see  no  spot.  When  God  searcheth  for  the  guilty  creature,  but 
finds  him  here,  "  then  he  is  gracious  to  him,  and  saith,  Deliver  him 
from  going  down  to  the  pit,  I  have  found  a  ransom."  There  is  blood 
sprinkled  on  the  door-post  where  this  man  is,  and  therefore  the  de- 
stroying angel  must  pass  by. 

4.  They  shall  be  found  in  the  covenant,  in  Christ's  chariot,  which 
is  a  safe  place.  Song  iii.  9, 10 ;  and  so  they  shall  be  treated  as  God's 
own  friends,  even  when  he  comes  to  render  vengeance  to  his  ene- 
mies, Isa.  xxvii.  4,  5.     "We  are  now, 

III.  To  give  the  reasons  of  the  point. 

1.  God  will  search  and  find  out  every  one  of  us,  be  where  we  will. 
"  The  King  will  come  in  to  see  the  guests."  We  may  sit  at  ease 
a  while,  but  we  must  lay  our  account  with  a  narrow  search  at  last, 
which  will  try  what  metal  we  are  of.  There  is  no  hiding  from 
God.  "  Can  any  hide  himself  in  secret  places  that  I  shall  not 
see  him  ?  saith  the  Lord :  Do  not  I  fill  heaven  and  earth  ?  saith  the 
Lord."  Men  may  deceive  themselves,  and  make  a  figure  in  their 
own  eyes,  when  they  are  naught  in  the  sight  of  the  Lord.  "  Ent 
God  is  not,  cannot  be  mocked."  The  world  may  be  deceived,  so  that 
one  limb  of  the  devil  may  hate  another,  because  he  is  so  like  a  saint. 
The  saints  may  be  deceived,  who  may  take  them  for  full  brethren, 
while  they  are  not  father's  children.  What  if  even  hypocrites  de- 
ceive the  devil  himself,  in  their  religious  fits,  .Tor.  xvii.  9,  10;  but 
God  will  find  us  out,  "  for  he  searcheth  the  reins  and  hearts,  and 
will  give  unto  every  one  according  to  his  works." 

2.  If  God  find  us,  in  this  search,  out  of  Christ,  we  are  undone. 
We  have  nothing  to  shelter  us,  he  will  draw  us  out  of  our  hiding- 


DULY  TRTZED.  185 

places  and  lurking  holes  ;  take  off  our  mask,  and  spue  us  out  of  liis 
mouth.  We  will  be  put  away  like  dross,  driven  as  the  chaif  before 
the  wind,  set  among  the  goats,  and  separated  for  ever  to  destruction. 
"  Neither  is  there  salvation  in  any  other  :  for  there  is  none  other 
name  given  under  heaven  among  men,  whereby  we  must  be  saved." 

3.  If  we  are  found  in  Christ,  we  will  be  safe  in  time  and  eternity, 
blow  the  storm  as  it  may.  Temptations  shall  not  totally  carry  us 
away,  but  we  shall  be  born  up  against  the  stream.  Troubles,  though 
they  get  over  our  heads,  yet  we  will  find  him  "  the  lifter  up  of  our 
heads,"  and  we  shall  get  safe  on  shore.  When  death  comes,  it  shall 
be  without  its  sting,  seeing  we  are  found  in  Christ;  and  at  the  day 
of  judgment  we  shall  be  right  hand  men,  because  in  him. 

Use.  Let  it  be  your  great  care  to  be  found  in  Christ.  Our  time 
is  like  to  be  a  searching  time  of  temptation  and  trouble ;  and 
though  it  should  not,  yet  death  and  judgment  are  abiding  us.  What 
should  we  do  to  be  carried  through?  Why,  if  you  be  found  in 
Christ,  as  Noah  in  the  ark.  Lot  in  Zoar ;  you  are  in  your  chambers, 
"no  evil  shall  befall  you,  nor  plague  come  near  your  dwelling."  Let 
not  the  searching  time  find  you  at  a  disadvantage  ;  all  those  will 
bo  found  so,  who  ara  in  such  a  time, 

1.  Found  in  an  unregenerate  state,  "  dead  in  trespasses  and  sins, 
and  without  Christ."  This  is  a  dangerous  and  soul-ruining  case  to 
meet  God  in.  God  will  find  these  men  as  Elijah  found  Ahab,  "  hast 
thou  found  me,  0  !  mine  enemy."-  Two  cannot  walk  together  except 
they  be  agreed;  yet  they  may  meet  together,  but  surely  there  will 
be  sad  work  when  they  meet.  Dreadful  will  the  meeting  be,  be- 
twixt God  and  his  enemies.  When  these  meet,  a  consuming  fire  and 
dry  stubble  meet;  a  judge  and  a  criminal.  The  Judge  will  say, 
"  those  mine  enemies,  which  would  not  that  I  should  reign  over  them, 
bring  hither,  and  slay  them  before  me." 

2.  Be  not  found  with  the  sluggard,  in  your  bed.  Be  not  secure, 
as  God  found  the  old  world.  It  is  like  that  God  will  set  fire  into  the 
nests  of  this  generation,  it  were  good  to  leave  them  in  time,  and 
shake  off  security;  "to  have  our  loins  girt,  and  lamps  burning." 
It  was  a  sad  case  with  Jonah,  when  he  was  drawn  out  of  a  sound 
sleep,  and  cast  into  a  raging  sea.  It  is  awful  to  feel  calamities,  ere 
we  fear  they  are  coming. 

3.  Be  not  found,  as  death  finds  the  wicked,  in  the  embraces  of 
your  lusts.  "  The  wicked  is  driven  away  in  his  wickedness."  The 
Philistines  found  Samson  just  risen  out  of  Delilah's  lap,  without  his 
hair.  The  soft  embraces  of  our  idols  do  but  make  way  for  severe 
strokes  from  the  hand  of  God.  It  is  difiicult  to  conceive  how  a  man 
may  just  make  but  a  skip  of  it  from  the  enjoyment  of  his  lusts  into 


186  CHRIST  JESUS 

Abraham's  bosom.  Nay,  rather,  God  will  take  these  filthy  gar- 
ments, cover  them  with  brimstone,  and  set  them  on  fire  about  men's 
ears. 

4.  Be  not  found,  like  Saul,  hid  among  the  stuff.  "  Lay  aside 
every  weight,  and  the  sin  that  doth  most  easily  beset  you."  The 
world  is  like  a  long  garment,  which  entangles  a  man,  and  unfits  him 
to  run  and  flee  from  the  wrath  to  come.  The  rich  man,  who  was 
thinking  of  nothing  but  full  barns,  and  goods  laid  up  for  many 
years,  was  in  a  sad  case  when  God  found  him  out.  Sit  loose,  then,  to 
the  world,  if  ever  you  would  meet  comfortably  with  God  in  the  way 
of  his  judgments,  here  or  hereafter. 

Lastly,  Be  not  found  in  the  devil's  camp,  among  ill  company.  "A 
companion  of  fools  shall  be  destroyed."  Lot's  sons-in-law  might 
have  escaped,  if  they  would  but  have  left  their  ill  company  in  Sodom, 
Gen.  xix.  14,  15.  Better  go  to  the  house  of  mourning,  than  to  the 
house  of  feasting;  the  house  of  trembling,  than  of  riot.  "Blessed 
is  the  man  that  walketh  not  in  the  counsel  of  the  ungodly,  nor 
standeth  in  the  way  of  sinners,  nor  sitt.eth  in  the  seat  of  the  scornful." 
Bnt  if  you  would  abide  the  search  here  or  hereafter,  then  be  found 
in  Christ. 

1.  Be  found  to  be  in  him,  united  to  him,  by  his  Spirit  and  by 
faith.  No  storm  can  blow  down  those  who  are  built  upon  this  rock  ; 
neither  will  Christ  lose  a  member  of  his  body,  in  time  or  eternity. 
Tie  is  the  true  ark  and  refuge,  "  none  perish  that  trust  in  him." 

2.  Be  found  walking  in  hira.  "  As  ye  have  therefore  received 
Christ  Jesus  the  Lord,  so  walk  ye  in  him."  Walking  with  him, 
before  hira,  after  his  example,  "  walking  even  as  he  also  walked." 
This  is  to  walk  iu  the  way  of  holiness,  "  without  which  no  man  shall 
see  the  Lord." 

Finally,  Be  found  living  in  hira,  and  upon  him.  Gal.  ii.  20.  Those 
that  live  in  and  by  themselves  will  wither,  when  the  trees  planted 
in  God's  house  will  be  flourishing. 

Motives,  to  urge  you  to  make  it  your  main  business  to  be  found 
in  Christ,  when  God  shall  search  for  you  in  time  and  eternity : — 

1.  If  you  be  found  in  Christ,  he  will  be  found  in  you,  so  shall  you 
have  a  double  security  in  a  time  of  trial ;  for  it  is  a  mutual  inbeing, 
John  xvii.  21 — 23.  He  will  be  found  in  believers,  as  in  his  own 
house  and  lodging.  Christ  hath  two  lodgings  :  one  in  heaven.  "He 
inhabiteth  eternity,  and  dwells  in  the  high  and  holy  place."  He 
hath  another  on  earth,  the  believer's  heart.  "  For  he  dwells  with 
him  also  that  is  of  a  contrite  and  humble  spirit."  Christ  hath 
bought  both,  and  he  made  a  journey  to  take  possession  of  the  house 
in  heaven  for  us,  Heb.  vi.  20;  and  it  is  our  own  house,  because  it  is 


DULY  PRIZED.  IB? 

his.  "  It  is  our  liouse,  which  is  from  heaven."  And  he  comes  to 
the  siuner's  heart,  to  take  possession  of  it  for  himself,  and  when 
they  open  to  him  by  faith,  he  comes  in  and  dwells,  llev.  iii.  20. 
This  will  be  a  grand  security.  A  man  will  always  take  care  of  his 
own  house,  especially  in  a  storm,  that  the  winds  do  not  unroof  it,  or 
the  rains  waste  it. 

Christ  will  be  found  in  you,  as  in  his  banqueting-house.  Tiie 
Pharisees  wondered  that  he  was  a  guest  to  sinners ;  and  the  world 
will  not  believe  it,  because  they  cannot  see  it.  God's  own  children 
often  say,  how  can  these  things  be  ?  Will  he  come  into  such  a  poor 
house  to  be  entertained,  where  there  is  little  or  nothing  with  which 
to  entertain  him  ?  They  do  not  consider  that  Christ  brings  the 
provision  with  him.  He  is  such  a  guest  as  Elijah  was  to  the  poor 
Avidow  in  a  time  of  dearth,  and  feasts  them  in  a  time  of  the  great- 
est trouble.  "  In  the  world,"  says  he,  *'  ye  shall  have  tribulation  ; 
but  be  of  good  cheer,  I  have  overcome  the  world ;  in  me  ye  shall 
have  peace." 

He  will  be  found  in  you,  in  his  fortified  house,  as  a  conqueror. 
The  first  thing  David  did,  after  he  received  the  kingdom,  was  to 
take  the  stronghold  of  Zion,  which  was  so  well  fortified  against 
him,  that  they  thought  the  blind  and  the  lame  could  hold  it  out, 
2  Sam.  V.  6,  7.  So  Christ,  being  anointed  king,  sets  himself  to 
recover  the  hearts  of  the  elect,  held  out  against  him  as  a  strong- 
hold, by  a  blind  understanding,  and  a  lame  and  crooked  will. 
"  But  he  pulls  down  the  strongholds,  and  casts  down  imaginations ;" 
and  having  brought  all  to  obedience,  he  comes  in  to  hold  it  for 
himself.  Now  here  is  another  security.  Will  he  quit  his  con- 
quest ?  No.  "  I  give  unto  them"  says  he,  "  eternal  life,  and  they 
shall  never  perish,  neither  shall  any  pluck  them  out  of  my  hand." 

4.  His  temple  house,  as  the  God  of  the  temple.  Believers 
are  his  temple  ;  as  the  King  of  Glory,  he  hath  come  in,  to  dwell  in 
their  souls  for  ever.  The  soul  that  was  a  chapel  for  the  devil,  be- 
comes the  temple  of  Christ.  There  are  sacrifices.  They  ofter  them- 
selves to  the  Lord  ;  their  graces  as  incense,  and  he  is  the  altar 
that  sanctifies  the  gift.  Another  security ;  they  shall  be  under 
special  protection.  "  His  eyes  and  his  heart  shall  be  on  them  per- 
petually." He  will  see  to  it,  that  the  temple  shall  not  be  polluted  ; 
and  though  it  should  be  laid  in  rubbish  in  a  grave,  it  shall  be  glori- 
ously rebuilt. 

5.  His  garden.  "  I  am  come,"  says  he,  "  into  my  garden,  my 
sister,  my  spouse."  They  are  a  garden  of  spices,  in  which  the  pre- 
cious plants  of  grace  grow.  This  is  another  security.  "  He  will 
water  it  every  moment,"  hedge  it  about  and  preserve  them,  as  a 

Vol.  IV.  N 


188  CHRIST  JESUS 

man  doth  his  garden,  while  his  other  fields  are  exposed,  Jer.  xvii. 
5,6. 

6.  As  a  child  in  the  mother's  womb.  "  My  little  children,"  says 
Paul,  "  of  whom  I  travail,  as  in  birth  again,  until  Christ  be  formed 
in  you."  "  Christ  is  in  them  the  hope  of  glory."  This  is  another 
security.  The  mother  cannot  be  executed  in  law,  while  she  is  with 
child,  for  that  would  be  the  death  of  two,  whereas  her  life  only  is 
exposed. 

Lastly,  As  the  soul  is  in  the  body,  Christ  is  their  yery  life  ;  he 
lives  in  them,  Col.  iii.  4 ;  Gal.  ii.  20  ;  Acts  ii.  25 — 27. 

Motive  2.  If  you  be  not  found  in  Christ,  you  will  be  found  in  a 
bad  case  in  time  and  eternity  ;  in  a  trying  time  in  this  life,  and  in 
another  world.  You  will  be  found  as  under  the  curse  :  laid  open  to 
the  wrath  of  God,  as  the  chaff  to  be  driven  away  with  the  wind. 


[Same  subject  continued.] 

SERMON  XX. 

Philippians,  iii.  9, 

Not  having  mine  own  riphteousness,  which  is  of  the  law,  but  that  which 
w?  through  the  faith  of  Christ  ;  the  righteousness  which  is  of  God,  hy 
faith. 

In"  these  words,  the  apostle  describes  the  righteousness  in  which 
he  desires  to  be  found  and  to  compear  before  God,  and  this  is  the 
righteousness  of  Christ.  It  is  not  our  own,  for  to  our  own  he  op- 
poseth  it.  It  is  not  our  faith.  Tor  it  is  through  and  by  faith.  But 
it  is  the  righteousness  of  Christ,  through  the  faith  that  hath  him  for 
its  object.     The  righteousness  received  by  faith. 

DocTiUNB.  Christ's  righteousness,  received  by  faith,  is  the  sinner's 
only  security  to  be  depended  upon  before  God.  It  is  the  sinner's 
only  shield,  shelter  and  defence,  from  the  wrath  of  God.  Here  I 
shall, 

I.  Shew  what  is  meant  by  Christ's  righteousness. 

II.  How  it  is  received  by  faith. 

III.  Confirm  the  doctrine.     I  am, 

I.  To  shew  what  is  meant  by  Christ's  righteousness,  which  is  the 


DULY  PRIZED.  189 

sinner's  only  shield.  Righteousness  is  the  result  of  obedience  to 
the  law.  He  who  satisfies  the  law  is  righteous,  and  this  shelters 
from  wratli.  The  great  thing  that  stands  between  Grod  and  a  sinner 
is  a  broken  law  ;  and  while  God  is,  it  will  be  an  effectual  bar  to 
keep  sinners  out  of  heaven,  to  which  the  sinner  can  never  come  but 
with  the  good  leave  of  the  holy  law,  it  being  once  satisfied.  For 
this  cause,  seeing  sinners  could  not  satisfy  the  law  for  themselves, 
Christ  undertook  to  do  it  for  them.  Accordingly,  he  fulfilled  it,  and 
by  his  fulfilling  it,  comes  this  righteousness  which  is  the  be- 
liever's security.     Now  Christ  fulfilled  the  law  in  our  room, 

1.  By  his  active  obedience  to  its  commands  ;  perfect  obedience  to 
all  the  commands.  This  no  mere  man  since  the  fall  could  do,  yet  it 
is  that  without  which  no  man  can  be  saved.  It  is  a  debt  which 
must  be  paid  for  every  one,  either  by  themselves,  or  by  their  surety. 
The  law  saith  to  all  the  children  of  men,  "  If  thou  wilt  enter  into 
life,  keep  the  commandments;"  that  is,  keep  them  perfectly.  Alas! 
then,  must  all  perish  ?  No.  Christ  answered  for  his  own.  "What 
they  could  not  do,  he  did.  Now  the  law's  demands  of  the  sinner  were 
very  high. 

Demand  1.  Thy  nature  must  be  absolutely  pure  and  spotless  :  for 
if  the  fountain  be  poisoned,  how  can  the  streams  be  wholesome. 
•'  Who  can  bring  a  clean  thing  out  of  an  unclean  ?  not  one."  Alas  ! 
the  sinner  can  never  answer  this.  He  hath  a  corrupted  nature,  and 
he  cannot  purify  it.  "  Who  can  say  I  have  made  my  heart  clear, 
I  am  pure  from  my  sin."  He  was  born  in  sin ;  he  cannot  get  into 
his  mother's  belly,  and  be  born  over  again  without  sin.  "Well, 
Christ  satisfies  this  demand  for  his  people,  the  law  shall  have  all  its 
asking;  therefore  the  Son  of  God  takes  to  himself  a  true  body  and 
a  soul,  both  sinless.  The  ancient  of  days  becomes  an  infant  of  days  ; 
he  is  conceived  without  spot,  by  the  power  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  and 
in  due  time  born  without  sin.  For  as  he  was  in  his  life,  so  was  he 
in  his  birth,  "  holy,  harmless,  undefiled,  and  separated  from  sinners." 
His  nature  was  not  in  the  least  tainted,  but  absolutely  free  of  the 
least  seed  of  sin.  Here  is  now  such  a  birth,  such  a  nature  as  the 
law  sought,  so  that  demand  is  answered,  that  bar  in  the  sinner's  way 
is  taken  out ;  but  the  law  has  other  demands. 

Demand  2.  Thou  must  give  obedience  to  every  command.  Thy 
obedience  must  be  as  broad  as  the  law.  One  hair's  breadth  lacking, 
thou  shalt  never  see  heaven.  "  Cursed  is  every  one  that  continueth 
not  in  all  things  which  are  written  in  the  book  of  the  law,  to  do 
them."  Alas  !  what  shall  the  sinner  do  with  this  ;  there  are  many 
of  these  commands  which  he  doth  not  know,  how  shall  he  obey  them. 
Many  quite  against  his  nature,  as    "  love  your  enemies."     Many 

N  2 


190  CHRIST  JEsrs 

tliat,  were  his  life  a  tlionsand  times  lying  on  them,  and  he  would  set 
himself  to  the  utmost  watchfulness,  he  will  often  break  ;  such  as 
vain  thoughts,  and  impure  desires. 

Christ  hath  answered  this  demand.  "  He  fulfilled  all  righteous- 
ness." *'  He  did  no  sin,  neither  was  guile  found  in  his  mouth."  He 
made  the  law,  he  could  not  then  but  know  every  part  of  it;  and  he 
fulfilled  it  in  every  iota.  He  gave  external  and  internal  obedience  ; 
obedience  in  heart  and  life.  Its  hardest  commands  he  opposed  not ; 
loved  his  enemies  and  denied  himself;  not  a  vain  word  ever  dropt 
from  his  mouth,  nor  a  vain  thought  ever  entered  his  heart. 

Demand  3.  Every  part  of  thy  obedience  must  be  raised  up  to  the 
highest  degree  and  pitch  the  law  requires.  "  Thou  shalt  love  the 
Lord  thy  God,  with  all  thy  heart,  and  with  all  thy  soul,  and  with 
all  thy  mind."  It  is  not  enough  that  thou  be  sincere,  and  desire  to 
do  better,  and  be  sorry  thou  canst  not.  Alas  !  the  sinner  can  never 
answer  this,  he  shall  as  soon  reach  the  clouds.  Let  him  do  his  best, 
corruption  holds  him  down,  so  as  he  can  never  reach  the  top.  If  he 
be  praying  ever  so  fervently,  there  is  always  some  coldrifeness  in 
the  heart.     In  his  purest  intentions,  self-will  insinuates  itself. 

Christ  answered  this  demand.  His  loA^e  to  his  Father  was  more 
than  seraphic.  It  was  most  ardent  love.  His  love  to  men  was 
incomparable,  and  went  to  the  utmost  bound  of  love.  "  For  greater 
love  hath  no  man  than  this,  that  a  man  lay  down  his  life  for  his 
friends ;  but  he  laid  down  his  life  for  his  enemies."  Every  one  of 
his  actions  was  absolutely  spotless  and  perfectly  refined,  without  the 
least  mixture  of  imperfection. 

Demand  4.  All  this  must  be  continued  to  the  end,  without  the 
least  failure  in  one  iota,  Gal.  iii.  10.  If  thou  shouldest  all  thy  days 
live  sinless,  and  at  the  hour  of  death  a  vain  thought  run  through  thy 
miud,  all  is  gone.  Alas  !  how  impossible  is  this  I  The  sinner  can- 
not keep  perfectly  right  one  year,  day,  hour,  minute,  if  a  thousand 
hells  were  in  it. 

But  Christ  satisfied  this  demand.  "He  became  obedient  unto 
death,  even  the  death  of  the  cross."  The  first  Adam  made  a  fair 
outset,  but  he  soon  halted.  The  second  continued  to  the  end.  The 
law  could  never  catch  him  in  the  least  sin  from  his  cradle  to  his 
grave,  by  day  or  night,  alone  or  in  company.  His  heart  and  life 
shone  in  holiness  in  its  meridian  brightness,  without  the  least  cloud 
or  spot,  while  his  day  lasted.  So  all  these  bars  are  removed  by  his 
active  obedience.     He  fulfilled  the  law  also, 

2.  By  his  passive  obedience.  When  all  these  demands  are  an- 
swered, the  law  has  another  word  with  the  sinner,  ere  he  can  enter 
within  the  gates  of  the  city,  and  that  is,  taking  sure  hold  of  him,  it 


DULY  PRIZED.  191 

says,  "  Pay  what  thou  owest."  Thou  art  in  debt  to  the  justice  of 
God,  for  the  sius  already  committed.  Thou  must  satisfy  the  threat- 
enings  of  the  law,  and  bear  the  curse  and  vengeance  thyself,  or  find 
a  surety.  0 !  then,  "  will  the  Lord  be  pleased  with  thousands  of 
rams,  or  with  teu  thousands  of  rivers  of  oil  ?  Shall  I  give  my  first- 
born for  ray  transgression,  the  fruit  of  my  body  for  the  sin  of  my 
soul  ?"  No.  These  are  all  too  mean  to  satisfy  here.  But,  0  !  ye 
crowned  heads,  and  mighty  monarchs  of  the  world,  may  not  you  be 
cautioners  for  the  debt?  No,  they  canuot,  if  they  would  sell  their 
crowns,  kingdoms,  and  dig  up  all  the  gold  in  the  world,  and  lay  it 
down,  it  would  not  pay  their  owu  debt;  but  they  themselves  must 
have  a  cautioner,  or  they  are  ruiued.  0  ye  mighty  angels  !  may 
not  you  rather  undertake  for  this  debt,  than  that  your  fellow-crea- 
tures should  perish  ?  They  cannot.  They  are  not  able.  They 
would  be  bankrupt  with  the  payment  of  the  thousandth  part,  and 
ruined  for  ever;  and  it  would  never  be  paid  for  them.  0  high 
demands  indeed !  that  no  creature  in  heaven  or  earth  can  answer. 
Then  said  the  Mediator,  "  Lo,  I  come,"  Psal.  xl.  7-  What  are  thy 
demands  ? 

Demand  1.  Sinner,  thou  must  suffer,  thou  must  die  the  death,  for 
the  word  is  gone  out  of  the  Lord's  mouth,  "  in  the  day  thou  eatest 
thereof  thou  shalt  surely  die."  Alas  !  how  shall  this  be  answered? 
For  if  the  sinner's  life  go  for  it,  what  hath  he  more  ?  And  if  death 
once  get  him  down,  it  will  hold  him  down  for  ever.  0  !  may  not 
bearing  crosses  do  it?  No,  the  law  must  be  satisfied  with  bearing 
curses,  not  crosses.  0  I  may  not  tears  for  sin,  bitter  mourning,  do 
it  ?  No,  it  is  shedding  of  blood,  not  pouring  out  of  water,  that  the 
law  must  have.  Without  this,  no  remission  of  sin.  But  Christ 
satisfies  this  demand.  It  shall  have  all  its  asking.  He  puts  him- 
self to  the  sword  of  justice.  Armed  death  falls  upon  him,  sheds  his 
precious  blood,  wounds  him  to  the  heart,  separates  soul  and  body, 
carries  him  away  prisoner  to  the  grave,  and  he  is  laid  in  the  dust  of 
death.  Death  gave  him  the  first  fall,  but  because  he  was  God,  he 
riseth  again ;  and  death  having  got  his  due,  he  brings  away  the 
keys  of  hell  and  death  with  him,  that  never  one  of  his  may  b« 
prisoner  there. 

Demand  2.  Thy  suflFerings  must  be  universal  in  the  whole  man, 
for  so  hath  thy  sinning  been.  That  body  of  thine,  the  instrument 
of  sin,  must  suffer.  That  head,  that  hath  contrived  so  much  mis- 
chief, must  be  wounded;  that  heart,  that  has  been  the  spring  of  all, 
must  be  pierced ;  these  feet,  which  have  carried  thee  so  often  to  sin, 
and  these  hands,  that  have  wrought  so  much  ini(inity,  must  also  be 
pierced.     And  that  suul  of  thiue  must  also  sullVr  priucipaliy,  us 


192  CHRIST  JESUS 

being  the  chief  actor  of  all  thou  hast  doue  against  God.  Ah  !  how 
shall  we  bear  it?  Who  can  endure  this,  which  is  a  thousand  deaths 
in  one  ?  Christ  satisfies  this  demand  also.  lie  suffers  in  his  body. 
His  head  was  crowned  and  pierced  with  thorns.  "Ilis  heart  was 
melted  like  wax  in  the  midst  of  his  bowels."  "  Uis  feet  and  hands 
•were  pierced."  "  His  tongue  did  cleave  to  his  jaws."  "His  bones 
were  all  out  of  joint."  His  body  had  nothing  to  cover  it  but  shame, 
and  his  strength  was  dried  up  like  a  potsherd.  The  wrath  of  God 
fell  on  his  soul.  It  was  troubled,  sore  amazed,  and  agonized.  The 
arrows  dipped  in  the  curse  were  shot  against  it,  till  the  law  had  no 
more  to  require. 

Demand  3.  Thy  sufferings  must  be  most  exquisite ;  thou  shalt 
have  no  pity,  no  sparing,  but  judgment  without  mercy,  Deut.  xxix. 
20.  Ah  !  who  can  satisfy  this  ?  "  "Who  can  dwell  with  devouring 
fire  ?"  "  It  is  a  fearful  thing  to  fall  into  the  hands  of  the  living 
God."  Christ  satisfies  this  too.  "  God  spares  him  not,  but  delivers 
him  up  to  the  death  for  us  all."  Though  his  body  was  of  a  most 
refined  temperature,  and  so  his  senses  most  exquisite,  his  death  was 
of  the  most  tormenting  kind.  His  eyes  were  denied  the  light  of  the 
sun,  his  ears  heard  their  cruel  mockings,  and  he  got  vinegar  to  drink. 
He  was  in  travailing  pangs,  and  soul  travail.  No  help  had  he  in  it. 
Men  nor  angels  did  not  help  him,  and  he  died  in  it. 

Demand.  4.  Thy  sufferings  must  be  infinite,  for  it  is  infinite  justice 
that  thou  hast  offended.  Ah  !  who  can  bear  this  ?  This  is  killing  ; 
saddest  of  all,  a  thousand  times.  Universal,  exquisite  ;  yet  infinite, 
ever  to  endure,  never  to  end.  "  Who  can  abide  with  everlasting 
burnings  ?"  This  is  the  hell  of  hells,  and  beyond  the  reach  of  a 
creature,  a  finite  being.  But  Christ  answers  this  too.  He  is  God, 
therefore  an  infinite  one  ;  so  his  suff'erings,  though  not  infinite  in 
duration,  yet  infinite  in  value,  fully  answering  the  demands  of  the 

law. 

Last  Demand.  Thy  sufferings  must  be  voluntary,  for  God  hates 
robbery  for  burnt-offering.  If  thou  murmur  in  the  least,  under  all 
thy  sufferings,  it  is  new  sin  ;  a  blemish  in  the  sacrifice,  which  pre- 
vents its  acceptance.  Ah  !  who  can  do  this  ?  The  weight  of  wrath 
makes  the  devils  and  the  damned  roar  against  God.  A  man  can 
scarcely  bear  a  fit  of  the  gout  or  gravel,  or  even  a  sharp  pain  of  any 
kind  but  with  some  impatience.  But  Christ  satisfies  this  too. 
"When  he  was  oppressed  and  afflicted,  he  opened  not  his  mouth." 
In  all  his  sufferings,  he  never  had  the  least  wrong  thought  of  God 
rising  in  his  heart,  Psal.  xxii.  1 — 3.  Never  the  least  murmuring 
or  fretting.  He  willingly  underwent  what  he  was  to  suffer.  He  did 
not  flee  when  his  hour  came.     He  prayed  for  his  enemies,  his  mur- 


DULY  PKIZEB.  193 

derors,  iu  the  very  extremity  of  his  sufferings,  in  a  meek  and  loving 
manner,  saying,  "  Father,  forgive  them,  for  they  know  not  what 
they  do."     Let  us, 

II.  Shew  how  this  righteousness  is  received  by  faith.  It  is  re- 
ceived and  becomes  ours  by  faith,  as  faith  unites  us  to  Christ. 
Upon  this  union,  follows  a  communion  with  Christ  in  his  righteous- 
uess ;  so  Christ  being  ours  by  faith,  his  righteousness  is  ours.  The 
soul,  by  faith,  marries  with. Christ,  and  the  righteousness  is  its  dowry. 
The  soul  riies  to  Christ  as  the  city  of  refuge,  and  that  righteousness 
is  their  cover.     We  now  proceed, 

III.  To  confirm  the  doctrine. 

1.  That  only  can  shelter  us  trom  the  wrath  of  God  which  satis- 
fies his  law.  Now  this  righteousness  is  the  only  thing  which  can 
satisfy  his  law,  and  it  has  done  it  fully.  The  law  is  magnified  more 
by  his  obedience  and  sufferings  than  if  all  the  elect  had  gone  to  hell 
for  it.  The  law  being  obeyed,  and  executed  upon  Christ,  is  more 
magnified  than  it  could  have  been  by  them,  and  that  because  of  the 
dignity  of  the  person.  Even  as  a  king  shews  a  greater  respect  to 
the  law,  by  executing  it  on  his  own  son,  than  upon  a  thousand  com- 
mon malefactors.  They  would  have  been  ever  satisfying,  but  never 
could  have  fully  satisfied.  By  Christ  it  gets  both  active  and  passive 
obedience,  by  them  only  passive. 

2.  It  is  the  righteousness  of  God.  It  is  so  called,  because  it  is  the 
righteousness  of  him  who  is  God,  Jer.  xxiii.  6  ;  therefore  it  is  called, 
gold  tried  in  the  fire.  Our  gold  is  become  dross,  it  will  not  abide 
the  touchstone  of  the  law,  because  imperfect,  but  Christ's  righteous- 
ness will.  Ours  will  not  abide  the  fire  of  tlie  judgment  of  the  God 
of  truth.  Our  obedience  is  not  full  measure,  and,  being  weighed  iu 
the  balance  of  the  sanctuary,  it  will  be  found  light. 

It  is  the  only  righteousness  accepted  of  God.  "  In  whom,"  says 
he,  "  I  am  well  pleased."  It  may  be  safely  depended  upon,  for  it  is 
of  infinite  value.  "  Christ  purchased  the  church  with  his  own  blood." 
It  was  the  divine  nature  of  Christ  that  made  all  his  obedience  so 
efficacious  for  the  benefit  of  his  people.  What  sins  will  not  the 
blood  of  the  Son  of  God  purge  away?  "It  cleanseth  from  all 
sin." 

3.  It  is  the  righteousness  contrived  by  the  only  wise  God  to  save 
sinners,  when  nothing  else  could  do  it,  Psal.  xl.  6,  7.  When  there 
was  no  help  among  angels  or  men  for  them,  he  laid  help  on  the 
Mediator,  as  one  mighty  to  save.  This  was  a  contrivance  becoming 
an  infinite  God.  The  mercy  of  God  shines  forth  iu  it,  finding  au 
object  iu  the  deepest  misery.  To  have  given  a  deliverance  from 
wrath,  after  millions  of  years,  would  have  been  great  mercy ;  but 


194  CllKIST  JESUS,   &0. 

here  is  mercy,  bringing  tlie  sinner  from  the  lowest  abyss  of  misery 
unto  the  highest  pitch  of  happiness.  Here,  also,  the  justice  of  God 
shone  gloriously.  In  the  deluge,  and  the  burning  of  Sodom,  it  ap- 
peared, but  more  here.  It  got  all  its  demands.  What  are  all 
creatures,  to  the  Son  of  God  suffering?  The  love  of  God  was  dis- 
played. "  God  so  loved  the  world,  that  he  gave  his  only  begotten 
Son."  The  Son  willingly  gave  himself.  Here  is  love,  wonderful 
indeed  in  all  its  dimensions.  Behold  also  the  wisdom  of  God.  The 
confused  mass  at  the  beginning  was  not  comparable  to  the  confusion 
at  the  fall.  But  truth  met  with  mercy.  Out  of  the  sin  that  obscured 
the  glory  of  God,  is  brought  the  greatest  honour.  The  matter  is  so 
ordered,  that  man  stands  more  firmly  than  under  the  first  covenant. 
When  the  angels  stood  astonished,  hell  rejoiced  at  the  fall.  Man 
lay  grovelling  in  the  dust  of  misery,  wisdom  found  out  a  way  for 
restoring  them  to  happiness. 

Use  1.  Never  entertain  low  thoughts  of  sin.  It  is  the  worst  of 
evils,  which  could  not  be  remedied,  but  by  the  suff'erings  of  Christ. 
It  brings  a  heavy  burden  on  a  sinner  that  bears  his  own  burdens. 
Behold  it  in  the  glass  of  Christ's  suff'erings,  and  you  will  think  none 
of  it  little.  Sin  runs  counter  to  the  nature  of  God,  and  dishonours 
all  his  attributes.  God  is  the  chief  good,  sin  the  worst  evil.  The 
sinner  dares  God's  justice,  presumes  on  his  mercy,  mocks  his  patience, 
challengeth  his  power,  despiseth  his  love,  and  invades  his  sove- 
reignity. So  Christ  behoved  to  suflfer  the  most  extreme  punishment, 
to  honour  his  justice  and  glorify  all  his  perfections. 

Sin  contradicts  his  will.  The  foolish  contradicts  the  laws  of  in- 
finite wisdom,  casts  oft'  God's  laws  and  make  its  own  lusts  laws,  and, 
therefore,  to  blot  out  this  dishonour,  the  Son  is  made  a  sacrifice. 

When  God  had  perfected  the  frame  of  the  world,  and  it  remained 
only  that  he  should  have  his  tribute  of  glory  paid  to  him  out  of  it, 
sin  gave  a  rude  shock  to  the  whole  work,  shook  the  whole  frame; 
therefore  was  there  such  dreadful  work  to  repair  it,  the  Mediator 
sufi"ering,  rocks  rending,  the  sun  not  shining,  &c. 

Use  2.  Never  entertain  low  thoughts  of  pardon.  Every  pardon 
is  the  price  of  blood,  more  precious  than  a  thousand  worlds.  Pardon- 
ing sin  is  one  of  the  greatest  letters  of  God's  name,  one  of  the  great- 
est of  his  works,  greater  than  to  make  a  world.  When  God  said,  let 
such  a  thing  be,  it  was.  But  when  sin  is  to  be  pardoned,  justice 
stands  up  for  satisfaction;  the  truth  of  God  for  the  honour  of  a 
broken  law.  Wisdom  is  set  to  work  to  find  out  a  way,  the  Son  pays 
down  the  price  of  his  blood.  Num.  xiv.  17 — 19. 

Use  3.  Come  to  Christ  for  shelter  under  his  righteousness,  that 
you  may  be  justified,  pardoned,  and  accepted.     Consider  there  is  no 


man's  ixiquities,  &c.  195 

other  way  but  this  to  the  divine  favour,  no  shelter  from  the  sting  of 
unpardoned  guilt  but  here.     All  other  will  be  but  fig-leaf  covers. 

Is  not  pardon  of  sin,  and  acceptance  with  God,  worth  the  seeking  ? 
It  makes  a  man  happy,  Psal.  xxxii.  1.  A  man  may  be  rich  and  yet 
reprobate,  great  in  this  world  and  yet  damned  in  the  next.  His 
portion  fat,  yet  his  soul  lean.  But  a  justified  man  is  a  happy  man. 
Worldly  things  come  from  God's  hand,  but  this  great  blessing  from 
his  heart.  It  will  be  sweet  sauce  to  the  bitterest  dish;  it  will  cause 
you  to  glory  even  in  tribulation.  The  righteousness  of  Christ  jus- 
tifies a  man,  and  this  makes  every  bitter  water  sweet.  "For  there 
is  no  condemnation  to  them  that  are  in  Christ  Jesus.  It  is  God  that 
jnstifieth,  who  is  he  that  condemneth  ?" 

And  if  you  would  give  evidence  of  your  interest  in  imputed  i  iglitc- 
ousness,  you  must  do  it  by  inherent  righteousness.  Show  yuui-  I'aith 
by  your  Avorks.     Faith  without  works  is  dead,  being  alone.     Amen. 


MAN'S  INIQUITIES  TESTIFYING  AGAINST  HIM. 

SERMON  XXI. 

Jeremiah  xiv.  7 

0  Lord,  though  our  iniquities  testify  cujainst  us,  do  thou  it  for  thi/ 
name's  sake  ;  for  our  backslidings  are  many  ;  we  have  sinned  against 
thee. 

In  the  preceding  part  of  the  chapter,  there  is  mournful  narration  of 
a  sad  state  in  which  the  land  was,  by  reason  of  a  famine.  National 
sins  bring  on  national  judgments.  In  the  words  of  the  text,  the 
prophet  prays  for  the  removal  of  the  judgment.  In  the  text  wo 
have  four  things. 

1.  A  concession.  "Though  our  iniquities  testify  against  us." 
He  grants  that  their  iniquities,  which  brought  on  the  judgment  and 
kept  it  on,  did  testify  against  them  ;  or,  as  the  Hebrew,  answered 
against  them.  "We  have  the  same  phrase,  Isaiah  iii.  9,  and  lix.  12.  It 
is  a  metaphor  taken  from  judicatories,  in  which  witnesses  beino-  in  a 
process,  and  questions  being  put  to  them,  they  answer,  and  testifV 
against  the  guilty.  Sin,  as  the  devil,  first  tempts,  then  accusetli. 
When  they  came  to  make  their  address  to  God,  they  found  their 
sins  at  their  right,  witnessing  against  them. 


196  man's  iniquities 

2.  A  petitiou.  "  Do  thou  it."  Take  pity  upon  us,  and  relieve  us; 
arise  for  our  help  and  our  relief.  They  do  not  condescend  upon  tlie 
particular  thing  which  they  would  have  him  to  do  for  their  relief. 
He  knew  many  ways  to  bring  it  about ;  the  prophet,  therefore,  would 
limit  him  to  no  particular  way,  for  beggars  should  not  be  choosers, 
and  sovereguty  must  be  allowed  a  latitude. 

3.  We  have  their  plea  for  mercy.  "  For  thy  name's  sake."  By 
this  they  acknowledge  the  truth  of  the  testimony  given  in  against 
them  by  their  sins,  and  justify  God  in  his  proceeding  against  them. 
They  acknowledge  their  own  unworthiness  of  his  favour.  By  the 
name  of  God,  is  understood  God  himself.  "  The  name  of  the  Lord  is  a 
strong  tower;  the  righteous  runneth  into  it,  and  is  safe."  "  I,  even 
I,  am  he  that  blotteth  out  thy  transgression  for  mine  own  sake,  and 
will  not  remember  thy  sins."  "  Help  us,"  says  the  Psalmist,  "  0 
God  of  our  salvation,  for  the  glory  of  thy  name  ;  and  deliver  us  and 
purge  away  our  sins,  for  thy  name's  sake."  These  last  words,  you 
see,  superadds  this,  namely,  as  he  hath  manifested  himself  to  his 
people.  The  phrase  seems  to  include  a  respect  to  a  final  cause,  and 
that  with  respect  to  his  attributes,  Exod.  xxxiv.  5 — 7,  and  so  they 
plead  for  the  manifestation  of  his  own  glory,  the  glory  of  his  grace 
and  mercy,  that  he  would  do  it  for  them.  Joshua  pleads  thus,  when 
their  enemies  were  like  to  overcome  them,  "  And  what  wilt  thou  do 
unto  thy  great  name  ?"  And  this  is  the  advantage  of  the  people  of 
God,  that  his  glory  is  joined  with  their  interests ;  and  particularly 
as  to  the  judgment  of  famine.  See  Ezekiel  xxxvi.  30,  compared 
with  ver.  32,  where  it  appears  that  the  glory  of  God  suffered  through 
their  reproach.  There  is  in  this  plea,  also,  a  respect  to  a  meri- 
torious cause,  which  is  none  else  but  Messiah,  Christ ;  of  whom  the 
Lord  says  his  name  is  in  him,  Exod.  xxiii.  21,  and  in  whom  his 
glory  shines,  2  Cor.  iv.  6.  We  must  not  think  the  prophet  here 
addresseth  himself  to  God,  absolutely  considered  ;  for  his  majesty 
would  dazzle  and  confound  the  eyes  of  the  holiest  on  earth  ;  but, 
even  under  the  Old  Testament,  they  directed  their  prayers  towards 
the  temple  as  a  type  of  Christ,  Psal.  v.  7 ;  and  they  very  well  knew 
that  the  glory  of  his  name,  which  they  urged  in  prayer,  behoved  to 
shine  through  the  Messiah. 

4.  A  confession.  The  prophet  confesseth,  in  the  name  of  the 
church,  backsliding ;  a  grievous  sin,  a  returning  to  sin  after  vows, 
engagements,  and  resolutions  against  it;  and  after  beginnings  of 
a  reformation.  Yea,  that  these  backslidiugs  were  many.  They 
had  often  gone  back  in  many  points;  and,  adds  he,  "  have  sin- 
ned against  thee,"  where  the  emphai.is  lies  on  the  word  thee.  As 
when  David  says,  "  against  thee ;   thee  only,  have  I  sinned."     They 


TESTIFYING  AGAINST  lU.M.  197 

had  lifted  up  themselves  against  the  sovereign  Lord  of  heaven  ; 
even  against  thee,  to  whom  we  must  now  come  for  lielp  in  our  afflic- 
tion. It  comes  in  as  a  reason,  "  for  we  have  sinned  against  thee  ;" 
intimating  that  they  had  no  hope  but  in  his  name  ;  and  if  that 
would  not  do,  their  case  was  desperate.  But  withal,  it  lays  out  be- 
fore the  Lord  their  deep  sinfulness,  as  that  whereby  his  name 
might  be  rendered  illustrious,  in  coming  over  all  their  many  back- 
slidings. 

Doctrine.  That  though  the  iniquities  of  the  people  of  God,  when 
they  are  awakened,  do  testify  against  them ;  yet  it  is  their  duty 
and  disposition  to  hold  on  in  their  suit,  pleading  with  him  for  a 
gracious  answer  for  his  own  nanie's  sake.     Or, 

Though  the  people  of  God  find  their  iniquities  testify  ntr^iinst 
them  in  their  addresses  to  God  ;  yet  they  must  and  will  hold  on 
their  suit,  improving  God's  own  name's  sake  as  their  only  plea  for 
a  favourable  answer.     Here  I  shall, 

I.  Shew  what  it  is  for  a  man  to  find  his  iniquities  testify  against 
him  in  his  addresses  to  God. 

II.  How  comes  it  that  sin  is  found  thus  testifying  against  men. 
in.  I  will  speak  a  little  to  the  plea,  "  For  thy  name's  sake." 

"We  are  then, 

I.  To  shew  what  it  is  for  a  man  to  find  his  iniquities  testify  against 
him  in  his  addresses  to  God.     Take  these  reflections  upon  it : — 

1.  Sin  is  not  dead  when  it  is  committed.  Though  it  may  be 
buried  and  out  of  mind  for  a  time,  yet  it  is  buried  quick,  and  lives 
to  be  a  witness  before  the  Lord,  against  the  sinner.  The  act  is 
transient,  but  the  guilt  is  of  a  permanent  nature.  "  If  thou  doest 
not  well,"  said  God  to  Cain,  "  sin  lieth  at  the  door."  Lieth  as  a 
sleeping  mastiff  at  the  door,  which  will,  ere  long,  awaken.  "  I  will 
reprove  thee,"  says  God  to  the  sinner,  "and  set  them,  (thy  sins,)  in 
order  before  thine  eyes." 

2.  When  the  man  draws  near  to  God  in  the  exercise  of  his  wor- 
ship, sin  meets  him  there  ;  appears  to  him  as  a  terrible  ghost.  So 
it  is  in  the  text,  Isa.  lix.  11 — 13.  Many  times  the  Christian's  siu, 
which  was  before  out  of  his  sight,  meets  with  him  before  the  throne 
of  grace.  When  the  soul  draws  nigh  to  God,  the  brightness  of  his 
glory  makes  their  spots  to  appear.  "  Woe  is  me  !"  said  Isaiah , 
"  for  I  am  undone  ;  because  I  am  a  man  of  unclean  lips,  and  I  dwell 
in  the  midst  of  a  people  of  unclean  lips  :  for  mine  eyes  have  seen 
the  King,  the  Lord  of  Hosts."  Former  sins  then  come  to  mind, 
which  makes  David  say,  "  Remember  not  the  sins  of  my  youth,  nor 
my  transgressions."  Present  sinfulness  is  then  also  ready  to  stare 
the  man  in  the  face. 


198  man's  INIQUITIKS 

3.  Sill  testifies  two  things  for  God  against  the  man.  First,  their 
sins  witness  their  unworthiuess  of  any  favour  from  the  Lord,  and 
makes  them  say,  with  the  centurion,  "  Lord,  I  am  not  worthy  that 
thou  shouldest  come  under  my  roof."  And  with  Jacob,  "  I  am  not 
"worthy  of  the  least  of  all  the  mercies,  and  of  all  the  truth,  which 
thou  hast  shewed  unto  thy  servant."  Sins  also  testify  against  men 
their  liableness  to  punishment,  yea,  to  a  curse  instead  of  a  blessing, 
so  that  the  soul  is  often  made  to  fear  some  remarkable  judgment ; 
for  a  guilty  conscience  is  a  terrible  companion  in  the  presence  of  a 
holy  God.  When  sin  gives  in  such  a  testimony,  no  wonder  they 
stand  trembling,  fearing  to  hear  the  doom  pronounced  next, 

4.  This  witness  is  convincing.  So,  in  the  text,  we  find  the  panel 
denies  not  the  testimony,  but  pleads  for  mercy.  Sin,  testifying 
against  the  man  before  the  Lord,  stops  the  sinner's  mouth.  "  I  ac- 
knowledge my  transgressions,"  says  David,  "  and  my  sin  is  ever  be- 
fore me."  A  man  may  shift  the  conviction  of  others,  and  deny 
their  testimony  ;  but  here,  himself  is  both  the  guilty  person,  the  ac- 
cuser, and  the  witness. 

b.  Upon  this,  the  gracious  soul  is  filled  with  holy  shame,  and 
self-loathing.  The  person  says,  with  Ezra,  "  0  my  God,  I  am  ashamed, 
and  blush  to  lift  up  my  face  to  thee,  my  God :  for  our  iniquities 
are  increased  over  our  head,  and  our  trespass  grown  up  unto  the 
heavens."  So  the  publican,  standing  afar  olf,  would  not  lift  up  so 
much  as  his  eyes  to  heaven,  but  smote  upon  his  breast,  saying, 
"  God  be  merciful  to  me  a  sinner."  Now  his  siu  has  found  him 
out;  and  as  a  thief  is  ashamed  when  his  crime  is  discovered,  so  is 
that  soul;  and  this  holy  shame  is  vented  by  confession,  self-judging, 
self-condemning,  and  self-abhorring.  Then  he  hath  a  difficulty  to 
get  a  name  to  express  sufficiently  his  own  vileness,  and  then  he  is 
the  chief  of  sinners  in  his  own  esteem. 

Lastly,  He  is  damped,  and  his  confidence  before  the  Lord  is  mar- 
red as  to  any  access  to  him,  or  obtaining  favour  at  his  hand.  "  For 
if  our  heart  condemn  us,  God  is  greater  than  our  heart,  and  know- 
eth  all  things.  Beloved,  if  our  heart  condemn  us  not,  then  have  we 
confidence  toward  God."  When  the  man  lived  near  God,  he  had 
boldness  and  access  with  confidence  unto  the  Father;  but  now  his 
backslidings  stare  him  in  the  face,  and  it  is  much  if  he  be  not  quite 
overcome,  and  made  to  say,  "  my  hope  and  strength  is  perished  from 
the  Lord."  Then  faith  has  difficulties  indeed  to  grapple  with, 
which  may  make  it  stagger;  but  then  the  soul  must  fall  to  the  plea, 
"  for  his  own  name's  sake."     I  now  proceed, 

11.  To  shew  how  comes  it,  that  siu  is  found  thus  testifying  against 
men. 


TF.STIFYIXG  AGATXST  Iinr.  199 

1.  It  flows  from  the  nature  of  sin  and  guilt  upon  an  enlightened 
conscience.  Grod  hath  said,  "  But  if  ye  will  not  do  so,  behold  ye 
have  sinned  against  the  Lord;  and  be  sure  your  sin  will  find  you 
out."  Conscience  is  a  tender  part,  and  when  it  has  light  it  cannot 
but  testify  against  the  man,  when  he  appears  in  the  presence  of  an 
offended  God.  The  conscience  of  some  is  seared,  and  so  they  find 
nothing  of  this  testimony  ;  but  sin  will  lie  down  in  the  grave  with 
them ;  and  awake  when  they  awake. 

2.  It  is  a  punishment  from  the  Lord  for  former  backslidiags  and 
miscarriages.  Sin  that  is  sweet  in  the  mouth,  is  hereby  often  made 
bitter  in  the  belly  Confidence  with  God  is  no  small  mercy,  and  the 
want  of  it  can  be  no  small  judgment  to  them  that  know  the  happi- 
ness of  such  a  case. 

Lastli/,  God  so  orders  it,  that  it  may  be  a  mean  to  humble  them, 
and  make  them  more  watchful  against  sin  for  the  time  to  come. 
Then  the  Lord  says  to  them,  "  Thine  own  wickedness  shall  correct 
thee,  and  thy  backslidings  shall  reprove  thee :  know,  therefore,  and 
see  that  it  is  an  evil  thing  and  bitter,  that  thou  hast  forsaken  the 
Lord  thy  God,  and  that  my  fear  is  not  in  thee,  saith  the  Lord  God 
of  Hosts."  "  What  fruit  had  ye  then  in  those  things,  whereof  ye 
are  now  ashamed  ?  for  the  end  of  those  things  is  death."  By  these, 
the  soul  is  brought  to  repenting  Israel's  resolution.  "  I  will  go 
and  return  to  my  first  husband;  for  then  it  was  better  with  me  than 
now."  And  the  bankrupts  resolve,  in  the  Lord's  strength,  that  if 
they  had  their  stock  recovered  again,  they  will  look  better  to  it. 
III.  I  shall  speak  a  little  to  the  plea.  "For  thy  name's  sake." 
I  told  you  in  the  explanation,  that  it  imports  two  things : 

1.  That  we  must  plead  with  him  for  his  Christ's  sake;  and  when 
guilt  stares  us  in  the  face,  we  must  look  to  God  through  the  vail 
of  Christ's  flesh.  A  guilty  conscience  presents  to  the  sinner  a  God 
armed  with  vengeance.  It  is  then  the  wisdom  of  the  sinner  to  de- 
sire, Exod.  XX.  18,  19.  When  the  avenger  of  blood  pursues,  let 
ns  flee  to  the  city  of  refuge ;  and  when  we  are  to  appear  before  the 
Lord,  we  must  embrace  Christ  in  the  arms  of  faith.  It  was  the 
cnstom  of  the  Molossians,  when  they  were  to  seek  a  favour  of  their 
prince,  they  took  up  his  son  in  their  arms.  This  is  the  way  in  the 
court  of  heaven.  This  is  a  safe  and  sure  way,  for  in  him  the  fa- 
ther is  well  pleased,  and  we  shall  be  accepted  in  the  beloved. 

2.  We  must  plead  with  him  for  his  glory's  sake.  Punishing  of 
sin  glorifies  God  much,  but  pardoning  of  sin  glorifies  him  more. 
He  is  tender  of  his  own  glory,  and  so  should  we.  So  our  Lord 
teaches  us  to  pray,  "  for  thine  is  the  glory."  When  God  hears,  the 
benefit  redounds  to  ns,  the  glory  to  him ;  and  so  we  are  to  make  use 


200  .AfAN-'s  TNIQUTTTRR 

of  it  as  a  pica  for  a  hearing ;  and  this  way  of  pleading  empties  a 
soul  of  all  confidence  in  itself,  and  gives  glory  to  God. 

For  Application.  We,  especially  such  of  us  as  are  to  sit  down 
at  the  table  of  the  Lord,  may  here  see  our  case  and  our  cure  (as  for 
those  who  will  not  seek  God,  their  sins  cannot  testify  against  them 
before  the  throne  of  grace,  seeing  they  come  not  there ;  but  before 
the  tribunal  they  shall  testify,  and  there  they  must  come)  when  we 
are  thinking  on  this  solemn  address  unto  God,  If  we  look  a  little 
into  our  consciences,  we  will  be  fair  to  see  a  tribunal  erected  there, 
and  our  sins  giving  in  a  testimony  against  us ;  and  what  else  means 
that  terror  and  dejectedness  of  spirit  that  sometimes  seizcth  profes- 
sors upon  the  news  of  such  an  occasion  ai^proaching  ?  What  is  the 
matter,  but  that  they  hear  the  bridegroom  cometh,  and  they  are  not 
ready  to  go  out  to  meet  him.  The  people  of  God  hare  been  filled 
with  joy  at  such  a  time,  and  it  is  a  guilty  conscience,  surely,  that 
makes  it  otherwise. 

Again,  what  else  means  that  fear  of  not  attaining  to  communion 
with  God  in  the  ordinance.  The  soul  is  afraid  that  all  go  wrong ; 
that  the  Lord  turn  to  them  the  back  and  not  the  face,  and  that 
they  meet  a  judgment  instead  of  a  blessing.  What  guilt  creates 
those  fears  ?  Now  I  shall  condescend  upon  some  particular  iniqui- 
ties that  will  readily  stare  us  in  the  face,  while  we  are  making  this 
address  to  God. 

1.  Our  former  unworthy  communicating.  Have  we  not  handled 
the  holy  things  of  God  with  unclean  hands,  and  profaned  the  ordi- 
nance by  rash  approaches  to  it  ?  No  wonder  this  testifies  against 
us  now,  and  mars  our  confidence  before  the  Lord. 

2.  Our  living  at  a  distance  from  God,  and  not  endeavouring 
to  keep  up  communion  with  God  in  our  ordinary  walk.  This,  in 
our  approaches  to  God  on  solemn  occasions,  may  meet  us  with 
that  entertainment  which  God  gave  the  Israelites,  when  he  said  to 
them,  "  Go  and  cry  unto  the  gods  which  ye  have  chosen  ;  let  them 
deliver  you  in  the  time  of  your  tribulation."  They  that  are  habit^ 
ually  prepared  have  less  to  do  than  others,  to  get  actual  prepara- 
tion. But  0  !  it  is  a  sad  reflection  for  the  soul  to  think,  now  I  am 
to  seek  access  to  God  in  this  solemn  duty ;  but  ah  !  I  have  slighted 
it  when  I  might  have  had  it ;  and  will  the  Lord  give  it  me  now, 
will  he  answer  me  when  I  call. 

3.  The  sins  by  which  religion  hath  been  wounded,  and  by  which 
we  have  given  occasion  to  the  enemy  to  blaspheme.  Thus  Dayid's 
sin  was  ever  before  him.  No  wonder  the  soul  in  this  case  be  afraid 
to  sit  down  at  the  Lord's  table  with  his  people,  lest  the  Lord  be 
provoked  to  send  some  judgment  upon  him,  by  which  his  glory,  be- 
spattered with  the  sinner's  folly,  may  be  vindicated. 


TESTIFYING  AGAINST  HIAI.  201 

4.  Our  returning  to  these  sins  which  we  have  sometimes  renounced, 
against  which  we  have  resolved  and  vowed.  Conscience  may  tell 
some  of  us  we  have  returned  with  the  dog  to  our  vomit.  Backslid- 
ings  stared  them  in  the  face  in  the  text,  and  marred  their  confidence 
with  the  Lord.  Backsliding  is  very  provoking  in  the  sight  of  God  ; 
and  no  wonder  that  the  sense  of  it  make  the  soul  to  tremble  in  ap- 
proaching to  God. 

5.  Our  not  improving  access  to  God,  when  we  had  it.  Some- 
times people  are  at  great  pains  to  get  communion  with  God,  and 
nearness  to  him ;  and  when  they  get  it,  how  easily  do  they  let  it 
go.  "  The  slothful  man  roasteth  not  that  which  he  taketh  in  hunt- 
ing;" and  therefore  no  wonder  that  they  meet  with  that  challenge 
which  may  make  them  stagger,  "  Have  I  been  a  wilderness  unto 
Israel  ?  a  land  of  darkness  ?  "Wherefore  say  my  people  we  are 
Lords ;  we  will  come  no  more  unto  thee  ?" 

6.  Present  indisposition  of  soul  for  the  work  to  which  we  are 
called.  Solemn  ordinances  require  solemn  preparation.  "When  the 
bridegroom  is  coming  our  lamps  should  be  trimmed,  but  it  is  to  be 
feared  many  of  us  are  far  from  it.  How  can  a  dead  and  stupid 
frame  of  spirit  fail  to  bring  us  heavy  tidings,  and  prophecy  evil 
things  concerning  us  ? 

Lastly,  The  sin  of  our  nature,  the  spring  and  source  of  all  these. 
The  evil  heart,  "  the  heart  deceitful  above  all  things,  and  desperately 
wicked."  That  corrupt  bent  and  inclination  of  the  soul  to  evil,  and 
evil  continually.  That  body  of  sin,  which  makes  us  so  unmeat  for 
the  communion  of  the  body  of  Christ,  and  for  all  duties.  This  is 
that  which  often  stares  them  in  the  face,  so  as  it  looks  them  out  of 
countenance  before  the  Lord. 

But  what  shall  a  sinner  do,  who  has  these  or  the  like  testifying 
against  him,  and  marring  his  confidence  before  God  ? 

1,  You  must  not  give  over,  you  must  plead  in  opposition  to  them 
all.  Satan  sometimes  gets  advantage  here.  But  pray  consider  your 
need.  Mercy  you  must  have,  God's  favour  you  cannot  want.  There- 
fore you  must  reason  with  yourselves  as  the  lepers  at  the  gate  of 
Samaria,  and  lay  down  Esther's  noble  resolution,  "  that  you  will  go 
in  unto  the  king,  and  if  you  perish,  you  perish." 

2.  Betake  yourselves  to  this  plea  in  the  text,  and  plead  with  God 
for  his  own  name's  sake.  He  will  yet  be  gracious  unto  yon.  Ac- 
knowledge that  you  are  unworthy  of  any  favour,  that  you  deserve  to 
be  made  a  monument  of  his  vengeance ;  but  this  plea,  for  God's  own 
name's  sake,  being  left,  you  must  improve  it  in  your  addresses  to 
God.  Give  away  yourselves  to  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  receive  hira 
as  he  hath  off'ered  himself  to  you.     And  then, 


202  JfAN's  INIQUITIKS,  &C. 

1.  Plead  tlio  sufferings  of  Christ,  and  his  satisfaction  to  justice. 
Plead  the  sufficiency  of  his  merit,  whereby  he  is  able  to  save  to  the 
uttermost;  the  design  of  his  sufferings  to  save  sinners,  and  even  the 
chief  of  sinners ;  the  fruit  of  his  sufferings ;  and  cast  yourself  on 
Christ,  resolved,  if  you  perish,  to  perish  at  his  footstool,  and  there 
will  be  no  fear.  Here  you  will  s^et  an  answer  to  all  the  objections 
that  conscience  and  the  law  can  form  against  you. 

2.  Plead  free  grace  and  mercy,  Exod.  xxxiv.  6,  7-  The  sun 
shines  without  hire,  and  God  is  gracious  to  sinners,  because  he  will 
be  gracious.  Are  our  sins  great,  grace  will  be  the  more  magnified 
in  pardoning  them.  Wherefore  is  free  grace  manifested,  but  to  be 
communicated  ?  Depth  of  misery  is  the  most  fit  object  for  exceeding 
riches  of  grace.  This  pleading  is  very  acceptable  to  God.  "  The 
Lord  taketh  pleasure  in  them  that  fear  him,  in  those  that  hope  in 
his  mercy." 

Plead  the  glory  of  his  name  in  the  world,  Joshua  vii.  9.  You  are 
called  by  his  name.  "Without  his  help  you  cannot  stand  ;  and  if  you 
fall,  his  name  will  be  dishonoured.  If  you  get  access  to  him,  and 
communion  with  him,  you  shall  live.  If  he  send  down  the  influences 
of  his  Spirit,  you  shall  bring  forth  much  fruit,  and  this  will  tend  to 
his  glory,  John  xv.  8.  If  he  deny  his  influences,  you  will  be  withered 
creatures,  and  so  God  will  be  dishonoured. 

Lastli/,  Plead  his  word.  Say,  "  Lord,  thou  hast  magnified  thy 
word  above  all  thy  name."  All  men  are  liars,  but  he  is  faithful  and 
cannot  deny  himself.  Get  hold  of  a  promise,  and  in  time  of  need 
bring  it  forth,  as  Tamar  did  Judah's  signet,  &c.,  Gen.  xxxviii.  25. 
This  was  Jacob's  way,  "  And  thou  saidst,  I  will  surely  do  thee  good." 
0  !  but  I  fear  the  promises  belong  not  to  me.  Answer.  Lay  thou 
hold  on  Christ  as  he  is  freely  offered,  and  then  be  sure  all  the  pro- 
mises are  thine,  for  they  all  meet  in  him.    Amen. 


TIIR   UXRQUALTTY  OF   MAX's  WATS.  203 

Ettnck,  Fast  before  the  Sacrament,  Jvne,  1712. 
THE  UNEQUALITY  OF  MAN'S  WAYS. 

SERMON  XXII. 

EzEKiEL  xviii.  29, 
Are  not  your  ways  unequal  ? 

Men  may  be  under  the  deepest  affliction,  and  yet  far  from  true 
humiliation.  A  stone  broken  in  a  thousand  pieces,  each  piece  is  a 
stone.  A  hard  heart,  untouched  by  the  grace  of  God,  will  be  an 
unhumbled  heart,  under  the  severest  affliction.  Here  is  a  people, 
some  of  them  captives  in  Babylon,  some  of  them  in  hard  circum- 
stances in  their  own  land ;  both  groaning  under  affliction,  but  not 
to  God,  but  against  God.  Let  not  people  wish  the  evil  day,  upon 
the  assurance  that  it  will  humble  the  generation.  If  hell  were 
opened  to  flash  out  on  the  faces  of  a  graceless  generation  ;  if  the  fire 
of  the  Spirit  do  not  withal  melt  their  hearts,  "the  bellows  are  burnt, 
the  lead  is  consumed  of  the  fire  ;  the  founder  melteth  in  vain ;  for 
the  wicked  are  not  plucked  away."  They  will  quarrel  God's  ways 
as  unequal,  as  if  they  deserved  not  the  punishments  inflicted  upon 
them  ;  while  in  the  meantime  it  may  be  justly  retorted  on  them,  as 
in  the  text,  "  Are  not  your  ways  unequal  ?" 

The  words  are  a  solemn  appeal  made  by  God  himself  to  this 
people  themselves,  touching  their  way  and  manner  of  life.  Consider 
here, 

1.  The  antagonists,  even  God,  and  his  own  people,  on  whom  he 
had  heaped  benefits  and  privileges,  and  who  had  made  to  him  re- 
peated professions  of  duty ;  and  here  God  being  the  complainer,  and 
they  defenders,  there  is  no  doubt  they  must  lose  the  cause. 

2.  The  crime  libelled  against  them  ;  the  unequality  of  their  ways. 
They  had  the  impudence  to  charge  God  with  unequalness  in  his  ways; 
as  if  he  had  punished  them  for  that  of  which  they  were  not  guilty. 
The  Lord  clears  himself,  vers.  26 — 28 ;  then  he  retorts  the  charge 
upon  themselves,  that  their  ways  were  unequal.  Tlie  word  signifies 
such  an  inequality  as  there  is  betwixt  two  things  that  are  weighed ; 
but  the  one  cannot  balance  the  other,  there  is  no  proportion  or 
equality  betwixt  tliem  ;  so  their  ways  in  which  they  walked  with 
God,  their  carriage  and  behaviour  to  him,  was  most  unequal  and 
unevenly.  Unequal  among  themselves,  unequal  in  respect  of  his 
ways  towards  them  ;  so  that  bring  the  balance  from  heaven  or  from 

Vol.  IV.  o 


204  THK  UNEQUALITY 

earth  by  which  their  actions  should  be  weighed,  they  would  be 
found  light,  unequal,  disagreeable  and  disproportionable.  "Well 
then  might  he  say,  "  talk  no  more  so  exceeding  proudly ;  let  not 
arrogancy  come  out  of  your  raouth  ;  for  the  Lord  is  a  God  of  know- 
ledge, and  by  him  actions  are  weighed."  And  this  charge  is  made 
on  all  and  every  one  of  their  ways,  as  is  the  import  of  the  singular 
number  joined  with  the  plural,  in  the  Hebrew  text ;  as  if  he  had 
said,  take  every  one  of  them,  weigh  them  one  by  one,  with  my  deal- 
ings with  you,  or  with  one  another,  you  shall  find  them  a  confused 
disorderly  mass  ;  the  whole  thread  of  your  life  nothing  but  outs  and 
ins,  the  whole  of  your  conversation  a  rabble  of  inequalities. 

3.  The  bar  to  which  God  brings  this  plea :  it  is  that  of  their  own 
consciences,  whose  tribunal  was  within  their  own  breasts.  Here  God 
condescends  to  plead  his  cause  against  the  criminals,  where  they 
themselves  should  be  both  judge  and  parties  ;  being  assured  that 
though  their  corruptions  did  pass  sentence  in  their  favours,  yet  their 
consciences  would  reverse  that  sentence,  and  oblige  them,  out  of 
their  own  mouths,  to  pronounce  themselve.?  guilty.  In  such  a  mat- 
ter, where  conscience  is  made  judge,  the  sinner  must  lose  the  cause. 

This  is  a  day  in  which  conscience  should  be  set  on  a  tribunal,  and 
each  of  us  should  sist  ourselves  before  it,  to  have  our  cause  there 
judged.     There  are  two  things  call  for  this,  this  day. 

I.  God  seems  to  be  mounting  his  throne  for  judgment  this  day ; 
and  the  dispensations  of  the  day  towards  us,  and  our  Protestant 
churches,  seem  to  sound  that  alarm  of  the  judge's  coming.  "For, 
behold,  the  Lord  cometh  out  of  his  place,  to  punish  the  inhabitants 
of  the  earth  for  their  iniquity :  the  earth  also  shall  discover  her 
blood,  and  shall  no  more  cover  her  slain."  Providence  appears  to 
be  whetting  the  glittering  sword,  and  his  arm  to  take  hold  on  ven- 
geance. It  is  time  for  us  now  to  be  going  inward  into  our  own 
breasts,  as  Isa.  vi.  1 — 5.  "We  have  three  sad  tokens  of  God's 
mounting  his  throne  : 

1.  The  posts  of  the  temple  door  with  us  are  moved,  as  Isa.  vi.  4. 
By  this  was  signified  the  pulling  down  of  the  door,  and  exposing 
the  temple  to  the  profane,  Amos  ix.  1,  And  is  not  that  this  day 
fulfilled  before  our  eyes,  by  that  most  unbounded  toleration  now  set 
on  foot  in  this  Church,  under  the  shadow  of  which  the  vilest  errors 
and  blasphemies  may  set  up  their  heads;  and  men  on  whom  the 
door  of  our  temple  Avas  most  justly  shut,  may  now  come  in  with 
their  profane  lives,  erroneous  preaching,  and  superstitious  worship  ; 
and  others  must  come  in  by  the  door  of  a  patron's  presentation,  a 
door  of  which  there  was  no  pattern  shewn  in  the  mount;  while  that 
which    Christ  himself  appointed,  the   call  of  the  Chnrch,  is  broken 


OF  man's  WATS.  205 

down  ;  and   it  is  just  with  God  that  it  should  be  so,  seeing,  in  tlie 
best  times  of  this  Church,  it  was  never  freely  opened. 

2.  Our  house  is  also  filled  with  smoke,  which  is  a  token  of  anger, 
Psal.  xviii.  8.  Some  have  been  long  looking  for  the  mountain 
of  the  ministry  to  fall  a  burning,  thouf^h  former  experience  has 
shewn  that  to  be  a  forerunner  of  all  being  cast  into  the  sea.  And 
some  have  been,  like  Samson's  foxes,  going  through  this  Church  wit!i 
their  firebrands,  to  set  all  in  a  flame ;  but  now,  alas  I  that  spark  is 
cast  in  which  has  already  filled  the  house  with  such  smoke  of  con- 
tention as  will  break  forth  at  length  into  a  flame  of  division,  to 
the  rending  of  this  poor  Church,  if  God  in  mercy  prevent  not. 

3.  Our  prophets  mostly  seem  to  be  sent  out  with  a  heavy  mes- 
sage, as  Isa.  vi.  9,  10.  The  generation,  iu  spite  of  gospel  light,  is 
still  growing  worse  and  worse ;  and  the  more  our  wounds  are 
handled,  the  more  they  corrupt  and  stink.  Aud,  truly,  the  preach- 
ing of  the  AFord  seems,  for  this  long  time,  to  have  been  followed 
with  a  judicial  obduration ;  as  if  their  meat  had  been  laid  before 
them,  to  fit  them  for  the  slaughter. 

Therefore  set  conscience  on  the  tribunal  beforehand,  and  let  it 
impartially  judge  your  hearts  and  lives,  that  you  may  get  wrongs 
righted  before  the  decree  bring  forth. 

II.  God  is  ascending  a  throne  of  mercy  among  us.  We  are  to 
see  in  this  place,  in  a  solemn  manner,  God  in  Christ  reconciling  the 
world  to  himself;  and  possibly  it  may  be  the  last  which  we  may 
have  of  that  sort,  till  from  the  throne  of  judgment  there  come  forth 
thunderings,  lightnings  and  voices,  which  may  rend  the  hearts  of 
those  whom  the  still  small  voice  from  the  mercy-seat  cannot  make 
to  relent.  Therefore  set  conscience  beforehand  on  the  tribunal, 
and  let  it  make  an  impartial  judgment  of  your  state  and  case  ; 
for, 

1.  It  is  a  day  of  pardons,  and  sealed  pardons.  But  the  malefac- 
tor must  come  with  a  sense  of  his  crimes  in  his  heart,  a  confession 
in  his  mouth,  and  the  rope  about  his  neck  of  self-condemnation. 

2.  It  is  a  solemn  marriage-day.  But  the  bride  must  be  taking 
farewell  of  her  father's  house,  and  her  own  people.  Slie  must  be 
casting  off"  her  filthy  rags,  and  putting  on  the  wedding-garment. 
She  must  be  considering  what  will  please,  and  what  will  displease 
her  husband;  whether  her  heart  be  gained  from  all  others  or  not; 
and  whether  or  not  she  is  every  way  pleased  with  the  match  ;  con- 
tent to  take  him  for  better  and  worse,  and  to  follow  him  whitherso- 
ever he  goes;  otherwise  her  heart  will  leap  back,  and  the  marriage 
be  marred. 

3.  It  is  to  be  an  exaltation  day  to  sinners,  in  which  they  are  to 

..  -2 


20G  THE  UNEQUALITY 

be  exalted  to  sit  at  Christ's  table,  to  eat  his  flesh  and  drink  his 
blood,  and  to  have  the  covenant  sealed;  and  therefore  tliis  must  be 
a  humiliation  day,  for  it  is  the  humble  that  are  exalted  indeed,  and 
the  soul  that  is  most  humble  bids  fairest  for  the  highest  seat  at  the 
feast.  The  soul  that  hath  most  of  gospel  heaviness  for  sin,  is  likely 
to  receive  most  of  the  oil  of  gladness.  They  that  now  lie  most  deep 
in  the  dust,  and  have  the  most  profound  sense  of  their  follies  and 
vileness,  are  the  most  likely  to  be  admitted,  as  the  beloved  disciple, 
to  lean  on  Christ's  bosom.  Now,  as  we  are  to  be  helpers  of  your 
joy,  we  would  also  be  helpers  of  your  shame  and  sorrow  this  day. 

Sinners,  what  think  you  of  your  ways  ?  "  Are  not  your  ways  un- 
equal ?"  Throw  away  the  false  balances  of  a  corrupt  judgment, 
and  of  your  self-conceit.  You  have  weighed  too  long  with  them. 
Let  us  weigh  our  ways  in  the  balance  of  the  sanctuary. 

I.  Weigh  your  ways  in  the  balance  of  your  Christian  privileges. 
God  has  exalted  this  land  to  heaven  that  way.  He  hath  made  our 
poor  corner  of  the  world  a  li-rhtsome  corner,  with  Bibles,  sermons, 
Sabbaths,  sacraments,  and  other  ordinances.  But  do  we  look  like 
a  people  thus  privileged  ?     "  Are  not  our  ways  unequal  ?" 

1.  How  unsuitable  to  the  gospel  are  our  conversations.  "Only," 
says  the  apostle,  "  let  your  conversation  be  as  it  becometh  the 
gospel."  Do  we  look  like  the  citizens  of  the  New  Jerusalem?  Nay, 
instead  of  adorning  the  doctrines  of  the  gospel  by  holy  and  heavenly 
lives,  our  unholiness  and  carnality,  our  irregular  and  ungospel-like 
walk,  leaves  a  stain  on  the  ways  of  God. 

2.  How  little  are  our  privileges  valued  and  improved  ?  It  is  sel- 
dom our  case  sends  us  to  our  Bibles.  The  treasure  lies  there  by  us, 
but  we  slight  it,  do  not  dig  into  it,  but  are  poor,  formal,  lifeless 
creatures,  in  our  reading,  hearing,  and  other  exercises.  The  preach- 
ing of  the  word  is  very  little  prized,  Sabbaths  by  many  are  miser- 
ably misspent,  and  sacraments  disregarded. 

3.  Where  is  the  fruit  of  these  things  ?  There  is  no  growth  pro- 
portionable to  our  means  of  grace.  The  showers  of  gospel  water- 
ings have  as  little  fruit  following  them  in  many,  as  the  rain  that 
falls  on  the  rocks  and  sands,  and  at  best,  "  the  seed  of  an  homer 
does  but  yield  an  ephah."  And  "are  not  our  ways  unequal?"  No 
wonder  the  kingdom  of  God  should  be  taken  from  us,  and  given  to 
others,  that  would  bring  forth  the  fruits  of  it,  and  that  that  land 
should  be  left  unploughed  that  doth  so  ill  requit  the  pains  of  the 
husbandman. 

II.  Weigh  our  ways  in  the  balance  of  our  mercies,  that  should 
lead  us  to  repentance.  He  is  a  good  God  to  us.  Good  to  our  land, 
good  to  every  one  of  us  in  particular.     But  how  unequal  are  our  re- 


OF  man's  ways.  207 

turns  to  our  receipts  ?     A  shameful  confounding  disproportion  may- 
be found  there. 

1.  How  unequal  are  they  to  the  sparing  mercy  God  is  giving  us  ? 
He  has  spared  our  land,  ourselves  in  particular,  as  a  man  spareth 
his  own  son  that  serveth  him.  But  we  have  been  to  him  as  a  snake 
hid  in  a  man's  bosom,  that  sets  itself  to  gnaw  out  his  bowels. 
"  Because  sentence  against  an  evil  work  is  not  executed  speedily, 
therefore  the  heart  of  the  sons  of  men  is  fully  set  in  them  to  do 
evil."  The  more  he  spares,  the  more  does  sin  grow,  the  higher  do 
we  run  on  in  our  accounts  ;  which  is  like  to  bring  it  to  that,  that 
his  eye  will  not  pity,  nor  his  hand  spare  us  any  more. 

2.  How  unequal  are  our  ways  to  the  preventing  mercies  with 
which  we  have  met.  How  often  has  the  Lord  prevented  us,  held  us 
up  by  his  hand  when  we  were  on  the  brink  of  ruin,  falling  into  sin  ? 
But  hath  that  made  us  more  watchful  ?  Have  we  not  been  ready  to 
cast  ourselves  again  into  the  same  snare  ?  Have  we  duly  acknow- 
ledged our  debt  to  God  in  that  matter  ?  He  has  prevented  our 
danger  by  seasonable  deliverances,  general  and  particular :  but 
though  for  the  present  it  might  have  some  impression  on  us,  yet 
have  we  not,  many  of  us,  behaved  as  if  we  had  been  delivered  to 
work  iniquity  ? 

3.  How  unequal  to  enriching  mercies.  "  Blessed  be  the  Lord,  who 
daily  loadeth  us  with  his  benefits,  even  the  God  of  our  salvation." 
Every  day  we  rise,  providence  bids  us  stoop,  and  take  on  our  day's 
load  of  benefits.  But  if  conscience  be  allowed  to  speak,  it  will  tell 
us,  that  every  day  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord  gets  on  a  new  load  of 
provocations  from  us.  God  is  drawing  us  to  him  by  cords  of  love, 
and  we  drive  him  from  us  by  our  daily  follies. 

III.  In  the  balance  of  our  afflictions,  by  which  God  has  been  at 
so  much  pains  with  us.  These  are  the  means  made  use  of  to  cut  oif 
our  luxuriant  branches,  that  Ave  may  bring  forth  fruit ;  to  wean  us 
from  the  world,  and  to  make  us  heavenly.  They  are  the  brisk  gale 
that  should  cause  us  make  speedy  way  towards  Immanuel's  land. 
But  alas  ! 

I.  Are  not  many  made  worse  and  worse  by  their  afflictions. 
Instead  of  the  peaceable  fruits  of  righteousness,  showers  of  troubles 
and  crosses,  falling  on  the  cursed  ground  of  an  ill  heart,  bring  forth 
the  briars  and  thorns  of  murmuring,  fretting  against  God.  Such 
trials  often  put  men  on  ill  courses.  The  poverty  of  many  often 
roots  up  their  honesty.  Trade  decays,  the  land  is  impoverished,  and 
the  effect  of  it  on  many  is,  their  spirits  are  embittered,  that  they  can 
get  no  good  of  the  gospel.  They  are  like  the  children  of  Israel, 
"who  hearkened  not  unto  Moses  for  anguish  of  spirit,  and  ciuel 
bondage  in  Egypt."     Are  not  your  ways  then  unequal  ? 


208  THE  UNEQUALITY  OF  MAK's  WAYS. 

2.  Do  we  not  cleave  to  that  from  which  God  is  trying  to  separate 
us  by  the  wedge  of  affliction.  God  sees  such  a  thing  would  ruin  a 
person,  if  they  should  get  their  will,  and  therefore  God  drives  the 
wedge  to  make  a  separation ;  but  the  more  God  pulls  these  from 
us,  we  draw  the  more  violently.  Gall  and  wormwood  are  laid  on 
the  world's  breast,  but  the  child  sucks  the  more  greedily.  The  cup 
of  poision  is  put  out  of  our  reach,  and  yet  we  search  for  it  the  more 
diligently. 

3.  Where  is  the  contempt  of  the  world,  the  heavenly-mindedness, 
the  soul's  taking  up  its  rest  in  God,  delighting  in  him,  taking  him 
for  all,  and  instead  of  all,  rejoicing  in  him  in  all  cases  and  condi- 
tions— the  native  fruits  of  sanctified  afflictions  ?  Nay,  the  bewitch- 
ing world  has  invaded  the  professors  of  this  day,  taken  us  captive  ; 
so  that  when  we  are  sought  to  a  kingdom,  we  are  lying  hid  among 
the  stuff. 

I Y.  In  the  balance  of  our  engagements,  purposes,  and  resolutions. 
The  vows  of  God  are  upon  us,  the  land  is  under  covenants  ;  each  of 
us  are  under  baptismal  vows,  many  of  us  are  under  communion 
vows.  Purposes  and  resolutions  have  been  taken  up  under  convic- 
tions and  afflictions.  Our  vows  have  been  very  extensive,  to  the 
whole  of  the  Christian  life.  They  have  been  aimed  at  particulars 
in  our  way.  But  are  our  ways  equal  ?  Have  not  our  engagements 
been  like  the  green  withs,  our  purposes  as  the  corn  on  the  house- 
top ?     Are  we  what  we  engaged  and  resolved  to  be  ?     No,  no. 

1.  Have  we  not  returned  to  our  vomit,  and  after  vows  made 
enquiry.  These  very  particular  lusts,  of  which  we  seemed  once  and 
again  to  have  taken  farewell,  invite  us  to  return,  and  we  have  been 
found  again  on  the  forbidden  ground. 

2.  Does  our  unwatchful,  careless  walking,  look  like  our  engage- 
ments and  purposes.  Were  we  resolved  to  give  all  that  scope  to 
our  hearts,  lips  and  lives,  that  they  have  actually  gotten  ?  Did  we 
purpose  to  be  at  so  little  pains  to  beware  of  temptation,  as  indeed 
we  have  been  ?  No,  but  our  ways  are  unequal.  Our  purposes 
high,  our  performances  very  far  below  them. 

3.  Does  our  omission  of  duties,  prayer,  reading  the  word,  medi- 
tation, self-examination  look  like  them  ?  How  easily  are  we  put  off 
these  things  ? 

V.  In  the  balance  of  our  profession.  Alas  !  how  wide  are  our 
practices  from  our  principles.  No  man  could  gather  from  what  we 
do,  what  we  believe,  there  is  such  an  inequality  betwixt  them. 

1.  How  unequal  are  our  ways  to  our  profession  of  the  great  fun- 
damental principles  of  religion,  that  we  are  all  lost  by  nature,  and 
must  be  renewed  by  grace.     Are  our  ways  equal?  how  is  it,  then, 


DUTIES  OF  HUSBAND  AND  WIFE.  209 

tliat  men  live  without  dipping  into  the  thoughts  of  that  state,  and 
inquiring  whether  they  are  converted  or  not.  A  heaven  and  hell. 
What  means  the  profanity  of  many,  the  coldrifeness  and  formality 
of  others,  in  the  duties  of  religion. 

2.  How  unequal  to  our  professions  of  love  to  God  and  Christ. 
How  comes  this  love  of  the  world,  so  little  care  to  please  him,  so 
little  being  aifected  with  the  dishonour  done  to  him. 

3.  Our  concern  for  his  interest.  If  it  be  so,  how  comes  it  that 
there  is  so  little  sympathy  with  this  bleeding,  groaning  Church  ? 
How  is  it  there  is  so  little  wrestling  at  the  throne  of  grace  at  this 
time  ? 

Lastly,  In  the  balance  of  your  attainments,  which  you  have  some- 
times had,  if  ever  you  knew  ought  of  seriousness.  Let  us  look  on 
ourselves  as  we  have  been  in  some  golden  spots  of  our  time.  0 ! 
how  unlike  ourselves  will  we  appear,  unstable  as  water. 

To  conclude.  Take  this  night  a  view  of  your  ways.  Behold 
them,  how  unequal  they  are  to  what  God  has  done  for  you,  and 
what  you  yourselves  have  done.  And  sure  I  am,  you  will  see  your 
hearts  and  lives  a  mass  of  monstrous  deformities,  which  will  be  the 
way  to  true  humiliation,  which  will  i)repare  you  for  a  communion 
day.     Amen. 


Presbyterial  Exercise  and  Addition,  Selkirk,  March,  2,  1731. 
DUTIES  OF  HUSBAND  AND  WIFE. 

SERMON  XXIII. 

Ephesians  v.  33, 

Nevertheless,  let  every  one  of  you  in  'particular  so  love  his  wife  even  as 
himself;  and  the  wife  see  that  she  reverence  her  husband." 

The  apostle  having,  in  several  preceding  verses,  laid  out  the  duties 
of  husbands  and  wives  severally ;  and  having  enforced  them  with 
most  powerful  argument,  fit  at  once  to  convince  the  judgment 
and  influence  the  aff'ections ;  an  argument  utterly  unknown  to  the 
heathen  moralists,  being  taken  from  the  mysterious  part  of  Christi- 
anity, namely,  from  the  spiritual  marriage  and  state  of  the  mysteri- 


210  DUTIES  OF  HUSBAND 

ous  case  between  Christ  as  tlie  husband,  and  the  church  as  his  sponsc  ; 
doth  here  conclude  that  matter  of  the  mutual  duties  of  husband  and 
wife,  summing  up  the  duties  of  both  jointly,  in  the  words  of  the 
text.     In  which  we  have, 

I.  The  connection  in  the  word  nevertheless,  n\r}v,  I  shall  not  trouble 
you  with  the  variety  of  significations  heaped  on  this  little  word, 
judging  the  splitting  of  the  words  of  the  Holy  Ghost  into  many 
different  senses,  in  many  cases,  rather  to  cast  a  vail  over,  than 
to  clear  the  meaning.  Only  some  take  it  here  for  an  illative  particle, 
signifying  therefore,  or  so  then.  And  thus  the  words  are  a  conclusion 
formally  drawn  from  all  the  preceding  points  advanced  on  this 
subject.  As  if  he  had  said,  since  thus  stands  the  case  between 
man  and  wife,  between  Christ  and  the  church,  therefore  it  plainly 
follows,  that  every  one  of  you  in  particular  so  love  his  wife  even 
as  himself."  The  particle  seems  to  be  originally  an  exceptive  prepo- 
sition, as  appears  from  Mark  xii.  32,  "  there  is  none  other  TrXrjv  avrov, 
but  he,  or  besides  him."  Hence,  being  used  absolutely,  adverbially, 
or  conjunctively,  it  naturally  falls  to  be  an  adversative  particle,  sig- 
nifying but,  or  nevertheless;  as  appears  from  Acts  xxvii.  22,  "no 
loss  TrXr/v,  but  of  the  ship."  And  it  is  confessed  on  all  hands  to  be 
an  adversative,  only  that  adversative  is  said  to  signify  illatively  here, 
and  Matth.  xi.  22 — 24,  and  some  few  other  places,  on  this  ground,  that 
the  sense  requires  it.  Indeed,  if  the  sense  did  absolutely  require  it, 
it  behoved  to  be  admitted.  But  that  it  does  not,  as  appears  from  our 
version  of  the  places,  keeping  the  proper  signification,  and  making 
very  good  sense.  That  we  find  a  proposition  of  such  a  nature,  that 
it  is  fit  to  be  inferred  from  what  went  before,  will  not  prove  that  it 
is  a  formal  consequence  in  the  intention  of  the  penman ;  nothing 
being  more  ordinary  than  such  propositions  made  without  any  such 
view ;  therefore  the  ground  advanced  is  not  sufficient  for  affixing 
that  new  signification  to  that  word. 

"We  take  it  then  adversatively,  hut  or  nevertheless,  as  1  Cor.  xi. 
10,  11 ;  so  it  serves  to  pass  from  the  purpose  last  insisted  upon,  and 
to  resume  the  former.  Ths  apostle  having,  upon  occasion  of  discours- 
ing on  the  relation  of  husband  and  wife,  brought  in  the  great  gospel 
mystery  of  the  mystical  union  betwixt  Christ  and  believers,  does 
hereby  bring  them  back  from  that  consideration  of  faith  to  the  prac- 
tice of  moral  duties,  as  better  fitted  by  the  the  former  for  the  latter. 
And  so  he  guards  them  against  that  bias  of  corrupt  human  nature,  by 
''.hich  it  is  apt  to  lose  its  concern  for  the  practice  of  moral  duty,  in  idle 
speculation  of  the  mysteries  of  Christianity ;  whereas  all  these 
mysteries  are  in  their  native  tendency  practical,  tending  to  the  sanc- 
tificatiou  of  the  true  believer  of  them.  Thus  far  of  the  connection. 
Let  us, 


AXD  WIFE.  211 

II.  Attend  to  the  purpose  of  the  text.     This  is  twofold, 

1.  One  relating  to  husbands,  binding  their  duty  on  them  as  such. 
*'  Let  every  one  of  you,"  &c.  And  here  we  have  the  subjects  of  this 
duty  pointed  out,  and  that  two  ways :  1.  Generally,  you,  vfieig.  I 
find  some  translators  take  this  word  for  a  nominative  put  absolutely, 
and  here  place  the  comma ;  reading  thus,  "  therefore  as  to  you  also," 
By  which  means  the  word  comprehends  both  the  husbands  and  the 
wives.  But  the  distribution  immediately  made  of  this  you,  in  the 
words  01  KoS  iya,  "  you  one  by  one,"  with  the  rest  of  the  connection, 
seems  to  spoil  this.  We  take  it  then  to  be  meant  immediately  of 
the  Ephesian  husbands  only.  But  since  the  Bible  is  the  voice  of 
God  to  every  one  to  whom  it  comes,  it  is  meant  also  mediately,  of 
every  husband  to  whom  the  Bible  has  come,  or  shall  come,  to  the 
end  of  the  world.  God  herein  speaks  to  all  of  them  generally, 
whether  they  be  great  or  small,  noble  or  ignoble.  For  whatever 
freedom  some  persons  of  distinction  fancy  themselves  at  in  these 
matters,  they  will  find  themselves  in  the  end  to  have  been  as  fast 
bound  by  the  divine  order  as  the  meanest.  2.  Distributivcly.  You 
in  particular,  or  more  literally,  you  one  by  one.  The  apostle  thinks 
it  not  enough  to  speak  this  to  them  all  in  general,  but  addresses 
himself  on  this  point,  one  by  one.  Men  are  apt  to  fancy  themselves 
overlooked  in  a  crowd,  and  even  what  is  but  said  to  all  in  general, 
is  in  efl'ect  said  to  none.  Therefore,  that  none  may  think  themselves 
passed  over,  he  so  directs  his  speech  to  every  one  in  particular,  as  if 
he  spoke  to  none  but  him. 

Now  these,  "  you,  you  one  by  one,"  are  doubtless  nominatives  ;  but 
they  have  no  agreeing  verb  here,  for  that  which  follows  is  of  the 
singular  number,  and  has  a  nominative  of  its  own.  They  might 
either,  then,  be  put  absolutely  or  elliptically.  To  the  last  of  these, 
the  copulative  Kai,  also,  seems  plainly  to  lead,  looking  back  to  what 
is  said  before,  of  Christ's  loving  his  church  ;  as  if  had  said,  but  you 
also,  one  by  one,  do  so.  Love  you  also  your  wives.  But  this  the 
apostle  passeth  for  a  more  particular  and  forcible  phrase  immediately 
subjoined,  "  Let  each  one  love  his  own  wife." 

The  duty  itself.  One's  loving  his  own  wife  so,  even  as  himself. 
Here  we  may  consider  the  substance  of  the  duty  ;  love,  the  grand 
duty  of  Christianity.  So  soft,  sweet,  and  lovely  a  duty,  that  it  argues 
a  mighty  depravation  of  human  nature  akin  to  devilism,  that  it  can 
so  hardly  get  access,  and  keep  its  ground  among  men;  and  the  ex- 
cellency of  tlie  heavenly  state,  that  there  is  nothing  breathed  there 
but  love.  We  have  also  the  determination,  or  specification  of  this 
love  by  its  ptculiar  object.  It  is  conjugal  love,  the  love  of  one's 
own  vfife,  Ttjr  (vdvTov  yvvaiKa.     This  is  that  species  of  love  which  of 


212  DUTIES  OF  HUSBAND 

riglit  is  incommunicable,  and  admits  of  no  partner.  The  apostle  has 
once  and  again  urged  it  in  the  context,  and  you  have  heard  it 
already  explained.  But  here  he  brings  it  in  again,  partly  the  more 
to  inculcate  it  as  a  necessary  duty,  and  especially  to  teach  us,  that 
as  love  is  the  sum,  or  comprehensive  duty  of  the  whole  law,  so  con- 
jugal love  is  the  sum,  or  comprehensive  duty  of  the  husband  to  the 
wife. 

We  have  also  the  nature  of  this  love,  or  qualities  requisite  to 
constitute  it.  One  is  to  love  his  wife  so,  even  as  himself.  These 
words  I  conceive  not  to  run  into  one,  as  if  he  had  said  so  as,  but  to 
point  at  two  different  things,  namely,  1.  The  rule  of  this  love,  or 
explanatory  cause  of  it.  So,  that  is,  as  Christ  loved  the  church  ; 
that  is  the  Christian  husband's  pattern  he  must  copy  after  in  the 
love  of  his  wife.  The  church  had  many  faults  and  blemishes,  yet 
he  loved  her.  He  loved  her  sincerely,  purely  and  singularly ;  by 
all  means  seeking  the  good  both  of  her  soul  and  body,  for  which  he 
exerted  himself  to  the  utmost.  Even  so  should  men  love  their 
wives,  in  a  like  manner;  expressing  that  love,  as  much  as  may  be, 
in  their  conduct.  2.  The  reason  of  this  love,  "  even  as  himself." 
This  cannot  belong  to  the  rule  of  it,  as  if  the  particle  as  was  only 
a  note  of  similitude  pointing  to  the  love  of  one's  self,  as  a  subordi- 
nate rule,  to  which  one  is  to  conform  in  the  love  of  his  wife ;  for  in 
that  sense  one  is  to  love  every  man  as  himself.  But  surely  there  is 
something  here  required  peculiaily  in  favour  of  his  wife;  therefore 
it  points  to  the  reason  of  it,  namely,  that  one  is  to  love  his  wife  be- 
cause she  is  his  other  self,  one  flesh  with  him,  or  one  body,  1  Cor.  vi. 
16. 

The  manner  of  binding  this  duty  on  men  is  remarkably  particu- 
lar. Let  every  one  (KaaTog,  love  his  own  wife.  In  the  mouth  of  two 
or  three  witnesses  shall  every  word  be  established.  The  apostle 
•first  addresses  himself  in  this  matter  to  all  in  general ;  secondly,  he 
distributes  them  one  by  one,  as  addressed  ;  and  now,  thirdly,  in  the 
very  same  sentence,  comes  in  with  another  word,  carrying  the  duty 
to  every  husband's  door,  every  one  love  his  wife,  even  as  himself. 
This  must  sufficiently  establish  both  the  weight  of  the  matter,  the 
proneness  of  human  nature  to  shuffle  its  neck  out  of  the  soft  yoke, 
and  the  apostle's  earnest  desire  to  fix  it,  and  closely  to  apply  it  to 
thera. 

2.  Part  of  the  purpose  of  the  text  is  that  relating  to  wives,  bind- 
ing their  duty  on  them  as  such.  "And  the  wife  see  that  she  reve- 
rence her  husband."     And  in  this  we  may  consider, 

The  subject  of  this  duty  pointed  out.  The  wife,  »?  ywt).  The 
word  signifies,  either  simply  a  woman,  as  Matth.  v.  28;  or  a  wife, 


AND  "Vni'E.  213 

as  ]\Icitth.  i.  20;  even  as  the  other  word  avijp,  here  used,  signifies 
simply  a  man  or  a  husband.  But  tl.is  makes  no  ambiguity,  in 
regard  that  it  is  in  relation  the  one  to  the  other,  they  signify  hus- 
band and  wife ;  so  that  a  man's  ywi]  is  always  a  man's  wife.  Thus 
Tit.  i.  6,  jutac  yvvaiKog  avijp^  literally  the  man  of  one  woman,  is  the 
husband  of  one  wife.  This  is  common  style  in  the  Old  Testament, 
Gen.  xvi.  3.  Sarah  gave  Hagar  to  Abram  her  man  for  a  woman, 
that  is,  husband-wife.  By  which  phraseology,  the  holy  language,  in 
the  very  frame  of  it,  bars  all  mixtures,  but  in  the  state  of  marriage  ; 
none  being  one's  woman,  in  the  language  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  but  his 
wife.  Now  here  it  is  plain  the  words  stand  in  relation  the  one  to 
the  other;  so  ywi)  is  the  wife,  the  subject  of  the  charge  here  given. 

The  subject  is  pointed  out  indefinitely,  not  that  thoy  are  more 
ready  than  the  husbands  to  perform  their  duty,  or  th:it  the  apostle 
was  less  concerned  to  bind  it  on  them  ;  but  that  since  all  relations 
are  mutual,  standing  or  falling  together,  this  was  indeed  the  na- 
tural way  of  expressing  what  remained.  The  wife  indefinitely,  as 
the  husband  also  in  the  original,  not  her  husband.  But  that  is  in 
eflfect,  as  if  he  had  said,  your  wives,  one  by  one;  every  one's  wife  in 
particular ;  for  the  reasons  given  in  the  former  case.  We  have 
next. 

The  duty  itself.  She  is  to  reverence  her  husband.  Here  is  some- 
tliing  new,  which  we  had  not  before.  The  apostle  had  called  wives 
to  submit  themselves,  and  be  subject  to  their  husbands,  vers.  22 — 24. 
Here  he  points  them  to  the  principle  that  must  be  the  spring  of  that 
their  subjection  if  they  would  behave  themselves  as  Christian  wo- 
men, that  is,  reverence  of  their  husbands,  (poiUjrai,  reverence.  The 
word  in  general  signifies  fear,  being  in  itself  inditfcrent  to  reverence 
or  servile  fear,  1  John  iv.  18.  But  here,  without  question,  the  fear 
meant  is  reverence.  A  kind  of  fear  joined  with  love,  competent  to 
inferiors  towards  superiors,  and  consequently  to  the  wife,  whose 
superior  God  has  made  the  husband.  The  formal  ground  on  which 
reverence  proceeds,  is  superiority  or  super-eminency  ;  the  rays 
of  which,  as  it  were,  reflected  on  the  conscience,  strike  reverence. 
Hence  our  supreme  reverence  is  due  to  God  :  "  Holy  and  reve- 
rend is  his  name."  But  forasmuch  as  he  has  impressed  of  the 
image  of  his  supremacy  on  some,  even  on  all  superiors,  and  particu- 
larly on  husbauds ;  on  whomsoever  he  has  impressed  it,  it  chal- 
lengeth  a  proportionable  reverence  from  us.  Therefore,  that  superi- 
ority and  supremacy  which  God  has  impressed  in  the  character  of 
a  husband,  as  a  lineament  of  his  own  image  and  supremacy,  1  Cor. 
xi.  3,  ought  so  to  touch  the  conscience  of  the  wife  with  awful  regard 
to  it,  that  she  should  fear  to  olfcud  him,  and  be  careful  to  honour 


214  DUTIES  OF  HUSBAND 

liira,  and  behave  respectfully  to  liim  iu  word  and  deed,  1  Peter  iii. 
2—6. 

"We  liave  lastly  the  manner  of  binding  this  duty  on  wives.  It  is 
remarkably  singular.  And  the  wife  see  that  she  reverence  her 
hnsband.  (Greek,)  and  the  wife  that  she  reverence  her  husband.  In 
this  phraseology,  there  is  something  either  wanting  or  redundant. 
Some  take  the  phrase  to  be  pleonastic,  accounting  iva  redundant,  and 
to  be  neglected  in  a  translation.  But  such  a  mere  pleonism,  with- 
out any  emphasis,  should,  I  think,  be  the  very  last  refuge  in  the 
case  of  the  words  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  therefore  I  take  the  phrase,  with 
others,  to  be  elliptical.  It  is  an  observation  of  a  late  judicious  writer, 
that  ellipsis  often  makes  the  language  strong  and  close.  And  I  make 
no  question,  but  such  is  the  ellipsis  here;  which,  though  it  must  be 
supplied  in  a  version,  yet  cannot  be  equalled  by  the  supplied  phrase, 
the  imagining  of  the  thing  being  lost.  It  is  an  ellipsis  of  affection,  kin- 
dled by  the  subject-matter  stopping,  and  then  precipitating  the  course 
of  the  words.  This  is  usual  in  the  style  of  the  Scripture,  Mark  xiv. 
49,  "but  (it  is  unavoidable)  that  the  Scriptures  must  be  fulfilled." 
Mark  v.  23,  "  (T  pray  thee),  come  and  lay  thy  hands  on  her."  Gen. 
xxvi.  7 ;  Matth.  xxv.  9  ;  Rom.  xi.  21,  compare  ver.  20.  Thus  here, 
"  the  wife  (see)  that  she."  &c.  This  elliptical  phraseology  supposeth 
the  darting  forth  of  the  rays  of  soper-eminency  commanding  rever- 
ence. Tliis  is  also  expressed  by  the  Syriac,  in  an  Old  Testament 
phrase,  "  let  the  wife  be  fearing  from  her  husband." 

But  passing  that  mystery  of  faith,  the  mystical  union,  and  to 
return  to  moral  duty  ;  I  say  to  you  all  in  general  that  are  husbands, 
and  to  you  one  by  one,  "let  every  one  of  you  love  his  own  wife"  in 
the  manner  Christ  loved  his  church;  and  that  because  she  is  his  other 
self;  and  let  every  wife  be  struck  with  reverence  of  her  husband,  in 
rtspect  of  the  character  God  has  impressed  on  him  with  relation  to 
her,  moving  her  to  carry  towards  him  with  all  becoming  regard. 

Doctrine  I.  It  is  the  nature  of  true  Christianity  to  join  a  care- 
ful, tender  regard  for  moral  duty  with  the  believing  consideration  of 
the  mysteries  of  faith.  This  is  a  great  mystery ;  but  I  speak  con- 
cerning Christ  and  the  church.  "Nevertheless,  let  every  one  of  you 
in  particular  so  love  his  wife  even  as  himself." 

The  truth  of  this  doctrine  appears,  if  we  consider, 
1.  That  the  great  design  and  end  of  the  whole  contrivance  of  the 
gospel  mystery  was  the  restoration  of  morality,  lost  in  the  world 
by  Adam's  fall.  That  is,  to  bring  men  back  again  to  the  love  of 
God,  in  their  duty  to  hira  and  one  another,  according  to  the  moral 
law,  the  eternal  rule  uf  righteousness.  This  might  be  shewn  by 
parts,  that  it  was  for  this  end  Christ  died.     "  He  gave  himself  for 


AND  WIFE.  215 

US,  that  he  might  redeem  us  from  all  iniquity,  and  purify  us  unto 
himself,  a  peculiar  people  zealous  of  good  works."  Believers  are 
united  and  married  to  Christ  for  this  very  purpose,  "  that  they 
might  bring  forth  fruit  unto  God."  But  let  it  here  suffice,  that  the 
mystery  of  Christ  is  in  general  determined  to  be  great.  "  Without 
controversy,  great  is  the  mystery  of  godliness ;  God  was  manifest 
in  the  flesh,  justified  in  the  spirit,  seen  of  angels,  preached  unto  the 
Gentiles,  believed  on  in  the  world,  received  up  into  glory." 

2.  That  the  faith  of  these  mysteries  is  the  chaunel,  and  the  only 
channel  of  true  morality  acceptable  in  the  sight  of  God.  Whatever 
other  way  vain  man  may  think  to  arrive  at  a  temper  of  spirit  and 
course  of  life  pleasing  to  God,  call  it  holiness  or  virtue,  which  they 
please,  this  Bible  acknowledges  no  way  of  sauctification  of  a  sinner, 
but  in  Christ,  united  to  him  by  faith,  1  Cor.  i.  2;  Acts  xxvi.  18; 
and  true  moral  virtue  another  way  produced,  is  as  great  an  absur- 
dity in  the  doctrine  of  Christianity,  as  fruit  brought  forth  by  a 
branch  separated  from  the  stock,  John  xv.  5. 

Use.  This  shews  the  vanity  and  self-deceiving,  1.  Of  those  who 
hug  themselves  in  their  pretended  faith  of  the  glorious  mysteries  of 
the  gospel ;  but  in  the  meantime  their  faith  of  them,  such  as  it  is, 
never  makes  them  a  whit  more  holy  nor  tender  in  the  practice  of 
moral  duty,  but  leaves  them  at  liberty  there.  I  would  say  to  such, 
as  James  doth,  "  But  wilt  thou  know,  0  vain  man,  that  faith  with- 
out works  is  dead."  Yain  are  such  means  as  reach  not  the  end, 
the  meat  that  does  not  nourish,  the  clothes  that  do  not  warm;  so 
vain  is  that  faith  of  the  gospel  mysteries  to  thee,  that  do  not  sanc- 
tify thee,  and  make  thee  careful  of  moral  duty.  2.  Of  those  who 
hug  themselves  in  their  pretended  moral  duties  and  virtues,  separate 
from  the  faith  of  the  glorious  mysteries  of  the  gospel,  and  running 
in  a  diff'erent  channel,  that  being  left  bare,  as  fitted  only  for  specu- 
lation. Such  rationalists  bewray  their  natural  blindness  and  igno- 
rance of  the  mystery  of  Christ  with  the  Pharisees  their  predecessors, 
rejecting  the  counsel  of  God  as  weak  and  ineffectual,  Luke  vii.  30, 
which  yet  is  the  power  of  God  and  the  wisdom  of  God,  1  Cor.  i.  24. 
What  wisdom  then  is  there  in  them  ? 

DocTRiifE.  II.  It  is  the  duty  of  husbands  to  love  their  wives,  and 
that  in  such  a  manner  as  Christ  loved  his  church  ;  looking  upon 
them  as  a  piece  of  themselves.  This  is  the  principal  doctrine  of  this 
part  of  the  text ;  but  having  been  already  handled  on  the  25th  and 
28th  verses,  I  shall  pass  it  over  with  this  reflection,  that  no  doc- 
trine carries  morality  to  that  height  of  purity  and  beneficialness  to 
mankind  which  the  doctrine  of  Christ  doth.     So  that  it  is  quite  evi- 


218  DUTIES  OF  HUSBAXD 

dent,  that  the  greatest  masters  of  reason  are  not  the  best  Christians; 
that  there  is  an  understanding  necessary  for  discerning  the  truths 
of  the  gospel  in  their  native  beauty,  of  which  men  are  by  nature 
destitute,  of  which  the  apostle  speaks,  when  he  says,  •'  And  we  know 
thr.t  the  Sou  of  God  is  come,  and  hath  given  us  an  understanding, 
that  we  may  know  him  that  is  true,  and  we  are  in  hira  that  is  true, 
even  in  his  Son  Jesus  Christ.     This  is  the  true  God  and  eternal  life." 

Doctrine  III.  Close  application  of  the  truths  of  the  word,  and 
coming  over  the  same  truths  again  and  again,  is  necessary  for  our 
getting  benefit  by  them. 

The  reason  of  the  former  is,  because  of  that  aversion  that  is  in  our 
nature  to  spiritual  truths,  founded  upon  the  tendency  that  is  in  them 
to  holiness,  on  which  account  our  unholy  nature  lies  cross  to 
them,  because  the  carnal  mind  is  enmity  against  God  ;  for  it  is  not 
subject  to  the  law  of  God,  neither  indeed  can  be.  Hence  men  natu- 
rally ward  them  off,  as  the  refractory  bullock  does  the  yoke.  While 
they  are  kept  from  being  closely  applied,  the  corruption  of  nature 
is  not  hurt  by  them ;  but  being  closely  applied,  it  must  needs  lose 
ground.  Thus  David's  conscience  remained  peaceable,  though  im- 
pure, while  Nathan  held  his  parable  in  the  general.  But  when  he 
applied  it  to  him  in  particular,  saying,  thou  art  the  man,  he  fell 
like  a  bird  shot  from  a  tree. 

The  reason  of  the  latter  is,  because  impressions  received  easily 
wear  off  our  spirits,  and  need  therefore  to  be  renewed.  These  that 
hear  the  gospel  only  to  get  their  judgments  informed,  and  there- 
fore cannot  be  entertained  unless  they  hear  some  new  thing,  do  shew 
that  they  have  little  judgment  of  their  own  case;  what  upstiring 
their  heart  and  affections  need.  "  "Wherefore,"  says  Peter,  "  I  will 
not  be  negligent  to  put  you  always  in  remembrance  of  these  things, 
though  you  know  them,  and  be  established  in  the  present  truth." 

Use.  This  serves  to  direct  both  preachers  and  hearers, 

1.  To  making  close  application  of  spiritual  truths.  Let  us  who 
are  ministers  aim  at  applying  our  doctrines  close  to  the  case  of 
our  hearers  ;  take  it  close  home  to  our  own  particular  case,  that  we 
starve  not  ourselves  while  we  feed  others.  And  let  hearers  make 
every  sermon  a  looking-glass  for  themselves,  by  taking  home  the 
word  to  themselves.  All  the  good  which  sinners  get  of  the  law,  of 
its  commandments  for  their  conviction  of  sin  and  duty,  or  of  its 
threatenings  and  denounced  curse,  for  their  conviction  of  their  misery 
and  discovering  their  need  of  Christ,  comes  by  close  application  of 
its  commands,  threatenings,  and  curse,  to  them  in  particular.  And 
all  the  good  to  be  gotten  of  the  gospel  promise,  is  by  a  believing  ap- 
plication  of  it  to  ourselves,  for  our  justification,  sactification,  and 


AND  WIFE.  217 

eternal  welfare.  As  the  belief  of  the  law,  in  general,  without  par- 
ticular application,  will  never  awaken  the  secure  sinner;  so  the  be- 
lief of  the  promise  of  the  gospel  in  general,  without  particular  ap- 
plication, will  never  give  the  awakened  sinner  rest  to  his  soul. 

2.  That  a  seasonable  and  discreet  inculcating  of  the  same  truths 
be  not  grievous  to  either  of  us,  preachers  or  hearers.  "  To  write  the 
same  things  to  you,"  says  Paul,  "  to  me,  indeed,  is  not  grievous, 
but  for  you  it  is  safe." 

DocTRixE  IV.  Christian  husbands  prove  themselves  Christians 
indeed,  even  in  the  love  of  their  wives,  by  their  displaying  the  in- 
fluence of  the  pattern  of  Christ's  love  on  their  hearts  therein,  and  of 
the  ordinance  of  God,  making  them  one  flesh  in  their  consciences. 
Their  hearts  are  influenced  by  the  one,  and  their  consciences  by  the 
other,  to  love  their  wives. 

Use  1.  Hence  learn  that  religion  extends  to  the  whole  of  our 
conduct;  that  whatever  we  do,  we  are  to  carry  it  along  with  us, 
and  act  by  the  rules  of  it.  In  every  relation  we  must  carry  as 
Christians. 

2.  It  is  not  enough  that  we  love  our  relatives,  and  live  peaceably 
with  them,  from  natural  principles  of  good  humour,  or  in  accept- 
ableness  to  us  for  their  personal  qualities.  If  that  is  all,  "  what  do 
we  more  than  others  ?  do  not  even  the  publicans  so."  It  is  necessary 
to  prove  us  Christians  that  we  be  influenced  to  this  by  the  example 
of  Christ,  and  the  ordinance  and  command  of  God  having  weight  on 
our  consciences. 

Doctrine  Y.  and  last.  "Wives  that  would  approve  themselves  to 
God  in  that  relation,  must  carefully  take  notice  of  that  superiority 
over  them  with  which  God  hath  invested  their  husbands,  to  rever- 
ence them  on  that  account,  and  so  submit  themselves  to  them  in  the 
Lord. 

All  I  shall  say  on  this  head,  shall  be  comprised  in  these  two 
things : — 

1.  There  is  nothing  unreasonable  or  unbecoming  in  this,  what- 
ever you  conceive  your  excellency  to  be.  For,  in  efl"ect,  it  is  but 
submitting  to  God  and  reverencing  his  authority,  whom  I  hope  you 
allow  to  lodge  it  in  whom  he  will.  You  claim  that  liberty  among 
your  own  servants,  to  invest  one  of  them  with  authority  over  the 
rest;  and  you  challenge  yonr  authority  in  that  servant  to  be  re- 
garded by  the  rest.  This  is  the  very  case  with  respect  to  your  hu';- 
band.  God  has  appointed  him  the  superior  servant.  It  is  the  or- 
dinance of  God.     "I  would  have  you  know,"  says  Paul,  "that  the 


218  MYSTERY  OF  OHRIST's  KINGDOM 

head  of  every  mau  is  Christ,  and  the  head  of  the  woman  is  the  ninn, 
and  the  head  of  Christ  is  God." 

2.  All  inferiority  in  relations  is  a  situation  in  which  God  hatli 
us  on  our  trials  for  the  other  world ;  taking  trial  of  us  what  regard 
we  will  pay  to  his  authority  at  second  hand.  All  superiors  of 
divine  appointment,  being  to  their  relatives  so  far  in  the  place  of 
God,  Psal.  Ixxxii.  6.  So  then,  since  it  must  be  with  us  eternally, 
according  as  we  regard  the  authority  of  God,  or  regard  it  not,  now  ; 
and  in  such  inferiority  the  trial  is  taken  of  us,  what  regard  we 
have  to  it.  We  may  easily  perceive  how  deep  this  matter  draws  ; 
and  for  evidence  that  God  does  that  way  take  trial  of  us  for  the 
other  world,  you  need  but  consider  that,  when  time  is  at  an  end,  all 
that  inferiority  of  one  of  us  to  another  is  gone,  because  the  time  of 
trial  is  over,  and  so  there  is  no  more  use  for  it.  "  "When  he  shall 
have  put  down  all  rule,  and  all  authority  and  power."  No  more 
subjection  of  wives  to  husbands,  children  to  parents,  people  to 
magistrates  or  ministers.  The  more  need,  then,  while  the  trial 
lasts,  to  approve  yourselves  to  God  as  reverencers  of  his  authority 
wherever  he  is  pleased  to  lodge  it. 


Selkirk,  January  2,  1728. 
MYSTERY  OF  CHRIST'S  KIlSfGDOM  KNOWN  TO  BELIEVERS. 

SERMON  XXIY. 

Mark  iv.  11, 

j4nd  he  said  unto  them,  Unto  you  it  is  given  to  know  the  mystery  of  the 
kingdom  of  God :  but  unto  them  that  are  without,  all  these  things  are 
done  in  parables. 

As  the  wisdom  of  the  world  is  foolishness  with  God,  and  the  wisdom 
of  God  reckoned  foolishness  by  the  blind  world ;  so,  in  all  ages, 
the  one  part  of  mankind  hath  reckoned  the  other  fools,  according 
as  they  have  followed  these  different  sorts  of  wisdom.  Sinners 
think  saints  fools  ;  and  saints  know  sinners  to  be  fools.  Tracing 
this  to  its  original,  it  will  be  found  to  arise  from  that  very  different 
light  in  which  spiritual  things  appear  to  the  several  parties,  as  saith 
the  text.     In  which  we  have  two  things : 

1.  The  spiritual  privilege  of  some,  with  respect  to  the  kingdom 


KKOAVN  TO  BKLIEVKRS.  219 

of  Grotl  :  "  Unto  you  it  is  giv^en  to  know,"  &c.  By  the  kingdom  of 
God,  is  meant  the  kingdom  of  the  Messiah.  That  was  common 
style  among  the  Jews  in  the  days  of  our  Saviour,  Luke  xvii.  20  ; 
xix.  11.  But  they  quite  mistook  the  nature  of  it,  and  fancying  it 
would  be  a  kingdom  of  worldly  pomp  and  grandeur,  they  knew  it 
not  when  it  was  set  up  among  them  ;  and  rejected  Christ  as  the  king 
of  it,  because  he  appeared  not  in  the  splendour  in  which  they  appre- 
hended the  king-messiah  would  appear.  However,  Christ,  being  the 
Messiah,  his  kingdom  is  the  kingdom  of  God.  His  kingdom  was  a 
mystery  which  they  could  not  understand  ;  but  unto  some  it  was 
given  of  God  to  know  the  mystery  ;  and  these  being  opposed  to 
such  as  were  without,  it  is  plain  by  them  is  meant  such  as  were  with- 
in it,  that  is,  the  true  subjects  of  it. 

2.  The  state  of  darkness  and  blindness  in  which  others  were,  with 
respect  to  that  subject,  the  kingdom  of  God.  To  them  that  are 
without  the  kingdom,  who  are  not  the  subjects  of  it,  but  of  the 
kingdom  of  the  devil,  all  these  things,  or  the  all  that  concerns  that 
kingdom,  is  under  a  vail ;  as  things  proposed  in  a  parable,  which 
the  hearers  understand  not. 

The  scope  and  substance  of  these  words,  we  may  take  up  in  these 
four  points,  upon  each  of  which  I  would  enlarge  a  little : 

I.  There  is  a  kingdom  of  Christ  erected  among  men,  which  is  the 
kingdom  of  God. 

II.  The  kingdom  of  Christ  is  a  mysterious  kingdom. 

III.  It  is  the  privilege  of  the  subjects  of  Christ's  kingdom,  to  know 
the  mystery  of  it. 

IV.  It  is  the  misery  of  those  without  the  kingdom  of  Christ,  that 
they  know  it  not,  more  than  a  parable  which  they  do  not  understand. 
"We  shall  attend  to  these  in  their  order : 

T.  There  is  a  kingdom  of  Christ  erected  among  men,  which  is  the 
kingdom  of  God.  Here  we  consider  only  two  things,  namely,  the 
erecting  of  the  kingdom,  and  the  extent  of  it. 

1.  The  erecting  of  this  kingdom.  Concerning  this,  observe  three 
things: 

1.  The  erector  of  it.  He  who  set  it  up.  That  was  the  Father. 
"  I  have  set  my  king,"  says  he,  "  upon  my  holy  hill  of  Zion." 
Therefore  it  is  called  the  kingdom  of  God.  It  is  different  from  his 
eternal  kingdom.  The  kingdom  of  Messiah  is  a  mediatory  kingdom, 
of  which  some  men,  and  not  all,  are  subjects.  It  is  a  delegated 
kingdom,  of  which  Christ  is  the  king  by  delegation  and  commission 
from  the  Father.  To  put  his  title  to  it  out  of  question,  he  was 
anointed  king  of  it,  namely,  by  the  Holy  Spirit,  Isa,  Ixi.  1. 

2.  The  cause  for  which  it  was  erected  was  the  recovery  of  lost 
Vol.  IV.  p 


220  MYSTEUT  OF  CHRIST's  KINGDOM 

sinners;  lost  to  God,  and  lost  to  themselves.  All  mankind  being 
lost  in  Adam,  God  purposed  from  eternity,  by  his  grace,  to  save  some 
of  them.  But  the  kingdom  of  nature,  founded  on  the  work  of  crea- 
tion, and  governed  according  to  the  covenant  of  works,  could  not 
reach  this  end.  Therefore  there  was  a  new  kingdom  erected,  founded 
on  the  work  of  redemption,  and  to  be  governed  according  to  the 
great  charter  of  the  covenant  of  grace.  And  Christ  Jesus  having 
borne  the  burden  of  laying  the  foundation  of  it  with  his  own  blood, 
upon  him  was  the  honour  of  the  crown  of  it  conferred. 

3.  The  time  of  its  erection.  It  was  purposed  from  eternity. 
But  it  is  an  ancient  kingdom,  considered  even  from  the  time  of  its 
being  actually  set  up,  which  was  at  Adam's  fall.  Then  Christ  en- 
tered on  the  government,  and  as  a  king  examined,  judged,  and  pro- 
claimed a  remission  to  our  guilty  first  parents,  and  pronounced  the 
serpent's  doom,  Gon.  iii.  8,  9,  and  downwards.  It  has  continued  ever 
since,  without  interruption,  notwithstanding  the  continual  opposition 
ii  ade  to  it. 

2.  We  may  consider  the  extent  of  it.  Here  it  may  be  observed, 
that,  in  respect  of  the  kinds  of  jurisdiction,  it  comprehends  the  king- 
dom of  grace.  All  the  grace  and  favours  of  heaven  to  salvation, 
relative  or  real,  that  ever  mortals  may,  or  shall  partake  of  in  this 
•world,  are  in  the  hands  of  this  king  to  dispense.  "  God  hath  put  all 
things  under  his  feet,  and  gave  him  to  be  the  head  over  all  things  to 
the  Church."  It  comprehends  also  the  kingdom  of  glory,  for  tlie 
glory  of  heaven  is  also  at  his  disposal,  as  well  as  the  grace  of  heaven  ; 
Luke  xxii.  29,  30.  The  kingdom  of  providence  is  also  under  his 
control ;  for  into  the  same  hands  that  the  Father  has  committed  the 
government  of  the  church,  he  has  also  committed  the  government  of 
the  world,  and  that  for  the  good  of  the  church.  "  The  Father 
judgeth  no  man.  bnt  hath  committed  all  judgment  to  the  Son." 

In  respect  of  the  bounds  of  the  kingdom.  It  reacheth  to  both 
■worlds,  heaven  and  earth.  "  All  power  is  eiven  unto  me,"  saith 
.Tesus,  "in  heaven  and  in  earth."  He  administers  the  government 
in  both  worlds,  for  the  kingdom  is  but  one.  Only  some  of  the  sub- 
jects dwell  in  the  upper  parts  of  his  dominion,  namely,  the  glorified 
saints  in  heaven,  and  them  he  rules.  "For  the  Lamb  which  is  in 
the  midst  of  the  throne  shall  feed  them,  and  shall  lead  them  unto 
living;  fountains  of  water."  Others  dwell  in  the  lower  parts  of  his 
dominion,  namely,  the  saints  on  earth,  and  them  he  rules,  Psal.  ii. 
8.  Nay,  the  passage  between  the  upper  and  lower  parts  of  his 
dominion,  namelv,  the  valley  of  the  shadow  of  death,  is  part  of  his 
dominion  also,  that  yon  may  be  sure  that  his  kingdom,  as  large  as  it 
is,  is  but  one.     "  He  hath  the  keys  of  hell  and  of  death." 


KNOWN  TO  BELIKVKRS.  221 

In  respect  of  duration,  this  kingdom  will  last  for  ever,  without 
end.  "  Of  this  kingdom  there  shall  be  no  end."  At  the  great  day, 
indeed,  he  will  deliver  up  the  kingdom  to  the  Father,  presenting  all 
the  designed  subjects  of  it  complete,  according  to  the  design  of  the 
erection  of  the  kingdom.  But  he  will  continue  in  his  kingly  dignity 
and  office,  without  end.  "  His  dominion  is  an  everlasting  dominion, 
which  shall  not  pass  away  ;  and  his  kingdom  that  which  shall  not 
be  destroyed." 

Use  1.  Beware  then  of  opposing  this  kingdom  of  Christ,  by  sisting 
yourselves  enemies  to  him  by  unbelief  and  impenitence,  opposing 
truth  and  holiness.  It  is  the  kingdom  of  God,  and  therefore  shall 
undoubtedly  prevail,  and  the  enemies  of  it  will  fall,  and  fall  under 
a  dreadful  weight,  falling  under  the  wrath  of  this  king,  which  will 
grind  them  to  powder,  Luke  xx.  17,  18. 

2.  Submit  yourselves  to  the  Royal  Mediator.  "  Kiss  the  Son,  lest 
he  be  angry,  and  ye  perish  from  the  way,  when  his  wrath  is  kin- 
dled but  for  a  little.  Blessed  are  all  they  that  put  their  trust  in 
him."  Submit  to  his  righteousness,  renouncing  your  own.  To  his 
teaching,  renouncing  your  own  wisdom.  Submit  to  his  government, 
renouncing  your  corrupt  lusts  and  affections.  His  father  has  put 
the  crown  on  his  head  ;  his  mother,  also,  crowns  him  the  day  of  his 
espousals,  Song  iii.  11 ;  and  on  your  espousals  to  him  by  faith,  he 
will  account  himself  crowned  by  you.     We  proceed  now  to  the 

II.  Point.  The  kingdom  of  Christ  is  a  mysterious  kingdom.  .A 
mystery  is  a  secret,  or  hidden  thing ;  hidden  under  some  outward 
vail  or  other,  which  must  be  drawn  aside,  before  one  can  see  and 
discern  it.  Accordingly,  the  kingdom  of  Christ  is  a  secret,  a  hidden 
thing;  a  mysterious  kingdom,  though  among  men  before  their  eyes. 

1.  The  kingdom  of  Christ  itself  is  a  mystery,  "The  mystery  of 
the  kingdom."  The  kingdoms  of  this  world  are  no  mysteries,  for 
the  outward  shew  which  they  make  to  the  eye,  with  crown  and 
sceptre,  and  other  ensigns  of  royalty,  plainly  discovers  to  the  mean- 
est capacity,  at  first  sight,  what  they  are  ;  and  is  equal  to,  if  not 
above  their  intrinsic  excellency.  But  the  outward  shew  of  tlie 
kingdom  of  Christ  is  so  mean  and  low  in  this  world,  that  the  car- 
nal eye  cannot  thereby  discern  it  to  be  a  kingdom  at  all,  far  less  to 
be  a  kingdom  above  all  other  kingdoms,  as  indeed  it  is.  And  thert- 
fore  I  think  it  is  that  Christ  says,  "the  kingdom  of  God  cometh 
not  with  observation."  It  is  like  a  treasure  in  earthen  vessels,  a 
prince  in  the  habit  of  a  servant,  not  to  be  known  by  the  outward 
shew. 

2.  It  is  a  kingdom  of  mysteries;  "  even  the  mysteries  of  the  king- 
dom."    A  constellation  of  mysteries  ;  many  mysteries  gathered  to- 

r2 


222  MTSTEKY  or  Christ's  kingdom 

gether  in  one ;  so  that  there  will  still  be  mysteries  to  be  discovered 
to  the  favourites  of  the  King,  and  they  will  never  be  fully  known 
till  the  vail  be  rent,  and  the  soul  be  admitted  into  the  holy  of  holies 
above. 

There  are  mysteries  of  faith  in  it.  Mysteries  to  be  believed. 
We  have  a  cluster  of  thera  in  these  words  :  "  Withont  controversy, 
great  is  the  mystery  of  godliness  :  God  was  manifest  in  the  flesh, 
justified  in  the  Spirit,  seen  of  angels,  preached  unto  the  Gentiles, 
believed  on  in  the  world,  received  up  into  glory."  The  incarnation 
of  the  Son  of  God,  his  humiliation  in  his  birth,  life,  and  death  on 
the  cross ;  his  burial,  resurrection,  ascension,  and  sitting  at  the  right 
hand  of  God  in  our  nature,  are  all  great  mysteries  of  faith. 

There  are  mysteries  of  privileges.  0  what  mysterious  privileges 
are  conferred  on  the  subjects  of  this  kingdom !  The  imputation  of 
Christ's  righteousness  to  them,  the  holiness  of  his  nature,  the  righte- 
ousness of  his  life,  and  the  satisfaction  made  by  his  death  ;  all  set 
down  on  their  account,  and  their  justification  and  deliverance  from 
the  law  as  a  covenant  of  works  by  it,  are  great  mysteries.  The 
union  of  believers  with  Christ  is  justly  called  mystical,  for  it  is  a 
great  mystery  indeed  :  the  head  in  heaven,  the  members  on  earth 
in  a  mean  and  low  condition.  They  crucified  with  Christ,  so  dead, 
yet  living.  So  as  he  was  in  the  world,  an  unknown  king  ;  so  are 
they  in  it  unknown  favourites,  walking  under  a  vail. 

There  are  mysteries  even  of  practice.  As  great  is  the  mystery  of 
the  principles,  so  of  the  practice  of  godliness.  Sanctification  by 
union  with  Christ  through  faith,  1  Cor.  i.  2;  Acts  xxvi.  18,  is  a 
mysterious  way  of  sanctification  unknown  to  the  Jewish  rabbies  and 
Greek  philosophers,  an  imaginary  sanctification  in  the  eyes  of  all 
legalists.  The  life  of  faith,  emptying  the  man  of  himself,  counting 
all  his  doings  and  suffVirings  loss  and  dung;  doing  every  duty  in 
borrowed  strength,  standing  on  borrowed  legs,  seeing  with  bor- 
rowed eyes,  bearing  burdens  with  borrowed  strength  ;  Christ  being 
all  to  the  man,  and  himself  nothing,  is  a  mysterious  practice.  Yet 
it  is  the  life  and  practice  in  the  kingdom  of  Christ.  "  I  am  cruci- 
fied with  Christ,"  says  Paul,  "  nevertheless,  I  live ;  yet  not  I, 
but  Christ  liveth  in  me :  and  the  life  which  I  now  live  in  the  flesh 
I  live  by  the  faith  of  the  Son  of  God,  who  loved  me,  and  gave  him- 
self for  me." 

There  are  mysteries  of  providence.  Kings  of  the  earth  have 
their  secrets  of  government,  kept  up  from  the  body  of  their  people. 
The  king  of  Zion  has  his  secrets  of  government  too,  vastly  more 
beyond  the  reach  of  the  spectators  of  the  conduct.  This  provi- 
dence was  represented  to  Ezekiel,  chap,  i.,  under  the  emblem  of  a 


KNOWN  TO  BELIEVEUS.  223 

wheel  within  a  wheel,  goiug  on  its  four  sides,  the  rings  so  high  as 
they  were  dreadful,  and  full  of  eyes.  The  King's  special  favourites 
cast  down  to  the  dust,  his  enemies  raised  up,  John  Baptist's  head 
in  a  charger,  the  incestuous  Herodias  triumphing  over  it.  Men 
going  in  the  way  of  duty,  and  the  storm  blowing  hard  on  their  face. 
Others  going  on  in  the  way  of  wickedness,  and  the  sun  of  provi- 
dence shining  warm  on  them.  The  King's  dear  children  singled  out 
to  extraordinary  afflictions,  and  so  made  a  spectacle  to  the  world ; 
and  rebel  sinners  treated  as  the  darlings  of  heaven.  These  are 
such  mysteries  as  have  puzzled  the  best  of  men  to  unfold ;  as 
Asaph,  Psal.  Ixxiii. ;  Jer.  xii. ;  and  upon  which  the  blind  world  can 
make  no  commentary,  but  such  as  destroys  the  text.  "When  they 
say,  "  It  is  vain  to  serve  the  Lord ;  and  what  profit  is  it  that  we 
have  kept  his  ordinance,  and  that  we  have  walked  mournfully  be- 
fore the  Lord  of  Hosts  ?  And  now  we  call  the  proud  happy.  Tea, 
they  that  work  wickedness  are  set  up ;  yea,  they  that  tempt  God 
are  even  delivered." 

Use  1.  Take  heed  how  you  treat  religion  and  seriousness,  in  the 
principles  and  practice  of  it.  Beware  you  traduce  it  not,  in  your 
words  and  course  of  life,  as  foolishness;  but  maintain  a  solemn 
regard  to  it  upon  your  spirits,  lest  your  censures  of  it  be  found  as 
those  of  blind  men  judging  of  colours,  while  you  condemn  what  you 
do  not  understand  ;  and  lest  a  fire  unblown  from  a  holy  jealous 
God,  whom  you  discern  not  in  the  revelation  which  he  hath  made  of 
himself  in  Christ,  break  out  upon  you  unto  destruction.  "  Now 
therefore  be  not  mockers,  lest  your  bands  be  made  strong  ;  for  I 
have  heard  from  the  Lord  God  of  Hosts,  a  consumption  even  deter- 
mined upon  the  whole  earth." 

2.  Profane  persons  are  none  of  those  who  belong  to  this  kingdom. 
Drunkards,  swearers,  dishonest  persons,  unclean  persons,  and  carnal 
worldlings,  that  have  not  even  the  appearance  of  godliness.  These 
are  none  of  this  kingdom,  for  there  is  no  mystery  in  their  case  but 
a  mystery  of  iniquity,  proclaiming  them  to  belong  to  the  devil's 
kingdom.  Gal.  v.  19. 

3.  Formal  hypocrites  belong  not  to  this  kingdom.  You  that  are 
strangers  to  the  power  of  godliness  in  the  inner  man,  absolutely 
unacquainted  with  the  life  of  faith  in  your  practice  and  experience  ; 
whose  religion  is  a  parcel  of  mere  bodily  exercises,  external  perfor- 
mances. There  is  no  mystery  in  your  religion,  what  is  of  it 
appears  to  the  eye.  The  hidden  man  of  the  heart  is  wanting, 
and  therefore  it  is  naught ;  "  for  bodily  exercise  profiteth  little." 
"  Having  a  form  of  godliness,  but  denying  the  power  thereof,  from 
buch  turn  away."     We  are  now, 


224  MYSTERY  OF  CHRISt's  KINGDOM 

III.  To  shew  that  it  is  the  privilege  of  the  subjects  of  Christ's 
kingdom  to  know  the  mystery  of  it.     Here  consider, 

1.  The  subjects  of  the  kingdom  of  Christ.  "Who  are  they.  They 
are  believers,  and  only  believers.  All  the  members  of  the  visible 
church  are  Christ's  subjects  in  profession;  but  it  is  believers  only 
who  are  so  in  reallity.  They  are  the  only  persons  "  who  have  been 
made  willing  in  a  day  of  power ;"  who  have  opened  the  everlasting 
doors  of  their  souls  to  receive  the  King  of  Glory,  to  reign  in  them, 
and  over  them  for  ever  ;  who  have  been  espoused  to  him,  and  put  the 
crown  upon  his  head. 

2.  Their  privilege  in  this  point.  It  is  *'  given  them  to  know  the 
mystery  of  the  kingdom."  It  is  their  privilege  to  be  already  ini- 
tiated in  the  mystery  of  the  kingdom,  to  have  the  beginning  of  the 
knowledge  of  it.  They  have  obtained  a  proper  view  of  the  myste- 
ries of  faith,  of  privilege,  of  practice,  and  providence,  though  in 
the  meantime  it  is  but  in  part.  "  For  now  we  see  through  a  glass 
darkly,  and  know  but  in  part."  They  have  so  much  insight  into 
them,  as  keeps  them  from  stumbling  at  them ;  and  all  the  wisdom  of 
the  world,  and  human  learning,  cannot  give  this  much.  This  have 
all  the  saints.  "But  we  preach  Christ  crucified,  unto  the  Jews  a 
stumbling-block,  and  unto  the  Greeks  foolishness;  but  unto  them 
which  are  called,  both  Jews  and  Greeks,  Christ  the  power  of  God, 
and  the  wisdom  of  God." 

It  is  their  privilege,  also,  to  be  in  due  time  perfected  in  the 
knowledge  of  the  mystery  of  the  kingdom,  as  far  as  their  limited 
capacity,  enlarged  by  glorification,  can  reach.  "  For  now  we  see 
through  a  glass  darkly,  but  then  face  to  face  ;  now  we  know  iu 
part,  but  then  we  shall  know,  even  as  also  we  are  known."  The 
light  of  glory  will  enlarge  their  knowledge  to  a  high  degree,  that 
shall  perfect  their  happiness.  And  whoever  learn  the  first  elements 
of  it  here,  shall  certainly  get  it  perfected  hereafter,  and  get  over  all 
their  difficulties  that  now  remain.  "The  Lord  will  perfect  that 
which  concerneth  me :  thy  mercy,  0  Lord,  endureth  for  ever:  for- 
sake not  the  works  of  thine  own  hands." 

3.  Let  us  consider  how  they  get  the  knowledge  of  this  mystery 
which  they  have.  They  get  it  by  the  light  of  the  word.  "  The  law 
of  the  Lord  is  perfect,  converting  the  soul ;  the  testimony  of  the 
Lord  is  sure,  making  wise  the  simple.  The  commandment  of  the 
Lord  is  pure,  enlightening  the  eyes."  The  Bible  is  the  book  of  the 
manner  of  the  kingdom,  and  unfolds  the  mysteries  of  it,  as  Asaph 
found  in  his  experience,  Psal.  Ixxiii.  16,  17.  The  Bible,  indeed,  is 
flat,  tasteless,  and  nauseous  to  many ;  but  to  none  of  the  subjects  of 
the  kingdom,  only  to  those  that  are  without. 


K^u^v'^•  to  belikvers.  225 

They  get  this  knowledge,  also,  by  the  teaching  of  the  Spirit,  with 
the  word.  "  God  hath  revealed  thera  unto  us  by  his  Spirit ;  for  the 
Spirit  searcheth  all  things,  yea,  the  deep  things  of  God."  He  lets 
in  a  light  from  heaven  into  the  mysteries,  and  opens  the  eyes  of 
believers  to  see  the  wondrous  things.  And  no  advantages  of  human 
art  can  make  up  the  want  of  this  teaching.  "  Eye  hath  not  seen, 
nor  ear  heard,  neither  have  entered  into  the  heart  of  man,  the 
things  which  God  hath  prepared  for  them  that  love  him."  But  all 
the  saints  enjoy  this  teaching.  "  For  it  is  written,"  saith  our 
Saviour,  "  in  the  prophets,  and  they  shall  be  all  taught  of  God. 
Every  man,  therefore,  that  hath  heard  and  learned  of  the  Father, 
coraeth  unto  me."  They  obtain  this  knowledge,  also,  by  experience. 
"  0  taste  and  see,"  says  David,  "  that  the  Lord  is  good;  blessed  is 
the  man  that  trusteth  in  him."  An  unfelt  religion,  is  the  religion 
of  thera  that  are  without,  whose  sound  principles  are  like  fire  painted 
on  a  wall ;  as  far  from  any  sanctifying  efficacy  on  their  lives,  or 
from  burning  up  their  corruptions,  as  that  painted  fire  is  from  burn- 
ing the  house  on  which  it  is.  But  the  religion  of  the  saints  is  a 
felt,  experimental  religion.  They  feel  the  power  of  its  mysteries 
upon  their  own  souls,  and  therefore  adhere  to  them,  in  spite  of 
carnal  reasonings  against  them,  for  it  is  difficult  to  dispute  men  out 
of  their  senses.  "  I  ani  not  ashamed  of  the  gospel  of  Christ,"  says 
Paul,  "  for  it  is  the  power  of  God  unto  salvation,  to  every  one  that 
believeth." 

Use  1.  Come  and  see,  is  the  only  proper  way  to  be  satisfied  as 
to  the  reality  and  excellency  of  religion.  Philip  gave  this  advice 
to  Nathaniel,  and,  by  following  it,  he  was  soon  brought  to  say 
to  Jesus,  "  thou  art  the  Son  of  God ;  thou  art  the  King  of  Israel." 
Enter  yourselves  subjects  of  this  kingdom  by  believing,  and  you 
shall  know  the  mystery  of  it.  "  If  any  man  will  do  his  will,  ho 
shall  know  of  the  doctrine,  whether  it  be  of  God,  or  whether  I 
speak  of  myself."  Would  you  have  the  privilege  of  subjects,  before 
you  be  subjects  ?  Or  would  you  know  a  mystery,  before  you  give 
yourselves  up  to  be  taught  ?  It  is  the  commendation  of  religion 
that  none  disparage  it  but  those  who  have  no  experience  of  it ; 
none  condemn  it,  but  those  whose  blind  eyes  never  saw  the  merits  of 
the  cause.  So  the  day  will  come  that  they  will  retract,  at  least 
when  there  is  no  remedy. 

2.  No  king  treats  his  subjects  so  advantageously,  so  honourably, 
as  Christ  doth  his.  The  devil  keeps  his  subjects  in  darkness,  and 
darkness  is  the  main  pillar  of  his  kingdom.  Without  that,  the 
works  of  darkness  would  appear  loathsome.  Christ  brings  his  sul- 
jtcts  into  light.     He  makes  them  wise  and  knowing,  however  other- 


226  MYSTEKY  OF  CHRIST's  KINGUOM 

wise  simple.  Kings  of  tlie  earth  will  uot  impart  the  secrets  of  tlieir 
government  to  their  subjects,  if  it  is  not  to  very  few.  But  the 
Prince  of  the  kings  of  the  earth  makes  all  his  subjects  acquainted 
with  the  mysteries  of  the  kingdom.     We  proceed, 

IV.  To  shew  that  it  is  the  misery  of  those  without  the  kingdom 
of  Christ  that  they  know  not  the  mystery  of  it,  more  than  a  para- 
ble which  they  do  not  understand.     Here  consider, 

1.  Who  these  are,  that  are  without.  All  unbelievers  are  such, 
who  have  never  opened  their  hearts  to  receive  Christ  by  faith.  The 
Jews  called  the  Gentiles  by  this  name.  But  our  Lord  teaches  that 
it  belongs  to  unbelieving  Jews,  as  well  as  Gentiles  ;  and  so  to  unbe- 
lieving Christians  as  well  as  heathens.  Though  they  are  in  the 
church  they  are  not  of  it,  and  so  are  reckoned  without ;  being  out 
of  God's  family,  out  of  his  covenant,  and  out  of  the  body  of  Christ. 

2.  What  is  it  they  do  not  know?  The  text  says,  all  these  things; 
namely,  all  that  concerns  the  mystery  of  the  kingdom  ;  the  shell, 
the  outward  appearance  of  it  is  excepted.  They  know  nothing  of 
the  other  parts  of  it.  All  is  to  them  under  a  vail.  Christ  the  King 
of  it  is  a  vailed  Christ  to  them.  They  know  him  not.  The  gospel, 
the  sceptre  of  the  kingdom,  is  a  hidden  gospel  to  them.  The  Spirit, 
the  light  and  life  of  the  kingdom,  is  an  unknown  Spirit  to  them. 
"  He  is  the  Spirit  of  truth,  whom  the  world  cannot  receive,  because 
it  seeth  him  not,  neither  knoweth  him."  The  ten  commands  in  the 
hands  of  the  Mediator,  the  laws  of  the  kingdom,  are  unknown  to  them 
in  their  spirituality,  Matth,  chap.  v.  The  covenant  of  grace,  the  in- 
strument of  government  in  the  kingdom,  is  an  unknown  instrument 
to  them,  Psal.  xxv.  14.  The  mysteries  of  faith,  privilege,  practice, 
and  providence,  remain  all  under  a  vail  to  them.     Let  us  inquire, 

3.  How  it  is  they  know  it  not.  Though  they  know  the  words  in 
which  that  kingdom  is  revealed,  they  know  not  the  thing  itself.  As 
a  man  hearing  a  parable  in  his  mother  tongue,  understands  the 
grammatical  sense  of  the  words,  yet  does  not  perceive  the  thing  it- 
self, wrapt  up  in  the  parable.  So  is  it  here.  "  The  natural  man 
receiveth  not  the  things  of  the  Spirit  of  God,  for  they  are  foolish- 
ness unto  him ;  neither  can  he  know  them,  because  they  are  spirit- 
ually discerned."  They  are  to  them  like  a  lecture  of  philosophy,  iu 
a  learned  language,  to  a  schoolboy. 

They  know  it  not  by  the  teaching  of  the  Spirit.  "  They  are  sen- 
sual, having  not  the  Spirit."  They  are  strangers  to  supernatural 
illumination,  and  the  highest  source  of  their  knowledge  is  flesh  and 
blood,  improved  by  external  objective  revelation ;  being  strangers 
to  the  subjective  revelation,  the  opening  the  eyes  of  the  mind,  Deut. 
xxix.  4. 


KNOWN  TO  15ELIEVEKS.  227 

They  know  it  not  by  experience  ;  and  so  they  know  no  more  of 
religion  than  one  doth  of  honey  or  vinegar,  how  sweet  or  how  sour 
they  are,  who  may  have  heard  of  them,  but  never  tasted  the  one  or 
the  other. 

Use  1.  Here  see  the  source  of  the  dreadful  inundation  of  atheism, 
deism,  and  contempt  of  revealed  religion ;  the  source  of  the  flood 
of  irreligion,  immorality,  and  profanity,  overflowing  all  its  banks 
this  day.  These  wretched  men  are  without,  and  though  they  have 
no  eyes  to  see  the  mystery  of  the  kingdom,  they  have  pride  and  self- 
conceit  to  think  that  they  see  through  it.  Their  impetuous  lusts 
need  such  a  shelter,  and  they  know  that  if  there  be  that  reality  in 
religion  which  they  would  not  wish,  they  are  undone  for  ever.  So 
they  neither  come  into  the  kernel  of  religion,  nor  desire  to  come  ; 
but  break  their  teeth  on  the  shell  which  they  cannot  open. 

2.  I  exhort  all  to  study  the  mystery  of  the  kingdom  of  Christ. 
Religion  is  another  thing  than  either  the  profane  multitude,  or  com- 
mon crowd  of  professors  take  it  to  be.  Strive  earnestly  to  get  into 
the  spirit  of  it  now,  and  to  feel  its  life  and  power  upon  your  souls. 
It  will  be  no  comfort  when  in  hell,  with  your  eyes  open,  to  say,  that 
you  never  thought  that  it  had  been  such  a  hidden  thing.  You  have 
clear  and  strong  testimony  aff"orded  you  from  the  word  of  Grod,  and 
the  experience  of  the  saints,  that  there  is  a  reality  in  religion ;  and 
that  the  possession  and  practice  of  it  are  absolutely  necessary  to 
your  happiness.  "  For  except  a  man  be  born  again,  he  cannot  see 
the  kingdom  of  God  ;"  "  and  without  holiness,  no  man  shall  see  the 
Lord."  Trifle  no  longer,  then,  with  this  great  and  important  con- 
cern. Give  yourselves  with  earnestness,  diligence,  and  perseverance, 
to  the  use  of  all  the  appointed  means  by  which  the  necessary  and 
happy  change  may  be  produced  in  your  souls.  Pray  fervently  that 
"  he  who  at  first  commanded  the  light  to  shine  out  of  darkness,  may 
himself  shine  into  your  hearts,"  by  his  word  and  Spirit ;  "  to  give 
you  the  light  of  the  knowledge  of  his  glory  in  the  face  of  Jesus,  and 
thus  make  you  his  willing  people  in  the  day  of  his  power."     Amen. 


228  THE  FKUIT  OF  TUK  SPIKIT. 

Exercise  and  Addition. — Selkirk,  before  the  Preshytery. 
THE  FRUIT  OF  THE  SPIRIT. 

SERMON  XXV. 

Ephesians  v.  9, 

For  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  is  in  all  goodness,  and  righteousness,  and 

truth. 

Light,  in  religion,  without  heat  and  warmth,  is  so  unlike  heaven, 
that  it  will  issue  in  utter  darkness,  where  there  is  a  scorching  heat 
without  light.  True  spiritual  light,  is  like  John  Baptist,  a  burning 
and  a  shining  light.  "When  the  Spirit  was  poured  out  after  the  as- 
cension of  Christ,  for  the  enlightening  of  a  dark  world.  Acts  ii.  3, 
"  there  appeared  cloven  tongues  as  of  fire."  For,  as  upon  the 
confounding  of  tongues  at  Babel,  darkness  came  upon  the  world, 
the  holy  language  being  left  but  with  a  few,  and  corruption  of 
manne'-s  came  in  like  a  flood  upon  that  darkness  ;  so  when  the 
remedy  for  this  was  given  in  Ziou,  there  appeared  cloven  tongues, 
an  emblem  of  the  gift  of  tongues,  by  which  light  was  to  be  restored 
to  the  dark  world.  And  these  tongues  were  of  fire,  because  of  the 
dross  and  corruption  of  the  world,  to  be  burnt  up  by  them  ;  light 
and  purity  returning  together.  Thus  the  saving  influences  of  tho 
Spirit  are  together  enlightening  and  sanctifying:  "Walk  as  chil- 
dren of  the  light ;  for  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  is  in  all  goodness,  and 
righteousness,  and  truth."  That  these  words  are  parenthetical,  ap- 
pears from  that,  the  words  of  the  lOth  verse  are  so  constructed  with 
the  8th,  that  they  make  one  sentence  with  it;  our  text  being  inter- 
posed, as  in  the  midst  of  a  running  sentence.  Walk  as  children  of 
light.  Proving  what  is  acceptable  unto  the  Lord.  For  the  fruit  of 
the  Spirit,  &c. 

The  scope  of  the  text  is  to  shew  that  there  is  a  necessary  connec- 
tion betwixt  a  gracious  state  and  a  holy  life;  which  are  so  joined 
by  the  appointment  of  God,  and  the  nature  of  the  things,  that  they 
cannot  be  put  asunder.  It  is  true,  many  do  so  yoke  together  a 
splendid  profession  and  an  unholy  life,  as  if  they  had  found  out 
the  secret  of  conjoining  light  and  darkness,  Christ  and  Belial,  hid 
from  all  saints.  But  our  text  confounds  that  mystery  of  iniquity, 
shewing  that  whoever  are  light  in  respect  of  their  state,  will  be  so 
also  in  respect  of  their  conversation.  "  For  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit 
is  in  all  goodness,  and  righteousness,  and  truth."  For  clearing  the 
sense  of  these  words,  let  us  consider, 


THE  FRUIT  OF  XHK  SPIRIT.  229 

I.  The  connection. 

II.  The  words  themselves. 

III.  Raise,  and  illustrate  the  doctrines  contained  in  the  text. 
According  then  to  this  customary  method,  in  discourses  of  this 

kind,  I  am, 

I.  To  consider  the  connection  of  the  text  with  the  preceding 
words,  in  the  particle  for.  Some  think  the  particle  yap,  to  be  put 
for  it,  as  if  it  were  merely  a  note  of  transition,  as  it  is  sometimes 
used,  as  in  Luke  xii.  58 ;  aud  read,  "  Now  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit," 
&c. ;  but  to  this  I  do  not  accede.  It  is  a  rule  of  interpreting  Scrip- 
ture, worthy  to  be  written  in  letters  of  gold,  namely,  that  we  are 
never,  without  necessity,  to  depart  from  the  proper  aud  literal  sig- 
nification of  words.  And  although  an  eager  sticking  to  the  literal 
signification  of  words,  where  a  real  necessity  of  taking  them  impro- 
perly and  figuratively  is  sufficiently  intimated  by  the  Scripture 
itself,  has  been  of  fatal  consequence  in  divinity,  yet  I  nothing 
doubt,  but  men's  taking  to  themselves  a  liberty  of  receding  from  the 
proper  signification  of  words,  without  necessity,  has,  in  several  cases, 
cast  a  veil  over  the  true  sense  of  Scripture,  and  brought  in  upou 
the  text  what  may  be  the  true  sense  of,  instead  of  bringing  forth  out 
of  it,  what  must  be  so. 

Now  there  is  no  necessity  here  for  taking  this  particle  merely  for 
a  note  of  transition.  For,  is  to  be  taken  casually.  Though  the 
apostle  doth  not  here  teach  distinctly  and  directly,  how,  but,  ivhere- 
fore,  we  are  to  walk  as  children  of  the  light;  yet,  by  the  by,  he 
may,  and  really  doth  teach  how  we  shall  walk  so,  namely,  by 
bringing  forth  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit,  which  is  the  reason  alleged  for 
taking  it  transitively. 

We  take  it  then  casually,  as  our  own  and  other  translators  for 
the  most  part  do,  and  this  is  its  most  frequent  signification ;  and  so 
the  words  are  a  reason  for  something  going  before.  He  had  shewn 
both  the  condition  and  the  duty  of  the  Ephesians,  and  inferred  the 
latter  from  the  former,  and  in  the  text  gives  the  reason  of  the 
consequence.  May  not  we  walk  as  others,  might  they  say,  though 
we  be  light  in  the  Lord?  No,  says  the  apostle,  you  cannot;  for  if 
you  be  light  in  the  Lord,  you  shall  certainly  shine,  and  give  light 
in  your  conversation.  For  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit,  abiding  and  act- 
ing on  all  the  children  of  light,  is  in  all  goodness,  righteousness,  and 
truth. 

But  here,  vain  men,  who,  to  exalt  free  will,  trample  on  free  grace, 
may  cavil  and  say,  If  there  be  such  a  necessary  connection  betwixt 
being  light  in  the  Lord,  aud  walking  as  children  of  the  light,  in  all 
goodness,  &c.,  tlien  to  what  purpose  are  exhortations  to  the  duty  of 


230  THE  FKUIT  OF  XllE  SPIUIT. 

walking  so?  May  not  one  as  well  say  to  tlie  sun  in  the  firmament, 
Thou  art  the  sun,  walk  thou  as  the  sun  giving  light?  Answek, 
The  same  Grod  who  has  appointed  the  end,  has  appointed  the  means 
also,  and  they  are  joined  together,  not  to  be  separated  by  men. 
Exhortations  are  means  ordained  of  God  for  advancing  holiness  in 
heart  and  life,  in  these  brought  into  the  state  of  grace.  As  there  is 
a  necessary  connection  betwixt  a  foundation  of  Zion  which  the 
Lord  has  laid,  and  the  putting  of  the  copestone  on  it;  so  the 
means  of  building  up  are  by  that  very  thing  secured.  *'  Being  con- 
fident of  this  very  thing,  that  he  which  hath  begun  a  good  work 
in  you,  will  perform  it  until  the  day  of  Jesus."  It  is  true,  it  would 
be  vain  to  speak  to  the  sun  at  the  rate  aforesaid.  But  God  did 
speak  so  to  it.  Gen.  i.  14,  15;  and  it  is  by  virtue  of  that  efficacious 
word  that  the  sun  shines  to  this  day,  and  is  not  extinguished.  And 
as  his  Spirit  makes  the  saints  light  in  the  Lord,  so  it  is  by  virtue 
of  his  efficacious  word  that  they  walk  as  children  of  the  light,  in 
all  goodness,  &c. 

But,  ere  we  leave  this,  we  shall  remark,  that  before  the  apostle 
comes  directly  to  shew  how  they  must  walk  as  children  of  the  light, 
as  he  doth  in  the  10th  and  11th  verses,  he  here  urges  the  necessity 
of  it.  For  if  the  conscience  be  not  first  convinced  of  the  necessity  of 
a  duty,  one  will  but  little  regard  how  it  is  to  be  done.  The  good  of 
souls  is  the  supreme  law  of  preaching,  and  all  method  is  so  to  be 
managed  as  may  be  most  subservient  to  it.     Let  us  now  go  on, 

II.  To  consider  the  words  themselves,  which  are  a  proposition,  in 
which  we  shall  notice, 

1.  The  subject. 

2.  What  is  said  of  it. 

1.  The  subject  which  the  apostle  here  treats  of  is,  the  fruit  of  the 
Spirit.     And  here  we  must  take  notice, 

1.  Of  the  reading  in  some  Greek  copies,  rov  (ptarog,  instead  of  rov 
TTvtvfiaTog;  "  for  the  fruit  of  the  light  is,"  instead  of  "the  fruit  of  the 
Spirit."  But  to  confirm  the  common  reading  to  be  genuine,  it  may 
be  observed,  that  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  is  an  expression  used  else- 
where in  the  New  Testament,  namely,  Gal.  v.  22;  to  this  may  bo 
added  Rom.  viii.  23 ;  but  the  fruit  of  the  light,  nowhere,  as  I  re- 
member. Observe  also,  that  the  word  <pwTog,  being  in  the  last  part 
of  the  preceding  verse,  might,  by  the  inadvertency  of  the  tran- 
scriber, more  naturally  be  repeated  in  the  text  instead  of  TrvtvfiaTog, 
than  this  last  could  be  inserted  instead  of  (piitrog.  Lastly,  the  com- 
mon reading  is  the  more  forcible,  full,  and  decisive,  and  therefore 
to  be  retained.  For  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  comprehends  the  fruit, 
but  not  contrariwise ;  and  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  here  answers  the 
wnvd   "  in  the  Lord,"  light  in  the  Lord,  in  the  preceding  verse. 


THE  FRUIT  OF  THE  SPIRIT.  231 

2.  We  must  next  inquire  what  is  meant  by  the  Spirit  here  ? 
Some,  by  the  Spirit,  here  understand  the  new  creature,  or  the  light 
of  grace  wrought  by  the  Spirit  of  God  in  the  heart.  Others  un- 
derstand the  Holy  Ghost  himself.  This  last  seems  to  me  to  be  the 
genuine  sense  of  this  word  in  this  place,  and  that  because  it  is 
most  literal  and  proper  one  of  the  two  ;  since  the  new  nature,  or  the 
light  of  grace,  cannot  be  so  called,  but  as  the  effect  gets  the  name 
of  the  cause ;  and  there  is  no  necessity  for  receding  from  the  more 
proper  signification  in  this  text. 

But  to  prove  the  word  Spirit  to  be  taken  here  for  the  light  of 
grace,  not  the  Holy  Ghost  himself,  besides  the  different  reading 
already  considered,  two  things  are  alleged;  one  is,  that  here  there 
is  no  mention  of  the  Holy  Ghost  before,  but  of  light.  Answer. 
There  is  a  virtual,  though  not  express  mention  of  him  in  the  phrase, 
"  light  in  the  Lord,"  since  the  Spirit  is  the  bond  of  our  union  with 
Christ;  and  that  is  more  than  sufficient  ground  for  mentioning 
him  here.  Another  thing  more  weighty  is,  that  the  phrase,  the 
fruit  of  the  Spirit,  Gal.  v.  20,  must  be  so  understood,  being 
opposed  there  to  the  works  of  the  flesh,  ver.  19.  Now  as  fruit 
answereth  to  works,  say  they,  so  Spirit  does  to  flesh,  and  therefore 
must  be  understood  of  the  new  nature.  Answer.  I  judge  that 
several  learned  commentators,  who  understand  by  the  fruit  of  the 
Spirit  there,  the  fruit  of  the  Holy  Spirit  of  God,  are  in  the  right ; 
so  that  the  phrase  in  both  texts  signifies  the  same  thing.  And  the 
variation  of  the  phrases  there  does  not  obscurely  intimate  this, 
namely,  the  works  of  the  flesh  and  the  fruit  of  the  spirit;  not  the 
work  or  works  of  the  spirit,  that  is  of  the  new  nature;  which  the 
immediate  opposition  betwixt  the  old  and  new  nature  would  have 
required.  For  these  works  of  the  flesh,  like  wild  oats,  grow  of  their 
own  accord,  from  out  of  the  cursed  ground  of  our  corrupt  nature, 
without  toil  or  pains  about  them,  to  bring  them  forth.  But  these 
of  the  new  nature  do  not  so ;  they  must  be  produced  by  the  con- 
tinued influences  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  even  in  the  trees  already  planted 
in  the  house  of  God. 

I  will  not  conceal,  that  what  we  read  in  the  same  5th  chapter  of 
the  Galatians,  of  the  Spirit  lusting  against  the  flesh,  as  well  as  the 
flesh  against  the  Spirit,  in  the  same  combat,  seems  to  clash  with 
our  exposition.  But  I  cannot  help  thinking,  that  even  it  also  is 
meant  of  the  Holy  Spirit  himself,  in  so  far  as  he  stirs  in  the  saints 
holy  desires  and  lustings  ;  making  the  new  nature  to  act  and  lust,  in 
opposition  to  the  old  corrupt  nature  :  even  as  he  is  said  to  intercede, 
pray,  and  groan  with  groanings  which  cannot  be  uttered  ;  in  so  far 
as  hfi  stirs  up,  and  produces  these  in  the  saints,  Rom.  viii.  26.     It 


232  THE  FRUIT  OF  THE  SPIRIT. 

seems  to  be  reasonable  to  judge  the  Spirit  that  lusteth  (in  that  sensi) 
against  the  flosh,  ver.  17,  is  the  same  Spirit  by  which  the  saints  are 
led,  ver.  18.  But  the  Spirit  by  which  they  are  led  is  the  Spirit  of 
God,  Rom.  viii.  1-4. 

3.  What  is  meant  by  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  ?  From  what  is  said, 
it  plainly  follows,  that  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  is  not  the  fruit  of  the 
Spirit  as  the  subject  of  it,  but  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  as  an  agent, 
who  by  his  powerful  influences  produces  the  same  in  the  trees  of 
righteousnes,  or  the  branches  of  his  own  engrafting  into  the  true 
vine.  In  a  word,  it  is  the  product  of  the  Holy  Spirit  in  the  child- 
ren of  light,  which  is  pleasant  and  savoury  before  the  Lord,  there- 
fore called  fruit,  according  to  that,  "  My  fruit  is  better  than  gold, 
yea,  than  fine  gold."  "What  that  frnit  in  particular  is,  is  declared 
in  the  other  part  of  the  text. 

Lastly,  It  is  to  be  considered,  how  the  apostle's  speaking  here  of 
the  fruit  of  the  Spirit,  its  being  in  all  goodness,  &c.,  concludes  what 
was  to  be  proved.  The  matter  lies  here.  The  reasoning  is  founded 
on  that  fundamental  maxim  of  practical  Christianity,  that  the 
Holy  Spirit,  the  Spirit  of  Light,  abides,  acts,  and  produceth  fruit  in 
all  the  children  of  light,  in  all  those  who  are  light  in  the  Lord. 
For  Jesus  Christ  is  by  the  Father  constituted  the  head  of  all  saving 
influences  ;  and  it  is  by  the  communion  of  his  Spirit  that  we  receive 
of  his  influences  to  make  us  fruitful.  The  Spirit  uniting  the  soul 
to  Christ,  the  fountain  of  light  and  life,  it  immediately  partakes  of 
the  light  of  life,  as  a  candle  is  lighted  by  a  burning  lamp  touch- 
ing it ;  but  the  candle,  separated  from  the  lamp,  would  continue  to 
burn,  as  having  in  itself  that  which  feeds  the  flame.  But  the  creature 
is  empty  in  itself,  and  therefore  must  be  fed  continually  from  Jesus 
Christ,  by  the  communion  of  his  Spirit  maintaining  the  bond  of  union 
betwixt  Christ  and  the  soul,  and  taking  of  Christ  and  giving  to  it. 
So  that  if  it  were  possible  that  the  Spirit  should  once  totally  depart 
from  the  child  of  light,  and  the  union  be  broken,  that  moment  he 
would  return  to  his  former  darkness.  Now  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit, 
thus  abiding  and  acting  in  the  children  ot  light,  is  in  all  goodness, 
righteousness,  and  ti'uth  ;  therefore  it  necessarily  follows,  that  they 
that  are  light  in  the  Lord,  will  walk  as  children  of  light.  We  are 
now, 

2.  To  consider  what  is  said  of  this  fruit  of  the  Spirit.  '•  It  is  in 
all  goodness,"  &c.  There  is  an  ellipsis  here  of  the  copulating. 
Our  translators  supply  the  word,  k.  Some  versions  supply  the  word, 
consists.  Whatever  be  supplied,  that  seems  to  be  the  sense,  namely, 
that  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  consists  in  all  goodness,  &c.  Thus  we 
read.  Col.  i.  10,  of  being  fruitful  in  every  good  work.     Now,  here 


THE  FRUIT  OF  THE  SPIRIT.  233 

we  are  to  shew,  I.  "SVhat  are  the  particulars  in  which  the  fruit  of 
the  Spirit,  iu  a  child  of  light,  consists.  Tliese  are  goodness,  righte- 
ousness, and  truth.  Now,  forasmuch  as  all  Christian  virtues  are 
the  fruit  of  the  Spirit,  they  are  by  the  consent  of  interpreters  all 
summed  up  in  these  three.  And  as  every  thing  briugeth  forth  after 
its  kind,  so  these  are  agreeable  to  the  nature  of  the  Holy  Spirit, 
who  is  a  good  and  righteous  Spirit,  and  the  Spirit  of  truth  ;  and  so 
they  are  also  to  the  light,  as  our  Lord  shews,  John  iii.  20 ;  "  He 
that  doeth  evil  hateth  the  light,"  and  ver.  21,  "  He  that  doeth  truth 
Cometh  to  the  light." 

1.  Goodness.  There  is  a  twofold  notion  in  it:  1.  Of  loveliness; 
hence  the  phrase,  good  in  one's  eyes.  So  the  subject  of  goodness, 
whether  person  or  thing,  is  good  in  itself;  commendable,  lovely, 
desirable.  Thus  goodness  comprehends  holiness ;  purity  in  opposi- 
tion to  all  uncleanness  and  filthiness;  meekness,  patience,  &c.,  in 
opposition  to  wrath,  bitterness,  &c.,  which  the  apostle  had  before 
condemned;  and  also  faith,  without  which  none  please  God.  2. 
It  has  also  the  notion  of  commuuication ;  all  good  being  communi- 
cative of  itself,  as  philosophers  observe.  Thus  a  good  person  or 
thing  is  good  to  others,  that  is,  beneficent  or  profitable.  "  Hence,'' 
says  Paul,  "  let  no  corrupt  communication  proceed  out  of  your 
mouth  ;  but  that  which  is  good,  to  the  use  of  edifying,  that  it  may 
minister  grace  to  the  hearers.  Thus  it  comprehends  bounty,  mercy ; 
in  a  word,  a  disposition  to  do  good  to  others  in  their  souls  and 
bodies :  and  so  it  is  opposed  to  covetousness,  revenge,  malice,  &c., 
before  condemned.  Hence  we  cannot,  with  some,  take  goodness  as 
relating  only  to  one's  self.  For  though,  indeed,  the  goodness  of  a 
cliild  of  light  cannot  extend  to  God  in  this  last  sense,  yet  it  may 
and  must  to  one's  neighbour,  Psal.  xvi.  2,  3. 

2.  Righteousness  iu  the  extent  of  its  signification,  speaks  a  con- 
formity to  the  law  in  all  the  parts  thereof.  But  being  here  contra- 
distinguished to  goodness,  it  cannot  be  taken  in  that  large  sense, 
but  in  a  more  restrained  one;  namely,  as  it  denotes  that  whereby 
we  are  inclined  to  give  every  one  his  due.  This  is  justice  in  all  our 
dealings  with  men,  of  whatever  sort.  Thus  the  Jews  distinguished 
righteous  men  from  good  men.  The  righteous  man,  according  to 
them,  says  what  is  mine  is  mine,  what  is  thine  is  thine  own.  But 
the  good  man  says,  what  is  mine  is  thine,  and  what  is  thine  is  thine 
own ;  to  which  the  apostle  seems  to  have  an  eye,  Rom.  v.  6,  7- 
Now  this  fruit  of  the  Spirit,  righteousness  or  justice,  is  opposed  to 
that  covetousness  before  condemned. 

Truth  has  a  respect  to  God,  ourselves,  and  our  neighbour.  There 
is  a  truth  of  the  heart,  in  uprightness  and  sincerity.     A  truth  of 


234  THE  FRUIT  OF  THE  SriRIT. 

tilings,  words,  and  actions.  Hence  are  these  words  of  our  Lord, 
"  He  that  doeth  truth  coineth  to  the  light."  That  is  true  things, 
agreeable  to  the  rule,  and  having  the  reality  of  Christian  actions, 
and  not  a  shew  and  semblance  of  them  only.  A  truth  of  thought 
and  judgment,  whereby  one  judgeth  aright  of  things  ;  and  a  truth  of 
speech,  whether  testifying,  teaching,  or  promising;  all  this  comes 
under  the  name  of  truth,  which  is  opposed  here  to  dissimulation  and 
lies,  with  respect  to  God  and  man  ;  and  to  error,  delusion,  and  vain 
hopes,  whereby  a  person  himself  is  deluded  and  deceived.  It  is 
particularly  set  against  that  deceit  spoken  of,  ver.  6th,  which  could 
find  no  place  but  under  the  covert  of  darkness. 

2.  Let  us  attend  to  the  extent  of  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit,  with 
respect  to  these  particulars.  "  It  is  in  all  goodness,"  &c.  I  make 
no  question  but  this  note  of  universality  belongs  to  all  the  three  ; 
the  phrase  itself  natively  importing  it.  The  fruit  of  the  Spirit  is 
not  only  in  some  goodness,  righteousness,  and  truth — though  many 
deceive  themselves  with  parcels  and  shreds  of  these  things — but  it 
is  in  all  goodness  in  one's  self  and  to  his  neighbour ;  in  all  righte- 
ousness towards  man ;  in  all  truth  with  respect  to  God,  our  neigh- 
bour, and  ourselves.  And  these  things  are  interwoven  one  with 
another,  in  the  fruit  of  the  Sjiirit.  The  goodness  is  true,  and 
justles  out  no  sort  of  righteousness  or  justice,  communicative  nor 
distributive,  remunerative  nor  punitive.  The  righteousness  is  true 
and  good;  from  right  principles,  motives,  and  ends.  So  is  the 
truth,  as  it  is  here  distinguished,  proceeding  from  a  good  principle. 
Meanwhile,  this  extent  of  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit  is  to  be  understood 
not  in  a  legal,  but  an  evangelical  sense;  of  a  perfection  of  parts, 
not  of  degrees. 

Lastly,  Let  us  shew  how  these  are  the  fruit  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  in 
the  children  of  light.  They  are  so  in  three  respects.  1.  He  im- 
plants them  in  the  soul,  giving  it  a  good,  righteous,  and  true  incli- 
nation and  propensity,  agreeable  to  the  holy  law,  according  to  that, 
"I  will,"  saith  the  Lord,  "put  my  law  into  their  minds,  and  write 
them  in  their  hearts  ;  and  I  will  be  to  them  a  God,  and  they 
shall  be  to  me  a  people."  2.  He  preserves  these  graces  when  im- 
planted, 1  Peter  i.  5,  without  which  they  would  die  out.  And,  3. 
He  excites,  quickens,  and  brings  them  forth  to  action,  in  the  heart 
and  life  of  the  children  of  light.  Song  iv.  16. 

The  sura  of  the  whole  matter  is  this.  Those  who  are  light  in  the 
Lord,  must  needs  walk  as  children  of  light ;  because  the  Spirit  of 
God,  abiding  in  them,  does  produce  fruit  in  them,  consisting  in  all 
righteousness,  goodness,  and  truth,  in  their  hearts  and  lives,  with 
respect  to  God,  themselves,  and  their  neighbours. 


THK  FRUIT  OF  THE  SPIRIT.  235 

Doctrine  I.  The  Spirit  of  Christ  abiding  in  the  children  of  light, 
produces  agreeable  fruit  in  their  hearts  and  lives. 

Doctrine  II.  Goodness,  righteousness,  and  truth,  are  the  fruits 
of  the  children  of  light,  produced  in  them  by  the  Spirit  of  Christ. 

Doctrine   III.     True    Christian   fruitfulness   is   universal.      A 
word  to  each  of  these. 

Doctrine  I.  The  Spirit  of  Christ  abiding  in  the  children  of 
light,  produces  agreeable  fruit  in  their  hearts  and  lives ;  even  fruit 
suitable  to  his  own  nature,  and  their  gracious  state.  For  confirma- 
tion of  this  consider, 

1.  The  Spirit  is  an  active  bond  of  union  betwixt  Christ  and  the 
children  of  light,  these  that  are  in  him.  By  this  Spirit,  an  empty 
creature  is  united  to  a  full  Christ;  and  by  the  same  made  partaker 
of  his  fulness,  to  their  bringing  forth  fruit  in  him.  "  The  Spirit 
shall  glorify  me,"  saith  Christ,  "  for  he  shall  receive  of  mine,  and 
shall  shew  it  unto  you."  Hence  we  read  "  of  the  supply  of  the 
Spirit  of  Jesus  Christ."  It  is  by  the  soul's  feeding  on  Christ  that  it 
lives,  and  whosoever  feed  on  him,  shall  live  by  him,  a  life  of  holi- 
ness, as  well  as  comfort.  "  He  that  eateth  me,"  saith  Jesus,  "  even 
he  shall  live  by  me."  Meanwhile,  our  Lord  tells  us,  that  this  life 
is  by  the  participation  of  his  Spirit.  It  is  the  Spirit  that  quicken- 
eth. 

2.  Consider  the  end  for  which  the  Spirit  is  given  to  these  that  are 
his.  It  is  in  a  special  manner  for  their  sanctification,  Ezek.  xxxvi. 
26,  27 ;  so  that  all  who  are  chosen  of  God  to  everlasting  life,  are 
sanctified  by  the  Spirit.  "  For  they  are  chosen  to  salvation  through 
sanctification  of  the  Spirit,  and  belief  of  the  truth."  It  is  his  work 
to  conform  them  more  and  more  unto  the  image  of  Christ,  and  he  ef- 
fects it  accordingly.  "  For  they  are  changed  into  the  same  image, 
from  glory  to  glory,  even  as  by  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord."  And  the 
same  Spirit  being  in  them  which  is  in  Jesus  Christ,  cannot  fail  to 
make  them  like  him  in  their  beariug  the  fruits  of  holiness  ;  even  as 
in  Ezekiel's  vision,  when  the  living  creatures  were  lifted  up  from 
the  earth,  the  wheels  were  lifted  up  also,  for  the  spirit  of  the  living 
creatures  was  in  the  wheels. 

3.  The  several  designations  given  to  the  Holy  Spirit  evince  this. 
He  is  called  the  Holy  Spirit,  not  only  because  he  is  holy  himself; 
but  chiefly,  because  he  makes  them  holy  in  whom  he  dwells.  He 
is  the  Spirit  of  grace  ;  for  he  implants  it,  preserves  it,  excites, 
strengthens  it,  and  at  length  perfects  it.  He  is  the  Spirit  of  life 
who  mortifies  the  old  man,  and  quickens  the  new.  He  is  the  water 
that  purges  away  the  filth  of  sin,  and  makes  the  soul  fruitful.     He 

Vol.  IV.  Q 


236  THE  FRUIT  or  THE  SPIRIT. 

is  even  a  fountain  of  living  water  springing  up  in  the  soul.  He  is 
the  fire  that  burns  up  corruption,  and  inflames  the  heart  with  the 
love  of  God.  And,  to  add  no  more,  he  is  the  wind  from  heaven, 
making  the  spices  in  Christ's  garden  to  flow  out. 

Use.  1.  Of  information.  This  lets  us  see,  that  in  vain  are  the 
pretences  to  the  Spirit  and  a  gracious  state,  in  those  who  bring  not 
forth  the  fruits  of  holiness  in  their  hearts  and  lives.  The  trees  of 
righteousness  bring  forth  holy  fruits.  "  If  God  be  our  Father,  where 
is  our  honour  of  him  ;  if  our  Master,  where  is  our  fear  of  him."  If 
the  Spirit  of  Christ  be  in  us,  where  are  our  love,  joy,  peace,  for  these 
are  the  fruit  of  the  Spirit. 

2.  Those  who  are  so  far  from  the  fruits  of  holiness,  that  their 
profane  lives  are  filled  with  the  fruits  of  wickedness,  have  not  the 
Spirit,  but  are  in  darkness,  Gal.  v.  19.  To  what  purpose  do  men 
pretend  faith  in  Christ,  while  they  go  on  in  a  course  of  sin,  and  will 
not  part  with  their  lusts.  They  that  are  Christ's,  have  Christ's 
Spirit;  and  that  Spirit  will  give  quite  a  new  turn  to  their  hearts 
and  lives. 

Use  2.  Of  exhortation.  Unholy  sinners,  as  ever  you  would  be 
holy,  labour  to  get  Christ's  Spirit  in  you,  to  dwell  in  you,  and  act  in 
you. 

Motive  1.  "Without  the  Spirit  you  are  undone  for  ever ;  for  with- 
out the  Spirit,  without  Christ ;  for  if  any  man  have  not  the  Spirit  of 
Christ,  he  is  none  of  his.  Without  Christ,  without  God,  and  with- 
out hope.  The  dead  corpse  may  be  kept  a  while  ;  but  when  there  is 
no  hope  of  the  return  of  life  to  it,  it  is  buried  in  a  grave.  So,  with- 
out the  Spirit,  you  may  be  through  the  patience  of  God  spared  a 
while  ;  but  the  end  will  be,  to  be  cast  into  the  pit,  and  buried  out  of 
God's  sight. 

Motive  2.  If  you  get  the  Spirit,  you  are  made  up  for  ever. 
When  the  Spirit  comes,  life  comes  that  shall  never  fail,  John  iv.  14. 
He  will  unite  you  to  Christ,  quicken,  enlighten,  and  sanctify  you. 
He  will  give  you  grace,  actuate  and  increase  it,  and  change  you 
from  glory  to  glory. 

Direction.  Pray  earnestly  for  the  Spirit.  Your  heavenly  Father 
shall  give  the  holy  Spirit  to  them  that  ask  him.  Look  and  wait  for 
the  Spirit  in  all  ordinances.  "  Blessed  are  they  that  sow  beside  all 
waters."  They  that  would  have  the  wind  blow  on  them,  go  out  into 
the  open  air ;  though  they  cannot  raise  it,  they  go  where  it  blows. 
Give  up  yourselves  to  the  Spirit ;  say,  "  Turn  me,  and  I  shall  be 
turned  ;  for  thou  art  the  Lord  my  God."  Lay  down  yourselves  at 
his  feet,  to  be  enlightened,  quickened,  and  sanctified.  Cherish  the 
least  spark ;  it  may  increase  into  a  flame. 


TIIR  FRUIT  OF  THE  SPIRIT.  237 

2.  Children  of  light,  as  you  would  abound  in  the  fruits  of  holi- 
ness, take  heed  how  you  entertain  the  Spirit.  Resist  him  not,  but 
fall  in  with  liira  in  his  operation.  Quench  not  the  Spirit.  Beware 
of  casting  water  on  the  holy  fire,  by  sinning  against  light,  or  by  in- 
dulging in  sensuality.  "Withdraw  not  fuel  from  it,  by  neglecting 
the  motions  of  the  Spirit.  Smother  it  not,  by  not  giving  vent  to  the 
motions  and  operations  of  the  Spirit  within  you. 

DocTRiJTE  II.  Goodness,  righteousness,  and  truth,  are  fruits  of 
the  Spirit  in  the  children  of  light,  produced  in  them  by  the  Holy 
Spirit  of  Christ.  For  the  confirmation  of  this,  I  shall  only  briefly 
observe, 

1.  That  God  is  good,  righteous,  and  true ;  and  they  are  partakers 
of  the  divine  nature,  2  Pet.  i.  4 ;  and  so,  as  children,  they  resemble 
God  their  Father. 

2.  That  God  has  been  in  a  special  and  gracious  manner,  good, 
righteous,  and  true  to  them.  As  to  the  point  of  righteousness,  that 
Scripture  may  be  noted,  "  He  is  just  to  forgive  us  our  sins,  and  to 
cleanse  us  from  all  unrighteousness,"  namely,  for  the  merits  of 
Christ.  And  it  is  the  nature  of  God's  dispensations  of  saving  grace, 
to  impress  the  same  dispositions  on  the  happy  subjects  of  them. 
They  are  changed  into  the  same  image,  from  glory  to  glory. 

3.  That  the  holy  law  is  a  law  of  goodness,  righteousness,  and 
truth.     This  law  is  written  on  their  hearts,  Heb.  viii.  10. 

Lastly,  That  wickedness,  unrighteousness,  and  lies,  are  the  works 
of  the  devil,  and  the  works  of  the  flesh ;  to  which  the  fruits  pro- 
duced by  the  Spirit  in  the  new  man  are  directly  contrary. 

Use  1.  This  writes  death  on  the  foreheads  of  three  sorts  of  persons : 

1.  "Wicked,  ungodly,  and  ungracious  men,  who  are  far  from  good- 
ness, remaining  in  the  evil  state  and  disposition  in  which  they  were 
born  ;  in  whose  mind,  will,  and  affections,  the  evil  of  sin  yet  reigns ; 
and  are  neither  graciously  good  in  nor  to  themselves,  nor  others. 
That  is  an  evidence  that  the  good  Spirit  of  God  has  never  yet  en- 
tered into  that  heart  to  dwell  there.  Alas  !  will  some  say,  I  see 
much  evil,  all  evil  in  my  heart,  but  goodness  is  far  from  me. 
Answer.  It  is  a  piece  of  gracious  goodness  for  one  to  see  the  evil 
of  his  own  heart;  but  yet  there  is  a  pearl  of  goodness  in  the  saints, 
amidst  a  dunghill  of  evil.  God  owns  it  for  goodness  though  it  be 
so,  and  it  is  folly  in  thee  to  deny  it. 

2.  Unrighteous  men,  who  are  unjust  in  their  dealings  with  men, 
who  are  given  to  fraud,  cheating,  and  tricking,  if  they  can  gain 
thereby ;  and  can  go  over  the  belly  of  conscience  and  common  justice, 
to  advance  their  worldly  interest.      This  is  an  evidence  that  the 

q2 


238  THE  FRUIT  OF  THE  SPIRIT. 

world  is  your  Crod  and  portion ;  that  there  is  no  fear  of  God  before 
your  eyes;  that  you  are  children  of  darkness  and  not  of  light.  Let 
me  tell  you,  where  you  win  a  penny  by  it,  you  lose  a  talent;  the 
gain  is  the  price  of  blood,  of  thy  soul. 

3.  Those  who  make  no  conscience  of  truth.  Children  in  whom 
there  is  no  truth,  are  not  children  of  light.  Such  are  hypocrites  and 
dissemblers  with  God,  who  pretend  fair,  but  whose  heart  is  not  up- 
right with  the  Lord ;  who,  under  the  cloak  of  a  profession  of  religion, 
indulge  themselves  in  sin,  in  some  living  reigning  lust  or  other.  Ah  ! 
whom  do  you  mock.  Be  not  deceived,  God  is  not  mocked.  Such, 
like  the  false  mother,  divide  the  child ;  by  a  holy  profession,  and  an 
unholy  practice.  So  shall  their  doom  be  to  be  cut  asunder,  and  have 
their  portion  with  hypocrites.  Such  are  liars,  who  make  no  con- 
science of  speaking  truth ;  especially  such  as  lie  in  defence  of  an 
unholy  life,  which  is  a  most  common  sin ;  there  being  everywhere 
agents  of  the  devil,  who  have  abundance  of  vain  words  to  bestow 
in  defence  of  these  things.  These  are  of  their  father  the  devil,  and 
with  him  they  must  lodge  for  evermore.  Rev.  xxi.  8. 

Use  2.  Of  exhortation.     Let  us, 

1.  Study  goodness.  To  be  good,  pleasing,  and  acceptable  in  the 
sight  of  God,  and  of  men  also,  so  far  as  we  may  in  God's  way ; 
namely,  by  meeknesss,  gentleness,  readiness  to  do  good ;  and  for 
this  cause,  let  us  hate  sin  as  the  greatest  evil.  Let  us  all  endeavour 
to  be  beneficial  to  mankind,  as  we  have  access ;  to  embrace  all  occa- 
sions offered  for  the  advancing  of  the  temporal,  but  especially  the 
spiritual  good  of  others.  Let  no  man  say.  Am  I  ray  brother's  keeper  ? 
Nor  of  the  ruin  of  others.  What  is  that  to  us  ?  And  let  us  abridge 
ourselves  of  our  liberty,  even  in  lawful  things,  to  that  very  end,  that 
we  destroy  not  those  for  whom  Christ  died. 

2.  Be  strictly  just  in  all  our  dealings  with  men.  Moral  honesty 
is  not  the  whole  of  religion,  but  it  is  such  a  necessary  part  of  it,  as 
the  want  of  it  will  declare  a  man  a  stranger  to  real  godliness,  profess 
what  he  will,  Psal.  xv.  1 — 3. 

Lastly,  Let  us  study  truth  and  cleave  to  it.  Truth  and  sincerity 
of  heart  before  the  Lord;  the  doctrine  of  truth,  and  truth  in  all  our 
words. 

Doctrine  IIL  True  Christian  fruitfulness  is  universal.  On  this 
I  have  not  time  to  enlarge. 

Use.  By  this  we  may  try  our  state,  and  whether  our  fruit  be  the 
fruit  of  the  Holy  Spirit  in  us  or  not.  True  fruit  is  universal.  Col. 
i.  10 ;  Psal.  cxix.  6.  There  is  a  perfection  of  parts  in  the  fruit  of 
the  Spirit  in  believers,  though  not  of  degrees.     They  do  sincerely 


CHRIST  THE  LIFE,  &C.  239 

aim  at  all,  and  endeavour  all  the  parts  of  goodness  and  holiness, 
though  in  none  of  them  they  attain  to  legal  perfection.  Hypocrites 
are  ever  partial  in  their  fruits,  pretended  to  be  fruits,  and  never  aim 
at  universal  obedieuce  of  heart  and  life.     Amen. 


Eyemouth,  July  12,  1706. — Monday  after  the  Sacrament. 
CHRIST  THE  LIFE  OF  THE  BELIEVER. 

SERMON    XXYI. 

Philippians  i.  21, 
For  me  to  live  is  Christ. 

In  a  day  of  converting  grace,  in  Christ's  marriage-day,  there  is  a 
glorious  transmigration  of  souls  betwixt  Christ  and  believers.  Christ 
loves  the  believer,  and  the  believer  loves  Christ.  The  believer  has 
Christ's  heart,  Song  iv.  9,  "  Thou  hast  ravished  my  heart,  my  sister, 
my  spouse."  Some  render  it,  "  Thou  hast  knit  my  heart  to  thine  ;" 
as  if  they  had  no  more  two  hearts,  but  one.  The  Septuagint  ren- 
ders it,  unhcarts  me.  And  Christ  has  the  believer's  heart.  "  Whom 
have  I  in  the  heaven  but  thee ;  and  there  is  none  in  all  the  earth 
that  I  desire  besides  thee."  The  believer  desires  nothing  beside 
him,  nothing  like  him,  nothing  after  him.  As  the  lady  at  Cyrus' 
feast,  who  said  she  saw  none  but  her  husband.  Christ  Jives  in  the 
believer.  Gal.  v.  20.  Christ  is  his  life,  Col.  iii.  4.  Alas !  that 
there  should  be  so  many  Christless  Christians,  who  never  have 
discovered  the  beauty  of  this  plant  of  renown.  Paul  was  none 
of  these,  as  appears  in  these  words,  wherein  we  are  to  consider, 

1.  The  sura  of  Paul's  practice:  "  To  me  to  live  is  Christ."  Some 
render  it,  "  for  Christ  is  gain  to  me  in  life  and  ia  death ;"  as  if  the 
sense  were,  whether  I  live  or  die,  Christ  is  always  my  gain.  But 
this  is  a  force  upon  the  text  which,  in  the  original,  runs  word  for 
word,  as  in  our  translation.  The  words  bear  another  sense.  The 
phrase,  indeed,  is  something  unusual ;  but  love  burning  in  the  heart 
to  Christ,  is  not  easily  satisfied  with  expression.  When  Hezekiali 
is  wondering  at  the  Lord's  love,  he  says,  "  thou  hast  in  love  to  my 
soul  delivered  it  from  the  pit  of  corruption :"  or,  thou  hast  loved 
my  soul  from  the  pit.  When  David  was  intent  on  prayer,  he  tells 
us,  but,  "  I  prayer,"  Psal.  cix.  4.  When  on  peace,  "  I  peace,"  Psal. 
cxx.  7.     Now  Christ  is  all  to  the  believer,  "  To  me  to  live  is  Christ.' 


240  CHRIST  THE  LIFE 

I  endeavour  to  live  Christ,  to  think  Christ,  to  speak  Christ.  As 
all  the  lines  drawn  from  the  circumference  to  the  centre  meet  in 
one  point ;  so  all  my  preaching,  all  my  suffering,  yea,  all  my  life, 
has  a  tendency  to  Christ,  to  please  him,  and  to  glorify  him.  Christ 
was  the  great  scope  of  his  life.  To  the  unrenewed  man,  to  live  is 
himself.  He  acts  from,  for,  and  to  himself.  Christ  gets  self's  room 
in  the  believer.     He  acts  from  him,  to  him,  and  for  him. 

2.  In  the  verse  there  is  the  sum  of  his  hopes:  "  To  die  is  gain." 
Death,  that  is  the  great  enemy  of  mankind,  shall  be  gainful  to  me. 
If  I  lose  a  temporal  life,  I  will  find  an  eternal.  I  will  make  a  good 
exchange  of  trouble,  for  eternal  rest;  of  a  miserable  world,  for 
heaven  ;  and  then  shall  I  fully  enjoy  this  Christ  for  whom  I  live  ; 
and  shall  also  glorify  him  in  death,  whom  I  glorify  by  life. 

3.  The  connection  of  a  holy  life,  and  a  happy  death.  To  live  is 
Christ,  before  to  die  be  gain.  These  God  has  joined,  and  no  man 
can  put  asunder ;  though  if  wishes  would  do,  they  would  be  often 
disjoined;  as  many  are  of  Balaam's  mind,  in  desiring  to  die  the 
death  of  the  righteous.  They  must  glorify  him  here,  who  shall  be 
glorified  by  him  hereafter. 

4.  The  dependence  of  these  words  on  the  preceding.  They  are  a 
reason  of  what  he  said  before,  ver.  20.  He  had  said,  that  he  hoped, 
(being  now  prisoner  at  Eome),  to  magnify  Christ  in  his  body ;  this 
he  might  do  either  by  his  life  or  by  his  death.  In  life  he  would 
preach  Christ,  by  death  he  would  confirm  his  preaching.  He  was 
not  solicitous  which  of  the  two  ways  Christ  should  glorify  him- 
self in  him,  so  that  he  were  glorified  by  him ;  and  the  reason  was, 
because  his  heart  was  bent  on  glorifying  Christ  in  life ;  so  if  he 
lived,  he  would  live  in  his  element,  and  if  he  died  it  should  be  gain 
both  to  himself  and  others,  and  he  should  glorify  Christ  that  way  also. 

DocTKiNE.  Christ  is  the  sum  and  scope  of  the  believer's  life. 
We  shall  shew, 

I.  "What  is  supposed  in  this. 

II.  "What  is  imported  in  it. 

III.  Why  is  it  so  with  the  believer.     We  are  then  to  shew, 

I.  What  is  supposed  in  this.  It  supposes  that  the  believer  has 
seen  Christ  in  his  beauty.  "  Thine  eyes  shall  see  the  King  in  his 
beauty."  There  is  an  interesting  question,  John  xiv.  22,  "  Lord, 
how  is  it  that  thou  wilt  manifest  thyself  unto  us,  and  not  unto  the 
world  ?"  There  is  an  illumination  in  the  knowledge  of  Christ,  given 
in  the  day  of  Christ's  power,  to  the  elect ;  that  the  world,  even  the 
most  refined  hypocrites,  attain  not  unto ;  that  determines  them  to 
make  Christ  their  all.     The  illumination  of  the  Arminians,  that 


OF  THE  BELIEVER.  241 

leaves  the  will  in  suspense,  is  often  the  attainment  of  castaways. 
But  the  elect  get  one  of  another  sort,  John  iv.  10.  They  who 
are  thus  brought  to  know  his  name,  will  put  their  trust  in  him. 
Hypocrites  see  him,  as  it  were,  but  in  his  ordinary  clothes,  hence 
they  see  no  beauty  in  him,  that  they  should  desire  hira ;  and  hence 
such  unmannerly  treatment  of  him  at  his  table,  for  had  they  known 
him,  they  would  not  have  thus  crucified  the  Lord  of  glory.  The  be- 
liever sees  him  in  his  royal  robes,  clothed  with  glory,  and  alto- 
gether lovely.  There  are  two  things  which  every  believer  has  seen 
in  Christ,  but  uo  hypocrite  has  seen  them : 

1.  His  transcendent  excellency,  Matth.  xiii.  45,  46.  They  have 
Been  that  in  him  that  has  darkened  all  created  excellency.  As 
when  the  sun  ariseth,  the  stars  hide  their  heads,  the  candles  are 
blown  out.  The  sun  serves  instead  of  candles,  moon,  and  stars.  If 
others  see  this,  why  do  they  i)refer  a  lust  to  Christ;  why  is  not  to 
them  to  live  Christ. 

2.  His  fulness,  his  all-sufficiency,  John  i.  16  ;  Luke  xv.  17.  An 
ass's  head  gave  a  great  price  at  Samaria,  in  time  of  famine ;  and 
so  the  doings  of  the  world  appear  bulky,  when  the  fulness  of  the 
Mediator  is  not  discovered.  The  treasure  may  be  concealed,  hid  un- 
der the  beggar's  feet,  hence  he  goes  from  door  to  door ;  but  if  it 
were  seen,  he  would  leave  off  his  old  trade  and  live  upon  his  own. 
"With  Peter,  he  would  say  to  Christ,  "  Lord,  to  whom  shall  we  go  ? 
Thou  hast  the  words  of  eternal  life  ;"  and  from  him  he  would  re- 
ceive that  water,  which  would  be  in  him  a  well  of  living  water, 
springing  up  to  everlasting  life. 

II.  We  are  to  shew  what  is  imported  in  it. 

1.  It  imports  that  the  believer's  life  is  bound  up  in  Christ's. 
"Ye  are  dead,"  says  Paul,  "and  your  life  is  hid  with  Christ  in 
God.  When  Christ,  who  is  your  life,  shall  appear,  then  shall  we 
also  appear  with  hira  in  glory."  This  he  himself  tells  us,  "  Because 
I  live,  ye  shall  live  also."  What  was  David's  encouragement  against 
all  distress?  it  was,  "the  Lordliveth;"  and  of  his  joy,  and  that 
made  him  that  he  could  lay  down  his  body  with  confidence  in  a 
grave  ?  it  was,  "  thou  wilt  not  leave  my  soul  in  hell,  neither  wilt 
thou  suffer  thine  holy  one  to  see  corruption."  The  believer's  hopes 
are  all  in  Christ,  and  should  he  die,  they  and  their  all  would  die 
with  hira.  The  apostle,  in  the  text,  lets  us  know  his  judgment,  that 
life  is  not  worth  the  having,  without  Christ.  What  is  life  but  a 
vapour  ?  Our  days  are  few  and  evil ;  desirable  not  for  their  own 
sake,  but  for  Christ's  sake. 

2.  Christ  is  the  object  of  the  believer's  life :  (suffer  me  to  term  it 
so).     As  the  tradesman  is  taken  up  about  his  employment,  so  is 


242  CHRIST  THE  LIFE 

the  believer  about  Christ :  "  For  I  determine,"  says  he,  "  not  to 
know  any  thing  among  you,  save  Jesus  Christ,  and  him  crucified." 
The  actions  of  his  life  do  habitually  centre  in  him,  though  in  them- 
selves they  be  divers.     I  shall  instance  in  some  particulars : 

1.  Christ  is  the  believer's  study,  Philip,  iii.  8,  10.  He  is  the 
main  thing  which  they  desire  to  know.  The  mysteries  of  nature 
only,  are  prized  by  some ;  but  the  mystery  of  Christ  is  chiefly 
prized  by  believers.  Here  all  the  treasures  of  wisdom  and  know- 
ledge are;  not  only  subjectively,  but  objectively.  0  what  a  round- 
about way  do  men  ordinarily  take  to  gain  knowledge !  Paul  took 
the  shortest  way,  when  he  determined  to  hold  by  Christ  crucified ; 
for  that  is  the  body  of  divinity  taught  to  the  scholars  of  the  Spirit 
of  God.  "  He  shines  in  our  hearts,  to  give  the  light  of  the  know- 
ledge of  the  glory  of  God  in  the  face  of  Jesus."  Look  to  him  in 
his  natures  and  offices ;  in  what  he  did,  and  what  he  suff"ered,  from 
his  conception,  to  his  sitting  at  God's  right  hand,  and  you  will  see 
a  complete  system.  "Would  you  know  what  God  is;  what  man  is 
by  nature,  and  what  by  grace — all  may  be  learned  there. 

Now,  concerning  this  study  of  the  believer,  I  would  remark, 
that  sometimes  his  book  falls  by-hand.  They  lose  their  sight  of 
Christ,  the  face  of  Jesus  is  vailed  to  them.  Like  Job,  they  cannot 
perceive  him  on  either  side.  This  makes  their  faces  gather  black- 
ness, and  makes  them  go  about  with  Job's  cry  in  their  mouth,  "  0 
that  I  knew  where  I  might  find  him,  that  I  might  come,  even  to  his 
seat."  For  why,  if  he  be  gone,  what  have  we  more  ?  for  comfort, 
life,  God,  and  guide,  are  gone. 

Again,  when  the  believer  would  know  the  nature  of  God,  and 
what  he  is  to  him,  he  reads  all  through  the  vail  of  the  flesh  of 
Christ,  for  it  is  in  him  only  that  God  is  well  pleased,  Heb.  x.  19, 
20.  God  out  of  Christ  is  a  terrible  sight,  to  those  who  know  what 
sin  is,  as  the  believer  does.  He  looks  to  his  mercies  through  Christ, 
and  that  makes  the  least  of  them  appear  very  great.  He  takes  a 
cup  of  cold  water  as  sent  to  him  by  the  sea  of  Christ's  blood,  and 
sees  Christ  in  every  mercy.  But  finally,  whatever  he  sees  in  Christ, 
there  is  always  something  beyond  what  he  has  attained,  Eph.  iii. 
18,  19.  There  are  new  jewels  still  to  come  out  of  this  treasure. 
The  desire  is  kindled  to  know  more  of  him  ;  like  Moses,  shew  me 
ihy  glory, 

2.  Christ  is  the  believer's  choice,  Psal.  Ixxiii.  25.  The  believer's 
choice  is  far  different  from  the  world,  Psal.  iv.  6,  7-  He  chooses 
Christ  above  all.  He  sees  him  as  the  best  among  ten  thousand,  and 
altogether  lovely.  These  eagle-eyed  ones  can  see  defects  in  all 
created  enjoyments,   but  none   in   Christ.      There   are  two  defects 


OF  THE  BELIEVER.  243 

wliich  tliey  see  in  all  others.  1.  Uncertainty.  They  see  honour  but 
like  a  windy  bubble,  that  children  blow  up,  presently  gone.  Riches 
to  be  the  name  of  nothing  ;  like  a  flock  of  fowls  that  light  upon  a 
man's  ground,  that  presently  take  wing.  2.  Insufficiency.  They 
are  no  way  commensurable  to  the  desires  of  an  immortal  soul.  "  I 
have  seen,"  says  he,  "an  end  of  all  perfection."  Now  he  sees 
Christ  to  be  a  certain  and  a  sufficient  good. 

He  also  chooses  Christ  instead  of  all,  and  takes  him  for  all.  The 
godly  man  knows  he  is  all-sufficient.  This  is  a  wise  choice.  It  is 
but  a  choosing  of  the  fountain  instead  of  the  streams.  Whatever 
perfections  are  in  the  creature  scattered  up  and  down,  he  has  them 
concentered  in  him. 

Christ  has  the  believer's  affections.  Christ  is  his  treasure,  and 
therefore  his  heart  is  upon  him.  The  affections  that  were  some- 
times scattered  and  misplaced,  are  now  gathered  together;  and  as 
all  the  rivers  run  into  the  sea,  so  they  all  run  to  Christ.  His  love 
is  set  on  that  lovely  one,  and  he  will  neither  be  driven,  nor  bribed 
from  it.  "  Many  waters  cannot  quench  love,  neither  can  the  floods 
drown  it."     Their  desires  are  toward  him,  Isa.  xxvi.  8. 

His  hope  is  in  him.  His  joy  is  in  Jesus,  Phil.  iii.  3.  His  delight 
is  in  him ;  and  if  any  person  or  thing  has  any  of  his  love,  it  is  for 
Christ's  sake.  This  is  the  habitual  bent  of  the  soul.  His  sorrow  is 
for  olfending  him.  He  mourns  most  bitterly  for  having  pierced  him. 
His  hatred  is  against  sin,  as  the  abominable  thing  that  Christ  hates. 
His  fear  is  also  lest  he  provoke  him. 

Even  the  believer's  body  is  devoted  to  Christ.  It  is  the  temple  of 
the  Holy  Ghost.  Their  members  are  instruments  of  righteousness. 
The  tongue  is  the  instrument  of  his  glory,  and  they  respect  their 
bodies  for  that  very  cause,  that  they  are  Christ's.  Hence,  if  he  call 
them  to  suffer  for  his  sake,  their  bodies  and  lives  are  at  his  service. 

3.  Christ  is  the  end  of  the  believer's  life.  He  liyes  to  Christ, 
Rom.  xiv.  8.  He  endeavours  to  please  him.  Men-pleasers,  and 
those  who  please  Christ,  divide  the  whole  world.  "  If  I  yet  pleased 
men,"  says  Paul,  "  I  should  not  be  the  servant  of  Christ."  The 
true  Christian  has  renounced  his  own  will,  and  taken  Christ's  will 
for  his.  He  hath  learned  to  submit  to  his  perceptive  and  providen- 
tial will,  that  in  all  things  he  may  please  him  to  whom  he  owes  him- 
self. He  endeavours  to  glorify  Christ.  His  life  is  a  burden  to  him, 
if  he  conceive  he  can  do  nothing  for  Christ.  He  is  ready  to  think 
that  day  a  lost  day,  in  which  Christ's  glory  has  not  been  advanced 
by  him  in  some  measure.  It  is  his  work,  and  therefore  he  lives  to 
pull  down  Satan's  kingdom,  and  to  advance  the  kingdom  of  Christ. 
The  honour  of  his  Lord  is  dear  to  him,  and  therefore  he  would  be  con> 


244  CHRIST  THE  LIFE 

tent,  with  the  Psalmist,  "to  make  his  name  to  be  remembered  in  all 
generations."  Hence,  he  is  one  that  will  speak,  for  Christ,  and  will 
not  be  ashamed  of  hira  before  men.  If  his  glory  be  impaired  by  others, 
he  will  strive  to  repair  it,  testifying  against  sin.  He  is  one  that 
will  commend  Christ,  and  sound  forth  his  praises  to  engage  others  to 
fall  in  love  with  him.  His  life  will  also  be  such,  as  may  bring 
glory  to  Christ.  He  will  labour  to  write  after  the  blessed  copy 
which  Christ  has  set  before  him.  If  he  be  called  to  suffer  for  Christ? 
he  will  not  refuse  it,  to  glorify  his  Lord.  We  proceed, 
III.  To  shew  why  it  is  so  with  the  believer  : 

1.  Because  Christ  lives  in  him.  Gal.  ii.  20.  The  same  Spirit  that 
dwells  in  Christ,  dwells  in  the  believer;  and  as  the  same  soul 
actuates  both  the  head  and  the  members,  the  oil  poured  on  the 
head  of  our  high  priest  runs  down  to  the  skirts  of  his  garments. 

They  are,  by  the  Spirit  of  Christ,  made  partakers  of  the  divine 
nature  ;  united  to  Jesus  Christ,  and  how  can  the  members  but  live 
to  the  holy  head  ? 

2.  They  had  their  life  by  the  death  of  Christ,  he  bought  them 
with  the  price  of  his  own  blood ;  no  wonder,  then,  that  to  them  to 
live  be  Christ.  As  Eve  was  made  of  a  rib  taken  out  of  Adam,  and 
thus  was  his  own,  so  they  are  Christ's.  They  are  his  by  right  of  re- 
demption, why  then  should  he  not  have  their  all  ?  He  gets  nothing 
from  them,  but  what  was  bought  at  a  dear  rate.  It  was  for  this  end 
he  died,  that  they  which  live  should  not  henceforth  live  unto  them- 
selves, but  unto  him  which  died  for  them,  and  rose  again."  If  one 
should  buy  a  thief  from  the  gallows,  would  he  not  be  obliged,  in 
gratitude,  to  be  wholly  his,  to  whom  he  owes  his  life.  Christ  bought 
us  from  death,  and  that  by  his  own  death.  How  can  the  believer 
reflect  on  the  price  paid,  but  he  must  say  to  hira,  to  live  is  Christ  ? 
0  !  says  the  believer,  if  the  foot  sinned,  and  God  drew  blood  of  the 
head  ;  I  contracted  the  debt,  and  my  husband  paid  it,  and  shall  I 
not  be  for  him.  There  are  five  things  that  weigh  much  with  the 
believer  here  : 

1.  The  vastness  of  the  price  which  Christ  paid  for  his  life, 
namely,  his  own  precious  blood,  1  Pet.  i.  19.  This  price  was  the 
blood  of  God,  Acts  xx.  28.  Had  a  world  been  crumbled  to  nothing, 
had  all  the  angels  been  loaded  with  the  wrath  of  God,  and  died  each 
of  them  ten  thousand  deaths  for  our  life  ;  what  had  all  this  been  to 
God  dying.  Believers  live  to  him,  because  they  see  his  glory  as  the 
only  begotten  of  the  Father,  hence  they  stand  and  wonder,  Isa.  Ixiii. 
1,  2.  They  wonder  at  the  Son  of  God  suffering  death  to  purchase 
their  life  ;  they  are  placed  here  as  the  iron  in  the  fire,  till  it  be  all  fire. 
2.  That  Christ  lived  for  them,  and  died  for  them.     What  brought 


OF  THE  BELIEVER.  245 

him  out  of  the  Father's  bosom,  but  his  love  to  them  ?  Why  could 
not  the  hallelujahs  of  angels  keep  liiin  at  court,  but  because  the 
cries  of  the  perishing  elect  pierced  his  heart  ?  Therefore  he  came 
down.  Father,  said  he,  they  shall  not  perish  ;  if  they  owe  any 
thing,  lay  it  to  my  account,  take  payment  of  me  ;  I  will  take  their 
place.  They  cannot  live,  unless  the  law  be  satisfied  by  obedience, 
and  justice  satisfied  for  the  sin  committed.  I  will  do  both.  So  he 
came,  and  lived  a  life  of  perfect  obedience  for  them,  and  died  a 
death  satisfactory  for  their  sins. 

3.  The  continuance  of  his  sufferings,  which  was  fi-om  his  birth  to 
his  death,  from  the  cradle  to  the  grave.  It  was  not  a  part  of 
Christ's  life  that  was  for  them,  but  it  was  the  whole  ;  and  how  can 
they  but  give  him  the  whole  of  theirs. 

4.  Any  thing  they  have  to  give  to  Christ,  any  thing  they  have 
with  which  to  entertain  him,  or  with  which  to  do  any  thing  for  him, 
they  owe  it  all  to  him.  That  they  have  a  soul  out  of  hell,  they  owe 
it  to  Christ,  and  shall  it  not  be  his  temple  ?  That  they  have  a 
heart  not  filled  with  horror  and  eternal  dispair,  they  owe  it  to  him » 
and  shall  he  not  have  it  ?  That  they  have  a  tongue  that  is  not 
burning  in  hell,  they  owe  it  to  him,  and  shall  not  they  act  for  him  ? 
— feet  that  are  not  standing  in  fire  and  brimstone,  and  shall  they 
not  run  his  errands  ? — eyes  not  blinded  with  the  smoke  of  the  pit; 
and  in  a  word,  a  body  that  is  out  of  hell ;  and  shall  not  all  be  his 
and  for  him  ? 

5.  The  proportion  that  was  betwixt  the  seat  of  sin  in  them,  and 
the  seat  of  suffering  in  Christ.  They  sinned  in  their  bodies,  and 
Christ  suffered  in  his  body.  His  head  was  pierced  with  the  thorny 
crown,  his  eyes  were  denied  the  light  of  the  sun,  his  tongue  was 
made  to  cleave  to  the  roof  of  his  mouth,  he  gave  his  back  to  the 
smiters,  and  his  cheeks  to  them  that  plucked  off  the  hair ;  his  fair 
face  was  defiled  with  spittle  ;  his  heart  was  melted  like  wax,  in  the 
midst  of  his  bowels  ;  his  side  was  pierced  with  a  spear ;  his  hands 
and  feet  nailed  to  the  cross ;  his  strength  dried  like  a  potsherd ;  and 
wherefore  all  this,  but  that  tlie  body  and  all  its  members  had  been 
instruments  of  sin  in  men  ?  And  because  their  souls  were  the  chief 
seat  of  all,  therefore  Christ's  soul  was  the  chief  seat  of  wrath,  sor- 
rowful even  unto  death.  Their  souls  had  forsaken  God,  therefore 
he  is  forsaken  of  God.  Pride  and  all  mischief  dwelt  in  their  souls  ; 
therefore  he  put  him  to  shame,  and  laid  him  low  indeed.  Is  it  any 
wonder,  then,  that  they  live  not  as  they  lived  before  ?  any  wonder 
that  to  them  to  live  is  Christ  ? 

Use.  Then  shew  yourselves  true  Christians,  by  making  Christ 
the  sura  and  scope  of  your  life,  and  that  you  may  do  so,  I  recommend 
these  few  things  to  you  : 


246  CHRIST  THE  LIFE,  &iC. 

1.  Abhor  all  doctrines  that  tend  to  the  lessening  of  the  glory  of 
Christ.  He  made  the  gospel  covenant  for  himself,  and  wo  to  them 
that  turn  it  against  him.  But  most,  if  not  all  the  heretics  stumble 
upon  this  stone,  so  that  we  may  say,  "  Blessed  is  he  whosoever  shall 
not  be  offended  in  him."  The  cursed  Socinians  lessen  his  glory, 
making  him  but  a  nominal  and  official  god.  The  Papists,  many  ways — 
by  their  masses,  indulgences,  invocations,  and  merit  of  good  works. 
The  Arminians  make  his  grace  lacquey  it,  at  the  foot  of  free  will. 
Others  put  our  faith  and  obedience  in  the  room  of  Christ's  righte- 
ousness. God's  great  design  in  the  gospel  is  to  exalt  Christ ;  and 
the  devil's  great  design  is  to  depress  him,  and  to  raise  up  men  for 
that  purpose,  to  object  against  his  nature,  his  offices,  and  the  like. 
Some  will  not  allow  him,  by  his  Spirit,  to  be  the  interpreter  of  his 
Father's  will,  but  set  up  their  own  corrupt  reason  in  the  chair. 
Some  rob  him  of  the  glory  of  his  priestly  office,  and  some  will  have 
110  king  but  Csesar.  These  things  shew  that  they  are  Christ's  ene- 
mies. 

2.  Appear  for  him  and  his  cause.  Remember  that  whosoever  shall 
be  ashamed  of  him,  to  act  for  him  and  speak  for  him,  of  them  he 
will  also  be  ashamed.  Be  always  then  on  his  side,  labour  to  propa- 
gate his  kingdom.  Recommend  him  to  others,  that  they  may  fall 
in  love  with  him.  Recommend  him  to  your  neighbours,  and  espe- 
cially, like  Abraham,  to  your  families.  Gen.  xviii.  19.  Reprove  and 
discountenance  the  dishonour  done  to  him. 

3.  Beware  of  him,  obey  his  voice,  and  provoke  him  not,  Exod. 
xxiii.  21.  Close  with  all  the  duties  he  lays  upon  you,  and  have 
respect  to  all  his  commandments.  They  that  baulk  any  of  them,  he 
is  not  the  sum  and  scope  of  their  lives.  Christ's  word  is  a  band 
strong  enough  to  a  gracious  soul. 

4.  Be  not  satisfied  with  duties,  unless  you  find  Christ  in  them  ; 
unless  "  you  behold  the  beauty  of  the  Lord."  Mary  came  to  the 
sepulchre,  but  finding  no  Christ  there,  she  wept ;  because  she  appre- 
hended they  had  taken  away  her  Lord,  and  she  knew  not  where 
they  had  laid  him.  Duties  are  but  empty  husks  without  Christ. 
He  is  the  marrow  and  life  of  all  duties.  They  are  but  handmaids  to 
lead  you  to  Christ.  Sit  not  down  to  make  love  to  them,  but  go  for- 
ward till  you  find  him  whom  your  soul  loveth. 

5.  Perform  religious  duties,  and  love  them  for  Christ's  sake.  It 
is  bixt  heathen  morality  to  be  virtuous  for  virtue's  sake.  No  wonder 
that  was  their  highest  motive,  for  their  gods  generally  were  as  bad 
as  themselves,  and  therefore  they  pitched  upon  the  dead  idol  of  vir- 
tue, that  had  no  relation  to  God.  But  be  you  godly  for  God's  sake, 
holy  for  Christ's  sake.  To  be  holy  for  holiness'  sake,  without  respect 
to  Christ,  is  to  make  an  idol  of  a  created  quality. 


BELIEVERS  SEEKING,  &C.  247 

6.  Engage  in  no  duty,  but  in  his  strength.  Flee  on  borrowed 
"wiugs.  The  fire  that  was  put  to  the  incense,  on  the  altar  of  in- 
cense, was  brought  from  the  altar  of  burnt-offering ;  teaching  us, 
that  from  Christ  the  influences  of  grace  must  come  into  our  souls 
freely. 

7.  Draw  motives  and  helps  for  duty,  from  Christ's  sufferings, 
2  Cor.  V.  1-i,  15;  Zech.  xii.  10.  The  law  may  break  and  bruise, 
and  so  may  be  useful  in  its  own  place  to  lead  us  to  Christ;  but 
surely  it  is  the  gospel  alone  that  kindly  melts  the  soul.  The 
Christian's  labour  is  a  labour  of  love;  because  where  the  labour  is 
right,  love  predominates. 

Lcistly,  Lay  the  weight  of  the  acceptance  of  all  your  duties,  and 
all  the  good  you  do,  only  upon  Jesus  Christ.  God  is  only  pleased 
in  him.  Venture  not  to  look  on  God,  but  through  the  vail  of  his 
flesh.  Alas  !  many,  if  they  attain  to  any  good  frame  in  duties, 
they  are  apt  to  lay  the  weight  upon  it,  and  say,  now  I  know  God 
will  bless  me.  As  if  a  beggar  would  assure  himself  of  his  alms, 
because  he  hath  a  tongue  to  cry,  and  a  hand  open  to  receive  them. 
But  remember  a  good  frame  is  not  Christ,  and  cursed  "  be  the  man 
that  trnsteth  in  man,  and  maketh  flesh  his  arm,  and  whose  heart 
departeth  from  the  Lord."  Calves  offered  on  the  altar  of  Bethel 
were  rejected,  when  turtle  doves  offered  on  the  altar  at  Jerusalem 
were  accepted.     Amen. 


Ettiick,  June  1,  1707. 

BELIEVERS  SEEKING  A  CONTINUING  CITY. 

SERMON  XXYIL 

Hebrews  xiii.  14, 
For  here  we  have  no  continuing  dty,  but  ive  seek  one  to  come. 

Heaven  ever  moves,  yet  is  that  the  place  of  our  rest ;  earth  ever 
rests,  yet  is  that  the  place  of  our  travel,  where  we  rest  not.  Time 
runs  with  a  rapid  course,  and  carries  all  men  swiftly  down  the 
stream.  It  admits  of  no  delay,  and  whether  we  sleep  or  wake,  we 
are  carried  forward,  to  be  sent  forth  within  a  little  into  the  vast 
ocean  of  eternity,  and  to  land  us  either  in  heaven  or  hell.    Whether 


248  BELIEVERS  SEEKING 

we  will  or  not,  we  must  ere  long  bid  farewell  to  the  world ;  and 
were  it  with  man  as  it  is  with  the  beasts,  who  when  they  are  dead 
are  done,  we  might  sit  at  ease,  suffering  ourselves  to  be  carried 
away  with  the  stream  at  all  adventures.  But  then  man  begins  to 
live,  when  he  is  dead  and  gone ;  and,  therefore,  having  here  no  con- 
tinuing city,  Avhat  remains  but  that  we  direct  our  course  to  one  that 
is  to  come,  and  which  is  the  great  thing  our  text  aims  at.  In  which 
consider : 

1.  A  supposition.  The  apostle  plainly  supposeth  our  absolute 
need  of  a  continuing  city,  that  is,  a  place  of  true  happiness  and 
rest ;  for  so  it  must  be  understood,  for,  otherwise,  hell  is  of  the  same 
continuance  with  heaven.  Man  is  capable  of  happiness,  the  desire 
of  it  is  interwoven  with  his  nature.  No  man  is  insensible  that  he 
labours  under  some  great  defects,  and  every  man  sees  the  need  he 
hath  of  something  to  give  him  perfect  rest  and  satisfaction ;  and 
therefore  the  soul,  like  an  hungry  infant,  sucks  wherever  it  comes, 
and  finding  no  rest  in  one  thing,  goes  to  another ;  and  never  can 
attain  true  rest,  till  it  be  perfectly  cai'ried  to  God  himself,  to 
take  up  its  everlasting  rest  in  him. 

"We  have  next  a  position  consisting  of  two  parts  :  1.  That  the 
continuing  city  is  not  to  be  found  in  this  world ;  our  rest  is  not  here. 
Here  we  do  but  sojourn  for  a  time,  and  no  sooner  we  come  into  it, 
but  as  soon  we  begin  our  journey  to  go  out  of  it  again  ;  and,  like  the 
rising  sun,  haste  forward  to  the  going  down.  We  begin  then  to  die, 
when  we  begin  to  live;  and  death  follows  our  life,  as  the  shadow 
does  the  body,  till  it  at  length  overturns  us.  Then  the  tale  is  told, 
and  the  fable  of  life  in  the  world  is  ended.  2.  That  the  continuing 
city  is  to  come.  There  is  a  i)lace  of  perfect  happiness  and  rest  for 
the  children  of  men,  though  not  here.  The  present  world  affords 
many  fine  cities,  but  the  world  to  come  has  only  that  "  continuing 
city."  Heaven  is  that  continuing  city,  Heb.  xii.  28,  in  which 
there  are  many  mansions  for  the  heirs  of  glory,  when  come  home 
from  their  travels. 

We  have  also  in  the  text,  the  practice  of  the  godly,  most  import- 
ant to  both  parts  of  the  position.  They  admit  the  conviction  of  this 
world's  emptiness,  and  live  under  the  sense  of  it.  They  look  upon 
the  world  as  it  is  in  itself,  as  indeed  affording  no  continuing  city 
to  them.  They  say,  "  we  have  here  no  continuing  city,"  we  see 
none,  we  seek  none,  we  expect  none  in  it ;  but  they  seek  that  which 
is  to  come.  The  Greek  word  is  emphatical,  and  signifies  to  seek 
with  all  our  might ;  to  seek  with  great  care  and  solicitude.  They 
do  not  sit  down,  and  faintly  wish  for  it,  but  set  themselves  earnestly 
by  all  means  to  obtain  it.     Their  former  question,  "  Who  will  shew 


A  CONTINUING  CITY.  249 

US  any  good  ?"  is  turned  to  that,  "  What  shall  I  do  to  be  saved  ?" 
While  others  are  taken  up  about  present  things,  they  are  labouring 
to  procure  to  themselves  a  blessed  immortality. 

Lastly,  The  connection.  These  words  are  given  as  a  reason  or 
motive  to  stir  up  to  the  duty  proposed,  ver.  13,  namely,  that  we 
ought  to  be  denied  to  the  world,  take  up  Christ's  cross,  and 
patiently  bear  all  reproaches  for  him.  For  why?  says  the  apostle, 
"  we  have  no  continuing  city  here ;"  and  ere  long  we  shall  be  out  of 
the  reach  of  enemies ;  and  even  at  this  time  wa  are  seeking  other 
things  than  the  world  can  afford. 

Doctrine.  We  have  no  continuing  city  in  this  world  ;  but  it  is 
the  duty  of  all,  and  the  practice  of  the  godly,  earnestly  to  seek  after 
the  continuing  city  above.     We  shall, 

I.  Shew  that  we  have  no  continuing  city  here. 

II.  In  what  respects  heaven  is  a  continuing  city. 

III.  I  shall  open  at  large  the  seeking  of  this  continuing  city. 
lY.  The  reasonableness  of  the  point.     We  are  then, 

I.  To  shew  that  we  have  no  continuing  city  here.  This  is  evi- 
dent, 

1.  Because  the  dissolution  of  this  world  is  approaching,  Psal.  cii. 
6  ;  2  Pet.  iii.  7 — 12.  It  had  a  beginning,  and  it  shall  have  an  end. 
The  day  will  come,  when  the  earth,  and  all  things  therein,  shall  be 
burnt  up.  It  was  a  dreadful  day  when  Sodom  was  burned,  but  it 
will  be  much  more  dreadful  when  all  the  cities  of  the  world  shall  be 
consumed.  Sodom  destined  to  the  flames,  was  no  city  for  Lot  to 
continue  in ;  and  seeing  this  world  must  also  be  burnt  up,  may  we 
not  conclude  we  have  no  continuing  city  in  it. 

2.  Because  we  must  all  remove  from  it  by  death.  Death  is 
settled  by  a  fixed  decree.  "  It  is  appointed  unto  all  men  once  to 
die."  One  generation  passeth  away  to  give  place  to  another. 
Every  birth  and  every  death  is  an  argument  to  persuade  us  that  we 
have  no  continuing  city  here.  Every  child  that  is  born,  comes  into 
the  world  with  a  warning  away  in  its  hand.  Every  dying  person 
lets  us  see  the  way  which  we  are  to  follow.  There  is  room  enough 
on  the  earth,  notwithstanding  all  the  vast  numbers  that  have  been 
before  us.  We  must  all  answer  the  summons  of  death.  It  will  not 
pity  the  poor,  be  bribed  by  the  rich,  nor  boasted  away  by  men  of 
might. 

6.  Because  of  the  uncertainty  of  all  things  here  below,  though 
we  should  last,  and  the  world  also.  All  worldly  things  stand  on 
two  lame  legs,  uncertainty  and  insufliciency,  and  therefore  are  not 
to  be  depended  upon.     There  is  nothing  here  that  can  satisfy  the 


250  BELIEVERS  SEEKING 

soul.  He  spoke  like  a  fool,  who  said,  "  Soul,  thou  hast  much  goods 
laid  up  for  many  years,  take  thine  ease,  eat,  drink,  and  be  merry." 
Though  these  things  were  sufficient,  yet  are  they  uncertain.  They 
perish  with  the  using;  like  the  apples  of  Sodom,  fair  and  fresh 
without;  within  full  of  sulphur,  and,  being  handled,  fall  to  ashes, 

4.  Because  the  Lord  never  designed  it  for  a  continuing  city. 
The  Lord  made  it  as  a  stage  to  serve  for  a  time,  to  be  taken  down 
when  men  had  acted  their  parts  upon  it.  It  was  the  place  for  the 
trial  of  the  children  of  men.  Heaven  was  the  place  prepared  for 
the  godly  before  the  foundation  of  the  world ;  and  hell  was  pre- 
pared of  old,  for  others.  This  earth  was  only  a  narrow  neck  of 
land,  to  be  swallowed  up  of  eternity.     We  proceed, 

11.  To  shew  in  what  respects  heaven  is  a  continuing  city. 

1.  The  city  itself  is  continuing,  "  It  is  a  building  of  God ;  an 
house  not  made  with  hands,  eternal  in  the  heavens.  It  is  a  king- 
dom which  cannot  be  moved."  Though  the  footstool  may  be  set 
aside,  the  throne  must  continue.  That  city  prepared  before  the 
foundations  of  the  world  were  laid,  must  endure  when  the  founda- 
tions of  the  world  are  overturned.  It  is  a  sure  purchase  that  is 
made  in  the  city  above ;  for  when  the  cities  below  shall  be  laid  in 
ashes,  this  shall  stand  and  flourish. 

2.  The  Lord  of  the  city  is  a  continuing  Lord,  even  Jesus  Christ, 
He  died  once,  but  shall  die  no  more.  He  has  fought  the  battle  for 
his  people,  and  has  reached  the  crown,  and  is  set  down  on  the 
throne.  He  sends  his  people  such  news  as  Joseph  sent  to  his 
father :  "  God  hath  made  me  lord  of  all  Egypt,  come  down  unto  me, 
tarry  not."     Jesus  continues  for  evermore. 

In  respect  of  his  natures,  Rev,  i.  17,  18.  The  human  nature 
which  he  took  on,  he  never  did,  and  never  will  put  off.  Death 
made  a  separation  betwixt  his  soul  and  body,  but  not  betwixt  his 
natures.  The  saints  shall  for  ever  see  the  human  nature  united  to 
the  divine  nature  ;  the  man  Christ  at  the  right  hand  of  God. 

In  respect  of  his  offices.  He  will  be  the  prophet  of  that  city 
for  ever.  He  that  gave  them  the  light  of  grace,  shall  give  them 
the  light  of  glory.  He  is  an  everlasting  priest,  even  a  priest  for 
ever.  It  is  true,  he  will  ofi"er  no  more  sacrifice,  "for  by  one  off'er- 
ing  he  hath  perfected  for  ever  them  that  are  sanctified."  But  he 
will  eternally  exhibit  that  sacrifice,  and  intercede  for  his  people, 
Heb,  vii.  26 ;  this  is  the  everlasting  security  of  the  saints.  He 
will  be  king  there  for  ever,  for  of  his  kingdom  there  shall  be  no 
end, 

3.  The  citizens  of  that  city  are  continuing.  "  Life  and  immor- 
tality are  brought  to  light  by  the  gospel."     There  is  no  death  there. 


A   CONTINUING  CITY.  2ol 

Tlio  garments  of  glory  shall  never  be  put  off  Death  entered  para- 
dise, but  cannot  enter  this  city,  where  the  Lord  of  life  reigns  in 
his  glory,  1  Cor.  xv.  53,  54. 

4.  The  abode  of  the  citizens  in  this  city  is  continuing.  Adam 
was  cast  out  of  the  earthly  paradise,  the  Jews  out  of  Canaan.  But 
every  saint  "  shall  be  made  a  pillar  in  this  temple  of  God,  and  he 
shall  go  no  more  out."  Heaven  is  the  rest  that  remains  for  the 
people  of  God.  They  may  have  many  a  weary  step  in  the  wilder- 
ness, but  when  once  come  home  they  shall  go  no  more  abroad. 

5.  The  privileges  of  it  are  continuing ;  they  shall  never  be  re- 
trenched. Who  can  count  the  privileges  which  the  citizens  enjoy 
there !  The  people  of  God  in  this  world  are  high  privileged  with 
the  favour  of  God,  and  peace  with  him,  pardon  of  sin,  adoption, 
sanctificatiou.  They  shall  have  all  these  in  their  utmost  perfection, 
to  be  continued  for  ever.  Their  peculiar  privileges  in  heaven  are 
such  as  these  :  none  of  the  miserable  effects  of  sin  are  there.  "  God 
shall  wipe  away  all  tears  from  their  eyes ;  and  there  shall  be  no 
more  death,  neither  sorrow  nor  crying,  neither  shall  there  be  any 
more  pain ;  for  the  former  things  are  passed  away."  No  bodily  pain, 
no  soul  distemper,  no  desertion  there.  The  Zion  above  will  not 
complain  that  the  Lord  has  forgotten  her,  or  that  God  covers  him- 
self with  a  cloud,  for  there  shall  be  no  night  there. 

There  shall  be  no  sinning  there,  for  there  the  spirits  of  just  men 
are  made  perfect.  The  body  of  sin  and  death  dies  with  the  death 
of  the  body.  The  most  holy  person  on  earth  sinneth,  but  the  least 
star  in  heaven  shall  be  without  spot.  Lamps  of  hell  shall  then 
wonder  to  see  themselves  shining  lamps  of  glory.  There  shall  not 
be  even  the  possibility  of  sinning  there.  Adam  when  created  had 
no  sin,  but  the  saints  in  the  city  above  shall  not  be  capable  of  sin- 
ning. They  shall  be  for  ever  confirmed  in  a  sinless  and  happy 
state.  We  have  told  what  is  not  in  it,  but  to  tell  you  what  is  in  it 
is  more  difficult.  We  may,  by  attempting  it,  darken  counsel  by 
words  without  knowledge.  Take  only  these  two  words  :  "Beloved, 
now  are  we  the  sons  of  God :  and  it  doth  not  yet  appear  what  we 
shall  be  ;  but  we  know  that  when  he  shall  appear,  we  shall  be  like 
hira;  for  we  shall  see  him  as  he  is.  And  so  shall  we  ever  be  with 
the  Lord."  These  are  words  which  the  inhabitants  of  heaven  only 
are  fit  to  explain. 

6.  The  work  of  that  city  is  continuing  work.  They  rest  not 
night  nor  day,  singing  praises  to  him  that  sits  upon  the  throne. 
The  harps  of  the  people  of  God  are  not  always  in  their  hands  now  ; 
sometimes  they  are  hanged  upon  the  willows.  Their  work  there 
will  be  eternal  recreation  and  perfect  pleasure.     This  teaches  us 

Vol.  IV.  K 


262  BBLIEVEKS  SEEKING 

that  we  must  be  made  meet  for  beaven,  and  serve  our  apprentice- 
ship here  in  the  ways  of  holiness,  before  we  can  be  admitted  into 
that  continuing  city. 

Lastly,  The  rest,  quiet,  and  safety  of  that  city  are  continuing, 
*'  It  is  a  kingdom  that  cannot  be  moved."  There  are  four  things 
that  put  a  city  in  hazard,  but  none  of  them  are  here.  Enemies 
laying  siege  to  it  without.  This  puts  the  church  in  hazard  here, 
and  therefore  there  are  watchmen  set  on  the  walls  ;  but  no  enemy 
can  approach  to  the  city  above.  The  devil  and  his  army  cannot 
come  near  it.  "Want  of  provision  within,  occasions  hazard;  but 
there  shall  be  no  lack  there,  for  rivers  of  pleasures  that  never  run 
dry,  abound  there.  Rev.  vii.  16,  17.  The  inhabitants  of  a  city  dis- 
agreeing among  themselves  is  very  hazardous.  This  was  as  hurtful 
to  the  earthly  Jerusalem  as  the  Roman  army.  But  there  can  be  no 
mutiny  in  this  city.  Then  shall  that  be  perfectly  accomplished, 
*'  They  shall  not  hurt  nor  destroy  in  all  my  holy  mountain,  saith 
the  Lord."  The  sad  divisions  amongst  the  Lord's  people  strike  at 
the  root  of  Christianity,  by  muttering  as  much  as  that  Christ  is  not 
come,  Isa.  xi.  6 — 8.  Therefore  our  Lord  prays,  that  his  people  "  all 
may  be  one,  as  thou  Father  art  in  me,  and  I  in  thee,  that  they  also 
may  be  one  in  us ;  that  the  world  may  believe  that  thou  hast  sent 
me."  Finally,  mismanagement  of  the  governor  may  bring  danger. 
Wisdom  will  save  a  city,  and  folly  ruin  it.  Here  is  infinite  wisdom 
at  the  helm,  and  how  can  they  miscarry.     We  proceed, 

III.  To  open  up  at  large,  the  seeking  of  this  continuing  city. 
Here  we  shall  shew  what  it  supposeth  ;  wherein  it  consists.  What 
do  they  seek  that  are  rightly  seeking  ?  and  Finally,  the  properties  of 
this  seeking. 

1.  What  this  seeking  supposeth.  1.  It  supposeth  the  want  of  a 
continuing  city.  None  will  seek  what  they  do  not  want.  When 
man  sinned  he  lost  Grod,  and  so  a  right  to  heaven ;  this  all  men,  by 
nature,  are  under.  And  he  that  is  thus  seeking  is  sensible  of  his 
loss,  and  is  under  conviction  that  the  world  can  afford  none  such ; 
unless  it  were  so,  he  would  never  seek  it.  Every  serious  seeker  of 
heaven  looks  on  the  world  as  a  wilderness,  and  himself  as  a  pilgrim 
and  stranger  on  the  earth,  Heb.  xi.  13,  14.  But  alas!  few  are 
under  this  impression  concerning  the  world. 

2.  The  faith  of  a  continuing  city  ;  that  there  is  a  place  of  happi- 
ness and  rest.  They  believe  "  that  there  remaineth  a  rest  for  the 
people  of  God."  They  see  that  there  is  a  land  afar  off,  and  that  it 
is  attainable  by  mortals.  The  faith  of  this  is  more  rare  than  most 
men  imagine.  Were  there  a  place  in  the  world  where  men  might 
live  in  all  manner  of  prosperity,  free  from  all  evil,  and  all  welcome 


A  CONTINUING  CITY.  253 

to  it  that  would  go ;   would  not  meu  flock  thither,  if  they  really- 
believed  it  ? 

3.  A  sense  of  the  need  of  it.  Wise  men  will  not  seek  that  of 
which  they  have  no  need.  The  seeker  of  heaven  sees  the  need  he 
hath  of  it.  He  is  one  of  a  more  noble  spirit  than  to  be  satisfied 
with  the  husks  which  the  earth  affords.  The  earth  may  serve  the 
body  during  this  mortal  life  ;  but  he  knows  he  hath  a  soul  that  must 
live  eternally,  and  a  body  that  must  be  raised  up  again  ;  and  that 
this  world  can  do  him  no  service  in  these  things. 

4.  The  soul  turning  its  back  upon  the  world.  The  person  who 
seeks  heaven,  with  Paul,  "  foroets  the  things  that  are  behind." 
"  He  is  coming  out  of  the  wilderness,  like  pillars  of  smoke ;"  and 
answers  that  call,  "  come  with  me,  from  Lebanon,  my  spouse." 
"We  cannot  seek  both,  more  than  serve  two  contrary  masters.  Our 
arras  are  too  short  to  grasp  both  heaven  and  earth  at  once.  If  ye 
seek  heaven,  let  earth  go. 

2.  Wherein  doth  this  seeking  consist  ?  It  consists  in  these  two 
things : 

1.  In  earnest  desires  after  it.  "  But  now  they  desire  a  better 
country,  that  is,  an  heaveuly."  The  soul  desires  to  be  there  in  due 
time.  Their  heart  is  there,  for  their  treasure  is  there.  Their  souls 
are  reconciled  to  heaven  by  the  power  of  grace.  They  have  seen 
the  beauty  of  the  holy  land,  and  heavenly  city ;  though  not  with 
their  bodily  eyes,  yet  with  the  eyes  of  faith.  They  have  been  cap- 
tivated with  the  map  of  it  in  the  word  of  God.  They  desire  it, 
because  Christ  is  there  ;  and  there  glory  dwells,  and  holiness  reigns 
for  ever.  "  Our  conversation  is  in  heaven  ;  from  whence  also  we 
look  for  the  Saviour,  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ."  Most  men  have  no 
such  desires.  They  would  quit  their  part  in  paradise,  if  God  would 
let  them  stay  on  this  side  of  Jordan. 

2.  In  suitable  endeavours  for  it.  The  want  of  this  holds  many 
out  of  heaven.  "  The  desire  of  the  slothful  killeth  him  ;  for  his 
hands  refuse  to  labour,"  If  wishes  would  carry  men  to  heaven, 
who  would  go  to  hell  ?  But  there  are  difficulties  in  the  way  to  it 
which  they  cannot  digest,  and  therefore  they  intermeddle  not  with 
it.  But  they  who  seek  it  aright,  turn  the  face  of  their  souls  that 
way,  and  labour  for  it.  "  Let  us  labour,  therefore,"  says  Paul,  "  to 
enter  into  that  rest,  lest  any  man  fall,  after  the  same  example  of 
unbelief."  Strivers  only,  are  right  seekers.  "  Strive,"  says  our 
Lord,  "  to  enter  in  at  the  strait  gate  ;  for  many,  I  say  unto  you,  will 
seek  to  enter  in,  and  shall  not  be  able."  "  The  kingdom  of  heaven 
Buffereth  violence,  and  the  violent  take  it  by  force." 

3.  What  do  they  seek,  that  are  rightly  seeking? 


254  BEIilEVERS  SEEKING 

1.  They  seek  the  Lord  of  the  city.  The  commaud  is,  "  seek  the 
Lord  while  he  is  to  he  found,  call  upon  him  while  he  is  near." 
Jesus  the  Lord  of  it  is  himself  "the  way,  and  the  door;"  none  can 
enter  but  by  him,  John  xiv.  6.  Jesus  is  to  the  true  seeker  the 
greatest  beauty  of  the  upper  house,  Psal.  Ixxiii.  25.  The  name  of 
the  city  is,  "  the  Lord  is  there ;"  and  this  draws  the  soul  of  the 
believer  hither.  And  if  Christ  were  not  there,  heaven  would  not  be 
heaven  to  the  believer.  "  Being  risen  with  Christ,  they  seek  the 
things  which  are  above,  where  he  sitteth  at  the  right  hand  of  God.*' 

2.  A  right  and  title  to  it.  By  Adam's  sin,  we  forfeited  our  right 
to  it,  so  we  have  our  title  to  seek.  "We  are  commandeed  to  "  seek 
first  the  kingdom  of  God  and  his  righteousness."  The  soul  sees 
itself  miserable,  whatever  it  have,  if  it  have  no  right  to  that  city. 
Hence  Christ  is  precious.  A  match  with  the  heir  of  all  things  is 
very  desirable,  seeing  by  him  we  are  made  citizens  there.  "  For 
through  him,  we  have  access  by  one  Spirit  unto  the  Father ;  and 
are  made  fellow-citizens  with  the  saints,  and  of  the  household  of 
God." 

3.  A  conformity  to  it ;  even  the  kingdom  of  God  to  be  within  us. 
As  every  man  labours  to  conform  himself  to  the  manners  of  the 
court  where  he  desires  to  be,  so  the  Christian  "  has  his  conversation 
in  heaven,"  and  desires  to  be  more  and  more  changed  into  the  image 
of  the  Saviour.  Heaven  must  come  down  into  us,  before  we  can  get 
up  to  it.  If  our  Father  be  in  heaven,  we  will  strive  to  be  like 
him.  Can  we  look  on  these  to  be  seeking  heaven,  who  mind  nothing 
but  the  world  and  their  lusts;  in  whose  thoughts,  words,  and  actions, 
there  is  nothing  of  heaven. 

4.  Evidences  for  the  city.  The  soul  will  not  only  seek  a  right  to 
it ;  but  to  know  his  right.  Hence  they  will  be  crying,  "  shew  me  a 
token  for  good."  When  their  interest  is  darkened,  their  hearts  are 
filled  with  sadness  ;  and  when  they  behold  it,  their  souls  rejoice, 
when  they  can  say,  "  For  we  know,  that  if  our  earthly  house  of  this 
tabernacle  were  dissolved,  we  have  a  building  of  God,  an  house  not 
made  with  hands,  eternal  iu  the  heavens."  A  man  that  is  seeking 
to  buy  houses  or  lands,  will  labour  to  get  good  evidences  of  his  right 
to  them. 

Lastly,  The  possession  of  it  in  due  time.  "  Let  us  labour,  there- 
fore, to  euter  into  that  rest."  One  time  or  another,  you  will  be  at 
Paul's  wish,  "  a  desire  to  depart  and  to  be  with  Christ,  which  is  far 
better."  Christ  gives  it  as  an  encouragement  to  his  people,  "  I  go," 
says  be,  "  to  prepare  a  place  for  you  ;"  and  therefore  they  seek  and 
wait  till  their  minority  be  past,  that  they  may  enter  heirs  to  that 
glory.  "  Desiring  to  be  clothed  upon  with  our  house  which  is  from 
heaven." 


A  CONTINUING  CITY.  255 

I  shall  close  with  a  word  of  nse  of  what  has  been  said.  Bestir 
yourselves,  then,  to  seek  after  the  continuing  city.  Are  there  not 
many  among  us,  who  have  neither  right  to,  nor  evidence  for  heaven  ; 
who  live  here  as  if  this  were  their  rest,  as  if  they  were  never  to 
remove  ;  who,  if  death  were  to  seize  them  this  day,  know  not  where 
they  would  lodge  through  the  long  night  of  eternity. 

Consider  the  motive  in  the  text :  "  we  have  no  continuing  city 
here."  We  must  continue  for  ever,  but  not  here.  AYere  we  to  die 
like  the  beasts,  we  might  live  as  they  do  ;  but  we  have  never-dying 
souls.  0  consider  well,  that  you  must  remove,  that  you  may  seek 
in  time  a  continuing  city.  Death  is  posting  on.  Our  life  is  but  a 
vapour,  a  shadow,  a  nothing.  The  grave  we  must  visit,  there  is  no 
continuance  here. 

4.  The  properties  of  this  seeking.  How  must  we  seek,  if  we 
Avould  succeed  ?  This  is  a  necessary  question,  for  our  Lord  tells  us, 
"  many  will  seek  to  enter  in,  and  shall  not  be  able ;"  and  Paul  tells 
us,  "  that  a  man  is  not  crowned  unless  he  strive  lawfully."  There 
may  be  much  seeking  to  little  purpose. 

1.  They  that  rightly  seek  the  continuing  city,  seek  it  laboiiously. 
"  They  labour  to  enter  into  that  rest."  They  must  not  only  open 
their  mouths  as  beggars,  but  ply  their  hands  as  workmen  seeking 
their  daily  bread,  who  earn  it  with  the  sweat  of  their  brow.  "  We 
must  seek  it  as  silver,  and  search  for  it  as  for  hid  treasures."  Many 
would  be  fed  like  the  fowls,  who  neither  sow  nor  gather  into  barns ; 
and  be  clothed  like  the  lilies,  who  neither  toil  nor  spin.  They  would 
receive  heaven  if  it  would  fall  down  into  their  mouths,  but  cannot 
think  of  working  for  it.  They  have  something  else  to  do.  It  is 
true,  our  labour  and  pains  will  not  bring  us  there  ;  but  there  is  no 
getting  there  without  it,  Prov.  xxi.  25.  For  consider,  the  several 
notions  of  the  way  to  heaven,  all  importing  true  labour.  We  must 
work ;  yea,  "  work  out  our  own  salvation,"  or  otherwise  we  lose 
what  we  have  done.  It  is  as  the  work  of  the  husbandman,  which  is 
not  easy.  "  Sow  to  yourselves  in  righteousness,  reap  in  mercy,  break 
up  your  fallow  ground,  for  it  is  time  to  seek  the  Lord,  till  he  corao 
and  rain  righteousness  upon  you."  It  is  the  running  of  a  race  that 
requires  patience  and  much  eagerness,  "  for  we  must  press  toward 
the  mark,  and  so  run  that  we  may  obtain."  We  must  wrestle  and 
fight  for  it,  for  heaven  hath  a  strait  gate,  and  cannot  be  entered 
with  ease.  We  must  strive  to  enter,  yea  press  into  it,  and  take  it 
by  violence.  We  must  put  forth  our  utmost  strength,  as  those  who 
are  agonising,  Luke  xiii.  24,  and  at  last  overcome.  Rev.  iii.  12. 
These  are  the  metaphors  by  which  the  Christian's  exercises  are  de- 
scribed, and  they  certainly  denote  real  labour. 


256  BELIEVERS  SEEKIIftt 

Consider  also  the  types  of  the  way  to  heaven.  Many  a  weary  step, 
and  many  a  bloody  battle  had  the  Israelites,  ere  they  could  settle 
themselves  in  Canaan.  Jerusalem  stood  on  a  hill,  and  was  sur- 
rounded with  hills  ;  many  a  weary  step  had  some  of  them  to  take 
ere  they  won  it,  2  Sam.  v.  6  ;  and  when  they  came  there,  they  had 
the  hill  of  God  to  ascend,  even  Mount  Moriah,  where  the  temple 
stood,  hence  that  Psal.  xxiv.  3 — 6. 

Besides,  slothfulness  is  the  pathway  to  hell,  Prov.  xiii.  14,  and 
XX.  4.  The  sluggard  is  an  unprofitable  servant  to  himself  and  his 
master.  For  an  idler  to  get  heaven,  is  a  sort  of  contradiction. 
Heaven  is  a  reward,  and  therefore  supposeth  working.  Heaven  is 
rest,  a  keeping  of  a  sabbath,  and  therefore  supposeth  previous  toil. 

2.  Voluntarily.  '*  The  Lord  meeteth  him  that  rejoiceth  and 
worketh  righteousness."  When  men  do  nothing  in  religion  but  by 
compulsion,  they  cannot  succeed.  God's  people  are  a  willing  people, 
and  he  cares  not  for  compelled  prayers,  or  forced  endeavours,  when 
the  hands  go  without  the  heart.  Men  naturally  are  enemies  to  hea- 
ven ;  and  till  heaven  be  in  their  heart  instead  of  the  world,  they 
will  never  seek  it  to  purpose. 

3.  Diligently.  "  The  soul  of  the  diligent  shall  be  made  fat." 
We  will  lose  it,  if  we  seek  it  not  diligently.  "  By  much  slothful- 
ness the  building  decayeth."  Men  are  busy  for  the  world ;  the 
devil  is  busy  to  keep  us  out  of  heaven,  and  shall  not  we  seek  it  dili- 
gently. But  most  men  are  of  Pharaoh's  principle,  that  religion  is 
only  a  work  for  them  that  have  nothing  else  to  do,  hence  no  dili- 
gence among  them. 

4.  Vigorously.  We  are  commanded  to  ask,  to  seek,  to  knock. 
It  is  not  easily  got.  Faint  attacks  will  not  break  open  the  gates  of 
this  city.  It  is  requisite  we  summon  together  all  the  powers  of  or^r 
souls,  "  and  whatsoever  our  hand  findeth  to  do,  do  it  with  all  our 
might."  The  iron  is  blunt,  therefore  we  must  exert  the  more  force. 
Fervency  in  seeking,  is  necessary  to  make  it  effectual.  It  is  the 
effectual  fervent  prayer  of  a  righteous  man  that  availeth  much. 

5.  Resolutely,  as  Jacob  for  the  blessing.  We  seek  what  we  can- 
not want,  and  therefore  must  steel  our  foreheads,  and  run  through 
difficulties.  "  Skin  for  skin,  all  that  a  man  hath,  will  he  give  for 
his  life."  The  people  that  hearing  of  the  Anakims,  their  hearts 
failed,  were  obliged  to  turn  back  into  the  wilderness.  They  that 
mind  for  this  city,  "  must  have  their  feet  shod  with  the  preparation 
of  the  gospel  of  peace,"  that  they  may  go  forward  through  the  rug- 
ged way. 

6.  Constantly.  "  We  must  be  stedfast  and  immoveable,  always 
abonndiug  in  the  work  of  the  Lord."     We  must  not  seek  only  by 


A  CONTINUING  CITY.  257 

fits  and  starts  ;  that  makes  our  seeking  uneasy.  Hot  and  cold  fits 
are  signs  of  a  distempered  body.  This  work  is  for  term  of  life  ; 
"no  man  putting  his  hand  to  the  plough,  and  looking  back,  is  fit  for 
the  kingdom  of  God."  "  The  just  shall  live  by  faith  :  but  if  any 
man  draw  back,  my  soul  shall  have  no  pleasure  in  him."  Desert- 
ers are  shamefully  punished,  while  prisoners  of  war  are  treated  with 
respect. 

7.  Seek  it  quickly,  without  delay,  for  we  know  not  how  soon  our 
sun  may  go  down.  "  "We  must  work  the  works  of  him  that  sent  us, 
while  it  is  day  ;  the  night  cometh,  when  no  man  can  work."  Your 
glass  is  running.  If  your  time  be  done,  before  your  interest  in  hea- 
von  be  secured,  it  will  be  a  heavy  case.  Hell  is  replenished  with 
those  that  resolved  to  be  better  afterwards. 

Lastly,  Seek  evangelically,  that  is,  in  a  gospel  way.  This  com- 
prehends %QQking,  first,  from  a  principle  of  new  life,  called  the  life 
of  Jesus,  2  Cor.  iv.  10.  Secondly,  from  a  sweet  motive  of  love  to 
God,  even  the  love  of  Christ  constraining  us  ;  and  thirdly,  from  a 
noble  end,  the  glory  of  God,  the  honour  of  the  Redeemer,  and  glory 
of  his  grace,  and  our  own  salvation.  Finally,  doing  all  in  borrowed 
strength  ;  travelling  "  through  the  wilderness  leaning  on  our  be- 
loved, denying  ourselves,  rejoicing  in  Christ  Jesus,  and  having  no 
confidence  in  the  flesh."     We  shall  now, 

IV.  Shew  the  reasonableness  of  the  point.     And, 

1.  "Why  it  is  the  duty  of  all  thus  to  seek  after  the  continuing 
city. 

1.  Because  none  of  us  have  a  continuing  city  here.  Our  old  ta- 
bernacle is  ready  to  fall  down  about  our  ears,  what  then  should  we  be 
doing,  but  seeking  that  building  of  God.  Hence  we  must  remove, 
is  it  not  then  highly  reasonable  we  should  seek  where  we  may  take 
up  our  eternal  lodging. 

2.  It  is  the  command  of  God,  whose  commands  we  are  not  to  dis- 
pute, but  to  obey,  "for  a  son  honoureth  his  father,  and  a  servant 
his  master."  Now  what  is  his  command  ?  It  is,  "  Strive  to  enter 
in  at  the  strait  gate."  What  a  cord  of  love  is  such  a  command, 
where  duty  and  interest  are  so  linked  together. 

3.  Because  perfect  happiness  is  only  to  be  found  there.  That 
is  the  place  where  the  soul-satisfying  treasure  only  is  to  be  found, 
"  Lay  up  for  yourselves,  then,  treasures  in  heaven,  where  neither 
moth  nor  rust  doth  corrupt,  and  where  thieves  do  not  break  through 
nor  steal."  You  will  never  be  able,  by  any  means,  to  extract 
happiness  from  earthly  enjoyments.  Solomon  had  run  round  the 
world  and  viewed  all,  and  what  is  his  report,  even  "  vanity  of  vani- 
ties, all  is  vanity."      The   very  nature  of  the  soul  is  such,  thai 


258  BELIEVERS  SEEKING 

nothing  under  the  sun  can  satisfy  it ;  yea,  the  very  erect  form  of  the 
body  teacheth  us  to  seek  heaven. 

4.  It  is  a  dreadful  contempt  of  heaven,  not  to  seek  it.  It  was 
the  sin  of  the  Israelites,  "  that  they  despised  the  pleasant  land." 
It  is  God's  mansion  house,  the  land  where  glory  dwells.  Not  then 
to  be  at  pains  to  attain  it,  is  a  sin  near  akin  to  the  sin  of  the 
devils,  "  who  kept  not  their  first  estate,  but  left  their  own  habita- 
tion." Yea,  it  is  a  contempt  of  the  blood  of  Christ,  the  price  by 
which  heaven  was  purchased.  0  sirs,  prefer  not,  in  your  practice, 
the  world  to  the  glory  of  heaven.  Observe  Heb.  xii.  14 — 16.  Will 
men  say  that  they  prize  heaven,  when  they  will  not  be  at  pains  to 
secure  their  title  to  it  ? 

Lastly,  There  is  no  getting  there,  without  seeking  it  thus.  There 
is  no  reaching  the  treasure  of  glory  without  digging  for  it.  "  For 
if  ye  live  after  the  flesh,  ye  shall  die;  but  if  ye  through  the  Spirit 
do  mortify  the  deeds  of  the  body,  ye  shall  live."  If  men  must  have 
yet  a  little  sleep  and  a  little  slumber,  outer  darkness  will  be  their 
waking-place,  Luke  xiii.  24. 

2.  Let  us  shew  why  it  is  the  practice  of  the  godly.  They  seek 
this  city, 

1.  Because  they  have  been  convinced  that  they  have  no  continu- 
ing city  here.  By  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord,  the  gracious  soul  "  has 
seen  an  end  of  all  perfection ;"  has  got  a  sight  of  the  vanity  and 
emptiness  of  created  things,  and  this  has  turned  the  soul  back  again 
from  the  broken  cisterns,  to  the  fountain  of  living  water.  They 
have  seen  that  excellency  in  Christ,  which  has  darkened  the  glory 
of  created  things. 

2.  Because  their  treasure  is  in  heaven,  Matth.  vi.  21.  If  a  man's 
treasure  be  in  his  coffers  or  in  his  barns,  his  heart  will  be  there 
also ;  if  in  heaven,  his  heart  will  be  there.  Christ  is  the  believer's 
treasure,  and  he  is  there ;  an  eternal  weight  of  glory  is  his  treasure, 
and  it  is  also  in  heaven. 

3.  Because  heaven  is  the  only  rest  for  the  godly.  The  world  is 
the  place  of  their  toil  and  pilgrimage.  They  have  trouble  from 
without  and  from  within,  while  here ;  but  their  rest  is  remaining 
for  them  above,  Heb.  iv.  9.  They  say  to  one  another,  as  Naomi 
did  to  her  daughters-in-law,  "  the  Lord  grant  you,  that  you  may 
find  rest,  each  of  you  in  the  house  of  her  husband."  Rest  is  sought 
by  every  one,  and  seeing  the  godly  look  not  for  it  here,  they  must 
needs  be  looking  for  it  there. 

4.  Because  this  seeking  is  the  native  product  of  a  new  nature. 
The  old  nature  carries  the  man  downward,  the  new  nature  up- 
wards, toward  heaven.      Grace  is  an  active   principle  come  from 


A  CONTINUING  CITY.  259 

above  into  the  heart,  and  carrying  the  soul  up  to  its  own  source. 
Every  thing  desires  its  own  preservation  and  perfection,  now  glory 
is  the  best  preservative  and  perfection  of  grace.  It  is  a  fountain 
that  will  not  be  stopped,  but  will  cast  up  its  waters.  "  It  is  in 
them  a  well  of  living  water,  springing  up  to  everlasting  life." 

Applicatiok.  Is  it  so,  that  here  we  have  no  continuing  city  ? 
Then  we  may  be 

1.  Informed  and  convinced  of  several  particulars. 

1.  Then  we  must  all  die,  and  be  as  water  spilt  on  the  ground. 
Here  our  tent  is  set  down,  but  not  to  continue  here.  The  pins  of 
the  tent  must  be  loosed,  and  man  must  go  to  his  long  home.  Ere 
long  you  shall  be  arrested  within  the  four  posts  of  a  bed,  not  to 
come  forth,  till  you  be  carried  to  the  grave.  Death  will  settle  down 
on  your  eyelids.  The  fairest  face  shall  be  pale,  and  the  breath  shall 
go,  and  the  body  crumble  to  ashes,  for  here  we  have  no  continuing 
city. 

2.  Life  in  this  world  is  but  a  short  preface  to  eternity,  an  incon- 
siderable point  between  two  vast  terms.  The  world  lasted  some 
thousands  of  years  before  we  were  born  in  it ;  and  how  long  after 
we  are  gone,  who  knows ;  but  then  there  is  an  eternity  to  succeed. 
O !  that  we  could  so  tell  our  handbreadth  of  days  as  to  apply  our 
hearts  to  \risdom. 

3.  It  is  well  with  them  who  are  gone  to  heaven.  "  Blessed  are 
the  dead  who  die  in  the  Lord,  from  henceforth ;  yea,  saith  the  Spirit, 
that  they  may  rest  from  their  labours."  Rest  is  desirable,  they  had 
it  not  here ;  they  have  got  it  now.  Their  weary  days  and  nights 
are  now  at  an  end.  Sickness  and  trouble  shall  be  to  them  no  more. 
Weep  not  for  them,  but  for  yourselves  that  are  yet  on  the  trouble- 
some sea ;  we  are  abroad,  they  are  at  home. 

4.  Behold  here  the  vanity  of  all  things  below,  and  the  folly  of 
valuing  ourselves  on  account  of  them.  When  death  comes,  we  must 
bid  them  an  eternal  farewell,  and  leave  what  we  have  to  others ; 
and  they  to  others  again,  till  the  fire  at  the  last  day  consume  all. 
Some  have  a  beautiful  tent,  others  a  black  and  uncomely  one ;  but 
against  night,  all  are  taken  down. 

6.  Their  case  is  to  be  pitied  and  not  envied,  who  have  their  portion 
in  this  life.  What  good  did  the  rich  man's  treasure  do  him  in  hell  ? 
Though  a  man  act  the  part  of  a  king  on  a  stage,  if  he  have  nothing 
when  the  curtain  is  drawn  and  the  play  ended,  he  is  in  a  pitiful  case. 
Alas  !  the  world  does  with  many,  as  with  the  young  man,  it  brings 
an  eternal  eclipse  on  their  souls. 

Lastly,  See  the  folly  of  men  who  are  neglecting  to  secure  their 
title  to  heaven.     0  sirs !  we  are  quickly  carried  down  the  stream. 


260  BELIEVERS  SEEKING 

ere  long  we  will  be  in  eternity.     "Why  then  are  you  not  making  it 
your  business  to  seek  a  continuing  city,  seeiug  here  we  have  none  ? 

Use  2.  Of  trial.  Hereby  you  may  try  yourselves,  whether  you 
be  truly  religious  or  not.  How  does  the  pulse  of  your  affections  beat  ? 
"What  is  it  that  you  are  seeking,  is  it  heaven  or  the  world  ?  I  told 
you  in  what  this  seeking  consists,  and  upon  this  I  would  propose 
two  questions : 

1.  What  desires  have  you  after  heaven  ?  Are  your  souls  yet  recon- 
ciled to  it  ?  Could  you  get  an  abode  here  for  ever,  would  you  desire 
to  remove  ?  I  fear  there  are  many  would  even  be  content  to  settle 
down  on  this  side  of  Jordan.  They  desire  heaven,  but  not  for  con- 
tempt of  the  world,  but  fear  of  hell.  But  a  gracious  soul  cannot  be 
content  with  this  their  sinful  condition  in  the  world,  to  want  unin- 
terrupted communion  with  God,  which  is  only  to  be  enjoyed  above. 

2.  What  endeavours  are  you  using  to  get  it  ?  Simple  wishes  for 
heaven  will  never  come  speed.  Many  wish  for  heaven  but  work  for 
hell.  If  this  be  not  your  main  work  to  seek  the  continuing  city, 
you  will  never  get  there.  But  alas  !  what  little  pains  do  most  men 
take  to  get  heaven  ?  If  coming  to  the  church,  giving  the  compli- 
ment of  a  morning  and  evening  prayer  to  God — coldrife  and  dead 
suits — will  bring  them  to  heaven,  they  will  be  sure  of  it ;  but  they 
will  never  see  it,  if  they  cannot  reach  it  without  cutting  off  right 
hands,  mortifying  their  lusts,  and  taking  it  by  violence. 

Use  3.  Of  exhortation.  From  this  I  may  press  several  duties 
upon  you.     And, 

1.  Be  content  with  such  things  as  you  have.  Nature  is  content 
with  little,  grace  with  less ;  but  corruption  enlarges  the  soul  as  hell, 
that  it  never  says  it  hath  enough.  Though  a  stranger  get  but  bad 
accommodation  on  a  journey,  it  pleases  him  to  think  that  he  is  going 
homewards,  he  is  not  to  stay  with  it.  You  are  on  your  way  te  eter- 
nity. It  is  of  little  consequence  whether  a  traveller  have  a  cane 
in  his  hand,  or  a  rough  stick ;  either  of  them  may  serve,  and  both 
are  laid  aside  at  the  journey's  end. 

2.  Do  not  sit  down  upon  the  world's  smiles.  If  the  world  court 
you,  do  not  give  it  your  heart,  but  tell  it  you  are  not  to  stay.  0  ! 
it  is  hard  to  keep  the  heart  from  falling  in  love  with  a  smiling 
world ;  hard  to  carry  a  full  cup  even  ;  to  take  a  large  draught  of 
carnal  comforts,  and  not  to  fall  asleep.  Ere  long,  the  richest  shall 
be  on  a  level  with  the  poorest;  and  when  the  fool,  who  sets  his 
heart  on  his  wealth,  comes  to  die,  he  cannot  answer  the  question, 
Whose  shall  these  things  be,  which  he  hath  provided? 

3.  Bear  afflictions  patiently.  You  are  posting  out  of  the  place 
of  afflictions.     If  you  be  not  in  Christ,  ere  long  the  cross  will  bo 


A  CONTINUINO  CITY.  261 

turned  into  an  unmixed  curse.  If  you  be  in  Christ,  ere  long  all 
tears  shall  be  wiped  away  from  your  eyes. 

4.  What  you  do,  do  quickly.  Beware  of  delays,  they  are  very 
dangerous.  Our  great  work  is  to  do  good,  and  to  get  good.  Ply 
your  work  with  all  speed  and  diligence.  Parents  do  good  to  your 
children ;  ere  long  they  may  be  taken  from  you,  or  you  from  them. 

Lastly,  Seek  the  continuing  city  that  is  to  come,  0  !  set  your- 
selves to  this  work  in  good  earnest;  apply  to  it  with  all  diligence. 
Young  and  old,  rich  and  poor,  you  must  all  go  out  of  this  world. 
0  !  strive  to  secure  your  lodging  in  heaven. 

Motive  1.  Consider  you  are  all  seeking  something.  Man  is  a  rest- 
less creature,  always  crying  give,  give.  The  river  runs  as  fast 
when  it  is  overflowing  its  banks,  as  when  it  is  going  in  its  proper 
channel.  The  watch  moves  as  fast  when  it  is  going  wrong,  as  when 
it  is  going  right.  The  spider  is  at  pains  as  well  as  the  bee.  Alas ! 
many  men  are  like  the  spider ;  it  consumes  its  bowels  to  make  its 
web.  They  exert  themselves  wholly  for  their  bodies,  and  neglect 
their  souls.     0  what  folly  is  this  ! 

2.  The  devil  is  seeking  to  keep  you  out  of  heaven.  He  is  con- 
stantly seeking  whom  he  may  devour.  He  wants  not  skill  to  con- 
trive means  for  your  ruin.  He  hath  had  experience  for  several 
thousand  years  in  that  trade.  He  wants  not  malice  nor  cunning. 
And  will  not  you  be  at  pains  for  your  own  salvation? 

3.  You  have  loud  calls  to  this  work.  You  have  the  call  of  the 
word.  Wherefore  hath  the  Lord  instituted  ordinances  among  you, 
but  for  this  end  ?  A  master  doth  not  light  a  candle  for  his  servants 
to  play  themselves  at  it.  You  are  not  shut  up  in  the  dark,  muffled 
up  in  clouds  of  ignorance.  The  night  is  over,  the  day  shines.  Go 
forth  then  to  your  work  and  to  your  labour,  until  the  evening.  The 
voice  of  providence  calls  loudly  to  you.  God  seems  to  be  on  his 
way  against  these  lands,  for  their  contempt  of  the  gospel.  And,  I 
dare  say,  men  under  the  gospel  cannot  but  sometimes  have  their 
convictions. 

4.  Our  abode  here  will  be  very  short.  Ere  long,  all  of  us  shall 
be  in  an  unalterable  state.  Some  are  at  the  borders  of  the  grave ; 
all  are  going  forward.  Our  life  is  a  vapour,  and  our  days  a  sha- 
dow that  passeth  away.  Let  us  then  work  the  works  of  him  that 
sent  us,  while  it  is  day :  the  night  cometh,  when  no  man  can  work. 
Amen. 


262  BEHEVEUS  COMMUNING 

Simprin,  March  23,  170?. 
BELIEVERS  COMMUNING  WITH  THEIR  OWN  HEARTS. 

SERMON  XXYIII. 

Psalm  iv.  4, 

Commune  with  your  own  heart  tipon  your  bed,  and  he  still. 

In  these  words,  we  have  David's  friendly  advice  to  his  enemies,  for 
the  good  of  their  souls.  In  this  particular  advice,  there  is,  1.  The 
duty  itself,  "  Commune  with  your  own  heart."  By  the  heart  is 
meant  the  conscience.  In  this  sense  it  is  used  by  the  apostle 
John :  "  If  our  heart  condemn  ns,"  saith  he,  "  God  is  greater  than 
our  heart,  and  knoweth  all  things.  Beloved,  if  our  heart  condemn 
us  not,  then  have  we  confidence  towards  God."  It  is  also  said,  that 
David's  heart  smote  him,  after  that  he  had  numbered  the  people. 
There  is  next  a  special  season  of  the  duty,  upon  your  beds,  in  the 
night  season.  There  is  also  the  connection  of  it  with  the  other 
duties  here  recommended.  It  looks  backward  and  forward,  and  is 
here  prescribed  as  an  excellent  mean  to  keep  us  from  sin,  and  to  be 
still  from  wicked  practices. 

Doctrine.  As  it  is  a  necessary  duty  to  commune  with  our  own 
consciences,  so  it  is  an  excellent  mean  to  a  holy  life.  In  prosecut- 
ing this  subject,  I  shall, 

I.  Shew  in  what  the  duty  consists. 

II.  The  manner  in  which  it  should  be  performed. 

III.  The  special  seasons  for  engaging  in  it. 
lY.  Give  the  reasons  for  the  duty ;  and, 

V.  Shew  that  it  is  an  excellent  mean  to  a  holy  life.     "We  are  then, 
I.  To  shew  what  it  is  to  commune  with  our  conscience.     This 
duty  consists  in  two  things  : 

1.  We  must  speak  to  our  consciences.  This  is  easily  performed, 
for  they  can  hear  without  a  voice.  Our  tongues  need  not  weary  in 
this  exercise ;  for  in  the  deepest  silence  we  speak  best,  and  com- 
mune with  our  hearts  to  the  greatest  purpose.  Thus  David  spoke  to 
his  heart,  "  0  my  soul,"  said  he,  "  thou  hast  said  unto  the  Lord, 
thou  art  my  Lord." 

2.  We  must  hear  our  heart  and  conscience  speak  to  ns.  *'  When 
thou  saidst,  seek  ye  my  face,  my  heart,"  says  David,  "  said  unto 
thee,  (namely,  to,  or  within  me),  thy  face,  Lord,  will  I  seek."     Con- 


WITH  THEIR  OWN  HEARTS.  263 

science  can  speak  to  us,  so  as  to  make  its  voice  be  heard  throuo-h 
all  parts  of  the  soul.      It  roused  David  himself  out  of  his  sleep, 
and  put  Judas  to  his  wits  end.     It  is  God's  voice,  and  therefore 
must  be  majestic. 
II.  To  shew  the  manner  in  which  this  duty  should  be  performed. 

1.  We  should  commune  with  our  hearts  willingly.  It  is  a  work 
of  righteousness;  "and  the  Lord  meeteth  him  that  rejoiceth,  and 
worketh  righteousness."  "We  should  be  willing  to  enter  on  the 
conference,  and  even  seek  this  communing.  "  Isaac  went  out  to 
meditate  at  the  even-tide."  It  is  sad  when  conscience  speaks  only 
unbidden.  We  should  also  continue  the  communing,  and  not,  like 
Felix,  break  it  off  violently,  saying,  "  when  I  have  a  convenient 
season  I  will  call  for  thee." 

2.  Friendly.  That  which  most  injures  this  communing,  is  people's 
looking  on  conscience  as  their  enemy,  and  therefore  they  cannot 
endure  it.  But  conscience  may  say  to  you,  "  Am  I  therefore  be- 
come your  enemy,  because  I  tell  you  the  truth  ?"  It  argues  a  person 
to  be  of  little  judgment  to  look  on  the  surgeon  as  his  enemy,  though 
he  come  with  his  lance  or  knife  in  his  hand  to  open  his  sores.  If 
conscience  speak  roughly,  it  is  but  to  make  way  for  a  sound  peace. 
"  When  I  heard,"  says  Habakkuk,  "  my  belly  trembled ;  my  lips 
quivered  at  the  voice,  rottenness  entered  into  my  bones,  and  I 
trembled  in  myself,  that  I  might  rest  in  the  day  of  trouble." 

3.  We  should  do  it  freely.  We  must  have  no  reserve,  no  sweet 
morsel  under  the  tongue.  It  is  grieving  to  think  how  averse  people 
are  to  come  upon  some  points  with  their  conscience,  and  at  what 
pains  they  will  be  to  divert  or  change  that  discourse.  Some  sins 
they  love,  some  they  hate ;  accordingly  they  are  content  to  commune, 
so  as  the  conscience  will  but  hold  of  these  points  the  right  eye,  the 
right  hand, 

4.  Honestly  and  uprightly,  not  refusing  conviction,  but  admitting 
what  conscience  offers  according  to  the  word  of  God.  Conscience, 
indeed,  is  but  a  subordinate  judge,  and  therefore  the  appeal  is  to  be 
made  to  the  Scriptures.  "  To  the  law  and  to  the  testimony ;  if  they 
speak  not  according  to  this  word,  it  is  because  there  is  no  light  in 
them."  But  alas  !  many  refuse  the  very  light  which  conscience 
offers  from  the  Scriptures,  and  are  at  much  pains  to  cheat  conscience 
into  a  belief  of  their  mistaken  apprehension,  as  the  foolish  virgins 
deceived  themselves. 

5.  Frequently.  There  is  no  acquaintance  more  difficult  to  be 
obtained,  and  more  easily  lost,  than  that  with  ourselves.  The  soul 
of  man  is  an  unfathomable  deep.  "The  heart  is  deceitful  above  all 
things,  and  desperately  wicked,  who  can  know  it  ?"     There  is  still 


264  BELIEVERS  COMMUKING 

occasion  for  new  discoveries,  therefore  this  exercise  should  be  habit- 
ual to  us.  It  is  one  to  a  thousand,  if  we  find  our  hearts  as  we  left 
them.     We  are  now, 

III.  To  attend  to  the  special  seasons  for  communing  with  our 
hearts.  It  is  a  duty  at  all  times,  but  for  the  more  solemn  perfor- 
mance of  it,  the  Scripture  points  out  the  following  seasons  : — 

1.  The  morning.  "  Give  ear  to  my  words,  0  Lord,  consider  my 
meditation.  My  voice  shalt  thou  hear  in  the  morning."  The  first 
fruits  belong  to  Grod.  The  devil  and  the  world  will  strive  to  rob 
him  of  them,  as  a  pledge  for  the  whole  day ;  and  alas  !  they  often 
succeed.  David  was  careful  to  give  his  first  thoughts  to  God. 
"  When  I  awake,"  says  he,  "  I  am  still  with  thee."  The  pious 
women  who  followed  our  Lord,  "  came  very  early  in  the  morning 
to  his  sepulchre."  The  want  of  this  early  devotion  is  the  source  of 
great  disorders.  Possession  is  much.  It  is  easier  to  hold  out,  than 
to  put  out. 

2.  The  evening.  "  Isaac  went  out  to  meditate  at  the  even-tide." 
This  is  to  close  the  day  with  God.  There  is  great  reason  to  begin 
and  end  with  God.  In  the  morning,  we  are  to  go  out  amidst  many 
snares ;  in  the  evening,  we  have  a  whole  day's  course  to  examine 
and  judge. 

3.  The  night  season,  upon  our  beds ;  so  says  the  text.  And  says 
David  for  himself,  "  when  I  remember  thee  on  my  bed,  and  meditate 
on  thee  in  the  night  watches."  Men  should  not  go  to  sleep  with  their 
hearts  bound  to  the  world,  as  the  horse  to  the  manger.  The  night  is 
especially  proper  for  this  duty,  for  then  a  man  is  at  the  end  of  the 
day's  progress,  and  it  is  most  meet  he  should  then  look  back  upon  it, 
and  observe  how  matters  have  gone  that  day.  Again,  a  man  is  now 
out  of  the  noise  of  the  world,  his  converse  with  others  is  at  an  end, 
and  he  may,  therefore,  the  better  take  a  word  with  himself,  and 
recollect  himself  freely.  Besides,  the  bed  and  sleep  bear  a  resemb- 
lance to  death  and  the  grave,  and  so  calls  upon  a  man  to  remember 
his  latter  end.  The  night  has  a  kind  of  awful  majesty  with  it ;  and 
seeing  we  know  not  of  an  awakening,  we  should  compose  ourselves 
to  sleep,  as  we  would  do  to  death. 

4.  A  time  of  aifliction.  Says  Asaph,  "  I  call  to  remembrance 
my  song  in  the  night ;  I  commune  with  mine  own  heart,  and  my 
spirit  made  diligent  search."  God  sends  afflictions  to  bring  sinners 
back  again  to  himself,  Hosea  ii.  6,  7.  But  when  we  run  away  from 
God,  we  run  away  from  ourselves  ;  and  the  first  turning  is,  to  turn 
to  ourselves,  to  come  to  serious  consideration,  Luke  xv.  17;  then  is 
it  time  to  pose  our  conscience  with  that  question,  What  have  I 
done  ? 


WITH  THEIR  OWN  HEARTS.  265 

5.  Before  we  go  to  religious  duties.  That  this  was  David's 
practice,  we  may  learn  from  his  calling  his  prayer  his  meditation, 
Psalm  V.  1.  This  duty  of  self-communing  before  prayer  and  other 
duties,  is  as  the  plough  before  the  sower,  to  prepare  the  heart.  That 
soul  that  takes  a  view  of  its  sins,  before  it  pray  for  the  pardon  of 
them,  is  likely  to  make  profit,  Exod.  xxxii.  26,  compare  xxx.  31. 

Lastly,  After  we  are  come  from  duties.  It  is  as  the  harrow  after 
the  sower,  to  cover  the  seed.  The  beasts  that  did  not  chew  the  cud 
were  unclean  ;  and  the  persons  who  do  not  meditate  on  what  they 
hear,  and  on  what  they  do,  are  not  likely  to  reap  much  benefit,  or 
to  reform  their  lives.  How  natural  is  it  to  a  man,  when  he  has  been 
about  a  worldly  business  of  importance,  to  reflect  on  it.  Much  more 
need  is  there  here.     We  are, 

IV.  To  give  reasons  why  we  should  thus  commuue  with  ourselves. 

1.  Because  our  conscience  is  witness  to  all  our  actions,  and  keeps 
a  record  of  our  conversation.  Our  conscience  also  bears  witness, 
and  our  thoughts  the  meanwhile  accusing,  or  else  excusing  one 
another.  "Would  we  flee  from  our  consciences,  we  must  flee  from 
ourselves.  Yet  alas  !  many  will  do  that  in  secret,  which  they  would 
not  do  before  a  little  child.  Conscience  is  a  thousand  witnesses. 
Good  reason,  then,  that  we  commune  with  it. 

2.  It  is  God's  deputy  in  the  soul.  If  God  should  send  one  out  of 
heaven  to  lodge  in  your  family  as  his  deputy,  would  you  not  be 
often  communing  with  him.  Conscience  is  so.  "  The  spirit  of  man 
is  the  candle  of  the  Lord,  searching  all  the  inward  parts  of  the 
belly."  It  is  our  schoolmaster  and  household  preacher,  God's  spy 
and  man's  overseer ;  as  Moses  was  to  Aaron  instead  of  God. 

3.  Because  its  approbation  is  necessary  for  our  actions.  Its  ante- 
cedent approbation  is  necessary  to  make  our  actions  lawful,  "  for 
whatsoever  is  not  of  faith  is  sin  ;"  so  that  it  is  even  sin  to  go 
against  the  conscience,  though  in  an  error ;  its  consequent  approba- 
tion is  necessary  to  our  peace.  "  Beloved,  if  our  heart  condemn  us 
not,  then  have  we  confidence  towards  God."  This  is  the  oracle,  then, 
within  our  breasts,  which  we  must  always  consult. 

4.  Excepting  only  God  himself,  our  consciences  are  our  best 
friends  or  worst  enemies.  A  good  conscience  will  clear  and  support 
a  man  under  the  greatest  hardships,  2  Cor.  i.  12;  and  even  in  the 
hour  of  death,  Isa.  xxxviii.  3.  Observe  of  king  Josiah,  he  was  slain 
in  war,  yet  died  in  peace  with  God  and  his  conscience,  2  Kings 
xxii.  20,  compare  xxiii.  29.  An  ill  conscience  will  deprive  us  of  the 
comfort  of  all  other  enjoyments,  and  fill  the  mind  with  horrible  dis- 
may, as  in  the  case  of  Belshazzar.     It  remains, 

V.  To  ehew  that  this  duty  is  an  excellent  mean  to  a  holy  life. 


266  BELIEVERS  COMMUNING 

1.  This  appears,  if  we  consider  that  the  want  of  it  is  that  which 
inal<es  people  go  on  securely  in  their  sins.  "I  hearkened  and 
heard,  saith  the  Lord ;  but  they  spake  not  aright,  no  man  repented 
him  of  his  wickedness,  saying,  What  have  I  done?  Every  one 
turneth  to  his  course,  as  the  horse  rusheth  into  the  battle."  Sin  is 
a  work  of  darkness,  and  therefore  goes  on  best  in  the  dark  ;  for  to 
him  that  is  in  love  with  his  sin,  the  morning  is  as  the  shadow  of 
death.  Therefore  Satan  keeps  all  fast,  as  long  as  he  gets  conscience 
and  the  man  kept  asunder. 

2.  As  soon  as  people  give  ear  to  their  consciences,  they  are 
obliged  to  begin  a  new  course ;  "  therefore,  thus  saith  the  Lord  God, 
consider  your  ways."  This  was  exemplified  in  the  prodigal.  David 
also  says,  "  I  thought  upon  my  ways,  and  turned  my  feet  unto  thy 
testimonies."  Conscience  is  ever  a  friend  to  holiness,  even  in  the 
worst  of  men. 

3.  Conscience  discovers  our  defects,  errors,  and  wanderings  out  of 
God's  way.  To  know  the  disease  is  a  considerable  step  to  the  cure. 
When  a  man  books  his  accounts,  and  compares  his  expenses  with 
his  income,  it  will  make  him  spend  less. 

4.  Conscience  will  point  out  duty,  and  spur  a  man  on  to  it. 
When  men  are  pricked  in  their  hearts,  they  will  cry,  what  shall  we 
do.  A  little  thinking  sometimes  would  set  resolutions  in  practice, 
and  make  good  purposes  bring  forth  abundantly. 

Use  1.  For  information.  We  need  not  weary  for  want  of  com- 
pany. We  have  a  companion  within  us,  able  to  hold  up  in  profit- 
able discourse. 

2.  It  is  great  wickedness  to  refuse  to  commune  with  our  con- 
sciences, when  they  offer  to  speak.  Sometimes  it  speaks  undesired  ; 
but  men  often  entertain  it,  as  did  Cain,  Felix,  and  others.  Some  do 
like  these  idolatrous  heathens,  who  beat  drums  and  raise  shouts, 
when  their  children  are  consuming  on  Moloch's  altar,  to  drown  their 
cries. 

3.  They  are  careless  souls  indeed,  whose  religion  never  reacheth 
to  their  beds,  farther  than  to  desire  God  to  have  a  care  of  them, 
when  they  wrap  the  clothes  about  them  ;  as  if  their  beds  were 
sleeping  places  for  their  souls  as  well  as  bodies ;  hence  Satan  has 
their  hearts,  sleeping  and  waking. 

4.  See  here  why  the  devil  is  such  an  enemy  to  this  duty.  Why, 
if  this  conference  takes  place  between  a  man  and  his  heart,  Satan's 
kingdom  is  in  danger.  But  men  sin  and  stand  not  in  awe,  for  they 
commune  not  with  their  heart. 

Use  2.  Of  exhortation.  Make  this  your  daily  work.  Commune 
with  your  hearts  respecting  what  concerns  your  souls.     The  subject 


WITH  THEIR  OWN  HEARTS.  26? 

is  very  large.  You  need  not  want  matter,  as  commune  with 
your  heart  respecting  your  state.  "  Examine  yourselves  whether 
you  be  in  the  faith ;  prove  your  ownselves."  Ask  your  souls 
whether  or  not  you  are  born  again  ?  It  is  certain  you  were  once 
children  of  wrath  and  of  the  devil.  The  voice  may  be  Jacob's  and 
the  hands  Esau's.  Perhaps  no  inward  change  has  yet  taken  place. 
Commune  respecting  the  frame  and  case  of  your  soul,  whether  you 
be  sleeping  or  waking,  growing  or  declining,  grace  in  exercise  or  not. 
Commune  respecting  your  sins.  It  is  very  unsafe  to  be  still  running 
on  in  the  score,  contracting  debts,  but  never  casting  up  your 
accounts.  Commune  where  you  are  like  to  take  up  your  eternal 
lodging,  in  heaven  or  hell.  It  is  a  serious  question.  Sit  not  down 
with  an  uncertainty,  a  mere  maybe  upon  it,  but  ponder  what  evi- 
dences you  have  for  heaven. 

In  the  morning  commune  with  your  hearts  on  what  hath  passed 
in  the  night;  on  the  goodness  of  God  in  preserving  and  refreshing 
you ;  what  good  or  sinful  motions  have  been  stirred  up  in  your  sleep ; 
on  the  danger  on  which  you  are  when  you  are  going  out  to  the  world, 
and  the  need  you  have  of  grace  to  keep  you. 

At  night  commune  on  what  has  passed  through  the  day,  looking 
through  your  hearts,  lips,  and  lives.  Ask  yoursehes  whether  you 
be  a  day's  journey  nearer  heaven,  or  hell ;  what  providences  you 
have  met  with,  what  temptations,  and  the  like. 

Before  you  engage  in  duty,  commune  with  your  hearts  respecting 
the  majesty  and  greatness  of  God,  before  whom  you  are  to  appear ; 
respecting  your  sins,  that  you  may  know  what  you  have  to  confess; 
respecting  your  wants,  that  you  may  know  what  to  ask ;  and  re- 
specting your  mercies,  in  order  to  give  thanks. 

"When  you  come  from  duties,  commune  respecting  your  behaviour 
in  them ;  what  success  you  have  had ;  whether  you  have  had  access 
to  God  or  not,  whether  you  have  received  any  blessings  of  grace  or 
not.  And  rush  not  rashly  on  any  project  or  business  ;  but  commune 
with  your  own  hearts,  and  consult  your  conscience  what  is  sin,  and 
what  is  duty  in  particular  cases.     Consider, 

1.  That  the  habitual  neglect  of  this  exercise  is  a  chief  engine  of 
Satan,  to  make  men  sleep  the  sleep  of  death.  In  hell,  the  incon- 
siderate rich  man  lift  up  his  eyes.  It  is  next  to  a  desperate  case 
which  the  prophet  Isaiah  describes :  "  He  feedeth  on  ashes ;  a  de- 
ceived heart  hath  turned  him  aside,  that  he  cannot  deliver  his  soul, 
nor  say,  is  there  not  a  lie  in  my  right  hand." 

2.  The  neglecting  of  this  duty  so  much,  is  the  reason  why  Christi- 
ans are  like  Pharaoh's  lean  kine,  so  ill  favoured.  He  that  would 
keep  a  clean  face,  should  often  look  into  the  glass. 

Vol.  IV.  a 


268  BELIEVERS  LABOURING 

Lastly,  Sooner  or  later  we  must  reclvon  with  conscience,  and  tlio 
longer  in  doing  it,  the  worse.  Death  and  judgment  are  posting  on. 
It  is  very  dismal,  indeed,  to  be  hurried  out  of  the  world,  ere  we  have 
got  a  serious  discourse  with  our  hearts,  respecting  our  state  and 
frame.  Be  not  afraid  at  the  difficulty  of  the  work.  If  Satan  be 
such  an  enemy  to  it,  that  says  that  it  is  most  advantageous  for  the 
soul.  Want  of  frequency  in  it  makes  us  so  averse  to  it,  and  the 
love  to  sin  which  must  be  put  away.  Study  tenderness  in  your  con- 
duct and  it  will  be  sweet  to  you,  and  often  wash  your  consciences  in 
the  blood  of  Christ.  *'  This  will  purge  your  consciences  from  dead 
works  to  serve  the  living  God."     Amen. 


Simprin,  August  11,  1706. 
BELIEVERS  LABOURING  FOR  THEIR  REWARD. 

SERMON  XXIX. 

Hebrews  iv.  11, 

Let  us  labour  therefore  to  enter  into  that  rest,  lest  any  man  fall  after 
the  same  example  of  unbelief. 

Here  have  we  no  continuing  city,  this  is  not  the  place  of  our  fixed 
abode;  all  men  are  in  motion  heavenward  or  hellward.  These  that 
are  going  downward,  may  sit  still ;  they  go  with  the  stream,  and 
ere  long  shall  reach  the  ocean  of  God's  wrath ;  these  that  are  going 
upward,  must  row  against  the  stream,  and  must  be  at  work  till  they 
arrive  at  Immanuel's  land.  Rest  here  is  too  dear  bought,  at  the 
rate  of  everlasting  trouble.  Let  us,  then,  labour  here,  that  we  may 
enter  into  that  rest  which  is  to  come.  In  these  words,  there  is. 
First,  An  exhortation  :  Second,  A  motive  pressing  it. 

In  the  exhortation  we  may  consider :  1.  The  dependence  of  it  upon 
what  goes  before,  intimated  in  the  particle  therefore  ;  shewing  that 
it  is  an  inference  from  some  preceding  doctrine.  In  the  latter  part 
of  the  third  chapter,  he  shews  that  unbelief  kept  the  disobedient 
Israelites  out  of  God's  rest ;  both  out  of  Canaan,  and  heaven  typi- 
fied thereby,  chap.  iv. 

1.  He  lets  them  see,  that  they  had  an  ofi'er  of  that  eternal  rest, 
as  well  as  the  Israelites  in  the  wilderness  had ;  because  both  had  the 


FOR  THEIB  REWARD.  269 

gospel,  only  the  Israelites  in  the  wilderness  did  not  believe  it,  ver.  2. 
He  proves  there  was  a  rest  remaining  for  the  people  of  God,  from 
ver.  3  ;  and  lays  down  the  conclusion,  ver.  9.  This  he  confirms  ver. 
10,  which  some  understand  of  believers,  and  these  go  two  ways  :  1. 
Some  take  it  for  these  that  are  now  in  heaven,  who  cease  there  from 
sin.  2.  Some  take  it  for  believers  on  earth,  who  are  in  the  way  to 
eternal  rest,  and  so  have  in  part  ceased  from  sin.  Others  under- 
stand it  of  Christ,  of  whose  exaltation  he  speaks,  chap  i.  3,  and 
frequently  in  this  epistle.  Christ,  as  the  believer's  head,  is  entered 
into  heaven,  he  has  gone  there  as  our  forerunner,  and  has  now 
ceased  from  the  work  of  redemption,  finished  on  the  cross,  even  as 
God  rested  on  the  seventh  day  from  his  work  of  creation.  This  I 
take  to  be  very  probable.  From  the  whole,  he  doth  most  natively 
infer  the  exhortation  in  the  text. 

2.  The  great  thing  which  we  should  have  in  our  eye,  that  rest, 
namely,  of  which  David  speaks,  Psal.  xcv.  11;  that  rest  which  remains, 
ver.  9.  The  apostle  shews,  that  the  rest  of  which  David  spoke  was  not 
the  rest  of  the  Sabbath  ;  for  that  rest  of  the  Sabbath,  in  which  God 
ceased  from  the  work  of  creation,  was  long  since  over  and  gone  ; 
the  rest  which  David  means,  was  not  so,  ver.  3 — 7.  Neither  was  it 
the  rest  of  Canaan,  given  the  people  by  Joshua,  for  the  same  reason, 
ver.  8;  therefore,  it  is  a  rest  yet  to  come,  and  that  peculiar  to  the 
people  of  God.  This  rest  is  nothing  else  but  heaven,  or  the  state  of 
glory,  which  the  Lord  gives  to  his  people,  being  taken  out  of  this 
world.  It  is  eternal  life,  Rev.  xiv.  13.  This  is  that  rest  from 
which  unbelievers  are  excluded,  Heb.  iii.  19. 

3.  What  we  are  to  aim  at,  in  reference  to  that  rest ;  "  to  enter 
into  it;"  that  is,  to  be  partakers  of  it.  The  reason  of  this  phrase 
is,  that  heaven  and  eternal  life  is  ordinarily  held  out  by  a  garden  or 
paradise,  a  house,  a  city,  a  kingdom,  into  which  we  are  to  enter  by 
certain  ways,  posts,  and  doors.     By  grace  we  come  to  glory. 

4.  The  means  to  be  used,  in  order  to  our  entering,  is  labouring. 
Labour  we  must,  for  heaven  will  not  fall  down  into  our  mouths, 
while  lying  on  the  bed  of  sloth.  They  that  will  not  work,  must  not 
eat  bread  in  the  kingdom  of  God.  Drinking  of  the  rivers  of  plea- 
sures, which  are  at  God's  right  hand,  is  reserved  for  labourers  only, 
not  for  loiterers.  The  Greek  word  is  very  emphatical,  and  sig- 
nifies labouring  with  intenseness  of  mind,  carefulness,  and  haste  ; 
accordingly  it  is  diversely  translated.  It  primarily  denotes  haste, 
Mark  vi.  25.  That  which  people  hasten,  after  they  are  intent  upon 
it ;  so  we  may  better  understand  that,  Mark  vi.  25,  "She  went  in 
fifltojc,  straifjJttwat/  (denoting  haste,)  /tfra  (rnovh'ic,  with  haste  ,•"  (denot- 
ing the  intenseness  of  her  mind  on  the  thing.)     They  also  go  vigour- 

s2 


270  BELIEVERS  LABOURING 

ously  about  it,  sparing  no  pains,  and  exert  to  their  utmost.  Hence, 
2  Pet.  i.  10,  tlie  word  is  rendered,  give  diligence.  They  are  also 
very  solicitous  and  careful  that  they  may  not  lose  it.  Hence,  2  Pet. 
i.  15,  it  is  rendered,  I  will  endeavour;  see  also  2  Cor.  viii.  16.  The 
apostle,  then,  having  made  choice  of  this  Greek  word,  we  may  im- 
prove it  in  its  full  extent,  without  stretching  it  beyond  his  inten- 
tion. 

5.  Observe  the  order  of  the  labour  and  the  rest.  In  the  way  of 
God's  appointment,  and  of  the  godly's  choice,  the  labour  is  first, 
then  comes  the  rest.  It  is  quite  contrary  with  the  wicked.  The 
Chaldeans  measured  their  natural  day  otherwise  than  the  Israelites. 
They  put  the  day  first,  then  the  night ;  the  Jews  counted  the  night 
first,  then  the  day  follows.  So  the  wicked  begin  with  a  day  of  rest, 
and  end  with  eternal  toil  ;  the  godly  begin  with  a  night  of  toil,  and 
end,  or  rather  continue  in  eternal  rest.  0  that  we  may  follow  God's 
order  ! 

6.  Observe  the  end  and  design  of  this  labour,  it  is  rest.  Men 
work  in  their  young  days,  and  lay  up,  that  they  may  rest  in  old 
age.  So  does  the  Christian.  The  wicked  also  labour  that  they  may 
rest ;  but  there  is  a  vast  difference  both  betwixt  their  labour  and 
rest.  Their  labour  is  in  sin,  and  their  rest  is  there  ;  but  sought  in 
vain,  "  for  in  the  fulness  of  their  sufficiency  they  are  in  straits." 
But  the  godly  have  their  labour  in  grace,  their  rest  in  glory,  and 
between  these  there  is  an  infallible  connection  ;  who,  then,  would 
refuse  that  labour,  which  ends  in  that  rest. 

7.  The  persons  exhorted  to  labour ;  us,  which  includes  the  apostle 
and  all  the  Hebrews,  whom  he  exhorts  to-day  to  hear  God's  voice, 
and  whom  he  alarms  by  the  example  of  the  ruin  of  their  prede- 
cessors ;  so  that  this  exhortation  belongs  to  all  the  visible  church, 
godly  and  ungodly.  Some  have  entered  the  avenue  leading  to 
glory,  some  have  not;  both  are  called  to  labour  to  enter. 

2.  The  motive  pressing  the  exhortation.  It  is  taken  from  the 
danger  of  not  labouring.     Consider  here, 

1.  That  of  which  people  are  in  danger,  and  which  will  come  upon 
them,  if  they  labour  not  to  enter,  falling ;  that  is,  falling  short  of 
heaven,  and  missing  salvation.  He  hath  a  respect  to  the  people's 
falling  in  the  wilderness,  being  destroyed  there,  so  as  they  could 
never  reach  Canaan,  Heb.  iii.  17;  so  shall  all  slothful  persons  fall 
with  respect  to  heaven. 

2.  The  great  cause  of  ruin,  that  is,  unbelief  or  unpersuasibleness. 
Unbelief  is  the  great  cause  of  the  ruin  of  the  hearers  of  the  gospel, 
and  that  which  cuts  the  sinews  of  true  diligence,  so  as  people  under 
the  power  of  it  cannot  labour. 


FOR  THEIR  REWARD.  271 

3.  A  confirmation  of  the  certainty  of  their  ruin  ;  "  after  the  same 
example  of  unbelief."  Others  read,  "  into  the  same  example  ;"  as 
if  he  had  said,  lest  they  be  a  sad  example  of  divine  vengeance  to 
others,  as  the  Israelites  were  before  them.  But  our  own  reading  is 
most  agreeable  to  the  scope ;  as  if  he  had  said,  lest  they  fall  as  the 
Israelites  did,  and  split  on  the  same  rock.  There  are  examples  of 
imitation,  these  we  want  not ;  and  examples  of  caution  and  warn- 
ing, such  were  the  Israelites  in  the  wilderness. 

4.  The  universality  of  the  danger ;  any  man.  No  man  is  out  of 
hazard  for  none  that  labour  not  can  stand. 

5.  The  connection  of  this  with  the  exhortation  ;  lest  any  man  ; 
(Greek,)  that  none  may  fall ;  importing  that  the  hazard  of  falling 
short  of  heaven  ought  to  quicken  our  endeavours  after  salvation. 

Doctrines.  I.  Heaven  is  a  rest,  into  which  those  that  now  labour 
for  it  shall  be  at  length  received. 

II.  It  is  the  necessary  duty  of  all  that  hear  the  gospel,  to  labour 
to  enter  into  that  rest.  I  shall  begin  with  this  second  doctrine.  In 
handling  this,  I  shall, 

I.  Shew  what  it  is  to  labour,  or  in  what  the  Christian's  labour 
consists. 

II.  For  what  it  is  that  we  are  to  labour. 

III.  How  we  should  labour. 

IV.  That  we  must  labour,  in  order  to  our  entering  into  rest. 

V.  Why  we  must  labour  in  this  spiritual  work  in  order  to  our 
entering  heaven.     I  am  then, 

I.  To  shew  what  it  is  to  labour,  or  in  what  the  Christian's  la- 
bour consists. 

I  take  up  this,  in  these  four  things  hinted  in  the  explanation  of 
the  words : 

1.  The  mind  must  be  intent  on  the  business  of  salvation.  There 
must  be  a  serious  bending  of  the  soul  to  it  and  application  of  the 
mind,  as  he  that  is  labouring  to  gain  a  city  by  storm.  "  The  king- 
dom of  heaven  sufFereth  violence,  and  the  violent  take  it  by  force." 
Heaven  is  a  rest  for  the  soul,  and  therefore  the  soul  must  be  at 
work  before  it  come  there.  Mere  bodily  labour  profits  nothing  here, 
for  it  is  not  of  that  kind  of  work  that  may  be  carried  on  without 
application  of  mind.  Toys  and  trifles  may  be  so  managed,  but 
weighty  business  cannot.  Here  the  mind  must  be  intent  on  the 
end,  that  is,  the  rest.  Heaven  must  be  in  the  eye.  So  was  it  with 
our  forerunner  :  "  For  the  joy  set  before  him,  he  endured  the  cross 
and  despised  the  shame."  The  man  that  is  on  a  journey  applies  his 
mind  to  his  journey's  end,  and  often  sees  it  before  he  comes  at  it. 


272  BELIEVERS  LABOUlUNtt 

He  that  intends  to  take  a  city  fixeth  his  mind  on  it,  and  will  not  be 
diverted  from  his  purpose  ;  so  is  it  with  him  that  labours  for  salva- 
tion.    The  mind  must  also  be  intent  on  the  means  that  lead  to  the 
end.     It  is  entering  for  which  he  labours.     No  man  can  be  ac- 
counted a  labourer  for  a  good  crop,   who  neglects  the  ploughing 
and  sowing  of  his  ground ;  and  the  means  leading  to  salvation  are 
such  as  will  not  be  effectual  without  the  mind  be  intent  on  them. 
"  Strive,"  says  our  Saviour,  "  to  enter  in  at  the  strait  gate ;  for 
many,  I  say  unto  you,  will  seek  to  enter  in,  and  shall  not  be  able." 
Now  this  application  of  the   mind  to  the  business  of  salvation 
imports,  1.  An  impression  of  the  weight  of  that  matter  upon  the 
spirit.     No  wise  man  will  labour  for  a  trifle ;    and  no  man  will 
labour  for  salvation,  but   he  that  hath  a  deep  impression  of  its 
importance;  hence  is  it  that  so  few  labour  this  way.     Most  men 
are  at  no  tolerable  pains  about  their  salvation.     Some  will  not  want 
an  hour's  rest  for  salvation,  that  will  want  a  whole  night's  rest  for 
something  of  the  world.     The  reason  is  plain  ;   the  world  appears 
great,  and  heaven  little  in  their  eyes ;   therefore  men's  hearts  must 
be  pricked,  that  their  sense  of  feeling  may  be  raised,  ere  they  will 
be  solicitous  about  their  salvation.     There  are  two  things  that  make 
salvation  weigh  with  them.     There  is  first  a  treasure  of  wrath  on 
the  one  hand,  Rom.  ii.  5,  which  is  growing  daily,  by  the  inci'ease  of 
sin.     The  cup  of  wrath  seems  to  them  too  full,  that  they  should  be 
able  to  drink  it  ofl'.     The  vengeance  of  God  appears  a  load  too 
great  for  their  shoulders,  hence  they  are  ready  to  say,  who  can 
abide  with  everlasting  burning.     A  second  thing  is  a  weight  of  glory 
on  the  other  hand,  2  Cor.  iv.  13.     Here  they  see  in  what  true  happi- 
ness consists.     Will  a  weight  of  gold  make  a  sluggard  labour ;   and 
will  not  a  weight  of  glory,  seen  by  an  eye  of  faith,  make  a  Christian 
labour.     This  application  imports,  2.  An  habitual  minding  of  that 
business.     Religion  is  the  believer's  trade,  hence  his  conversation  is 
in  heaven.     As  for  others,  the  curse  of  the  serpent  is  upon  them,  on 
their  belly  do  they  go,  licking  the  dust  of  the  earth ;  and  when  the 
frame  of  the  new  creature  is  such,  that  it  looks  heavenward  natively, 
the  unrenewed,  like   the  beasts,   continually   look   down  ;    "  their 
God  is  their  belly,  and  they  mind  earthly  things."     They  labour 
for  the  meat  that  perisheth,  and  will  not  seek  after  God.     Rut  if 
salvation  be  our  study,  it  will  be  often  in  our  thoughts ;  and  the 
question  that  occupies  our  attention  will  not  be,  who  will  shew  us 
any  good  ?  but  that,  what  shall  we  do  to  be  saved  ?     In  this  applica- 
tion of  the  mind,  there  is,  3.  The  heart's  being  set  upon  salvation, 
2  Cor.  V.  9.    The  scattered  affections  of  the  soul  are  gathered  together 
from  off  the  variety  of  objects  which  the  world  affords  us,  and  are 


FOR  THEIR  REWARD.  273 

fixed  here,  Psal.  xxvii.  4.  Most  men  cannot  labour  for  salvation, 
because  they  run  themselves  out  of  breath  in  pursuit  of  the  world ; 
hence  a  twofold  evil  follows  for  their  souls.  1.  A  great  aversion  to 
the  duties  of  religion  and  the  concerns  of  the  soul.  The  full  soul 
loatheth  an  honey-comb  ;  as  a  man  that  has  filled  himself  in  his  own 
house,  has  no  appetite  for  the  feast  to  which  he  is  invited,  and  the 
more  so,  if  new  come  ofl^  a  journey,  and  worn  out  with  fatigue; 
hence  the  man,  if  he  go  to  duty,  he  is  dragged  to  it.  2.  Unfitness 
for  duties  of  religion.  The  cream  and  life  of  the  man's  afi"ections  are 
already  spent  on  the  world  and  his  lusts,  so  that  nothing  is  left  for 
God  and  his  soul  but  the  lame  and  the  sick,  so  that  he  cannot  la- 
bour, and  so  must  lose,  unless  some  faint  attempts  will  do  the  business. 

But  if  we  would  labour  for  salvation,  we  must  draw  our  hearts  to 
the  work,  from  off  other  objects ;  salvation  will  be  our  great  desire, 
aud  with  Mary  we  will  choose  the  better  part ;  our  hearts  will 
draw  our  hands  to  work.  It  is  true,  even  the  wicked  desire  salva- 
tion, but  there  are  these  defects  in  their  desires  of  it,  1.  They  are 
nature's  own  work  ;  they  come  up  without  the  overcoming  power  of 
the  Spirit  of  Christ.  They  are  like  weeds  and  wild  oats,  that  grow 
without  ploughing  or  sowing ;  nothing  of  that  mighty  power  there, 
Eph.  i.  19,  hence  they  cannot  actuate  a  man  to  supernatural  duties, 
for  these  are  beyond  their  sphere.  2.  His  desires  overleap  the  true 
means.  He  loves  the  gold,  but  he  cannot  endure  to  dig.  He  loves 
to  reap,  but  he  cannot  endure  to  plough,  because  of  the  cold.  3.  He 
desires  it  absolutely,  but  not  comparatively.  Give  him  sin  and  safe- 
ty, too,  they  are  welcome ;  but  he  will  rather  make  shipwreck  of  his 
soul,  than  part  with  his  lusts ;  but  he  that  hath  his  heart  set  on 
salvation,  will  part  with  all  to  gain  it,  Matth.  xiii.  45,  46. 

2.  In  this  labour  there  is  painfulness  and  diligence.  He  doth  not 
only  think  on  it,  but  work  for  it;  his  desires  are  backed  with  suitable 
endeavours.  We  must  not  sit  down  and  wish  for  heaven  with  folded 
hands.  These  desires  are,  like  Rachel,  beautiful  indeed,  but  barren. 
"  The  soul  of  the  sluggard  desireth,  and  hath  nothing."  There  must 
be  true  pains  here,  aud  vigorous  endeavours,  that  will  make  the  soul 
to  breathe,  and  pant  and  sweat,  to  obtain  the  desired  salvation ;  and 
this  implies  the  engaging  with  the  duties  of  I'eligion,  as  the  way 
to  heaven.  If  we  mind  for  heaven,  we  must  go  in  the  path  road, 
following  the  footsteps  of  the  flock,  Heb.  xii.  14.  They  that  do  not 
labour  at  God's  work,  cannot  expect  his  rest.  It  implies  also,  that 
no  mean  must  be  left  unemployed,  in  order  to  the  attaining  of  sal- 
vation ;  it  is  a  matter  of  life  and  death ,  and  all  that  a  man  hath  he 
will  give  for  his  life.  They  that  labour  for  salvation  will  seek 
everywhere,  and  turn  every  stone,  till  they  find  it.     He  is  a  painful 


274  BKXilEVEKS  LABUUIUMG 

Christian,  not  he  that  will  do  some  things,  with  Herod ;  but  he  that 
will  not  refuse  the  hardest  piece  of  work,  in  order  to  the  obtaining 
of  his  desire.  Sloth  may  well  carry  a  man  half  way  to  heaven,  but 
the  laborious  Christian  leaves  the  sluggard  by  the  way,  for  this  dili- 
gence also  implies  constancy  in  the  way  of  the  Lord.  A  Christian 
must  be  always  employed.  Salvation  is  a  web,  into  which  we  must 
weave  the  whole  thread  of  our  lives.  The  man  that  minds  for  hea- 
ven, is  a  labourer  indeed,  whose  work  is  never  at  an  end,  till  he  enter 
to  his  eternal  rest.  He  can  never  want  work,  as  long  as  he  is  out  of 
heaven,  and  as  long  as  there  is  a  devil  and  an  ill  heart  to  interrupt 
his  work.  It  is  the  mark  of  a  hypocrite,  that  he  will  not  delight 
himself  in  the  Almighty,  nor  always  call  upon  God.  Many  profes- 
sors are  no  more  labourers  for  heaven,  than  a  man  who  will  occa- 
sionally, for  his  diversion,  go  to  take  hold  of  a  plough  is  a  plough- 
man. Religion  is  not  their  chief  business.  Finally,  this  diligence 
implies  real  vigour  ;  whatsoever  they  do,  they  do  it  with  all  their 
might :  "  They  search  for  wisdom,  as  for  hid  treasures."  There  is  a 
following  of  the  Lord  fully,  over  the  belly  of  all  oppositions  and 
discouragements.  The  man  labours  for  salvation,  as  working  for  his 
life  itself,  for  indeed  he  sees  his  all  is  at  stake.  No  opposition  will 
make  him  give  over ;  if  he  faint  he  will  rise  again,  and  more  vigor- 
ously renew  the  attack.  There  is  such  a  faintness  in  all  the  endea- 
vours of  many  for  heaven,  that  with  the  fearful  who  have  no  heart, 
they  are  excluded  ;  Rev.  xxi.  8. 

3.  In  this  labour  there  is  haste.  Our  work  must  be  done  speedily, 
for  the  time  proposed  for  our  labouring  is  but  to-day.  "  To-day,  if 
ye  will  hear  his  voice."  There  is  an  unbelieving  haste,  that  will  not 
wait  God's  time ;  but  this  true  haste  is  not  to  let  his  time  slip. 
Delays  are  dangerous  in  all  matters,  but  damnable  in  soul  matters ; 
therefore  David  would  not  venture  on  it,  but  says,  "  I  made  haste, 
and  delayed  not  to  keep  thy  commandments."  Therefore,  says  the 
apostle,  labour  with  all  haste  to  enter  into  that  rest. 

Objection.  But  how  can  one  haste  to  heaven,  can  he  go  there 
before  death,  or  must  he  hasten  his  own  death  ?  Answer.  No. 
But  the  way  is  long,  and  the  entry  to  it  is  far  out  of  our  natural 
way.  We  must  hasten  by  a  speedy  entrance  upon  the  way  to  it, 
by  a  speedy  conversion  to  God.  They  that  are  near  conver- 
sion, are  said,  "  not  to  be  far  from  the  kingdom  of  God."  They 
who  forsake  the  world  lying  in  wickedness,  have  to  enter  into 
that  rest,  and  get  into  the  avenue  of  grace,  from  whence  they 
shall  certainly  reach  glory.  "We  must  also  make  haste,  by  a 
speedy  progress  in  the  way.  There  are  many  steps  betwixt  us  and 
heaven.     We  have  need  to  go  forward,  and  work,  out  our  begun  sal- 


FOR  TTIEIR  REWARD.  275 

vation  with  fear  and  trembling.  There  are  many  corruptions  to 
mortify,  and  graces  to  strengthen.  Two  things  make  men  that  are 
wise  labour  with  haste  :  1.  Time  is  flying.  "  Our  days  are  swifter 
than  a  post ;  they  flee  away  ;"  and  when  gone,  cannot  be  recalled. 
Time  is  bald  in  the  hind  head.  That  which  was,  will  be  no  more. 
Yesterday  has  taken  its  eternal  farewell.  The  candle  that  is  burnt 
out  to  snufl",  cannot  be  lighted  again.  No  medicine  will  cure  that 
wound,  no  oratory  will  persuade  it  to  return  ;  crowns  and  kingdoms 
will  not  buy  it  back  again.  Time  past  is  out  of  their  power,  the 
time  to  come  is  not  theirs.  Their  only  time  is  the  present,  what 
wonder  then  they  make  haste.  2.  Death  is  approaching,  and  there 
is  no  return  from  it  back  again  to  this  life,  to  rectify  what  was  for- 
merly done  amiss.  Job  xiv.  14.  There  is  no  place  for  labouring 
there,  Eccles.  ix.  10 ;  heaven  and  hell  are  for  other  work  than  this. 
If  the  infant  come  to  the  world  dead,  the  open  world  will  not  revive 
him  ;  and  if  death  catch  the  soul  idle,  it  shall  never  have  occasion 
to  labour  more,  but  under  the  wrath  of  God. 

4.  There  is  in  this  labour  carefulness  and  holy  anxiety  about  sal- 
vation, in  the  managing  of  the  work,  Philip,  ii.  12.  Now  this  im- 
plies, 1.  The  turning  of  the  soul  from  anxious  cares  about  the  world, 
to  a  holy  solicitude  about  the  salvation  of  the  soul.  When  a  man 
begins  to  labour  for  heaven,  "  who  will  shew  us  any  good  ?"  is  turned 
to,  "  what  shall  I  do  to  be  saved  ?"  For  the  man  now  knows  that 
truth,  "  what  is  a  man  profited,  if  he  should  gain  the  whole  world, 
and  lose  his  own  soul  ?"  The  mind  of  man  is  too  narrow  to  be  taken 
up  about  two  such  diff"erent  objects  at  the  same  time.  No  man  can 
serve  two  masters.  We  may  as  well  at  once  grasp  heaven  and  earth 
in  our  arms,  as  be  solicitous  about  both.  It  implies  also  a  fear  of 
falling  short  of  heaven.  I  do  not  mean  a  fear  of  despondency,  for 
that  cuts  off  labouring,  and  it  is  hope  that  feeds  these  labourers ; 
nor  yet  a  doubtfulness  as  to  the  event,  as  when  a  man  is  racked  with 
doubts,  whether  he  shall  be  saved  or  damned.  This  indeed  is  the 
man's  case,  when  the  Lord  begins  first  to  deal  with  him,  and  is  of 
good  use  to  stir  him  up  to  labour ;  for  here  is  fear  mixed  with  hope, 
and  it  is  the  work  of  the  Spirit  of  God,  Rom.  viii.  15.  This  is  also 
the  case  of  the  people  of  God  sometimes  after  conversion  ;  but  this 
doubting  is  not  their  duty  then,  as  not  being  from  God's  Spirit,  "for 
they  have  not  received  the  spirit  of  bondage  again  to  fear."  But 
that  in  the  text  is  urged  as  duty,  and  there  is  a  fear  of  falling  short 
competent  to  assured  Christians,  Heb.  iv.  1,  which  is  a  spur  to  dili- 
gence. So  Paul,  2  Cor.  v.  1 — 11.  Noah  had  a  promise  of  safety, 
yet  "  was  he  moved  with  fear,"  Heb.  xi.  7. 

They  ought  to  fear  the  thing,  as  Noah  did  the  deluge ;    so  as  to 


276  BELIE VEKS  LABOURING 

avoid  every  thing  that  may  expose  them  to  it,  and  to  do  every  thing 
that  may  contribute  to  their  safety.  It  is  not  kindly  assurance,  but 
carnal  presumption  that  makes  a  man  like  the  leviathan,  to  count 
darts  as  stubble,  and  laugh  at  the  shaking  of  the  spear.  No,  he  that 
seriously  considers  the  power  of  God's  wrath,  and  that  it  is  in  itself 
possible  for  him  to  perish,  must  needs  tremble  at  the  thought  of  hell, 
and  run  to  Christ,  who  alone  can  deliver  him  from  the  wrath  to  come. 
That  God  can  destroy  both  soul  and  body  in  hell,  though  he  will  not, 
is  enough  to  make  the  heart  quake. 

It  implies  likewise,  an  earnest  desire  to  be  set  and  kept  on  the 
"way  to  heaven.  Men  may  labour  to  little  purpose,  if  they  be  not  on 
the  right  way.  "  The  labour  of  the  foolish  wearieth  every  one  of 
them,  because  he  knoweth  not  how  to  go  to  the  city."  And  when 
there  are  so  many  byeways  whose  end  is  destruction,  the  thoughts 
of  this  must  needs  make  the  soul  anxious  to  know  where  he  is,  and 
therefore  he  will  be  consulting  the  way-marks,  examining  his  way, 
and  striving  to  steer  his  course  to  the  right  or  left  hand,  according 
as  he  may  be  directed  by  his  counsellors.  He  may  come  to  several 
steps  in  the  way,  with  which  he  is  not  acquainted ;  these  will  put 
him  to  a  stand,  not  knowing  to  what  hand  to  turn  himself,  whether 
that  be  present  duty  or  sin,  but  then  he  will  lift  his  eyes  to  the 
Lord  for  direction,  Jer.  x.  23 ;  Prov.  iii.  6 ;  whereas  others  ramble 
forward  at  random,  and  fall,  to  their  ruin.  There  is  here  also  a 
fear  of  mismanagement  in  his  work.  The  labourer  for  heaven  should 
work,  and  doth  best  work  with  a  trembling  hand.  It  was  the  funda- 
mental maxim  of  the  heathen  moralists,  have  confidence  in  yourself. 
But  I  may  say  the  Christian  maxim  is,  have  no  confidence  in  your- 
self. He  that  trusteth  in  his  own  heart  is  a  fool.  This  makes 
them  circumspect  to  forecast  dangers,  to  walk  warily,  like  a  child 
beginning  to  walk,  or  a  man  recovering  of  a  broken  leg,  Isa.  xxxviii. 
15.  They  have  an  anxious  heart  and  earnest  care  about  their  work, 
seeing  they  work  for  eternity.     We  now  proceed, 

II.  To  shew  for  what  we  are  to  labour.  It  is  to  enter  into  the 
heavenly  rest.  This  is  that  which  we  are  to  have  in  our  eye,  and  to 
which  our  endeavours  are  to  be  directed.  We  are  not  called  to 
work  for  nought ;  but  as  heaven  is  attainable,  we  are  to  labour  that 
we  may  enter  into  it.     In  speaking  to  this,  I  shall, 

I.  Shew  some  Scriptural  notions  of  heaven,  to  which  this  of  enter- 
ing doth  agree. 

II.  What  it  is  to  enter  into  the  heavenly  rest. 

III.  Some  steps  in  the  way,  by  which  we  must  labour  to  enter. 
lY.  I  shall  consider  this  labouring  to  enter,  as  it  respects  our 

preparation  for  heaven.     I  am  then, 


FOR  THEIR  REWARD.  277 

I.  To  shew  some  Scriptural  notions  of  heaven,  to  which  this  of 
entering  doth  agree. 

1.  Heaven  is  held  out  under  the  notion  of  a  garden  or  paradise. 
"  Jesus  said  to  the  thief  on  the  cross,  to-day,  shalt  thou  be  with  me 
in  paradise."  Sinless  Adam  lived  in  the  earthly  paradise,  sinless 
saints  shall  live  in  the  heavenly.  It  is  a  paradise  for  pleasures, 
in  it  "  are  rivers  of  pleasures."  Not  one,  but  many  Edens  or  plea- 
sures. Here  is  the  tree  of  life,  and  on  this  tree  are  fruits  in  the 
greatest  variety,  abundance,  and  excellence.  We  live  now  in  a 
wilderness,  we  are  to  labour  to  enter  into  a  paradise. 

2.  A  house.  "  We  have  a  building  of  God,"  says  Paul,  "  an  house 
not  made  with  hands,  eternal  in  the  heavens."  Solomon  built  a 
magnificent  house  for  Pharaoh's  daughter;  heaven  is  that  glorious 
house  which  Christ  the  true  Solomon  hath  gone  to  prepare  for  his 
people.  It  is  his  father's  house,  even  the  house  of  his  kingdom;  a 
house  in  which  there  are  many  mansions  fitted  up  for  receiving  all 
that  ever  shall  come  there ;  and  though  not  all,  nay  though  not  the 
most  now  present,  shall  ever  come  to  it ;  it  is  not  for  want  of  room, 
but  for  want  of  labouring  to  enter  into  it,  for  it  hath  a  straight  gate 
that  discourageth  many. 

3.  The  temple  typified  by  that  at  Jerusalem.  "  Christ  entered  not 
into  the  holy  places  made  with  hands,  which  are  the  figures  of  the  true; 
but  into  heaven  itself,  now  to  appear  in  the  presence  of  God  for  us." 
It  is  called  the  tabernacle.  Rev.  xxi.  3  ;  yea,  the  holiest,  Heb.  x. 
19,  20.  Canaan  was  the  glory  of  the  world ;  Jerusalem  was  the 
glory  of  Canaan,  and  the  temple  was  the  glory  of  Jerusalem.  Now 
all  these  are  a  ruinous  heaj) ;  bat  no  change  here,  "  for  the  Lord 
God  Almighty  and  the  Lamb  are  the  temple  of  it."  How  did  the 
saints  of  old  value  the  tabernacle  and  temple,  but  as  they  were  only 
shadows  of  the  heavenly.  In  it,  we  shall  have  Christ  the  true  ark, 
in  whom  the  law  is  fulfilled  ;  the  cherubims;  the  society  of  angels; 
the  golden  candlestick  ;  yea,  the  Lamb  is  the  light  thereof;  the  in- 
cense altar  Christ,  by  whom  we  are  made  priests  to  God,  Rev.  i.  6 ; 
the  table,  in  communion  with  God.  Into  this  temple  it  is  that  we 
are  to  labour  to  enter. 

4.  A  city  glorious  for  magnificence  and  beauty,  largely  described. 
Rev.  xxi.  The  saints  in  glory  are  not  penned  up  in  a  garden, 
house,  or  temple ;  but  walk  at  liberty  in  a  city  which  God  hath  pre- 
pared for  them,  Heb.  xi.  16.  This  is  the  city  of  the  living  God, 
which  shall  never  see  ruins;  here  there  is  no  hazard  from  within, 
uo  danger  from  without,  Rev.  xxi.  25,  27.  Into  this  city  must  we 
labour  to  enter,  there  to  dwell  as  citizens  for  ever. 

5.  A  country ;  even  a  better  country  than  the  best  here  below, 


278  BELIEVERS  LABOURING 

Heb.  xi.  16.  "What  toil  did  the  Israelites  undergo,  that  they  might 
enter  into,  and  possess  Canaan  !  Behold  you  are  called  to  labour 
for  a  heavenly  country,  in  which  nothing  is  wanting.  This  is  the 
country  in  which  we  are  but  sojourners,  but  heaven  is  a  country 
where  we  may  live  for  ever  at  rest. 

6.  A  kingdom,  Matt.  xxv.  34 ;  a  kingdom  that  cannot  be  moved, 
Heb.  xi.  28.     The  best  kingdoms  on  earth  are  liable  to  sad  convul- 
sions and  shakings,  but  here  is  no  hazard.     Sin  is  not  there ;  no 
vapours  inclosed  in  the  bowels  of  the  earth,  to  make  an  earthquake 
there  ;  and  no  violence  can  come  from  without.     Here  all  the  sub- 
jects are  kings,  each  with  a  crown  on  his  head.     What  need  of  penal 
laws  here,  where  none  of  the  subjects  can  ever  err  ?     "Who  would 
refuse  any  labour  to  enter  into  this  kingdom,  where  they  shall  be 
welcome  to  the  best  of  it,  even  to  the  throne,  Rev.  iii.  21.     We  are, 
II.  To  shew  what  it  is  to  enter  into  the  heavenly  rest.     There  is 
a  fivefold  entering  into  heaven  and  life,  for  which  we  must  labour. 
I.  There  is  an  entering  into  heaven  by  the  covenant.     The  cove- 
nant  of  grace  is  the  outer  court   of  heaven.     Of  this  everlasting 
covenant,  ordered   in   all   things   and   sure,  David    says,  "  this   is 
all  ray  salvation  and  all  my  desire."     Surely,  then,  heaven  was  in 
it.     The  covenant  is  the  chariot  in  which  Christ  carries  his  people  to 
glory.     This  chariot  cannot  stop  by  the  way,  so  that  they  who  are 
once  in  it,  shall  as  surely  come  there,  as  if  they  were  there  already. 
They  "  are   in   hope    of  eternal   life,  which    God  who   cannot   lie 
promised    before   the  world  began."      So   then  we  must  labour  to 
be  within  the  bond  of  the  covenant.     Faint  wishes  will  not  carry 
you   up  into   it.     But,  1.   You  must   close  with    Christ;  make  up 
the  match  deliberately  and  sincerely  betwixt  Christ  and  your  souls. 
Take   hold   of  Christ,  and   you    take    hold   of  the   covenant,  Isa. 
xlii.   6,  and   xxvii.  5.     You  must,  2.   Break   covenant  with    your 
lusts,  saying,  with  Ephraim,  "  What  have  I  to  do  any  more  with 
idols  ?"     Many  pretend  to  have  covenanted  with  God  at  commu- 
nions ;  but  it  plainly  appears,  that  of  the  chariot  in  which  they  are, 
the  devil  is  the  driver ;  for  they  are  a  stain  to  religion,  and  cannot 
resist  temptations,  "  but  are  taken  captive  by  the  devil  at  his  will." 
No  wonder  that  persons  hasten  after  other  gods,  when  the  devil 
drives  them.     Q,uit  them  we  must,  or  quit  the  covenant,  and  so  quit 
heaven. 

2.  There  is  an  entering  by  faith.  "  Now  faith  is  the  substance 
of  things  hoped  for,  the  evidence  of  things  not  seen."  Faith  is 
the  very  being  of  things  hoped  for,  it  realizeth  these  things  that  to 
us,  as  yet,  have  no  being.  Now  we  enter  into  heaven  two  ways 
by  faith ;  1.  In  so  far  as  faith  lays  hold  upon  Christ,  and  unites*us 


FOR  THEIR  REWARD.  279 

to  liira,  John  yi-  54.  Faith  embracing  Christ,  enfolds  heaven,  for 
he  is  eternal  life ;  "  He  is  the  true  God,  and  eternal  life."  Faith 
makes  us  one  with  Christ,  who  is  now  in  heaven  ;  in  respect  of 
which  union,  the  apostle  doubts  not  to  say,  that  believers  are  in 
heaven  already.  "  God,"  says  he,  "  hath  raised  us  up  together,  and 
made  us  sit  together  in  heavenly  places,  in  Christ  Jesus."  The 
new  and  living  way  is  the  only  way  which  faith  treads.  Labour 
then  for  true  faith,  and  an  interest  in  Christ  thereby.  Never 
satisfy  yourself  with  a  faith  of  a  lower  efficacy.  Say  not  you  can- 
not believe,  the  great  defect  is  in  your  will.  "  Ye  will  not  come  to 
me,"  says  Jesus,  "  that  ye  may  have  life."  Stretch  out  the  withered 
hand  to  Christ ;  protest  you  shall  never  be  satisfied  till  he  put  forth 
mighty  power  to  make  you  believe,  and  never  quit  the  throne  till 
you  get  it,  if  you  should  dig  your  grave  at  it,  Luke  xviii.  39 — 43. 
2.  In  so  far  as  faith  lays  hold  on  the  promise  in  which  heaven  is 
wrapped  up.  "  These  all  died  in  faith,  not  having  received  the 
promises,  but  having  seen  them  afar  off,  and  were  persuaded  of 
them,  and  embraced  them."  Embraced  them,  that  is,  the  things 
contained  in  them.  An  allusion  to  mariners,  who  when  they  see 
the  land,  though  afar  off,  yet  joyfully  salute  it.  God's  word  is  as 
good  security  as  actual  possession.  And  as  men,  by  charter  and 
seisine,  may  enter  into  possession  of  lands  which  they  never  saw,  so 
the  believer  by  faith  may  get  possession  of  heaven.  Labour  we 
then  to  get  hold  of  the  promise  by  faith,  which  we  must  do  by 
taking  hold  of  Christ ;  "  for  in  him  all  the  promises  are  yea,  and  in 
him  amen,  to  the  glory  of  God  by  us." 

3.  There  is  an  entering  by  hope.  "  "Which  hope  we  have  as  an 
anchor  of  the  soul,  both  sure  and  steadfast,  and  which  entereth  into 
that  within  the  vail."  Therefore  salvation  is  attribnted  to  hope, 
Rom.  viii.  24.  Faith  goes  out  as  a  conqueror,  and  hope  divides  the 
spoil.  Ask  these  that  have  been  plunged  in  despair,  and  they  will 
tell  yon  that  they  were  in  hell,  even  when  on  earth.  Despair  brings 
up  hell  into  the  earth,  and  hope  brings  down  heaven.  Hope  is 
indeed  enjoyment  anticipated,  and  excites  the  same  joy,  delight,  and 
complacency,  that  enjoyment  doth,  as  you  may  see  in  things  of  the 
world;  only  the  difference  is,  in  worldly  things,  the  expectation  is 
sweeter  than  the  enjoyment ;  in  heavenly  things,  it  is  the  reverse. 
We  must  then  labour  for  this  well  grounded  hope,  that  the  Spirit 
of  God  causeth  us  to  place  on  his  word,  and  that  purifieth  the 
heart.  Hope  of  heaven,  is  compared  to  a  building  founded  upon  a 
rock,  Matth.  vii.  24;  and  this  is  a  building  on  which  true  pains  must 
be  taken:  1.  Tn  pulling  down  the  old.  It  is  no  easy  thing  to  got 
down  the  old  hopes,  and  to  clear  the  foundation,  leaving  not  one  stone 


280  BELIEVERS  LABOURINft 

upon  another.  This  is  hard  work,  many  times  ministers  batter  at  it, 
and  still  it  stands,  till  God  himself  comes  up,  2  Cor.  x.  4,  5  ;  often- 
times it  is  never  pulled  down,  till  death  come  and  batter  it  down. 
Like  the  mole,  they  will  never  open  their  eyes,  till  they  come  to  die, 
Luke  xvi.  23.  But  down  it  must  be,  for  there  is  no  building  sure 
upon  the  old  foundation,  Luke  xv.  17.  Again,  true  pains  must  be 
taken  in  rearing  up  the  new.  It  is  as  easy  for  many  now  to  hope  for 
salvation  as  it  is  to  breathe,  the  reason  is,  they  are  both  nature's  fruit. 
But  were  once  the  old  hopes  gone,  it  will  not  be  easy  to  get  up  the 
new.  It  is  as  in  the  case  of  a  malefactor  with  the  rope  about  his 
neck,  laying  his  head  over  the  ladder,  and  one  tells  him  of  a  par- 
don ;  how  hard  is  it  to  hope  or  believe  till  he  see  it,  and  sometimes 
the  Lord  does  not  suddenly  let  them  see  it.  Ah  !  the  brand  is  in 
the  fire,  how  hardly  can  it  think  to  escape ;  what  a  conflict,  then, 
between  hope  and  despair  ! 

Objection.  Better  then  we  hold  as  we  are.  Answer.  At  best 
you  will  not  hold  long  at  it,  for,  1.  Grod  may  make  thy  life  in  sin  a 
hell  to  thee,  thy  name  Magor  Missabib.  He  can  wrap  these  filthy 
garments  of  thy  sin  in  brimstone,  and  then  set  them  on  fire  about 
thine  ears,  as  in  the  case  of  Judas.  It  is  with  the  cousciences  of 
the  wicked,  as  with  iron  out  of  the  fire  a  little;  which  you  would 
not  suspect  to  be  hot,  till  some  water  be  poured  on  it,  then  it 
appears  hot  by  its  hissing  noise  ;  so  when  some  drops  of  wrath  fall 
on  a  guilty  conscience,  the  noise  will  be  dreadful. 

Again,  were  thy  hopes  fixed  with  bands  of  iron  and  brass,  and 
their  foundation  as  deep  as  the  centre  of  the  earth,  death  will  make 
such  an  earthquake  in  thy  soul,  as  shall  not  leave  one  stone  upon 
another,  but  shall  cast  it  out,  and  sink  it  in  the  bottomless  gulf  of 
eternal  despair,  Job  xviii.  14.  Once  more,  in  keeping  it  up,  it  is 
easy  to  many  to  keep  up  their  hopes,  because  their  hope  is  another 
tower  of  Babel,  raised  up  against  heaven,  where  the  devil  is  master 
builder,  and  down  it  shall  not  go,  if  the  powers  of  hell  can  hold  it 
up ;  but  the  new  godly  hope  is  a  fort  built  against  the  inroads  of 
Satan,  which  therefore  the  devil  will  not  cease  to  attack.  It  must 
stand  against  rains,  floods,  winds,  Matth.  vii.  25.  Sometimes  the 
child  of  God  is  ready  to  surrender,  and  to  cast  away  his  confidence. 
Sometimes  it  is  ready  to  be  taken  with  strong  hand.  Lament,  iii.  18. 
David  found  this  work  not  easy,  Psal.  xlii.  Labour  then  we  must, 
thus  to  enter. 

4.  There  is  an  entering  by  obedience.  "  I  know,"  said  Jesus,  "  that 
his  commandment  is  life  everlasting."  There  is  a  personal  way  to 
heaven,  that  is,  Christ.  "  I  am,"  saith  he,  "  the  way."  Also  a  real 
way  to  heaven,  that  is,  the  commands  of  God,  called  everlasting  life, 


FOR  TIIETR  REWARD.  281 

because  they  certainly  land  the  soul  in  heaven,  and  there  is  an  in- 
fallible connection  betwixt  true  obedience  and  glory.  Christ  is  a 
captain  as  well  as  a  Saviour,  a  king  as  well  as  a  priest,  and  must  be 
obeyed  as  well  as  believed  in,  Hcb.  v.  9.  They  that  would  enter 
heaven,  but  not  by  the  way  of  obedience,  must  resolve  to  get  in  over 
the  walls,  but  come  not  in  by  the  door ;  that  is,  they  shall  never  see  it ; 
"  for  without  holiness  no  man  shall  see  the  Lord."  We  must  follow 
the  footsteps  of  our  blessed  Lord  and  the  flock,  who  all  entered  heaven 
this  way  ;  though  in  different  respects,  he  by,  and  they  in,  obedience. 
Here  then  we  must  labour  to  enter,  and  it  is  not  every  sort  of  obe- 
dience that  is  the  entry  to  heaven.  There  must  be  labour,  and  it 
will  cost  true  pains  :  I.  To  fall  upon  the  way  of  true  obedience.  For 
alas  !  many  do  much,  but  to  no  purpose.  "  Tlie  labour  of  the  foolish 
wearieth  every  one  of  them,  because  he  knoweth  not  how  to  go  to  the 
city."  It  is  not  easy  to  fall  on  the  way  of  universal  obedience,  to 
have  respect  to  all  God's  commandments.  How  much  labour  do  some 
take  in  running  to  sermons,  communions,  prayers,  and  yet  still  out  of 
this  way.  Still  it  remains  true,  one  thing  he  lacketh.  Some  one  or 
more  lusts  still  keep  their  ground,  though  he  makes  them  change 
their  name,  and  calls  them  infirmities,  while  indeed  they  are  reign- 
ing sins,  because  his  heart  is  knit  to  them.  So  deceitful  are  our 
hearts,  that  we  have  great  need  to  labour  to  fall  on  this  way.  "  0 
that  my  ways  were  directed  to  keep  thy  statutes.  Then  shall  I  not 
be  ashamed,  when  I  have  respect  to  all  thy  commandments." 

Nor  is  it  easy  to  fall  on  the  way  of  gospel  obedience.  One  man 
takes  up  himself  when  he  comes  to  age,  or  to  get  a  family.  An- 
other gets  his  conscience  alarmed,  and  he  can  get  no  rest  till  he  turn 
over  a  new  leaf.  Another  has  been  under  sore  pangs  and  throws,  but 
like  Ishmael,  he  is  born  before  the  time  of  the  promise,  and  his  law 
wounds  get  a  law  plaster.  And  thus  they  hold  on,  seeking  to  enter 
heaven  by  the  gate  of  law  obedience,  which,  like  the  east  gate  of  the 
sanctuary,  Ezek.  xliv.  2,  is  inaccessible.  But  we  should  labour  to 
fall  on  the  way  of  the  gospel,  whore  the  wheels  of  the  soul  are 
oiled  with  love,  Heb.  vi.  10  ;  and  faith  and  a  renewed  heart  are  the 
springs  of  obedience,  and  the  glory  of  God  the  chief  end. 

Again,  it  is  not  easy  to  hold  on  the  way  of  obedience.  Some  seera 
to  walk  with  Christ  a  while,  who  at  last  turn  apostates,  John  vi.  66. 
Some  fall  off  into  the  ditch  of  profanity,  others  into  formality. 
Sometimes  they  are  sprightly  professors,  but  at  last,  like  worn  out 
horses,  they  fall  down  in  the  way,  serving  for  nothing  but  stumbling- 
blocks  to  the  blind.  Their  hearts  grow  cold,  their  affections  wither, 
their  consciences  become  stupid,  and  at  length  they  are  cut  ofl",  and 
cast  over  the  hedge.      To  hold  on,  then,  in  the  way,  is  one  thing 


282  BELIEVERS  LABOURITTG 

for  which  we  must  labour;  for  while  we  are  on  it,  we  will  have  the 
wind  in  our  face,  and  it  will  be  much  if  we  be  not  made  either  to 
sit  down  or  go  backward,  and  so  create  new  work  to  ourselves. 

Lastly,  There  is  an  entering  into  heaven  by  actual  possession, 
which  in  respect  of  our  souls  is  at  death,  and  in  respect  of  our 
bodies  will  be  at  the  resurrection,  which  is  the  full  and  final  entry, 
to  which  all  the  rest  are  subservient.  This  entrance  is  that  solemn 
entering  into  the  king's  palace,  Psal.  xlv.  15,  which  shall  also  be 
most  joyful.  "  For  the  ransomed  of  the  Lord  shall  return,  and 
come  to  Zion  with  songs,  and  everlasting  joy  upon  their  heads; 
they  shall  obtain  joy  and  gladness,  and  sorrow  and  sighing  shall 
flee  away."  They  shall  have  angels  to  carry  their  souls  to  Abra- 
ham's bosom,  Luke  xvi.  22,  and  shall  enter  heaven  as  a  bride  going 
into  the  marriage  chamber,  Matth.  xxv.  10,  where  the  marriage  shall 
be  solemnized  through  all  eternity.  Then  comes  the  time  when  the 
children  of  God,  cast  out  of  the  earthly  paradise  by  sin,  enter  the 
heavenly,  when  they  shall  bid  farewell  to  the  cottages  of  clay,  and 
enter  into  the  house  not  made  with  hands,  eternal  in  the  heavens. 
Then  these  priests  enter  the  holiest  of  all ;  come  into  their  city, 
and  their  native  country,  and  enter  as  heirs  to  their  kingdom,  their 
minority  being  overpast.     We  proceed, 

III.  To  mention  some  steps  in  the  way,  by  which  we  must  labour 
to  enter. 

1.  "We  must  labour  to  get  grace;  this  is  the  first  step.  **  Let  us 
have  grace,"  says  Paul,  "  whereby  we  may  serve  God  acceptably, 
with  reverence  and  godly  fear."  There  is  a  ladder  by  which  we 
must  mount  to  heaven.  The  black  state  of  nature,  is  the  ground  on 
which  all  men  were  once  standing  ;  grace  is  the  first  remove,  the 
first  step  of  the  ladder.  The  man  has  now  no  other  power,  but  the 
power  of  nature,  but  hereby  he  ought  to  labour,  to  get  grace. 
This  is  plain  from  Scripture,  where  the  unregenerate  are  commanded 
"  to  make  them  a  new  heart,"  Ezek.  xviii.  31,  "to  circumcise  them- 
selves to  the  Lord,"  Jer.  iv.  4  ;  Deut.  x.  16  ;  "  and  to  labour  for  the 
meat  which  endureth  to  everlasting  life."  Though  God's  commands 
are  not  the  measure  of  our  strength,  yet  they  are  the  measure  of 
our  duty. 

This  must  needs  be  the  first  step  ;  but  many  overlook  this,  and 
so  lose  all  their  pains.  They  endeavour  to  perform  duties  for  salva- 
tion, but  neither  for  grace,  nor  from  grace.  This  makes  all  their 
attempts  for  heaven  vain  and  fruitless,  for  they  still  leave  the  soul 
in  the  same  state  of  condemnation  and  enmity  to  God  as  before  ;  for 
as  they  can  never  atone  for  one  sin,  so  they  can  never  mortify  one 
lust ;   only   grace   can  mortify  corruption.      It  also   makes   their 


FOR  THEIR  REWARD.  283 

attempts  faint  and  languid,  and  at  last  they  are  ready  to  give  over. 
Duties  never  flow  freely  from  that  soul,  where  grace  is  not  as  a 
fountain  to  supply  them.  They  are  like  the  wick  in  the  lamp,  that 
burns  away  quickly,  where  there  is  no  oil  about  it,  Matth.  xxv. ;  Job 
xxvii.  10.  Now  to  get  up  this  step  is  not  easy,  there  must  be  labour 
at  it.  It  is  a  rising  out  of  the  grave  ;  it  is  a  casting  off  of  nature, 
and  getting  on  a  new  nature ;  it  is  a  second  birth,  which  will  not  be 
without  pangs,  and  throws,  and  struggles.  Objection.  But  we 
cannot  work  grace  in  ourselves.  Answer.  Though  you  cannot  sow 
the  seed,  yet  you  may  prepare  the  ground,  Jer.  iv.  3.  You  may 
examine  your  state ;  you  may  see  you  have  no  grace,  yourself  lost 
and  undone  without  it,  which  may  break  and  rend  your  hearts ;  and 
you  may  strongly  desire  it,  and  cry  for  it  importunately,  and  never 
take  rest  till  you  get  it ;  and  when  you  are  doing  thus,  God  may  do 
for  you  what  you  cannot  do  for  yourselves,  even  he  who  is  found  of 
them  that  seek  him  not.  But  if  you  do  not  do  thus,  you  will  be 
condemned  for  contempt  of  grace,  as  well  as  for  the  want  of  it ;  and 
it  will  be  a  worm  in  your  conscience  in  hell,  that  you  did  not  do 
what  you  might  have  done  for  the  getting  of  grace,  and  that  you 
began  your  work  at  the  wrong  end.  It  is  true,  we  cannot  say  God 
has  obliged  himself  to  give  grace  to  such,  but  there  is  a  possibi- 
lity of  success,  which  in  such  a  case  must  determine  any  man  to 
the  work  that  acts  rationally,  as  in  the  case  of  the  lepers  at 
the  gate  of  Samaria.  There  is  a  probability  of  it,  also,  from  the 
merciful  nature  of  God,  his  surprising  souls  with  converting  grace  ; 
and  never  was  there  any  who  were  so  taken  up  for  grace,  that  ever 
we  heard  did  not  obtain  it. 

2.  We  must  labour  to  exercise  grace  in  the  gracious  performance 
of  duties.  "  Work  out  your  own  salvation  with  fear  and  trembling." 
As  the  former  step  sets  us  on  the  way,  this  carries  us  forward  in  it. 
It  is  not  enough  to  get  grace,  but  we  must  make  use  of  it.  Grace  is 
an  active  principle.  Some  gracious  souls  fall  asleep  in  the  way,  but 
they  must  awake,  rise  again,  and  fall  to  work.  And  to  do  this  will 
cost  labour  and  pains,  for  often  the  temper  of  the  body  is  a  great 
hindrance  to  the  exercise  of  grace.  Some  have  a  cheerful,  light 
temper  to  struggle  with,  so  that  it  is  hard  for  them  to  exercise  godly 
sorrow ;  some  a  melancholy  temper,  so  that  it  is  hard  for  them  to 
believe  and  rejoice  in  Christ;  there  is  likewise  always  a  mixture  of 
the  contrary  corruption,  which  will  be  active  in  the  soul :  "  For  the 
flesh  lusteth  against  the  spirit,  and  the  spirit  against  the  flesh  ;  and 
these  are  contrary  the  one  to  the  other ;  so  that  yc  cannot  do  the 
things  that  ye  would."  Satan  also  is  a  great  enemy  to  the  exercise 
of  grace,  if  he  cannot  kill  the  man  he  will  endeavour  to  set  him  asleep. 

Vol.  IV.  T 


284  BELIEVERS  LABOURING 

A  third  step;  growing  in  grace.  This  we  must  labour  for.  Grow- 
in  grace  is  the  divine  command.  It  is  the  Christian's  great  work  to 
be  going  forward  from  strength  to  strength,  still  to  be  adding  a  cubit 
to  his  spiritual  stature,  till  he  come  to  the  measure  of  a  perfect  man 
in  Christ.  This  also  will  cost  labour.  It  will  not  be  easy  to  get  a 
warmer  love,  stronger  faith,  deeper  humility.  This  will  require 
much  travelling  betwixt  lieaven  and  earth  for  supply ;  much  watch- 
fulness over  what  we  have  obtained.  See  how  Paul  expresseth  it 
under  the  notion  of  running  a  race,  Phil.  iii.  13,  14. 

A  fourth  step  ;  assurance  of  grace  and  glory.  For  this  we  should 
labour.  "  Give  all  diligence  to  make  your  calling  and  election 
sure."  This  will  enable  us  to  say,  "  we  know  whom  we  have  be- 
lieved, and  are  persuaded  that  he  is  able  to  keep  that  which  we  have 
committed  unto  him  against  that  day."  In  this  way  we  may  also 
know  the  things  freely  given  us  of  God.  This  will  cost  labour,  even 
to  climb  up  to  this  top  of  Pisgah,  to  get  a  sight  of  the  land  afar  off. 
There  must  be  pains  here,  to  walk  closely  with  God,  examine  our 
hearts,  apply  our  case  to  the  Scripture,  and  to  wrestle  for  the  testi- 
mony of  the  Spirit. 

Lastly,  Perseverance  in  grace  to  the  end ;  for  only  such  shall  be 
saved.  This  will  cost  labour  to  hold  out  all  the  days  of  your  life, 
and  never  to  quit  God's  way  while  you  live,  but  to  live  in  the  Lord 
always,  till  you  come  to  die  in  him. 

lY.  I  shall  consider  this  labouring  to  enter,  as  it  has  a  respect  to 
our  preparation  for  that  eternal  rest  in  heaven. 

The  man  that  is  to  go  abroad  is  a  busy  man,  putting  all  things  in 
order  for  his  voyage  ;  and  he  that  is  making  for  his  night's  rest  in 
bed,  is  not  idle  ;  and  he  that  is  to  enter  into  the  possession  of  eternal 
rest,  has  much  work  on  his  hand  preparatory  thereto.  And  thus  to 
labour  to  enter  into  the  heavenly  rest  implies, 

1.  The  solid  faith  of  eternal  life,  even  of  this  truth,  "  that  there 
remaineth  a  rest  for  the  people  of  God."  He  that  is  thus  labouring, 
has  a  firm  persuasion,  that  his  rest  is  not  here  ;  but  that  he  must  go 
over  Jordan,  and  that  there  is  certainly  a  rest  in  the  other  world. 

2.  A  sincere  desire  to  be  partaker  of  that  rest,  after  this  trouble- 
some life  is  over.  He  is  one  that  looks  for  Christ's  appearance,  and 
waits  till  his  change  come,  earnestly  desiring  to  be  admitted  into 
that  rest. 

3.  Resolute  endeavours  to  enter  there,  by  God's  own  way,  which 
has  already  been  described. 

4.  Frequent  thoughts  of  that  eternal  rest.  It  is  often  in  his  mind. 
He  looks  on  himself  as  a  pilgrim  and  stranger,  and  one  posting 
away  to  his  unalterable  state.  Thus  the  man  is  put  on  to  make  all 
ready  for  that  voyage.     Now  if  we  would  do  this,  we  must, 


FOR  THEIR  REWARD.  285 

1.  Labour  to  get  our  hearts  more  and  more  loosed  from  sin. 
Heaven's  gate  is  strait,  it  will  not  take  in  a  man  with  a  burden  of 
sin  upon  his  back.  A  camel  may  as  soon  go  through  the  eye  of 
a  needle,  as  a  man  with  a  load  of  unmortified  corruption  on  his  back 
enter  heaven.  If  it  be  on  his  back,  yet  if  it  be  loose,  it  will  then 
fall  off,  and  he  will  get  in;  like  Joseph,  he  will  escape,  leaving  his 
mantle  behind  him,  which  hangs  loose  on  his  shoulders.  Sin  is 
fastened  in  our  souls  by  nature,  as  with  bands  of  iron  and  brass. 
Converting  grace  looses  it  at  the  root,  but  it  must  be  loosed  more 
and  more,  by  the  daily  practice  of  mortification.  "  For  if  ye  live 
after  the  flesh,  ye  shall  die  ;  but  if  ye,  through  the  Spirit,  do  mortify 
the  deeds  of  the  body,  ye  shall  live." 

2.  "We  must  labour  to  keep  a  pure  conscience.  ''  And  herein," 
said  Paul,  "  do  I  exercise  myself,  to  have  always  a  conscience  void 
of  oftence,  toward  God,  and  toward  men."  As  a  man  will  labour  to 
have  his  accounts  cleared,  and  to  lay  down  a  way  for  the  payment 
of  his  debts,  who  is  to  go  off  the  country,  never  to  return.  The 
want  of  this,  makes  many  of  God's  children  to  cry  that  death  would 
not  sist  execution.  For,  as  the  man  whose  stomach  is  gnawing  with 
hunger,  is  not  meet  to  go  to  bed;  so  the  man  whose  conscience  is 
oppressed  with  guilt,  is  not  meet  for  entering  into  the  rest  of  heaven. 
This  will  be  a  continual  labour  to  you.  Two  things  are  to  be  done 
for  this  purpose  :  1.  You  must  labour  to  keep  yourselves  from  all 
sin,  so  far  as  is  possible.  2.  Because  it  is  impossible  to  keep  from 
it  perfectly,  therefore  you  must  be  making  continual  recourse  to  the 
blood  of  Christ.  Make  particular  apj)lication  for  those  sins  that 
wound  the  conscience,  and  for  daily  infirmities  that  are  past  know- 
ledge or  counting.  "  How  much  more  shall  the  blood  of  Christ, 
who  through  the  eternal  Spirit  offered  himself  without  spot  to  God 
purge  your  conscience  from  dead  works,  to  serve  the  living  God." 

.  3.  Labour  to  keep  waking  and  waiting  for  your  transportation 
into  that  rest,  Luke  xii.  35 — 37.  The  elect  of  God  are  not  fit  for 
that  rest,  while  they  lie  with  the  world  in  wickedness,  therefore  God 
sends  them  converting  grace ;  he  makes  a  stir  in  their  souls,  that 
they  cannot  rest,  till  they  have  some  evidence  that  Christ  is  theirs. 
But  ordinarily,  after  this  they  fall  asleep,  Matth.  xxv.  5 ;  therefore 
there  is  a  new  labour  to  get  out  of  this  security.  The  day  was, 
when  thou  couldst  not  sleep  without  some  evidence  of  the  Lord's 
love  ;  but  now  thou  thinkest  the  main  work  is  done,  and  thou  hast 
yet  much  time,  so  art  not  waiting.  0  !  but  a  surprise  in  this  matter 
is  heavy ;  if  death  finds  thee  asleep  when  it  comes  and  arrests  thee 
on  a  bed,  thou  mayest  be  saved,  yet  so  as  by  fire.  Labour,  therefore, 
with  old  Simeon,  to  wait  for  the  consolation  of  Israel,  and  then  thou 

T  2 


286  BELIEVERS  LABOURING 

shalt  meet  death  with  a  song.  "  Lord,  now  lettest  thou  thy  servant 
depart  in  peace,  according  to  thy  word."  Waiting  for  this  rest 
hath  a  twofold  advantage.  It  makes  a  man  diligent  in  making  all 
ready  for  his  departure.  The  wise  virgins  arose,  and  trimmed  their 
lamps.  They  that  have  truly  learned  to  number  their  days,  will 
apply  their  hearts  unto  wisdom.  The  servant  that  is  thinking  his 
Lord  delays  his  coming,  will  eat  and  drink  with  the  drunken. 
Again,  this  waiting  makes  a  man  welcome  the  grim  messenger,  and 
embrace  death  in  his  arms,  Job  xiv.  14,  15.  So  that  though  nature 
cannot  but  shiver  at  the  first  sight  of  such  an  enemy  to  nature ;  yet 
faith  beholding  its  commission,  will  salute  it  with  old  Simeon,  Luke 
ii.  29.  The  soul  will  see  Christ  at  the  back  of  the  messenger,  and 
so  say,  "  This  is  our  God,  we  have  waited  for  him." 

4.  To  keep  up  communion  with  God  in  duties,  and  in  the  con- 
stant course  of  our  lives.  This  is  to  have  a  heaven  on  earth.  "  Our 
conversation  is  in  heaven."  The  philosophers  say  well,  that  hap- 
piness consists  in  operation.  Heaven  is  not  a  rest  in  idleness,  but 
a  working  rest.  We  should  then  labour  to  inure  ourselves  to  the 
work  which  we  are  to  have  above.  In  this  world,  we  are  as  it  were 
apprentices  at  the  trade  of  communion  with  God,  that  when  our 
time  is  out,  we  may  set  up  in  the  New  Jerusalem  ;  for  there  is  work- 
ing, "  there  they  rest  not  day  nor  night."  There  remains,  says  the 
apostle,  Heb.  iv.  9,  a  rest;  the  keeping  of  a  Sabbath,  which  is  no 
idle  day  to  those  that  are  spiritual.  Here  is  work  for  you;  you 
have  your  trial-piece  to  make,  0  Christians  !  Try  now  the  singing 
of  one  of  Zion's  songs  in  a  strange  land. 

5.  To  get  our  hearts  weaned  from  the  world.  The  man  that  is 
going  abroad,  he  is  busy  taking  leave  of  his  friends.  Christ  has 
given  you  the  first  call  already,  that  you  may  take  leave  of  them  all. 
"  Come  with  me  from  Lebanon,  my  spouse,  with  me,  from  Lebanon." 
Let  it  not  then  be  to  do,  when  the  next  call  comes.  When  the 
corn  forsakes  the  ground,  it  is  ready  for  the  hook  ;  and  when  the 
apple  is  ripe,  a  little  shake  makes  it  with  ease  fall  from  the  tree. 
It  will  not  be  easy  to  get  our  hearts  weaned  from  the  world,  for  we 
are  born  with  it  in  our  hearts.  Only  sovereign  grace  can  make 
such  an  earthquake  in  the  soul  as  will  shake  it  out.  Labour  to  be 
loosed  even  from  lawful  enjoyments,  to  be  crucified  to  them,  Gal.  vi. 
14  ;  and  while  you  use  them,  do  it  with  fear,  like  the  dogs  of  Egypt, 
who,  when  they  come  to  the  Nile,  lap  their  water,  running  for  fear 
of  the  crocodiles  in  the  river. 

6.  Labour  to  despatch  the  work  of  your  day  and  generation  with 
all  speed.  There  is  a  twofold  work  we  have  to  do.  1.  Our  salva- 
tion work.     "  Work  out  your  own   salvation  with  fear  and  trera- 


FOR  THEIR  REWARD.  287 

bling."  This  must  be  despatched.  Of  this  we  have  spoken  before. 
2.  The  work  of  our  day  and  generation,  Acts  xiii,  36.  The  former 
respects  our  eternal  salvation,  the  latter  God's  glory  in  the  world  ; 
the  first  for  ourselves,  the  next  for  God.  To  every  one  God  has 
carved  out  a  certain  piece  of  work,  which  should  be  performed 
before  working  time  be  done,  Eccl.  ix.  10.  The  apostle  sets  this 
work  before  you.  "  As  we  have  therefore  opportunity,"  says  he, 
"  let  us  do  good  unto  all  men,  especially  to  them  who  are  of  the 
household  of  faith."  Are  you  a  parent,  then  bestir  yourselves  in 
time  for  your  children,  that  they  may  be  the  Lord's.  Are  you  a 
roaster  of  a  family  ;  can  you  do  anything  for  the  church  of  God  ? 
does  God  put  any  opportunity  of  doing  him  service  in  thy  hand  ? 
then  despatch  your  work.  Ere  long  the  opportunity  may  be  taken 
out  of  thy  hand ;  and  it  is  an  unworthy  thing  for  a  man  to  say,  I 
was  not  aware  of  this,  as  many  do  in  a  dying  hour. 

7.  Labour  to  die  daily.  "  I  die  daily,"  said  Paul.  We  should 
as  it  were  habituate  ourselves  to  dying,  and  be  frequently  making 
an  essay  of  dying.  This  was  Job's  pi-actice,  Job  xvii.  13,  14.  Ask 
yourselves  what  yon  would  do,  if  you  were  just  to  expire;  and  do 
the  same.  A  Christian  should  be  frequently  making  his  testament. 
When  you  go  to  a  duty,  do  it  as  if  it  were  the  last  you  were  ever  to 
do  on  earth.  When  you  awake  in  the  morning,  do  as  if  you  were 
to  have  the  grave  for  your  next  bed ;  and  when  yon  lie  down  at 
night,  so  compose  yourselves  as  if  you  were  never  to  awaken  more. 
So  it  may  be. 

8.  Labour  to  get  your  hearts  made  willing  to  die,  and  to  long  to 
be  partaker  of  that  rest.  "  I  am,"  says  Paul,  "  in  a  strait  betwixt 
two,  having  a  desire  to  depart  and  to  be  with  Christ,  which  is  far 
better."  For  this  you  must  labour,  it  is  not  easy  to  attain  it.  A  fit 
of  passion  indeed,  may  make  some  desire  to  be  gone,  as  Jonah ;  but 
soon  would  they  shrink  back,  should  the  Lord  take  them  at  their 
word.  But  would  you  be  thus  willing,  then  labour  to  lay  all  your 
cares  on  the  Lord  by  faith,  and  to  trust  him  with  your  worldly  con- 
cerns, Phil.  iv.  6  ;  Jer.  xlix.  11.  Faith  makes  the  soul  rest  in  God, 
in  midst  of  perplexing  difficulties.  You  must  also  keep  up  due 
thoughts  of  the  body  of  sin  and  death.  Keep  its  ugliness  ever  in 
your  eye,  this  will  make  you  long  to  be  rid  of  it,  Rom.  vii.  24;  and 
truly,  none  fitter  for  rest  than  that  soul  that  is  groaning  under  the 
body  of  death.  Labour  also  to  taste  the  sweetness  of  tlie  enjoyment 
of  God  by  faith.  The  more  that  a  soul  gets  of  this,  the  more  it 
would  have.  These  heavenly  influences  carry  the  soul  heavenward. 
Finally,  clearness  as  to  your  interest  in  Christ,  is  a  noble  pre- 
parative for  that  rest,  and  to  make  us  willing  to  depart.     Here  is 


288  BEHEVEES  LABOUElNa 

work  enough  for  you;  and  when  you  have  done  it,  you  will  find 
you  have  done  nothing  more  than  was  necessary.  We  now  go  on  to 
the 

III.  General  head.  To  shew  how  we  should  labour.  The  apostle 
tells  us,  that  a  man  is  not  crowned  except  he  strive  lawfully.  Great 
labour  may  be  to  no  purpose. 

1.  We  should  labour  willingly  and  cheerfully.  "  Thou,  Lord, 
meetest  him  that  rejoiceth  and  worketh  righteousness,  those  that  re- 
member thee  in  thy  ways."  God  loves  a  cheerful  giver.  When  peo- 
ple do  nothing  in  religion,  but  as  reluctant  slaves  from  the  force  of 
the  whip,  it  is  very  unacceptable  to  God.  His  people  are  a  willing 
people,  and  he  cares  not  for  forced  work,  when  the  hands  work  with- 
out the  heart.  If  people  work  not  willingly  here,  where  will  they 
do  it  ?  It  is  for  your  own  salvation  you  are  working.  God  is  a 
good  master.  Christ's  yoke  is  an  easy  yoke  to  a  renewed  heart. 
*'  His  commandments  are  not  grievous"  to  those  who  obey  them 
from  love.  Get  then  the  new  nature,  and  then  this  work  will  be 
natural  and  easy  to  you,  as  streams  flow  easily  from  a  fountain. 

2.  Diligently.  "  The  soul  of  the  diligent  shall  be  made  fat." 
The  slothful  man  is  the  waster's  brother.  How  busy  will  a  man  be 
to  gain  something  of  the  world ;  he  will  rise  early,  and  sit  up  late. 
Hoiv  busy  is  the  devil  to  prevent  our  entrance  into  that  rest,  and 
shall  we  not  be  diligent  that  we  may  enter.  Consider  well  the  eyes 
of  the  great  Master  are  upon  you,  for  he  is  every  where  present. 
He  sees  you  in  the  church,  in  the  closet,  in  the  family,  and  in  all 
places,  Psal.  cxxxix.  7 — 10. 

3.  Labour  with  all  your  might,  Eccl.  ix.  10.  We  have  a  great 
work  to  do.  Feeble  attempts  will  not  accomplish  it.  It  is  requi- 
site that  we  summon  together  all  the  powers  of  our  souls.  The  iron 
is  blunt,  we  must  wield  it  with  more  strength.  He  who  asks  a  thing 
coldly,  courts  a  denial ;  and  he  who  works  carelessly,  and  faintly 
here,  portends  want  of  success. 

4.  Resolutely  ;  like  Jacob,  who  would  not  let  the  angel  go  till  he 
blessed  him.  We  labour  for  what  we  cannot  want,  and  therefore 
must  put  on  a  resolution  to  face,  and  to  run  through  all  difficulties. 
"The  kingdom  of  heaven  suffereth  violence,  and  the  violent  take  it 
by  force."  "  Skin  for  skin,  yea,  all  that  a  man  hath,  will  he  give 
for  his  life."  The  Israelites  when  they  heard  of  the  Anakims  in 
Canaan,  their  hearts  fainted,  they  were  discouraged,  therefore  they 
never  saw  the  land ;  only  Caleb  and  Joshua,  who  followed  the  Lord 
fully,  were  allowed  to  enter. 

5.  Constantly.  "  The  righteous  shall  hold  on  his  way,  and  he 
that  hath  clean  hands  shall  wax  stronger  and  stronger."      "  We 


FOR  THEIR  REWARD.  289 

must  be  stedfast  and  immoveable,  always  abounding  in  the  work  of 
the  Lord."  We  must  not  take  our  work  by  fits  and  starts ;  that  is 
the  thing  which  makes  it  so  uneasy  to  many ;  whereas  constancy 
would  make  it  easy  to  us,  and  uneasy  to  be  out  of  this  work.  Hot 
and  cold  fits  are  signs  of  a  distempered  body,  so  unsteadiness  in  re- 
ligion is  an  evidence  that  all  is  not  right  within.  This  warfare  and 
work  is  for  term  of  life.  "  No  man  that  putteth  his  hand  to  the 
plough  and  looketh  back,  is  fit  for  the  kingdom  of  Grod."  "  For  if 
any  man  draw  back,"  says  God,  "  my  soul  shall  have  no  pleasure 
in  him."  Deserters  are  shamefully  and  severely  punished,  when 
prisoners  of  war  are  honourably  entertained.  "We  are  labouring 
against  the  stream,  and  therefore  cannot  intermit  our  work  without 
loss.  "  Look  then  to  yourselves,  that  we  lose  .  not  those  things 
which  we  have  wrought,  but  that  we  receive  a  full  reward." 

6.  "With  fear  and  trembling,  Philip,  ii.  12.  Keep  a  holy  dread, 
and  reverential  fear  of  God  always  on  your  spirits.  Fear  him  as  a 
witness  to  all  you  do.  He  sees  what,  and  how  you  do.  He  must  be 
a  bold  servant  indeed,  that  will  neglect  his  work,  or  go  about  it 
slightly,  while  bis  master's  eye  is  upon  him.  Fear  him  also,  as  him 
from  whom  you  have  all  your  ability  for  working,  lest  he  should  be 
provoked  to  withdraw  his  influences  from  you.  And  fear  him  as 
your  judge,  who  will  one  day  reward  you  according  to  your  works. 
Remember  your  work  will  be  brought  to  light,  and  what  you  do  will 
be  weighed  in  the  balance  of  the  sanctuary. 

7.  Quickly  ;  without  delay,  for  you  know  not  how  soon  your  sun 
may  go  down.  "  I  must  work  the  works  of  him  that  sent  me,  while 
it  is  day  :  the  night  cometh  when  no  man  can  work."  Your  glass 
is  running,  and  if  your  time  be  done  before  your  Avork,  it  will  be  a 
heavy  case. 

8.  You  must  refuse  no  piece  of  work  which  God  puts  into  your 
hands.  "  Then  shall  I  not  be  ashamed  when  I  have  respect  unto 
all  thy  comandments."  Many  are  like  servants  who,  when  they  are 
hired,  will  promise  to  do  all  things ;  but  when  it  comes  to  the  push, 
the  sluggard  will  not  plough  because  of  the  cold.  You  must  not 
carve  out  your  own  work,  but  let  Christ  carve  it  out  for  you,  saying, 
"  Lord,  what  wilt  thou  have  me  to  do  ?" 

Lastly,  Evangelically;  which  comprehends  the  acting  from  a 
principle  of  a  new  life  of  grace,  called  the  life  of  Jesus,  2  Cor.  iv. 
10.  Next  a  sweet  principle  of  love  to  God,  "  For  the  love  of  Christ," 
says  Paul,  "  constraineth  us."  Again  it  comprehends  a  noble  end, 
the  glory  of  God,  the  honour  of  the  Redeemer,  the  glory  of  his 
grace,  and  our  own  salvation.  Finally,  A  doing  of  all  in  borrowed 
strength,  leaning  upon  our  beloved,  and  denying  ourselves.     "  For 


290  BELIEVERS  liABOUKING 

we,  as  Christians,  must  be  the  circumcision  which  worship  God  in 
the  spirit,  rejoice  in  Christ  Jesns,  and  have  no  confidence  in  the  flesh." 
We  proceed, 

lY.  To  shew  that  we  mnst  labour  in  order  to  our  entering  into 
that  rest.     I  shall  evidence  this  by  these  considerations  following : 

1.  Consider  the  several  notions  under  which  the  Christian's  life 
and  the  way  to  heaven  is  held  forth,  all  of  them  implying  true  pains 
and  labour.  It  is  a  working,  John  vi.  27,  "Labour  not  for  the 
meat  that  perisheth."  (Greek,)  "work."  Here  he  that  works  not, 
shall  not  eat.  Yea,  it  is  a  working  out  of  our  own  salvation ;  a 
bringing  the  work  to  perfection,  otherwise  what  is  done  will  be  lost, 
2  John  8.  It  is  compared  to  the  work  of  the  husbandman,  which 
you  know  is  not  easy,  ploughing,  sowing,  reaping,  Hos.  x.  12,  espe- 
cially considering  that  they  are  both  the  labourers,  and  the  ground 
that  is  laboured.  The  Christian  is  a  spiritual  soldier,  he  must  fight, 
2  Tim.  iv.  7;  yea,  and  overcome,  Rev.  iii.  21.  Heaven  has  a 
strait  gate  by  which  to  enter  in,  and  therefore  cannot  be  entered 
with  ease.  Men  must  press  into  it,  Luke  xvi,  16  ;  and  take  it  by 
storm;  yea  put  forth  their  utmost  strength  as  they  that  are  agoniz- 
ing. Luke  xiii.  24,  as  wrestling  upon  life  and  death.  They  have 
a  wrestling  life  of  it,  Eph.  vi.  12,  such  as  makes  all  the  body  to 
shake  again.  It  is  a  real  fight,  1  Cor.  ix.  26.  It  is  the  running  of 
a  race,  Heb.  xii.  1 ;  which  requires  patience  and  perseverance,  and 
great  eagerness;  for  they  must  so  run  as  to  obtain  the  prize.  They 
must  pursue  holiness,  Heb,  xii.  14;  as  one  that  earnestly  follows 
a  person  flying  till  he  catch  him ;  or  that  pursueth  the  prey,  till  he 
seize  it.  The  apostle  says,  2  Cor.  v.  9,  tve  labour  ;  the  word  signi- 
fies  to  labour  most  earnestly,  as  an  ambitious  man  for  honour ;  and 
what  will  not  such  do,  to  gain  their  point  ? 

2.  Consider  how  the  way  to  heaven  was  typified  under  the  Old 
Testament.  Canaan  was  a  type  of  heaven,  and  to  what  labour  were 
the  Israelites  put,  before  they  could  reach  that  land,  though  it  was 
promised  to  them.  This  I  take  to  be  aimed  at  in  our  text.  Many 
a  bloody  battle  they  fought,  before  they  got  possession.  Many  a 
temptation  and  trial  they  met  with,  that  laid  many  of  them  by. 
The  taking  of  the  castle  of  Zion,  2  Sam,  v.  6.  Another  eminent 
type  of  it,  was  the  ascent  into  the  temple,  which  was  seated  upon 
a  hill,  even  Mount  Moriah,  1  Kings  x.  5.  Many  a  weary  step  had 
some  of  them  ere  they  got  to  Jerusalem,  Psal.  Ixxxiv.  6,  7;  and 
when  they  came  there,  they  had  to  ascend  unto  the  hill  of  God, 
Psal.  xxiv.  3,  the  mount  of  the  Lord's  house,  a  type  of  heaven. 
What  a  wrestling  had  Jacob,  ere  he  got  the  blessing,  Gen.  xxxii ; 
and  wherefore  this,  but  to  teach  us  what  we  have  to  do,  Hos.  xii.  4. 


FOR  THEIR  REWARD.  291 

•  3.  Consider  how  the  Scripture  supiioseth  this  labour.  In  that  the 
Christian  is  lield  forth  as  a  man  lying  groaning  under  a  heavy  bur- 
den, Rom.  vii.  24 ;  and  can  such  an  one  be  at  ease.  Again  it  ex- 
horts us  not  to  weary  and  faint,  Gral.  vi.  5 ;  what  need  of  this,  if  we 
must  not  labour  ?  It  prescribes  remedies  against  these,  and  directs  us 
"  to  consider  him  that  endured  such  contradiction  of  sinners  against 
himself,  lest  we  be  wearied  and  faint  in  our  minds."  It  also  calls 
upon  us  to  increase  our  stock,  which  will  not  be  done  by  idleness. 
"  Occupy  till  I  come."  We  are  also  promised  strength  for  working, 
Isa.  xl.  29 — 31.  Finally,  Heaven  is  held  forth  to  us  as  a  reward  ; 
a  reward  not  for,  but  according  to,  our  works.  "  Knowing  that  of 
the  Lord  ye  shall  receive  the  reward  of  the  inheritance,  for  ye  serve 
the  Lord  Christ." 

4.  Consider  how  the  Scripture  represents  the  sluggard  and  his 
temper  to  us,  as  most  hateful  to  God,  and  as  one  that  is  lost  by  his 
sloth,  Prov.  xiii.  4;  xx.  4;  and  xxi.  25.  The  sluggard  is  the 
unprofitable  servant,  Matth.  xxv.  26 — 30.  He  is  unprofitable  to 
himself,  unprofitable  to  his  master,  as  neglecting  his  two  great 
works  above  mentioned.  Mark  his  sentence,  he  loved  darkness  to 
sleep  in  it.  He  shall  have  enough,  for  his  portion  shall  be  in  outer 
darkness.  For  carnal  mirth,  he  shall  have  weeping  and  wailing. 
He  would  not  plough  because  of  the  cold.  In  hell  he  shall  have  it 
so,  as  he  shall  gnash  his  teeth. 

5.  Whom  God  intends  for  heaven,  in  them  he  puts  an  active  prin- 
ciple of  grace.  It  is  as  natural  for  grace  to  bring  forth  good  works, 
as  for  a  good  fruit  tree  to  bring  forth  good  fruit.  True  grace  will 
not  hide,  more  than  a  fountain,  which  if  it  be  stopped  at  one  place, 
will  find  vent  at  another.  The  Spirit  is  in  believers,  as  a  well  of 
living  waters,  springing  up  to  everlasting  life.  Therefore,  if  you 
think  to  be  saved  without  labouring,  conclude  you  shall  be  saved 
without  grace.  If  you  cannot  be  saved  without  grace,  no  more  can 
you  without  labouring. 

Lastly,  To  enter  heaven  without  labour  is  a  contradiction ;  and  so 
impossible.  Heaven  is  a  reward,  and  necessarily  pre-supposcth 
working.  Moreover,  it  is  a  rest  which  is  a  relative  term,  and  has 
necessarily  labour  pre-supposed  to  it.  "  Blessed  are  the  dead  which 
die  in  the  Lord,  from  henceforth :  yea,  saith  the  Spirit,  that  they 
may  rest  from  their  labours,  and  their  works  do  follow  them." 
Heaven  cannot  be  heaven  to  idlers,  for  it  cannot  be  a  rest  to  them. 
The  word  in  the  text  signifies  a  ceasing  or  desisting,  therefore  tliey 
must  be  labouring  before.  It  is  the  keeping  of  a  sabbath,  or  a  sab- 
batism,  that  remains  to  the  people  of  God  ;  therefore  there  must  be 
working  through  the  week  of  our  life.     Let  us  now, 


292  BELIEVERS  LABOURING 

y.  Shew  why  we  must  labour  in  this  spiritual  work,  in  order  to 
our  entering  heaven.  Negatively  ;  not  because  by  works  we  must 
merit  heaven,  for  the  gift  of  God  is  eternal  life,  through  Jesus 
Christ  our  Lord.  Our  working  is  the  way  to  the  kingdom  ;  not  the 
cause  of  our  reigning ;  Christ's  working  was  that.  Men  lose  their 
labour,  while  they  oiler  it  to  God  as  their  righteousness.  The  price 
of  heavcii,  to  tLtiu  that  will  buy  it  for  themselves,  is  perfect  obe- 
dience ;  according  to  the  King's  book  of  rates.  "  If  thou  wilt  enter 
into  life,  keep  the  commandments."  Now  we  can  never  make  up 
this  sum,  unless  we  can  satisfy  for  bygone  sins,  and  perfectly  obey 
for  the  time  to  come.     But  we  must  labour,  because, 

1.  It  is  the  command  of  our  great  Lord  and  Master,  whose  command 
we  are  not  to  dispute,  but  to  obey.  "  Why  call  ye  me,"  says  he, 
"  Lord,  Lord,  and  do  not  the  things  which  I  say  ?  A  son  honoureth 
his  father,  and  a  servant  his  master ;  if  then  I  be  a  Father,  where 
is  mine  honour  ?  and  if  I  be  a  Master,  where  is  my  fear  ?"  In  whatever 
state  man  be,  he  is  still  a  creature,  and  as  a  creature  owes  obedience 
to  his  Creator.  Though  thou  hast  shot  the  gulf,  as  to  condemna- 
tion, yet  you  are  still  under  his  law.  The  queen  is  on  the  right 
hand ;  but  she  is  standing,  in  token  of  subjection  to  him  as  her 
Lord,  Psal.  xlv.  9. 

2.  The  glory  of  God  requires  it.  "  Let  your  light  so  shine  before 
men,  that  they  may  see  your  good  works,  and  glorify  your  Father 
which  is  in  heaven."  Now  his  glory  is  our  chief  end,  1  Cor.  x.  31. 
Our  souls  and  bodies  are  his,  and  therefore  ought  to  be  employed 
in  his  service.  It  glorifies  God  before  the  world,  when  a  man  is 
at  all  pains  to  get  there,  where  God  has  his  throne.  The  way 
that  we  glorify  God,  is  by  declaring  his  perfections  before  the 
world.  Now  God  hath  stamped  his  image  on  the  gracious  soul ; 
but  this  is  hid,  till,  by  good  works  in  the  life,  it  be  displayed.  And 
moreover,  the  laborious  Christian  glorifies  God,  in  so  far  as,  by  his 
course  of  life,  men  know  what  a  God  he  is,  whom  he  serves.  His 
carefulness  to  get  on  Christ's  righteousness,  shews  him  a  just  God ; 
the  Christian  fleeing  from  sin,  preacheth  God's  holiness;  and  his 
secret  conscientious  walk  speaks  God's  omniscience  and  omnipre- 
sence. 

3.  Because  there  is  an  infallible  connection  betwixt  labouring 
and  the  rest.  Labouring  is  the  only  way  we  can  attain  it.  There 
is  no  reaching  the  treasure  of  glory  without  digging  for  it.  "  If  we 
live  after  the  flesh,  we  shall  die ;"  "  and  without  holiness,  no  man 
shall  see  the  Lord."  If  men  must  have  yet  a  little  sleep,  outer 
darkness  will  be  their  landing  place.  Heaven  is  a  place  of  rest  for 
labourers,  not  for  loiterers.     By  an  eternal  decree,  this  is  the  fixed 


FOR  THEIU  EEWARD.  293 

way  to  heaven.  "  For  we  are  his  workmanship,  created  in  Christ 
Jesus,  unto  good  works ;  which  God  h;ith  before  ordained,  that  we 
should  walk  in  them."  Gr  ood  works  are  the  seed,  after  which  only 
we  can  expect  the  harvest  of  glory.  Gal.  vi.  7,  8 ;  and  labouring 
must  needs  go  before  a  reward. 

4.  Because  otherwise,  we  pour  contempt  on  the  heavenly  rest. 
It  was  the  sin  of  the  Israelites,  Psal.  cvi.  24,  25,  This  rest  is 
God's  special  mansion  house ;  the  palace  of  the  great  King,  pur- 
chased by  the  blood  of  the  Son ;  the  place  for  which  the  Holy  Spirit 
prepares  souls.  If  we  labour  not  for  it,  this  says  we  think  it  not 
worth  the  pains.  How  will  men  labour  for  the  things  of  the  world, 
yet  will  not  be  at  pains  for  heaven.  Is  not  this  a  real  preferring  of 
the  world  to  that  glory  ?  Mark  the  apostle's  exhortation,  Heb.  xii. 
14,  15 ;  with  the  reason  of  it,  ver.  16. 

5.  Because  it  is  difficult  work  you  have  to  do,  and  therefore  we 
should  set  ourselves  to  labouring,  for  it  is  heart  work.  Much  of  reli- 
gion is  inwardly,  and  the  heart  must  be  brought  up  to  every  piece  of 
work ;  and  none  ever  tried  that,  but  must  say  it  is  indeed  difficult. 
Again,  it  is  work  in  which  you  have  all  that  you  did  before  to  un- 
do. Sinner,  what  hast  thou  been  doing,  but  labouring  to  keep 
thyself  out  of  that  rest  ?  Thou  hast  been  platting  cords  to  bind 
thyself  in  the  pit.  Thou  hast  been  weaving  thy  whole  life  into  one 
web  of  sin.  Now  thou  must  open  all  out  again,  by  repentance 
and  fleeing  to  Christ.  Besides  it  is  a  work  in  which  you  must 
counterdo ;  for  there  are  that  labour  to  keep  you  out  of  that  rest, 
the  devil,  the  world,  and  your  own  corrupt  hearts. 

Now  for  Application. — I  exhort  you  in  the  words  of  the  text,  "|Let 
us  labour,  therefore,  to  enter  into  that  rest."  Old  and  young,  we 
would  call  you  here  to  your  work.  This  is  a  great  purpose,  on 
which  we  would  insist ;  and  to  make  way  for  what  is  to  be  said  to 
stir  you  up,  I  would  lay  some  evidences  before  you  to  shew  that 
there  is  little  of  this  labouring  among  us. 

1.  Infrequency  in  the  duties  of  religion.  Many  live  utter  stran- 
gers to  the  duty  of  prayer,  particularly  in  secret.  These  that  are 
praying  persons,  how  easily  are  they  satisfied ;  maybe  once  a  day, 
maybe  twice,  though  God  put  other  opportunities  in  their  hands. 
Religion  is  their  byehand  work,  not  their  business. 

2.  The  unconcerned  way  of  performing  duties.  How  dead  and 
coldrife  are  we  for  the  most  part,  in  the  duties  of  religion.  In 
hearing,  though  our  ears  be  open,  our  hearts  are  shut ;  in  prayer, 
the  heart  leaves  the  tongue.  We  pray  as  if  we  cared  not  whether 
we  be  heard  or  not.  Duties  are  rather  managed  as  a  task,  than  as 
a  privilege.  How  few  labour  wrestling  for  the  blessing,  and  are 
afterwards  concerned  to  know  how  they  succeed  ? 


294  BELIEVERS  LABOUBINa 

3.  The  want  of  desire  after  the  heavenly  rest.  Rest  is  sweet  to 
the  labouring  man.  Will  not  the  traveller  desire  the  place  to 
which  he  is  going,  and  the  labouring  man  desire  his  rest.  And  so 
will  the  Christian;  his  treasure  is  in  heaven,  and  his  heart  will  be 
there  also.  But  alas !  the  language  of  the  hearts  of  many  is,  with 
that  profane  cardinal,  who  said  he  would  give  up  his  part  in  para- 
dise for  ciirtain  s^^ecified  enjoyments  on  earth.  No  doubt  many 
would  make  a  bargain  with  God  on  lower  terms,  and  let  him  keep 
his  heaven  to  himself,  so  that  he  would  permit  them  to  live  on  this 
earth,  and  shift  for  themselves. 

4.  The  little  appetite  after  spiritual  food.  Labouring  men  can 
readily  take  their  meat,  their  work  gives  them  an  appetite  ;  and  so 
the  man  that  is  labouring  to  enter  will  desire  the  influences  of  grace, 
the  communications  of  the  Spirit,  and  fellowship  with  Christ,  that 
he  may  be  the  better  fitted  for  his  work.  And  so  his  work  is  to  be 
frequently  drawing  strength  from  the  fountain  of  it.  "  Not  that  we 
are  sufiicient  of  ourselves,  to  think  any  thing  as  of  ourselves;  but 
our  sufficiency  is  of  God." 

5.  The  little  progress  that  the  most  make  in  the  way  to  heaven. 
Alas !  some  are  gone  backward,  and  are  fallen  from  their  first  love. 
Many  are  like  the  door  on  the  hinges,  still  where  it  was  some  years  ago. 
How  few  are  there,  that  are  adding  a  cubit  to  their  spiritual  stature  ? 
And  are  these  labouring  to  enter,  who  are  never  a  whit  farther  for- 
ward than  they  were  ?  Surely  continual  dropping  wears  the  rock, 
and  labour  overcomes  all  difficulties.  For  motives  to  this  labour 
take  the  following : 

Motive  1.  Consider  that  in  other  things  you  do  not  refuse  to 
labour.  You  are  not  such  as  live  idle  and  at  ease.  Now  God  is 
putting  a  i)iece  of  work  in  your  hands  ;  will  you  labour  for  others, 
but  not  for  him  ? 

1.  Consider  the  work  and  labour  which  you  have  for  your  livelihood. 
You  are  not  as  many ;  who  sit  down  to  eat  and  drink,  and  then  rise 
up  to  play.  No ;  in  the  sweat  of  your  brows  you  earn  your  bread. 
When  you  have  wrought  to  weariness,  all  has  enough  to  do  to  pro- 
cure you  a  maintenance,  though  coarse ;  and  within  a  little  ye  shall 
die,  and  that  body  for  which  thou  labourest  will  moulder  into  pieces 
of  dust;  and  of  all  your  labours  you  shall  carry  nothing  hence, 
Eccl.  V.  15. 

But  ah  !  may  not  many  say,  they  have  made  me  keeper  of  another's 
vineyard,  but  mine  own  vineyard  have  I  not  kept.  I  have  been  busy 
labouring  the  ground,  but  mine  own  heart  has  been  neglected ;  1 
have  been  wearied  cutting  down  the  harvest  of  others,  biit  as  yet 
mine  own  seed  for  glory  is  not  sown.     I  have  managed  a  house,  but 


FOR  THEIR  REWARP.  295 

neglected  mine  own  soul.  I  have  toiled  these  raany  years  for  my 
body,  but  neglected  my  soul.  And  what  wisdom  is  in  this  ?  For 
consider,  1.  The  body  is  mortal,  thy  soul  is  immortal.  Wert  thou 
to  die  like  a  beast,  thou  might  live  like  a  beast,  and  only  eat,  drink, 
sleep,  and  work.  But  thou  hast  an  immortal  soul,  that  will  live 
when  thy  body  dies.  It  will  be  vigorous  when  thy  tongue  begins  to 
faulter,  and  thy  breath  comes  to  take  its  last  farewell ;  and  will  be 
going  to  the  judgment  when  thy  friends  are  closing  thine  eyes,  and 
preparing  for  thy  burial.  "Will  you  then  labour  for  the  body,  and 
not  for  the  soul  ? 

2.  Thy  soul  craves  far  more  than  thy  body.  While  the  body  is 
active,  a  little  will  serve  it  for  food  and  raiment ;  and  after  death, 
a  small  piece  of  ground,  which  none  will  grudge  it.  But  the  soul 
cannot  be  so  easily  satisfied.  Nothing  less  than  an  infinite  good  can 
satisfy  the  soul.  He  was  a  fool  indeed,  who  spoke  of  his  soul,  as  of 
his  swine,  saying,  "  Soul,  thou  hast  goods  laid  up  for  many  years ; 
take  thine  ease,  eat,  drink,  and  be  merry."  Nothing  but  the  eternal 
enjoyment  of  God  can  satisfy  the  soul,  that  is  the  only  breast  that 
can  stay  this  hungry  child. 

3.  Thy  soul  is  of  far  more  worth  than  the  body.  Is  a  spiritual 
substance  to  be  laid  in  the  balance  with  a  piece  of  dust?  The  soul 
is  the  diamond  in  the  ring,  the  jewel  in  the  cabinet.  To  lose  the 
soul  by  caring  for  the  body,  is  to  lose  the  foot  to  save  the  shoe, 
Matth.  xvi.  26.  What  a  poor  bargain  had  Judas  of  his  thirty 
pieces !  And  what  a  poor  bargain  have  they  at  death  who,  like  the 
spider,  work  out  their  bowels,  and  in  a  moment  they  and  their  la- 
bours are  swept  away  into  darkness ! 

4.  Tlie  true  way  to  care  for  the  body,  is  to  labour  for  the  soul. 
Were  there  no  resurrection  of  the  body,  the  course  of  the  world 
were  more  tolerable  ;  but  now  they  do  quite  mistake  the  point ;  for 
caring  thus  for  the  body  at  the  neglect  of  the  soul,  they  do  but 
fatten  the  body  for  the  day  of  slaughter ;  laying  it  down  full  of  sin,  to 
be  raised  full  of  wrath,  for  fuel  to  God's  vengeance.  In  this  sense, 
that  is  true,  which  we  have  Matth.  x.  39  ;  "  He  that  findeth  his  life 
shall  lose  it,  and  he  that  loseth  his  life  for  my  sake  shall  find  it." 
But  would  we  labour  for  our  sonls,  we  should  then  lay  up  for  our 
bodies,  Phil.  iii.  19 — 21.  Make  these  reflections  when  you  are  at 
your  labour. 

5.  We  are  all  laborious  creatures.  The  greatest  idler  on  earth  is 
in  some  respect  busy.  When  your  hands  are  doing  nothing,  yet 
your  hearts  are  busy.  Our  life  is  nothing  but  a  continued  succes- 
sion of  actions,  as  the  fire  continually  burns,  and  the  rivers  con- 
tinually run.     Now  God  does  not  require  of  us  to  do  more  work,  but 


296  BELIEVERS  LABOURTJfa 

only  oHier  work.  To  do  more  than  we  do  is  in  some  sense  impossi- 
ble, for  we  are  ever  doing.  The  soul  of  man  is  like  a  watch,  where 
the  wl.ccls  go  as  fast  when  it  moves  falsely,  as  when  it  goes  true. 
Seeing  then  we  are  ever  travelling,  why  may  we  not  rather  hold 
the  King's  highway,  than  be  wandering,  as  the  blind,  hither  and 
thither. 

6.  While  we  labour  not  to  enter  into  this  rest,  we  are  labouring 
about  trifles  ;  like  Martha,  we  are  careful  and  troubled  about  many 
things ;  and  like  Ephraim,  feeding  on  the  wind,  and  following  after 
the  east  wind.  What  are  riches,  but  the  name  of  nothing,  Prov. 
xxiii.  5.  Honours,  but  as  a  fair  bubble  that  children  blow  up.  In 
all  which,  we  but  load  ourselves  with  thick  clay  ;  and  when  we  come 
to  cast  up  our  accounts  we  may  say,  "  We  have  been  with  child,  we 
have  been  in  pain,  we  have  as  it  were  brought  forth  wind."  And 
we  answer  Solomon's  question  with  shame  and  blushing,  "  What 
profit  hath  he  that  hath  laboured  for  the  wind  ?"  What  a  fool 
was  he  that  pretended  to  lead  out  an  army  to  fight  the  enemy,  and 
all  he  did  was  to  make  them  gather  shells  by  the  sea-side  ?  What 
a  fool  was  he  that  busied  himself  catching  flies,  while  he  should 
have  minded  the  aff'airs  of  the  empire.  Laborious  idleness,  and 
solemn  trifling,  are  very  unbecoming  a  Christian. 

Motive  2.  Tour  profession  and  your  vows  call  upon  you  to 
labour  to  enter.  You  have  been  professing  yourselves  believers  in 
Christ,  and  followers  of  him.  You  are  therefore  called  upon  "  to 
fight  the  good  fight  of  faith,  and  to  lay  hold  upon  eternal  life." 

You  were  professing  your  union  and  communion  with  Christ,  and 
therefore  labour  to  enter  his  rest.  The  head  is  gone  to  heaven, 
why  will  not  the  members  labour  to  follow  ?  Idle  members,  or  such 
as  trifle  away  their  time,  are  very  unsuitable  to  a  head  that  la- 
boured so  hard  for  their  salvation.  There  is  sap  in  the  vine  ;  must 
the  branches  hang  on  it  withered,  shall  they  not  bring  forth  fruit  ? 
If  not,  take  heed  you  be  not  lopped  ofi",  and  cast  over  the  hedge. 
Shew  your  faith  by  your  works,  your  union  with  Christ  by  your 
spiritual  labour.  You  were  professing  your  near  and  special  rela- 
tion to  him.  Are  you  Christ's  children,  then  mind  you  are  to 
labour,  for  he  brings  up  no  idlers.  The  heathens  exposed  those 
children  that  they  judged  would  not  be  useful  for  the  common- 
wealth. Christ's  spouse  must  labour  to  be  with  her  husband,  else 
she  gives  a  shrewd  sign  of  a  whorish  heart.  His  servants  must  all 
labour,  and  his  soldiers  must  fight  for  the  kingdom  above. 

You  professed  your  turning  your  back  on  the  world  and  your 
lusts.  What  must  you  do  then,  but  labour  to  enter  into  that  rest ; 
and  as  you  were  called,  so  to  come  away  with  him.     Will  you  look 


FOR  THEIR  REWARB.  297 

back  again  to  tlie  flesh-pots  of  Egypt  ?  Know  what  a  look  cost 
Lot's  wife.  Have  you  set  your  face  towards  Canaan,  and  will  you 
not  labour  to  enter  there  ? 

You  were  at  a  spiritual  feast;  you  have  got  your  meal  to  fit  you 
for  your  work  ;  then  up  and  be  doing.  The  passover  was  eaten  by  the 
Israelites  with  their  loins  girded,  and  their  staves  in  their  hands,  as 
ready  to  go  forward  ;  so  ought  it  to  be  with  us.  He  feeds  his  people, 
not  for  slaughter,  but  for  work.  There  is  a  banner  in  Christ's  baii- 
queting-house,  that  the  guests  may  know  their  work  which  they 
have  to  do. 

You  were  getting  a  full  covenant  sealed,  influences  of  grace, 
strength  against  corruption,  all  confirmed  to  you.  It  is  but  a  mock 
if  you  labour  not,  and  so  improve  thera.  Why  went  you  to  seek 
strength,  if  you  intend  not  to  use  it  ?  What  need  have  you  of  in- 
fluences if  you  mind  not  to  go  in  the  strength  of  them  ? 

You  were  devoting  yourselves  to  the  Lord ;  you  have  lifted  up 
your  hands  to  the  Lord,  and  you  cannot  go  back.  If  you  do,  God 
will  abhor  you,  the  devil  will  find  you  more  work  than  before,  and 
you  will  be  a  reproach  to  religion,  and  you  will  never  sin  at  so 
cheap  a  rate  as  before. 

Motive  3.  Your  time  is  short ;  ere  long,  all  of  us  shall  be  in  an 
unalterable  state.  By  the  course  of  nature,  some  are  at  the  borders 
of  the  grave,  many  in  their  declining  state  ;  to  all  of  us  our  time  is 
uncertain,  for  graves  of  all  sizes  ai'e  in  the  churchyard.  One  gene- 
ration passeth  away,  another  cometh  in  its  stead.  There  is  room 
enough  in  the  earth,  notwithstanding  of  the  vast  numbers  that  came 
to  it  before  us.  Every  child  that  is  born,  comes  to  us  with  a  warn- 
ing away,  telling  us  to  provide  our  lodging  elsewhere.  Death  will 
neither  be  boasted  nor  bribed.  Our  life  is  a  vapour,  our  days  a 
shadow,  an  handbreadth,  soon  passed  over,  yea  a  mere  nothing.  Is 
our  time  short,  then  it  will  soon  be  over,  and  therefore. 

We  must  labour  now  or  never.  The  night  cometh,  in  which 
no  man  can  work.  Time  for  working  will  soon  be  gone,  how  can 
we  be  at  ease,  while  so  much  of  our  time  is  past,  and  so  little 
of  our  work  byhand  ?  Yet  are  not  there  many  on  whom  the 
shadows  of  the  evening  are  begun  to  be  stretched  out,  and  yet  they 
know  not  where  they  will  take  up  their  eternal  lodging  ? 

Ere  long  our  labour  will  be  over,  and  we  will  come  to  that  eternal 
rest.  If  the  work  be  hard,  yet  it  is  not  long.  He  that  is  tired 
with  his  journey,  will  recover  his  spirits,  when  he  sees  he  is  near 
the  end  of  it;  and  the  shadows  of  the  evening  make  the  labourer 
work  heartily,  knowing  that  it  will  soon  be  done.  The  apostle 
tells  us,  our  afflictions   are    but  short,  our  weeping  is  but  for  a 


298  BELIEVERS  LABOURING 

moment.  For  yet  a  little  while,  and  the  laughter  of  fools,  which  is 
but  as  the  crackling  of  thorns  under  a  pot,  will  go  away  in  a  blazo, 
and  the  sorrows  and  labours  of  the  Lord's  people  will  be  at  an  end. 
The  watchmen  will  be  called  in  from  the  posts,  the  soldiers  will 
lay  by  their  swords  and  put  on  their  crowns,  and  the  labourers  will 
bid  an  eternal  farewell  to  their  painful  labours,  and  enjoy  their 
reward. 

I  add,  that  in  some  sort,  less  pains  will  serve  in  religion  to  save  you, 
than  men  take  in  sin  to  damn  them.  For  consider,  religion  con- 
tracts our  work,  it  brings  it  to  one  thing,  Psal.  xxvii.  4  ;  Luke  x. 
41,  42.  Sinners  have  the  devil,  the  world,  and  the  flesh,  to  please. 
The  work  of  religion  also  is  of  a  piece.  Sin  not  so.  All  the  graces 
of  the  Spirit  go  together  in  sweet  harmony,  but  our  lusts  are  quite 
contrary  to  one  another ;  and  as  they  war  against  grace,  so  they 
war  among  themselves  ;  so  that  the  sinner  is  dragged  by  one  lust 
one  way,  by  another  another  way.  And  how  uneasy  is  it  to  work 
to  different  masters.  This  is  what  sinners  do,  and  only  religion  can 
give  ease  here. 

Motive  4.  Your  time  is  uncertain,  as  well  as  short.  We  have 
no  security  of  life,  but  are  tenants-at-will ;  when  the  Lord  may 
call  us  away  we  know  not,  Matth.  xxv.  44,  46.  A  moment's  delay 
here,  may  be  an  eternal  loss.  What  an  unsure  thing  is  life  to  depend 
upon  !  How  many  have  projected  great  things  to  be  done  in  the 
time  to  come ;  but  death  has  come  unlooked  for,  and  that  day  their 
thoughts  have  perished.  What  remains,  but  that  we  should  quickly 
set  ourselves  to  work,  and  with  all  diligence  hold  at  it. 

Motive  5.  The  devil  is  busy  to  keep  you  out  of  that  rest.  He 
goeth  about  as  a  roaring  lion,  seeking  whom  he  may  devour.  Though 
you  be  idle,  he  is  not  idle.  He  is  an  industrious  adversary.  He 
will  be  careful  to  put  other  work  in  your  hand,  and  to  suit  his  temp- 
tations to  your  corrupt  inclinations.  If  he  can  keep  you  out  of 
heaven,  and  accomplish  your  ruin,  he  will  do  it.  He  is  an  enemy 
that  wants  not  skill  to  contrive  means  for  your  ruin.  He  hath  had 
several  thousand  years'  experience  of  the  art  of  ruining  souls.  He 
wants  not  malice  enough  to  make  him  act  vigorously  ;  and  he  hath 
plenty  of  cunning  to  deceive.  His  power  is  great,  but  limited.  He 
may  be  counteracted,  but  it  will  cost  labour.  By  the  shield  of  faith 
properly  wielded,  "  We  shall  be  able  to  quench  all  the  fiery  darts 
of  the  wicked  one."  Learn  then  of  the  devil  the  worth  of  your 
souls. 

Motive  6.  You  have  weighty  calls  to  this  work  and  labour. 

1.  You  have  the  call  of  the  word  and  ordinances.  Wherefore 
has  the  Lord  sent  you  his  gospel,  but  for  this  end.     Does  a  master 


BELIEVERS  LABOURING  299 

light  a  candle  for  bis  servants  to  play  themselves  ?  God  has  lighted 
his  candle  among  you.  The  work  of  ministers  is  to  call  you  to 
labour  for  the  salvation  of  your  souls.  You  are  not  shut  up  in 
the  dark,  nor  muffled  up  in  clouds  of  error  and  ignorance.  The 
darkness  is  over,  the  light  is  come ;  the  night  is  over,  the  day 
breaks,  and  the  sun  is  up ;  be  not  then  as  the  beasts,  but  quit  your- 
selves as  men,  Psal.  civ.  22,  23. 

2.  You  have  the  call  of  providence.  What  may  be  the  conduct 
of  providence  towards  each  of  you  in  particular,  you  ought  to  ob- 
serve. I  dare  not  but  say,  that  the  dispensation  of  providence 
towards  this  congregation  at  this  time,  calls  us  to  stir  up  ourselves 
and  to  set  about  our  work.  The  state  of  affairs  also,  in  this  land  at 
this  day,  has  a  loud  call  to  us.  Many  are  afraid  of  a  stroke  to  these 
nations;  and  while  such  great  affairs  are  in  agitation,  it  is  unac- 
countable to  be  idle  and  unconcerned. 

3.  The  call  of  conscience.  It  is  scarcely  to  be  supposed,  that 
men  who  live  under  such  gospel  light  as  we  do,  but  that  sometimes 
they  have  their  convictions,  when  even  heathens  have  theirs,  Rom. 
ii.  14,  15.  Does  not  conscience  often  tell  the  sluggard,  that  a  little 
more  sleep  may  be  fatal  to  him.  0  hear  the  excitements  of  your 
conscience  to  duty,  that  you  may  not  have  to  endure  its  gnawings. 

Lastly,  If  you  labour  not,  you  will  never  see  heaven.  "  Strive  to 
enter  in  at  the  strait  gate  ;  for  many,  I  say  unto  you,  will  seek  to 
enter  in,  and  shall  not  be  able."  Here  consider,  that  without 
labouring,  you  will  not  be  meet  for  it.  In  heaven  there  is  eternal 
work  ;  you  should  inure  yourselves  to  it  then,  while  on  earth. 
"  They  rest  not  there  day  and  night."  How  uneasy  it  is  for  a  man 
to  work  who  has  spent  most  of  his  days  in  idleness  ;  and  how  un- 
meet are  idlers  for  heaven  ;  and  unless  you  be  meet  for  it,  there 
you  cannot  come.  God  makes  his  people  "  meet  to  be  partakers  of 
the  inheritance  of  the  saints  in  light."  Consider  also,  that  falling 
short  of  heaven  is  certainly  getting  hell.  There  is  no  middle  place. 
Now  who  can  dwell  with  everlasting  burnings  ?  0  how  dreadful 
will  the  thoughts  of  slighted  salvation  be  to  the  damned  ? 

Objection  1.  I  am  but  young,  it  is  time  enough.  Answer. 
Begin  when  you  will,  you  will  find  work  enough  to  occupy  all  your 
days.  Youth  is  the  best  time  for  that  great  work  ;  and  sure  I  am, 
it  is  far  more  reasonable  to  give  the  best  of  our  days  to  God  than 
to  the  devil.  But  there  are  graves  of  all  sizes.  You  know  not  if 
ever  you  shall  be  old.  If  you  get  not  something  of  religion  when 
you  are  young,  seeing  you  are  brought  up  under  a  gospel  ministry, 
it  will  be  a  thousand  to  one  if  you  get  any  thing  of  it  when  you  are 
Vol.  IV.  u 


300  BELIEVERS  LABOLRINU 

old.     If  you  should  get  it  then,  you  will  have  but  little  time  to 
serve  the  Lord,  and  little  strength  for  that  little  time. 

2.  Some  say  they  are  old  now,  and  are  not  able.  Answer.  Con- 
sider how  you  have  spent  your  former  days.  Some  never  minded 
God  nor  religion  while  strength  lasted,  and  now  strength  is  gone  in 
a  great  measure;  you  have  the  more  need  now  to  be  at  pains,  "  lest 
you  shall  lie  down  in  the  dust,  with  your  bones  full  of  the  sins  of 
your  youth."  As  for  those  that  formerly  have  been  at  pains,  be- 
ware that  you  think  not  that  is  enough.  To  you  Jesus  says,  "  Be 
thou  faithful  unto  death,  and  I  will  give  thee  a  crown  of  life." 
None  are  excepted  from  labour  that  will  enter;  and  put  the  case 
that  your  temporal  life  were  lying  at  the  stake,  what  would  you 
do  ?  But  it  is  the  least  part  of  religion  that  consists  in  bodily 
exercise,  the  most  weighty  and  important  part  of  it  consists  in  soul 
exercise. 

3.  Some  say  they  have  another  thing  to  mind.  They  have  an  ill 
world  to  wrestle  with,  and  have  much  ado  to  get  through  it,  and  ob- 
tain a  livelihood.  Answer.  It  will  be  sad  to  wrestle  with  the  world 
here,  and  with  the  wrath  of  God  hereafter.  Have  you  not  a  soul  to 
wrestle  for  ?  Alas  !  many  do  in  this,  as  some  who,  when  a  house  is 
on  fire,  to  save  their  clothes,  they  lose  their  lives.  That  is  the 
wrong  way  to  get  a  through  bearing.  The  safest  way  is  to  labour 
for  your  souls,  and  trust  to  God  for  your  bodies.  In  this  way 
"  bread  shall  be  given  you,  and  your  water  shall  be  sure."  "  For 
godliness  is  profitable  unto  all  things,  having  the  promise  of  the 
life  that  now  is,  and  of  that  which  is  to  come."  You  that  are  ser- 
vants, will  work  your  master's  work,  and  trust  that  he  will  pay 
yon  what  he  has  promised;  why  do  you  not  work  God's  work,  and 
trust  his  promise  as  much  ? 

4.  Some  say  they  do  indeed  resolve  to  be  laborious  Christians 
after  this.  Answer.  Is  this  work  so  easy,  that  you  will  needs  have 
it  to  be  harder,  ere  you  put  hand  to  it.  Assure  yourselves,  the 
longer  you  delay,  you  will  find  the  harder  work  of  it.  The  devil 
comes  alone  at  first,  at  length  his  name  is  legion ;  and  it  is  always 
hard  to  turn  out  old  possessors.  Sin  is  like  waters,  the  farther 
from  the  head  the  greater  they  grow,  as  Ezek.  xlvii.  3 — 5.  But 
rgain,  you  are  not  sure  that  you  shall  see  another  day.  We  are 
agreed  about  the  necessity  of  labouring ;  the  only  thing  is,  God 
says  do  it  now;  you  say  you  will  do  it  afterwards;  but  the  time  to 
come  is  not  yours.  "  Repent,"  said  the  Jewish  doctors,  "  only  one 
day  before  your  death."  It  is  wisely  said  then,  "  Repent  this  day  ; 
for  it  may  be  thou  shalt  die  to-morrow."  Once  more,  God's  grace 
is  not  at  your  disposal,  for  the  outward  call  may  cease,  or  it  may 


FOR  THEIR  REWART».  301 

grow  more  faint.  Conscience  and  the  motions  of  the  Spirit  may 
cease ;  and  if  all  should  continue,  you  cannot  assure  yourselves  of 
grace  to  close  with  them  after  this  moment. 

5.  Others  say,  the  business  is  not  so  great  but  it  may  be  soon 
done ;  it  is  but  to  cry  to  God  for  mercy,  to  believe  and  repent,  and 
we  may  do  that  on  a  death-bed.  Answer.  How  do  you  know  that 
you  shall  get  a  death-bed,  that  you  shall  not  in  a  moment  drop 
down  into  the  pit  ?  Are  there  not  some  so  suddenly  snatched  away, 
that  if  a  bare  cry  for  mercy  would  save  them,  they  cannot  have 
opportunity  for  it.  But  if  they  should  get  leave  to  cry,  it  is  not  so 
easily  got,  Luke  xiii.  24.  Again,  do  you  think  believing  and 
repenting  so  easy  ?  Then  I  say,  why  do  you  not  believe  and  repent 
now?  Will  you  not  please  God  in  a  thing  you  can  so  easily  do? 
If  you  will  not  do  for  God  what  you  think  you  can  do  so  easily, 
what  confidence  can  you  have  to  look  for  his  favour.  Again,  I 
think  common  sense  should  teach  men  at  least  once  to  try  that  on 
which  they  mind  to  venture  their  eternal  state,  which  if  it  misgive 
they  eternally  perish.  If  a  man  were  to  be  let  down  a  steep  rock 
upon  a  rope,  would  he  not  first  try  if  it  would  bear  his  weight  ? 
"Will  you  then  try  faith  and  repentance ;  and  if  you  have  that  faith 
and  repentance,  that  will  secure  your  souls,  they  will  put  you  on 
labouring.  But  it  is  not  so  easy  to  get  them  as  you  suppose.  True 
faith  and  repentance  are  above  nature's  reach,  Eph.  i.  19,  20;  Acts 
iv.  34.  "When  conscience  is  awakened,  though  it  is  easy  now  for 
some  to  presume,  yet  then  it  is  not,  as  we  see  in  Judas.  The  blind 
mole,  when  dying,  may  recover  its  sight.  Do  you  not  observe  that 
a  death-bed  has  oft  enough  to  do  with  itself?  Are  not  some  persons 
taken  away  in  the  rage  of  a  fever,  deprived  of  their  senses  ?  Is 
it  time  to  turn  to  God,  when  you  cannot  turn  yourself  on  your 
bed ;  or  to  secure  your  soul,  when  every  member  of  thy  body  is 
pained. 

6.  Some  say  all  this  is  needless,  for  they  have  no  power  in  them- 
selves to  do  any  thing.  Answer.  Wicked  men  do  but  mock  us  in 
making  this  objection,  for  they  think  not  as  they  speak.  To  evince 
this,  tell  me,  did  you  never  resolve  to  labour  ?  Had  you  never  in 
all  your  life  one  serious  thought  concerning  your  souls  ?  Did 
you  never  put  off  the  motions  of  the  Spirit  with  delays  ?  Where- 
fore do  you  lean  to  your  own  works  ?  Again,  no  man  does  all  he 
can,  or  is  able  to  do.  There  are  many  things  you  are  able  to 
do  Avithout  special  saving  grace,  and  yet  you  will  not  do  them. 
Does  the  devil  beat  drums  in  your  ears  while  you  are  hearing  the 
word,  that  you  cannot  listen  to  it,  nor  apply  it  ?  Does  he  hold 
fast  your  doors,  and  bind  you  to  one  another,  that  you  cannot  go 

u2 


302  BELIEVERS  LABOURING 

alone,  and  meditate  on  it?  Does  he  forcibly  stretch  out  your  legs, 
and  lay  a  band  on  your  tongues,  that  you  cannot  bow  a  knee  to  God, 
nor  cry  to  him  for  your  souls  ?  Do  then  what  you  are  able,  and 
look  to  God  for  grace,  and  never  rest  satisfied  till  he  has  put  you 
on  the  way  of  labouring.  "Would  a  master  take  this  for  an  excuse 
from  his  servant,  that  he  has  no  power  to  work  till  God  act  and 
move  him  ?  Why  this  is  a  most  certain  truth.  Yet  he  must  set 
himself  to  it,  and  look  to  God  for  his  concurrence.  Upon  the  whole 
then,  let  me  charge  your  consciences  with  that  word,  Why  stand  ye 
here  all  the  day  idle  ? 

7.  Some  say  there  are  but  few  at  such  pains  about  religion,  and 
these  are  a  crowd  of  mean  people.  Answer.  These  might  be  just 
prejudices  against  religion,  if  Christ  had  not  foretold  that  it  would 
be  so,  Matth.  vii.  13,  14;  Matth.  xi.  25;  1  Cor.  i.  26,  27.  But  I 
had  better  go  to  heaven  with  the  poorest  on  earth,  than  to  hell  with 
nobles,  rich  men,  and  the  greatest  wits  of  the  age.  If  the  Scripture 
be  true,  it  is  but  few  that  will  be  saved.  This  work  honours  any 
man,  but  no  man  can  honour  it. 

Now  to  make  this  labour  easy  to  you,  I  would  recommend, 

1.  To  keep  the  encouragements  to  the  work  in  your  eye  ;  particu- 
larly such  as  these,  the  example  of  these  that  have  gone  before  you, 
and  have  got  safe  to  the  journey's  end.  These  have  made  it  appear 
the  work  is  possible,  and  the  reward  certain.  You  are  not  the  first 
that  have  taken  heaven  by  storm.  There  is  a  cloud  of  witnesses  be- 
fore you.  Again,  that  God  accepts  of  sincere  obedience,  though  the 
work  be  not  perfect ;  if  the  workman  be  so,  that  is  sincere,  the 
Lord  accepts  the  work.  "  For  if  there  be  first  a  willing  mind,  it  is 
accepted  according  to  what  a  man  hath,  and  not  according  to  what 
he  hath  not."  Now  that  heart  is  sincere,  where  there  is  not  an  al- 
lowance of  any  known  sin.  Another  encouragement  is,  the  help 
promised  and  ready  for  those  that  sincerely  labour.  "  It  is  God 
that  worketh  in  them,  both  to  will  and  to  do  of  his  good  pleasure." 
If  you  do  the  things  that  please  him,  you  are  not  alone,  he  is  with 
you.  There  is  also  the  great  reward  that  is  promised  ;  and  we  are 
to  have  "  respect  unto  the  recompence  of  reward."  It  is  no  wonder 
people  labour  for  a  rewarding  God,  whose  hands  are  as  full  of  re- 
wards as  his  mouth  of  commands. 

2.  Live  by  faith.  Faith  has  a  mighty  influence  on  our  labouring. 
Faith  entitles  us  to  that  rest,  and  faith  brings  supplies  for  that 
labour  from  the  Mediator.  It  provides  for  all  the  rest  of  the  graces 
of  the  Spirit.  A  faith  of  the  principles  of  religion,  and  a  faith  rely- 
ing on  the  Mediator,  are  most  useful, 

3.  Labour  to  get  and  keep  up  love  to  Christ.     Love  is  the  load- 


FOR  THEIK  BEWARD.  303 

stone  of  obedience.  It  makes  every  thing  easy  for  the  attaining  of 
what  is  beloved,  as  in  Jacob's  love  to  Rachel, 

4.  Look  upon  that  labouring  as  your  interest,  as  well  as  your 
duty.  Duty,  considered  as  a  mere  task,  is  a  weary  business.  0 
wonder  that  there  is  a  possibility  of  entering  that  rest,  and  that  you 
may  in  such  a  way  attain  to  it. 

Lastly,  Be  constant  in  that  labour.  The  great  uneasiness  flows 
from  the  interruptions  in  that  work.  To  stand  still  is  to  backslide, 
and  produces  a  new  work  to  make  up  our  lost  ground,  and  constancy 
creates  easiness ;  what  is  at  first  hard,  by  continued  custom  be- 
comes easy. 

Doctrine  II.  That  heaven  is  a  rest  into  which,  those  that  now 
labour  for  it  shall  be  received.  I  have  several  times  had  occasion 
to  discourse  of  heaven.     I  will  at  present  only  point  at  a  few  things. 

I.  In  what  respect  heaven  is  a  rest  ? 

1.  It  is  a  rest  from  sin.  Sin  is  a  toil  to  a  gracious  soul.  Satan 
often  gets  God's  children  set  to  his  work  now ;  but  were  they  once 
there,  they  shall  sin  no  more,  for  the  spirits  of  just  men  are  made 
perfect.  They  shall  then  be  freed  from  all  commission  of  sin,  from 
the  inbeing  of  it,  inclination  to  it,  yea,  or  possibility  of  it. 

2.  From  all  misery,  outward  or  inward  ;  no  pain  nor  sickness  ; 
the  poor  shall  be  as  easy  there  as  the  rich  ;  no  desertion,  nor 
hidings  of  Grod's  face.  The  wrath  to  come  shall  not  come  near  their 
dwelling. 

3.  From  the  works  of  their  wilderness  state.  They  shall  not  be 
put  to  gather  the  manna  in  societies  for  prayer,  or  in  public  ordi- 
nances;  but  they  shall  be  fed  to  the  full  with  the  product  of  the 
land  falling  into  their  mouths  without  toil ;  no  prayers,  mourning 
self-examination,  nor  mortification  there.  Faith  gives  place  to  sight, 
and  hope  to  fruition. 

4.  It  is  a  rest,  in  that  it  is  the  fulfilment  of  all  the  desires  of  the 
soul.  There  they  shall  have  the  perfect  enjoyment  of  God,  and  un- 
interrupted communion  with  him.  This  is  the  point  to  which  the 
soul  inclines ;  as  the  needle  in  the  compass,  to  the  north.  Till  it 
comes  there,  it  is  restless;  but  when  there,  it  rests;  for  he  is  the 
ultimate  end,  and  it  can  go  no  farther.  The  soul  can  understand, 
will,  desire,  no  more,  "  Whom  have  I  in  heaven  but  thee  ?  and 
there  is  none  on  earth  that  I  desire  besides  thee," 

II.  What  sort  of  a  rest  is  heaven  ? 

1.  It  is  an  active,  or  working  rest.  Their  works  follow  them  in 
this  sense.  It  is  not  a  place  where  the  soul  may  sleep  out  an  eter- 
nity ;  but  they  rest  not  day  nor  night,  yet  their  work  is  a  rest. 
They  will  wonder  evermore,  and  yet  with  delight  they  will  rejoice 


304  BELIEVERS  LABOURING 

evermore  without  any  surfeit,  and  praise  without  being  weary  of  the 
exercise. 

2.  A  perfect  rest ;  a  rest  for  soul  and  body  both.  The  Israelites 
when  they  got  free  of  Pharaoh's  taskmasters,  yet  in  the  wilderness 
had  sore  toil,  but  then  came  to  Canaan ;  so  the  people  of  God,  they 
get  some  rest  by  conversion,  but  their  great  rest  is  reserved  for 
glory.  When  they  came  to  the  typical  rest,  there  were  thorns  left 
for  their  eyes,  and  pricks  for  their  sides,  but  none  in  heaven. 

3.  Eternal ;  it  shall  never  be  disturbed.  "  They  shall  be  ever 
with  the  Lord."  Their  glory  is  eternal,  their  crown  fades  not  away. 
"When  they  shall  have  been  millions  of  years  in  their  beds  of  glory, 
there  shall  be  none  to  create  them  the  least  disturbance,  but  for  ever 
they  shall  rest  in  the  bosom  of  God. 

0  then  take  heed  ye  fall  not  short  of  this  rest,  Heb.  iv.  1. 

1.  Consider  that  the  most  of  us,  at  least,  have  none  of  the  pleasant- 
est  lives  in  the  world.  You  work,  you  toil,  and  win  your  bread 
with  the  sweat  of  your  brows.  The  world  is  a  stepdame  to  many  of 
us;  now  to  fall  short  of  this  rest  after  this,  is  to  have  a  continual 
winter,  two  hells,  neither  rest  here  nor  hereafter. 

2.  All  of  us  have  some  hopes  of  this  rest.  Hope  deferred  makes 
the  heart  sick  ;  but  the  eternal  frustration  of  it  will  be  a  death,  an 
arrow  sinking  through  the  heart.  To  fall  out  of  a  hoped-for  rest, 
will  sink  the  soul  to  the  bottomless  gulf  of  despair. 

3.  "We  have  this  rest  in  our  offer.  The  King  of  glory  declares 
his  willingness  to  match  with  us,  and  to  infeft  us  in  the  holy  land. 
To  be  excluded  out  of  an  offered  rest,  will  make  the  soul  for  ever 
restless,  and  gnaw  it  as  a  worm. 

4.  There  is  not  the  least  rest  in  hell,  not  a  drop  of  water.  They 
must  needs  be  for  ever  sinking  that  are  sent  to  a  bottomless  pit. 
The  smoke  of  their  torment  ascends,  the  worm  never  dies  there,  the 
fire  is  never  quenched.     Let  us  then  labour  to  enter  into  that  rest. 

Lest  any  man  fall,  after  the  same  example  of  unbelief. 

Doctrine.  That  unbelief  is  the  great  thing  that  makes  hearers  of 
the  gospel  fall  short  of  heaven.  It  is  by  this  they  stumble,  fall, 
and  destroy  themselves ;  even  as  by  it  the  Israelites  fell  short  of 
Canaan.     To  confirm  this  point,  consider  unbelief  two  ways  : 

I.  As  it  rejects  the  word  of  God.  "  They  despised  the  pleasant 
land,  they  believed  not  his  word."  God  has  made  a  revelation  of 
his  will  unto  sinners,  in  his  word,  faith  believes  his  word,  unbelief 
rejects  it,  and  so  in  effect  says  God  is  a  liar.  What  can  be  expected 
then,  but  that  the  God  of  truth  avenge  himself  on  this  affront,  by 
shutting  the  unbeliever  out  of  heaven. 


FOR  THEIR  REWARD.  305 

1.  Unbelief  rejects  the  doctrines  of  tlie  word.  We  see  how  far 
it  has  proceeded  with  some  this  day,  that  it  has  steeled  their  fore- 
heads with  as  much  impiety  aud  impudence  as  to  reject  the  word  of 
God  openly  ;  and  to  disbelieve  all  these  truths  that  reason  teacheth 
not.  The  same  root  of  unbelief  is  in  us  all  by  nature,  and  reigns 
there,  where  grace  has  not  captivated  the  heart  to  the  obedience  of 
the  truth.  That  this  unbelief  is  even  there,  where  it  is  not  professed, 
is  clear,  if  we  consider  how  few  there  are,  that  have  had  the  inward 
illumination  of  the  Spirit  of  Christ  to  discover  to  them  these  truths 
in  their  heavenly  lustre,  John  vi.  45.  Most  men  have  received  the 
principles  of  religion,  merely  by  the  benefit  of  their  education  ;  and 
so  their  belief  rests  upon  human  testimony,  which  is  no  foundation 
for  divine  faith,  and  therefore  they  are  still  unbelievers,  Matth.  xi. 
25;  and  xvi.  17.  Again,  how  many  make  shipwreck  of  their  faith, 
even  of  fundamental  principles,  in  a  time  of  temptation,  especially 
in  a  time  of  suffering,  2  Thess.  ii.  11,  12,  That  house  must  be  built 
on  the  sand,  and  that  faith  must  be  ill  founded,  that  cannot  abide  a 
storm.  Ofttimes  it  has  been  seen,  that  they  that  could  dispute  for 
the  truth,  could  not  sufier  for  it ;  while  others  that  could  not  dispute, 
could  suffer.  "What  is  the  reason,  but  "  that  God  hath  hid  these 
things  from  the  wise  and  prudent,  and  hath  revealed  them  unto 
babes."  Another  proof  of  prevailing  unbelief  is,  the  inconsist- 
ency of  most  men's  lives  with  their  professed  principles.  Many 
a  man  that  pretends  a  sound  head  has  an  unsound  heart.  You 
may  as  easily  bring  east  and  west  together,  as  many  men's  practice 
and  their  principles  ;  therefore  God  may  say  to  them,  as  Delilah  to 
Samson,  "  How  canst  thou  say,  I  love  thee,  when  thine  heart  is  not 
with  me."  Every  person  believes  fire  will  burn  them,  and  therefore 
none  cast  themselves  into  it. 

2.  Unbelief  rejects  the  promises  of  the  word.  God  has  made 
great  promises,  but  unbelief  looks  upon  them  only  as  fair  words. 
They  that  receive  these  promises,  are  by  them  made  partakers  of  a 
divine  nature  ;  but  surely  men  possessed  of  such  a  nature  are  very 
rare,  for  as  the  apostle  says,  "  all  men  have  not  faith,"  that  is,  few 
men.  The  Israelites  had  a  promise  of  entering  Canaan,  but  did  they 
believe  it  ?  No  ;  they  said,  "  God  had  brought  them  to  the  wilder- 
ness to  kill  them."  The  promises  are  as  silver  cords  sent  down  from 
from  heaven,  to  draw  sinners  to  the  promised  land  ;  but  unbelievers 
cast  these  cords  away  from  them. 

3.  Unbelief  rejects  the  threatenings  of  the  word.  Men  are  of 
stubborn  natures;  God  hath  therefore  hedged  about  his  law  with 
threatenings  of  wrath.  As  men  travelling  in  deserts  carry  fire  with 
them,    to    drive    away    wild    beasts  from  attacking  them,  so   God 


306  BELIEVERS  LABOURIKG 

tlireatens  men,  to  keep  them  from  sin  ;  but  sinners  generally  are 
more  beastly  than  beasts,  and  will  touch  the  smoking  fiery  mount- 
ain, though  they  should  be  thrust  through  with  a  dart ;  and  will 
make  promises  of  safety  to  themselves,  in  opposition  to  God's  threat- 
enings.  Dent.  xxix.  19,  20.  If  we  consider  narrowly,  we  will  find 
unbelief  of  the  truths  of  God  at  the  bottom  of  almost  all  these  sins 
that  ruin  souls,  as  the  mother  that  brings  them  forth,  Heb.  iii.  12. 
I  will  instance  this  in  a  few,  what  more  bloody  sin  than  unconcern - 
edness  about  the  state  of  our  souls.  Few  are  concerned  to  inquire 
into  that,  whether  there  be  a  change  made  on  them,  that  is  saving 
or  not.  They  live  as  they  were  bom,  and  are  like  to  die  as  they 
live.  Now,  what  is  the  cause  of  this  but  unbelief,  which  makes  them 
say,  "  we  are  rich  and  increased  with  goods,  and  have  need  of  no- 
thing," and  know  not  that  they  are  wretched,  and  miserable,  and 
poor,  and  blind,  and  naked.  Do  these  persons  believe  the  sinfulness 
and  misery  of  a  natural  state  ?  Do  they  believe  they  cannot  please 
God,  that  they  are  full  of  sin,  and  every  thing  they  do  is  sin  ?  that 
they  are  under  the  wrath  and  curse  of  God,  and  that  there  is  no 
salvation  without  regeneration,  and  no  regeneration  but  that  which 
makes  a  new  creature  ? 

Again,  presuming  on  the  mercy  of  God,  they  live  in  their  sins 
out  of  Christ,  and  yet  they  hope  for  mercy.  Do  these  believe  that 
God  is  such  an  one  as  he  has  revealed  himself  to  be  ?  Do  they  be- 
lieve him  to  be  just  and  holy,  and  that  he  will  by  no  means  clear 
the  guilty.  They  overturn  the  very  foundation  of  the  gospel ;  for 
if  mercy  could  have  been  had  for  mercy's  sake,  what  needed  Christ 
die. 

The  text  intimates  to  us,  that  it  is  unbelief  that  cuts  the  sinews 
of  the  labour  here  enjoined.  What  idler  would  not  dig,  if  he 
thought  to  find  a  gold  mine  that  should  be  his  own  ?  How  do  men 
sweat  and  work,  in  order  to  get  a  livelihood,  and  these  same  persons 
will  not  be  at  pains  for  heaven.  Surely  if  they  believed  the  one  as 
well  as  the  other,  they  would  not  refuse.  By  the  continuance  of  an 
unholy  life,  men  shew  that  they  do  not  believe  that  "  without  holi- 
ness no  man  shall  see  the  Lord."  Do  they  think  hell  to  be  a  real 
place  of  torment,  or  only  a  bugbear  ? 

II.  Consider  unbelief  as  rejecting  Christ.  When  men  had  by 
their  sin  excluded  themselves  from  heaven,  God  sent  Christ  into  the 
world,  that  whosoever  believeth  on  him  should  not  perish,  but  have 
everlasting  life.  Now  unbelief  rejects  him,  and  casts  him  off",  who 
is  the  only  Saviour,  Acts  iv.  12. 

Unbelief  questions,  yea  and  denies  the  soul's  need  of  Christ.  It 
pus's  up  men  with  conceit  of  themselves,  so  that  it  is  a  difiicolty  to 


FOR  THEIR  REWARD.  307 

get  them  to  submit  to  be  carried  to  heaven.  "  Going  about  to  estab- 
lish a  righteousness  of  their  own,  they  have  not  submitted  them- 
selves to  the  righteousness  of  God."  Strange  indeed,  that  the 
patient  will  refuse  to  submit  to  a  cure,  or  a  naked  man  to  receive 
clothes. 

Sometimes  unbelief  denies  the  infinite  merit  of  Christ,  and  with 
Cain  says,  as  the  margin  has  it.  Gen.  iv.  13,  "  My  sin  is  greater  than 
can  be  forgiven."  0  !  but  it  goes  ill  down  with  an  unrenewed  heart, 
to  expect  life  out  of  death,  and  satisfaction  to  justice  by  another. 
They  that  have  believed  according  to  the  exceeding  greatness  of 
God's  power,  have  found  this  very  difficult. 

Sometimes  it  denies  Christ's  willingness  to  save  and  help  the 
sinner.  Hence  we  find  the  leper  believing  his  power,  but  doubting 
his  will :  "  If  thou  wilt,  thou  canst  make  me  clean."  Men  think  it 
easy  to  believe  Christ's  willingness  to  save  them,  till  the  conscience 
be  enlightened,  and  then  this  monster  sets  up  its  head.  Now  re- 
jecting Christ,  it  must  needs  make  men  fall  short  of  heaven.  For 
by  this  mean, 

1.  It  keeps  the  soul  in  a  state  of  condemnation.  "He  that  be- 
lieveth  not  is  condemned  already,  because  he  hath  not  believed  in 
the  name  of  the  only  begotten  Son  of  God."  It  keeps  the  soul  under 
the  curse  of  the  first  covenant,  lays  them  open  to  the  justice  of  God, 
in  so  far  as  it  makes  the  soul  turn  its  back  upon  the  city  of  refuge. 
The  soul  is  kept  naked,  having  no  righteousness  in  which  it  can 
stand  before  the  Lord. 

2.  It  keeps  the  soul  in  a  state  of  impotency  to  do  any  thing  to 
purpose  for  its  salvation.  It  shackles  the  man  so  as  he  cannot 
labour,  nay,  nor  move  heavenwards.  ''  Without  me,"  says  Jesus, 
*'  ye  can  do  nothing."  No  influences  of  grace,  to  help  to  resist  temp- 
tations, can  the  unbeliever  have  ;  for  unbelief  blocks  up  the  way  of 
communication  between  heaven  and  earth,  Jer.  xvii.  5,  6 ;  Matth. 
xiii,  58.  The  unbeliever  may  pray,  but  God  regards  not  his  prayers, 
"  for  without  faith  it  is  impossible  to  please  hira." 

3.  In  a  state  of  separation  from  God ;  for  there  is  no  access  to 
God,  but  by  Jesus  Christ.  "  No  man  cometh  unto  the  Father  but 
by  him."  Faith  lays  hold  on  him  in  whom  the  Father  is  well 
pleased.  But  as  all  they  that  were  out  of  the  ark  perished  in  the 
waters ;  so  all  they  that  are  out  of  Christ  shall  perish  in  everlasting 
misery. 

4.  Under  the  guilt  of  all  its  other  sins.  If  a  man  believe,  he  will 
be  saved,  whatever  his  sins  have  been;  for  faith  transfers  the  guilt 
upon  Christ,  which  the  river  of  his  blood  washeth  away  :  but  if  uot, 
he  is  damned  :  for  unbelief  rivets  all  other  guilt. 


308  BELIEVERS  LABOURING,  &C. 

Use.  Take  heed,  then,  there  be  not  in  you  an  evil  heart  of  unbe- 
lief. Here  is  the  enemy  that  kills  its  ten  thousands ;  that  makes 
foolish  virgins  fall  down  to  hell  from  the  threshold  of  heaven.  It 
signifies  little  what  lusts  be  borne  down,  if  this  set  up  its  head  and 
prevail ;  if  there  be  any  hazard,  it  is  from  this  quarter ;  yet  how 
many  are  there  that  will  mourn  and  confess  other  sins,  but  this  that 
wounds  Ci.r^bl's  i.eart  most,  touches  their  hearts  least.  Seek  it  out 
then,  lest  if  it  be  with  you  undiscerned,  it  lock  you  out  of  heaven  at 
last. 

The  example  of  others  that  have  fallen  by  unbelief,  should  quicken 
us  to  all  diligence  about  our  salvation.  By  unbelief  the  Israelites 
fell  in  the  wilderness,  and  never  saw  the  promised  land.  By  uube- 
lief,  many  that  have  a  flourishing  profession  have  turned  apostates 
from  God  ;  see  these,  John  vi.  60,  G6.  The  Jews  fell  out  of  the 
visible  church  by  this,  Rom.  xi. ;  and  by  this,  hypocrites  in  all  ages 
have  fallen  short  of  heaven.  For  this  end  they  are  recorded,  that 
we  may  escape  the  rocks  on  which  others  have  split.  Our  hearts 
are  all  alike  by  nature  ;  "  as  in  water,  face  answereth  to  face ;  so  the 
heart  of  man  to  man."  We  may  stumble  on  the  stumbling  stone  on 
which  others  have  broken  to  pieces,  if  we  do  not  take  heed. 

See  then  what  use  we  are  to  make  of  the  sin  and  ruin  of  others. 

They  are  not  matters  of  sport  or  talk,  to  spend  the  time  ;  but 
fearful  examples  placed  before  us,  to  bid  us  always  beware.  Sure, 
as  a  fall  from  a  high  place  is  the  most  dangerous  ;  so  for  us  to  fall 
over  others  that  have  fallen,  and  whose  fall  should  make  us  take 
heed  to  our  feet,  will  make  us  fall  very  deep  into  the  bottomless 
pit.  The  first  unbelievers  may  say,  though  they  heard,  yet  they  saw 
not  the  danger ;  but  after  such  direful  examples,  we  cannot  but  say, 
as  we  have  heard,  so  have  we  seen.     Amen. 


MINISTERS  IN  THE  CHUECII,  &C.  309 

Preshyterial  Exercise,  May,  27,  1708. 
MINISTERS  IN  THE  CHURCH  APPOINTED  BY  CHRIST. 

SERMON  XXX. 

Ephesians  iv.  11,  12. 

And  he  gave  some,  apostles  ;  and  some,  prophets  ;  and  some  evangelists  ; 
and  some,  pastors  and  teachers  ;  for  the  perfecting  of  the  saints,  for 
the  work  of  the  ministry,  for  the  edifying  of  the  body  of  Christ. 

The  apostle  having  pressed  unity  amongst  cliurch  members,  even 
from  the  consideration  of  the  diversity  of  gifts  among  them,  seeing 
they  all  come  from  one  and  the  same  head  ;  namely,  from  Christ 
their  common  Lord  and  store-house  ;  and  having  confirmed  this  from 
Psal.  Ixviii.  18,  he  doth  in  the  text  instance  these  divers  gifts,  all  be- 
stowed by  that  one  blessed  head  for  the  very  same  ends.  "  And  he 
gave,"  &c.,  this  is  the  connection. 

But  lest  we  stumble  in  the  threshold,  there  is  one  difficulty  to  be 
removed,  before  we  enter  on  a  particular  explanation  of  the  words. 
This  is,  in  the  text  there  is  nothing  of  gifts,  but  only  of  offices  and 
office-bearers  instituted  by  Christ  in  his  church.  He  speaks  not  of 
gifts  necessary  for  the  apostleship,  but  of  apostles  ;  he  says  not  of  the 
gift  of  prophecy,  but  prophets.  To  this  it  is  answered,  that  saying 
the  latter,  he  snpposeth  the  former;  the  diversity  of  offices  including 
the  diversity  of  the  respective  gifts,  seeing  Christ  never  calls  any  to  an 
office,  but  he  always  endues  them  with  gifts  in  some  measure  suitable. 
He  thrust  out  no  labourers  to  his  vineyard,  without  instruments  for 
labour ;  nor  does  he  send  out  any  naked  and  unarmed,  to  pull  down 
the  kingdom  of  Satan.  Thus  the  anointing  in  use  of  old,  did  signify 
both  the  call  and  furniture  for  the  office. 

In  these  words  we  have  two  things  : — 

1.  A  remarkable  instance  of  our  exalted  Lord's  liberty  to  his 
church,  in  bestowing  divers  gifts  upon  her. 

2.  The  end  for  which  he  hath  given  these. 

As  to  the  first  of  these,  for  the  right  understanding  of  it,  four 
things  are  to  be  considered:  1.  The  gifts.  2.  The  giver.  3.  The 
act  of  donation.     4.  The  time  to  which  it  relates. 

As  to  the  gifts,  they  are  various,  and  this  variety  is  held  forth  two 
ways : 

1.  By  the  distributive  particle  some,  often  repeated ;  which  seems 
to  hold  fortli  two  things:   1.  A  distinction  betwixt  the  church  and 


310  MINISTERS  IN  TUE  CHURCH 

her  officers,  and  teachers,  against  the  confusion  introduced  by 
Socinians,  Anabaptists,  and  others,  who  impugn  the  necessity  of  a 
call  to  the  work  of  the  ministry,  and  transgress  the  sacred  bounda- 
ries set  by  the  Lord  of  the  vineyard  ;  who  gave  some,  not  all,  to  be 
apostles,  pastors,  and  teachers.  All  may  indeed  prophecy,  as  saith 
the  apostle,  1  Cor.  xiv.  31,  that  is,  all  who  have  the  gift  of  prophecy  ; 
but  as  the  apostle  says,  1  Cor.  xii.  29,  "  Are  all  apostles,  are  all 
prophets."  2.  A  distinction  among  the  offices  which  Christ  has 
instituted ;  he  made  not  all  church  officers  apostles ;  but  some 
apostles.  He  hath  given  the  several  office-bearers  in  his  house  their 
distinct  provinces  ;  some  to  be  employed  one  way,  some  another, 
though  all  for  the  good  of  the  church.  Even  as  in  the  building  of 
a  house,  divers  artificers  must  be  employed,  every  one  in  their  proper 
work ;  but  all  for  one  and  the  same  end,  to  make  a  convenient  habi- 
tation. Howbeit,  these  office-bearers  are  not  co-ordinate  but  sub- 
ordinate ;  and  the  superior  office  includes  the  inferior,  so  as  the 
apostle  could  do  what  the  prophet,  evangelist,  pastor,  or  teacher 
might  do ;  but  not  contrariwise.  We  acknowledge  a  beautiful  sub- 
ordination of  officers  and  courts,  in  church  government ;  but  amongst 
officers  of  the  same  kind,  there  is  by  divine  institution  a  parity. 

2.  This  variety  is  held  forth  by  a  distinct  enumeration  of  several 
orders  of  the  ministry  in  the  church.  We  must  particularly  inquire 
what  these  are : 

I.  As  for  apostles.  The  word  in  general  signifies  any  messenger 
sent  in  aflTairs,  whether  of  the  church  or  commonwealth,  John  xiii. 
16.  Thus  Epaphroditus,  is  in  Philip,  ii.  25,  called  the  apostle  of  the 
Philippians,  V'^*'  ^«  airoarToXov^  or  messenger  ;  as  being  sent  by  them 
to  Paul,  to  carry  their  benevolence  to  him ;  not  as  having  the  name 
and  office  of  an  apostle  derived  to  him,  as  some  fondly  imagine  ; 
which  absurd  conceit  the  antitheses  in  the  text  at  first  view  baffles. 
"  Yet  I  supposed,"  says  Paul,  "  it  necessary  to  send  to  you  Epa- 
phroditus, ray  brother  and  companion  in  labour,  and  fellow  soldier, 
but  your  messenger,  and  he  that  ministereth  to  my  wants."  Now 
this  resolved,  according  to  that  notion,  will  scarcely  make  good  sense. 
But  the  word  in  Scripture  is  usually  taken  in  a  more  restrained 
sense ;  and  denotes  those  extraordinary  officers  whom  Christ  set  in 
his  church,  as  master  builders,  who  are  commonly  reckoned  twelve  ; 
Matthias  being  added  to  the  eleven,  in  room  of  Judas,  and  after- 
wards Paul  was  added.  These  were  a  kind  of  office-bearers  in  the 
church  whose  commission  was  universal  and  unconfiued ;  whose 
great  work  was  to  plant  and  found  churches  through  the  world, 
Matth.  xxviii.  19  ;  being  endued  with  an  infallibility  in  teaching, 
according  to  John  xvi.  13.     They  had  power  to  work  miracles,  and 


APPOINTED  BY  CHRIST.  311 

to  confer  the  visible  gifts  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  by  imposition  of  their 
luinds,  and  were  eye  witnesses  of  Christ.  Hence  Paul  proving  his 
apostleship,  urgeth  this,  1  Cor.  ix.  1 ;  and  pleads  it  for  himself  with 
the  rest,  1  Cor.  xv.  7,  8.  That  they  were  immediately  called,  i? 
generally  the  opinion  of  orthodox  divines,  from  which  we  see  no 
reason  to  depart,  seeing  the  evangelists  witness  this  of  all  of  thera 
but  Matthias  and  Paul.  As  for  Paul's  immediate  call,  it  is  no  less 
clear  from  Acts  xxvi.  16 ;  Gal.  i.  1. 

A  late  prelatical  writer  asserts  that  Matthias  was  not  immediately 
called,  but  by  the  apostles.  But  it  is  plain  from  the  history  of 
Matthias'  call,  recorded  Acts  i,  that  he  was  by  God's  immedi- 
ate choice  and  declaration  by  a  lot,  set  apart  for  his  office  ; 
and  though  the  apostles  presented  the  two  to  the  Lord,  yet  he  made 
the  choice,  and  gave  the  call  by  that  lot,  after  prayer  made  to  him 
for  that  effect.  A  late  writer  of  our  own,  to  whose  labours  our 
church  oweth  very  much,  doth  in  this  point  go  something  out  of  the 
ordinary  road,  asserting  it  to  be  most  evident  that  God  called  Mat- 
thias mediately,  partly  by  the  suffrages  of  the  people,  partly  by 
their  lots ;  yet  withal,  he  grants  that  Matthias'  call  was  extraordi- 
nary in  that  God  directed  the  lots  by  an  extraordinary  providence, 
as  in  the  case  of  Achan.  For  ought  I  know,  the  discovery  of  Achan 
has  hitherto  been  looked  upon  as  immediately  from  God,  and  the 
text  seems  to  sound  it  so,  Josh.  vii.  14.  And  if  Paul's  call  was  im- 
mediate, being  by  a  voice  from  heaven,  so  was  Matthias'  call ;  God 
discovering  his  mind  in  this  case  by  the  lot,  as  much  as  by  a  voice 
in  the  other.  "  Wherefore,"  the  apostles  in  their  prayer  before  the 
lots  say,  Acts  i.  24,  "  Shew  whether  of  these  two  thou  hast  chosen." 
The  call  and  choice  then  was  the  Lord's,  by  himself,  not  by  the  peo- 
ple ;  and  the  lot  was  an  infallible  discovery  of  his  mind,  as  it  was 
in  that  case  used.  For  although  God  doth  not  guide  elections  per- 
formed by  lots  so  as  they  shall  always  fall  right,  when  the  choice  is 
referred  to  a  lot,  without  a  call  from  the  Lord  to  make  use  of  the 
lot,  as  in  the  case  of  choosing  magistrates  by  lot,  which  became  un- 
necessary is  therefore  unlawful ;  yet  the  apostles  having  been  called 
to  the  use  of  lots  in  this  case,  and  having  a  promise  of  the  discovery 
of  God's  mind  in  this  case  thereby,  this  being  necessarily  pre-snp- 
posed  to  their  prayer  in  faith,  it  plainly  follows  this  lot  could  not 
but  fall  right,  and  consequently  that  the  call  thereby  was  God's  im- 
mediate call,  as  much  as  if  it  had  been  by  a  voice  from  heaven. 

After  all,  that  the  people  there,  being  only  one  hundred  and 
twenty,  should  have  a  power  to  call  a  man  to  be  an  immediate  offi- 
cer of  the  universal  church,  by  an  approved  deed,  as  the  apostles 
were,  seems  to  be  a  principle  that  can  hardly  be  defended ;  unless, 


312  MTNISTEKS  IN  THE  Ciri'UCH 

with  n  crrtain  set  of  men,  it  be  maintained  tliat  tlie  number  of  tlie 
brethren  then  was  no  more  than  an  hundred  and  twenty,  which. with 
little  difficulty  might  be  disproved. 

II.  There  are  prophets.  The  word  signifies  one  that  foretells 
things  to  come.  The  New  Testament  prophets  spoken  of  in  the  text, 
were  those  who  were  endued  with  singular  wisdom  and  knowledge 
of  divine  things,  not  by  human  industry,  but  by  inspiration  of  the 
Holy  Spirit.  They  did  by  immediate  inspiration  interpret  the 
Sciptures,  open  up  the  Old  Testament  prophecies,  confirming  and 
proving  the  doctrines  of  the  gospel  by  these.  Hence  revelation  is 
made  the  matter  of  prophecy,  1  Cor.  xiv.  6.  God  did  also  by  his 
Spirit  reveal  to  them  things  to  come,  which  they  foretold  for  the 
confirming  the  faith  of  the  people  of  God,  and  rendering  the  wicked 
inexcusable,  Acts  xi.  27,  28;  and  xxi.  10.  The  nature  of  their  of- 
fice shews  their  call  to  have  been  immediate.  The  church  of  the 
Jews  had  prophets  raised  up  to  them  for  a  long  time,  but  prophecy 
ceased  with  them  when  Malachi  died  ;  and  their  church  having  been 
thereby  planted,  nourished,  and  maintained,  its  failing  was  a  token 
their  church  was  about  to  expire.  They  themselves  acknowledge 
that  the  gift  of  prophecy  was  not  bestowed  under  the  second  temple, 
on  any  after  the  days  of  Malachi,  so  they  reckon  it  among  the  five 
things  wanting  in  the  second  house ;  but  they  expected  the  resto- 
ration of  it  under  the  Messiah,  and  that  warrantably,  as  Joel  ii.  28, 
29.  Wherefore  the  seiting  up  of  prophets  under  the  New  Testa- 
ment is  a  conclusive  argument  against  them,  that  the  Messias  is 
come.  Unless  they  admit  of  the  New  Testament  prophets,  prophecy 
has  left  them  about  double  the  time  that  their  church,  as  constituted 
by  Moses,  had  it ;  which  nothing  but  judicial  blindness  can  make 
Haggai's  little  while,  chap.  ii.  6,  7- 

III.  There  are  evangelists.  Not  those  who  wrote  the  gospel,  for 
two  of  these  were  apostles,  namely,  Matthew  and  John  ;  but  a  kind 
of  preachers  of  the  gospel,  who  were  companions  of  the  apostles  in 
their  travels,  assisting  them  in  the  work  of  the  gospel ;  being  sent 
out  by  them  to  settle  and  water  such  churches  as  the  apostles  had 
planted,  1  Cor.  iii.  6  ;  1  Tim.  i.  3.  They  were  not  fixed  pastors  of 
any  particular  church,  but  remained  in  these  places  whither  the  apos- 
tles sent  them,  till  they  were  by  them  recalled,  2  Tim.  iv.  9.  Such 
were  Tychicus,  Sylvanus,  and  others,  and  particularly  Timothy  and 
Titus,  whom  prelatists  will  needs  have  to  be  bishops,  the  one  at 
Ephesus,  the  other  at  Crete,  though  Timothy  is  expressly  called  an 
evangelist,  2  Tim.  iv.  5.  Besides  the  occasional  transient  employ- 
ment of  Timothy  at  Ephesus,  and  of  Titus  in  Crete,  is  sufficiently 
intimated    by   the    apostle,    while   he   tells   us,   that   he    besought 


APPOINTED  BY  CHPvI-T.  313 

Timothy  to  abide  at  Ephesiis,  and  t1iat  he  left  Titus,  both  of  them 
upon  a  special  business,  1  Tim.  i.  3  ;  Tit.  i.  5 ;  and  they  are  both 
recalled  in  the  very  epistles  sent  to  them.  That  they  are  called 
bishops  in  the  postscripts  of  the  epistles  sent  to  them  is  no  argu- 
ment ;  these  postscripts  being  neither  canonical  nor  true.  They 
were  not  subjoined  to  the  epistles,  till  some  hundreds  of  years  after 
they  were  written.  In  the  postscript  of  the  first  epistle  to  Timothy, 
Phrygia  is  called  Pacatian,  which  was  not  the  name  of  it,  till  it  was 
conquered  by  Pacatius,  a  Roman  general,  three  hundred  years 
after  Christ.  The  postscript  of  that  to  Titus  says  it  was  written  to 
Nicopolis,  which  agrees  not  with  Titus,  iii.  2. 

IV.  There  are  pastors,  feeders  of  the  flock  of  God,  and  the  word 
denotes  both  preaching  and  ruling.  Their  office  is  to  pray  with,  and 
for  the  flock  ;  to  read  the  Scriptures  publicly  ;  to  catechise,  bless 
the  people,  and  rule  them  ;  all  which,  and  more  belonging  to  their 
office,  is  asserted  by  the  "Westminster  Assembly,  in  the  propositions 
concerning  church  government.  These  are  our  ministers  of  congre- 
gations. 

Lastly,  There  are  teachers  or  doctors,  whose  work  it  is  to  teach 
the  doctrines  of  religion,  and  confute  the  contrary  errors.  Though 
the  particle  some  is  not  here  added  betwixt  the  pastors  and  teachers, 
yet  they  are  distinct  church  officers.  The  pastor  being  gifted  with 
a  word  of  wisdom,  by  which,  besides  his  ability  in  some  measure  to 
open  the  Scripture,  he  is  fitted  wisely  and  powerfully  to  apply  the 
word  for  working  on  people's  afl^ections,  and  for  advancing  practical 
godliness.  The  teacher  being  gifted  with  a  word  of  knowledge  for 
opening  up  the  Scripture,  establishing  truth,  and  confuting  error. 
This  diff'erence  the  apostle  holdeth  forth,  1  Cor.  xii.  8  ;  Rom.  xii. 
7,  8,  where  the  diff'erence  of  their  functions  is  clearly  intimated  by 
the  difi^erent  concerns  which  they  are  to  wait  upon. 

The  apostle  doth  not  here  enumerate  all  the  office-bearers  in  the 
church.  We  will  find  others  reckoned  up  by  him  elsewhere,  and 
therefore  silence  here  as  to  ruling  elders  and  deacons  is  no  argn- 
raent  against  their  offices;  the  scope  of  the  apostle  here  being  only 
to  enumerate  preaching  oflicers,  whose  various  gifts  are  most  con- 
spicuous in  the  edifying  of  the  church  ;  who  are  appointed  for  the 
work  of  the  ministry,  to  bring  us  to  unity  of  the  faith,  and  of  the 
knowledge  of  the  Son  of  God,  verses  12 — 14. 

But  no  satisfactory  reason  can  be  given  for  omitting  pope  or  pre- 
late here,  had  they  been  any  of  Christ's  creatures  in  his  church. 
When  they  shall  shew  the  signs  of  their  apostleship,  then,  and  not 
till  then,  may  we  allow  them  to  be  the  successors  of  the  apostles,  in 
another  sense  than  ordinary  ministers. 


314  MIKISTEBS  IN  THE  CHURCH 

The  apostles,  prophets,  and  evangelists,  were  extraordinary  offi- 
cers, and  their  offices  ceased  with  themselves,  having  been  appointed 
for  that  particular  state  of  the  church.  Now  the  house  is  built  up 
and  finished;  and  pastors  and  teachers,  and  other  ordinary  officers, 
are  sufficient  to  hold  it  up,  though  they  were  not  so  for  erecting  it. 

II.  The  giver  is  Christ.  The  apostle  elsewhere  ascribes  the  giv- 
ing of  gifts  to  the  Spirit,  1  Cor.  xii.  11 ;  and  the  giving  of  these  offices 
he  ascribes  to  the  Father ;  but  this  being  an  external  work  of  God, 
is  common  to  all  the  three  persons.  The  Father  is  the  fountain  of 
all  gifts,  the  Son  the  distributor  of  them  by  the  Holy  Spirit. 

III.  The  act  of  donation,  he  gave.  It  denotes  the  excellency  and 
usefulness  of  these  offices,  which  Christ  has  given  to  supply  the 
want  of  his  bodily  presence.  And  withal,  his  sending  out  these 
officers,  as  well  ordinary  as  extraordinary,  for  both  are  said  to  be 
given  by  him. 

IV.  The  time  to  which  this  relates ;  "  when  Christ  had  ascended 
up  on  high."  Objection.  Christ  gave  the  apostles  their  commission 
before  he  ascended.  Answer.  Till  Christ  ascended,  they  had  not 
the  fulness  of  apostolical  gifts  necessary  for  the  discharge  of  their 
office  in  its  full  extent.  Therefore  Jesus,  being  assembled  together 
with  them  after  his  resurrection,  commanded  them  that  they  should 
not  depart  from  Jerusalem,  but  wait  for  the  promise  of  the  Father, 
which,  saith  he,  ye  have  heard  of  me.  Consequently,  after  Christ's 
ascension,  they  were  solemnly  inaugurated  and  installed  in  their 
office,  by  the  visible  outpouring  of  the  Spirit  upon  them.  "  And 
there  appeared  unto  them  cloven  tongues,  like  as  of  fire,  and  it  sat 
upon  each  of  them."  They  had  their  commission  before  this ;  but 
the  actual  sending  of  them  through  the  world  was  not  till  this 
time.     We  are  now, 

II.  To  attend  to  the  end  or  design  of  this  gift,  which  is  threefold  : 

1.  In  respect  of  the  saints,  these  who  are  in  Christ  already,  the 

ministry  is  to  perfect  them,  t^poq  tov  KaTapTiajxov.     The  word  signifies 

the  restoring  and  setting  dislocated  members  again  m  their  proper 

place ;  it  is  borrowed  from  surgeons,  with  whom  KarapTifffiog  is  iJ-sra- 

yioyri  tmv  otrrtwv  fK  tov  vpoc  (pvtiv  tottov,  tig  tov  kutg  ^vffiv.     The    reducing 

of  bones  from  a  preternatural,  to  their  natural  place  and  situation. 
It  signifies  also,  the  perfecting  and  establishing  them  in  the  restored 
state.  So  the  Corinthians,  who  by  their  factions  and  divisions 
were  rent  asunder,  and  as  a  disjointed  body,  are  exhorted  to  be 
KaTupTiffusvoi,  perfectly  joined  together,  as  a  joint  well  knit,  1  Cor.  i. 
10.  The  saints  being,  by  reason  of  remaining  corruption,  so  ready 
to  turn  aside  both  from  Christ  the  head,  and  from  their  brethren 
fellow-members.     God  gave  ministers  to  be  spiritual  surgeons  to  set 


APPOINTED  BY  CHRIST.  315 

them  right  again,  and  to  fix  them  in  nearer  union  to  Christ  by  faith, 
and  to  their  brethren  in  love. 

2.  In  regard  of  themselves,  for  the  work  of  the  ministry.  It 
is  for  work  that  they  are  appointed.  This  work  for  the  kind  of 
it  is  diuKovia,  a  ministry  or  service.  Tlie  first  excluding  idleness,  the 
second  excluding  a  lordly  dominion.  The  word  comes  from  Kovia  dust, 
and  denotes  a  painful  and  laborious  service,  in  which  men  are  ser- 
viceable, as  those  that  make  haste  in  travel,  raising  the  dust  about 
them  by  their  speed.  So  that  they  are  neither  to  be  loiterers,  nor 
lords  over  God's  heritage  ;  but  to  serve  them  in  the  concerns  of 
their  souls,  by  the  dispensing  of  the  word  publicly  and  privately, 
by  dispensing  the  sacraments,  and  the  censures  of  the  church. 

3.  In  respect  of  the  body  of  Christ ;  it  is  to  edify  it,  namely,  the 
mystical  body  of  Christ.  There  is  a  double  metaphor  here ;  one 
taken  from  the  natural  body  to  which  the  church  is  compared,  in 
respect  of  its  union  with  Christ  the  head  by  faith,  and  that  union 
that  is  among  the  saints  by  love  ;  and  the  vital  influences  received 
from  Christ  by  the  church.  The  other  metaphor  is  taken  from 
masons,  whose  work  it  is  to  build  a  house.  Thus  they  are  to  build 
the  body  of  Christ;  and  so  they  do,  when  they  are  instruments  in 
Christ's  hand  to  lay  new  stones  in  the  building ;  that  is,  to  convert 
the  elect,  and  to  fix  and  raise  up  others  that  are  already  laid ; 
being  instruments  of  the  growth  of  converts  in  knowledge,  faith, 
and  holiness. 

The  Holy  Ghost  casts  in  that  of  the  work  of  the  ministry  betwixt 
the  other  two  ends.  The  two  great  ends  not  being  to  be  obtained 
by  naked  gifts,  or  the  honour  of  the  office,  but  by  a  painful  and 
laborious  discharge  of  the  trust  committed  to  them. 

The  sum  of  all  is,  Christ  Jesus  having  ascended  up  on  high,  gave 
various  gifts  to  the  church,  in  that  he  gave  various  officers  to  it 
suitably  qualified;  he  gave  some,  not  all,  to  be  extraordinary, 
namely,  apostles,  prophets,  and  evangelists ;  some  to  be  ordinary 
officers,  pastors,  and  teachers ;  and  whatever  diftereuces  be  among.st 
them,  they  were  all  given  for  one  common  end,  to  labour  in  dispens- 
ing gospel  ordinances,  for  restoring  and  perfecting  saints,  who  are 
so  often  out  of  frame,  and  for  gathering  in  the  elect,  and  increase 
of  grace  in  those  that  are  converted. 


Vol.  IV. 


3lt)  MINISTERS  TO  CONTINUE 

Preshyterial  Exercise  Addition,  June  24,  1708. 
MINISTERS  TO  CONTINUE  TILL   THE  CHURCH  BE  PERFECT. 

SERMON  XXI. 

Ephesians  iv.  13, 

Till  tue  all  come  in  the  imity  of  the  faith,  and  of  the  knoiuledge  of  the 
Son  of  God,  unto  a  perfect  tnan,  unto  the  measure  of  the  stature  of 
the  fulness  of  Christ. 

DocTKiNE  I.  That  the  office  and  work  of  the  ministry  is  to  continue 
till  all  the  elect  of  God  be  fully  perfected,  and  the  church  arrive  at 
its  full  growth.     This  is  the  principal  doctrine  of  the  text.     We 
shall  first  confirm  this  doctrine,  and  then  give  the  reasons  of  it. 
I.  To  confirm  the  truth  of  this,  consider, 

1.  That  Christ's  presence  is  promised  to  the  ministry  always, 
even  to  the  end  of  the  world,  Matth.  xxviii.  20 ;  now  this  supposeth 
the  existence  of  the  ministry  till  then.  Ministers  are  the  stars 
which  Christ  holdeth  in  his  right  hand,  that  will  always  shine  more 
or  less  while  the  stars  are  in  the  firmament;  and  wicked  men  may 
as  well  attempt  the  divesting  of  the  heavens  of  these  glorious  lights, 
as  the  church  of  Christ  of  a  ministry,  for  they  shall  never  be  able  to 
effect  the  one  any  more  than  the  other.  Even  when  the  church  is 
into  the  wilderness,  some  are  commanded  to  feed  her  there. 

2.  The  sacraments  are  to  continue  till  then,  snd  consequently  a 
ministry  by  which  they  may  be  dispensed.  As  to  baptism,  it  is 
plain  from  that,  Matth.  xxviii.  20.  Though  the  blasphemous  So- 
cinians  account  it  only  a  temporary  right,  used  by  the  apostles 
towards  those,  whether  Jews  or  Gentiles,  of  whom  the  gospel  church 
was  first  made  up.  But  there  is  a  command  universal  in  respect  of 
persons  to  be  baptized;  in  respect  of  places,  and  in  respect  of  times, 
to  the  end  of  the  world.  As  circumcision  lasted  in  the  church  till 
Christ's  first  coming,  so  must  baptism  till  he  come  again.  And  as 
for  the  sacrament  of  the  supper,  it  must  continue  till  the  Lord  come 
again.    For  by  it  we  do  shew  the  Lord's  death  till  he  come. 

3.  The  Scripture  holds  forth  public  ordinances,  in  which  the 
Lord  keeps  communion  with  his  jjeople,  never  to  be  laid  aside  till 
they  come  to  glory.  It  is  one  of  the  singularities  of  the  upper 
house,  that  there  is  no  temple  there.  Rev.  xxi.  22.  Here  they  look 
through  the  lattices  of  ordinances,  till  they  come  to  see  face  to  face 
in  heaven.     It  is  when  the  day  of  glory  breaks,  that  these  shadows 


TILL  THE  CHURCH  BE  PERFECT.  317 

will  flee  away ;  but  till  that  time,  Christ  has  promised  to  be  iu  tlio 
mountain  of  myrrh — the  public  ordinances;  so  called  iu  allusion  to 
the  temple,  which  was  on  a  mountain. 

II.  lleasons  of  the  doctrine.     It  must  continue. 

1.  Because  the  ministry  is  a  mean  of  tlie  salvation  of  the  elect. 
"  It  hath  pleased  God  by  the  foolishness  of  preaching,  to  save  them 
that  believe."  They  are  these  by  whom  the  Lord  gathers  his  elect ; 
the  means  must  continue  till  the  end  be  obtained,  Rom.  x.  14,  15. 
While  there  is  a  lost  sinuer  to  seek,  the  Lord  will  not  blow  out  tlie 
candle ;  and  while  the  night  remains,  and  till  the  sun  arise,  these 
less  lights  are  necessary  to  be  continued  in  the  church. 

2.  The  ministry  is  appointed  of  Christ,  in  some  measure  to  supply 
the  want  of  his  bodily  pr«.sence  in  the  world.  He  spoke  iu  the 
prophets  before  he  came,  as  the  word  is,  Heb.  i.  1 ;  yea  to  the 
old  world,  by  his  Spirit  in  Noah  a  preacher  of  righteousness,  he 
preaclied.  Now  when  he  is  ascended  up  on  high,  he  hath  given  a 
ministry;  and  now  God  doth  beseech  sinners  by  them;  and  iu 
Christ's  stead,  we  pray  sinners  to  be  reconciled  to  God.  They  must 
then  continue  till  the  Lord  come  again. 

3.  Because  their  work  which  they  have  to  do,  will  continue  till 
then.  They  are  ambassadors  for  Christ,  and  while  he  has  a  peace 
to  negociate  with  sinners,  he  will  still  employ  his  ambassadors. 
While  Christ  keeps  house  in  the  lower  world,  stewards  must  be 
maintained  to  give  his  servants  meat  in  due  season.  While  weeds 
grow  in  the  vineyard,  the  labourers  must  be  continued ;  and  till  the 
house  be  fully  built,  and  every  stone  laid  in  the  building,  it  is  not 
time  to  dismiss  the  builders. 

4.  What  society  cau  be  preserved  without  government  and  gover- 
nors. Every  society  hath  its  governors,  and  so  the  church  must 
have  hers  also.  While  corruption  remains  in  church  members,  there 
will  be  out-breakings  among  them.  That  company  that  is  terrible 
as  an  army  with  banners,  how  mean  would  it  be  if  there  were  not  a 
set  of  men  appointed  by  the  Lord  to  order  and  govern  them  ;  they 
would  soon  turn  into  a  mass  of  confusion.  In  the  best  constituted 
church  how  often  is  the  beauty  of  it  marred ;  how  often  does  the 
enemy  break  in,  though  the  watchmen  keep  their  posts,  and  stand  to 
give  warning  to  the  city  ;  how  much  more,  if  there  were  uo  watchmen 
at  all.  These  then  must  be  continued,  till  they  all  be  within  the 
gates  of  that  city,  where  the  gates  are  never  shut,  because  uo  enemy 
can  make  an  attempt  to  break  in,  and  these  that  are  within  have  no 
inclination  to  go  out. 

Use  1.  Of  information.  It  lets  us  sec  tliat  the  church  shall  never 
fail  altogether.     The  continuance   of  the   mini&u}  aigues  the  cen- 

X  2 


318  MINISTERS  TO  CONTINUE 

tinuance  of  the  church.  When  the  Lord  has  done  his  work,  he  will 
doubtless  call  in  his  servants,  and  will  not  have  watchmen  where 
there  is  no  city  to  watch.  The  church  and  her  ministry  also,  may 
be  driven  into  the  wilderness,  and  they  may  both  be  reduced  to  a 
very  small  number,  but  neither  of  them  shall  altogether  fail.  There 
may  be  seven  thousand  in  Israel,  when  Elias  thinks  he  is  left  alone ; 
and  the  witnesses  of  the  truth  may  be  seen  so  far  gone  as  if  they 
were  dead,  and  yet  there  are  still  some  in  the  darkest  time,  who 
afterwards  appear  as  if  they  had  risen  from  the  dead. 

Again,  this  shews  that  Christ  hath  a  special  care  of,  and  provi- 
dence watching  over  the  ministry.  Ministers  are  the  great  butt  of 
the  world's  malice,  the  thorns  in  their  eyes  of  which  they  would  fain 
be  freed  ;  and  readily,  when  a  storm  ariseth,  it  blows  most  violently 
on  their  faces.  Papists  cry  for  miracles;  if  they  were  not  blinded, 
they  might  see  it  in  the  continual  preservation  of  these  earthen 
vessels,  for  all  the  opposition  they  meet  with  in  the  world.  But 
Christ  holds  the  stars  in  his  right  hand. 

We  see  also  the  dignity  of  the  office.  The  greatest  officers  in 
earthly  kingdoms,  yea  kings  themselves,  hold  not  their  offices  by  such 
a  tenor.  Their  work  is  to  carry  on  God's  work  in  the  church  till 
the  church  be  perfected,  a  noble  work,  and  a  long  term  indeed  for 
the  continuance  of  their  office  ;  which  is  never  to  cease  till  Grod  be 
all  in  all,  and  all  the  elect  be  in  heaven. 

Wo  then  to  those  that  are  above  teaching,  and  despise  the  ministry 
as  that  which  they  might  well  want.  Has  Christ  set  a  ministry  in 
the  church  as  an  useless  burden  upon  the  people.  It  speaks  a  pro- 
fane spirit,  and  a  growth  indeed,  but  not  towards  that  in  the  text ; 
a  growth  in  wickedness  and  self-conceit.  Let  us  therefore  prize 
the  preaching  of  the  word. 

Doctrine  II.  The  diversity  of  gifts  bestowed  on  ministers  hath  a 
tendency  to,  and  is  designed  for  advancing  of  unity  among  God's 
elect  people,  for  unity  is  the  centre  of  all  these  divers  gifts.  These 
are  as  the  strings  of  a  viol,  some  sounding  higher,  others  lower;  yet 
altogether  making  a  pleasing  harmony.  "  Thy  watchmen  shall  lift 
up  the  voice ;  with  the  voice  together  shall  they  sing :  for  they  shall 
see  eye  to  eye,  when  the  Lord  shall  bring  again  Zion."  There  are 
many  things  necessary  to  make  a  compact  building,  such  as  the 
church  is.  Some  must  procure  the  stones,  some  lay  them;  some 
smooth  and  join  the  wood,  and  altogether  make  a  compact  uniform 
house.  Round  about  the  throne  are  the  four  beasts ;  some  eminent 
for  lion-like  boldness ;  some  for  the  patience  and  laboriousness  of  the 
ox ;    some    for   prudence,    and   some  for  quick-sightedness   in  the 


TILL  THE  CHURCH  BE  PERFECT.  319 

mysteries  of  godliness.  The  church  can  want  none  of  them.  "The 
eye  cannot  say  to  the  foot  I  have  no  need  of  thee."  Some  brought 
blue,  purple,  scarlet,  goat's  hair,  to  the  tabernacle.  Some  of  these 
things  were  more  necessary  than  others,  but  none  of  them  could 
be  wanted.  All  our  Lord's  gifts  to  his  servants,  tend  to  unite  his 
servants  with  Grod,  and  among  themselves,  by  faith  and  love. 

Use.  1.  For  information.  This  lets  us  see  what  a  desirable  thing 
unity  in  the  Lord  is.  It  is  that  which  is  the  great  end  of  all  these 
divers  gifts  that  Christ  has  bestowed.  It  is  comely  in  the  eyes  of 
the  Lord,  and  so  should  it  be  in  ours.  By  Adam's  fall  his  whole 
posterity  were  broken  and  shattered,  rent  from  God  and  from  one 
another.  To  cure  this,  God  has  appointed  Christ  a  new  head,  under 
whom  they  might  all  meet  again  in  unity  ;  and  Christ  has  appointed 
ministers  adorned  with  a  diversity  of  gifts,  in  order  to  accomplish 
this. 

2.  It  may  also  let  us  see  what  is  that  government  of  the  church 
that  looks  most  like  divine  institution  ;  whether  prelacy  that  gives 
the  keys  unto  one,  or  presbytery  that  gives  them  to  the  unity  of 
ruling  church  officers.  Which  of  them  is  most  adapted  to  the  end 
of  the  ministry  ;  whether  one  gift,  or  diversity  of  gifts.  The  text 
determines  the  question,  and  consequently  determines  that  several 
presbyteries  diversely  gifted,  are  the  subjects  of  church  power,  and 
not  a  single  prelate.  Prelacy  looks  nothing  like  Christ's  economy, 
and  his  way  of  managing  his  house ;  therefore  prelacy  brought  in 
for  the  remedy  of  schism,  was  a  step  very  far  out  of  Christ's  way. 
And  this  church  was  for  many  years  preserved  from  heresy  and 
schism  also,  by  means  of  presbyterian  government ;  and  though  of  late 
our  schisms  have  increased,  it  remains  still,  that  it  is  the  government 
most  adapted  to  unity,  according  to  the  Scriptures. 

Use  2.  Of  reproof.  It  reproves  those  people  who  make  the  divers 
gifts  of  ministers  occasions  of  schism  and  faction.  "  One  saying  I 
am  of  Paul,  and  another,  I  am  of  Apollos."  It  is  a  great  weakness 
that  people  cannot  value  one  gift,  but  they  must  undervalue  another. 
Many  cannot  build  up  one  in  their  esteem,  but  they  must  needs  have 
the  ruins  of  others  for  a  foundation  for  it.  How  contradictory  are 
their  desires,  to  what  Christ  would  have  in  the  church.  Christ 
would  have  diverse  gifts,  and  they  would  have  but  one,  and  that  all 
might  be  just  of  a  piece  with  what  they  fancy.  These  that  say  they 
can  get  no  good  of  such  and  such  a  gift,  had  need  to  take  heed, 
that  when  they  get  good,  it  be  not  rather  a  tickling  of  their  fancy, 
than  solid  edification. 

But  much  more  are  these  ministers  to  be  reproved,  who  improve 
their  gifts  to  the  rending  of  the  church,  and  breeding  in  people  a 


320  MINISTERS  TO  CONTIN'UE 

c'>nteTnpt  of  others.  "  Some,  indeed,  preach  Christ,  even  of  etivy 
sind  strife:  and  some  also  of  good  will.  The  one  preach  Christ  of 
contention,  not  sincerely,  supposing  to  add  affliction  to  my  bonds." 
This  is  a  dreadful  perverting  of  the  end  of  these  gifts,  and  says 
that  such  are  devoted  more  to  their  own  honour  than  to  the  good  of 
Fonls. 

Doctrine  III.  Whatever  differences  are  now  among  the  godly, 
yet  a  perfect  unity  is  abiding  them,  in  which  they  shall  all  have 
the  same  apprehensions  and  views  of  spiritual  things.  To  confirm 
this,  consider, 

1.  The  perfect  unity  of  the  elect  of  Grod,  is  that  which  is  pur- 
chased by  the  blood  of  Christ,  and  therefore  must  needs  take  elfect. 
He  died,  "  that  he  might  gather  together  in  one,  the  children  of 
God  that  were  scattered  abroad."  Sin  has  built  up  a  partition  wall 
betwixt  God  and  the  elect,  as  well  as  others,  and  a  partition  divid- 
ing them  among  themselves.  The  sufferings  of  Christ,  hath  meri- 
toriously thrown  it  down  ;  upon  which  it  must  needs  t'oUow,  that  it 
will  be  actually  thrown  down  by  the  Spirit  of  Christ  beginning  the 
work  here,  and  afterwards  perfecting  it. 

2.  This  unity  is  prayed  for,  by  the  great  Mediator,  whom  the 
Father  heareth  always,  and  whose  intercession  must  needs  be  effect- 
ual, John  xvii.  21 — 23.  He  came  into  the  world,  to  make  up  that 
rent  which  sin  had  made  ;  and  he  is  now  at  the  Father's  right  hand 
pursuing  the  same  design,  never  to  leave  it  till  it  be  perfected. 

3.  The  same  Spirit  dwells  in  the  head  and  in  all  the  members, 
though  not  in  the  same  measure  ;  the  same  ointment  poured  on  the 
high  priest's  own  head,  runs  down  to  the  skirts  of  his  garments,  and 
anoints  all  the  members  of  Christ.  Hence  the  apostle  presseth  unity 
from  the  fellowship  of  the  Spirit,  they  being  joint  partakers  of  the 
one  Spirit  of  God,  Phil.  ii.  1,  2.  This  Spirit  hath  begun  that  union, 
and  is  still  at  the  uniting  work  ;  and  it  consists  not  with  the  honour 
of  God,  not  to  perfect  that  which  he  hath  begun.  For  which  cause 
the  church  may  confidently  say  as  David,  "  The  Lord  will  perfect 
tiiat  which  coucerneth  me  :  thy  mercy,  0  Lord,  endureth  for  ever  : 
forsake  not  the  works  of  thine  own  hands." 

4.  The  occasion  of  the  disordant  judgments  that  are  among  the 
people  of  God,  wiH  at  length  be  taken  away.  There  is  great  dark- 
ness now,  iu  those  that  have  the  greatest  share  of  light  and  know- 
ledge. The  time  we  are  in  this  world,  is  a  night  in  comparison  of 
the  day  of  eternity  that  is  approaching.  No  wonder  we  have  every 
one  our  own  mistakes  ;  but  where  we  are  going,  there  is  no  night 
there.     Now  the  most  knowing,  know  but  in  part ;  but  that  which 


TILL  THE  CHURCH  BE  PERFECT.  321 

is  perfect  will  come,  and  tlien  that  which  is  in  part  will  be  done 
away.  Now  we  are  but  children,  and  therefore  want  not  our  child- 
ish conceptions  of  heavenly  things ;  but  when  we  come  to  a  perfect 
man,  these  childish  things  will  be  put  away.  Now  we  see  but 
through  a  glass  darkly,  but  then  face  to  face.  Now  we  know  but  in 
part,  but  then  shall  know  as  we  are  known,  most  clearly  and  dis- 
tinctly, as  it  is  said,  1  Cor.  xiii.  9 — 12.  So  truth  being  but  one,  our 
conceptions  of  it  will  be  the  same,  when  we  shall  be  perfectly  cast 
into  the  mould  of  truth. 

Use  1.  This  lets  us  see  that  the  people  of  God  will  at  length  ar- 
rive at  unity  of  affections,  lay  aside  all  their  jarrings,  animosities, 
factions  and  divisions,  and  cordially  embrace  each  other  in  the  arms 
of  perfect  love.  For  the  fountain  being  stopped,  the  streams  must 
needs  become  dry ;  difference  of  judgment  being  that  which  occa- 
sions such  discord  and  alienation  of  affections.  This  may  comfort 
the  godly,  oppressed  now  with  grief,  because  of  these  differences 
that  are  among^the  Lord's  people. 

2.  It  may  let  us  see  the  odious  nature  of  divisions  and  discords 
among  professors.  These  tell  us  we  are  yet  abroad,  not  at  home. 
They  look  like  the  earth,  and  very  unlike  heaven.  "  Therefore," 
says  Paul,  "  while  one  saith  I  am  of  Paul,  and  another  I  am  of 
Apollos,  are  ye  not  carnal."  When  we  are  better  Christians,  we 
will  be  more  peaceable,  and  leave  off  to  devour  one  another  were  we 
once  in  the  ark  above. 

Use  2.  Of  exhortation.     This  serves  to  urge  us  to  several  duties. 

1.  To  labour  for  unity,  and  "to  keep  the  unity  of  the  Spirit  in 
the  bond  of  peace."  "  It  is  a  pleasant  thing  for  brethren  to  dwell 
iu  unity.  It  makes  the  church  strong  and  terrible  to  enemies; 
whereas  divisions  do  exceedingly  weaken  her,  and  make  her  a  prey 
to  the  enemy.  Blessed  be  the  Lord  for  that  unity  which  is  yet 
among  the  ministers  of  this  church  ;  and  long  may  it  last,  for  be  it 
broken  when  it  will,  the  success  of  the  gospel  which  is  little  now, 
will  be  less  then.  Men  will  be  readily  converted  to  a  party,  but 
few  will  be  converted  to  Christ. 

2.  Let  us  bear  with  one  another  in  love ;  knowing  we  are  yet  in 
the  body,  and  have  need  of  compassion.  Let  us  pursue  the  quarrel 
against  an  ungodly  world,  enemies  to  God  and  godliness,  because 
there  is  no  hope  of  meeting  iu  heaven  to  coicpose  the  difference ; 
but  see  we  any  with  their  faces  towards  the  heavenly  Canaan,  0  let 
us  not  fall  out  by  the  way. 

3.  Let  us  long  for  heaven  as  the  place  where  we  will  be  happy. 
For  motive  hereto,  consider, 

Doctrine.  IV.  That  the  church  of  Christ  shall  at  length  arrive 


322  MINISTKKS  TO  CONTINUK,  &C. 

at  its  full  growth  in  glory,  as  a  man  come  to  perfect  age.  Then 
shall  it  be  perfect  in  parts,  every  member  being  brought  in,  and  in 
degrees  every  member  being  at  its  full  growth.  IIow  does  the 
heir  long  till  the  time  of  his  minority  be  overpast,  that  he  may 
get  the  inheritance  in  his  hands.  There  is  an  eternal  weight  of 
glory  abiding  a  state  of  perfection,  when  we  shall  know  no  more 
clouds  of  darkness  and  ignorance,  no  more  weakness  ;  but  the  weak- 
est shall  be  as  David,  and  David  as  the  angel  of  God.  When  no 
corruption  shall  be  in  our  mind,  will,  or  affections  ;  when  faith  shall 
be  turned  to  sight,  hope  to  enjoyment. 

Doctrine  V.  Then,  and  not  till  then,  comes  the  church  to  per- 
fection, when  every  member  thereof,  is  brought  to  a  perfect  confor- 
mity with  Christ,  bearing  a  just  proportion  to  him,  as  members  pro- 
portioned to  the  head.  This  will  certainly  come  to  pass.  Mystical 
Christ  is  yet  growing  ;  the  head  is  at  perfection,  but  the  members 
some  of  them  are  yet  wanting  :  none  of  them  that  are  here  below, 
are  grown  up  to  the  just  proportion,  but  till  that  be,  mystical  Christ 
is  not  perfect.  This  is  a  certain  argument  that  it  shall  be.  Christ 
will  not  always  have  his  body  so  disproportioned  to  the  head.  An 
infinitely  holy  head,  will  at  length  have  perfectly  holy  members. 
The  head  that  has  now  got  above  all  temptations,  will  certainly 
draw  the  feet  out  of  the  reach  of  Satan  and  corruption.  The  head 
that  has  got  above  the  waters  of  the  shadow  of  death  and  corruption, 
will  certainly  make  our  vile  bodies  like  his  glorious  body  ;  and  as 
he  arose  from  death,  and  now  it  hath  no  more  dominion  over  him, 
BO  will  he  confirm  our  souls  and  bodies  in  a  glorious  state  of  immor- 
tality. All  which  may  make  believers  long  for  that  blessed  day, 
and  endeavour  to  antedate  heaven's  happiness  as  far  as  they  can,  in 
tlie  pursuit  of  conformity  to  Christ,  and  growing  up  to  that  blessed 
head  ;  remembering  that  all  their  backslidings  and  decays  dishonour 
him  egregiously,  in  so  disfiguring  his  body  and  disproportioning  his 
members.     For  direction  how  to  go  on  to  this  perfection,  take 

Doctrine  VI.  As  is  our  faith  and  knowledge  of  Christ,  so  is  our 
growth  and  perfection.  It  is  the  knowledge  of  Christ,  that  intro- 
duces us  to  the  blessed  state  of  perfection.  The  more  we  believe  in, 
and  know  Christ,  the  nearer  are  we  to  perfection  ;  and  when  these 
are  come  to  their  perfection,  then  are  we  at  our  full  growth. 

Let  us  then,  that  are  ministers,  make  this  our  great  work,  to  get 
people  to  close  with  Christ,  and  get  acquainted  with  him.  0  !  if  we 
could  preach  Christ,  live  Christ,  and  make  him  the  scope  of  our  life 
and  doctrine,  it  would  be  well.  Let  all  of  us  study  to  know  him. 
The  nearest  way  to  perfection  is   knowledge  ;  and  all   things  else 


BELIEVERS  HAVING,  &C,  323 

necessary  to  salvation  is  to  know  Christ,  who  is  that  body  of  divinity 
wliich  the  Spirit  of  God  teaches  his  scholars,  "  for  God  who  com- 
manded the  light  to  shine  out  of  darkness,  hath  shined  in  our  hearts, 
to  give  the  light  of  the  knowledge  of  the  glory  of  God,  in  the  face 
Jesus  Christ."     Amen. 


November  10,  1706. 
BELIEVERS  HAVING  TRIBULATION  IN  THE   WORLD. 

SERMON  XXXII. 

John  xvi.  33, 

These  things  I  have  spoken  unto  you,  that  hi  me  ye  might  have  peace. 
In  the  world  ye  shall  have  tribulation,  but  be  of  good  cheer,  I  have 
overcome  the  world. 

This  is  a  dark  and  gloomy  day,  in  which  there  seems  to  be  a  black 
cloud  of  wrath  hanging  over  our  heads  ;  which  if  mercy  prevent  not, 
is  like  to  fall  heavy  upon  us  ;  yet  the  storm  never  blows  so  hard, 
but  the  children  of  God  may  have  peace  ;  being,  though  upon  a  sea, 
yet  in  a  ship  that  cannot  sink.  Our  text  is  the  conclusion  of  our 
Lord's  farewell  sermon  to  his  disciples,  in  which  we  have  the  use 
and  end  of  the  whole,  namely,  that  they  might  have  peace.  "While 
he  discoursed  to  them,  he  had  in  view  their  peace  ;  that  is  inward 
peace  and  prosperity,  contentment  and  quietness  of  mind  in  the  midst 
of  trouble.  All  this  they  might  have  in  him ;  being  united  to  him  by 
faith,  they  might  have  peace  in  him,  as  Noah  had  in  the  ark,  while 
the  deluge  was  on  the  earth.  His  own  word  was  the  mean  by  which 
they  were  thus  to  obtain  peace  in  him.  This  word  leads  the  soul 
to  Christ,  where  it  may  get  peace,  and  teaches  how  to  employ 
Christ  for  peace.  "Unless  thy  law,"  says  David,  "had  been  my 
delight,  I  should  then  have  perished  in  mine  affliction." 

"We  have  next  the  necessity  of  his  speaking  these  things  to  them 
for  that  end.  "  In  the  world  ye  shall  have  tribulation."  In  this 
world  they  must  lay  their  account  to  meet  with  tribulation.  In 
heaven  there  is  no  trouble,  in  earth  no  rest.  They  shall  have 
trouble  in  and  from  the  world,  as  they  have  peace  in  and  from 
Christ.     Observe  the  certainty  of  all  this;  it  is  not,  you  may  have, 


324  BELIEVERS  HAVING 

but,  "  you  shall  have  tribulation."  They  have  no  reason  to  be 
surprised  with  trouble.  He  warns  thera  of  it.  There  is  no  eviting 
of  it.     It  is  the  common  way  to  heaven,  no  going  there  otherwise. 

"We  have  also  the  duty  of  the  Lord's  people  in  tribulation,  or 
under  the  fears  of  it,  "  Be  of  good  cheer."  (Greek),  Be  confident, 
over  the  belly  of  all  you  may  meet  with  in  the  world.  Keep  np 
your  hcaits,  faii.t  not.  The  comfort  is,  Christ  has  overcome  the 
world,  and  therefore  though  it  may  wound  you,  it  shall  not  destroy 
you ;  and  as  surely  as  Christ  himself  has  overcome,  so  surely  shall 
ye  overcome. 

Doctrine  1.  Jesus  Christ  freely  forewarns  his  people  of  the 
trouble  with  which  they  are  to  meet  in  his  way. 

Here  we  shall  shew  First,  how ;  and  Secondly,  why  he  forewarns 
them. 

I.  We  are  to  shew  how  the  Lord  forewarns  his  people. 

1.  He  forewarns  them  by  his  word.  So  he  does  here  in  the  text. 
Now  Christ  speaks  to  us  by  his  written  word,  and  by  his  ministers, 
whom  he  has  set  as  watchmen,  to  blow  the  trumpet  and  give  warn- 
ing. In  the  glass  of  the  word  they  may  discern  troubles  coming  on. 
The  Scriptures  are  like  a  weather-glass,  in  which  the  people  of  God 
may  discern  by  parallel  cases,  what  may  be  expected  in  such  and 
such  circumstances. 

2.  By  the  dispensations  of  providence.  There  are  signs  of  the 
times,  Matth.  xvi.  3.  These  are,  1.  Ordinary;  when  a  people  is 
brought  to  such  circumstances  as  naturally  tend  to  some  heavy 
judgment.  Thus  our  Lord  said,  "every  kingdom  divided  against 
itself  is  brought  to  desolation ;  and  every  city  or  house  divided 
against  itself  shall  not  stand."  This  seems  to  be  our  case  at  pre- 
sent. The  divisions  among  our  rulers  in  the  important  matter  now 
in  hand,  and  divisions  among  others  on  the  same  point,  say  that  if 
God  do  not  interpose  by  a  miracle  of  providence  for  our  help,  we 
may  be  in  a  sad  case  ere  long,  2  Kings  vi.  27.  Surely  there  is  a 
sad  infatuation  on  some  side  ;  while  some  look  upon  it  as  the  way 
to  make  us  happy,  and  others  as  the  way  to  make  us  and  our  poste- 
rity miserable.  2.  Extraordinary.  Extraordinary  operations  in 
natural  things,  Luke  xxi.  25.  By  such  means  the  Lord  has  warned 
us,  and  these  extraordinary  rains  may  possibly  have  a  voice  to  stir 
us  up.  Sometimes  the  Lord  writes  the  fate  of  a  nation  upon  the 
Avails  of  the  great  house  of  the  world,  as  he  did  Belshazzar's  on  the 
walls  of  his  palace. 

II.  "We  are  to  shew  why  Christ  forewarns  his  people. 
1.  To  take  away  the  scandal  of  the  cross.     Often  did  our  Lord 
tell  his  disciples  what  he  was,  and  what  they  were  to  suffer,  that 


THIBUr-ATION  IS  THE  WORLD.  325 

when  these  things  came  to  pass  they  might  not  be  offend,  d.  These 
that  give  up  their  names  to  Christ,  ami  do  not  lay  their  accounts 
with  trouble,  they  will  prove  like  those,  "  who  when  tribulation  or 
persecution  ariseth  because  of  the  word,  by  and  by  they  are  of- 
fended." It  is  hard  not  to  stumble  when  people  meet  with  an 
unexpected  block  in  their  way. 

2.  That  his  people  may  be  forewarned.  "  Therefore,  thus  will  I 
do  unto  thee,  0  Israel ;  and  because  I  will  do  this  unto  theo,  pre- 
pare to  meet  thy  God,  0  Israel."  God's  people  are  not  always 
meet  for  a  storm.  Lot  may  linger  in  Sodom ;  Baruch  seek  great 
things  for  himself;  the  wise  virgins  slumber  while  the  bridegroom 
is  on  the  way.  It  is  hard  to  stand  in  an  evil  day,  but  most  hard 
when  we  are  surprised  with  it.  Job  had  an  advantage  ;  "  I  was 
not,"  says  he,  "  in  safety,  neither  had  I  rest,  neither  was  I  quiet ; 
yet  trouble  came." 

3.  Because  he  would  have  his  people  choose  his  way  resolutely ;  so 
as  when  they  engage  with  him,  they  may  be  resolute  to  cleave  to 
him,  come  what  will.  He  would  have  men  either  not  to  build,  or 
else  to  count  the  cost ;  either  never  to  venture  the  sea,  or  else  to  be 
resolute  to  ride  out  the  storm.  The  devil  flatters  men  into  his  way, 
lets  them  see  the  bait,  but  not  the  hook.  Christ  holds  the  crowu  in 
the  one  hand,  and  the  cross  in  the  other,  and  the  cross  nearest  the 
sinner,  Luke  xiv.  26. 

4.  To  stir  up  his  people  to  come  to  him,  renew  their  acceptance, 
and  get  matters  of  controversy  removed.  Christ  loves  to  have  his 
people  about  his  hand,  but  in  a  time  of  peace,  they  are  ready  to 
wander,  then  he  will  make  fears  to  bring  them  back  again.  When 
the  weather  is  clear,  they  go  abroad  ;  but  when  the  clouds  grow 
black,  they  return  to  their  chambers,  Isa.  xxvi.  20. 

Use  1,  Of  information.  1.  Christ  loves  not  to  take  his  people 
at  an  unawares,  though  he  often  does  so  with  his  enemies,  Matth. 
xxiv.  50.  The  news  of  the  axe  being  laid  to  the  root  of  the  tree, 
comes  to  be  heard  commonly,  before  the  noise  of  its  hewing.  Some- 
times he  surprises  his  people  with  kindness.  Song  ii.  8  ;  Psal.  cxxvi. 
1  ;  but  as  for  judgments,  if  people  are  not  aware  of  their  coming,  it 
is  not  for  want  of  warning. 

2.  The  way  of  the  Lord  is  well  worth  the  keeping,  notwithstand- 
ing the  trouble  we  may  meet  with  in  it.  If  there  were  not  enough 
in  it  to  counterbalance  the  trouble,  why  would  he  forewarn  his 
people.  But  there  is  that  sweet  in  the  crown,  that  may  well  make 
us  digest  the  cross.  Moses  puts  the  treasures  of  Egypt  and  the 
reproach  of  Christ  into  a  balance,  and  counts  this  reproach  the 
greatest  riches. 


326  BELIEVERS  HAVING 

3.  God's  people  cannot  justly  pretend  that  they  are  surprised 
with  trouble.  It  becomes  not  a  Christian  to  say,  I  had  not  thought  of 
tbera.  "We  may  indeed  be  surprised  with  prosperity — wonder  to  see 
streams  in  the  south — to  meet  with  kindness,  when  abroad  from  our 
country  ;  and  therefore  they  are  inexcusable,  that  are  unprovided 
for  an  evil  day.  What !  not  to  provide  in  summer  for  the  winter, 
when  we  know  surely  it  will  come. 

4.  Let  not  the  world  say  God's  people  serve  an  ill  master.  If  he 
chastise,  he  tells  his  people  beforehand,  that  they  may  provide  for  a 
storm.  The  devil  leads  his  blindfold  to  the  pit,  but  Christ  warns 
his  people  of  every  dangerous  step,  he  deals  ingeniously  with  them, 
telling  them  what  they  may  expect  in  his  service. 

Doctrine  II.  That  the  church  and  people  of  God  must  lay  their 
accounts  with  trouble  in  the  world.     Here  we  shall  shew, 

I.  What  is  imported  in  this,  that,  "  in  the  world  ye  shall  have 
tribulation." 

II.  What  these  tribulations  are,  with  which  they  may  lay  their 
account. 

III.  To  confirm  the  doctrine, 

IV.  How,  and  in  what  manner,  the  Lord  dispenseth  tribulations. 

V.  Give  the  reasons  why  they  shall  have  tribulation.  We  are 
then, 

I.  To  shew  what  is  imported  in  this,  that,  "  in  the  world  ye  shall 
have  tribulation."     It  imports, 

1.  That  this  world  is  not  the  place  of  our  rest.  Heaven  is  our 
home  ;  earth  our  pilgrimage.  To  whom  earth  is  a  rest,  hell  will  be 
a  place  of  trouble.  As  long  as  we  are  here,  we  are  on  the  sea,  where 
deep  calleth  unto  deep.  If  there  be  a  fair  blink  for  a  while,  a  storm 
is  brewing ;  and  so  will  it  be  till  we  reach  the  shore,  where  a  rest 
remaineth  for  the  people  of  God. 

2.  That  the  saints  shall  have  trouble  from  the  men  of  the  world. 
This  I  take  to  be  included  in  the  text.  There  are  Canaanites  in  the 
land,  that  will  be  thorns  in  our  eyes.  As  the  Israelites  were  in 
Egypt,  so  is  the  church  of  God  in  the  world.  They  are  two  distinct 
kingdoms  that  will  never  unite,  as  belonging  to  two  so  different 
masters,  the  God  of  heaven,  and  the  God  of  this  world. 

3.  That  the  troubles  of  the  Lord's  people  shall  go  no  farther  with 
them  than  this  world ;  when  they  have  passed  the  sea  of  death,  they 
shall  see  them  no  more.  The  world  is  the  only  stage  for  acting  this 
tragedy,  and  when  that  is  taken  down,  no  other  shall  be  erected. 
Devils  and  men,  can  pursue  the  Lord's  people  no  farther  than  a 
grave.  God  shall  then  wipe  away  all  tears  from  their  eyes.  Hea- 
ven is  the  place  of  the  crown ;  the  world  of  the  cross. 


TRIBULATION   IN  THE  WORLD.  327 

4.  The  certainty  of  their  meeting  with  tribulation.  It  is  iio 
doubtful  or  uncertain  thing.  It  is  beyond  all  peradventure.  There 
is  no  escaping  of  it ;  the  world  one  way  or  another,  will  be  about 
vrith  the  people  of  God.  No  corn  comes  to  heaven's  granery,  but 
what  is  winnowed  here  below.  As  long  as  the  seed  of  the  serpent 
is  within  bowshot  of  the  seed  of  the  woman,  they  cannot  be  secure. 

II.  We  are  to  shew  what  these  tribulations  are,  which  the  people 
of  God  may  lay  their  account  with  in  the  world.  I  shall  name  some, 
not  knowing  but  some  or  all  of  them  may  be  our  case  ;  but  there  ia 
no  hazard  of  laying  our  account  with  the  worst. 

1.  We  find  sometimes  the  enemies  of  the  Lord's  people  rule  over 
them.  So  it  was  in  Egypt,  Babylon,  and  other  places.  It  is  a  sad 
threatening,  "  the  stranger  that  is  within  thee,  shall  get  up  above 
thee  very  high,  and  thou  shalt  come  down  very  low."  So  we  find  it 
often  in  the  book  of  Judges,  their  neighbours  ruling  over  them. 
Sometimes  a  professing  people  cast  off  God's  yoke,  no  wonder  that 
he  wreath  the  yoke  of  strangers  about  their  necks.  It  is  much  the 
same  whether  it  be  violently  put  on,  or  they  stoop  tamely  and  receive 
it;  but  always  the  church  of  God  is  brought  to  a  sad  state,  when  tlie 
wolf  gets  Christ's  sheep  to  keep,  and  they  are  subjected  to  professed 
enemies  of  the  work  of  reformation.  0  pray  that  God  may  direct 
the  parliament  in  the  matter  of  the  union.  They  and  we  have  to  do 
with  potent  neighbours.  Our  rulers  are  wiser  than  we,  to  know  what 
will  be  best  for  this  poor  land,  unless  the  sins  of  the  nation  provoke 
God  to  make  them  blind.  But  surely  these  hundred  years  bypast, 
the  poverty  this  poor  land  has  groaned  under,  and  the  troubles 
the  church  of  Scotland  has  had,  were  much  owing  to  the  influence  of 
our  neighbours,  and  it  will  be  next  to  a  miracle,  if  our  prosperity 
come  from  that  quarter. 

2.  Cruel  mockings,  Ileb,  xi.  36.  This  was  the  persecution  which 
Ishmael  set  on  foot  against  Isaac.  The  seed  of  the  serpent  are  wont 
to  spit  their  venom  from  under  their  tongues.  Seldom  are  Chris- 
tians free  from  these,  for  the  tongues  of  enemies  are  not  always  re- 
strained, when  their  hands  are  bound.  0  but  it  is  sad  when  the 
enemy  have  the  Lord's  people  under  their  feet,  then  their  tongues 
are  as  sharp  swords,  Psal.  cxxxvii.  3  ;  Lam.  i.  7- 

3.  Loss  of  their  goods,  Heb.  x.  34.  If  God  let  loose  the  sword 
upon  the  nation,  or  if  persecution  arise,  losses  cannot  be  prevented. 
When  there  are  loaves  to  be  had  by  following  Christ,  he  will 
have  a  large  retinue  ;  but  when  Christ  and  the  world  parts,  then 
must  we  either  part  with  Christ  or  with  the  world.  0  !  for  the 
.spirit  of  Moses,  to  choose  rather  to  suflSier  aflliction  with  the  people 
of  God,  than  to  enjoy  the  pleasures  of  sin  for  a  season.      To  have 


328  BELIEVERS  HAVING 

the  world's  goods  about  us  like  Joseph's  mantle,  that  stript  off 
easily  in  a  time  of  temptation.  Let  their  money  perish  with  them- 
selves, who  esteem  all  the  gold  in  the  world  worth  a  day's  society 
with  Jesus  Christ,  said  the  Marquis  of  Vicy. 

4.  Loss  of  liberty.  Often  those  that  now  follow  the  Lamb,  have 
been  in  bonds  and  prisons,  banished  from  their  native  country,  de- 
prived of  the  society  of  their  relations,  hunted  as  partridges  on  the 
mountains,  and  what  has  been,  may  be. 

5.  "Want  of  pure  ordinances.  Often  the  gates  of  Zion  have 
mourned,  because  none  were  allowed  to  enter  them.  The  people  of 
God  Isave  sought  the  food  of  their  souls  with  the  peril  of  their  lives  ; 
their  teachers  being  removed  into  corners,  and  dumb  dogs  set  up  in 
their  stead,  who  have  hardened  the  hearts  of  the  wicked,  and  dis- 
couraged the  godly.  Alas !  our  contempt  of  the  gospel,  may  bring 
a  famine  of  it.  The  word  of  the  Lord  is  more  precious,  when  there 
is  no  open  vision, 

Lastlt/,  Bodily  torments  even  to  death,  Luke  xiv,  26,  All  Grod's 
people  must  be  martyrs  in  action  or  affection.  Those  that  love  not 
Christ  better  than  their  own  lives,  love  him  not  all  sincerely.  Some- 
times Christ  calls  his  people  to  resist  even  unto  blood.  Such  days 
have  been,  and  Cain's  club  is  still  carried  up  and  down  the  world, 
stained  with  the  blood  of  Abel.  A  generation  of  blood-suckers  yet 
exists  to  make  the  scaffolds  smoke  with  the  blood  of  the  saints.  In  a 
word,  whatever  the  wit  of  devils  can  invent,  and  men  practise,  and 
God  will  permit,  the  people  of  God  may  lay  their  account  with. 
Yet  we  must  remark  it  is  tribulation,  not  destruction,  the  church  of 
God  is  to  expect.  She  may  be  in  tribulation,  and  yet  come  out  of 
many  tribulations ;  and  therefore  for  the  comfort  of  the  Lord's 
people,  I  will  say  five  things : 

1.  Enemies  may  be  a  wind  to  toss  this  ark  up  and  down  the  waters 
of  affliction,  yet  not  a  rock  to  split  her,  "  We  are  troubled,"  says 
Paul,  "  on  every  side ;  yet  not  dismayed  !  we  are  perplexed,  but 
not  in  despair;  persecuted,  but  not  forsaken  ;  cast  down  but  not  des- 
troyed." Nay,  the  church  shall  be  a  rock,  on  which  her  enemies 
shall  split,  Zech,  xii,  2,  3,  4.  Men  will  be  meddling  with  her  to 
hurt  her,  if  they  can  better  their  estate  by  it ;  but  if  they  prosper 
it  will  be  a  wonder,  for  never  did  any  meddle  with  the  church  but 
to  their  cost.  The  same  power  still  exists  that  drowned  Pharaoh, 
and  brought  Haman  to  the  gallows  which  he  bad  set  up  for  Mor- 
decai, 

2.  The  bush  may  be  set  on  fire,  but  it  shall  not  be  consumed, 
Exod.  iii.  2.  The  church  shall  lose  nothing  by  it  but  her  dross, 
Ztch.  xiii  9  ;  but  that  shall  at  length  bnist  out  on  the  enemies,  like 
the  fiery  furnace  into  which  the  three  children  were  cast. 


TRIBULATION  IN  THE  WORLD.  329 

3.  They  may  drive  here  into  the  wilderness,  but  she  shall  be  fed 
there,  Rev.  xii.  6;  as  it  was  in  the  days  of  Elijah,  What  will  we 
do,  you  may  say,  if  ordinances  be  taken  away;  why,  if  there  be 
nothing  in  the  wilderness,  God  will  open  the  windows  of  heaven. 
The  doors  of  heaven  are  not  always  closed,  when  the  doors  of  the 
chnrch  are  closed.  God  is  in  heaven,  yea  Christ  is  there,  and  he 
shall  be  for  a  sanctuary. 

4.  They  may  hew  down  her  branches,  but  the  root  shall  remain 
fast  in  the  earth,  and  shall  bud  again.  It  is  a  sad  sight  to  see  men 
go  to  with  axes  and  hammers,  and  cut  down  the  carved  work  of 
Zion.  But  let  it  be  never  so  low,  it  will  rise  like  a  terrible  ghost 
to  enemies. 

Lastly,  Enemies  may  carry  the  chnrch  of  God  to  the  brow  of  the 
hill,  and  leave  her  on  the  very  brink  of  ruin,  and  yet  she  shall 
escape  singing,  "  Our  sool  is  escaped  as  a  bird  out  of  the  snare  of 
the  fowlers :  the  snare  is  broken,  and  we  are  escaped."  How  did 
Pharaoh  think  he  had  tbem  all  in  his  net,  but  the  children  of  Israel 
went  out  with  an  high  hand.     We  now  proceed, 

III.  To  confirm  this,  that  in  the  world  the  saints  shall  have  tri- 
bulation. 

1.  God  has  expressly  told  us  of  it.  What  can  be  more  peremp- 
tory than  the  text,  "  Through  much  tribulation  we  must  enter  into 
the  kingdom ;"  and  all  who  liA^e  godly  in  Christ  Jesus,  shall  suffer 
persecution.  It  is  one  of  the  articles  of  the  Christian's  indenture, 
to  take  up  the  cross  and  follow  Christ.  The  way  to  the  crown  is  by 
the  cross,  by  virtue  of  God's  appointment.  It  is  true,  the  Lord 
does  not  call  every  one  to  be  a  martyr,  but  every  one  that  honestly 
engageth  with  Christ,  engageth  in  these  terms,  that  if  they  should 
die  for  him,  they  shall  not  leave  him. 

2.  This  has  been  the  lot  of  the  church  in  all  ages.  There  was  a 
Cain  in  Adam's  family,  an  Ishmael  in  Abraham's,  and  an  Esau  in 
Isaac's.  Christ's  flock  has  always  had  their  noon,  as  well  as  their 
morning.     Silence  in  heaven,  is  but  for  half  an  hour. 

3.  This  was  the  lot  of  our  Lord  and  Captain.  He  endured  the 
cross,  despising  the  shame;  and  they  that  will  reign  with  him,  must 
resolve  to  sufi'er  with  him  also.  It  is  vain  to  expect  other  treat- 
ment in  the  world  than  he  got.  The  servant  is  not  greater  than  the 
Lord.  If  they  have  persecuted  me,  they  will  also  persecute  yon  ; 
if  they  have  kept  my  saying,  they  will  keep  yours  also. 

4.  There  is  so  much  corruption  in  the  best,  that  they  cannot  long 
carry  a  full  cup  even,  but  when  they  stand  they  gather  mud.  Thi  y 
have  need  of  afliiction  to  keep  them  from,  or  awaken  them  out  uf 
securitv. 


330  BELIEVERS  HAVING 

5.  They  live  among  ill  neighbours,  even  the  wicked  of  the  worlil, 
who  have  influence  on  their  calamities  several  ways.  They  are  ever 
ready  to  do  them  a  mischief  when  they  have  an  opportunity.  "Wo 
have  had  long  peace,  but  not  because  enemies  were  idle,  not  because 
they  had  no  plots  and  contrivances  to  injure  the  work  of  God,  but 
because  providence  defeated,  and  may  even  defeat  them  yet.  Be- 
sides their  wickedness  provokes  God  against  the  nation,  to  bring  on 
national  judgments,  in  which  the  Lord's  people  must  needs  share, 
especially  considering,  that  the  godly  themselves  are,  some  one  way 
or  another,  often  involved  in  their  guilt ;  as  by  growing  lukewarm 
when  iniquity  abounds,  not  mourning  over  the  sins  of  others.  No 
wonder  God  send  an  earthquake  into  Scotland,  for  the  profane  prin- 
ciples and  practices  of  some,  and  the  deadness  of  others. 

Lastly,  The  devil  is  a  restless  enemy.  He  goes  about  like  a  roar- 
ing lion,  seeking  whom  he  may  devour  ;  and  he  is  not  to  blame,  if 
the  church  of  God  has  a  moment's  rest.  He  wants  neither  will, 
power,  nor  instruments,  to  vex  the  church,  if  he  could  but  get  per- 
mission. 

lY.  We  are  to  shew  how,  and  in  what  manner  the  Lord  dis- 
penseth  tribulation  to  his  church  and  people.  I  will  say  these  four 
things  respecting  it : 

1.  The  church  and  people  of  God  frequently  meet  with  tribula- 
tions in  the  world.  It  is  seldom  that  this  ark  meets  not  with  tossing, 
till  it  come  to  rest  on  the  mount  of  God. 

2.  Sometimes  the  church  of  God  has  tribulation,  while  enemies 
have  no  such  thing,  Zech.  i.  11,  12.  Often  it  is  so,  as  that  when 
the  one  goes  up,  the  other  goes  down  ;  yet  sometimes  both  are  in 
the  furnace  of  common  calamity.  Thus,  both  Jacob's  family,  aud 
his  neighbours  the  Canaanites,  were  visited  with  famine  at  the  same 
time.  When  it  is  thus,  the  good  metal  is  to  be  refined,  and  the 
dross  consumed.  The  Lord  can  punish  his  people  for  their  sins, 
and  yet  enemies  have  no  cause  to  triumph  over  them,  2  Chron.  xv. 
3—5. 

3.  Sometimes  the  tribulation  of  the  Lord's  people  is  greater, 
sometimes  less ;  it  is  not  always  alike  hot,  nor  the  clouds  alike  full. 
They  may  suffer  much,  and  not  be  brought  to  resist  unto  blood. 
The  Lord  can  bind  up  man's  wrath,  and  say  to  it  as  to  the  sea, 
hitherto  shalt  thou  come,  and  no  farther.  Devils  and  men  are 
bound  with  the  chain  of  providence.  The  tribulation  ordinarily  is 
hottest,  when  it  is  to  last  but  a  short  time.  When  the  devil's  time 
is  short,  his  wrath  is  great,  Exod.  v.  10,  11.  Again,  it  is  hottest 
when  the  Lord  has  a  mind  to  do  great  things  for  his  people  and 
cause,  but  there  is  a  generation  whom  he  will  have  out  of  the  way 


TEIBULATION  IN  THE  >yoRLD.  33l 

beforehand.  This  was  the  case  with  the  Israelites  in  the  wilder- 
ness, because  they  had  tempted  the  Lord  ten  times,  and  had  not 
hearkened  to  his  voice :  they  were  not  permitted  to  see  the  land 
which  he  sware  unto  their  fathers,  but  were  all  taken  away  before 
he  accomplished  the  promise,  Num.  xiv.  22;  for  this  cause,  sore 
shaking  commonly  goes  before  God's  great  appearances  for  his  peo- 
ple. Hag.  ii.  7.  0 !  that  this  may  not  be  the  generation  which  God 
intends  to  shovel  out  of  the  way,  before  he  revive  his  work.  Once 
more,  tribulation  is  hottest  when  people  through  long  ease  have 
settled  in  security,  and  defection  has  come  to  a  great  height.  When 
a  people  thus  leave  their  first  love,  unless  they  repent,  God  threat- 
ens to  come  quickly  and  to  remove  their  candlestick  out  of  his 
place.  It  is  a  dreadful  case  to  provoke  God  to  unchurch  a  people. 
The  longer  the  disease  has  grown,  the  more  difficult  is  the  cure.  A 
stubborn  heart  requires  a  violent  wound.  It  is  hard  to  say,  if  ever 
there  was  so  much  profanity  in  principle  and  practice  under  such 
light,  as  at  this  day.  And  it  is  too  like  the  Lord  is  about  to  work 
that  work,  that  may,  by  the  hearing  of  it,  make  the  securest  and 
profauest  heart  to  tremble. 

4.  Ordinarily,  all  goes  not  together  with  the  people  of  God ;  if 
they  be  under  heavy  troubles,  yet  they  may  get  the  gospel  pre- 
served. "  Though  the  Lord  give  you  the  bread  of  adversity  and  the 
water  of  affliction,  yet  shall  not  thy  teachers  be  removed  into  a 
corner  any  more,  but  thine  eyes  shall  see  thy  teachers."  Though 
there  may  be  darkness  through  most  of  the  land,  yet  there  may  be 
a  Goshen  where  light  is.  Though  they  seek  it  with  the  peril  of  their 
lives,  yet  they  may  obtain  it.  God's  chamber  doors  of  protection 
are  not  commonly  all  shut  together.  When  you  are  persecuted  in 
one  city,  flee  to  another.  We  have  often  seen  it  thus  in  Europe, 
when  persecution  was  hot  in  one  country,  Christians  have  found  au 
asylum  in  another.  But,  if  all  should  fail  together,  God  himself 
remains,  aud  the  saints  may  encourage  themselves  in  him.  "  In  the 
fear  of  the  Lord  is  strong  confidence,  and  his  children  shall  have  a 
place  of  refuge."  "  God  is  our  refuge  and  strength,  a  very  present 
help  in  trouble."     We  proceed, 

V.  To  give  reason  why  the  saints  shall  have  tribulations.  The 
church  and  people  of  God  meet  with  tribulations  in  the  world  for 
good  reasons.  They  may  say  to  those  who  are  their  scourges,  as 
Joseph  did  to  his  brethren,  "  J3ut,  as  for  you,  ye  thought  evil  against 
me  ;  but  God  meant  it  unto  good."  God  in  such  dispensations,  has 
an  eye, 

I.  To  his  own  glory. 

II.  His  people's  good. 

Vol.  IV.  r 


332  BELIEVERS  HAVING 

III.  To  hypocrites. 

IV.  To  open  enemies. 

I.  To  his  own  glory.  This  is  the  end  of  all  providences,  and  of 
this  in  a  special  manner,  which  should  make  the  yoke  light  to  those 
to  whom  his  honour  is  dear.  What  if  God  should  demolish  the 
whole  fabric  of  the  creation  for  his  own  glory,  who  could  quarrel 
him  in  point  of  justice.  Surely  we  ought  in  that  case,  in  our  last 
prayers,  say,  "  Hallowed  be  thy  name."  Now  there  is  a  large 
revenue  of  glory  to  God,  rising  from  the  tribulations  of  his  people, 
though  they  were  watered  with  their  blood. 

1.  There  is  a  large  revenue  of  glory  arises  to  him  from  his  bring- 
ing them  into  tribulations.  Hence  he  has  the  glory  of  his  holiness 
before  the  world.  "  I  will,"  says  he,  "  be  sanctified  in  them  that 
come  nigh  me,  and  before  all  the  people,  I  will  be  glorified."  The 
people  of  God  by  their  sins,  darken  the  glory  of  his  holiness;  but 
in  their  tribulations,  they  are  blind  that  may  not  read  that,  Hab.  i. 
13.  David  made  enemies  to  blaspheme,  therefore  David  must  smart 
to  retrieve  the  glory  of  God,  2  Sam.  xii.  14.  The  sins  of  the  people 
of  God  raise  such  a  mist,  that  the  holy  nature  of  God  is  not  well 
perceived,  but  a  violent  stormy  wind,  will  scatter  that  mist.  God 
gets  also  the  glory  of  his  impartiality  in  his  judgments,  Isa.  xlii. 
24 ;  Amos  iii.  2.  The  Lord  thereby  shews  that  his  own  shall  not 
get  away  with  their  sins  and  defections,  more  than  others.  He 
spared  not  his  own  Son,  nor  will  he  spare  his  sons.  He  is  a  Father 
that  loves  his  children,  and  therefore  spares  not  the  rod.  The 
heaviest  weight  in  the  ship  of  the  church  that  threatens  her  sinking, 
is  the  sins  of  sons  and  daughters,  Deut.  xxxii.  18,  19.  One 
sleeping  Jonah  here,  will  do  more  evil  than  a  whole  crew  of  pagan 
mariners. 

2.  He  gets  glory  from  his  keeping  them  up  under  them.  Should 
his  people  sink  under  them,  then  his  glory  is  lost,  but  the  everlast- 
ing arms  are  underneath  them  ;  hence  they  are  kept  up,  and  carried 
through,  though  they  go  through  fire  and  water;  and  hence  God  has 
the  glory  of  his  all-snfficiency.  The  devil  said.  Job  served  not  God 
for  nought.  The  world  says,  the  Lord's  people  speak  much  of  Christ's 
fulness ;  but  it  is  easy  swimming  while  the  head  is  borne  above  ; 
they  even  need  the  world  to  complete  their  satisfaction,  as  well  as 
others.  Well,  tribulation  comes,  and  the  world  sees  then,  that  the 
godly  can  rejoice  in  God  when  all  is  gone ;  and  that  they  look  as 
well  as  they  that  feed  on  the  portion  of  the  king's  meat.  0  !  how 
do  they  live  ?  Why,  they  live  by  faith  on  an  all-sufficient  God.  "  I 
will  also  leave  in  the  midst  of  thee  an  afflicted  and  poor  people,  and 
thev  shall  trust  in  the  name  of  the  Lord."     "  Godliness  with  con- 


TRIBULATION  IN  THE  WOULD.  333 

lentraent  is  great  gain,"  God  has  also  the  glory  of  his  power,  2  Cor. 
xii.  9,  10.  The  saints  living  in  the  midst  of  deaths,  says  that 
Christ  lives.  The  life  of  Jesus  is  made  manifest  in  the  mortal  flesh. 
The  three  children  walking  in  the  midst  of  the  fiery  furnace,  says 
there  is  a  powerful  one  with  them.  The  church  of  God,  is  often  in 
the  world,  like  a  spark  of  fire  in  a  sea.  It  is  infinite  power  that 
keeps  it  unextinguished.  Here  also,  he  gets  the  glory  of  his 
unchangeable  love  to  his  people :  this  explains  these  words,  "  Be 
content  with  such  things  as  ye  have ;  for  he  hath  said,  I  will  never 
leave  thee,  nor  forsake  thee."  Do  they  not  fear  in  the  valley  of 
the  shadow  of  death,  it  is  because  God  is  with  them.  What  must 
spectators  say,  when  they  see  them  casten  at  all  hands,  and  yet  taken 
up  by  him,  but  behold  how  he  loves  them.  Conscience  will  say  it, 
though  corruptions  talk  otherwise. 

3.  He  gets  glory,  from  his  making  them  better  by  them.  Tribula- 
tions rub  sore  upon  the  Lord's  people,  but  by  that  means  they  are 
made  clear  vessels  fit  for  the  master's  use,  and  so  his  house  is  made 
to  shine ;  and  thus  he  has  the  glory  of  his  wisdom.  0  !  what  wis- 
dom must  be  there,  to  bring  life  out  of  death,  to  cure  by  killing, 
and  heal  by  wounding.  This  is  to  bring  a  heaven  out  of  a  hell.  Here 
wisdom  attains  many  precious  ends,  and  all  by  one  mean  that  the 
world  would  think  destructive.  He  hath  also  the  glory  of  his  good- 
ness he  intends  them  good,  and  does  them  good  even  in  the  worst 
cases.  He  gets  the  glory  of  his  own  grace  in  them.  The  heat  of 
the  fire  hardens  clay,  but  softens  wax ;  because  of  the  diff'erent  tem- 
per of  the  objects.  The  grace  of  God  in  a  soul,  never  so  readily 
appears,  either  to  others  or  to  the  person  himself,  as  in  a  time  of 
affliction.  Then  they  are  like  a  sick  man  rising  out  of  his  bed  and 
running  for  his  bare  life. 

4.  He  gets  glory  from  his  bringing  them  out  of  them.  This  he  will 
do.  "  For  the  rod  of  the  wicked  shall  not  rest  upon  the  lot  of  the 
righteous,  lest  the  righteous  put  forth  their  hands  unto  iniquity.' 
If  he  bring  his  people  into  the  fire,  he  will  bring  them  out  also;  for 
he  says, "  I  will  bring  the  third  part  through  the  fire,  and  will  refine 
them  as  silver  is  refined,  and  will  try  them  as  gold  is  tried." 
Though  they  be  sifted  among  all  nations,  like  as  corn  is  sifted  in  a 
sieve,  yet  shall  not  the  least  grain  fall  upon  the  earth.  Though 
enemies  may  say,  as  to  the  tribulation,  the  Lord  hath  not  done  all 
this ;  yet  as  to  the  deliverance,  when  the  Lord  turned'  again  the 
captivity  of  Zion,  we  were  like  them  that  dream.  Hence  the  Lord 
has  the  glory:  1.  Of  his  wisdom,  in  bringing  it  about  in  such  a 
manner  as  is  often  unexpected.  What  wisdom  appeared  in  his 
delivering  Jacob's  family  from  the  famine,  by  sending  Josopli  to 

y  2 


334  BELIEVERS  HAVING 

Egypt ;  and  the  Jews  from  Ilainan's  conspiracy.  The  glory  also  of 
his  power :  For  God's  time  of  appearing  is  often  when  there  is  least 
hope,  and  the  case  is  most  desperate,  Deut.  xxii.  36.  He  raiseth 
Christ  mystical,  when  the  gravestone  is  laid  on  and  sealed,  when 
it  comes  to  that,  Can  these  dead  bodies  live  ?  and  none  can  answer 
the  question  but  himself.  "  Thy  dead  men,"  says  he  "  shall  live ; 
together  with  my  dead  body,  shall  they  arise." 

The  glory  also  of  his  faithfulness.  The  Lord  will  bring  his 
people  to  that  with  it,  that  they  shall  have  a  very  strong  faith,  that 
lays  not  down  that  conclusion  :  "  I  said  my  strength  and  my  hope  is 
perished  from  the  Lord."  The  providence  and  the  promise  of  God 
seemed  so  to  run  counter  to  one  another,  that  Jeremiah  upon  that 
was  brought  to  the  borders  of  blasphemy  :  "  Why,"  said  he,  "is  my 
pain  perpetual,  and  my  wound  incurable,  which  refuseth  to  be 
healed?  Wilt  thou  be  altogether  unto  nie  as  as  a  liar;  and  as 
waters  that  fail  ?"  And  enemies  may  be  brought  to  say,  there  is  no 
help  for  the  afflicted  saint  in  God.  But  the  deliverance  confounds 
the  one,  and  makes  the  other  blush ;  and  writes  his  faithfulness  in 
great  characters.     Thus  he  magnifies  his  word ;  above  all  his  name. 

IT.  In  such  dispensations  God  has  an  eye  to  his  people's  good. 
It  is  their  happiness  that  his  glory  and  their  good  are  linted  toge- 
ther. As  all  work  for  his  glory,  so  all  shall  work  for  their  good, 
Rom.  viii.  28.     I  shall  pitch  on  a  few  things  here.     It  is, 

1.  to  purge  away  their  sin,  Isa.  xxvii.  9.  Tribulation  to  the 
Lord's  people,  is  as  the  furnace  to  the  gold  ;  not  to  consume,  but 
refine  them.  It  is  not  to  purge  them  away  meritoriously,  but  they 
are  the  means  which  the  Spirit  of  God  makes  use  of  to  weaken  our 
corruptions.  Now  they  contribute  to  this  three  ways  :  1.  As  they 
convince  of  sin.  They  are  as  the  fire  under  the  pot,  that  brings  the 
scum  up,  and  so  it  falls  off.  It  is  difficult  to  convince  men  of  pros- 
perous wickedness,  Jer.  xxii.  21,  22.  Solomon  tells  us,  "  that  op- 
pression makes  a  wise  man  mad ;"  but  a  greater  than  Solomon  tells 
us,  tribulation  makes  a  mad  man  wise,  Luke  xv.  17;  Gen.  xlii.  21. 
Misery  will  open  the  eyes  which  prosperity  has  closed.  If  the  gos- 
pel be  taken  away,  it  will  not  be  so  difficult  to  convince  you  of  mis- 
improvement,  as  it  is  now.  Again,  they  make  sin  bitter.  As  Abner 
said  to  Joab  of  the  war,  so  is  it  with  sin  :  "  It  will  be  bitterness  in 
the  end."  It  is  like  Ezekiel's  roll,  sweet  in  the  mouth,  but  bitter 
in  the  belly;  thus  it  makes  the  man  vomit  up  with  loathing,  what 
with  delight  he  swallowed  down.  The  wormwood  and  the  gall  being 
laid  on  the  breast,  weans  the  child  at  length.  Once  more,  they  do 
it  as  they  lead  to  repentance,  Hos.  ii.  7-  Repentance  is  the  native 
product  of  a  blessed  tribulation.     Let  us  search  and  try  our  ways. 


TRIBULATION  IN  TUE  WOKLD.  3«ia 

and  turn  again  to  the  Lord.  "Waters  of  affliction  make  the  head  of 
the  gracious  soul  waters,  and  his  eyes  a  fountain  of  tears  for  sin. 
Some  now,  they  cannot  get  mourned  for  sin  ;  but  if  a  sword  come,  if 
the  glory  depart,  the  hard  rock  will  sti'eam  out  in  the  wilderness. 

2.  To  prevent  further  sin,  and  more  dreadful  plagues.  Tribula- 
tion is  a  hedge  in  people's  way,  meeting  them  as  the  angel  did 
Balaam.  Well  may  the  children  of  God  salute  the  cross,  as  David 
did  Abigail :  "Blessed  be  the  Lord  God  of  Isiael,  which  sent  thee 
this  day  to  meet  me."  By  this,  much  mischief  was  prevented.  It 
was  a  weary  way  which  the  Israelites  had  in  the  wilderness.  Bui 
wherefore  did  God  lead  thtm  that  way  ?  It  was  to  keep  them  from 
drawing  back,  Exod.  xiii.  17,  18.  When  a  church  takes  a  backslid- 
ing, they  would  go  very  far  back  ere  they  halted,  if  God  did  not 
turn  them  with  affliction.  Thus  it  prevents  more  dreadful  plagues, 
1  Cor.  xi.  32.  It  was  a  tribulatiou  to  Lot  to  go  out  of  Sodom,  but 
had  he  not  met  with  that,  he  had  met  with  much  worse.  Many  a 
time  God  drags  people  out  of  harm's  way,  as  he  did  a  godly  man, 
who  broke  his  leg  going  into  a  ship,  which  made  him  return.  This 
saved  him,  for  the  ship  was  cast  away.  So  God  may  cast  a  church 
or  person  into  trouble,  to  prevent  the  casting  them  off. 

To  promote  the  spiritual  growth  of  the  Lord's  people.  The  plants 
in  God's  vineyard,  grow  best  in  the  winter.  The  church  is  lik« 
camomile,  the  pressing  it  down  makes  it  thrive  best ;  so  it  was  witii 
Israel  in  Egypt.  The  blood  of  the  martyrs  is  the  seed  of  the  church. 
The  church  has  more  professors  in  prosperity  than  in  tribulatiou, 
but  more  true  Christians  probably  in  an  evil  day.  In  such  a  time 
the  graces  of  the  Lord's  people  are  stronger.  Sometimes  they  have 
run  with  the  footmen,  and  they  have  wearied  them ;  yet  have  they 
afterwards  contended  with  horses.  So  Peter,  who  at  one  time  by 
cowardice  denied  his  Master,  at  another  astonished  his  enemies  with 
his  boldness.  So  it  was  also  with  Nicodemus.  The  graces  of  the 
Lord's  people  are  like  the  waters  of  the  sun  mentioned  by  Curtius, 
which  are  cold  at  noon  when  the  air  is  hottest,  and  hot  at  midnight 
when  the  air  is  coldest. 

The  Lord's  people  have  most  experiences  at  such  a  time,  Rom.  v. 
3,  4.  They  gain  a  stock  of  experiences  in  the  school  of  tribulation, 
Hos.  ii.  14.  We  have  many  professed  Christians  at  this  day,  but 
few  experienced  Christians.  Who  knows  but  the  Lord  may  lead 
them  to  the  wilderness,  and  speak  to  their  hearts  there,  that  when 
they  come  back  they  may  be  able  to  say,  "  Come  and  hear,  all  ye 
that  fear  God,  and  1  will  declare  what  he  hath  done  for  my  soul." 
Now,  it  is  highly  reasonable  that  these  things  be  so,  because  they 
have  more  than  ordinary  to  do  in  such  a  time,  and  God  suits  people's 


336  BELIEVEKS  HAVIKG 

strength  to  their  burdens.  They  could  not  stand  without  more  ex- 
perience of  religion  ;  and  the  glory  of  God  is  at  the  stake,  which 
would  be  wounded  if  they  fell  away.  Besides,  tribulation  leads 
the  soul  to  more  than  ordinary  seriousness,  self-denial,  and  going 
out  of  itself  to  Christ.  In  such  a  time  also,  they  are  feasted  with 
a  greater  variety  of  providences  than  at  other  times. 

4.  The  humiliation  of  his  people,  Dent.  viii.  2.  I  take  special 
notice  of  this,  because  it  is  the  great  design  of  the  gospel,  to  make 
the  sinner  nothing  in  his  own  eyes,  that  the  Lord's  grace  may  get 
all  the  glory.  This  is  the  end  of  ordinances  and  providences,  and  is 
remarkably  carried  on  by  tribulation. 

Tribulation  serves  this  purpose,  as  it  discovers  the  corruption  of  the 
heart  that  lurked  before.  Asaph's  tribulation  brought  his  heart 
atheism  to  light,  Psal.  Ixxiii.  13.  See  how  that  humbles  him,  ver. 
22;  it  will  discover  that  particular  corruption,  which  of  all  others, 
the  man  seemed  to  be  most  above.  Thus,  the  impatience  of  Job, 
and  the  passion  of  Moses  were  discovered,  though  the  one  was  the 
most  patient,  and  the  other  the  meekest  man  on  earth. 

It  humbles  the  person  also,  as  it  makes  him  feel  the  need  of  daily 
supplies  and  support  from  above.  When  a  man  gets  a  burden  to 
bear,  for  which  he  finds  he  has  not  strength  enough,  this  sends  him 
to  God  out  of  himself.  The  greatness  of  it  affrights  him.  Hence 
may  we  see  the  reason  why  some  people  are  helped  to  bear  great 
troubles,  while  they  sink  under  less  ones. 

Lastly,  The  weaning  their  hearts  from  the  world,  and  making 
them  desirous  to  be  in  heaven.  If  they  were  not  so  harshly  enter- 
tained abroad,  they  might  forget  their  home.  But  the  more  per- 
plexities they  meet  with  in  the  wilderness,  the  more  desireable  will 
Canaan  be  to  them.  No  wonder  they  long  to  be  ashore,  who  are 
tossed  with  the  wind  and  wave  upon  the  sea.  But  blow  what  storms 
will,  against  the  church  and  people  of  God,  the  Lord  does  all  things 
well ;  for  the  more  the  waters  increase,  the  nearer  heaven  is  the 
ark. 

III.  The  Lord  has  an  eye  to  hypocrites,  in  bringing  tribulation 
on  the  church,  to  try  and  discover  them.  Times  of  tribulation  are 
winnowing  and  sifting  times,  Matth.  iii.  10,  12;  Amos  ix.  9. 

The  summer  of  the  church's  prosperity  breeds  much  vermin,  which 
the  winter  dispatches.  Many  follow  Christ  for  loaves,  and  are  like 
those  that  go  to  sea  for  pleasure.  They  flame  a  while  ;  but  as  the 
candle,  go  out  with  a  bad  smell,  when  the  wind  blows.  Now  they, 
are  cast  out,  for  likely  they  did  not  count  the  cost  before  they 
began  to  build,  hence  they  are  surprized  with  tribulation.  The  cross 
is  placed  in  the  dark  to  them,  therefore  they  fall  over  it,  Matth. 


TRIBULATION  IN  THE  WORLD.  33? 

viii.  19,  20.  What  is  undeliberately  attempted,  seldom  succeeds 
where  difficulties  are  iu  the  way. 

Again,  hypocrites  want  the  root  of  grace  in  them,  hence  a  storm 
blows  thera  over,  Matth.  xiii.  21.  How  can  a  house  built  on  sand 
endure  a  storm  ?  Lamps  without  oil  may  do  much  in  a  fair  day, 
but  nothing  in  a  dark  night.  The  real  spring  will  hold  out  in  a 
time  of  scorching  heat  but  the  pools  will  be  dried  up. 

In  tribulation,  people  must  either  live  on  Christ  alone,  or  not  at 
all.  Hypocrites  cannot  do  this,  more  than  a  bird  can  fly  without 
wings.  The  hypocrite  is  the  man  with  the  heart  and  the  heart ; 
therefore,  like  the  hurcheon,  he  changes  his  nest,  according  to  the 
blowing  of  the  north  and  south  wind.  His  lusts  are  his  limbs,  there- 
fore he  must  cut  his  shoe  answerable  to  his  foot. 

lY.  The  Lord  has  an  eye  to  open  enemies,  to  bring  vengeance  to 
them.  The  Israelites  were  in  a  great  strait  at  the  Red  sea,  but  it 
was  that  Pharaoh  and  his  host  might  be  drowned,  see  also  Dan.  iii. 
22.  The  Lord  allows  enemies  to  fill  up  their  cup,  and  then  he  pun- 
ishes them,  and  the  punishment  comes  heaped  and  running  over, 
Matth.  xxii.  35,  36.  The  tribulation  of  the  Lord's  people,  is  a  cer- 
tain forerunner  of  the  destruction  of  enemies,  Mic.  iv.  11 — 13  ;  the 
rod  having  done  its  work,  is  for  the  fire. 

Use.  Prepare  then  for  tribulation.  Lay  your  account  with  it, 
and  make  ready  for  it.  This  is  a  day  in  which  we  should  be  about 
Noah's  work,  even  preparing  an  ark.     Consider  these  three  things  : 

1.  The  Lord  has  a  controversy  with  the  land,  and  he  seems  to  be 
about  to  plead  it ;  and  when  God's  anger  has  set  the  nation  in  a 
flame,  it  will  be  hard  for  the  Lord's  people  to  escape  tribulation. 
There  are  several  things,  for  which  the  Lord  seems  to  be  about  to 
pursue  Scotland  this  day ;  such  as  the  sins  of  late  times,  and  here 
we  find  covenant  breaking  the  mother  evil,  Ezek.  xvii.  15.  This 
land  lies  under  a  double  guilt  here.  The  breach  of  the  national 
covenant,  which  was  first  made  early  after  our  reformation  from 
popery,  and  afterwards  several  times  renewed,  and  much  counte- 
nanced of  God.  The  solemn  league  and  covenant  now  buried  in 
England,  and  now  much  forgotten  in  Scotland,  in  both  which,  pre- 
lacy was  abjured.  But  alas !  the  nation  soon  forgot  his  covenant. 
Prelacy,  like  the  accursed  walls  of  Jericho,  was  rebuilt;  the  Lord's 
people  that  adhered  to  the  oath  of  God  and  covenanted  work  of 
reformation,  were  persecuted  for  the  same ;  fined,  imprisoned,  ba- 
nished, carried  into  remote  corners  of  the  world,  and  many  of  them 
murdered  under  colour  of  law.  The  covenant  itself  burned.  God 
has  not  forgotten  these  things  yet.  The  late  fire  in  Edinburgh, 
which  set  on  flames  his  vast  buildings  that  burut  the  covenant,  was 


338  BELIEVERS  HAVINtJ 

a  visible  token  of  the  Lord's  minding  that  quarrel :  and  now  I 
think  the  Lord  is  saying,  as  he  did  to  Israel,  I  will  bring  a  sword 
upon  you,  that  shall  avenge  the  quarrel  of  ray  covenant. 

There  is  also  the  contempt  of  the  gospel  now  abounding.  How 
little  is  Christ  cared  for  in  our  land ;  his  offers  are  slighted,  his 
reproofs  undervalued.  We  have  begun  to  weary  of  God,  and  our 
souls  loathe  the  manna. 

There  is,  moreover,  much  profanity  in  principles  and  practices. 
It  is  with  us  as  with  the  Jews,  both  the  poor  and  the  rich  have 
erred,  Jer.  v.  4,  5.  "Who  could  have  thought,  that  in  such  a  day, 
deism  and  atheism  could  have  so  abounded.  Many  ridicule  the 
scriptures,  and  the  doctrine  of  salvation  by  Jesus  Christ ;  and  so 
give  themselves  up  to  work  all  uncleanness  with  greediness.  Pagan 
countries  produce  not  such  monsters.  The  matter  is,  men  are  given 
up  to  their  lusts,  the  word  galls  them,  and  therefore  they  endeavour 
to  extinguish  all  sense  of  religion,  that  they  may  sin  without  re- 
morse. 

2.  The  Lord  has  a  controversy  with  his  own  people.  How  little 
sense  have  we  of  God's  mighty  works  ?  In  what  security  have  we 
been  of  a  long  time  ?  Little  care  to  walk  with  God.  Carnality, 
formality,  worldly  raindedness,  lukewarmness  in  the  things  of  God, 
presage  a  storm  of  tribulation. 

3.  The  present  state  of  affairs  says  a  cloud  is  gathering.  They 
that  have  but  half  an  eye  may  see  it. 

Directions.  1.  Make  sure  work  as  to  your  interest  in  Christ, 
Matth.  vii.  24 — 27-  The  months  of  tribulation  are  trying  to  hypo- 
critical professors.  If  you  be  in  Christ  you  shall  not  be  removed. 
The  temptations  and  dangers  to  which  people  are  exposed  in  tribu- 
lations, speak  loudly  to  them  to  turn  to  their  strong  hold,  Zech.  ix. 
12.  0  that  they  would  now  come  that  have  hitherto  refused  him. 
A  man  out  of  Christ  in  tribulation,  is  a  sad  spectacle. 

2.  Keep  grace  in  exercise.  Take  that  advice,  "  Remember, 
therefore,  from  whence  thou  art  fallen,  and  repent,  and  do  thy  first 
work."  See  there  be  no  standing  controversy  betwixt  God  and 
you.  "  If  we  regard  iniquity  in  our  hearts,  the  Lord  will  not  hear 
us."  Outward  trouble,  and  the  frowns  of  an  angry  God,  are  sad 
companions.  These  months  are  trying  to  them  that  are  under  a 
spiritual  consumption ;  it  will  be  difficult  for  them  to  stand. 

3.  Prudently  forecast  what  may  befall  you,  and  lay  your  accounts 
that  way.  "  A  prudent  man  foreseeth  the  evil,  and  hideth  himself: 
but  the  simple  pass  on  and  are  punished."  A  warned  man  is  half 
armed.  Men  surprised  seldom  resist.  A  man  newly  awakened  out 
of  his  dream,  may  be  easily  overcome. 


TRIBULATION  IN  THE  WORLD.  339 

4.  Be  temperate  in  all  things,  and  live  above  the  world,  its 
frowns,  and  smiles.  Be  moderate  in  your  affections  and  cares 
about  any  worldly  enjoyments.  Use  the  world  as  if  you  used  it 
not.     Let  it  hang  loose  about  you,  like  Joseph's  mantle. 

5.  Labour  to  be  concerned  about  your  relations  now.  Solemnly 
give  them  away  to  God  with  respect  to  an  evil  day.  In  a  trouble- 
some time,  people  use  to  carry  their  precious  things  to  any  place 
where  they  may  be  safe.  Husbands,  wives,  children,  cannot  be  so  safe 
as  in  Christ.  Commit  them  to  him,  and  trust  him  with  them  without 
anxiety.  Strive  also  to  get  them  possessed  with  real  love  to  Christ 
and  his  truths,  that  they  may  be  more  afraid  of  sinning,  than  of 
suffering,  for  their  influence  may  do  you  good  or  evil,  as  they  are 
disposed. 

6.  Labour  to  have  a  feeling  of  the  truth  and  power  of  religion  on 
your  souls.  A  mere  form  of  godliness  will  not  help  in  tribulation. 
If  religion  be  not  in  the  heart,  but  only  in  the  head,  it  will  melt 
away  like  snow  before  the  sun.  He  that  sees  Christ  by  an  eye  of 
faith,  and  sees  heaven  afar  off,  has  the  trial  of  the  efficacy  and  power 
of  the  truth  on  his  soul,  will  be  able  to  endure  a  blast.  Therefore 
closely  study  practical  godliness. 

Lastly,  Be  much  in  prayer.  Prayer  opens  the  windows  of  heaven, 
James  v.  18.  Pray  for  yourselves,  for  the  nation,  for  posterity,  for 
the  church,  and  for  the  world.  It  is  a  sad  symptom  a  man  has 
no  part  of  the  ship,  when  he  is  not  concerned  whether  she  sink 
or  swim.  Prayer  has  opened  prison  doors,  Acts  xvi.  26;  and 
held  off  wrath,  Exod.  xxxii.  10.  And  who  knows  what  the  prayers 
of  the  Lord's  people  may  do  yet.  It  is  a  mercy  that  we  may 
pray,  Mic.  vii.  3 — 7. 

Objection  1.  There  will  always  be  safety  on  some  side,  and  I 
will  fall  in  with  thera  that  are  uppermost.  Answek.  If  the  Bible 
be  the  word  of  God,  this  is  not  the  way  to  be  safe.  "  Whoso 
walketh  uprightly,  shall  be  saved  ;  but  he  that  is  perverse  in  his 
ways,  shall  fall  at  once."  If  you  shift  so,  yon  will  not  be  on  God's 
side ;  and  often  men  by  seeking  safety  out  of  God's  way,  hasten  their 
own  destruction,  as  the  Jews  crucified  Christ  to  please  the  Romans. 
"  He  that  flndeth  his  life  shall  lose  it ;  and  he  that  loseth  his  life 
fo*-  my  sake,"  saith  Jesus,  "  shall  find  it." 

Objection  2.  I  fear  I  never  shall  be  able  to  stand  in  an  evil  day. 
Answer.  Deal  thou  honestly  with  Christ.  Tell  him  sincerely  you 
are  content  to  go  tlirough  fire  and  water  with  him,  if  he  will  but 
bear  you  up,  that  you  sink  not ;  and  trust  him  for  through  bearing, 
and  then  it  lies  upon  his  honour  to  carry  you  through,  and  he  will 
do  it,  Isa.  xl.  30,  31 ;  2  Cor.  xii.  9. 


340  BELIEVERS  HAVING 

But  is  there  no  way  to  be  sure  of  temporal  safety  when  tribula- 
tion comes  ?  Answer.  Without  more  than  ordinary,  neither  you 
nor  I  can  promise  that  to  ourselves.  We  may  promise  inward 
peace,  but  not  outward.  Yet  some  may  even  get  much  outward 
safety.  I  will  tell  you  the  way  that  bids  fairest  for  it.  Mourn 
now  for  the  sins  of  the  land ;  that  has  the  promise,  Ezek.  ix.  4. 
Keep  close  to  the  way  of  duty,  whatever  be  the  hazard,  Prov. 
xxviii.  18.  To  be  best  when  others  are  worst  bids  fair  for  it.  This 
was  the  case  with  Noah,  who  was  a  just  man  and  perfect  in  his 
generations,  and  Noah  walked  with  God.  But  all  outward  things 
are  uncertain  ;  only  in  the  general,  if  you  be  his,  he  will  do  what 
will  be  best. 

But  behold,  our  text  opens  up  a  magazine  of  comfort  in  the  worst 
of  times  :  "  That  in  me  ye  might  have  peace."  From  whence  ob- 
serve this  doctrine, 

Whatever  storms  blow  in  the  world,  in  Jesus  Christ  we  may  have 
peace,  in  the  midst  of  outward  troubles.  Here  I  shall  speak  first  of 
the  nature  ot  this  peace.  Secondly,  of  the  enjoyment  of  it.  Thirdly, 
of  the  way  of  conveyance.  Fourthly,  of  its  kind  ;  and  fifthly,  con- 
firm the  point.     I  am  then, 

I.  To  speak  of  the  nature  of  the  peace  to  be  enjoyed  in  Christ. 
It  is  an  inward  peace,  being  opposed  to  outward  trouble.  The 
trouble  is  bodily,  and  on  the  outward  state ;  the  peace  is  spiritual. 
It  is  the  peace  of  mind.  Inward  trouble  is  the  native  consequence 
of  outward  trouble.  But  here  is  a  sort  of  miracle,  the  godly  in  the 
fire,  yet  walking  at  ease ;  the  ship  amongst  rocks  and  waves,  yet 
secure.  Taking  this  inward  peace  of  mind  in  its  full  latitude,  it 
comprehends, 

1.  A  holy  calm  in  the  soul,  a  serenity  and  tranquillity  of  mind  in 
the  midst  of  trouble.  Trouble  naturally  produces  inward  confusion 
and  disturbance  ;  but  the  soul  has  in  Christ  a  calm  instead  of 
that,  Psal.  iii.  1 — 5.  The  believer  is  like  a  vessel  of  water  tossed 
upon  the  sea,  yet  not  jumbled.  In  the  fiery  furnace,  the  three  chil- 
dren had  more  peace  than  the  king  in  his  palace,  Dan.  iii.  24. 

2.  Content  of  mind,  in  opposition  to  discontent  and  murmuring, 
which  are  the  native  efl'ects  of  trouble  in  a  soul  out  of  Christ.  Con- 
tentment is  not  only  the  duty  but  the  privilege  of  believers,  2  Sam. 
XV.  25,  26.  To  be  content  with  a  full  cup  is  nothing ;  but  grace  can 
make  a  man  content  with  an  empty  house  and  empty  coff'ers.  And 
what  does  a  man  want,  whose  spirit  is  brought  down  to  his  lot  ? 
Many  a  man  has  been  so  well  content  with  the  cross,  that  he  would 
not  have  exchanged  with  them  that  were  at  ease,  for  the  crown. 

3.  Courage  and  holy  boldness,  instead  of  discouragement,  Acts 


TRIBULATION  IN  THE  WORLD.  341 

iv.  13.  Christ  raiseth  the  hearts  of  his  people  in  trouble.  He 
that  is  feeble  among  them  at  that  day  shall  be  as  David,  and  the 
house  of  David  shall  be  as  God,  as  the  angel  of  the  Lord  before 
them.  When  he  says  fear  not,  their  fears  are  dispelled;  their  spirits 
raised  to  do  and  to  suffer  great  things  for  him  without  fear.  And 
never  is  the  believer  so  acquainted  with  Christ's  comforts,  as  in  a 
day  when  fears  are  on  every  side.  He  loves  to  make  them  experi- 
ence that  his  grace  is  sufficient  for  them. 

4.  Confidence  as  to  the  event,  in  opposition  to  anxiety  and  de- 
spair. "For  the  which  cause,"  says  Paul,  "I  also  suffer  these 
things ;  nevertheless,  I  am  not  ashamed :  for  I  know  whom  I  have 
believed,  and  I  am  persuaded  that  he  is  able  to  keep  that  which  I 
have  committed  unto  him  against  that  day."  Trouble  stirs  up  the 
godly  to  wait  on  the  Lord,  and  roll  their  concerns  on  hira,  and  lay 
down  all  their  cares  in  his  bosom.  This  has  the  promise,  for  he 
hath  said,  "  Delight  thyself  also  in  the  Lord,  and  he  shall  give  thee 
the  desires  of  thine  heart.  Commit  thy  way  unto  the  Lord,  and  he 
shall  bring  it  to  pass."  There  is  light  in  Goshen,  when  there  is 
darkness  over  all  the  rest  of  the  land.  When  providences  are  a 
dark  cloud,  which  they  cannot  see  through,  faith  goes  to  the  pro- 
mises, and  there  they  get  a  sight  of  a  blessed  outgate,  and  will  say, 
he  has  done,  and  will  do  all  things  well. 

5.  Joy  in  trouble  instead  of  sorrow.  They  have  a  sweet  feast. 
Our  rejoicing  is  this,  the  testimony  of  our  conscience.  They  are  not 
stocks,  to  stand  unmoved  at  the  loss  of  goods,  liberty,  and  the  like ; 
but  their  sorrow  is  only  as  it  were  a  quashed  sorrow,  it  is  so  drowned 
iu  spiritual  joy.  They  are  as  sorrowful,  yet  always  rejoicing.  Paul 
and  Silas  sang  praises  at  midnight  in  the  prison,  and  the  Hebrews 
took  joyfully  the  spoiling  of  their  goods.  Strengthening  grace  will 
bear  them  out  in  their  singing,  as  long  as  the  enemy's  malice  will 
bear  them  in  their  raging.  The  saints  are  strengthened  with  all 
might,  according  to  his  glorious  power,  unto  all  patience,  and  long 
suffering,  with  joyfulness, 

6.  Prosperity  of  soul.  The  suffering  Christian  is  by  Christ  made 
like  Gains,  to  prosper,  and  be  in  health  in  his  soul.  This  Paul  felt, 
for  says  he,  thougli  our  outward  man  perish,  yet  the  inward  man  ia 
renewed  day  by  day.  The  world  is  a  very  rugged  physician  to  the 
godly;  but  the  truth  is,  they  never  thrive  better  than  when  under 
its  hand.     We  are  now, 

II.  To  speak  of  the  enjoyment  of  this  peace  in  peace.  The  text 
says,  In  me  ye  might,  rather  may  have  peace.  This  lets  us  see  that 
something  must  be  done,  in  order  to  get  it.  There  is  a  twofold 
enjoyment  of  this  peace  in  trouble. 


342  BELIEVERS  HAVING 

1.  An  enjoyment  of  it  in  the  root  and  seed  of  it.  In  this  respect 
believers  always  have  this  peace  in  trouble.  For  the  meek  shall 
inherit  the  earth,  and  shall  delight  themselves  in  the  abundance  of 
peace.  They  are  like  the  heir  while  a  minor,  having  a  right  to  an 
estate,  though  there  be  not  a  farthing  in  his  pocket. 

2.  An  enjoyment  of  it  by  actual  tasting  thereof,  when  the  trou- 
bled miud  is  really  pacified,  the  winds  rebuked,  and  God  creates  a 
calm  in  the  soul,  giving  them  all  these  sure,  whereby  they  are  made 
happy.  Here  I  lay  down  these  two  conclusions,  imported  in  this 
phrase : 

1.  The  believer  is  liable  to  a  want  of  inward  peace  in  a  time  of 
outward  trouble.  This  is  manifest  in  Job,  Heraan,  and  others. 
Sometimes  the  wiud  blows  upon  them  from  all  quarters  at  once. 
And  thus  it  is  ordinarily  with  them  in  such  cases  as  these  : — 1. 
When  the  disease  to  be  cured  is  grown  inveterate.  Every  puff  of 
•wind  will  not  rend  rocks,  nor  blow  up  oaks  by  the  roots.  Samson 
for  three  several  times  had  seen  Delilah's  deceit,  yet  would  not  take 
warning.  Hence  often  it  is  thus  with  the  Lord's  people  when  the 
storm  rises  first,  where  the  inward  trouble  continues  till  they  renew 
their  repentance.  2.  When  to  allay  their  outward  trouble,  they 
step  aside  out  of  Grod's  way,  yielding  to  the  temptation  to  get  the 
trouble  lessened,  it  is  made  greater  by  the  accession  of  the  want  of 
inward  peace.  Whoso  breaketh  an  hedge,  a  serpent  shall  bite  him. 
This  makes  a  molehill  a  mountain,  for  there  is  no  safety  but  in  an 
upright  way.  3.  When  they  grow  impatient  under  trouble.  The 
Lord  will  have  them  see  where  the  sting  of  trouble  is  ;  and  by 
making  them  feel  the  smart  of  a  wounded  spirit,  will  teach  them 
■what  they  would  not  believe,  namely,  that  a  man  may  bear  his  in- 
firmities, but  a  wounded  spirit  who  can  bear.  4.  When  the  Lord 
intends  to  appear  with  a  more  than  ordinary  measure  of  his  peace 
and  comfort.  The  saddest  conflicts  commonly  go  before  the  greatest 
victory.     It  is  God's  way  to  kill  before  he  cure. 

2.  As  there  is  a  seed  of  inward  peace  in  the  believer's  soul  amidst 
the  greatest  trouble,  so  it  shall  surely  spring  up  at  length,  Mic.  vii. 
8,  9.  There  is  a  heaven  in  their  hottest  hell,  which  will  break  forth 
in  due  time.  Their  light  shall  rise,  and  their  seed  of  joy  spring. 
They  have  great  security  for  this.  I  shall  only  point  at  one  thing 
in  the  text,  that  is  Christ's  designing  it  for  them.  He  is  God,  his 
counsel  shall  stand.  What  he  designs  for  them  they  shall  surely 
get,  especially  considering  he  has  purchased  peace  at  so  dear  a 
rate  to  bestow  on  them.  What  though  their  case  be  low  and 
almost  desperate,  yet  he  can  give  them  peace,  and  speak  peace 
to  them,  even  as  he  spake  light  into  being,  when  darkness  was 


THTBULATIOK  IN  THE  WORLD.  343 

on  the  face  of  the  world.  Though  the  mouth  be  filled  only  with 
complaints,  yet  creating  power  can  make  praises  come  from  the 
same  lips.  "  I  create,"  says  the  Lord,  "  the  fruit  of  the  lips, 
peace  ;  peace  to  him  that  is  afar  off  and  to  him  that  is  near 
and  I  will  heal  him."  "Wherefore,  it  being  God's  design  that 
they  may  have  it,  they  shall  have  it  in  the  worst  of  times. 

ITI.  We  are  to  consider  the  way  of  conveyance  of  this  peace.     It 
is  in  Christ.     This  imports, 

1.  That  we  must  be  in  him  before  we  can  have  this  true  peace. 
All  out  of  this  ark  are  out  of  the  true  peace.  Men  may  have  the 
devil's  peace,  while  they  sleep  in  his  chains.  But  God's  peace  is 
only  to  them  that  lay  hold  on  God's  peace-maker.  Let  him,  says 
God,  take  hold  of  my  strength,  that  he  may  make  peace  with  me. 
What  hast  thou  to  do  with  peace,  0  sinner,  so  long  as  thou  art  out 
of  Christ  ?  For  God  is  their  enemy  who  are  not  in  Christ,  for  by 
him  only  are  we  reconciled  to  God.  Who  can  have  true  peace 
while  God  is  their  enemy,  whose  attributes  do  speak  terror  to  them. 
He  is  just,  holy,  every  where  present,  and  almighty.  He  is  merci- 
ful indeed,  but  only  in  Christ.  Conscience  also  is  their  enemy.  It 
is  God's  deputy,  who  faileth  not  sometimes  to  say  to  the  wicked, 
that  it  shall  be  ill  with  him.  And  though  it  may  be  laid  asleep 
a  while,  yet  that  will  only  make  its  awakening  more  terrible,  and  it 
is  only  Christ's  blood  that  sprinkles  from  an  evil  conscience.  All 
the  creatures  are  likewise  their  enemies.  Christ  is  the  bond  of  the 
creatures,  who  were  set  one  against  another  by  Adam's  sin ;  and 
therefore  it  is  a  benefit  of  the  new  covenant,  peace  with  the  crea- 
tures. Men  out  of  Christ  have  no  more  security  in  the  use  of  the 
creatures,  than  an  usurper  in  his  throne,  against  whom  the  subjects 
will  arm  themselves,  as  soon  as  they  can  dispatch  him  and  shake  off 
his  yoke. 

2.  It  is  by  him,  and  from  him,  they  have  this  peace;  therefore  he 
is  called  our  peace,  Eph.  ii.  14,  and  the  peace,  Mic.  v.  5.  Christ  is 
the  procurer  and  purchaser  of  his  people's  peace.  Their  peace  was 
bought  not  stolen  nor  usurped,  bought  by  his  own  blood.  No 
peace  could  have  been  to  men,  had  he  not  stooped  and  received  the 
blow  of  the  sword  of  justice.  He  denied  himself  to  peace,  that  we 
might  enjoy  it.  He  is  the  maker  of  the  peace,  being  the  great 
peace-maker,  and  the  Mediator  of  the  covenant  betwixt  God  and 
man,  which  is  a  covenant  of  peace.  Peace  on  earth  was  sung  at  his 
birth  ;  and  when  he  is  formed  in  a  soul,  peace  is  made  betwixt  God 
and  that  soul ;  and  by  his  Spirit,  peace  is  created  in  the  soul. 

He  is  the  maintainer  of  the  peace.  "  TIiou  wilt  keep  him  in 
perfect  peace,  whose  mind  is  stayed  on  thee;    because  he  trusteth  in 


344  BELIEVERS  HAVING 

tliee."  So  much  guilt  is  found  in  the  best,  that  they  could  not 
keep  their  peace  a  moment,  wore  there  not  a  continuance  of  it  by 
the  prince  of  peace.  But  by  the  continuance  of  his  intercession, 
and  efficacy  of  his  Spirit,  he  maintains  it. 

He  is  the  restorer  of  their  peace.  "  I  have  seen  his  ways,  and 
will  heal  him :  I  will  lead  him  also,  and  restore  comforts  unto  him 
and  to  his  mourners.  Sometimes  this  peace  is  beat  down  very  low 
by  the  corruption  of  the  hearts  of  his  people,  and  the  malice  of  the 
devil.  But  he  brings  it  up  again,  and  the  howling  wilderness  is  as 
the  fruitful  field.  Thus  it  comes  to  pass  that  at  evening  time  it 
shall  be  light. 

He  is  the  perfecter  of  their  peace.  Their  peace  is  but  a  twilight 
peace,  while  here,  Zech.  xiv.  6,  7  ;  but  he  that  hath  begun  it,  will 
not  leave  it  off,  till  he  have  perfected  it.  The  Lord  will  perfect 
that  which  concerneth  them,  and  God  himself  will  wipe  away  all 
tears  from  their  eyes.  As  he  left  not  his  people  till  he  had  seated 
them  in  the  earthly  Jerusalem,  the  city  of  peace,  so  he  will  bring 
his  people  to  the  city  of  peace  above. 

Finally,  He  is  the  storehouse  of  their  peace,  from  which  they  may 
bring  their  peace  in  the  worst  of  times ;  for  which  reason  he  seems 
to  be  called  our  peace.  As  every  drop  of  water  in  a  cup,  is  refresh- 
ing to  a  thirsty  man  ;  so  every  thing  in  Christ,  is  peace  to  the 
believer.  Some  seek  for  peace  by  their  friends,  beg  it  or  buy  it  from 
their  enemies,  but  the  believer  fetched  all  from  Christ. 

IV.  We  are  to  shew  what  sort  of  peace  it  is,  which  we  may  have 
in  Christ. 

1.  A  solid  peace.  The  peace  of  the  wicked  is  not  solid  peace. 
It  is  rather  the  name  than  the  thing.  It  will  not  abide  a  trial,  and, 
like  a  thief,  it  runs  away  before  the  searchers.  But  the  godly 
man's  peace  in  Christ  will  abide  the  trial,  and  the  more  it  be  exa- 
mined the  surer  it  proves. 

2.  It  is  a  tender  peace.  It  is  easily  marred  by  sin.  Conscious- 
ness of  guilt  interrupts  this  peace.  David's  heart  smote  him  for 
his  sin  in  numbering  the  people.  It  is  a  tender  bud  of  heaven,  that 
cannot  endure  with  sin,  especially  sin  against  light.     Yet, 

3.  It  is  a  strong  peace  in  respect  of  troubles.  This  peace  made  a 
holy  man  say,  I  fear  nothing  but  sin.  Many  assaults  are  made 
against  the  soul,  to  take  away  its  peace ;  but  it  will  stand  against 
tribulation,  scourging,  a  prison  and  stocks,  spoiling  of  goods,  yea, 
death  itself  cannot  take  it  away. 

4.  It  is  a  governing  peace.  "  Let  the  peace  of  God  rule  in  your 
hearts,"  says  the  apostle,  "  to  the  which  also  ye  are  called  in  one 
body  ;   and  be  ye  thankful."     The  passions  and  affections  of  the 


TRIBUIiATION  IN  THE  WORLD,  345 

soul,  when  they  would  mutiny,  this  peace  of  God  stills  them,  and 
guards  the  heart  of  the  believer,  which  is  sadly  exposed  to  danger, 
when  without  this  peace.  But  the  peace  of  Grod  which  passeth 
all  understanding,  shall  keep  your  hearts  and  minds,  through  Jesus 
Christ. 

5.  A  lasting  peace.  "  Peace,"  said  Jesus,  "  I  leave  with  you, 
my  peace  I  give  unto  you :  not  as  the  world  giveth,  give  I  unto  you. 
Let  not  your  heart  be  troubled  neither  let  it  be  afraid."  How  soon 
is  the  candle  of  the  wicked  put  out,  and  their  peace  gone ;  but  this 
peace  is  everlasting.  Though  it  may  run  under  ground  a  while,  yet 
it  breaks  up  again,  and  never  sees  an  end,  as  streaming  from  the 
eternal  fountain  of  peace.     It  now  remains, 

V.  To  confirm  the  point.  Well  may  we  have  peace  in  Christ, 
though  the  world  should  be  turned  upside  down,  and  all  should  go 
unto  confusion ;  for, 

1.  If  we  look  to  hira,  we  may  see  God  reconciled  to  us  in  him, 
Ephes.  ii.  15,  16,  God  testified  of  him,  that  in  him  he  was  well 
pleased,  namely,  with  all  that  were  in  him.  The  believer  beholding 
his  wounds  may  say,  these  have  procured  my  peace,  his  blood  has 
pacified  God's  anger  against  me.  What  then  though  the  world  rage, 
God  is  well  pleased  ;  though  the  earth  be  covered  with  blackness, 
heaven  is  no  more  lowering.  Is  not  this  enough.  Paul  triumphed 
here,  Rom.  viii.  31 — 39.  Though  the  world  proclaim  war  against 
me,  Christ  proclaims  God  is  at  peace  with  me.  Two  things  here, 
may  give  a  man  peace  in  the  midst  of  trouble.  1,  The  preciousness, 
and  excellency  of  this  peace  with  God.  What  angel  or  man  can 
tell  the  worth  of  it.  When  it  was  bought,  it  cost  an  infinite  price. 
Souls  under  apprehensions  of  wrath  know  something  of  its  value 
that  it  is  better  than  ten  thousand  worlds.  Then  no  thanks  to  the 
Christian,  though  he  digest  some  petty  losses  in  the  world  peaceably, 
while  this  jewel  is  in  his  possession.  2.  The  durableness  of  this 
peace.  It  is  everlasting.  Let  men  rage  and  devils  too,  they  may 
take  away  outward  peace,  but  this  they  cannot  carry  away.  If  an 
army  were  coming  to  burn  and  slay  all  in  their  way,  and  you  were 
persuaded  that  Ufej  should  destroy  nothing  of  yours  but  that  which 
is  very  little  worth,  might  not  you  have  peace  ;  so  may  the  Christian. 

2.  In  Christ  we  see  God  upon  our  side.  He  is  not  only  reconciled 
in  him,  but  he  is  entered  into  covenant  with  us.  His  friends,  are 
our  friends,  and  our  enemies  are  his.  This  made  David  fearless  in 
the  midst  of  troubles,  Psal.  xxiii.  and  cxxviii.  6.  Hence  the 
apostle  bids  defiance  to  all  who  could  attack  him,  Rom.  viii. 
31.  May  we  not  say  then,  greater  is  he  that  is  in  us,  than  he 
that   is   in   the   world.      Here   all  the   attributes   of  God   stream 


346  BELIEVERS  HAVING 

forth  peace  to  the  believer,  so  that  he  may  sing  that  song,  "  Spring 
up  0  well,  sing  ye  unto  it."  Enemies  shall  not  prevail  nor 
escape,  for  he  is  just,  wise,  powerful,  and  true.  Two  things  here, 
should  be  observed.  1.  He  is  a  present  help.  Psalm  xlvi.  1.  Many 
a  one  perishes  because  help  is  far  off.  But  be  the  believer  where  he 
will,  his  help  is  at  hand.  He  is  ever  within  a  cry  of  him.  Yea,  he 
is  in  him,  dwelling  in  him  by  his  Spirit.  2.  He  is  a  powerful  help. 
Men  may  be  near  at  hand  to  their  friends,  and  not  be  able  to  help  them 
in  an  evil  day ;  but  nothing  is  too  hard  for  him.  He  is  also  a  skilful 
helper.  Men  may  be  both  near  and  able,  yet  for  want  of  skill  may 
spoil  the  work  ;  but  he  is  wise  in  heart.  The  believer  may  peaceably 
leave  the  time,  way,  and  manner  of  deliverance  on  him. 

3.  In  Christ  we  see  God  iu  our  nature;  God  made  man;  Immanuel, 
God  with  us.  This  is  a  noble  subject  of  meditation,  the  wonder  of 
angels  and  saints  in  glory ;  an  employment  which  might  give  us  peace 
in  the  midst  of  trouble,  if  it  were  no  other  way,  but  by  driving  our 
thoughts,  and  powerfully  fixing  our  affections  ou  this  admirable 
object.  This  gave  Stephen  peace.  But  besides,  when  men  as  incar- 
nate devils,  are  terrible  to  us,  we  may  look  on  Christ,  and  there 
with  comfort  see  God  incarnate  ;  see  him  through  the  vail  of  the 
flesh  of  Christ.  When  a  wicked  man  is  in  tribulation,  he  is  a  most 
miserable  creature.  Man  is  terrible  to  him,  and  God  is  terrible  to 
him,  because  he  cannot  behold  him  in  a  mediator.  But  it  is  not  so 
with  a  believer.  May  he  not  then  have  peace  in  trouble.  Again, 
as  Christ  is  a  man,  he  has  a  sympathy  with  his  people,  and  as  God 
he  is  able  to  help  them.  Yea,  in  all  their  afflictions  he  is  afflicted 
well  then  may  the  believer  roll  all  upon  him. 

4.  Christ  suffered  from  the  world  aud  overcame  it.  "  I,"  said  he, 
"  have  overcome  the  world."  While  he  was  in  it,  he  had  no  easy 
life.  His  life  was  a  life  of  tribulation,  and  at  length  they  nailed 
him  to  the  cross.  Here  the  believer  may  find  peace.  May  it  not 
create  peace,  amidst  tribulation  in  the  world,  to  think  that  the  way 
of  tribulation  in  the  world,  was  the  way  by  which  Christ  went 
through  it  to  his  glory.  Shall  we  not  follow  him  courageously  and 
contentedly.  Did  they  treat  the  master  so,  and  will  not  the  servant 
be  coutent  with  his  master's  entertainmet.  Will  we  follow  him 
grudgingly,  who  went  through  so  cheerfully.  Again,  may  it  not 
give  peace,  to  think  that  he  suffered  to  redeem  us  from  the  wrath  of 
God.  Truly,  this  will  make  the  gracious  soul  joyful,  to  have  but 
an  occasion  of  bearing  the  wrath  of  the  world  for  his  sake  and 
cause.  It  must  be  comfortable,  also,  to  think  that  the  bitter  dregs 
are  taken  out  of  the  cup.  Afflictions  and  death  are  unstinged. 
There  is  no  poison  in  the  cup,  this  may  well  make  you  quietly  drink 


TRIBULATION  IN  THE  WORLD.  847 

it.  Your  Master  bids  you  ride  no  ford,  but  what  he  went  throu}j;h 
before  you.  If  the  world  mock  and  reproach  you,  so  did  it  do  to 
hiru  ;  if  it  put  you  to  death  itself,  as  traitors  and  rebels,  so  did  it  do 
to  him. 

5.  The  believer  may  have  peace  in  Christ,  in  the  midst  of  out- 
ward trouble,  because  he  guides  all  himself.  Is.  lii.  7.  The 
Lord  reigneth,  let  the  earth  be  glad.  Christ  has  fought  through  his 
enemies,  and  has  reached  the  throne.  He  sways  the  mediatory 
sceptre  for  the  good  of  the  church.  Many  things  here,  speak  peace 
to  those  that  are  in  him,  in  the  worst  of  times  ;  for  Christ  as  a  king 
is  engaged  to  protect  his  church  and  people,  Ephes.  i.  22.  His  sub- 
jects are  the  Father's  gift  to  him,  of  which  he  is  to  make  account, 
John  xvii.  12.  He  is  their  shepherd,  Psalm  xxiii.  1.  Enemies  can 
never  be  able  to  make  him  a  king  without  subjects,  a  head  without  a 
body.  The  bush  burning  not  consumed,  why  ?  Grod  is  in  the  midst 
of  it.  He  wants  neither  wisdom,  will,  nor  power  to  help  his  people. 
"Whatsoever  they  meet  with,  comes  from  him.  The  Father 
judgeth  no  man,  but  hath  committed  all  judgment  to  the  Son.  The 
most  bitter  cross  comes  through  his  hands  to  them.  God  sent 
Joseph  to  Egypt.  Assyria  is  but  God's  rod  and  axe.  Why  should 
believers  fear,  when  Christ  lets  blood  of  them.  Though  he  borrow 
the  lance  from  the  enemy,  yet  it  is  in  a  friend's  hand.  It  shall  not 
go  one  hair-breadth  deeper  than  he  sees  necessary. 

He  overrules  enemies.  He  has  a  bridle  on  their  jaws,  and  the  re- 
mainder of  their  wrath  he  will  restrain.  He  has  a  negative  vote  on 
them.  "  Who  is  he  that  saith  and  it  cometh  to  pass,  when  the  Lord 
commandeth  it  not  ?"  The  devil  cannot  enter  swine,  without  his 
permission.  They  cannot  put  one  drop  more  into  his  people's  cup 
than  he  allows.  Rev.  ii.  10.  Hence,  when  enemies  are  consulting 
the  ruin  of  his  church,  God  is  said  to  laugh,  Psal.  ii.  He  makes 
the  devil's  servants  run  his  errands.  The  Philistines'  kine  bring 
home  the  ark.  Joseph  must  be  exalted.  His  envious  brethren  must 
post  him  on  to  it.  The  gospel  must  go  through  the  world,  and 
therefore  persecutors  must  scatter  the  preachers.  Many  a  time  the 
church  rises,  just  when  enemies  are  laying  on  the  gravestone,  as  it 
was  when  the  service  dook  was  pressed  upon  us.  Jesus  must  reign 
till  he  bath  put  all  enemies  under  his  feet.  Behold  the  assurance  of 
it,  Psalm  ex.  1.  Never  weapon  prospered  against  his  people.  The 
day  will  come,  they  shall  all  stand  on  the  field  as  conquerors,  and 
share  of  his  throne. 

In  him  they  have  divine  promises  suited  to  any  case  in  which  they 
can  be.  These  are  the  silken  cords  let  down  from  heaven,  by  which  the 
believer  may  well  venture  to  be  drawn  through  a  sea  of  blood,  2 

YoL.  lY.  z 


348  BKUKVEKS  HAVING 

Peter  i.  4,  Psalm  csix.  49.  The  word  of  a  general  will  animate 
soldiers,  and  Christ's  promise  may  well  animate  his  people.  What 
are  you  afraid  of?  Is  it  of  your  own  weakness,  which  may  make 
you  sin  and  yield  to  the  temptation,  that  may  make  you  shrink,  and 
leap  back  fi'om  the  cross.  Mind  his  promise,  Isaiah  xl.  30,  31  ; 
2  Cor.  xii.  9.  Are  you  afraid  of  the  apostacy  ?  Truly  they  who  are 
built  on  the  sand  shall  fall,  but  not  those  who  are  built  on  a  rock, 
Matth.  xxi.  18 ;  2  Tim.  ii.  18,  19.  Will  a  man  who  can  prevent  it, 
suflfer  a  limb  to  be  drawn  from  him,  though  it  be  very  weak  ?  No, 
surely;  John  x.  27 — 29.  Are  you  afraid  of  his  forsaking  you  ?  Fear 
it  not ;  Heb.  xiii.  5  ;  Isaiah  xliii.  2.  Is  he  with  you,  then  he  shall 
be  with  you.  Mark  David's  reasoning,  "Yea,  though  I  walk  through 
the  valley  of  the  shadow  of  death,  I  will  fear  no  evil ;  for  thou  art 
with  me  ;  thy  rod  and  staff  they  comfort  me.  Why  did  he  take 
thee  by  the  hand,  if  he  thought  ever  to  forsake  thee  on  any  emer- 
gency. He  knew  all  your  faults  from  eternity.  Do  you  fear  that 
he  intends  evil  to  you.  Perhaps  you  think  that  it  is  your  untender- 
ness,  barrenness,  or  the  like,  that  is  like  to  raise  the  storm.  God 
will  have  your  sin  to  find  you  out.  Be  it  so;  yet  consider  that  all 
things  shall  work  together  for  good  to  them  that  love  God,  to  them 
who  are  the  called  according  to  his  purpose.  In  the  evening  it  shall 
be  light.  Let  the  web  of  Providence  be  once  woven  out,  and  though 
there  be  many  black  threads  in  it,  it  shall  appear  a  goodly  mixture. 

In  him  we  may  have  whatever  is  necessary  for  throughbearing  in 
an  evil  day.  He  is  able  and  willing  to  bear  our  expences,  why  then 
should  we  be  disturbed  at  the  sight  of  the  journey.  There  is  light 
to  be  had  in  him.  He  is  the  light  of  the  world.  No  case  so  per- 
plexed, but  he  can  resolve  it,  Micah  vii.  7 — 9.  He  is  the  counsellor, 
one  whose  advice  is  ready  in  time  of  need.  There  is  strength  in  him. 
He  is  the  storehouse  of  the  Christian's  strength,  open  at  all  times, 
but  especially  in  time  of  trouble,  2  Tim.  iv.  16, 17-  He  is  the  friend 
best  known  in  adversity. 

Lastly,  Consider  the  Scriptures  hold  out  Christ  as  one  in  whom 
peace  is  to  be  enjoyed,  and  that  is  confirmed  by  the  experience  of 
the  saints.  He  is  the  Saviour  both  for  temporal  and  eternal  salva- 
tion. The  ark  was  a  type  of  Christ,  the  sanctuary,  the  cities  of  re- 
fuge, Isa.  viii.  14 ;  Heb.  vi.  18 ;  Isa.  xxxii.  2.  The  name  of  the 
Lord  is  a  strong  tower,  the  righteous  flee  unto  it  and  are  safe.  He 
is  the  peace ;  they  that  are  in  him  dwell  in  peace,  Mic.  v.  5  ;  Psal. 
vi.  2 — 4.  He  has  chambers  of  protection  for  his  own,  into  which  he 
invites  them  to  enter,  Isa.  xxvi.  20 ;  Psal.  xxvii.  5. 

Use  1.  Of  information. 

1.  Here  see  the  superlative  excellence  of  Jesus  Christ.    To  recom- 


TRIBULATION  IN"  THE  WORLD.  349 

mend  him  to  your  souls,  may  we  not  say,  "  Who  is  like  unto  thee,  O 
Lord  ?"  and  conclude,  that  all  the  things  that  may  be  desired,  are 
not  to  be  compared  to  him.  Such  days  may  come,  as  that  we  can 
have  no  peace  in  the  world.  Our  means  may  fail  us,  our  own  wisdom 
can  find  no  outgate,  no  comfort  in  friends  and  relations ;  nay,  but  in 
the  worst  of  times,  in  Christ  we  may  have  peace. 

2.  See  here  Christ's  all-sufficiency.  If  we  may  have  peace  in  him 
when  we  can  have  it  no  where  else,  then  he  can  be  to  us  instead  of 
all,  better  than  all,  and  is  commensurable  to  the  desires  of  the  soul. 
Nothing  can  be  wanting  in  him,  in  whom  alone  the  soul  may  rejoice 
when  striped  naked  of  all  comforts. 

3.  The  mystery  of  a  Christian's  life  in  tribulation.  Many  have 
taken  joyfully  the  spoiling  of  their  goods;  have  gone  to  death  as  to 
their  marriage.  What !  were  they  stupied,  and  without  natural 
affection  ?  No,  they  had  peace  in  him.  They  had  meat  to  eat, 
which  the  world  knew  not  of. 

4.  The  best  furniture  for  an  evil  day  is  faith  in  Christ,  uniting  us 
to  him.  Would  you  know  how  to  be  safe,  prepare  an  ark  ;  flee  to 
the  Lord  Jesus,  and  then  you  may  defy  the  world,  devil,  death  and 
hell. 

Use  2.     Of  exhortation. 

1.  To  you  that  are  out  of  Christ.  0  come  to  Christ,  that  in  him 
you  may  have  peace  in  a  time  of  trouble.  Here  is  a  sanctuary 
opened  to  you.     Consider, 

L  While  you  are  out  of  Christ,  tribulation  may  turn  yon  out  of  a 
profession  too,  as  it  did  the  stony  ground  hearers;  and  dreadful  is 
the  case  of  apostates,  they  pierce  themselves  through  with  many 
sorrows.  Tribulation  will  discover  your  naughtiness,  John  xv. 
2—6. 

2.  Turn  you  what  way  you  will,  the  Lord  will  wind  a  yoke  of  tri- 
bulation about  your  neck.  When  national  judgments  come,  you 
must  lay  your  account  with  a  share  of  them,  Matth.  iii.  10 ;  Amos 
ix.  9,  10.  Your  trouble  will  be  very  heavy,  because  the  curse  of 
God  will  be  in  it,  and  because  you  will  get  it  all  to  bear.  The 
Lord  is  not  with  you,  you  are  alone  as  Saul  was.  0  it  is  sad  to 
have  darkness  covering  both  the  face  of  the  earth  and  heavens. 
Death  is  coming,  and  then  the  Lord  shall  trouble  you.  Your  false 
peace  will  then  be  at  an  end.  No  peace  with  God,  but  through 
Christ. 

2.  To  the  godly  that  are  in  Christ,  we  would  say,  labour  ye  to  be 
in  such  a  frame,  as  that  you  may  have  the  actual  enjoyment  of  that 
peace  which  you  may  have  in  Christ  in  tribulation.  That  you  may 
attain  it,  take  these  advices, 

z2 


350  BKLIEVERS  irAVINO,  &C. 

1.  Labour  to  get  a  sight  of  your  interest  in  Christ.  Give  all  dili- 
gence to  make  your  calling  and  election  sure.  This  makes  a  man 
bold  as  a  lion,  2  Tim.  i.  12.  This  carried  the  irartyrs  through 
death  ;  they  knew  in  whom  they  had  believed.  This  inflames  love, 
which  is  of  mighty  influence  to  carry  persons  through  tribulation. 
To  a  person  in  trouble,  and  under  doubts,  it  is  like  the  ship  which 
carried  Paul  and  his  companions,  when  it  stuck  fast,  and  remained 
immoveable.  This  is  a  spring  of  joy,  and  will  make  the  soul  abhor 
sinful  capitulations  for  deliverance. 

2.  Labour  to  get  yourselves  wrapt  up  in  a  promise  for  a  time  of 
tribulation,  Gen.  xxxii.  12.  "When  the  waters  of  trouble  are  coming 
on,  he  is  a  wise  man  who  cleaves  to  a  branch  of  the  tree  of  life.  A 
promise  has  been  meet  and  drink,  and  all  to  a  Christian  ;  even  a 
song  to  them  in  distress.  They  shall  not  be  ashamed  in  the  evil 
time,  and  in  the  days  of  famine  they  shall  be  satisfied. 

3.  Acquaint  yourselves  well  with  the  Scriptures.  "  Unless," 
says  David,  "  Thy  law  had  been  my  delights,  I  should  then  have 
perished  in  mine  afflction."  The  Scriptures  are  written  for  this  end, 
for  our  learning  :  that  we  through  patience  and  comfort  of  the 
Scriptures,  might  have  hope.  A  good  Scripurist,  a  good  Christian 
in  an  evil  day  :  only  you  must  study  to  experience  the  power  of 
them  on  your  hearts. 

4.  Let  there  be  no  standing  controversy  betwixt  God  and  you. 
If  you  regard  iniquity  in  your  heart,  the  Lord  will  not  hear  you. 
A  guilty  conscience  in  an  evil  day,  is  a  sad  companion,  as  it  was 
with  Joseph's  brethren.  It  puts  a  sting  in  the  outward  trouble. 
Therefore  renew  your  repentance,  and  mourn  over  your  backslid- 
ings,  and  apply  to  the  blood  of  Jesus. 

5.  Study  the  practice  of  mortification.  Labour  to  be  mortified  to 
your  wordly  goods,  Jer.  xlv.  5.  The  poor  man  must  have  grace  to 
be  mortified  to  his  cottage,  as  well  as  the  rich  to  their  mansions. 
You  must  also  labour  to  be  mortified  to  your  ease,  Heb.  xi.  25.  It 
were  not  unreasonable  for  people  at  such  a  time,  to  ask  themselves 
how  they  could  take  with  Jacob's  bed.  Gen.  xxviii.  11.  Micaiah's 
food,  1  Kings  xxii.  27.  Peter's  attendants,  John  xxi.  18;  and  the 
three  children's  lodging,  Dan.  iii.  You  must  be  mortified  to  your 
life,  Luke  xiv.  26.  Die  to  your  life  now,  if  you  would  have  that 
peace.    Be  familiar  with  Job's  acquaintance,  Job  xvii.  14.     Amen. 


ANGER  NOT  TO  BE,  &C.  351 

Exercise  and  Addition,  February  28,  1712. 
ANGER  NOT  TO  BE  SINFULLY  INDULGED. 

SERMON  XXXIII. 

Ephesians  iv.  26,  27, 

Se  anifry,  and  sin  not  ;  let  not  the  sun  go  down  upon  your  wrath  ; 
neither  give  place  to  the  devil 

The  apostle  is  now  on  some  particulars  of  the  old  man  that  is  to  be 
put  off,  aud  of  the  new  man  which  is  to  be  put  on.  In  the  former 
verse  he  dehorts  them  lying,  and  exhorts  to  the  speaking  of  truth. 
lu  the  text,  he  lays  before  us  our  duty  with  respect  to  anger.  We 
may  take  up  the  words  in  three  parts  :  1.  We  have  the  passion  kept 
within  its  due  bounds.  Commended  say  some  :  allowed  or  permitted 
rather,  say  others.  "  Be  angry."  2.  The  inordinate  passion 
simply  condemned  in  its  beginnings,  as  well  as  in  its  progress, 
**  sin  not ;"  namely,  in  your  passion.  It  is  condemned  particularly 
in  its  progress  and  continuance.  "  Let  not  the  sun  go  down  upon 
your  wrath."  3.  The  reason  why  the  inordinate  passion  is  con- 
demned :  it  is  a  giving  place  to  the  devil. 

The  first  thing  laid  before  us  in  the  text  is,  anger  kept  within  its 
due  bounds :  "  Be  angry,  and  sin  not."  Some  will  have  these  words 
token  out  of  Psal.  iv.  4,  which  we  render,  "stand  in  awe."  The 
Hebrew  word,  some  translate  simply,  be  moved.  It  signifies  to  be 
moved,  either  with  anger  or  fear.  The  septoagint  reads  it,  be 
angry,  &c.  Thus  our  English  rage,  answers  it  both  in  sound  aud 
sense ;  and  accordingly  our  translators  render  the  same  word  rage, 
Prov.  xxix.  9;  Dan.  iii.  13.  Yet,  on  the  other  hand,  it  cannot  be 
denied,  but  it  signifies  also  to  be  moved  with  fear,  Isa.  xxxii.  11, 
"  be  troubled,"  &c. ;  Deut.  xxviii.  63,  "  a  trembling  heart."  But  if 
you  consider  the  scope  of  both  places,  they  seem  to  be  very  dif- 
ferent. The  Psalmist  proposeth  that,  "  stand  in  awe,"  or  "  be 
moved,"  as  a  check  to  his  enemies  sinning  in  persecuting  the  godly 
man,  whom  God  has  set  apart  for  himself.  The  apostle  proposeth 
his  "  sin  not,"  as  a  check  on  the  passion  of  anger  in  ourselves,  tiiat 
it  go  not  out  of  order.  Therefore,  I  suppose,  that  if  the  apostle  has 
any  eye  in  this,  to  that  of  the  Psalmist,  it  is  not  by  way  of  citation, 
but  at  most  an  allusion. 

1  see  little  reason  wliy  these  words  should  be  taken  rather  as  a 
concession  or  permission,  than  a  command,     li  is  nowise  like  thai, 


352  ANGEll  NOT  XO   BE 

Oen.  ii.  16.  It  is  not  left  to  our  option,  wlietlier  to  be  angry  or 
not,  wlien  there  is  a  just  cause.  Coldness  in  God's  matters,  is  liatc- 
fill  stupidity.  The  passions  in  the  soul,  are  as  winds  in  the  air.  If 
the  winds  blow  not  at  all,  or  too  calmly,  they  leave  the  ship  at  a 
great  disadvantage ;  though  it  is  sad  when  they  blow  so  violent  as 
to  dash  her  upon  the  rocks.  And  what  though  anger  in  itself  is 
neither  good  nor  evil  ?  The  same  may  be  said  of  love  and  other 
passions  which  are  not  in  themselves  evil,  as  envy  is;  yet  doubtless 
it  is  a  command,  "  Love  as  brethren."  The  apostle  here,  is  direct- 
ing us  in  practice,  not  what  to  think  of  anger  in  the  abstract' 
which  is  never  found  in  a  subject,  but  vested  with  its  due  circum- 
stances, and  then  it  is  either  holy,  good  and  just;  or  else  it  is 
irregular  and  impious.  Thus  the  meaning  must  be,  be  holily  angry, 
but  not  sinfully. 

As  for  what  is  merely  natural  in  anger,  depending  upon  the  body 
only,  we  leave  it  to  philosophers  to  explain  it.  As  for  what  con- 
cerns the  soul  and  conscience  in  it,  I  take  anger  to  be  a  commotion 
of  the  spirit,  with  hatred  of,  and  grief  for  an  injury,  and  desire  of 
revenge ;  or  to  express  it  more  softly,  a  desire  of  the  vindication  of 
the  injured  party.  Every  one  may  consult  his  own  breast,  and  find 
it  so.     I  shall  consider  this  as  in  holy  anger.     And  there  is  in  it, 

1.  A  commotion  of  the  spirit,  which  ariseth  from  the  apprehen- 
sion of  a  real  injury;  for  if  it  be  only  imaginary  it  is  sinful.  This 
is  necessary  to  stir  up  a  man's  desire  to  see  the  wrong  rectified. 
All  commotion  of  a  man's  spirit  is  not  sinful.  Whoever  feels  this 
holy  anger  in  him,  will  find  it  answers  the  name,  an  anger,  vexa- 
tion, or  trouble  of  spirit.  As  Lot,  whose  soul  in  his  anger  against 
the  sins  of  the  Sodomites,  "  was  vexed  with  their  filthy  conversa- 
tion." So  did  Paul  encounter  the  stoics  at  Athens,  not  with  stupid 
apathy,  but  "  a  spirit  stirred  in  him,"  Acts  xvii.  16.  Cast  into  a 
holy  paroxysm,  as  the  word  signifies.  Yea,  our  Lord  himself, 
rented  this  in  his  angry  looks:  "He  looked  round  about  him  with 
anger,  being  grieved  for  the  hardness  of  their  hearts,"  Mark  iii.  5. 
Nay,  behold  the  holy  height  of  it  in  the  Holy  One,  when  he  said  to 
them  that  sold  doves  in  the  temple,  "Take  these  things  hence; 
make  not  my  Father's  house  an  house  of  merchandise."  It  was 
good  Eli's  want  of  this  zeal,  which  was  the  ruin,  first  of  his  sons, 
and  then  of  himself,  1  Sam.  iii.  13.  He  restrained  them  not, 
(Hebrew).  Did  not  thraw  his  brows,  or  gloom  upon  them.  Old 
age,  it  is  like,  had  wrinkled  them;  but  he  had  not  as  li  uch  zeal 
as  to  wrinkle  them  in  holy  anger  against  sin,  and  so  he  restrained 
them  not. 

2.  There  is  hatred   in  it,  not  at  the  pereons  but  at  their  sine, 


SINFULLY  INDULGED.  363^ 

whether  they  be  our  own  sins  or  others.  lu  this  respect  it  is  called 
indignation,  2  Cor.  vii.  11.  This  is  most  desirable,  when  it  is  kept 
purely  on  this  object.  That  is  not  the  part  where  we  are  in 
hazard  of  excess,  seeing  we  are  coramanded  to  abhor  that  which  is 
evil,  as  we  would  do  hell  itself. 

3.  There  is  grief  in  it,  Mark  iii.  5.  This  naturally  follows  on 
hatred  of  the  thing,  which  likewise  ariseth  I'rom  a  just  apprehension 
of  the  evil  of  it  in  a  gracious  soul.     And  from  both  ariseth, 

4.  A  desire  of  the  vindication  of  the  right  and  honour  of  the  party 
injured.  This  is  that  which  the  word  OpyiZidre,  used  in  the  text,  most 
properly  points  at,  being  derived  from  opyt],  which  they  say  is  from 
opiyofiai,  to  desire.  The  vindication  of  the  right  and  honour  of  the 
party  injured,  is  that  which  naturally  occurs  as  the  object  of  this 
desire  in  auger.  Now  where  that  cannot  be  done  but  by  punishment 
or  revenge,  there  is  an  holy  anger,  an  appetite  after  revenge,  which 
in  its  due  circumstances  is  a  good  thing,  being  an  execution  of  jus- 
tice, Rom.  xii.  19.  But  seeing  God  has  not  appointed  all  to  be 
ministers  of  justice,  holy  anger  will  not  carry  the  man  without  liis 
sphere,  and  therefore  it  is  still  but  an  appetite  of  revenge  by  the 
hand  that  lias  right,  and  power  to  inflict  it,  and  not  of  that  carnal 
revenge  which  may  satisfy  an  exorbitant  passion,  but  that  which  is 
in  a  way  of  justice  necessary  to  vindicate  the  right  and  honour  of 
the  injured.  But  where  the  party  angry  has  power  to  revenge  all 
disobedience,  this  holy  anger  sets  him  on  the  work  ;  as  it  was  with 
Moses,  Exod.  xxxii.  19 — 29,  and  Phinehas  slaying  Zimri  and  Cosbi, 
and  Jesus  driving  the  buyers  and  sellers  out  of  the  temple.  But 
seeing  there  are  not  a  few  cases  in  which  holy  anger  is  very  neces- 
sary, and  yet  the  humiliation  of  the  party,  or  confession  of  the  fault 
may  salve  the  honour  of  the  injured,  and  a  soft  answer  may  turn 
away  wrath ;  in  holy  anger  that  desire  will  not  proceed  farther,  and 
therefore  I  called  it,  in  the  general,  only  a  desire  of  the  vindication 
of  the  right  and  honour  of  the  injured,  and  not  simply  a  desire  of 
revenge. 

This  we  may  discribe  holy  anger  to  be  a  commotion  of  the  spirit, 
arising  from  the  apprehension  of  a  real  sinful  evil,  with  hatred  of  it, 
grief  for  it,  and  a  regular  desire  of  the  vindication  of  the  right  and 
honour  of  the  injured,  for  the  destruction  of  sin.  Thus  much  for 
holy  anger.     I  proceed  to  the 

Second  thing,  which  is  sinful  anger  condemned.     And, 

I.  We  are  to  consider  it  in  its  rise,  and  the  passion  transgressing 
due  bounds,  which  makes  it  sinful,  however  short,  while   it  lasts. 

Sin  not,  says  the  apostle.  There  is  no  door  opened  for  sin  in  any 
case,  but  tlie  particular  here  aimed  at,  is  that  we  sin  not  in  our 


354  ANoiEK  Nut  to  bk 

anger ;  tliat  a  fire  from  hell  rise  not  in  onr  breasts,  instead  of  a  fire 
froin  heaven.  We  must  not  suppose  that  these  words  import  a 
power  in  man,  hy  any  grace  given  in  this  life,  to  order  his  anger  in 
any  case,  so  as  to  be  sinless  in  the  eye  of  the  law.  The  most  pnre 
Are  that  ever  burnt  in  the  heart  of  any  man  but  the  mau  Christ, 
wanted  not  its  smoke.  But  though  the  law  of  God  is  not  the  measure 
of  our  strength,  yet  it  is  the  rule  of  our  duty,  and  whatsoever  in  any 
case  goes  beyond  the  bounds  of  it  is  sin.  It  aims  not  at  the  extir- 
pation of  the  passion  of  anger  out  of  our  hearts,  but  says  unto  it 
hitherto  shalt  thou  come,  but  no  farther,  and  here  shall  thy  proud 
waves  be  staid.  But  if  the  passion  break  over  the  bars,  and  be  as 
the  letting  out  of  waters,  be  in  whom  it  will,  the  text  shews  them 
their  transgression  that  they  have  exceeded  ;  even  meek  Moses  in 
his  holy  anger,  breaks  the  tables.  Though  the  defects  in  holy  anger 
may  be  here  condemned,  yet  sinful  anger  seems  to  be  that  which  the 
apostle  calls  7rapopy«r^oe,  and  we  render  wrath,  whereby  he  shews 
what  he  meant  by  his  saying,  sin  not.  He  says  not,  let  not  the  sun 
go  down  fTTi  TTjopyt],  on  your  anger,  but  an  rtj  Trapopyio-juw,  upon  your 
wrath  ;  your  unjust  and  sinful  anger,  which  exceeds  the  due  bounds 
of  anger,  as  the  preposition  in  the  word  imports.  Now  for  clearing 
of  what  this  sinful  anger  is,  we  must  consider  the  due  boundary  of 
holy  and  just  anger,  and  what  is  beyond  these  is  sinful. 

1.  The  grounds  of  holy  anger  are  just  and  weighty,  such  as  God's 
dishonour  by  our  own  sins,  and  the  sins  of  others  2  Cor.  vii. 
11,  Exod.  xxii.  9.  It  must  then  be  sinful  anger,  when  it  is  without 
a  just  ground.  "  Whosoever,"  says  our  Lord,  "  is  angry  with  his 
brother  without  a  cause,  shall  be  in  danger  of  the  judgment." 
Without  a  cause,  eiicr),  that  is  rashly,  without  any  cause  at  all,  or 
vainly,  upon  a  light  or  trival  cause,  which  is  indeed  no  just  cause  of 
anger.  But  the  judgment  is  weak  and  yielding,  and  gives  way  to 
the  passions :  in  both  senses  we  are  said  to  take  God's  name  in 
vain. 

2.  The  degree  of  holy  anger  is  proportioned  to  the  fault..  Thus 
God  himself  is  angry  at  all  sins,  yet  there  are  some  sins  to  which 
he  reserves  the  fierceness  of  wrath.  When  the  anger  then  in  res- 
pect of  degrees,  exceeds  the  measure  of  the  oflfence,  and  men  are 
carried  so  far  beside  themselves,  as  to  turn  about  the  cart  wheel 
on  the  cummin  that  might  be  beat  out  with  the  rod,  then  it  is  sinful 
anger ;  and  therefore  good  Jacob,  when  a-dying,  curses  the  wrath 
of  the  brethren  of  iniquity,  against  the  Shecliemites  because  it  was 
cruel,  destroying  a  whole  city  for  one's  fault.  Such  was  David's 
anger  against  Nabal,  1  Sara,  xxv.,  to  execute,  which,  though  he  had 
vowed  himself  by  vow,  yet  when  he  comes  to  himself  he  breaks,  and 
"blesses  God  for  preventing  him. 


SINFULLY  INDULGED.  355 

3.  Tlie  end  of  holy  anger  wliicli  it  is  directed,  is  the  glory  of  God 
and  the  good  of  our  neighbour,  Prov.  xiii.  24;  John  ii.  16,  17.  Sin- 
ful then  it  must  be,  when  it  is  a  iire  lighting  on  others,  to  make 
them  sacrifices  to  cursed  self,  to  satisfy  the  desires  of  a  proud  (He- 
brew, a  wide  heart,  Prov.  xxvii.  25.)  which  will  never  think  it  gets 
enough  from  others.  "  Proud  and  haughty  scorner  is  his  name,  who 
dealeth  in  proud  wrath." 

4.  The  effects  of  holy  anger  directly  and  indirectly,  are  just  and 
good,  for  the  man  has  rule  over  his  own  spirit,  and  no  holy  affec- 
tion is  inconsistent  Avith  another.  It  fits  him  for  his  duty  to  God 
and  men,  as  may  be  seen  in  the  case  of  Moses  praying  for  the 
people,  Exod.  xxxii.  The  auger  then  must  be  sinful  when  its  effects 
are  hellish,  as  when  it  breaks  out  in  clamour  and  evil  speaking, 
Eph  iv.  31.  Even  meek  Moses  fell  into  a  fit  of  this  sinful  anger, 
"  Because  they  provoked  his  spirit,  so  that  he  spoke  unadvisedly 
with  his  lips."  The  anger  is  sinful  also,  when  it  leaves  a  man  no 
more  master  of  himself,  and  unfits  him  for  duty,  1  Tim.  ii.  8. 

Hence  it  appears  there  is  a  twofold  sinful  anger :  1.  There  is  an 
anger,  which  is  originally,  and  in  itself  sinful;  that,  where  there  is 
no  just  ground  at  all  to  be  angry,  to  which  men's  weakness  of 
judgment  and  strength  of  passion  often  expose  them.  Such  was 
Jonah's  anger,  at  the  withering  of  the  gourd.  This  anger  is  like 
a  river  which  hath  quite  left  its  proper  channel,  and  so  cannot  but  be 
very  pernicious.  2.  There  is  an  anger  accidentally  sinful,  where 
there  is  indeed  just  ground  to  be  angry,  but  by  reason  of  the  corrup- 
tion of  men,  is  carried  beyond  the  proper  bounds.  As  a  river  which 
indeed  still  covers  the  ordinary  channel,  but  so  swells  as  to  over- 
flow all  its  banks.  Such  was  David's  anger  against  Nabal,  1  Sam. 
XXV.  21,  22.  Each  of  these  is  a  Trpoopyianoe,  a  sinful  anger,  of  which 
we  must  beware.  But  what  if  it  arise  in  us,  as  it  may  in  the  best  ? 
Why  then  the  flame  must  be  quickly  quenched,  which  is  the  second 
thing  to  be  considered  anent  sinful  anger.  The  progress  and  con- 
tinuance of  it  is  condemned.  Let  not  the  sun  go  down  upon  your 
wrath.  There  seems  to  be  some  emphasis  in  that  your  wrath  ;  it 
points  at  the  wrath  of  man,  that  worketh  not  the  righteousness  of 
God.  It  is  that  wrath  of  which  Satan  is  father,  and  our  own  cor- 
rupt heart  the  mother.  A  hellish  offspring  that  should  be  stifled  ia 
the  birth,  or  be  taken  as  soon  as  possible  and  dashed  against  the 
stones,  and  not  be  allowed  to  live  till  the  sun  go  down.  It  is 
strange  fire  not  brought  from  the  altar,  but  from  the  common 
hearth  of  a  proud  corrupt  heart,  and  must  be  quenched  speed- 
ily. Let  not  the  sun  go  down  upon  your  wrath  ;  which  is  not 
to  be  understood  as  if  it  might  lawfully  be  kept  up  till  the  sun  go 


366  ANGER  NOT  TO  BE 

down  for  what  is  sinful  in  its  rise,  must  still  be  more  so  in  its  con- 
tinuance. But  it  is  a  proverbial  speech,  the  import  of  which  we  may 
take  up  in  these  two  things:  1.  As  the  sun  with  his  scorching 
heat  hasteth  to  go  down,  so  should  we,  whose  passion  sooner  by  far 
comes  to  its  height  than  the  sun,  make  haste  to  lay  it  aside.  2. 
As  the  sun  going  down  brings  on  the  night,  which  calls  men  to  set 
themselves  to  the  putting  off  their  clothes,  and  going  to  rest ;  so 
should  we  set  ourselves  to  put  off  the  old  man,  and  by  all  means  to 
put  off  anger  with  our  clothes,  that  we  take  it  not  into  the  bed  with 
us,  where  it  is  most  dangerous.  For,  whereas  as  the  light  affords 
variety  of  objects  to  us,  and  so  is  a  friend  to  the  diverting  of  wrath, 
the  darkness  of  the  night  keeps  these  out  of  our  sight,  and  so  leaves 
the  very  spirit  to  feed  on  that  chiefly  which  first  raised  it,  and  so  it 
gets  leave  to  range  through  the  several  methods  of  revenge ;  and  so 
it  is  said  of  the  wicked  "  that  he  deviseth  mischief  upon  his  bed." 
This  I  take  to  be  the  main  thing  aimed  at  in  the  expression. 

Lastly,  We  shall  consider  the  reason.  "  Neither  give  place  to 
the  devil."  That  is,  and  give  not  place  to  the  devil.  It  is  a 
general  precept,  but  is  here  particularly  aimed  at,  the  matter  of  sin- 
ful anger.  Some  read  it,  to  the  calumniator ;  thereby  understand- 
ing the  occasion  given  to  the  wicked  to  reproach  piety,  because  of 
the  sinful  passions  of  professors,  and  the  effects  thereof.  This  is  a 
sad  truth  indeed,  but  we  take  it  rather  as  our  translation  reads  it, 
to  the  devil ;  who  must  needs  have  a  particular  love  to  sinful 
anger :  it  is  so  like  hell,  wherein  men  are  on  fire  with  a  scorching 
heat,  but  in  gross  darkness.  It  refers,  1.  To  the  rise  of  sinful 
anger.  To  give  place  to  it,  is  to  admit  the  devil.  He  will  strive  to 
have  place,  and  so  tempt  us  to  it ;  but  our  yielding  to  the  tempta- 
tion is  to  give  him  place.  2.  It  refers  to  the  progress  and  continu- 
ance of  it.  The  more  it  is  harboured,  the  devil  is  the  farther 
admitted.  He  loves  to  fish  in  muddy  water.  When  he  has  got  the 
fire  kindled,  he  employs  his  bellows  to  blow  it  up,  and  always  to 
make  the  flame  greater  and  greater,  to  the  destruction  of  ourselves 
and  others. 

DocTEiNE  I.  Men  not  only  may,  but  ought  to  be  angry  where 
there  is  just  ground  for  it.  We  know  no  just  ground  for  anger, 
but  the  things  which  are  sinful.  As  for  the  injuries  done  to  ns,  or 
our  fellow  creatures,  they  are  not  real  injuries,  if  they  be  not  sins 
against  the  Lord;  for  no  man  can  break  in  upon  the  second  table, 
but  he  must  break  through  the  first. 

Reasons.  1.  Because  in  that  case,  the  love  and  respect  which 
we  owe  to  God,  who  is  dishonoured,  require  it. 


SINFULLY  INDCLaED.  357 

2.  The  love  which  we  owe  to  ourselves  or  others  who  are  injured, 
requires  it.  For  in  that  case,  it  is  as  it  were  said,  who  is  on  the 
Lord's  side,  and  on  the  side  of  souls  that  are  in  hazard. 

Use  I.  Let  us  then  be  filled  with  holy  indignation  against  our- 
selves, because  of  the  sins  of  our  nature,  hearts,  lips,  and  lives. 

2.  At  the  dishonour  done  to  God  by  others.  Alas  !  we  are 
very  quickly  set  in  a  flame,  if  but  a  word  seem  to  reflect  on  us ;  but 
how  cold  are  we  in  matters  that  dishonour  God.  0  !  that  we  could 
spend  these  arrows,  firebrands,  aud  darts,  of  which  we  are  otherwise 
liberal  enough  on  our  own  and  others  sins. 

Doctrine  II.  Men  should  beware  that  the  fire  of  sinful  anger 
kindle  not  in  their  breasts. 

Reasons.  1.  Because  it  is  evil  in  itself,  and  dishonourable  to 
God  ;  being  the  vomit  of  a  proud  heart  aud  an  unmeekened  spirit. 

2.  Because  it  is  not  only  evil,  but  a  mother  of  evil ;  and  is  not 
only  an  inlet  to  many  mischiefs  to  ourselves  and  others,  but  drives 
men  to  them  to  act  with  vigour.  An  angry  man  stirreth  up  strife, 
and  a  furious  man  aboundeth  in  transgression. 

Use.  Guard  against  sinful  anger  ;  against  being  angry  without 
just  cause.  Let  judgment  always  lead  the  way  to  your  passion. 
He  that  is  slow  to  wrath  is  of  great  understanding  ;  but  he  that  is 
hasty  of  spirit,  exalteth  folly.  Exalts,  hangs  up  a  sign  of  folly  at 
his  own  door,  that  every  one  m&y  know  that  a  fool  dwells  within. 
Again,  when  you  are  angry  on  good  grounds,  be  on  your  guard  lest 
your  anger  degenerate  into  a  sinful  passion.  We  may  be  easily  car- 
ried  too  far,  and  when  the  furnace  of  the  heart  is  hot,  if  we  take  not 
heed,  it  may  soon  come  to  that  to  scorch  aud  burn  up  ourselves  and 
others  too,  instead  of  consuming  their,  or  our  own  evils.  Self  is  most 
ready  to  creep  in,  and  justle  out  all  respect  to  the  honour  of  God, 
and  have  sad  effects.  Even  in  anger  upon  a  just  cause,  we  are  like 
mnn  standing  on  the  edge  of  a  steep  rock,  the  ground  is  firm,  but 
the  head  is  ready  to  grow  giddy,  and  he  to  fall  headlong. 

Consider  the  evil  of  sinful  anger.  L  It  is  a  degree  of  murder. 
"  "Whosoever  is  angry  with  his  brother  without  a  cause,  shall  be  in 
danger  of  the  judgment."  It  is  a  sword  that  stabs  two  at  once,  the 
angry  man  and  the  party  against  whom  he  is  angry.  2.  It  is  a  fit 
of  madness,  in  which  a  man  hath  no  rule  over  his  own  spirit,  till  he 
come  to  himself,  for  he  goes  out  of  himself  in  anger.  3.  It  makes  a 
man  most  unlike  Christ,  who  was  meek  and  lowly.  4.  It  has  most 
bitter  eff'ects.  It  mars  our  access  to  God  in  prayer  ;  makes  us  most 
unmeet  for  divine  communications,  as  the  troubled  water  cannot  re- 
ceive the  image  of  the  sun.     It  exposes  us  to  Satan,  as  a  city  that  is 


358  ANGER  NOT  TO  UK,  &:C. 

broken  down  and  without  walls,  to  tlie  enemy  ;  and  makes  men  in- 
tolerable to  others,  if  they  be  not  all  the  more  masters  of  patience. 

Doctrine  III.  If  sinful  anger  do  enter  our  breasts,  we  must  en- 
deavour to  extinguish  it  quickly,  and  beware  of  nourishing  it. 

It  reproves  those,  who  when  once  that  devil  is  raised  in  them,  can 
hardly  he  go.t  laid  again ;  men  of  an  implacable  temper,  whose 
anger  is  like  fire  in  iron  or  other  solid  matter,  long  ere  it  be  laid 
aside.  If  once  it  get  unto  them,  it  must  go  to  bed  and  rise  with 
them  too.  Yea,  many  who  will  not  only  let  the  sun  go  down  on 
their  wrath,  but  keep  it  up  weeks,  months,  and  years.  Once  do 
them  an  injury,  they  will  never  forget  nor  forgive.  Be  not  then 
hastv  in  thy  spirit  to  be  angry,  for  anger  resteth  in  the  bosom  of 
fools. 

Let  us  learn  then,  to  quench  this  spark  quickly,  when  it  falls  on 
us.     This  may  be  enforced  from 

Doctrine  IV.  That  the  admitting  and  lodging  of  sinful  anger  in 
our  hearts,  is  a  giving  place  to  the  devil.     For  remedies, 

1.  Let  us  consider  our  own  vileness  and  unworthiness,  and  how 
often  we  are  provoking  the  Lord,  and  so  turn  our  anger  against  our- 
selves. "  For  we  ourselves  also,  were  sometimes  foolish,  disobe- 
dient, deceived  ;  serving  divers  lusts  and  pleasures,  living  in  malice 
and  envy  ;  hateful,  and  hating  one  another. 

2.  Let  us  consider  these  things  with  which  we  are  so  ready  to  be 
hurried  away,  are  the  trials  of  our  patience,  and  we  are  on  our  trial 
for  heaven. 

3.  Let  us  propose  to  ourselves  the  example  of  the  meek  and  lowly 
Jesus.     "  He  suffered,  leaving  us  an  example  that  we  should  follow 

his  steps." 

Lastly,  Out  of  a  sense  of  our  utter  inability  to  resist  the  least 
temptation,  look  to  Jesus  for  strength,  and  by  faith  draw  strength 
from  him.  When  the  temptation  is  like  to  catch  us,  let  us  lay  hold 
of  the  promise,  and  of  Christ  in  the  promise.  Without  this,  nothing 
will  avail,  acceptably  to  prevent  or  suppress  it ;  and  this  is  the  rea- 
son, why  sometimes  Christians  bear  great  affronts  and  injuries  better 
than  small  ones.  For  in  the  latter,  they  trust  to  themselves ;  in 
the  former  to  Christ.  No  wonder  all  goes  to  wreck,  when  men 
instead  of  the  golden  shield  of  faith  made  by  the  true  Solomon,  they 
like  fools  think  to  do  with  the  brazen  ones  of  their  OAvn  stock. 
Amen. 


CHRIST  THE  PHYSIOIAN,  &C.  359 

Ettrkk,  July,  13,  170?. 
CHRIST  THE  PHYSICIAN  OF   SOULS. 

SERMON  XXXIV. 

Matthew  ix.  12, 
They  that  be  whole  need  not  a  physician,  hut  they  that  are  sick. 

In  the  ninth  verse  we  have  an  account  of  Matthew's  conversion, 
upon  which  he  invites  Christ  to  his  house,  and  entertains  liini. 
Matthew  was  a  publican,  a  collector  of  custom,  it  seems  by  Mark's 
account,  chap.  ii.  at  Capernaum  custom-house,  on  the  sea  side,  who 
gathered  custom  of  passengers  over  the  water,  and  of  those  whose 
employment  lay  in  the  sea  of  Galilee.  Christ's  going  into  his 
house,  encouraged  others  of  his  fellow  officers  to  converse  with 
Christ,  who  very  readily  admitted  them,  ver.  10.  This  offended  the 
Pharisees,  and  thoy  quarrel  his  disciples  for  it,  ver.  11.  Old  hypo- 
crites are  often  great  enemies  to  young  converts.  But  Christ  defends 
his  own  conduct,  by  the  reason  in  the  text,  namely,  it  is  not  the 
fault,  but  the  duty  of  the  physician  to  be  with  the  sick.  As  if  he 
had  said,  I  am  the  physician,  they  are  the  sick,  therefore  it  is  my 
duty  to  be  with  them.  We  may  take  up  the  text  in  these  two 
propositions  : 

1.  They  that  be  whole  need  not  a  physician;  a  physician's  work 
is  to  cure  diseases,  but  they  that  have  no  diseases  have  no  need  of 
him,  with  such  he  has  nothing  to  do.  This  refutes  the  error  of  the 
Socinians,  who  hold  that  Christ  would  have  come,  though  man  had 
not  sinned.  But  withal,  he  doth  here  tacitly  upbraid  the  Pharisees 
with  their  self  conceit,  looking  on  themselves  as  whole  and  so 
standing  in  no  need  of  him. 

2.  The  sick  need  the  physician.  He  takes  it  for  granted,  that 
because  they  were  sinners,  they  were  spiritually  sick  ;  he  owns  him- 
self to  be  the  spiritual  physician,  and  therefore  concludes  that  they 
stood  in  need  of  him.  Where  should  the  physician  be,  but  among 
the  sick,  with  them  only  is  his  employment. 

Doctrine  I.  Sin  is  the  sickness  of  the  soul.  It  is  the  disease  of 
the  soul,  that  makes  the  sinner  a  sick  man. 

Here  I  shall  first  confirm  the  point ;  secondly,  shew  what  it  is  in 
sin  that  sickens  the  soul ;  and  thirdly,  consider  the  properties  of  this 
sickness. 


360  CHRIST  Tiirc  phystctax 

I.  I  ;im  to  confirm  the  point,  that  sin  is  the  sickness  of  the  soul. 
The  soul  may  be  sick  as  well  as  the  body,  though  many  feel  the  one 
without  the  other. 

1.  This  is  clear  from  the  repeated  testimony  of  the  Scriptures. 
"The  whole  head  is  sick,  and  the  whole  heart  faint."  We  find 
God  by  Ezekiel  coraplainiug  of  the  spiritual  shepherds  of  Israel, 
"  that  they  had  not  strengthened  the  diseased,  nor  healed  that  which 
was  sick,  nor  bound  up  that  which  was  broken."  We  read  also  of 
the  plague  of  the  heart.  The  same  thing  is  imported  in  Christ 
being  a  healer,  Mai.  iv.  2;  Hos.  xiv.  4,  and  from  its  being  said, 
that  by  his  stripes  we  are  healed.  Compare  Isa.  liii.  4,  with  Matth. 
viii.  17,  and  1  Pet.  ii.  24. 

2.  As  bodily  diseases  affect  the  body,  so  does  sin  affect  the  soul. 
This  is  clear,  if  we  consider  these  particulars  :  1,  Sickness  brings 
pain  and  torment  with  it  to  the  body,  so  does  sin  to  the  soul. 
Indeed  many  do  not  feel  the  pain  of  sin  now ;  but  as  men  under 
some  disorders  think  themselves  well  enough,  so  do  they,  till  once 
they  are  awakened  to  a  sense  of  their  danger,  Luke  xv.  17;  Acts 
ii.  37.  Cain's  sin  was  pleasant  perhaps,  when  he  was  satisfying  the 
lust  of  revenge,  but  afterwards  the  sweet  morsel  became  very  bitter. 
Felix's  sin  brought  a  fit  of  trembling  upon  him,  Acts  xxiv.  25. 
David's  sin  cost  him  broken  bones.  In  every  temptation  there  is  a 
hook  to  'pierce  the  soul,  as  well  as  a  bait  to  satisfy  its  lust.  It 
makes  an  intolerable  wound.  "  A  wounded  spirit  who  can  bear." 
Again,  sickness  unfits  a  man  for  his  work  ;  he  has  neither  heart  nor 
hand  for  it.  In  like  manner,  sin  takes  both  inclination  and  ability 
from  the  sinner,  for  the  great  work  he  has  to  do.  According  to  the 
degree  of  sickness,  so  will  it  be  in  this  point.  The  soul  under  the 
power  of  sin,  where  the  violence  of  the  disease  is  not  broken  by 
converting  grace,  is  as  Ephraim,  "  a  silly  dove  without  heart,"  as 
to  any  thing  that  is  truly  good,  "  Because  the  carnal  mind  is  enmity 
against  God,  for  it  is  not  subject  to  the  law  of  God,  neither  indeed 
can  be."  The  sinner  is  altogether  without  strength.  He  neither 
will  nor  can  do.  Where  the  disease  is  beginning  to  go  away,  there 
is  still  some  remains  of  these,  of  heartlessness  and  weakness. 

Farther,  Sickness  takes  away  the  beauty  of  the  body,  Psal. 
xxxix.  11.  Sin  also  spoils  the  beauty  of  the  soul.  The  beauty  of 
the  soul  consists  in  its  likeness  to  God;  sin  makes  men  like  the 
devil.  Grace  is  the  greatest  ornament,  and  sin  the  greatest  deform- 
ity of  the  soul.  It  makes  men  vile  and  filthy  in  the  eyes  of  the  Lord, 
Psal.  xiv.  3,  and  also  in  the  eyes  of  good  men,  Psal.  xv.  4:  hence 
the  godly  are  self-loathers,  because  they  see  it  iu  themselves.  Once 
more,  sickness  tends  to  death.     Diseases  are  death's  cords,  which 


OF  SOULS.  361 

it  sends  before  it,  to  bind  the  prisoner.  Sin  tends  to  spiritual  and 
eternal  death,  and  will  certainly  bring  it  on,  if  it  be  not  cured,  "  for 
the  wages  of  sin  is  death."  There  is  a  connection  betwixt  sin  and 
death,  which  none  but  Jesus  can  dissolve.  "  All  they  who  hate  me," 
says  he,  "  love  death."  The  sinner  is  busy  platting  cords  to  bind 
himself. 

II.  We  are  to  shew  what  it  is  in  sin  that  sickens  the  soul. 

1.  The  guilt  of  it,  that  is,  the  obligation  to  punishment.  In  this 
respect,  sin  is  the  sting  of  death.  Nothing  wounds  the  soul  more 
than  felt  guilt.  It  brings  a  sickness  that  cannot  be  removed,  till 
iniquity  be  forgiven.  A  guilty  conscience  is  the  mother  of  fears, 
and  a  perpetual  tormentor.  This  affected  Cain  and  Judas  most 
dreadfully. 

2.  The  stain  of  it.  Sin  brings  a  blot  with  it,  that  defiles  the  soul. 
Hence  it  is  called  an  uncleanness,  that  makes  a  sinner  unmeet  for 
communion  with  a  holy  God.  It  defiles  the  whole  man,  and  makes 
him  unto  every  good  work  reprobate.  This  makes  it  a  loathsome 
disease,  and  this  can  only  be  taken  away  "  by  the  washing  of  regene- 
ration, and  the  renewing  of  the  Holy  Ghost." 

3.  The  reigning  power  of  it.  Sin  in  the  unregenerate,  keeps  its 
throne  in  their  hearts.  It  commands,  and  they  obey.  They  are  in 
this  snare  of  the  devil,  and  are  taken  captive  by  him  at  his  will. 
This  keeps  the  soul  in  continual  disorder. 

Lastly,  The  indwelling  power  of  it,  which  it  hath  even  in  the 
regenerate.  This  makes  them  groan  as  Paul  did,  Rom.  vii.  24.  "  0 
wretched  man  that  I  am,  who  shall  deliver  me  from  the  body  of  this 
death."     We  are  now, 

III.  To  consider  the  properties  of  this  sickness. 

1.  It  is  a  spiritual  sickness.  They  are  the  most  dangerous  dis- 
eases that  effect  the  vital  parts.  Sin  affects  the  soul.  If  a  leg 
or  an  arm  be  diseased  and  cannot  be  cured,  it  may  be  cut  off,  and 
the  life  be  saved  ;  but  if  the  heart  be  sick  unless  there  be  a  cure, 
the  man  dies.  The  soul  is  the  most  precious  part,  and  sin  chiefly 
affects  it.  Though  some  sins  be  committed  by  the  body,  yet  the 
guilt  and  stain  of  them  reach  the  soul. 

2.  It  is  an  universal  sickness,  spreading  itself  through  the  whole 
man.  All  the  faculties  of  the  soul  are  injured  and  disordered  by  it. 
It  darkens  the  mind,  wounds  the  conscience,  pollutes  the  heart,  dis- 
orders the  affections  and  weakens  the  memory  for  good. 

3.  It  is  an  infectious  sickness.  Jude  speaks  of  hating  "  even  the 
garment  spotted  by  the  flesh."  He  says  this  in  allusion  to  the  un- 
cleanness under  the  law,  got  by  touching  an  unclean  garment.  Evil 
example  does  much  hurt.     Sin  is  therefore  compared  to  leaven.     0  ! 


362  CHRIST  THE  PHYSICIAN' 

how  cautious  will  people  be  of  infectious  bodily  diseases,  that  they 
come  not  near  the  sick  ;  but  alas  !  they  are  not  so,  with  respect  to 
the  more  dangerous  infection  of  sin. 

4.  It  is  a  hereditary  sickness.  It  is  natural  to  us,  we  are  born 
with  it,  and  therefore  cannot  be  cured  by  all  the  art  of  man.  "  We 
■were  shapen  in  iniquity,  and  in  sin  did  our  mothers  conceive  us." 
"  Since  the  world  began,  was  it  not  heard  that  any  man  opened  the 
eyes  of  one  that  was  born  blind."  Our  first  father  fell,  and  we  in 
him  received  such  a  bruise,  as  nothing  but  the  divine  power  of 
Christ  can  heal. 

5.  It  is  a  growing  sickness.  "  Evil  men  and  seducers  shall  was 
•worse  and  worse,  deceiving  and  being  deceived."  Some  deseases 
will  abate,  though  no  remedy  be  applied ;  but  this,  the  longer  it 
lasts,  the  stronger  it  grows.  •  Sin  is  never  satisfied,  but  the  more 
that  is  given  to  it,  the  more  it  craves. 

Lasthj,  It  is  a  mortal  disease.  Sinner,  there  is  death  in  the  pot. 
*'  It  will  bite  like  a  serpent  and  sting  like  an  adder."  Either  it  or 
thoa  must  die.  "  For  if  ye  live  after  the  flesh,  ye  shall  die."  It  is 
true  all  die  not  of  this  disease  ;  but  though  it  is  not  mortal  in  the 
event  to  all,  yet  it  is  mortal  in  its  nature. 

Use  1.  Of  information.     This  lets  us  see, 

1.  Why,  though  our  time  goes  on,  yet  the  work  of  our  salvation 
stands.  Souls  are  sick,  and  cannot  exert  themselves  to  work.  The 
sick  man  keeps  his  bed,  when  others  are  busy  about  their  work. 
Alas !  a  spirit  of  reigning  sloth  has  seized  on  the  greatest  part  of 
us.  The  "  sluggard  hath  put  his  hand  into  his  bosom,  and  it  grieves 
him  to  bring  it  to  his  mouth  again." 

2.  Why  so  many  have  so  little  desire  after  the  word  of  the  Lord. 
It  is  no  wonder  the  sick  man  want  an  appetite.  It  is  common  to  sick 
persons  to  loathe  their  food,  to  be  nice  and  ready  to  find  fault  with 
it,  and  always  to  be  desiring  changes.  Alas  !  this  is  the  manner  in 
which  many  entertain  the  word  of  God. 

3.  They  are  surely  fools,  who  make  a  mock  of  sin.  Sickness  is 
no  matter  of  sport.  There  are  two  sorts  of  these  fools.  Some  that 
make  a  mock  of  their  own  sins.  These  are  the  madmen  that  glory 
in  their  chains,  which  are  the  badges  of  their  folly.  That  is  matter 
of  mirth  to  themselves,  which  makes  others  pity  them.  The  second  sort 
are  those,  who  make  a  mock  of  the  sins  of  others.  They  not  only  sin 
themselves,  but  have  pleasure  in  them  that  commit  sins.  Dreadful 
folly  to  rejoice  in  what  grieves  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord,  and  wounds 
the  souls  of  the  guilty.     This  makes  men  very  like  the  devil. 

4.  The  cruelty  of  those  who  tempt  others  to  sin,  Hab.  ii.  15.  The 
devil  has  his  agents  in  the  world,  who  are  not  content  to  go  to  ruin 


OF  SOULS.  363 

themselves,  but  exert  themselves  to  ruin  others  also.  "  They  are  of 
their  father  the  devil,  who  was  a  murderer  from  the  beginning." 
0  !  but  it  is  a  dreadful  thing  to  be  guilty  of  the  blood  of  the  souls  of 
others.     This  will  make  hell  the  hotter,  Luke  xvi.  27,  28. 

5.  To  be  insensible  of  sin,  is  a  most  pitiful  case.  What  a  misery 
is  it  to  be  sleeping  the  sleep  of  death,  to  be  pining  away  in  our 
iniquities,  and  yet  insensible  of  our  danger.  It  is  the  case  of  many, 
as  of  the  Laodiceans,  Rev.  iii.  17.  The  case  of  such  is  most  despe- 
rate, and  of  all  persons  they  are  the  farthest  from  the  cure,  not 
having  come  to  the  first  step  of  it. 

Lastly,  No  wonder  that  they  go  mourning,  and  with  a  bowed  down 
back,  that  are  sensible  of  their  sin.  Alas!  it  is  much  to  be  regret- 
ted, that  there  are  so  few  in  our  day  that  are  troubled  about  sin. 
But  it  is  also  lamentable,  that  men  should  be  ready  to  traduce  soul- 
exercise  as  melanclioly.  Many  have  their  own  consciences  seared, 
and  so  they  think  that  others  should  be  so  too,  and  think  as  little 
of  sin  as  they  do. 

Use  2.  Of  exhortation.     Is  sin  the  sickness  of  the  soul.     Then, 

1.  Let  this  disengage  your  hearts  from  sin.  Hate  it ;  shun  all  oc- 
casions of  it,  and  temptations  to  it.  Shall  a  man  carry  fire  in  his 
bosom,  and  not  be  burned  ?  There  is  an  evil  in  sin  which,  if  seen, 
would  make  it  very  odious.  It  is  a  poisonous  cup  ;  if  you  drink  it, 
your  soul  is  in  hazard  of  eternal  death  ;  and  all  the  pleasure  you 
can  have  in  it,  is  too  dear  bought,  at  the  rate  of  eternal  pain. 

2.  Go  quickly  to  the  Physician,  for  the  cure  of  the  disease  of  the 
soul,  which  you  labour  under.     Delay  no  longer. 

1.  Time  is  flying,  Job  ix.  25,  26  ;  and  when  gone,  cannot  be  re- 
called. That  which  was,  will  be  no  more.  Yesterday  has  taken  its 
eternal  farewell.  The  candle  burnt  to  snufF,  will  not  light  again. 
No  medicine  will  cure  that  wound,  no  argument  will  persuade  it  to 
return  ;  crowns  and  kingdoms  will  not  buy  it  back  again.  Time 
past  is  out  of  your  power,  the  time  to  come  is  not  in  your  hand, 
your  only  time  is  the  present. 

?-.  Death  is  approaching,  and  there  can  be  no  returning  from  it  to 
mend  matters,  Job  xiv.  14.  No  place  for  cure  there,  Eccl.  ix.  10. 
If  the  infant  come  into  the  world  dead,  all  the  world  cannot  put  life 
into  it ;  and  if  death  take  us  away  out  of  the  world,  under  the  power 
of  that  sickness,  there  is  no  cure  for  it  hereafter. 

3.  Make  frequent  application  to  Christ.  We  get  many  wounds 
and  are  frequently  defiling  ourselves,  we  had  need  therefore,  to  bo 
often  dipping  in  the  fountain.  Such  people  as  can  take  little  food 
at  once,  had  need  to  take  it  frequently.      Alas  !  the  few  addresses 

Vol.  IV.  2  a 


364  CHRIST  THE  PHYSICIAN 

wliich  we  make  to  the  throne  of  grace,  look  like  as  we  thought  our- 
selves whole,  little  needing  the  Physician. 

DocTRinrE  II.  Our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  is  the  great  Physician  of 
souls,  ready  to  cure  them  of  their  spiritual  diseases. 

The  brazen  serpent  was  a  type  of  Christ,  and  he  is  held  forth 
under  the  notion  of  the  tree  of  life.  He  is  the  great  Physician  of 
Bouls.     Here  I  shall, 

I.  Shew  in  what  way  Christ  cures  sin-sick  souls. 

II.  That  our  Lord  cures  all  those  that  come  to  him. 

III.  That  our  Lord  Je.sus  Christ  is  ready  to  cure  sinners  of  their 
spiritual  maladies.     We  are  then, 

I.  To  show  in  what  way  Christ  cures  sin-sick  souls.  Three  things 
are  to  be  noticed  here,  as  concurring  to  the  cure  of  the  soul. 

1.  The  blood  of  Christ.  "  This  purgeth  the  conscience  from  dead 
works,  to  serve  the  living  God."  It  is  by  his  death  that  they  have 
life.  His  sufferings  and  wounds  are  the  medicine  for  our  souls, 
"For  by  his  stripes  we  are  healed."  The  feet  were  sick,  and  blood 
■was  drawn  of  the  head  to  heal  them.  We  contracted  the  debt,  and 
Christ  paid  it.  What  physician  is  like  this  great  Physician,  who 
will  buy  his  patient's  life  at  the  rate  of  the  loss  of  his  own. 

2.  The  Spirit  of  Christ.  "  He  hath  the  seven  Spirits  of  God." 
That  is,  the  Spirit  in  all  his  influences  and  operations,  and  he  sends 
him  to  heal  his  people.  As  the  blood  of  Christ  takes  away  the 
guilt  of  sin  in  justification,  so  the  Spirit  of  Christ,  the  purchase  of 
his  blood,  takes  away  the  stain  and  poAver  of  it  in  regeneration  and 
sanctification.  In  these,  the  Spirit  renews  and  purifies  the  soul,  and 
thus  makes  it  a  new  creature. 

3.  The  word  of  Christ.  "  He  sent  his  word  and  healed  them,  and 
delivered  them  from  their  destructions."  So  says  he  to  his  disciples, 
*'  Now  ye  are  clean,  through  the  word  which  I  have  spoken  unto 
you."  The  waters  of  the  sanctuary  are  healing  waters."  Many  a 
time,  a  word  from  the  Lord  in  ordinances  has  been  very  healing  to 
a  sick  soul.     We  proceed, 

II.  To  shew  that  our  Lord  cures  all  those  that  come  to  him.  "  All 
that  the  Father  giveth  me,  shall  come  to  me,"  says  he,  "and  him 
that  Cometh  to  me,  I  will  in  no  wise  cast  out."  But  why  does  he 
undertake  and  perform  the  cure  of  their  souls  ? 

1.  Because  he  has  his  Father's  commission  for  that  effect.  "  The 
Spirit  of  the  Lord  God,"  says  he,  "is  upon  me;  because  the  Lord 
hath  anointed  me  to  preach  good  tidings  unto  the  meek,  he  hath 
sent  me  to  bind  up  the  broken-hearted."  This  anointing  implies  his 
sufficiency  for  the  work,  and  his  call  to  it.      His  Father  hath  ap- 


OF  SOULS.  3fi0 

pointed  hira  the  second  Adam,  to  cure  the  disease  contracted  by  the 
first  Adam's  eating  the  forbidden  fruit. 

2.  Because  of  his  love  and  pity  to  men.  He  is  truly  the  com- 
passionate Samaritan.  "  He  loved  us,  and  washed  us  from  our  sins 
in  his  own  blood."  How  can  such  loathsome  creatures  as  we  are, 
ever  be  taken  up  into  Christ's  cliariot  ?  Why,  it  is  paved  with  love. 
Love  provided  the  remedy  and  applies  it  also,  Eph.  ii.  4,  5.  Love 
made  Jacob  serve  seven  years,  and  free  love  engageth  Christ  to  cure 
sick  souls,  Ezek.  xvi.  9. 

3.  Because  he  hath  been  at  vast  expense  to  prepare  the  remedy 
and  medicine  for  their  souls,  1  Peter  i.  19,  and  therefore  he  cannot 
but  apply  it.  They  are  injurious  to  his  wisdom,  who  would  have 
him  provide  the  remedy  for  them,  to  whom  it  will  never  be  applied. 
It  was  for  this  very  purpose  that  he  died.  He  gave  himself  for  us, 
that  he  might  redeem  us  from  all  iniquity,  and  purify  unto  himself 
a  peculiar  people,  zealous  of  good  works.  While  he  is  curing  sick 
souls,  he  is  but  pursuing  the  great  end  of  his  death.  Either  Christ 
falls  short  of  the  end  which  he  proposed  to  himself  in  dying,  or  else 
he  died  not  for  all ;  for  all  are  not  cured  and  saved  by  hira. 

4.  For  his  own  glory.  "  This  people  have  I  formed  for  myself, 
they  shall  shew  forth  my  praises,"  Ezek.  xxxvi.  25—32.  The  glory 
of  the  Mediator  is  highly  exalted  by  his  curing  sick  souls.  It  puts 
the  crown  on  Christ's  head,  and  drowns  them  for  ever  in  his  debt. 
The  glory  of  God  is  displayed  in  the  cure  of  sick  souls.  Had  the 
sick  been  left  to  be  swallowed  up  of  death,  justice  would  have  been 
exalted;  but  now,  justice,  mercy,  grace,  and  truth,  are  all  glorified 
in  their  salvation  through  Christ.     We  are, 

III.  To  shew  that  the  Lord  Jesus  is  ready  to  cure  sinners  of  their 
spiritual  maladies.     This  appears  if  we  consider, 

1.  That  he  invites  sick  sinners  to  come  to  him  for  cure.  Is.  Iv.  1  ; 
Rev.  iii.  17,  18.  0  !  Avhat  seriousness,  what  earnestness  is  in  these 
invitations !  He  uses  even  his  authority  in  commanding  them  to 
obey.  "  Look  unto  me,"  says  he,  "  and  be  ye  saved  all  ye  ends  of 
the  earth  ;  for  I  am  God,  and  there  is  none  else."  "  This  is  his 
commandment,  that  we  should  believe  on  the  name  of  his  Son  Jesus 
Christ ;"  for  such  is  the  wickedness  of  our  nature,  that  we  love  the 
disease,  and  will  not  submit  to  a  cure,  Rom.  x.  3.  He  complains  of 
them  that  will  not  give  him  emi)loymeut,  saying,  "ye  will  not  come 
unto  me,  that  ye  might  have  life."  He  stands  at  the  sick  man's  bed- 
side, expostulating  with  him  for  his  refusal  of  a  cure,  saying,  "  wilt 
thou  not  be  made  clean  ?  When  shall  it  once  be  ?"  and  lamenting 
over  his  obstinacy,  saying,  "  If  thou  hadst  known,  even  thou  at  least 
in  this  thy  day,  the  things  which  belong  to  thy  peace." 

2a2 


366  CHRIST  THE  PnYSICIAN 

2.  The  great  end  for  wliicli  he  came  into  the  world,  namely,  "  to 
seek  and  to  save  that  which  was  lost."  When  his  disciples  would 
have  him  bring  fire  from  heaven  to  consume  his  opposers,  he  told 
them,  "  that  he  came  not  to  destroy  men's  lives,  but  to  save  them." 
"What  is  this  world  but  an  hospital  of  sin-sick  souls,  who  have  got 
deadly  wounds  by  the  sting  of  the  old  serpent  ?  Why  might  not 
the  hallelujahs  of  angels  have  kept  him  at  court,  but  that  the  shrieks 
of  dying  sinners  pierced  his  heart,  and  made  him  take  that  long 
journey  for  their  cure. 

3.  What  he  has  done  for  cure  of  souls  sick  of  sin.  He  gave  him- 
self to  death,  that  they  might  live.  He  was  content  to  take  that 
load  of  guilt  on  him,  Avhich  sickened  their  souls.  He  was  wounded 
for  our  transgressions,  and  bruised  for  our  iniquities.  His  blood 
was  shed  for  our  cure. 

4.  That  he  comes  on  a  call  to  deliver  sick  souls.  "  Call  upon  me 
in  the  day  of  trouble,"  says  he,  "  I  will  deliever  thee,  and  thou  shalt 
glorify  me,"  for  it  is  meat  and  drink  to  him  to  do  the  Father's  will, 
in  saving  lost  and  perishing  sinners.  If  the  soul  once  be  willing  to 
part  with  the  disease,  and  to  seek  the  physician,  the  cure  cannot 
misgive, 

3.  Yea,  he  comes  uncalled.  "  I  am  sought  of  them  that  asked 
not  for  me,"  says  he,  "  I  am  found  of  them  that  sought  me  not ;  I 
said.  Behold  me,  behold  me,  unto  a  nation  that  was  not  called  by  my 
name."  Should  not  the  sick  seek  unto  the  physician,  but  here  the 
physician  seeks  out  the  sick,  "  Ye  have  not  chosen  me,"  says  he, 
"  but  I  have  chosen  you."  Thus  he  did  with  Zaccheus.  And  truly 
love  begins  always  on  Christ's  side,  and  this  fire  descends  before  it 
ascend. 

6.  He  waits  long  on  sick  souls,  after  many  refusals  of  employ- 
ment for  him.  0  !  when  Christ  offers  himself  to  us,  should  he  take 
us  at  our  first  word,  we  would  receive  no  benefit  by  him,  but  he 
waits,     "Behold,"  says  he,  "  I  stand  at  the  door  and  knock." 

Lastly,  The  warm  and  kind  entertainment  he  gives  them  that 
come  to  him.  "  Him  that  cometh  unto  me,  I  will  in  no  wise  cast 
out."     Whatever  their  disease  be  he  will  not  send  them  away. 

Use  1.  Of  information.  This  teaches  us,  that  of  all  men  they 
are  most  inexcusable,  who,  under  the  gospel,  live  in  their  sins.  The 
remedy  was  not  provided  for  devils,  and  to  many  heathens  it  is  not 
made  known  ;  but  how  shall  we  escape,  if  we  neglect  so  great  salva- 
tion. If  we  perish,  our  blood  is  on  our  own  heads.  Slighting  of 
Christ  is  wilful  self-murder.  "  Why  then  will  ye  die,  0  house  of 
Israel  ?" 

Use  2.    For   reproof.      It  reproves  those  who   slight  this  great 


'    OF  SOULS.  367 

Physician  of  souls,  who  will  not  come  to  him  to  be  cured  of  their 
spiritual  maladies.  Now,  amongst  the  slighters  of  this  Physician, 
we  reckon, 

1.  The  Papists,  who  have  other  physicians  besides  Christ.  "What 
else  means  their  invocation  of  saints,  merit  of  good  works,  indul- 
gences, &c.;  these  are  put  in  the  room  of  Chi'ist  and  his  blood,  who 
by  one  offering  hath  perfected  for  ever  them  that  are  sanctified, 
and  which  purges  from  all  sin.  Here,  after  all,  the  device  of  pur- 
gatory is  most  cunning,  for  after  their  patients  have  tried  all  the 
former,  yet  cannot  have  true  peace,  this  remains  after  death,  which, 
if  it  be  not  effectual,  people  cannot  come  back  to  prove  its  false- 
hood. 

2.  These  that  never  go  out  of  themselves  for  a  cure.  This  is 
natural  to  one  and  all  of  us.  "We  are  like  the  spider,  that  will  needs 
spin  its  web  out  of  its  own  bowels,  and  it  is  not  little  that  will  make 
the  soul  content  to  be  indebted  to  Christ  for  a  cure.  One  man 
rambles  a  while  with  the  profane,  at  length  he  takes  up  himself. 
Another  gets  his  conscience  alarmed  by  a  sermon,  and  he  resolves 
forthwith  to  be  a  better  man.  Another  has  been  under  strong  pangs 
of  conscience,  but  he  is  born  before  the  time,  his  wounds  get  a  law 
plaster  of  tears,  prayers,  and  good  resolutions,  and  endeavours  to 
keep  the  law,  and  he  is  whole.  But  still  they  live  ignorant  of 
Christ,  and  of  the  necessity  of  the  application  of  his  blood. 

0  sirs !  these  things  will  not  do  ;  you  will  find  them  all  phy- 
sicians of  no  value.  These  persons  may  easily  feign  themselves 
whole,  whose  wounds  were  never  very  deep,  but  they  will  break  out 
again,  if  they  go  not  to  Christ. 

3.  To  those  who  love  the  disease,  so  as  they  loathe  the  Physician. 
Their  hearts  are  so  glued  to  their  lusts,  that  they  cannot  think  of 
parting  with  them.  Many  are  of  the  temper  of  the  Gadarenes. 
They  will  say  they  love  Christ ;  but  yet  they  love  their  lusts  also. 
How  can  that  be  ?  They  dress  up  to  themselves  an  idol  of  their  own 
fancy,  that  will  save  their  souls,  and  their  sins  too,  instead  of  Christ, 
and  they  fall  in  love  with  it,  Mai.  iii.  1. — 3  ;  John  vi.  15,  66.  This 
heart  love  to  the  disease,  makes  many  prayers  to  the  Physician  to  be 
pure  compliment ;  the  heart  refusing  what  the  tongue  seeks. 

What  do  ye  in  this,  but  love  death  ;  greedily  drink  the  poison, 
and  throw  away  the  antidote  ? 

4.  To  those  who  will  not  accept  of  the  remedies  which  he  pre- 
scribes. Health  is  sweet,  but  yet  many  will  rather  die  of  their 
disease,  than  suffer  a  member  to  be  cut  off.  Repentance  is  too  bit- 
ter a  draught  for  them  ;  mortification  of  lusts,  a  pill  which  they 
cannot  swallow. 


368  CHRIST  THE   PHYSICIAN 

5.  Tliose  that  see  not  their  need  of  Christ,  who  are  whole  in  their 
own  eyes.  There  is  such  a  generation,  that  are  pure  in  their  own 
eyes,  and  yet  are  not  washed  from  their  filthiness.  They  are  sick, 
of  the  disease  of  Laodicea.  They  fancy  themselves  rich,  and  that 
they  stand  in  need  of  nothing.  None  are  in  a  more  desperate  case, 
than  those  who  are  neither  cold  nor  hot.  Publicans  and  sinners 
will  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven  before  them.  There  is  more 
hope  of  a  fool,  than  of  one  who  is  wise  in  his  own  conceit.  These 
are  so  swollen  with  conceit  of  themselves,  that  they  say  in  effect, 
they  reign  as  kings  without  Christ. 

6.  Those  that  depend  upon  the  mercy  of  God,  without  respect  to 
Christ. 

Lastly,  Those  that  have  no  confidence  in  the  Physician.  Pre- 
sumption kills  many,  despair  kills  some.  There  is  a  sullen  and 
silent  despair,  which  possesses  the  breasts  of  many,  Jer.  ii.  25. 
They  have  little  or  no  hope  of  mending  their  case,  and  therefore 
they  endeavour  not  to  think  on  it,  but  to  take  as  pleasant  a  life  to 
themselves  as  they  can,  come  after  what  will.  There  is  also  a 
raging  despair,  as  in  Judas,  the  punishment  and  end  of  the  former, 
when  God  wraps  the  filthy  garments  of  the  man's  sin  in  brimstone, 
and  sets  them  on  fire  about  him.  Both  these  slight  Christ,  as  if 
their  cases  were  hopeless  and  beyond  his  reach. 

Use  3.  Of  Exhortation.  Come  to  him  for  the  cure  of  your  spi- 
ritual diseases. 

Motive  1.  Sure  you  have  need  of  him,  absolute  need  of  him. 
0  let  necessity  drive  you  to  him.  The  less  you  see  your  need,  the 
more  need  you  have  of  him.  Are  there  no  diseased  souls  here  ?  I 
will  tell  you  some  diseases  that  I  fear  are  very  common  among  us, 
but  Christ  will  cure  you  of  them,  if  you  will  come  to  him. 

1.  The  blindness  of  the  eyes  of  the  mind,  Eph.  iv.  18.  We  were 
all  born  blind,  and  it  is  to  be  feared  many  of  us  were  never  yet 
cured.  Are  there  not  many,  who  never  yet  saw  sin  or  holiness  in 
their  own  colours.  Hell  is  before  them,  they  fear  it  not,  because 
they  see  it  not.  Head  and  heart  of  some  is  all  darkness.  Many 
have  an  enlightened  head,  and  a  dark  heart ;  but  Christ  can  make 
even  "  those  who  are  darkness,  light  in  the  Lord." 

2.  Spiritual  dumbness.  There  is  a  dumb  devil  possesseth  many. 
They  have  tongue  enough  for  the  world,  but  none  for  God  or  their 
souls.  They  have  not  a  mouth  to  open  for  God  and  his  cause  in  the 
world.  They  are  dumb  in  their  families,  and  in  their  closets, 
as  to  their  souls.  This  is  an  evidence  grace  has  not  touched  their 
hearts,  or  else  their  mouths  would  be  opened,  Isa.  xxxv.  5,  6. 

3.  The  hardness  of  the   heart.     The   hearts  of  many  are  as  an 


OF  SOULS.  369 

adamant.  Mercies  will  not  melt  them,  judgments  will  not  break 
them.  They  are  proof  against  the  preaching  of  law  and  gospel.  It 
may  be  said  of  many,  that  they  have  made  their  faces  harder  than 
a  rock.  But  they  say  the  blood  of  the  goat  will  dissolve  the  ada- 
mant. To  such  sinners  Christ  says,  **  A  new  heart  also  will  I  give 
you,  and  a  new  spirit  will  I  put  within  you :  and  I  will  take  away 
the  stony  heart  out  of  your  flesh,  and  I  will  give  you  an  heart  of 
flesh." 

4.  The  falling  evil  of  backsliding.  Many  have  sometimes 
flourished  fairly  in  God's  vineyard,  who  are  now  withered  and  gene 
back.  They  are  far  from  what  they  were  some  time  ago.  Like  the 
sow,  they  have  returned  to  their  wallowing  in  the  mire.  To  them 
he  says,  "  Return,  ye  backsliding,  and  I  will  heal  your  backslid- 
ings." 

5.  The  swelling  of  pride  and  self-conceit.  There  is  a  root  of 
pride  in  every  man's  heart  by  nature,  and  if  the  axe  of  deep  humi- 
liation has  not  been  laid  at  the  I'oot  of  it,  no  wonder  that  it  grow  to 
a  monstrous  size.  But  our  Lord  can  cure  it.  Acts  is.  6.  He  can 
lead  the  man  to  the  knowledge  of  the  evils  of  his  heart. 

Lastly,  The  decay  of  grace.  Alas !  this  is  too  visible  at  this 
day,  in  the  lives  of  many ;  they  do  not  equal  the  advantages  which 
they  enjoy.  But  Christ  cures  this  also.  "  They  that  dwell  under 
his  shadow  shall  return ;  they  shall  revive  as  the  corn,  and  grow  as 
the  vine;  the  scent  thereof  shall  be  as  the  wine  of  Lebanon." 

Motive  2.  Our  Lord  Jesus  has  all  the  properties  that  recommend 
a  physician. 

He  is  skilful.  He  can  take  up  yonr  case,  though  you  cannot 
make  language  of  it.  He  knows  what  will  suit  your  disease.  Many 
a  time  we  think  that  good  for  us,  which  he  denies  ;  but  afterwards, 
we  see  it  is  good  to  be  at  his  disposal.  He  is  successful.  Some 
diseases  are  the  reproach  of  medicine,  they  cannot  be  cured ;  but 
none  can  baftie  him.  "  Though,"  says  he,  "  your  sins  be  as  scarlet, 
they  shall  be  as  white  as  snow ;  though  they  be  red  as  crimson,  they 
shall  be  as  wool." 

He  cures  freely,  Isa.  Iv.  1,  "  I  will  heal  your  backsliding,  and 
love  you  freely."  Other  physicians  are  enriched  by  their  patients, 
but  he  enricheth  his,  making  them  heirs  of  glory. 

Lastly,  He  is  the  only  physician.  Either  you  must  die,  or  come 
to  him.  "  Neither  is  there  salvation  in  any  other :  for  there  is  none 
other  name  under  heaven  given  among  men,  whereby  we  must  be 
saved." 

Use  4.  Of  trial.  By  this  we  may  know  whether  we  have  come  to 
Christ  or  not.     Has  he  been  a  physician  to  your  soul.     If  you  have 


370  ClIKIST  THE  PHYSICIAN 

come  to  hira,  the  care  is  beguu  on  thee.  The  following  are  marks  of 
a  soul,  in  which  Clirist  has  begun  the  cure  : 

1.  That  soul  will  highly  prize  the  physician.  "  Unto  them  that 
believe,  he  is  precious."     As  nothing  is  sweeter  than  life,  so  none 

will  be  so  dear  to  that  soul,  as  the  restorer  of  its  health,  and  deli- 
verer from  death,  Psal.  Ixxiii.  25.  None  will  prize  Christ  but  those 
that  have  seen  the  evil  of  sin.  Some  obtain  a  partial  sight  of  their 
disease;  hence  partial  affections  to  Christ,  a  kind  of  hankering  after 
him.  Christ  is  sweet,  but  still  some  lust  is  sweeter ;  but  the  cured 
soul  gets  an  overpowering  sight  of  him,  Matth.  xiii.  45,  46. 

2.  That  soul  will  loath  its  disease  above  all  things.  "They  that 
love  the  Lord  hate  evil."  Sin  is  made  bitter  to  the  soul,  when  it  is 
among  the  Physician's  hands:  they  groan  under  it,  as  the  Israelites 
did  in  Egypt,  Sin  is  bitter  to  many,  yet  never  made  sufficiently 
bitter,  Prov.  xxiii.  35.  But  God  lays  still  more  and  more  gall  and 
wormwood  on  the  breasts  of  the  man's  lusts,  when  he  is  curing  till 
it  be  the  most  bitter  of  all  things. 

3.  Hence  the  soul  groans  under  the  remains  of  corruption,  saying, 
"  0  wretched  man  that  I  am,  who  shall  deliver  me  from  the  body  of 
this  death."  It  aspires  to,  and  longs  after  perfect  health,  Phil.  iii. 
13,  14.  The  remains  of  sin  are  iron  chains,  which  makes  the  soul 
walk  heavily.  There  is  not  a  more  dangerous  symptom  than  for 
persons  to  rest  satisfied  with  their  attainments, 

4.  That  soul  begins  to  long  for  its  spiritual  food.  "Blessed  are 
they  that  do  hunger  and  thirst  after  righteousness,  for  they  shall 
be  filled."  They  desire  Christ  and  his  ordinances  for  the  nourish- 
ment of  their  souls,  and  make  use  of  Christ  and  his  ordinances  for 
that  end.  Indeed  incured  souls  may  delight  in  the  word  as  it 
pleases  their  fancy,  or  fills  their  head  with  knowledge ;  but  the 
soul  that  is  cured,  delights  in  it,  as  it  fills  the  soul  with  purity,  and 
the  heart  with  comfort. 

To  those  in  whom  Christ  has  begun  the  cure,  I  would  say, 

1.  Be  thankful  to  the  Physician,  and  wonder  at  his  condescension, 
that  ever  he  should  have  set  his  eye  on  you,  and  passed  by  so  many, 
in  no  worse  case  than  thyself.  Let  not  the  remains  of  your  disease, 
make  you  overlook  the  begun  cure. 

2.  Pity  and  pray  for  the  dying  world.  Men  who  in  a  shipwreck, 
have  got  safe  ashore,  can  they  stand  unconcerned,  seeing  their  fel- 
lows falling  and  sinking  in  the  sea.  Tit.  iii.  1 — 6.  Employ  and  im- 
prove your  acquaintance  with  the  Physician  for  the  cure  of  others. 
Pray  him  to  make  the  waters  of  the  sanctuary  healing  waters. 

3.  Beware  of  relapses,  falling  back  into  the  distempers  of  which 
you  have  been  cured.     Relapses  are  very  dangerous,  and  because  the 


OF  SOULS.  371 

cure  is  as  yet  imperfect,  easily  fallen  into,  therefore  walk  softly, 
like  Hezekiah  ;  Isa.  xxxviii.  15. 

Lastly,  Beware  of  evil  company  as  you  would  of  a  plague-liouse. 
It  is  difficult  to  touch  pitch,  and  not  be  defiled.  Beware  of  profane 
company,  and  of  formal  company  that  have  light,  but  no  heat  of 
affection  to  the  advancing  of  holiness  in  themselves  and  others. 

Doctrine  III.  Sin  has  laid  mankind  under  a  necessity  to  have  a 
Saviour,  or  sinners  as  sinners,  stand  in  need  of  Christ.  This  is  a 
chief  point  of  the  doctrine  of  the  gospel,  and  could  we  once  get  the 
truth  of  it,  deeply  impressed  on  the  consciences  of  sinners,  the  fort 
would  be  almost  gained. 

Here  we  shall,  First,  Shew  what  sort  of  need  this  is.  Secondly, 
What  sort  of  a  Saviour  sinners  need.  Thirdly,  I  shall  endeavour 
to  give  you  a  view  of  sinners'  need  of  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ. 

I.  We  are  to  shew  what  sort  of  need  this  is.  This  need  of  a  Savi- 
our, is  a  need  in  order  to  salvation.  People  need  many  things, 
yet  they  may  be  without  them  ;  but  if  our  salvation  be  lost,  all  is 
gone.  The  sick  man  may  need  many  things  ;  he  may  want  house, 
food,  and  raiment ;  but  the  great  thing  is  health.  Though  all  the 
rest  be  laid  to  his  hand,  yet  if  his  disease  cut  him  off,  what  avails 
all  these  things. 

There  is  a  two-fold  need.  A  thing  may  be  necessary,  either,  1. 
For  conveniency  and  better  being  of  the  thing  ;  or  2.  Absolutely,  so 
as  a  thing  cannot  be  without  it.  In  the  former  respect  a  horse  is 
necessary  for  a  journey  ;  in  the  last,  the  eye  is  necessary  for  seeing. 

Now  the  sinner's  need  of  a  Saviour  is  absolute.  There  can  be  no 
salvation  without  a  Saviour.  A  man  can  no  more  see  God  in  mercy 
without  Christ,  than  he  can  see  at  all  without  an  eye.  It  would  be 
true  that  we  needed  a  Saviour,  if  we  could  not  be  saved  without  him, 
bnt  with  very  great  difficulty.  But  our  need  of  Christ  as  a  Saviour 
draws  much  deeper,  it  is  an  absolute  need. 

This  is  plain  from  Scripture,  Acts  iv.  12.  Without  Christ  with- 
out hope,  Ephes.  ii.  12.  The  way  of  salvation  is  narrow,  miss  but 
one  step  and  the  case  is  without  remedy,  "  for  he  that  believeth  not 
shall  be  damned."  Hence  the  case  of  the  devils  is  hopeless,  "  Tor 
verily  Jesus  took  not  on  him  the  nature  of  angels."     We  proceed, 

II.  To  shew  what  sort  of  a  Saviour  sinners  need. 

1.  Such  an  one  as  is  a  righteous  and  innocent  person,  one  that 
needeth  none  to  save  himself  from  sin.  Physician  heal  thyself,  is  a 
valid  objection  against  any  pretending  to  be  the  physician  of  souls. 
"For  such  an  high  priest  became  us,  who  is  holy,  harmless,  unde- 
filed,  separate  from  sinners,  and  made  higher  than  the  heavens." 

2.  One  that  is  able  for  the  work.     If  he  were  not  able  for  it,  the 


372  CHRIST  THE  PHYSICIAN 

work  must  misgive  in  his  hand.  Now  if  the  work  misgive,  the  sin- 
ner is  ruined.  It  is  not  little  that  is  required  here.  lie  must  be 
able  to  pay  an  infinite  price,  for  an  infinite  guilt,  to  an  infinite  God. 
Hence, 

3.  He  must  be  one  that  is  a  middle  person  betwixt  God  and  man, 
even  God-man  in  one  person.  Our  Saviour  behoved  to  be  man  :  1. 
That  ho  miglit  le  capable  to  suffer  death,  "  for  without  shedding  of 
blood  there  is  no  remission."  2.  Tliat  the  same  nature  which  sinned 
might  suffer,  Heb.  ii.  17;  1  Cor.  xv.  21.  He  behoved  also  to  be 
God  :  1.  To  give  infinite  value  to  his  sufferings.  2.  That  he  might 
be  able  to  bear  up  under,  and  to  come  out  from  under  that  infinite 
•wrath  which  he  had  to  bear.  And  he  behoved  to  be  God  and  man 
in  one  person,  that  so  what  was  done  or  suffered  by  either  of  the 
natures,  might  be  considered  as  done  or  suffered  by  the  person,  Acts 
XX.  28. 

4.  He  must  be  one  that  has  a  commission  for  the  work.  "No  man 
taketh  this  honour  to  himself,  but  he  that  is  called  of  God,  as  was 
Aaron."  For  it  was  in  the  option  of  an  offended  God,  whether  to 
exact  satisfaction  from  the  parties  themselves,  or  to  admit  a  surety. 

Lastly,  He  behoved  to  be  one  acquainted  with  the  condition  of 
those  whom  he  was  to  save.  This  is  self-evident.  For  how  can  the 
remedy  be  rightly  and  suitably  applied,  unless  the  Physician  know 
well  the  condition  of  the  patients. 

Now,  where  shall  we  find  this  Saviour  ?  If  we  believe  the  Church 
of  Rome,  we  will  have  more  saviours  than  one,  particularly  the  saints 
departed,  and  the  angels,  to  whom  they  pray,  and  in  whom  they 
place  their  confidence,  whereby  they  bring  themselves  under  that 
fearful  curse.  "  Thus  saith  th3  Lord,  cursed  be  the  man  that 
trusteth  in  man,  and  maketh  flesh  his  arm,  and  whose  heart  depart- 
eth  from  the  Lord."  The  Socinians  also  do  this,  by  denying  the 
Divinity  of  Christ.  But  are  any  of  them  able  for  that  work  ?  Are 
they  God  ?  Hos.  xiii.  4.  Where  is  their  commission  ?  How  do  the 
saints  departed  know  our  necessities  ?  Eccles.  ix.  5,  6.  To  take 
notice  of  all  persons  and  all  occurrences  in  the  world,  at  the  same 
time,  is  an  infinite  perfection. 

But  behold,  we  find  all  these  in  Christ.  He  was  altogether  with- 
out sin,  Heb.  vii.  26.  He  was,  and  is  able  to  save,  Psal.  Ixxxix. 
19;  Heb.  vii.  25.  He  was  indeed  a  middle  person,  God  and 
man  in  one  person,  meet  to  be  a  day's  man.  In  hira  Job  had  his 
wish.  Job  ix.  33.  Do  you  ask  his  commission?  See  Isa.  Ixi.  1. 
Do  you  doubt  his  acquaintance  with  your  case  ?  He  tells  the 
churches  "he  knows  their  works,"  Rev.  ii.  13.  He  is  God,  and  we 
"  cannot  go  from  his  spirit,  or  flee  from  his  presence." 


OF  SOULS.  373 

III.  I  shall  endeavour  to  give  you  a  view  of  sinners'  need  of  the 
Lord  Jesus  Christ.  Here  I  shall  state,  illustrate,  and  confirm,  five 
propositions. 

Pkoposition  I.  Sinners  had  an  absolute  need  of  Christ's  coming 
into  the  world.  It  was  a  strange  cure,  but  absolutely  necessary  for 
a  perishing  world.  There  is  a  threefold  coming  of  Christ  into  the 
world : 

1.  In  the  morning  of  time  he  came,  in  the  promise  and  repre- 
sentation by  the  sacrifices.  When  Adam  fell,  was  cited,  examined, 
couderaned,  betwixt  the  sentence  and  execution  of  it,  Christ  came  iu 
the  promise.  "The  seed  of  the  woman  shall  bruise  the  head  of  the 
serpent."  Sacrifices  were  offered;  for  it  is  most  rational  to  think 
that  the  beasts,  with  whose  skins  Adam's  body  was  covered,  wore 
offered  before  in  sacrifice  for  his  soul ;  and  it  is  most  probable  that 
all  this  was  the  same  day  Adam  was  created. 

0  what  need  was  there  of  this  his  coming !  we  see  it  in  the  type, 
the  ram  caught  in  the  thicket.  Had  not  Christ  thus  come,  men  had 
been  born  into  the  world  as  into  the  suburbs  of  hell,  and  the  world 
had  been  filled  with  the  desperate  roarings  of  fallen  helpless  sinners. 

2.  He  came  personally  in  the  fulness  of  time.  "  For  then  God 
sent  forth  his  Son  made  of  a  woman,  made  under  the  law."  He 
came  and  tabernacled  among  us.  The  Word  was  made  flesh.  Man 
sinning  would  needs  be  as  God,  and  to  save  them,  God  must  become 
man. 

3.  He  came  by  his  Spirit  in  the  apostles  after  his  ascension ; 
opening  the  gates  of  heaven  and  way  of  salvation,  to  the  Jews  and 
Gentiles  indiscriminately.  He  "thus  came,  and  preached  peace  to 
you  which  were  far  off,  and  to  them  that  were  nigh."  Of  these  two 
I  shall  speak  together,  as  that  one  coming  of  Christ  into  the  world, 
which  was  absolutely  necessary  for  the  miserable  world. 

Now  to  shew  you  the  need  there  was  of  Christ's  coming  thus,  let 
us  take  a  view  of  the  world  as  it  was  when  he  came.  It  had  lasted 
from  the  creation  till  the  birth  of  Christ,  three  thousand  nine  hun- 
dred and  forty-five  years;  and  from  the  deluge,  two  thousand  two 
hundred  and  eighty-nine,  according  to  tlie  best  computations.  In 
this  time,  it  had  come  to  a  wrinkled  face,  "the  whole  head  was 
sick,  and  heart  faint."  All  was  in  such  disorder,  that  there  was 
need  of  a  new  creation.  The  world  was  then  divided  into  Jews  and 
Gentiles,  an  unequal  division,  indeed,  in  respect  of  number;  the 
former  being  only  those  of  the  Jewish  nation,  with  a  few  that  joined 
now  and  then  to  them  from  among  other  nations.  No  nation  under 
heaven  but  they  were  a  church,  Psalm  cxlvii.  19,  20.  We  shall 
then  have  a  view  of  the  state  of  the  world  at  that  time,  and  so  see 


374  CHIUST  THE  PnYSlCIAN 

the  need  there  was  of  Christ's  coming;   if  we  view  the  state  of  the 
Gentiles  and  of  the  Jews,  and  the  partition  wall  betwixt  the  two. 

1.  Consider  the  partition  wall  that  was  then  betwixt  Jews  and 
Gentiles,  Eph.  ii.  14,  15.  There  was  betwixt  them,  1.  A  partition 
wall  of  God's  making,  that  is  the  ceremonial  law,  so  called  with  au 
allusion  to  the  wall  of  Solomon's  temple,  that  was  betwixt  the  court 
of  the  people  and  of  the  Gentiles,  which  prevented  all  manner  of 
passage,  sight,  and  communication  betwixt  them.  This,  consisting 
of  so  many  rites  and  ceremonies,  divided  thera  from  all  the  world 
besides,  and  by  God's  own  command,  they  might  not  have  familiar 
intercourse  with  the  Gentiles.  The  Jews  had  made  this  wall  higher 
themselves,  Acts  xi.  8. 

There  was  also  a  wall  of  men's  own  making,  and  that  was  the 
enmity  betwixt  Jews  and  Gentiles.  There  was  a  deadly  hatred 
betwixt  them.  The  Jews  called  the  Gentiles  dogs,  and  reproached 
them  with  their  uncircumcision.  The  Gentiles  again  mock  at  their 
circumcision,  their  sabbaths,  and  other  institutions. 

What  need  was  there  here  of  a  reconciler,  to  make  both  one,  which 
was  the  effect  of  Christ's  coming.  We  find  Christ  himself  forbid- 
ding his  apostles,  "  to  go  into  the  way  of  the  Gentiles,  or  to  enter 
into  any  city  of  the  Samaritans."  But  afterwards,  the  vail  of  the 
temple  was  rent  in  twain,  and  he  gave  them  a  new  commission,  "to 
go  and  teach  all  nations."     Then  Isa.  xi.  6,  7,  began  to  be  fulfilled. 

2.  Let  us  look  to  the  Gentiles,  and  among  them  see  our  fathers, 
that  were  without  this  partition  ;  and  there  we  shall  see  thera  "  at 
that  time  without  Christ,  being  aliens  from  the  commonwealth  of 
Israel,  and  strangers  from  the  covenants  of  promise,  having  no  hope, 
and  without  God  in  the  world."  They  were  the  visible  kingdom  of 
the  devil,  under  the  power  of  darkness,  the  way  of  salvation  utterly 
unknown  among  them.  As  to  the  wise  men  among  them,  "  when 
they  knew  God,  they  glorified  him  not  as  God,  neither  were  thank- 
ful." They  were  drowned  in  superstition.  The  oracles  of  the 
devil  were  famous,  magic  and  witchcraft  prevailed.  The  idea  of 
God  was  broken  in  pieces  by  them,  like  a  great  looking-glass,  and 
in  every  piece  of  it  they  thought  they  saw  a  God.  Yarro  reckons 
above  thirty  thousand  worshipped  by  the  Europeans  alone.  They 
were  given  over  to  all  sort  of  fllthiness,  Rom.  i.  23 — 32.  They 
were  very  cruel,  as  appears  from  their  human  sacrifices,  the  bloody 
spectacle  of  the  gladiators,  and  the  like.  "  Yea,  they  sacrificed 
their  sons  and  their  daughters  unto  devils." 

These,  and  such  like,  were  the  works  of  the  devil,  which  Christ 
came  to  destroy.  Who  can  consider  a  world  lying  in  this  miserable 
posture,  and  not  hear  their  needs  piercing  the  heavens  with  cries 
for  a  Saviour. 


OF  SOULS.  375 

3.  Let  us  look  within  the  partition  wall,  and  behold  the  nation  to 
whom  alone  God  had  manifested  himself;  and  here,  if  you  except  a 
few  that  were  groaning  and  longing  for  the  consolation  of  Israel, 
you  will  see  a  miserable  face  on  the  whole  generation  of  the  Jews. 
They  were  most  corrupt  in  their  doctrine,  bewitched  with  their 
own  traditions,  and  even  their  teachers  knew  nothing  of  regene- 
ration, John  iii.  10.  Their  divinity  was  to  build  on  their  birth 
privilege  from  Abraham,  so  that  they  reckoned  all  Israel  was  to 
have  share  in  the  world  to  come  ;  to  rest  on  the  law  and  their  own 
works,  to  account  the  day  of  expiation,  afflictions,  and  death,  expia- 
tory. They  were  most  corrupt  in  their  manners.  That  generation 
"  was  a  generation  of  vipers,  a  wicked  and  adulterous  generation ;" 
the  sink  of  all  iniquity,  and  common  sewer  of  vengeance,  "  that 
upon  them  might  come  all  the  righteous  blood  shed  upon  the  earth, 
from  the  blood  of  righteous  Abel,  to  the  blood  of  Zacharias." 

And  rras  it  not  a  sick  world,  and  needed  the  Physician,  when  in 
such  a  case.  And  here  we  ought  to  admire  the  goodness  of  God  to 
us,  who  were  amongst  the  utmost  parts  of  the  earth,  lying  in  the 
same  darkness  with  other  pagan  nations.  Our  own  historians  tell  us 
our  forefathers  had  the  same  pagan  religion  with  the  ancient  Gauls, 
in  which  human  sacrifices  made  a  great  part.  But  now  Christ  is 
come,  and  set  up  his  standard  among  us. 

PROPOSiTiojf  II.  There  was  an  absolute  necessity  of  the  death  of 
Christ,  in  order  to  the  saving  of  sinners.     This  appears, 

1.  From  vindictive  justice,  which  is  essential  to  God.  God  cannot 
but  hate  sin,  and  so  must  needs  have  a  propensity  to  punish  it, 
Psalm  V.  5,  6.  That  God  is  such  an  one,  is  evident  from  Scripture, 
Rom.  ii.  5 ;  2  Thes.  i.  6  ;  Heb.  xii.  29.  That  God  is  just,  is  engraven 
on  the  minds  of  all  men.  The  heathens  saw  it  by  nature's  light, 
Rom.  i.  32;  Acts  xxviii.  4.  Conscience  is  God's  deputy  in  the  soul, 
and  from  that  impression  which  divine  justice  hath  set  upon  it, 
dooms  the  sinner  to  misery.  Sin  coming  forth  of  the  soul  leaves  a 
sting  behind  it. 

2.  The  law  of  God  requires  it,  which  denounceth  death  because 
of  sin,  Gen.  ii.  17  ;  Gal.  iii.  10  ;  Rom.  vi.  23.  Now  seeing  God 
cannot  lie,  this  must  be  fulfilled  either  in  the  sinner,  or  in  the 
cautioner.  Man  being  a  rational  creature,  by  the  very  frame  of  his 
soul  must  be  under  a  law.  God  that  made  him,  must  needs  be  his 
governor  and  judge  ;  and  being  so,  must  conduct  himself  as  becomes 
one  of  infinite  justice.  "  Shall  not  the  judge  of  all  the  earth  do 
right." 

3.  Unless  Christ's  sufferings  had  been  necessary  for  our  salvation, 
and  to  take  away  our  sins,  there  can  no  satisfying  account  be  given 


376  CURIRT  THE  PIITSICIAX 

of  them.  It  is  in  vain  to  say,  it  was  for  confirming  his  doctrine,  and 
to  give  an  example  of  all  virtues.  For  liis  doctrines  were  confirmed 
by  bis  miracles,  and  a  perfect  example  exhibited  through  his  whole 
life.  After  which,  if  there  was  no  other  necessity  for  his  shedding 
his  blwod,  Judas'  question  would  not  have  been  impertinent,  "  What 
needeth  all  this  waste  ?"  It  is  consistent  with  the  goodness  and 
wisdom  of  God,  to  make  his  Son  the  curse  causeless  ?  "Would  he 
have  taken  a  compass,  and  gone  round  about  by  his  Son's  blood,  to 
take  away  the  sins  of  the  elect,  if  a  word  could  have  done  it.  Surely 
the  apostle  tells  us,  "  it  is  not  possible  that  the  blood  of  bulls  and  of 
goats  should  take  away  sin."  But  if  a  mere  nothing  might  do  it, 
why  not  the  blood  of  costly  sacrifices.  But  we  are  expressly  told, 
*'  that  without  shedding  of  blood  there  is  no  remission  of  sin,"  Heb. 
ix.  22,  23. 

Lasth/,  The  love  of  God  in  sending  Christ,  and  in  giving  him  to 
the  death,  cannot  be  seen  but  in  this  way.  The  scripture  does  pro- 
claim the  exceeding  greatness  of  that  love,  in  giving  Christ  to  die 
for  sinners,  John  iii.  16:  Rom.  v.  8.  But  if  the  sinner  might  have 
been  saved,  and  God's  Sou  spared  also,  where  is  that  love  ?  On 
the  contrary,  supposing  that  justice  says  sin  must  be  punished, 
either  the  Son  or  the  sinner  must  die ;  in  this  case,  God's  parting 
with  his  Son,  was  an  unparalleled  act  of  love. 

The  Socinians  themselves  acknowledge,  that  it  is  unworthy  of 
God  not  to  punish  obstinate  sinners.  Xow,  upon  this  I  would  say, 
1.  Obstinacy  is  not  punished  for  itself,  because  in  what  is  good, 
obstinacy  is  constancy  and  a  duty.  It  is  punished,  then,  only  be- 
cause it  is  in  evil.  Sin  is  i:>unished  for  itself,  but  obstinacy  for  the 
sin  only.  If  sin  then  be  punished  for  itself,  every  sin  must  be 
punished.  Again,  if  Christ  had  not  died,  all  sinners  would  have 
been  obstinate  and  impenitent.  Repentance  would  never  have  been 
given  by  an  unattoned  God,  Acts  v.  31. 

0  what  a  horrible  evil  is  sin  I  Was  not  the  stain  deep  that  could 
not  be  washen  out  but  by  the  blood  of  God  ?  Shall  we  love  that 
which  stabbed  him  to  the  heart,  or  live  in  that  for  which  he  died.  Can 
that  be  light  which  made  him  sweat  great  drops  of  blood  falling 
down  to  the  ground  ?  or  that  sweet,  which  put  gall  and  vinegar  in 
his  cup  ?  0  let  the  blood  of  Christ  springing  forth  from  his  heart, 
be  cords  of  love  to  draw  thee  from  sin,  Avhich,  while  thou  indulgest 
thyself  in  it,  thou  not  only  tramplest  on  the  law,  but  ou  the  wounds 
of  the  Son  of  God,  Heb.  x.  28,  29. 

Pkopositiox  III.  The  exaltation  of  Christ  was  absolutely  neces- 
sary for  sinners'  salvation  ;  that  is,  his  resurrection  ascension,  and 
sitting  down  at  the  Father's  right  hand.     The  necessities  of  perish- 


OF  SOULS.  i377 

ing  sinners  cried  to  him  to  come  out  of  the  grave,  and  go  to  heaven 
For, 

1.  The  death  of  Christ  had  not  been  eflfectnal,  if  he  had  not  risen 
again.  "  He  was  delivered  for  our  offences,  and  was  raised  again 
for  our  justification."  Had  he  remained  still  in  the  grave,  all 
our  hopes  had  been  buried  and  perished  with  him.  His  death  had 
died,  and  been  of  no  effect.  "  But  now  God  hath  raised  him  up, 
having  loosed  the  pains  of  death,  because  it  was  not  possible  that 
he  should  be  holden  of  it."  The  sins  of  the  elect,  Christ's  grave- 
stone, are  taken  off.  God  sent  his  angel  as  an  officer,  to  open  the 
prison  door. 

2.  No  less  necessary  was  his  ascending  into  heaven  for  the  aton- 
ing for  the  sins  of  the  elect.  This  was  typified  by  the  high  priest's 
(after  he  had  killed  the  sin  offering)  going  into  the  holiest  of  all 
with  the  blood,  and  with  incense  on  the  golden  censer.  So  Christ 
presented  to  the  Father  his  blood,  and  sits  down  there  as  interces- 
sor. Had  he  not  gone  before  us,  we  could  have  had  no  hopes  of 
entering  heaven,  Heb.  vi.  20.  They  had  need  of  an  advocate  at  the 
court  of  heaven,  who  have  continual  business  there,  which  they 
themselves  are  not  capable  to  manage. 

Proposition  IV.  Sinners  have  absolute  need  of  union  with  Christ. 
He  that  came  into  the  world  in  their  nature,  must  come  into  their 
hearts,  and  dwell  there  by  his  Spirit,  else  they  cannot  be  saved.  They 
must  be  joined  to  him  and  made  one  with  him  by  faith,  else  they  will 
perish,  whatever  else  they  pretend  to.  What  will  it  avail  you  in  the 
sight  of  God,  if  Christ  be  not  your  Saviour.  All  perished  that  were 
not  in  the  ark. 

1.  Unless  you  be  in  Christ,  God  cannot  be  well  pleased  with  you. 
It  is  only  "  in  the  beloved  that  you  can  find  acceptance."  The 
Lord  looks  upon  men  as  in  one  of  two,  either  in  the  first  or  in  the 
second  Adam  ;  as  in  the  first,  God  looks  upon  us  as  enemies,  but  in 
Christ  as  friends.  "Wo  to  them  that  appear  before  God,  but  not  in 
their  elder  brothers  garments. 

2.  You  cannot  be  justified,  Rom.  v.  1.  There  is  a  sentence  of 
condemnation  on  all  mankind  by  nature.  There  is  no  taking  off  of 
this,  without  union  to  Christ.  Sin  remains  unpardoned,  the  sentence 
stands  i'n  force  till  the  sinner  be  in  Christ;  for  God  is  just,  his 
judgment  is  according  to  truth.  He  cannot  justify  a  sinner,  but  on 
the  account  of  a  perfect  righteousness.  None  have  it  of  their  own, 
and  there  is  no  communion  with  Christ  in  his  righteousness,  but  by 
union  with  him. 

3.  You  cannot  be  children  of  God,  but  the  slaves  of  the  devil. 
The  only  way  of  adoption  is  by  receiving  Christ,  and  believing  on 


378  CHRIST  THE  PIIYSICTAX 

his  name,  John  i.  12.  How  can  you,  who  are  born  children  of  the 
devil,  become  the  children  of  God,  but  by  a  spiritual  marriage  with 
his  Son.  "  If  the  Son  make  you  free,  you  shall  be  free  indeed." 
And  if  we  be  not  children,  we  cannot  be  heirs  of  God. 

4.  You  can  do  nothing  that  is  pleasing  and  good  in  his  sight. 
"  Without  nie,"  says  Christ,  "  ye  can  do  nothing."  First  the  tree 
must  be  good,  then  the  fruit.  Christ  is  the  life  of  the  soul.  Gal.  ii. 
20 ;  and  without  Christ,  all  our  works  are  but  dead  works.  Our 
fruits  will  be  found  as  the  apples  of  Sodora,  fair  to  look  upon,  but 
when  touched  fall  to  ashes. 

Proposition  V.  We  stand  in  need  of  Christ  in  all  his  offices. 
Our  necessities  call  aloud  for  all  the  offices  with  which  he  is  in- 
vested. 

I.  We  need  him  as  a  prophet,  teacher,  and  interpreter  of  the 
Father's  mind  to  us.  Can  we  know  a  man's  mind  but  by  his 
words  ?  No,  surely,  for  nature  has  not  granted  us  a  window  to  look 
into  their  hearts.  No  more  can  we  know  the  mind  of  God,  without 
the  words  of  Christ,  John  iii.  13. 

1.  How  could  we  ever  have  known  the  mind  of  God  concerning 
man's  salvation  without  him.  "  For  no  man  hath  seen  God  at  any 
time  the  only  begotten  Son  which  is  in  the  bosom  of  the  Father,  he 
hath  declared  him."  None  but  he  could  have  brought  life  and  im- 
mortality to  light.  That  counsel  might,  for  us,  have  remained 
through  eternity  hid  in  the  breast  of  the  Father.  The  heathens  could 
look  up  to  the  heavens  and  read  much  of  God's  goodness,  wisdom, 
and  power,  Rom.  i.  20 ;  but  none  could  ascend  into  heaven  and  enter 
God's  secrets,  but  he  that  was  in  the  bosom  of  the  Father,  and  on 
his  cabinet  councils,  John  iii.  13. 

2.  How  can  we  get  saving  illumination  without  him.  "  Neither 
knoweth  any  man  the  Father  save  the  Son,  and  he  to  whomsoever 
the  Son  will  reveal  him."  By  him  God  made  the  world  laying  the 
foundation  of  it  in  light,  and  by  him  he  hath  formed  the  new  world. 
"  For  God  who  commanded  the  light  to  shine  out  of  darkness,  hath 
shined  in  our  hearts,  to  give  the  light  of  the  knowledge  of  the  glory 
of  God  in  the  face  of  Jesus."  We  lost  our  eyes  in  Adam  ;  we  can- 
not discern  one  truth  spiritually  and  savingly,  while  out  of  Christ, 
1  Cor.  ii.  14.  0  !  the  vast  difference  betwixt  book  learning,  and 
and  what  is  learned  from  the  Spirit.  I  refer  it  to  the  experience  of 
the  godly,  if  saving  illumination  was  not  as  the  bringing  them  to  a 
new  world,  which  they  never  saw  before.  This  makes  unlearned 
Christians  able  to  suffer  for  Christ,  when  others  can  only  dispute  for 
him.  Tou  may  read  the  best  books  with  attention  :  but  if  Christ  be 
not  your  teacher  by  his  Spirit,  you  will  never  know  any  thing  to 
purpose. 


OF  SOULS.  379 

3.  How  think  you  to  get  through  the  world  without  hira  ;  to 
know  sin  and  duty  in  particular  cases,  and  to  go  safely  through  the 
snares  and  temptations,  with  which  the  world  abounds  ?  Moses  would 
not  venture  on  the  journey  through  the  wilderness  without  his  pre- 
sence, "  the  cloud  of  glory."  And  the  Father  has  seen  it  necessary 
to  give  him  "  a  leader  to  his  people,  Isa.  Iv.  4. 

4.  How  can  we  read  the  Bible  profitably  without  him  ?  I  confess 
there  are  but  few  much  concerned  about  this.  The  dust  of  their 
Bibles  will  witness  against  them.  Others  by  their  reading  get  their 
heads  filled  with  knowledge,  and  may  have  the  history  of  it  on  their 
finger  ends ;  but  alas  !  still  it  is  but  a  sealed  book  to  them.  Like 
the  eunuch,  "  they  understand  not  what  they  read,  not  having  one 
to  guide  them."  Only  Christ  can  here  teach  you  to  profit.  He  only 
"can  open  our  eyes  that  we  may  behold  wondrous  things  out  of 
God's  law."  "Whatever  others  say,  exercised  souls  will  say  it  is 
true  ;  for  they  know  what  it  is,  sometimes  to  have  the  Bible  a 
sealed,  at  other  times  an  opened  book. 

5.  How  will  you  get  your  case  resolved  without  hira  ?  Few  are 
exercised  about  their  case.  "  They  are  at  ease  from  their  youth,  and 
settled  on  their  lees."  They  are  like  the  door  on  the  hinges.  Con- 
science is  become  stupied.  No  small  thing  will  awaken  it.  But 
they  who  are  exercised  about  the  case  of  their  souls,  will  see  their 
need  of  him.  Men  may  speak  to  an  exercised  soul,  but  if  Christ 
speak  not,  the  remedy  will  not  be  efi^ectual.  "  He  hath  the  tongue 
of  the  learned,  and  knows  how  to  speak  a  word  in  season  to  him 
that  is  weary."  True  it  is,  the  watchmen  may  find  the  spouse,  but 
it  is  not  by  their  own  act,  but  by  Christ  speaking  in  them,  or  by 
them  ;  and  whatever  difficulty  some  have  to  believe  the  presence  of 
God  in  ordinances,  yet  some  can  from  experience  "  report  that  God 
is  in  you  of  a  truth."  Sometimes  the  soul  of  the  Christian  is  so  ex- 
ercised, as  almost  to  despair  of  deliverance :  but  see  how  deliverance 
comes.  Job  xxxiii.  19 — 26. 

Lastly,  How  will  you  understand  the  dispensations  of  Providence 
without  him  ?  "  His  way  is  in  the  sea,  and  his  footsteps  are  not 
known,"  who  but  himself  can  unfold  them.  There  are  many  dark 
passages  in  a  Christian's  life ;  what  must  they  do,  but  go  to  Christ 
with  them,  Psal.  Ixxiii ;  John  xiii.  Many  a  time,  the  child  of  God 
is  at  a  stand  with  providences.  They  appear  to  them  as  the  wrong 
side  of  things  ;  they  cannot  see  the  beauty,  harmony,  and  order  of 
them,  till  they  go  to  Christ  with  them,  who  is  able  to  satisfy  them. 

II,  We  need  him  as  a  priest,  seeing  we  have  sinned  against  the 
Lord.  We  need  him  in  both  parts  of  this  oflicp,  his  satisfaction  and 
intercession. 

YoL.  IV.  2  b 


380  CHRIST  THE  PHYSICIAN 

I.  We  need  his  satisfaction,  the  sacrifice  of  himself,  his  blood  as 
the  Scripture  terms  it.  This  is  a  fountain  in  which  we  must  be 
washed.     With  this  our  souls  must  be  sprinkled,  else  we  perish. 

1.  There  is  no  answering  the  demands  of  justice  and  the  law, 
without  this  blood.  The  law  requires,  and  justice  demands  satisfaction 
for  a  broken  covenant  of  works.  Their  demands  run  high,  namely, 
that  it  be  infinite,  either  in  respect  of  value  or  duration,  for  an  infi- 
nite God  is  offended,  and  sin  is  a  kind  of  infinite  evil.  Now  sinner 
that  art  out  of  Christ,  how  canst  thou  answer  these  demands  ? 
Suppose  thou  shouldst  begin  and  suffer  from  the  cradle  to  the  grave, 
all  those  will  be  but  useless  to  this  purpose.  Sooner  may  a  child  fill 
up  the  sea  with  little  stones,  than  thou  satisfy  the  demands  of  law 
and  justice.  No  plea  will  avail  here,  but  that  of  "  Christ's  blood> 
which  cleanseth  from  all  sin."  He  is  the  city  of  refuge,  the  high 
priest  that  died  for  us. 

2.  There  is  no  peace  with  God  without  him  and  his  blood,  Rom. 
V.  10.  It  is  Christ's  blood  only,  that  procures  our  peace,  and  atones 
for  rebel  sinners.  That  is  it  which  quencheth  the  fire  of  God's 
wrath,  that  otherwise  would  burn  up  the  sinner.  Prayers  and  en- 
treaties would  not  do  it,  "  without  shedding  of  blood,  there  is  no 
remission." 

3.  There  is  no  pardon  without  this  blood.  Guilt  is  so  deep  in  the 
soul,  that  nothing  but  Christ's  blood  will  wash  it  away.  Wouldst 
thou  have  a  pardon,  sinner,  it  must  come  to  thee  through  Christ, 
"  in  whom  we  have  redemption  through  his  blood  even  the  forgive- 
ness of  sins."     This  is  the  only  remedy. 

4.  There  is  nothing  able  to  purge  us  from  an  evil  conscience,  but 
this  blood.  An  evil  conscience  is  a  dreadful  companion.  It  is  a 
tormentor.  Guilt  makes  it  uneasy,  or  will  do  so.  Many  have  other 
ways  to  cure  their  uneasy  consciences,  but  these  will  only  heal  the 
wound  superficially,  and  it  will  break  out  again.  The  Scripture 
knows  of  no  cure,  but  the  blood  of  Jesus,  "  which  purgeth  the  con- 
science from  dead  works,  to  serve  the  living  God."  What  need 
have  we  then  to  come  to  the  blood  of  sprinkling. 

II.  We  stand  in  need  of  Christ  to  be  our  intercessor  with  the  Fa- 
ther, to  appear  in  the  presence  of  God  for  us,  Heb.  ix.  24.  If  we 
have  not  him  for  our  friend  at  the  court  of  heaven,  we  need  never 
think  to  come  there. 

1.  If  Christ  be  not  our  intercessor  with  the  Father,  we  can  have 
no  peace  made  or  kept  up  with  God ;  as  it  is  by  his  intercession 
that  the  peace  purchased  by  his  blood  is  first  made  up,  so  by  the 
same  means  it  is  continued.  We  are  every  day  offending  ;  how 
stands  the  covenant  then,  why  is  it  not  broken  ?     "  If  any  man  sin, 


OF  SOULS.  CO 

we  have  an  advocate  with  the  Father,  Jesus  Christ  the  righteous." 
Because,  while  we  live  we  sin,  therefore  Christliv  es  to  intercede. 
He  is  ready  to  say,  "  Father,  forgive  them  for  they  know  not  what 
they  do."  What  shall  become  of  them  then,  that  are  still  sinning, 
and  have  no  intercessor?  they  are  treasuring  up  wrath. 

2.  We  want  not  an  accuser  before  the  Lord.  "  Satan  is  the  ac- 
cuser of  the  brethren ;  and  accuses  them  before  our  God,  day  and 
night."  The  devil  first  tempts,  then  accuseth.  Have  we  not  then 
need  of  one  to  answer  these  accusations  against  us,  Zech.  iii.  1,  2. 
Without  this  there  is  no  safety,  but  in  Christ's  intercession  we  may 
boast  against  all,  Rom.  viii.  33,  34. 

3.  Without  him  we  can  have  no  communion  and  fellowship  with 
God.  It  is  by  his  intercession,  that  we  have  access  to  God  in  duties. 
"  In  him  we  have  boldness  and  access  with  confidence,  by  the  faith 
of  him."  The  word  signifies  a  leading  by  the  hand,  alluding  to  the 
custom  in  the  courts  of  princes,  where  none  may  come  to  the  pres- 
ence-chamber, but  those  who  are  brought  in  by  some  favourite  or 
courtier.  Many  come  to  duties,  to  prayers,  sermons,  &c.,  but  there 
is  no  intercourse  betwixt  God  and  them.  Why  ?  "  Nay,"  God  says 
to  them,  as  Joseph  did  to  his  brethren,  "  except  you  bring  your  bro- 
ther with  you,  you  shall  not  see  my  face." 

4.  Without  him,  your  services  and  duties  cannot  be  accepted.  Hd 
must  present  them,  else  they  will  be  rejected.  Rev.  viii.  3.  The 
best  sacrifice  wants  not  dung,  which  must  be  burnt  up  by  the  efiicacy 
of  Christ's  blood  and  intercession.  No  hearing  of  prayer  without 
his  intercession.  God  will  hear  no  prayers  as  they  come  out  of  the 
sinner's  mouth,  but  as  out  of  his  Son's  mouth,  as  presented  by  him. 

III.  We  stand  in  need  of  him  as  our  King  and  Lord.  Christ  has 
a  twofold  kingdom:  his  essential  kingdom,  and  his  mediatory  king- 
dom ;  the  former  over  all,  the  latter  over  his  people.  This  king- 
dom is  administered  externally  and  internally;  we  stand  in  need  of 
both. 

I.  We  stand  in  need  of  Christ  to  be  our  King  outwardly,  to  govern 
us  in  a  visible  church  state.  It  has  been  the  cry  of  our  land,  we 
will  have  no  king  but  Cjesar;  the  magistrate  having  been  invested 
with  a  blasphemous  supremacy  over  all  persons  in  all  causes.  This 
cannot  be  taken  ofi',  by  saying  he  is  a  subordinate,  not  a  co-ordinate 
head.  The  pope  never  pretended  to  more.  But  from  the  Scripture 
we  learn  the  church  is  not  a  monster  with  two  heads.  **  Christ  him- 
self is  head  over  all  things  to  the  church."  That  Christ  is  the  only 
head  and  King  of  his  church,  hath  been  the  doctrine  of  the  protes- 
tants  against  the  papists,  to  cut  off  the  pope's  supremacy  ;  and  there- 
fore, in  the  large  confession  of  the  Church  of  Scotland,  it  was  de- 

2  b2 


382  CHRIST  THE  PHYSICIAN 

clared  blasphemy  to  acknowledge  another  head.  This  shews  the 
contradictory  nature  of  the  test.  Now  we  stand  in  need  of  Christ 
to  be  onr  King. 

1.  Consider  the  sad  and  woeful  case  these  are  in  that  are  without 
this  visible  kingdom  of  Christ.  These  are  the  dark  places  of  the  earth, 
that  are  the  habitations  of  cruelty,  Eph.  ii.  12.  The  visible  church 
of  Christ  on  earth,  is  the  only  society  in  which  safety  can  be  found. 
The  Scripture  calls  it  the  kingdom  of  heaven,  for  here  the  King  of 
heaven  reigns,  Psal.  ii.  6.  Here  are  the  laws  of  heaven,  Heb.  xii. 
25 ;  here  the  subjects  of  heaven  dwell ;  even  those  who  are  fellow- 
citizens  with  the  saints,  and  of  the  household  of  faith  ;  and  here  the 
glory  of  heaven  is  begun  ;  for  the  God  of  all  grace  hath  called  us 
un'o  his  eternal  glory  by  Jesus  Christ. 

2.  Consider  and  view  the  several  parts  of  this  kingly  government 
of  Christ  as  externally  administered,  and  the  need  of  the  same  will 
quickly  appear.  These  are,  1.  Christ's  calling  a  people  out  of  the 
world  to  the  profession  of  his  truth.  Acts  xv.  14.  2.  Giving  them 
laws  and  ordinances,  Isa.  xxxiii.  22.  3.  Officers,  Eph.  iv.  11,  12. 
4.  Defending  the  church  from  her  enemies,  Psal.  ex. 

How  needful  this  calling  out  of  a  people  from  the  world  to  the 
profession  of  his  truth,  and  making  up  a  church  was,  and  is,  may 
appear  from  what  has  been  already  said  ;  see  that  one  place,  Isa. 
ix.  2,  3.  "What  society  can  be  well  governed  without  laws  ?  The 
wicked  cannot  abide  Christ's  laws.  Psal.  ii.  3;  but  without  them  all 
would  go  to  confusion.  He  has  instituted  ordinances,  the  word,  sa- 
craments and  discipline  in  his  church,  all  which  are  of  evident  ne- 
cessity to  the  church  of  God.  These  are  a  burden  to  many.  They 
can  live  without  the  hearing  of  the  word,  and  without  sacraments. 
These  are  ties  which  they  like  not  to  come  under.  They  will  not 
subject  themselves  to  discipline,  it  is  a  yoke  too  hard  for  their  fair 
necks,  but  so  necessary,  as  that  without  it,  the  church  would  be  like 
"  a  city  that  is  broken  down  and  without  walls."  Much  contempt  is 
poured  out  on  the  office-bearers  of  Clirist's  house.  Ministers  are 
looked  upon  by  many  as  a  sort  of  almost  useless  creatures,  hence 
long  desolation  of  parishes;  but  see  Eph.  iv.  11;  Prov.  xxix.  18. 
And  unless  the  church  were  defended,  enemies  restrained  and  con- 
quered, the  wild  boar  of  the  forest  would  soon  eat  up  that  planting 
of  the  Lord. 

TI.  We  stand  in  need  of  Christ  to  be  our  King,  in  respect  of  the 
inward  administration  of  his  government  in  and  over  our  souls. 
His  kingdom  must  be  within  us,  else  we  will  never  reach  his  kingdom 
of  glory.  The  visible  church  is  this  King's  house,  but  the  believer's 
heart  is  the  throne  and  chair  of  state.     "  He  dwells  in  their  hearts 


or  SOULS.  383 

by  faith."  Many  are  subjects  of  Christ's  visible  kingdom,  who  are 
really  subjects  of  the  devil's  invisible  kingdom.  Many  give  Christ 
the  hand  that  never  gave  him  the  heart.  But  our  having  Christ  for 
our  King  inwardly,  is  absolutely  necessary  to  our  salvation.  If 
Christ  be  not  your  King  in  this  way,  then, 

1.  How  can  you  be  his  true  and  loyal  subjects  ?  The  first  act  of 
Christ's  kingly  office  is  subduing  us  to  himself.  We  are  born  ene- 
mies to  God,  and  Christ  has  his  kingdom  to  raise  up  out  of  a  com- 
pany of  rebels,  Rom.  viii.  7.  What  will  bring  them  in  to  him  ? 
Men  cannot.  Only  a  day  of  power  will  do  it.  Then  he  makes  them 
willing.  Where  the  word  of  a  king  is,  there  is  power.  He  can 
make  them  run  at  a  call  then,  Isa.  Iv.  5 ;  and  xliv.  22.  None  but 
King  Jesus  is  able  to  rob  the  devil  of  subjects,  and  take  off  the  fet- 
ters from  the  sinner's  will.  He  gets  no  subjects  but  by  stroke  of 
sword.  The  devil  likes  his  subjects  better  than  to  part  with  them 
easily,  and  they  like  bis  service  better  than  to  be  ready  to  leave  it, 
therefore  there  must  be  a  drawing  power. 

2.  How  can  you  get  true  repentance  without  him  ?  He  is  exalted 
to  be  a  prince  and  a  Saviour,  to  give  repentance  unto  Israel  and  for- 
giveness of  sins.  Many  think  repentance  an  easy  thing,  but  it  is 
not  so.  The  mere  word,  good  advice,  and  education,  will  not  pro- 
duce it.  Our  hearts  and  our  lusts  are  more  firmly  glued  togetlier, 
than  to  be  rent  asunder  by  a  wedge  of  our  own  timber.  If  you  get 
no  other  repentance  than  what  is  spun  out  of  your  own  bowels,  that 
will  be  ^wept  away  as  a  spider's  web. 

3.  How  can  we  get  lusts  mortified  without  him  ?  The  least  of 
them  is  too  strong  for  us,  therefore  he  hath  said,  he  will  subdue  our 
iniquities.  Our  own  spirits  are  sufficient  to  carry  us  on  in  the  way 
of  the  flesh,  but  the  Spirit  of  Christ  is  necessary  for  true  mortifica- 
tion, Rom.  viii.  13.  How  soon  will  our  lusts  turn  our  masters,  if  we 
grapple  with  them  in  our  own  strength. 

4.  How  can  we  be  right  ruled  but  by  him.  If  his  Spirit  rule  not 
in  our  hearts,  there  will  be  nothing  but  confusion  in  them.  Wo  to 
that  man,  that  gets  the  reins  laid  on  his  own  neck,  and  is  left  to  bo 
his  own  steersman  through  the  sea  of  this  world.  They  will  never 
come  safe  to  land,  and  therefore  the  Spirit  of  truth  is  promised  to 
guide  us  into  all  truth.  The  Father,  therefore  has  appointed  Jesus 
to  be  the  Captain  ot  our  Salvation,  to  lead  and  guide  the  people  of 
God  to  their  rest  in  the  heavenly  Canaan,  Micah  ii.  13. 

5.  How  shall  we  be  defended  against  our  spiritual  enemies,  but  by 
him  ?  We  have  many  enemies,  many  snares  and  temptations  are  in 
our  way.  We  have  a  subtile  devil,  and  a  multitude  of  inward  lusts. 
We  are  not  able  lor  the  Kaot  of  them,  unless  he  deftud  us. 


384  CHIUST  THE  PIXXSICIAN 

Lastly,  Who  sliall  conquer  and  rertrain  our  enemies  but  he  ? 
None  other  has  Satan  in  a  chain,  nor  can  bruise  him  under  our  feet, 
but  he  who  bruisfd  his  head. 

For  Application.  What  hath  been  said,  serves,  1.  For  instruc- 
tion, and  it  lets  us  see, 

1.  What  is  our  case  by  sin.     We  may  discern  three  things  in  it: 

1.  We  may  discern  here  the  heinousness  of  our  guilt.  It  was 
dreadful  to  behold  Adam  cast  out  of  paradise — hell  rained  out  of 
heaven  upon  Sodom — but  much  more,  to  see  the  Sou  of  God  neces- 
sitated to  come  out  of  heaven,  out  of  his  Father's  bosom,  and  bear 
his  wrath.  It  could  be  no  small  thing  that  occasioned  all  this. 
Think  on  this,  thou  that  thinkest  little  of  sin.  Behold  the  Son  of 
God  dying  on  a  cross  for  it. 

2.  Pollution  of  our  souls  by  it,  and  there  hatefulness  in  the  sight 
of  the  Lord.  The  sinner  can  have  no  access  to  God  without  a  Medi- 
ator. No  admission  into  his  presence,  but  as  washed  with  the  blood 
of  Christ.  0  deep  stain  !  that  could  not  be  washed  away,  but  by  the 
blood  of  God. 

3.  Our  inability  to  help  ourselves.  We  are  fallen  into  a  pit,  a 
gulf  of  misery.  We  must  perish  there,  unless  helped  out.  It  pass- 
eth  our  power  and  skill  to  recover  ourselves.  How  low  then  has  sin 
laid  us. 

2.  We  see  with  what  a  God  we  have  to  do.  Those  who  are 
unacquainted  with  Christ,  in  whose  face  his  glory  shines,  cannot  pro- 
perly know  God.  He  is  a  just  and  holy  God.  Fools  make  a  mock 
of  sin,  because  they  think  God  such  an  one  as  themselves.  But  God 
will  not  be  mocked.  Sinners  will  find  to  their  cost,  that  he  is  both 
just  and  holy,  and  that  he  will  burn  them  up,  in  case  they  get  not 
one  to  stand  between  them  and  him  when  he  is  angry. 

3.  The  dangerous  case  in  which  they  are,  that  are  out  of  Christ. 
You  may  as  easily  climb  up  to  heaven  by  a  ladder  of  your  own 
making,  as  get  salvation  without  him.  Pretend  to  what  you  will,  if 
you  have  no  just  pretences  to  Christ,  you  are  ruined  eternally.  Do 
what  you  will,  suffer  what  you  will,  nothing  will  avail  without  your 
being  in  Christ.  If  you  should  leave  the  world  and  dwell  in  a  wil- 
derness, dig  your  grave  with  your  nails,  live  on  grass,  weep  for  your 
sins  till  you  weep  out  your  eyes — as  a  thousand  cyphers  alone  still 
stand  for  nothing  without  a  figure  before  them,  so  all  that  you  can 
think,  do,  or  suffer  without  Christ,  will  be  useless. 

4.  That  they  are  a  blessed  people  that  are  in  Christ,  and  that 
they  should  be  ever  making  use  of  him,  seeing  they  are  ever  sinning. 
As  we  are  still  defining  ourselves,  still  we  should  be  dipping  in  the 
fountain. 


OF  SOULS.  385 

Use  2.  Of  exhortation.  Be  convinced  then,  sinners,  of  your 
need  of  Christ,  and  let  your  necessities  drive  you  to  hira.  Alas ! 
few  are  sufficiently  convinced  of  their  absolute  need  of  the  Lord 
Jesus  Christ.  There  is  an  error  here,  that  is  the  cause  of  many 
others.     Of  it  there  are  clear  evidences,  such  as, 

1.  The  sound  rest  which  many  get  in  their  sins,  sleeping  on  the 
mercy  of  God.  There  is  a  generation  going  on  in  their  sins, 
and  yet  have  peace  and  hopes  of  salvation,  and  that  merely  because 
God  is  merciful.  These  see  no  need  of  the  Lord  Jesus.  They  know 
not  that  Jesus  is  the  only  conduit,  through  which  mercy  flows  to 
sinners.  They  consider  not,  that  they  cannot  taste  of  mercy,  unless 
they  be  in  him.  Mercy  cannot  save  if  you  be  out  of  Christ,  for  it 
cannot  act  in  prejudice  to  justice,  and  God  cannot  deny  himself. 

2.  How  few  have  ever  got  a  sight  of  sin  in  its  own  colours.  This 
is  evident  from  their  making  so  light  of  it.  Many  live  under  the 
gospel,  who  were  never  yet  under  convictions  from  the  Spirit,  of 
their  sinfulness  and  misery  by  nature.  They  confess  they  are  sin- 
ners, and  who  denies  that ;  but  they  were  never  perplexed  about 
their  soul's  state,  nor  ever  put  to  it,  to  ask  what  shall  we  do  to  be 
saved  ?  and  surely  till  a  man  knows  his  disease  to  be  dangerous,  he 
will  never  see  the  need  of  the  Physician.  Are  there  not  some, 
whom  their  soul's  case  never  sent  to  their  knees. 

3.  How  few  are  there,  that  will  refuse  comfort  and  rest  in  any- 
thing, till  they  get  an  interest  in  Christ  secured.  If  we  saw  our  ab- 
solute need  of  Christ,  it  would  be  so,  Acts  ii.  37.  What  pleasure 
can  a  condemned  man  take  in  any  thing,  till  he  get  a  pardon.  The 
man  who  sees  his  danger  will  say,  what  can  omnipotence  give  me, 
while  I  go  Christless.  But  alas  !  few  keep  pace  with  the  church, 
Lam.  iii.  49,  50.  They  can  take  up  their  rest  in  the  world,  when 
they  get  nothing  of  Christ. 

4.  How  few  are  there  brought  to  that,  to  leave  no  mean  untried, 
in  order  to  get  an  interest  in  Christ,  and  salvation.  It  is  a  matter 
of  life  and  death,  and  all  that  a  man  hath,  will  he  give  for  his  life. 
Necessity  has  no  law.  Every  possible  exertion  must  be  made.  But 
alas  !  most  part  of  men  are  easily  diverted  in  their  pursuit  of  an  in- 
terest in  Christ,  and  if  they  cannot  attain  their  desire  with  ease, 
they  will  let  it  go.  Hence,  some  professors  in  their  duties,  are  like 
the  door  on  the  hinges.     Still  there  is  one  thing  they  lack. 

5.  How  few  are  brought  to  be  content  to  part  with  all  for  Christ, 
and  to  take  him  on  any  terms.  Surely  a  sight  of  absolute  need, 
would  make  the  soul  content  to  put  a  blank  in  Christ's  hand,  say- 
ing. Lord,  what  wilt  thou  have  me  to  do  ?  "What  will  not  a  con- 
demned man  give  for  pardon  ?     See  you  a  man  prigging  much  in  the 


386  CHRIST  THE  I'llYSICIAN,  &C. 

market,  you  may  conclude  either  that  he  can  want  the  article,  or 
knows  some  other  quarter  whence  he  may  get  it.  The  soul  that 
seos  its  need,  must  have  hira  cost  what  it  will. 

6.  How  many  can  live  in  peace,  weeks,  months,  and  years,  without 
communion  with  hira.  Are  there  not  some,  who  never  knew  in  ex- 
perience, what  communion  with  Christ  is  ?  Some  that  will  not  bow 
a  knee  to  God  for  it  ;  some  content  with  the  bare  performance  of 
duties,  are  never  anxious  about  that,  whether  they  find  Christ  in 
them  or  not.  They  reign  as  kings  without  him.  As  king  Saul, 
from  whom  God  is  departed,  they  never  see  the  king's  face. 

Lastly,  The  little  pains  people  are  at,  to  get  Scriptural  evidence 
of  their  interest  in  Christ.  Many  hope  they  have  an  interest  in 
him,  but  were  never  at  pains  to  examine  the  foundation  of  their 
hopes.  If  a  man  were  to  be  let  down  a  steep  rock  by  a  rope,  would 
he  not  try  whether  it  could  bear  his  weight  or  not. 

This  may  convince  many  of  us,  that  we  do  not  sufficiently  see  our 
need  of  Christ ;  and  therefore  receive  the  conviction  and  know,  that 
thou  that  wast  never  acquainted  with  this,  art  yet  out  of  Christ,  and 
so  in  a  fearful  state.  And  I  would  exhort  you  to  have  so  much 
compassion  on  your  souls,  as  to  retire  this  night,  and,  1.  Meditate 
on  what  a  God  thou  hast  to  do  with.  2.  On  thy  sinful  and  misera- 
ble state  ;  and  3.  Pray  the  Lord  may  open  your  eyes.  And  to 
quicken  a  sense  of  your  need  of  Christ,  and  to  urge  you  to  close  with 
him,  I  would  ask  you  these  questions  : 

1.  How  think  you  to  live  without  Christ?  I  am  sure  your  life 
will  be  a  continued  death  without  him.  These  bodies  of  yours,  will 
be  but  living  coffins  for  dead  souls,  with  the  curse  of  God  upon  them 
for  a  grave-stone.  Though  may  in  prosperity,  yet  how  will  you  do 
you  do  in  adversity  ?  The  clouds  are  growing  black  above  the 
heads  of  the  people  of  the  land.  I  fear  days  are  coming,  in  which 
the  Lord  will  plead  his  controversy ;  and  how  dreadful  will  it  be 
for  a  deluge  of  wrath  to  come  upon  a  man  who  is  not  in  the  ark 
of  safety. 

2.  How  will  you  die  without  Christ?  You  may  think  light  of 
hira  now ;  but  when  death  settles  down  on  these  eyelids,  and  the 
grim  king  carries  thee  over  into  the  ocean  of  eternity,  if  Christ 
keep  thee  not,  where  art  thou  then  ? 

3.  How  wilt  thou  appear  before  God  to  judgment  without  hira  ? 
Will  not  the  face  of  God,  whose  Son  thou  hast  slighted,  be  terrible 
to  thee  ?  To  see  this  Christ,  who  is  now  freely  offered  to  you  as  a 
Saviour,  sitting  at  the  right  hand  of  God,  but  not  to  open  a  mouth 
for  tliee  there,  but  against  thee  as  a  slighter  of  him,  and  a  ue- 
glecter  of  his  great  salvation.     How  will  you  then  escape  ?     Amen. 


CHEISTIAK  WATCnFULNESS,  &C.  387 

Simprin,  Fchniary  16,  1707. 
CHRISTIAN  WATCHFULNESS  STATED,   AND  ENFORCED. 

SERMON  XXXV. 

Mark  xiii.  37, 
And  luhat  I  say  unto  you,  I  say  unto  all,  Watch. 

These  words  are  the  conclusion  of  our  Lord's  discourse,  begun  at 
the  5th  verse  of  this  chapter.  Here  he  tells  them  the  design  of 
speaking  these  things,  that  they  were  not  designed  for  them  alone 
who  heard  them,  but  for  all  others,  that  minded  to  be  his  followers. 
What  things  does  he  mean  ?  The  text  refers  to  the  whole  preced- 
ing discourse,  the  word  being  in  the  plural  number;  and  so  it  refers 
to  watching,  which  he  had  before  pressed  upon  them,  and  now 
presses  again. 

DocTKiNE.  It  is  the  duty  of  all  to  watch.  For  illustrating  this, 
I  shall, 

I.  Shew  what  it  is  to  watch. 

II.  I  shall,  under  several  branches,  speak  of  the  object  of  watch- 
ing. 

III.  I  shall  enforce  the  doctrine,  by  giving  reasons  why  we  should 
watch.     I  am  then, 

I.  To  shew  what  it  is  to  watch. 

Watching  is  a  military  term.  By  watching,  the  array  is  secured 
from  a  surprise  by  the  enemy.  It  properly  belongs  to  the  body  to 
watch,  because  it  only  is  properly  subject  to  sleep.  Even  this 
bodily  watching  may  be  religious,  2  Cor.  vi.  5;  Psal.  Ixiii.  6;  but  it 
is  commonly  used  in  scripture  for  the  watching  of  the  soul,  which  is 
subject  to  a  spiritual  sleep.     There  are  two  things  in  it, 

1.  The  soul's  keeping  spiritually  awake,  for  to  watch  is  opposed 
to  sleeping.  When  Jesus  found  his  disciples  sleeping,  "he  said 
unto  Peter,  Simon,  sleepest  thou  ?  Couldst  thou  not  watch  one 
hour?"  The  time  of  our  being  in  the  world  is  night,  Rom.  xiii.  12, 
and  it  is  very  natural  to  sleep  in  the  night ;  "  for  they  that  sleep, 
sleep  in  the  night."  But  we  must  not  sleep,  but  be  awake ;  that  is, 
keep  grace  in  exercise.  We  mast  keep  from  carnal  security  and  spi- 
ritual sloth,  which  are  very  apt  to  creep  in  upon  us,  after  the  great- 
est enjoyment  and  appearances  of  God,  Song  v.  3.  This  is  a  sweet 
sin,  in  which  a  man  will  take  pleasure,  when  other  sins  give  him  no 
satisfaction.     We  must  also  keep  the  soul  in  spiritual  motion  and 


388  CHursTiAN  watchfulness 

holy  exercise.  When  we  sleep  we  rest.  Our  rest  is  not  here,  and 
therefore  we  must  be  always  moving  heavenwards.  As  the  fire  on 
the  altar  was  kept  always  burning,  so  we  must  be  always  watching. 
If  we  begin  to  droop,  we  must  rouse  ourselves. 

2.  Observation.  The  sentinel  that  walketh  the  round,  unless  he 
carefully  observe  what  he  may  see,  cannot  be  said  to  watch.  Thus 
the  sheplicrds  kept  watch  over  their  flocks  by  night,  Luke  ii.  8. 
Our  mind  must  be  intent  upon  our  business,  that  we  may  catch  all 
advantages  against,  and  ward  off  hazard  from  the  enemy.  Hence 
watching  is  expressed  by  taking  heed,  and  by  looking  to  ourselves, 
1  Cor.  X.  12 ;  2  John  8.     We  are  now, 

II.  Under  several  branches  to  speak  of  the  object  of  watching. 
The  branches  are  these  three, 

I.  Some  things  we  must  watch  over  to  keep  them  right. 

II.  Some  things  we  must  watch  against. 

III.  Some  things  we  must  watch  for. 

I.  There  are  some  things  we  must  watch  over  to  keep  them  right. 

1.  Watch  over  yourselves.  "Only,"  said  Moses,  "take  heed  to 
thyself,  and  keep  thy  soul  diligently,  lest  thou  forget  the  things 
which  thine  eyes  have  seen,  and  lest  they  depart  from  thy  heart  all 
the  days  of  thy  life."  Every  man  is  his  own  nearest  neighbour, 
atid  so  his  worst  enemy  is  nearest  to  him.  None  capable  to  do  us 
so  much  harm. 

Watch  then  over  your  heads,  your  principles,  1  Tim.  iv.  1.  The 
spirit  of  delusion  rageth.  New  doctrines  are  very  enticing  to  those 
that  have  not  had  the  spiritual  relish,  and  felt  the  efficacy  of  the 
old  upon  their  hearts,  2  Tim.  iv.  3,  and  iii.  4.  When  the  truth  is  not 
received  with  love,  the  spirit  of  delusion  leads  men  to  believe  a  lie. 

Watch  over  your  hearts.  "  Keep  thy  heart  with  all  diligence, 
for  out  of  it  are  the  issues  of  life."  The  heart  is  the  source  of 
action.  It  is  as  the  eye  to  the  body.  "  If  therefore  thine  eye  be 
single,  thy  whole  body  shall  be  full  of  light.  But  if  thine  eye  be 
evil,  thy  whole  body  shall  be  full  of  darkness."  The  same  may  be 
said  of  the  heart.  There  is,  then,  the  greatest  need  for  watching  it, 
"  for  it  is  deceitful  above  all  things,  and  desperately  wicked."  He 
would  act  foolishly,  who  desiring  to  keep  the  water  pure,  would  sit 
down  by  the  streams,  neglecting  the  fountain.  To  watch  the  out- 
ward man  and  not  the  heart,  is  to  shut  the  door  and  the  thief  in 
the  house. 

The  thoughts  of  the  heart  must  be  watched.  "  0  Jerusalem, 
wash  thine  heart  from  wickedness,  that  thou  mayest  be  saved  :  how 
long  shall  thy  vain  thoughts  lodge  within  thee."  Thus  David  de- 
clares, "  I  hate  vain  thoughts."     Thoughts  are  the   births  of  our 


STATED,  AND  ENFORCED.  389 

hearts,  and  we  had  need  to  watch,  and  observe  of  what  sort  they 
are,  and  stifle  evil  thoughts  in  the  womb,  lest  through  unwatchful- 
ness  they  swarm  forth  and  defile  the  wliole  man,  Mark  riii.  20 — 23. 
One  wandering  thought  has  been  a  wide  door  at  which  the  soul's 
life  and  vigour  in  duties  have  gone  out,  being  as  a  dart  struck, 
through  the  heart  of  a  bird  singing  on  a  tree. 

Watch  also  the  affections  of  the  heart.  Good  ones  are  easily 
crushed,  and  evil  ones,  like  bad  weeds,  grow  up  apace,  Song  ii.  15. 
0 !  how  ready  are  our  affections  to  go  astray,  either  on  unlawful, 
or  else  immoderately  on  lawful  objects ;  and  when  once  set  on, 
they  run  along,  as  the  fire  in  the  train,  Ecci.  vi.  9.  Therefore, 
watch  your  hearts.  He  that  hath  no  rule  over  his  own  spirit,  is  like 
a  city  that  is  broken  down  and  without  walls. 

"Watch  over  your  tongues.  "  If  any  man  among  you  seemeth  to 
be  religious,  and  bridleth  not  his  tongue,  but  deceiveth  his  own  heart, 
this  man's  religion  is  vain."  It  is  dangerous  to  ride  on  an  unbrid- 
dled  horse.  David  said,  "  I  will  take  heed  to  my  ways,  that  I  sin 
not  with  my  tongue ;  I  will  keep  my  mouth  with  a  bridle,  while  the 
wicked  is  before  me."  "Again,"  said  he,  "set  a  watch,  0  Lord, 
before  my  mouth,  keep  the  door  of  my  lips."  The  tongue  boasteth 
great  things.  It  is  apt  to  fall  into  undue  silence,  or  sinful  speaking. 
A  single  word  may  be  of  dreadful  consequence.  "  For  by  thy  words 
thou  shalt  be  justified,  and  by  thy  words  thou  shaft  be  condemned." 
The  unruliness  of  the  tongue  it  seems  had  cast  the  rich  man  in  hell 
into  a  burning  fever,  where  no  cooling  was  to  be  expected,  Luke  xvi. 
24. 

Your  senses  must  be  watched.  These  are  the  gates  of  the  soul, 
and  when  the  town  is  besieged,  strict  watch  must  be  kept  at  the 
gates.  Satan  lays  his  trains  at  these  gates ;  if  they  be  not  guarded, 
the  whole  soul  may  be  set  on  fire.  The  senses  of  hearing  and  see- 
ing, must  in  an  especial  manner  be  watched.  By  the  eyes  and  ears 
did  the  devil  blow  up  all  mankind  in  Adam  and  Eve.  The  eyes 
ruined  Achan,  and  wounded  David  severely.  Job  was  glad  to  make 
a  covenant  with  them. 

Watch  over  yi)ur  feet,  your  walk  and  conversation.  We  are 
exhorted  "  to  walk  circumspectly,  not  as  fools,  but  as  wise."  We 
should  walk  wisely,  noticing  every  step.  "  We  must  watch  in  all 
things,"  for  we  are  ready  to  stumble  in  all  things.  We  must  not 
walk  at  random  ;  "  but  in  all  our  ways  acknowledge  the  Lord,  and 
he  shall  direct  our  paths. 

2.  Watch  over  your  graces.  Grace  is  that  fire  sent  down  from 
heaven  into  the  hearts  of  sinners,  which  must  not  be  neglected, 
2  Tim.  i.  6.     Our  graces  are  subject  to  decay,  though  not  to  death. 


390  CHRISTIAN  WATCHFULNESS 

Though  grace  caunot  die  out  of  the  garden  of  the  heart,  when  once 
it  is  implanted,  yet  it  may  be  overgrown  and  hid.  It  is  a  great 
pledge  of  the  Lord's  love  and  every  way  precious,  therefore  to  be 
watched,  seeing  it  is  in  hazard. 

3.  Watch  over  your  duties.  Take  heed  how  you  hear,  how  you 
read,  pray,  meditate  and  communicate.  Remember  what  Paul  says, 
"  I  find  then  a  law,  that  when  I  would  do  good,  evil  is  present  witii 
me."  Unwatchfulness  in  duties,  makes  them  useless,  like  a  man 
shooting  an  arrow  at  random.  We  should  watch  the  outward  man 
in  duty.  Men  caunot  pray  sleeping,  nor  hear  when  gazing  around 
them.  Watch  the  inward  man  the  soul,  that  it  behave  rightly. 
Satan  is  ready  to  cast  a  dead  fly  into  the  ointment  to  spoil  all,  or  to 
send  the  birds  flocking  to  the  carcase.  See  how  David  set  himself 
to  his  duty,  "  My  voice,"  said  he,  "  shalt  thou  hear  in  the  morning, 
0  Lord  ;  in  the  morning  will  I  direct  my  prayer  unto  thee,  and  will 
look  up." 

4.  Watch  over  your  attainments.  "  Look,"  says  John,  "  to  your- 
selves, that  we  lose  not  those  things  we  have  wrought,  but  that  we 
receive  a  full  reward."  If  it  were  but  a  weak  spark  of  grace,  "  yet  be 
watchful,  and  strengthen  the  things  which  remain,  that  are  ready  to 
die."  If  it  were  but  a  conviction,  let  us  say  with  David,  "  my  siu 
is  ever  before  me."  "  Quench  not  the  Spirit."  Do  not  let  out  the 
fire,  by  neglecting  it.  The  cloud  like  a  man's  hand,  if  cherished, 
may  ere  long  cover  the  heavens.  See  how  watchful  the  spouse  was, 
when  she  had  found  Christ,  "  I  charge  you,"  said  she,  "  0  ye 
daughters  of  Jerusalem,  by  the  roes  and  hinds  of  the  field,  that  ye 
stir  not  up,  nor  awake  my  love  till  he  please." 

II.  There  are  some  things  we  must  watch  against. 

1.  Watch  against  your  lusts  and  corruptions.  In  an  especial 
manner  let  us  watch  against  the  sin  of  our  nature,  called  the  old 
man,  and  by  us  usually  the  evil  heart ;  that  woful  bent  of  our  souls 
to  evil,  the  body  of  sin,  Rom.  vii.  24.  This  reigns  as  a  king  in  the 
unregenerate  ;  and  in  the  regenerate  it  is  dethroned,  but  still  endea- 
vours to  get  the  throne  again,  and  in  the  meantime  endeavours  to 
command.  "  Let  not  sin,  therefore,  reign  in  your  mortal  body, 
that  they  should  obey  it  in  the  lusts  thereof." 

Watch  against  your  former  sins,  with  which  you  were  sometimes 
led  away,  and  have  been  engaging  against.  "  As  obedient  children, 
not  fashioning  yourselves  according  to  the  former  lusts  in  your 
ignorance."  Your  former  loves  will  make  suit  again  to  you,  and 
be  in  on  you,  if  you  watch  not.  Remember  you  are  naturally  bent 
to  backslide,  and,  like  Israel,  to  follow  after  your  lovers ;  theiefore 
look  not  back  to  Sodom. 


STATED,  AND  ENFORCED.  291 

"Watch  against  your  particular  sins,  to  which  you  find  yourselves 
most  inclined.  The  strongest  guard  should  always  be  at  the  weak- 
est part  of  the  wall.  Every  man  has  his  weak  side,  his  "  sin  that 
doth  most  easily  beset  him."  Take  notice  of  this  by  all  means,  and 
endeavour  to  lay  it  aside,  that  each  may  be  able  to  say  with  David, 
"  I  kept  myself  from  mine  iniquity." 

"Watch  against  little  sins.  The  proverb  is,  the  little  thief  makes 
least  noise,  but  opens  the  door  to  the  rest.  An  improper  look  to 
Bathsheba,  in  the  end  broke  David's  bones,  A  little  sleep  brings 
on  want  as  an  armed  man. 

2.  Watch  against  appearances  of  evil,  1  Thess.  v.  22.  Neither  do 
evil,  nor  what  appears  to  be  evil.  Such  as  neglect  this  rule,  offend 
and  stumble  others,  and  so  offend  God.  They  grieve  the  godly,  and 
harden  the  wicked. 

3.  Against  occasions  of  sin.  It  is  difficult  and  dangerous  for  a 
man  to  walk  with  bags  of  powder  among  sparks.  Peter  in  the  high 
priest's  hall,  fell  intoi  "j  grievous  sin.  "  Enter  not  into  the  path  of 
the  wicked,  and  go  not  in  the  way  of  evil  men.  Avoid  it,  pass  not 
by  it,  turn  from  it,  and  pass  away."  Sin  has  a  lodging  within,  and 
wants  but  an  occasion  to  call  it  forth,  and  therefore  starve  your 
lusts,  by  fleeing  from  occasions  of  sinning. 

4.  "Watch  against  temptations  to  sin.  Watch  and  pray,  that  ye 
enter  not  into  temptation  :  the  spirit  indeed  is  willing,  but  the  flesh 
is  weak.  Ton  live  amidst  many  snares.  Be  upon  your  guard,  tliat 
you  may  resist  when  tempted,  and  throw  not  yourselves  in  the  way 
of  temptation.  You  cannot  expect  to  escape  temptations  while 
here.  God  will  have  you  tried,  and  temptations  will  easily  lead 
aside  the  unwary. 

5.  Against  evil  company.  A  man  is  known  by  his  company,  and 
is  always  in  some  degree  influenced  by  it.  Evil  communications 
corrupt  good  manners.  He  that  walketh  with  wise  men  shall  be 
wise,  but  a  companion  of  fools  shall  be  destroyed. 

III.  There  are  some  things  we  must  watch  for,  as  men  watching 
for  advantages  against  the  enemy,  and  for  strengthening  themselves. 

1.  Watch  for  the  proper  season  of  duty,  "Praying  always," 
says  Paul,  "  with  all  prayer  and  supplication  in  the  Spirit,  and 
watching  thereunto  with  all  perseverance,  and  supplication  for  all 
saints."  There  is  an  opportunity  for  doing  good,  Gal.  vi.  10,  which, 
if  not  embraced,  may  do  much  harm.  "To  every  thing  there  is  a 
season."  This  may  come  and  pass  too  without  improvement,  if  a 
man  be  not  watching.  Many  a  fair  child  is  lost  by  an  untimely 
birth,  and  many  a  good  duty  is  spoiled  for  want  of  doing  it  in  its 
season.     Every  thing  is  beautiful  in  its  season. 


392  CIiniSTIAK  WATCHFUL.VESS 

2.  "Watch  for  the  motions  of  the  Spirit.  He  ia  an  unwise  mariner 
that  talces  not  heed  to  wind  and  tide.  He  can  neither  command 
them  \vlien  he  will,  nor  set  out  to  sea  without  them.  If  a  man  be 
80  happy  as  to  watch  the  blowings  of  the  Spirit,  he  may  make  good 
progress  ;  otherwise,  he  may  do  much  to  little  purpose.  As  soon  as 
God  revealed  himself,  "  Moses  made  haste,  and  bowed  his  head  to- 
ward the  earth,  and  worshipped.  And  he  said,  if  now  I  have  found 
grace  in  thy  sight,  0  Lord,  let  my  Lord,  I  pray  thee,  go  among  us, 
(for  it  is  a  stiflf-necked  people),  and  pardon  our  iniquity  and  our  sin, 
and  take  us  for  thine  inheritance." 

3.  Watch  for  experiences,  by  observing  carefully  the  dispensa- 
tions of  providence  towards  you.  "  AVhoso  is  wise,  and  will  observe 
these  things,  even  they  shall  understand  the  loving-kindness  of 
the  Lord."  An  observing  Christian  is  rich  in  experience.  "  For 
thou,  Lord,  hast  made  me  glad  through  thy  work;  I  will  triumph 
in  the  works  of  thy  hand."  Providence  is  every  day  big  with  ad- 
vantage to  the  observing  Christian.  Sometimes  it  brings  him  a 
reproof,  light,  comfort,  evidence  of  God's  faithfulness,  and  such  like 
things  ;  but  the  un watchful  let  all  these  escape. 

4.  Watch  the  success  of  your  duties.  David  resolved  not  only 
that  God  should  hear  his  voice  in  the  morning,  but  also  that  he 
would  look  up  for  an  answer.  Observe  how  you  succeed  at  a 
prayer,  a  sermon,  or  at  a  communion.  The  prayer  that  is  not 
looked  after,  is  not  likely  to  reach  God's  ears.  Alas  !  many  go  to 
God  in  duties,  as  children  at  their  play  come  and  knock  at  people's 
doors,  and  presently  run  away  to  their  play  again. 

in.  "We  are  to  enforce  the  doctrine,  by  giving  reasons  why  we 
should  watch. 

1.  Because  God  commands  it,  and  that  very  often.  He  hath  set 
us  to  our  post,  and  we  must  watch  and  not  sleep. 

2.  Because  we  have  the  enemy  within  our  walls.  A  deceitful 
heart,  with  strong  and  deceitful  lusts.  ''  The  heart  is  deceitful 
above  all  things,  and  desperately  wicked."  Therefore,  says  Solomon, 
"  He  that  trusteth  in  his  own  heart  is  a  fool,  but  whoso  walketh 
wisely,  he  shall  be  delivered."  How  can  men  sleep  sound,  when 
they  know  that  cut-throats  are  within  their  houses  ?  Thou  hast 
within  thee  what  will  ruin  thee,  if  thou  watch  not,  though  the  devil 
should  never  attack  thee.  A  man's  enemies  are  those  of  his  own 
house. 

3.  Because  there  are  snares  laid  for  us  every  where,  hy  the  devil 
and  the  world.  Therefore,  says  Paul,  "  See  then  that  ye  walk  cir- 
cumspectly, not  as  fools,  but  as  wise."  There  is  no  place  where 
Satan  has  not  his  traps  set  for  thee.     In  the  wilderness  he  tempted 


STATED,  AND  ENFORCED.  393 

Christ ;  he  tempted  Eve  when  alone,  and  Peter  in  company.  There 
are  snares  in  thy  lawful  enjoyments,  visible  and  invisible.  Oar  time 
is  like  to  be  a  time  of  snares,  we  have  need  to  watch.  Remember 
Jesus  hath  said,  "He  that  overcometh,  the  same  shall  be  clothed  in 
white  raiment;  and  I  will  not  blot  out  his  name  out  of  the  book  of 
life,  but  I  will  confess  his  name  before  ray  Father,  and  before  his 
angels." 

4.  Because  no  duty  can  be  done  right,  where  this  is  wanting. 
If  we  would  pray  aright,  "  we  must  watch  and  pray."  If  we  would 
hear  aright,  "  we  must  take  heed  how  we  hear."  If  we  would  stand 
fast,  "we  must  take  heed  lest  we  fall."  As  a  servant  must  be 
awake  if  he  would  do  any  piece  of  work,  so  must  a  Christian. 

Use  1. — Of  reproof  to  the  unwatchful.  Alas  !  it  is  to  be  feared 
some  of  us  have  fallen  asleep  already.  I  will  tell  you  how  you  will 
know  it. 

1.  A  silent  conscience  is  a  sign  of  a  sleeping  soul.  When  David 
cut  off  Saul's  skirt,  his  heart  smote  him,  for  he  was  then  awake ; 
but  when  he  committed  murder,  his  conscience  was  silent  till  Nathan 
came  to  him,  for  he  was  asleep. 

2.  A  dreamiug  man  is  asleep.  Is  thy  heart  saying  peace,  like 
Agag  thinking  the  bitterness  of  death  is  past.  Thou  hast  received 
the  communion,  and  hast  entered  into  engagements,  and  art  not  see- 
ing the  hazard  of  breaking  your  vows.  I  tell  thee  thou  art  sleeping 
in  thy  fetters.  A  waking  Christian  has  his  hazard  always  before 
him. 

3.  Loss  of  impressions  of  the  work  in  which  thou  hast  been  en- 
gaged. A  waking  man  finds  the  bands  that  are  on  him,  but  one 
asleep  is  insensible  of  them.  Ah  !  how  soon  are  they  lost.  The 
Israelites  "  soon  forgat  his  works ;  they  waited  not  for  his  counsel." 

4.  Laziness  and  heartlessness  in  going  about  duties.  The  spouse 
says,  "By  night  on  my  bed,  I  sought  him  whom  my  seal  loveth  :  I 
sought  him,  but  I  found  him  not."    How  art  thou  now  at  thy  duties  ? 

Lastif/,  Forgetting  of  your  work.  Many  that  engage  with  Christ, 
are  like  servants  called  on  by  the  master  to  do  such  service,  they 
promise,  but  fall  asleep,  and  forget  it.  "  When  Jesus  found  his 
disciples  sleeping,  he  said  unto  Peter,  Simon,  sleepest  thou  ?  Couldst 
not  thou  watch  one  hour  ?"  Are  all  your  vows  and  engagements 
turned  to  that  already  ? 

Use  2.     Watch  at  this  time,  and  at  all  times. 

Motive  1.  Consider  your  danger.  "  Let  him  that  thinketh  he 
standeth,  take  heed  lest  he  fall."  You  are  in  hazard  of  falling  into 
sin,  even  gross  sins.  There  are  many  ditches  in  our  way.  If  we 
watch  not,  we  may  be  over  head  aud  ears,  ere  long.     How  did  the 


394  CHRISTIAN  WATCHFULNESS 

Israelites  in  the  wilderness  fall,  notwithstanding  their  privileges. 
Peter  fell  very  soon  after  the  first  communion.  Many  have  so  fallen, 
and  so  soon  after  a  sacrament,  that  it  would  seem  the  devil  had  gone 
down  with  the  sop.  Tou  are  in  danger  of  falling  under  God's  dis- 
pleasure :  "  But  with  many  of  them,  God  was  not  well  pleased  ;  for 
they  were  overthrown  in  the  wilderness."  Un  watch  fulness  opens 
the  door  to  sin,  sin  to  wrath.  "Where  men's  lusts  dine  with  them, 
judgments  will  sup.  "  Behold,"  says  Jesus,  "  I  come  as  a  thief. 
Blessed  is  he  that  watcheth  and  keepeth  his  garments,  lest  he  walk 
naked,  and  they  see  his  shame." 

2.  God  is  watching  you,  his  eyes  are  upon  you  at  all  times  ;  on 
your  thoughts,  words,  and  actions,  Psal.  cxxxix.  The  thief  surely 
had  need  to  watch  his  hands  while  in  the  sight  of  the  judge. 

3.  The  devil  never  sleeps,  but  is  watching  for  your  ruin.  "  Be 
sober,  be  vigilant,  because  your  adversary  the  devil,  as  a  roaring 
lion,  walketh  about,  seeking  whom  he  may  devour."  "  But  know 
this,  that  if  the  good  man  of  the  house  had  known  in  what  watch  the 
thief  would  come,  he  would  have  watched,  and  would  not  have  suf- 
sered  his  house  to  be  broken  up."  Would  Sisera  have  lain  down  to 
sleep  had  he  known  the  hammer  and  nail  were  in  Jael's  hand.  Satan 
stands  at  thy  hand. 

4.  What  thou  hast  lost  by  former  unwatchfulness.  Hast  thou  not 
decayed  and  been  brought  very  low  by,  and  lost  great  attainments, 
and  wilt  thou  not  be  wise  ? 

Lastly^  Consider  the  shortness  and  uncertainty  of  your  time.  It 
is  short,  therefore  the  devil  will  be  busy,  and  you  have  the  more 
need  to  make  haste.  This  laborious  trade  will  be  the  sooner  over. 
There  is  no  watching  in  heaven.  Christ  has  told  us  he  will  come, 
but  not  when,  that  we  may  always  watch,  Mark.  xiii.  32 — 37- 

Directions.  1.  Harbour  no  known  sin  in  thy  soul.  This  will 
stupify  thy  conscience. 

2.  Beware  of  immoderate  aflPection  to  created  enjoyments. 

3.  Crush  security  in  the  bud. 

4.  Keep  up  a  sense  of  spiritual  wants,  and  be  daily  travelling  be- 
tween Christ's  fulness  and  your  own  emptiness.     Amen. 


GOD  HIDIXG  HIS  FACE  FROM  BACKSLIDERS.  395 

January  25,  1708. 
GOD  HIDING  HIS  FACE  FROM  BACKSLIDERS. 

SERMON  XXXYI. 

Isaiah  Ixiv.  7, 

And  there  is  none  that  calleth  upon  thy  name,  that  stirreth  up  himself  to 
take  hold  of  thee :  for  thou  hast  hid  thy  face  from  us,  and  hast  oon- 
sttmed  us,  because  of  our  iniquities. 

This  chapter  contains  a  prayer  of  the  church  in  great  distress,  in 
which  they  plead  with  God  for  his  return,  confess  their  sin,  and  la- 
ment their  case.  In  the  sixth  verse,  they  lament  their  sinfulness 
and  misery,  and  here  they  bewail  the  helplessness  of  it,  and  the  im- 
probability of  their  recovery. 

The  time  to  which  this  relates  is  twofold ;  namely,  the  Babylon- 
ish captivity,  and  the  final  rejection  of  the  Jews.  This  prophecy 
was  before  the  Babylonish  captivity,  and  that  it  hath  a  respect  unto 
it,  will  scarcely  be  doubted ;  but  that  it  looks  further,  is  clear  from 
the  Lord's  answer  to  the  prayer,  Isa.  Ixv.  1.  "Whence  we  observe, 
that  though  some  are  willing  to  part  with  Christ,  he  will  always 
find  others  ready  to  entertain  him. 

In  the  text  we  have  mentioned  the  general  neglect  of  the  duty,  to 
which  their  circumstances  called  them  :  "  There  is  none  that  calleth 
upon  thy  name."  "VTe  are  not  to  understand  it,  as  if  there  were  simply 
none  at  all ;  for  in  the  worst  of  times,  the  Lord  had  always  a  remnant, 
that  would  not,  for  their  part,  give  consent  to  his  departure.  The  Lord 
reserved  seven  thousand  in  Elijah's  days ;  but  comparatively,  there 
were  so  very  few,  that  they  were  next  to  none,  and  could  hardly  be 
discerned  amongst  the  multitude. 

TVe  have,  also,  the  woful  frame  and  temper  of  the  spirits  of  pro- 
fessors in  that  day.  "  None  stirreth  up  himself  to  take  hold  of 
thee."  There  was  a  general  deadness  and  indifference,  nothing  like 
an  active  vigilant  frame.  They  were  not  exercised  about  the  hold- 
ing of  Christ  still,  with  themselves  and  with  others.  Their  best 
friend  is  taking  his  departure  from  their  house,  but  they  are  in  bed  ; 
and  though  they  may  coldly  cry  out  of  their  beds  to  bid  him  stay, 
yet  they  do  not  rise  up,  and  resolutely  take  hold  of  him,  and  say 
they  are  resolved  not  to  part  with  him.  But  for  them  he  may  go, 
if  he  will,  they  are  indifferent. 

YoL.  lY.  2  0 


396  GOD  niDINW  HIS  PACE 

DocTKiNE  I.  Though  the  Lord  be  on  his  way  to  depart,  yet  he 
may  be  holdeu  still. 

Doctrine  II.  When  the  Lord  is  on  his  way  to  go,  it  is  high  time 
for  people  to  stir  up  themselves  to  hold  him  still. 

Doctrine  III.  Sometimes  religion  is  at  such  a  low  ebb  amongst  a 
professing  people,  that  Christ  may  even  go  his  way,  for  any  that  is 
to  hold  him  still. 

Doctrine  I.  Though  the  Lord  be  on  his  way  to  depart,  yet  he 
may  be  holden  still.     To  confirm  this,  consider, 

1.  It  is  pure  love  that  brings  Christ  to  a  people  or  person,  Dent, 
vii.  6 — 8 ;  and  such  you  know,  may  easily  be  holden  still.  What 
should  have  brought  him  out  of  heaven,  but  love  to  the  inhabitants 
of  the  earth.  His  delights  were  with  the  children  of  men.  Had  he 
not  enough  in  the  hallelujahs  of  angels  in  the  bosom  of  the  Father,  or 
was  there  any  attracting  object  here  below  ?  No,  surely.  If  he 
would  have  them  home  to  be  his  spouse,  he  behoved  to  wash  his 
filthy  bride  in  his  own  blood,  before  she  could  set  her  foot  within  his 
Father's  house.  Now,  if  he  took  such  a  journey  to  come,  will  he  not 
stay  if  he  get  entertainment. 

2.  He  is  unwilling  to  go  away,  when  he  is  come,  and  therefore  he 
may  be  holden  still.  This  appears,  if  you  consider:  1.  That  our 
Lord  waits  long  upon  poor  sinners,  if  so  be  they  will  be  so  wise  as 
receive  him.  "Behold,"  says  he,  "I  stand  at  the  door  and  knock; 
if  any  man  will  hear  my  voice  and  open  the  door,  I  will  come  in  and 
sup  with  him,  and  he  with  me."  He  waited  one  hundred  and  twenty 
years  on  the  old  world,  in  the  days  of  Noah.  He  has  waited  long 
on  Scotland,  and  yet  he  is  not  gone.  He  has  waited  at  our  doors  on 
most  of  us,  and  ho  is  still  ready  to  embrace  us.  2.  Many  times  he 
enters  on  his  way,  and  yet  he  turns  back  again,  as  if  he  could  not 
obtain  it  of  himself,  to  leave  even  a  professing  sinful  generation, 
Hos.  xi.  8,  9.  How  often  did  he  leave  the  people  of  the  Jews,  before 
he  parted  with  them  altogether  ?  Many  good  nights,  is  an  evidence 
of  unwillingness  to  go  away.     How  often  has  he  turned  his  back  on 

Scotland,  and  yet  come  back  again,  even  when  he  was  almost  out  of 
sight ;  when  we  were  ready  to  say,  we  shall  not  see  the  Lord,  even  the 
Lord  in  the  land  of  the  living.  How  can  it  be  thus  ?  Truly  Christ 
is  not  so  bound  to  any  land,  but  he  may  leave  it  altogether.  Look  to 
the  Jews,  the  seven  churches  of  Asia,  and  others.  The  reasons  are  : — 
There  may  be  some  hidden  ones  among  them,  so  that  he  cannot  leave 
a  land  altogether,  till  these  be  put  out  of  harm's  way  Isa.  Ivii.  1,  2.  Lot 
must  be  out  of  Sodom  before  it  be  destroyed.  Again,  there  may  be  some 
chosen  vessels  in  the  loins  of  such  a  generation,  as  it  was  in  the  case  of 


FROM  BACKSLIDERS.  397 

that  generatioa  that  came  out  of  Egypt,  with  whom  God  bare  forty 
years  for  their  posterity's  sake.  He  does  it  also  for  the  glory  of  hia 
patience.  God  will  have  it  to  be  seen,  that  he  delights  in  mercy, 
and  that  he  does  not  execute  his  judgments  on  sinners,  till  they 
extort  them  out  of  his  hands.  Judgment  is  his  strange  act.  FinaUy, 
God  spares  a  wicked  people,  till  the  measure  of  their  iniquity  be 
filled  up,  and  the  cup  be  brim  full,  and  then  the  last  stroke  comes, 
which  compensates  for  its  being  so  long  a-coming,  with  the  severity 
of  it  when  it  is  come. 

3.  He  gives  frequent  warning  that  he  is  going  away  ere  he  go  ; 
and  why  all  that,  but  to  stir  up  people  to  hold  him  still.  Thus  he 
■warned  the  old  world  by  Noah.  Not  a  chop  was  laid  on  the  ark, 
but  it  was  a  warning  to  them. 

4.  The  breach  never  begins  on  his  side,  nor  does  he  go  while 
people  are  resolute  to  hold  him  still.  See  how  he  condescends  to 
Abraham,  Gen.  xviii.  23 — 33;  and  how  the  Lord,  by  Paul  and 
Barnabas,  takes  his  leave  of  the  Jews,  Acts  xiii.  46. 

Finally,  He  has  been  holden  still,  when  he  was  on  his  way  to 
depart ;  and  what  has  been,  may  be,  Luke  xxiv.  28,  29.  The 
spouse,  Song  iii.  4.     Jacob,  Gen.  xxxii.     Moses,  Exodus  xxxii. 

Use  1.  If  the  Lord  depart  from  us,  then  the  blame  lies  at  our 
door,  for  then  he  may  be  holden  still.  The  case  of  this  land  is  very 
dangerous,  yet  it  is  not  hopeless.  Our  Lord  is  yet  within  a  cry, 
within  the  reach  of  prayers.  If  he  go,  for  want  of  serious  invitation 
from  us  to  stay  still,  we  are  inexcusable.  Alas  !  that  there  are  so 
few  stirring  up  themselves  to  take  hold  of  him.  I  must  needs  say, 
that  the  empty  seats  in  this  kirk,  on  the  fast  day,  are  no  good 
sign  either  for  the  land  or  the  parish.  If  sitting  at  home,  or  going 
about  their  own  work  that  day,  was  a  way  to  hold  Christ  still  in  the 
land,  I  am  much  mistaken.  Surely,  the  people  of  Judah  did  not  so 
much  despise  the  fast  proclaimed  by  Jehoshaphat,  2  Chron.  xx.  3,  4. 
But  if  these  people  did,  with  Esther,  iv.  16,  keep  private  fasts  at 
home,  when  others  were  gathered  for  that  work  in  the  congregation, 
it  will  say  much  to  clear  them  of  contempt  of  the  ecclesiastical  and 
civil  authority,  calling  them  to  fast  and  pray  that  day,  and  say 
that  they  were  indeed  concerned  to  hold  Christ  among  us.  And 
never  more  need  to  fast  than  at  this  day. 

2.  This  may  stir  us  up  to  wrestle  with  God  for  his  stay  amongst 
us,  we  may  come  to  prevail.  "Where  there  is  no  hope  of  success 
there  can  be  no  vigorous  endeavours ;  but  a  possibility  of  being  sul-- 
cessful  in  this  very  important  matter,  may  engage  us  to  exert  our- 
selves. There  is  hope  in  Israel  concerning  this  thing,  Zeph.  ii. 
1—3. 

2  c  2 


398  GOD  HIDING  HIS  FACE 

Doctrine  II.  When  the  Lord  is  upon  his  way  to  go,  it  is  high 
time  for  people  to  stir  up  themselves  to  hold  him  still. 

I.  I  shall  shew  you  when  it  may  be  said  that  the  Lord  is  upon 
his  way. 

II.  I  shall  shew  what  it  is  to  take  hold  of  Christ. 

III.  What  it  is  to  stir  up  ourselves  to  take  hold  of  him. 

IV.  Give  the  reasons  of  the  point.     I  am  then, 

1.  To  shew  you  when  it  may  be  said  that  the  Lord  is  upon  his 
way,  and  so  when  it  is  high  time  for  us  to  stir  up  ourselves  to  hold 
him  still.  I  shall  do  this,  first,  more  generally,  and  then  more  par- 
ticularly. 

I.  More  generally,  with  respect  to  a  land  in  which  the  Lord  has 
set  up  his  candlestick.     The  Lord  is  upon  his  way, 

1.  When  people  have  plenty  of  gospel  means,  and  yet  remain 
unfruitful  under  them,  Isa.  v.  4 — 6 ;  Heb.  vi.  7,  8.  The  ox  is  near 
to  the  slaughter,  when  he  has  meat  to  the  full  laid  before  him  to 
fatten  him.  If  the  Lord  mind  to  lay  the  cities  of  Judah  waste,  he 
will  send  Isaiah  to  preach  to  them,  and  ripen  them  for  that  stroke. 
Alas !  there  is  too  great  ground  of  fear,  that  this  takes  up  a  great 
part  of  the  commission  of  the  ministers  of  Scotland  this  day.  That 
is  an  astonishing  word  :  "  And  now  also,  the  axe  is  laid  unto  the 
root  of  the  trees  ;  therefore  every  tree  which  bringeth  not  forth 
good  fruit  is  hewn  down  and  cast  into  the  fire,"  Matth.  iii.  10. 
*'And  now."  Let  us  attend  to  this  passage  in  its  connection. 
0 !  what  a  people  John  had  to  preach  to,  and  he  was  a  burning 
and  a  shining  light.  The  whole  people  flocked  out  to  hear  him 
preach,  ver.  5.  They  would  not  loiter  at  home.  They  did  not 
stand  to  undertake  a  long  journey  out  of  the  cities,  to  the  wilderness 
to  hear  him,  ver.  1.  They  made  open  profession  of  repentance,  ver. 
6.  They  were  admitted  by  him  to  the  sacrament  of  baptism. 
Finally,  they  had  their  cases  of  conscience  to  propose  to  him,  Luke 
iii.  10.  But  notwithstanding,  says  he,  "  Now  is  the  axe  laid  to  the 
root  of  the  trees."  It  is  with  the  gospel  as  with  the  sun,  which 
sometimes  gives  a  very  fair  blink  a  little  before  it  set ;  and  usually 
the  greatest  severity  follows  at  the  heels  of  the  greatest  mercy;  of 
which  that  is  a  dreadful  instance,  1  Thess.  ii.  16.  This  may  let  us 
see  that  it  is  high  time  to  stir  np  ourselves. 

2.  When  people  have  been  tried  with  many  lighter  rods,  and  have 
not  been  made  better.  Sodom  got  a  stroke,  Gen.  xiv.  bnt  it  did 
them  no  good,  therefore  came  on  them  that  fearful  overthrow. 
When  all  means  have  been  used  to  do  good  to  all  people,  and  yet 
have  proved  unsuccessful,  the  Lord  is  near  to  a  departure.  He  then 
says  of  such,  as  he  did  of  the  fig-tree  :  "  If  it  bear  fruit,  well ;  and 


FROM  BACKSLIDEUS,  399 

if  not,  then  after  that,  lliou  shalt  cut  it  down."  Scotland  hath  got 
a  little  of  various  kinds  of  judgments,  and  yet  what  the  better  are 
we  ?     He  that  was  filthy,  is  filthy  still. 

3.  When  some  of  the  pillars  of  a  land  fall,  and  others  begin  to  fall. 
Good  Josiah  must  be  taken  away  in  his  young  days,  2  Kings  xxii. 
20.  Isaiah  says,  chap.  Ivii.  1,  "  The  righteous  is  taken  away  from 
the  evil  to  come."  Luther,  writing  on  this  text  saith,  that  the  Lord, 
after  his  death,  would  bring  great  affliction  on  Germany.  It  so  fell 
out,  two  years  after  his  death.  Noah  was  taken  into  the  ark,  and  Lot 
out  of  Sodom,  before  the  threatened  destruction  came.  We  are  not 
without  such  sad  prognostics.  But  then,  when  the  remaining  pillars 
fail,  that  finishes  the  business.  It  was  a  sad  token,  when  Jonah  was 
fast  asleep  in  the  ship.  When  the  godly  that  remain  are  not  fit  to 
stand  in  the  gap,  but  security  steals  upon  them.  Thus,  while  the 
bridegroom  tarried,  even  the  wise  virgins  slumbered.  General  secu- 
rity says  wrath  is  at  the  door,  "  for  when  they  shall  say,  peace  and 
safety,  then  suddenly  destruction  cometh  upon  them,  as  travail  upon 
a  woman  with  child ;  and  they  shall  not  escape."  The  security  of 
this  generation  is  too  palpable. 

4.  When  the  glory  is  gone  the  length  of  the  threshhold  of  the 
temple,  Ezek.  ix.  3 — 5.  When  the  shadows  of  the  evening  are 
stretched  out,  the  night  is  fast  hastening  on.  May  we  not  say,  where 
is  the  God  of  Elijah  ;  and  the  servants  may  complain,  as  their 
Master  did  before  them,  "  I  have  laboured,"  said  he,  "  in  vain ;  I 
have  spent  my  strength  for  nought  and  in  vain."  Their  own,  and 
their  people's  dead-heartedness,  often  close  up  the  door  of  utterance  ; 
and  when  that  is  opened,  yet  the  door  of  entrance  is  mostly  kept 
shut,  unless  it  be  to  hew  them  by  the  prophets,  and  slay  them  by  tlie 
words  which  come  out  of  his  mouth,  or  to  dart  in  convictions  upon 
people,  who  nevertheless  run  away  with  the  arrows  sticking  in  them, 
and  at  last  get  them  out,  and  lick  themselves  whole  again.  We  find 
this  is  sometimes  the  great  part  of  ministers'  work,  Rev.  xi.  10 ;  and  it 
is  a  sad  sign  that  Christ  and  the  gospel  are  upon  the  wing  to  depart. 
For  within  a  while,  the  tormented  hearers  rejoice  at  the  death  of  the 
tormenting  preachers,  that  ripped  up  their  sores,  and  would  not  let 
them  sleep  to  death.  This  then  should  alarm  us  to  rise  up,  and  take 
hold  of  the  Lord  to  keep  him  still,  while  the  glory  is  yet  on  the 
threshhold  ;  but  should  not  encourage  any  to  turn  their  backs  on  the 
ordinances,  lest  they  be  found  not  to  follow  after  the  Lord,  but  to 
run  away  before  him, 

II.  More  particularly. 

1.  When  spiritual  darkness  is  still  upon  the  growing  hand.  Then 
may  people  say,  Woe  unto  us  !    for  the  day  goeth  away,  for  the 


400  CtOI)  hiding  his  face 

gliadows  of  tlie  evening  are  stretched  out.  A  child  of  light  may  he 
in  darkness,  even  when  the  Lord  is  with  him,  Isa.  1.  10  ;  but  then 
he  is  laying  hold  upon  the  Lord  ;  but  when  darkness  is  growing,  and 
the  soul  is  at  ease,  God  is  on  his  way.  Many  get  a  wakening 
light,  but  it  is  not  changing,  therefore  it  decays  by  little  and  little, 
as  the  light  after  sunset,  till  it  grow  perfect  darkness.  But  as  in  a 
dead  body,  when  it  begins  to  corrupt,  there  is  a  life  and  motion  of 
another  kind  that  succeeds,  so  there  may  be  much  seeming  light 
swimming  in  the  head,  when  the  true  light  and  sense  of  religion,  in 
the  power  of  it,  is  going  away  with  all  speed;  Rev.  iii.  1.  2.  True 
light  that  affects  the  heart,  is  troublesome  and  a  burden,  but  empty 
knowledge  puffs  up  and  seems  to  give  a  name.  Oh  !  is  not  the  sun 
of  many  like  to  go  down  at  noonday?  Is  there  not  a  strangeness 
crept  in  betwixt  Christ  and  them  ?  Is  not  the  Bible  a  sealed  book 
to  many  ?  0  stir  up  yourselves  to  take  hold  of  the  Lord,  lest  if 
you  delay,  it  turn  dark  night  upon  you.  The  nearer  it  is  to  night, 
the  traveller  should  mend  his  pace,  lest  the  darkness  overtake  hira. 

2.  When  people  come  to  the  meeting  place,  time  after  time,  but 
see  not  God's  face,  nor  hear  his  voice,  then  he  is  on  his  way,  for  his 
back  is  turned.  "  They  shall  go,"  says  the  j)rophet,  "  with  their 
flocks  and  with  their  herds  to  seek  the  Lord  ;  but  they  shall  not 
find  him  ;  he  hath  withdrawn  himself  from  them."  The  Lord  does 
with  many  professors  for  their  fearful  backslidings  in  heart  and  life, 
as  David  did  with  Absalom  when  he  allowed  him  to  come  to  Jerusa- 
lem, but  not  to  see  the  king's  face.  Withdrawing  makes  way  for 
departing.  It  is  high  time  then  to  stir  up  yourselves  to  take  hold 
of  Christ,  lest  if  you  delay,  he  be,  ere  long,  out  of  your  reach,  so  as 
you  shall  not  be  able  to  overtake  him.  This  was  the  case  with  the 
spouse,  Song  v.  6 — 8. 

3.  When  people  are  spiritually  always  growing  weaker  and 
weaker.  God  was  on  his  way  from  Sardis,  when  the  things  that  re- 
mained in  them  were  ready  to  die.  When  the  Lord  draws  near  to 
the  soul,  he  comes  with  strength.  He  strengthens  his  people  with 
strength  in  the  soul.  This  is  the  case  with  many  in  our  day,  the 
longer  they  live,  the  weaker  they  grow,  and  their  corruptions 
grow  stronger  as  nails  grow  in  decaying  bodies.  They  are  as  Jeru- 
salem, sighing  and  going  backwards.  0  stir  up  yourselves  to  take 
hold  of  him,  lest  you  be,  ere  long,  like  Samson  without  his  hair, 
even  weak  as  other  men.  It  is  time  to  take  a  firm  hold  of  Christ, 
when  our  talents  are  come  down  to  one,  and  to  be  trading  diligently 
with  heaven,  lest  we  be  brought  to  beggary.  Prov.  vi.  10,  11.  It 
is  time  to  cherish  the  fire  when  it  is  come  to  a  spark  hid  among  the 
ashes. 


FROJr  BACKSLIDKKS.  401 

4.  When  people  have  forsaken  the  Lord,  aud  are  going  on  in  a 
course  of  gading  after  their  idols,  Psal.  Ixxviii.  57 — 60.  Who  can 
live  with  an  adulterous  wife,  that  will  not  give  over  her  strange 
lovers?  Ezek.  vi.  9.  This  is  a  horrid  indignity  with  which  God  will 
not  bear,  Jerera.  ii.  31 — 37-  Alas,  it  is  the  case  of  many,  their  idols 
have  stolen  away  their  hearts.  They  have  set  up  their  idols  of  jeal- 
ousy in  which  they  delight  more  than  in  the  Lord  himself. 

Arise  now  and  lay  hold  on  him  quickly,  lest  after  your  idols  have 
ruined  you,  and  you  go  to  seek  help  of  the  Lord,  you  meet  with  that, 
Go  to  the  gods  which  you  have  chosen ;  and  lest  you  be  left  at 
length  as  Michal,  with  an  image  in  the  bed  instead  of  your  husband. 

5.  When  peoples'  gifts  being  blasted,  are  withering  and  decaying. 
When  the  Lord  had  a  mind  to  leave  Saul,  he  took  the  spirit  of  go- 
vernment from  him.  It  is  a  dreadful  word.  "  If  a  man  abide  not 
in  me,  he  is  cast  forth  as  a  branch  and  is  withered,  and  men  gather 
them,  and  cast  them  into  the  fire,  and  they  ai"e  burued."  Alas,  it  is 
sad,  when  people  cannot  so  much  as  exercise  a  gift  but  before  others, 
where  they  have  the  wind  of  praise  to  fill  their  sails.  A  dead  body 
will  be  warm,  while  it  is  laid  before  a  fire,  and  others  may  be  chaf- 
fing and  rubbing  it;  but  when  it  is  laid  by  alone,  its  heat  departs, 
for  it  has  no  inward  principle  of  motion.  Follow  many  to  their  se- 
cret devotions,  and  it  will  be  seen  that  it  is  custom  and  not  con- 
science that  draws  them  thither.  How  hardly  can  they  get  a  while 
of  an  hour,  or  a  very  short  space  from  the  world,  aud  then  it  is  hud- 
dled over,  that  they  may  be  eased  of  the  burden.  Though  the 
eyes  be  shut,  yet  they  see  a  thousand  vanities  ;  the  heart  leaves  the 
tongue,  and  there  is  so  little  vital  heat  within,  that  the  word  dies  in 
their  mouths.  In  a  word,  there  is  nothing  in  them  of  real  value. 
It  is  high  time  then,  for  such  to  stir  up  themselves  to  take  hold  of 
him,  if  so  be  there  may  be  hope,  for  surely  he  is  then  on  his  way. 

Lastly,  When  the  Lord,  after  many  strugglings  in  vain  with  a 
soul,  makes  some  strong,  though  short-lived  impressions  on  the 
heart,  that  somewhat  rouseth  the  man  out  of  his  lethargy.  The 
Lord  does  with  souls  as  men  that  have  no  will  to  go  away,  though 
they  have  knocked  long,  and  yet  have  got  no  access ;  at  the  last 
they  give  some  loud  knocks,  that  if  possible  they  may  get  access, 
and  if  not  they  will  go  their  way.  0  !  it  is  dangerous  to  be  sleep- 
iug  now,  and  to  disobey  Christ's  voice.  Luke  xiii.  8,  9.  Hosea 
xiii.  13. 

Now  is  the  nick  of  time.  Strike  the  iron  while  it  is  hot.  If  you 
let  it  cool,  it  will  be  out  of  time.  Bestir  yourselves  then,  lest  he 
depart  from  you,  never  to  return.  Miss  that,  and  it  may  be  the 
wind  never  blow  again  for  transporting  you  to  Emmanuel's  land. 


402  GOD  HIDING  HIS  FACE 

O !  it  is  hard  to  tell  what  may  be  the  Lord's  last  farewell  to  your 
souls,  what  may  be  the  parting  word,  the  parting  conviction.  Only 
we  know  that  his  Spirit  will  not  always  strive  with  men.  Perhaps 
it  may  come  to  that  this  day  rith  some.  Now  or  never.  Their  sal- 
vation or  damnation  may  be  sealed.  If  you  have  not  hold  of  him 
now,  next  may  come  that  oath  :  "  They  shall  not  enter  into  my  rest." 
"We  proceed, 

II.  To  shew  what  it  is  to  take  hold  of  Christ.  He  is  now  in 
heaven,  with  respect  to  his  bodily  presence,  and  so  there  is  no  reach- 
ing him  with  the  hands  of  the  body  ;  and  though  there  were,  it 
would  be  to  little  purpose.  "  For  it  is  the  Spirit  that  quickeneth, 
the  flesh  profiteth  nothing."  It  is  then  a  spiritual  hold  we  ought  to 
take  of  him.  Now  there  is  a  three-fold  arm  which  we  should  clasp 
about  our  Lord,  to  hold  him  still. 

1.  The  arms  of  faith.  Faith  is  the  hand  of  the  soul,  which  first 
and  last  takes  hold  of  Christ,  and  it  is  a  very  prevailing  grace. 
Hence,  Jesus  said  unto  the  woman  of  Canaan,  "  0  woman,  great  is 
thy  faith;  be  it  unto  thee,  even  as  thou  wilt."  An  unbeliever 
cannot  hold  Christ,  more  than  one  that  wants  hands.  Faith  em- 
braces Christ ;  it  embraces  the  person  of  Christ.  Hence  it  is  said, 
"  As  many  as  received  him,  to  them  he  gave  power  to  become  the 
sons  of  God,  even  to  them  that  believe  on  his  name."  Christ,  in 
the  gospel,  is  ofi'ered  to  sinners  in  spiritual  marriage.  The  daughter 
of  Sion,  especially  when  she  sees  him  like  to  go  away,  puts  ofi"  all 
delays,  and  says,  "  Even  so  I  take  him,"  and  thus  is  united  to  him, 
and  carries  him  into  the  secret  chamber  of  her  heart,  not  to  sojourn, 
but  to  dwell  there.  "  That  Christ,"  says  Paul,  "  may  dwell  in  your 
hearts  by  faith."  This  is  a  noble  way  to  hold  Christ,  for  it  is  the 
keeping  at  the  door  that  puts  him  away.  Again,  faith  holds  Christ 
by  his  word  of  promise,  and  it  is  a  sure  hold  which  a  soul  gets  of 
him  this  way.  Christ  will  not  draw  back  of  his  word.  Sometimes 
we  have  but  a  loose  hold  of  men,  when  we  have  them  only  by  their 
word,  for  they  can  do  with  it  as  Joseph  with  his  mantle  ;  but  Christ 
will  not  do  so,  for  he  will  not  suffer  his  faithfulness  to  fail.  The 
covenant  is  a  bundle  of  promises,  broad  and  wide  enough,  so  as  his 
people  may  get  something  to  hold.  And  0  !  but  it  is  a  promising 
sight  when  Christ  is  going  away,  to  see  all  his  people  running  after 
him,  and  hanging  by  his  chariot  to  hold  him  still.  This,  says  he, 
will  not  drive  far. 

Faith  also  holds  fast  the  tokens  of  Christ's  love.  Faith  does  with 
an  angry  God  and  a  departing  Christ,  as  Tamar  did  with  Judah, 
Gen.  xxxviii.  25.  "When  lovers  are  to  part  for  good  and  all,  they 
will  require  up  their  tokens;  but  the  party  that  is  unwilling  the 


FROM  BACKPLIDEKS.  403 

bargain  should  break  up,  will  hold  fast  these.  Faith  can  manage 
former  experience  in  a  dark  hour,  to  the  holding  of  Christ  still, 
and  can  cast  in  its  memorials  to  the  court  of  heaven  for  favour. 
"Remember,"  say  they,  "thy  congregation,  which  thou  hast  pur- 
chased of  old;  the  rod  of  thine  inheritance,  which  thou  hast  re- 
deemed; this  Mount  Zion,  wherein  thou  hast  dwelt." 

2.  The  arras  of  love,  Luke  xxiv.  29 — 32.  They  that  will  not 
love  Christ,  pretend  what  they  will,  they  would  even  let  him  go 
without  a  good  night.  They  that  love  their  lusts,  hate  the  Lord, 
and  if  they  could  get  it  done  with  their  honesty,  would  entreat  him 
to  depart  out  of  our  coasts.  But  love  cleaves  to  Christ.  Love  hath 
cords  that  bind  to  him.  Love  doth  two  things  to  hold  Christ  still. 
Love  awakened,  flees  after  the  Lord;  even  as  a  child  who  is  taken 
up  with  pictures,  yet  when  the  mother  goes  away,  follows  after, 
weeping,  Song  v.  4 ;  vi.  2,  3.  Love  tells  Christ,  the  soul  cannot 
part  with  him,  but  if  he  goes,  he  must  not  leave  the  soul,  but  take 
it  with  him.     The  house  is  empty  when  Christ  is  not  there. 

Love  holds  the  heart  of  Christ,  and  its  hold  is  very  strong. 
"  Thou  hast  ravished  my  heart,  my  sister,  my  spouse  ;  thou  hast 
ravished  ray  heart  with  one  of  thine  eyes,  with  one  chain  of  thy 
neck."  It  is  as  death,  that  draws  all  to  it,  and  holds  all  till  a  pull 
of  omnipotency  draw  back  its  prey.  "  Many  waters  cannot  quench 
love,  neither  can  the  floods  drown  it."  Love  says  to  Christ,  as 
Ruth  to  Naomi,  "  entreat  me  not  to  leave  thee."  It  is  an  overcom- 
ing grace. 

3.  The  arms  of  prayer.  A  praying  people  are  the  horsemen  and 
chariots  of  Israel.  Luther  used  to  call  the  prayers  of  the  godly  his 
great  ordnance.  "When  Moses  held  up  his  hand,  Israel  prevailed, 
and  when  he  let  it  down,  Amalek  prevailed.  It  is  a  sad  sight  when 
the  master  of  a  family  is  turning  his  back  to  leave  his  habitation  ; 
but  yet  there  is  hope  when  all  the  children  are  hanging  about  him, 
and  beseeching  him  to  stay.  Thus  Jacob  had  power  over  the  angel, 
and  prevailed;  he  wept,  and  made  supplication  unto  hira ;  he  found 
him  in  Bethel,  and  there  he  spake  with  us.  Prayer  has  done  great 
things,  and  were  there  a  spirit  of  prayer  poured  out  on  this  land 
this  day,  what  a  blessed  change  would  it  make  in  the  state  of  aft'airs. 
We  find  one  Abraham  getting  all  his  requests  for  a  very  wicked 
people.  Gen.  xviii.  One  Lot,  saving  a  whole  city,  Gen.  xix.  20. 
The  prayers  of  Jacob  staying  the  hands  of  Esau,  Gen.  xxxii.  10,  11, 
12.  The  prayers  of  the  church  breaking  open  prison  doors,  making 
chains  fall  oft',  and  an  iron  gate  to  fly  open,  Acts  xii.  6 — 10. 

Prayer  is  pleasant  melody  in  our  Lord's  ears,  Song  ii.  14,  and 
arrests  a   departing  God.      The   prayers  of  the   saints  are   sweet 


404 


GOD  HIDING  HIS  FACE 


odours  The  words  of  a  lisping  cliild  will  go  very  far  with  a  tender- 
hearted father,  but  not  so  far  as  prayers  do  with  God.  Shall  not 
God  avenge  his  own  elect,  which  cry  day  and  night  unto  him. 

Prayer  entertains  Christ  with  savoury  discourse.  It  is  very  usual 
to  keep  up  discourse  with  them  we  would  fain  have  to  stay,  and  so 
to  prevail  with  them ;  this  cannot  but  prevail  here,  for  our  Lord, 
when  he  goes,  gels  always  the  last  word. 

Prayer  puts  employment  in  Christ's  hand,  and  so  holds  hira  still, 
Song  iii,  4.  For  he  will  not  go  while  sinners  have  any  employment 
for  him.  But  it  is  not  every  sort  of  prayer  that  will  do  this.  It  is 
not  the  gift  but  the  spirit  of  prayer.  The  effectual,  fervent  prayer 
of  a  righteous  man,  availeth  much.  Many  may  pray,  who  will  do 
no  more  good  with  prayers,  than  the  heathen  mariners  in  the  ship 
•with  Jonah.  A  sigh,  or  groan,  or  broken  sentence  from  the  spirit 
of  prayer,  will  do  more  good  than  ten  thousand  prayers  of  another 
sort.  Strange  fire  is  not  fit  for  the  mercy-seat,  but  holy  fire  taken 
from  the  altar  will  ascend  with  acceptance. 

We  are  now.  III.  To  shew  what  it  is  to  stir  up  ourselves  to  take 
hold  of  Christ. 

1.  It  imports  a  man's  discerning  of  the  signs  of  the  Lord's  de- 
parture and  noticing  the  same.  The  want  of  this  is  reproved  by 
our  Lord.  "  0  ye  hypocrites,  ye  can  discern  the  face  of  the  sky ; 
but  can  ye  not  discern  the  signs  of  the  times."  Every  rod  has  a 
voice,  but  it  is  the  man  of  wisdom  only  that  hears  it.  Men  will 
never  deny  themselves  to  their  ease,  till  they  see  the  hazard  of 
security ;  Heb.  xi.  7-  If  the  fire  has  fastened  on  a  man's  bed,  and 
he  neither  feel  the  heat  nor  see  the  smoke,  he  will  not  rise  up. 
Alas !  many  are  so  spiritually  senseless,  they  know  neither  Christ's 
goings  nor  comings.  Hence,  they  never  awaken,  till,  with  the  rich 
man  in  hell,  they  lift  up  their  eyes. 

2.  Vigorous  endeavours  for  the  truth  of  grace  in  the  heart,  which 
is  the  only  thing  that  makes  a  man  capable  of  holding  Christ  still. 
A  dead  man  can  do  nothing  but  lie  and  rot  in  the  grave.  He  that 
hath  a  spark  at  home,  may  blow  it  up  ;  but  where  there  is  not  a 
spark,  fire  must  be  brought  in,  if  he  would  entertain  his  guest. 
Alas  !  many  overlook  this,  and  so  lose  all  their  pains.  They  endea- 
vour to  perform  duties,  but  neither  for  nor  from  grace.  What 
serves  a  prayer  that  Christ  may  abide  with  us,  if  there  be  not  grace 
io  the  heart  to  entertain  and  hold  him  ?  The  want  of  grace  in  the 
heart  makes  all  our  attainments  vain  and  fruitless:  they  still  leave 
the  soul  in  the  same  state  of  condemnation  and  enmity  to  God  as 
before.  For  all  duties  of  that  sort,  as  ihey  cannot  atone  for  one  sin, 
so  they  cannot  mortify  one  lust,  only  grace  can  do  it.     The  want  of 


FROM  BACKSIJDEHS.  405 

grace,  also,  makes  our  attempts  but  faint  and  languishing,  so  that  at 
last  they  are  ready  to  give  over.  Duties  never  flow  freely  from  that 
soul,  where  grace  is  not  as  a  fountain  to  supply  them.  A  lamp 
quickly  goes  out,  when  the  oil  is  exhausted.  "  "Will  the  hypocrite 
delight  himself  in  the  Almighty  ?     Will  he  call  upon  God  always?" 

Objection.  But  can  we  work  grace  in  ourselves  ?  Answ^er. 
Though  we  cannot  sow  the  seed,  we  may  prepare  the  ground,  Jer. 
iv.  3.  We  may  examine  ourselves,  and  see  the  want  of  it,  and  that 
we  are  undone  without  it ;  and  we  may  take  no  rest  to  ourselves, 
nor  give  the  Lord  any,  till  we  get  grace  ;  and  when  we  are  doing 
this,  which  we  can  do,  God  may  do  what  we  cannot  do  for  ourselves. 
And  if  we  do  not  do  this,  we  will  be  damned,  not  only  for  the  want 
of  grace,  but  for  the  contempt  of  it,  that  we  would  not  stir  up  our- 
selves to  get  it :  and  it  will  be  a  worm  in  our  conscience,  that  we  did 
not  do  what  we  might  have  done  to  have  got  grace,  and  so  have  got 
Christ.  But  that  you  began  your  work  at  the  wrong  end,  because 
that  was  easiest,  though  not  safest.  "  Wherefore  is  there  a  price  in 
the  hand  of  a  fool  to  get  wisdom,  seeing  he  hath  no  heart  to  it." 

3.  A  vigorous  exercise  of  grace,  received  in  order  to  take  hold  of 
Christ.  A  sleeping  man  is  unfit  to  hold  one  that  is  going  away,  as 
well  as  a  dead  man.  Sleeping  prayers  and  faint  wishes  will  not 
suffice.  Yet,  alas  !  these  are  all  that  Christ  can  get  at  this  day  from 
many  that  have  the  root  of  grace  in  them.  They  have  hands  indeed, 
but  alas  they  are  in  their  bosom,  and  it  giveth  them  pain  to  pluck 
them  out.  If  there  be  any  stirring  up  of  themselves,  their  love  is 
burning,  and  cannot  part  with  him,  their  faith  is  resolute,  and  will 
not  quit  their  hold,  so  that  if  he  go  he  must  drag  them  after  him; 
their  love  cannot  bear  his  frowns,  their  faith  will  plead  kindness  on 
him,  Isa.  Ixiii.  15,  16. 

Lastly,  A  patient,  though  resolute  wrestling  with  him  for  his  stay, 
Gen.  xxxii.  26.  It  must  be  patient  continuance  in  well  doing  that 
God  will  regard.  Many  under  a  rod,  will  preteud  to  wrestle  with 
God,  but  if  that  be  removed,  they  give  over,  though  the  Lord  be  still 
as  angry  as  ever.  But  the  saints  persevere  in  patient  wrestling. 
"Mine  eye,"  says  the  prophet,  "trickleth  down,  and  ceaseth  not, 
without  any  intermission,  till  the  Lord  look  down,  and  behold  from 
heaven."     We  are  now, 

IV.  To  give  reasons  of  the  point.  When  the  Lord  is  on  his  way, 
it  is  surely  high  time  for  us  to  stir  up  ourselves,  to  take  hold  of  him. 

1.  Because  then  it  is  evident  the  Lord  is  angry,  and  is  it  time  to 
be  sleeping  when  the  fire  of  the  Lord's  anger  is  kindled?  The  Lion 
hath  roared,  who  will  not  fear.  The  Lord  God  hath  spoken,  who 
can  but  prophecy.     Are  we  able  to  run  away  from  it  ?  or  to  abide  it  ? 


406  GOD  HIDING  HIS  FACE 

No,  no.  God  is  saying  to  us  tliis  day,  as  Moses  to  Aaron,  "Take 
a  censer,  and  put  fire  therein  from  off  the  altar,  and  put  on  incense, 
and  go  quickly  into  the  congregation,  and  make  an  atonement  for 
them :  for  there  is  wrath  gone  out  from  the  Lord  :  the  plague  is  be- 
gun." Sleep  a  while,  and  the  house  may  be  on  fire  about  your  ears, 
and  no  escape  left  by  door  or  window,  therefore  "  kiss  the  Son,  lest 
he  be  angry,  and  ye  perish  from  the  way,  when  his  wrath  is  kindled 
but  a  little.     Blessed  are  all  they  that  put  their  trust  in  hira." 

2.  Because  then,  the  Lord  has  begun  to  resent  the  entertain- 
ment that  sinners  have  given  him,  and  surely  it  is  high  time 
for  us  then  to  begin  to  mend.  Our  Lord,  after  a  long  and  dark 
day,  has  returned  to  Scotland,  and  for  many  years  hath  kept  house 
in  it,  furnished  with  the  rich  provision  of  the  gospel.  If  there  be 
some  who  weep,  that  the  glory  of  the  latter  house  is  not  so  great  as 
that  of  the  former,  suffer  them  to  rejoice,  who  never  saw  such  a 
glorious  one  ;  and  also  to  weep,  for  that  he  has  come  to  his  own  and 
his  own  received  him  not,  and  for  that  he  seems  now  to  be  resenting 
the  harsh  treatment  he  hath  received,  Matth.  xxiii.  37,  38. 

3.  Because  when  the  Lord  is  on  his  way,  judgment  is  at  the  door, 
when  the  glory  is  on  the  threshold,  the  bloody  commission  is  a 
giving  out,  Ezek.  ix.  3 — 5.  As  Christ  goes,  wrath  comes  on  a 
person  or  people.  "  Woe  also  unto  them,  when  I  depart  from  them, 
saith  the  Lord."  If  we  part  with  him,  our  happy  days  are  done. 
There  are  many  complaints  this  day,  but  I  am  afraid  they  will 
increase  and  not  diminish,  if  the  frame  and  temper  of  this  genera- 
tion be  not  changed.  It  will  be  a  wonder  if,  for  the  slighting  of  the 
white  horse  of  the  gospel  and  his  glorious  rider,  we  turn  not  red, 
black  and  pale,  ere  all  be  done.  If  the  gospel  go,  it  is  like  that 
more  will  go  with  it,  2  Chron.  xv.  3 — 6. 

■4.  Because,  if  we  do  not  then  stir  up  ourselves,  he  may,  ere  long, 
be  out  of  our  reach.  Christ  may  come  to  retaliate  upon  those  who 
slight  him,  Prov.  i.  24 — 33.  His  spirit  will  not  always  strive  with 
us.  Thou  hast  an  offer  of  Christ  to-day,  but  the  world  cannot  as- 
sure thee  that  thou  shalt  have  another  to-morrow.  But  some  may 
say,  "  "Where  is  the  promise  of  his  coming  ?  for  since  the  father's 
fell  asleep,  all  things  continue  as  they  were  from  the  beginning  of 
the  creation."  Well,  the  threatened  tree  stands  long  in  the  wood, 
but  it  is  cut  down  at  last.  The  pulse  beats  oft  in  the  body  in  the 
time  of  life,  but  the  last  pulse  comes  at  length.  Our  breath,  like  a 
stranger,  goes  oft  to  the  door,  yet  comes  back  again,  but  at  last  it 
goes,  and  returns  no  more. 

Now,  to  shew  you  the  necessity  of  stirring  up  ourselves  in  order 
to  take  hold  of  Christ  effectually.  Consider, 


FROM  BACKSLIDERS.  40? 

1.  That  our  ordinary  frame  will  not  do  here.  We  mast  rouse  up, 
if  we  would  take  hold  of  him  to  purpose  ;  for  it  was  never  yet 
known  that  sleeping  prayers  had  much  power  to  hold  Christ,  Song 
iii.  1.  Seeking  that  is  not  striving,  will  be  seeking  in  vain. 
"  Strive,"  says  our  Saviour,  **  to  enter  in  at  the  strait  gate  ;  for 
many,  I  say  unto  you,  will  seek  to  enter  in,  and  shall  not  be  able." 
A  soul  besotted  with  spiritual  sloth  will  let  Christ,  Heaven,  and  all 
the  benefits  of  the  gospel,  slip  through  his  fingers,  and  drowsiness 
will  clothe  a  man  with  rags.  People  may  lie  in  their  bed  and  wish 
for  heaven,  and  carry  their  wishes  to  hell  with  them  ;  but  if  we 
would  hold  Christ,  we  must  up  and  ofi'er  violence  to  heaven. 

2.  It  is  a  difficult  work  we  have  to  do.  The  fire  that  is  almost 
extinguished,  is  difficult  to  kindle  ;  and  when  Christ  has  turned  his 
back,  it  is  likely  to  be  hard  work  ere  people  see  his  face  again,  Song 
V.  6.  "What  a  hard  morninsr's  work  had  Jacob  of  it,  when  he  wrestled 
with  him  till  the  breakinsf  of  the  day.  It  seems,  also,  that  it  was 
not  easv  for  the  disciples  to  hold  him  :  for  it  is  said,  they  con- 
strained him,  saying,  abide  with  us.  It  must  be  hard  work,  for  it  is 
bard  work.  Religion  exists  inwardly,  and  the  heart  must  be 
brought  to  it,  or  it  will  not  do ;  and  if  you  do  not  think  heart  work 
bard  work,  you  have  never  tried  it.  0  it  is  easy  to  say  a  prayer 
but  to  get  the  heart  to  cling  to  Christ  by  faith,  love,  and  the  spirit 
of  prayer,  is  not  so  easy. 

It  is  work  in  which  you  will  have  all  to  undo  again,  that  you 
have  done,  which  has  provoked  him  to  go  away.  Sinner!  what  hast 
thon  been  doing,  but  as  it  were  thrusting  Christ  to  the  door  ?  Thou 
bast  been  weaving:  thy  life  into  a  net  to  entangle  thy  feet ;  and 
building  up  a  wall  of  partition,  broad  and  hieh,  betwixt  him  and 
thee,  setting  np  idols  of  jealousy  in  every  corner,  to  make  the  Son 
of  God  fain  to  remove  and  leave  thee  to  thy  lusts.  Would  you 
hold  him  then,  you  must  open  out  the  net  to  disentangle  thy  feet, 
pull  down  everv  stone  yon  have  laid,  and  take  every  one  of  those 
idols  and  sacrifice  them  to  his  jealousy.  And  if  this  be  work  for  a 
sluggard,  judge  ye  ? 

He  who  has  grot  Christ  and  you  asunder,  will  strive  to  keep  you 
so,  even  the  devil.  Sad  experience  confirms  this.  How  oft  are 
B-^rae  convinced  and  resolved  to  stir  up  themselves.  But  then  bell 
is  alarmed,  and  the  devil  endeavours  to  get  all  quiet  again.  "Yet 
a  little  sleep,  a  little  slumber,  and  a  little  foldincr  of  the  hands  to 
sleep."  Hence  it  is,  that  the  goodness  of  many  is  as  a  morning 
cloud,  and  as  the  early  dew,  it  goeth  away.  Satan  is  Christ's  rival, 
and  will  strive  to  keep  his  ground. 

Use.   It  is  then  high  time  now  to  awake  out  of  sleep,  and  take 


408  GOD  HIDING  HIS  FACE 

liold  on  Christ,  to  keep  him  still.  All  the  signs  of  departure  before 
named,  agree  to  us.  0  then  up  now,  take  hold  of  him,  keep  him 
fast,  and  protest  against  his  departure.  There  are  three  things,  in 
respect  of  which,  you  should  be  concerned  to  hold  Christ  still. 

1.  Ue  concerned  for  Christ's  abode  in  the  land,  that  the  gospel  be 
not  removed,  the  pure  ordinances  be  not  taken  away,  1  Sara.  iv.  13. 
That  Christ  do  not  remove  his  tent  from  Scotland  as  from  Shilo. 
If  the  gospel  go,  what  will  become  of  us  ?  a  land  of  darkness  is 
uncomfortable.  AVe  have  no  security  for  enjoying  the  gospel.  Pity 
your  own  souls,  the  souls  of  others  and  posterity.  Let  not  Christ 
go,  as  you  would  not  imbrue  your  hands  in  the  blood  of  the  souls  of 
them  yet  unborn. 

2.  Be  concerned  for  Christ's  presence  in  the  ordinances.  Oh  !  it 
is  monstrous  for  the  children  to  be  unconcerned  for  Christ's  presence 
in  their  mother's  house,  where  they  were  born,  and  where  ordinarily 
they  are  fed.  Be  concerned  for  his  convincing  presence.  When  the 
sun  shines  into  a  house,  the  motes  appear.  When  the  sword  of  the 
word  is  in  Christ's  own  hand,  it  is  then  quick  and  powerful,  and 
sharper  than  any  two-edged  sword,  piercing  even  to  the  dividing 
asunder  of  soul  and  spirit,  and  of  the  joints  and  marrow,  and  is  a 
discerner  of  the  thoughts  and  intents  of  the  heart.  When  Christ 
comes  to  ordinances  by  his  word  in  the  mouth  of  his  servants,  he 
opens  the  volume  of  a  man's  conversation,  and  reads  to  him  the 
secret  history  of  his  heart  and  life.  The  man  is  convinced  of  all,  he 
is  judged  of  all.  And  thus  are  the  secrets  of  his  heart  made  mani- 
fest; and  so  falling  down  on  his  face  he  will  woiship  God,  and 
report  that  God  is  in  you  of  a  truth.  0  what  a  valuable  thing  is 
this  !  but  if  Satan  can,  he  will  keep  people  out  of  the  way  of  it. 

Be  concerned  for  his  converting  presence.  Acts  ii.  37-  Christ 
in  the  gospel,  hath  a  drawing,  overcoming  power.  "  Thy  people 
shall  be  willing  in  the  day  of  thy  power."  When  Christ  comes  in 
this  way,  mountains  are  levelled  and  hills  become  a  plain.  When 
he  mounts  his  triumphal  chariot,  he  will  make  rebels  lacquey  at  his 
feet.  "  For  his  arrows  are  sharp  in  the  heart  of  the  king's  enemies, 
whereby  the  people  fall  under  him."  Alas,  that  there  is  so  little  of 
this  with  us. 

Be  concerned  for  his  quickening  presence.  He  brings  life  and 
liveliness  with  him  to  sleepy  decaying  Christians.  "  This  is  my 
comfort  in  my  affliction,"  says  David,  "  for  thy  word  hath  quick- 
ened me."  The  sun  ariseth,  and  man  goeth  to  work.  His  pre- 
sence makes  the  bread  of  life  nourishing  indeed,  strengthening  the 
soul  for  duty.  Honour  and  majesty  are  before  him,  strength  and 
beauty  are  in  his  sanctuary.     Then  it  comforts  his  people  under 


FROM  BACKSLIDKR3.  409 

their  griefs,  and  with  joy  they  draw  water  out  of  the  wells  of  salva- 
tion. It  elevates  the  soul  in  the  exercise  of  grace,  looses  bands, 
dispels  doubts,  and  makes  thera  hold  on  their  way  heavenward  re- 
joicing. 

3.  Be  concerned  for  Christ's  presence  with  your  own  souls.  That 
Christ  may  dwell  in  your  hearts  by  faith,  that  your  souls  may  be  a 
little  sanctuary  for  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  a  throne  for  the  Mediator. 
The  soul  without  Christ,  is  but  a  dead  soul  in  a  living  body.  The 
•want  of  it  makes  a  soul  barren,  heartless  and  lifeless.  There  is 
never  an  empty  heart  amongst  us.  If  Christ  be  not  there,  Satan  is 
there.  If  it  be  not  a  palace  for  the  King  of  glory,  it  is  a  den  of 
hellish  thieves,  and  a  garrison  for  the  devil  where  the  strong  man 
armed  keeps  the  house  and  his  goods  are  safe.     Now  to  stir  you  up, 

Motive  1.  The  neglect  of  this  is  the  need-nail  that  holds  all 
other  evils  about  us  fast.  Take  that  away,  the  rest  will  go. 
Though  all  as  an  unclean  thing,  yet  we  should  be  made  pure  and 
holy,  get  a  perfect  righteousness,  revive  as  the  corn,  grow  as  the 
vine,  and  send  forth  our  roots  as  Lebanon.  Chrst  has  all  in  hand, 
grace  and  glory,  so  that  taking  hold  of  him  is  the  short  way  to  all 
other  benefits. 

2.  It  is  a  horrid  indignity  done  to  the  Son  of  God,  and  says  in 
effect,  that  his  presence  is  not  worth  our  pains  to  seek  it.  Ye  have 
said,  "  It  is  vain  to  serve  God  ;  and  what  profit  is  it  that  we  have 
kept  his  ordinance,  and  that  we  have  walked  mournfully  before  the 
Lord."  That  we  can  live  well  enough  without  him.  "  Wherefore 
say  my  people,  we  are  Lords  :  we  will  come  no  more  unto  thee." 
Yea,  that  we  are  the  worse  for  his  presence,  and  would  gladly  be 
free  of  him.  Therefore,  they  say  unto  God,  "  Depart  from  us,  for 
■we  desire  not  the  knowledge  of  thy  ways."  Like  the  Gadarenes, 
•who  thought  they  could  not  get  their  swine  kept  for  him,  and  there- 
fore besought  him  to  depart  out  of  their  coasts.  This  was  the  sin 
of  the  Israelites,  Psal.  cvi.  21 — 26. 

3.  It  is  next  step  to  Christ's  taking  farewell  of  a  people  or 
a  soul.  He  must  needs  go  when  there  is  none  to  hold  him  still, 
Psal.  Ixxxi.  11,  12.  Oh  it  is  a  sad  parting.  Yea,  woe  also  to  them 
•when  I  depart  from  thera.     Farther  application  afterwards. 

Doctrine  III.  Sometimes  religion  is  at  snch  a  low  ebb,  and  spi- 
ritual sloth  so  prevails  ;.mong  a  professing  people,  that  Christ  may 
even  go  away  for  any  tiuit  is  to  hold  him  still.  There  is  none  that 
stirreth  up  himself.  At  what  a  low  ebb  was  religion  in  Jerusalem, 
Jer.  V.  1 ;  Ezek.  xxii.  30. 

I.  I  shall  inquire  whence  this  proceeds,  and  discover  the  sources 
of  this  woeful  temper,  that  men  stir  not  up  themselves,  &c. 


410 


GOD  HIDING  UIS  FACE 


1.  It  proceeds  frcm  love  to  carnal  ease.  Christ's  own  spouse  is 
sometimes  so  bewitched  with  this,  that  if  sleeping  prayers  will  not 
hold  Christ  still,  she  will  even  let  hira  go  his  way,  ere  she  be  at  the 
pains  to  rise  up  and  set  her  foot  on  cold  ground,  Song  v.  3.  Every 
one  haS  a  devil's  agent  within  him  that  says,  master,  spare  thyself. 
This  love  to  carnal  ease,  makes  the  man  avoid  what  is  necessary  for 
stirring  him  up.  There  are  these  two  things  very  necessary  for  the 
restoring  of  a  decayed  soul,  which  love  to  carnal  ease  will  by  no 
means  admit. 

These  are, 

1.  The  duty  of  self-examination.  Let  ns  search  and  try  our  ways, 
and  turn  again  to  the  Lord.  Communing  with  our  hearts,  respecting 
our  state  and  frame,  is  necessary.  But  this  is  a  yoke  which  the 
delicate  soul  that  loves  ease  cannot  stoop  to  take  on.  They  will 
pray,  hear,  and  the  like,  for  they  may  do  these,  stretched  on  the 
bed  of  sloth,  but  self-examination  will  disturb  their  ease. 

The  duty  of  secret  prayer  and  fasting  is  also  necessary,  Matth. 
xvii.  21.  This  has  been  the  way  by  which  many  have  got  a  re- 
covery ;  but  it  is  to  be  feared  it  is  an  exercise  few  are  acquainted 
with,  Matth.  vi.  16 — 18.  "When  there  is  a  decay  on  men's  spirits, 
which  spurns  all  other  means,  this  ought  to  be  tried;  and  none 
ought  to  say,  they  have  not  time  ;  for  some  have  their  time  in  their 
own  hand  by  day,  and  all  have  the  night,  and  a  night  taken  from 
sleep  for  this  exercise,  would  be  well  bestowed.  But  love  of  ease, 
keeps  away  from  this  uneasy  work. 

2.  It  proceeds  from  abundance  of  world's  ease.  The  Jews  at  Ba- 
bylon, how  zealous,  Psal.  cxxxvii.  But  at  Jerusalem,  how  negli- 
gent and  slothful.  Hag.  i.  2.  Jacob  may  indeed  sleep  when  he  has  a 
stone  for  his  pillow,  but  much  more  when  on  a  soft  bed.  The  late 
troublous  times  kept  people  awake.  When  they  had  no  rest  to 
themselves,  they  gave  God  no  rest;  but  now  they  have  got  rest, 
and  find  it  is  sweet,  and  it  grieveth  them  to  pluck  their  hands  out  of 
their  bosom. 

It  is  observable  that  people  are  very  ready  to  fall  asleep  after  a  dc- 
liverance.  It  then  comes  to  them  sweet,  as  to  a  labouring  man. 
This  was  the  case  with  Noah,  after  the  deluge ;  Lot,  after  his  de- 
liverance from  Sodom,  and  Hezekiah,  after  his  recovery.  Comj)are 
also,  Gen.  xxviii.  20,  with  Gen.  xxxv.  1,  and  downwards. 

3.  Plenty  of  the  means  of  grace  abused.  People  would  think,  that 
those  that  have  plenty  of  ordinances,  should  be  most  lively ;  but  in- 
deed it  turns  ofttimes  quite  otherwise.  The  preached  gospel ;  it  is  a 
pleasant  song,  which  if  it  do  not  draw  peoples'  hearts  after  Christ 
it  will  lull  them  fast  asleep,  Isaiah  vi.  10.     The  continual  noise  of 


PROM  BELIEVERS,  411 

many  waters,  is  apt  to  make  people  deaf.  A  man  that  has  enough, 
if  he  have  not  all  the  better  appetite,  is  seldom  hungry,  and  thus 
men  begin  to  weary  of  God  and  his  ordinances.  The  honey  comb  ia 
loathed,  and  they  must  be  fed  with  something  that  please  their  fancy. 
Hence  the  power  of  religion  is  much  injured.  How  many  are,  that 
would  sometime  ago,  have  gone  many  miles  to  hear  the  word 
of  the  Lord, when  it  was  a  scarce  commodity,  that  will  sit  at  home 
and  loiter  away  the  Sabbath,  now  when  it  is  come  to  their  doors. 
They  have  even  got  a  surfeit  of  it;  they  are  full  and  the  bones 
must  have  rest. 

4.  The  cares  of  the  world,  Luke  xxi.  34.  Many,  while  they  are 
young  and  without  care  of  the  world,  how  lively  and  sprightly  seem 
they  to  be ;  but  when  once  they  get  a  family,  their  religion  melts 
away  like  snow  before  the  sun.  From  that  time  many  draw  back. 
Hence,  so  many  young  saints,  become  old  sinners.  It  is  men's  being 
80  much  taken  up  with  the  things  of  the  world,  that  ruins  the  con- 
cerns of  the  soul.     Cares  of  the  world  make  men  spiritually  poor. 

5.  A  view  of  unrepented  of  guilt,  which  is  not  so  strong  as  to 
rouse  men  up,  yet  it  lightly  startles  them.  I  believe  one  main  cause 
of  sin's  not  stirring  up  men,  is,  they  are  so  far  run  on  in  the  score, 
that  they  dare  not  take  a  serious  view  of  their  accounts,  which  is  a 
kind  of  sullen  despair,  Jer.  ii.  25. 

6.  A  sinful  want  of  the  influences  of  divine  grace,  without  which, 
a  man  can  do  nothing.  Many  have  sinned  away  the  influences  of 
the  spirit,  so  as  they  have  neither  heart  nor  hand  in  religion,  as 
they  have  had,  and  that  by  their  former  grieving  of  the  spirit. 
Days  have  been,  when  the  Lord  has  been  giving  them  one  awaken- 
ing after  another,  but  they  would  needs  sleep,  and  the  Lord  hath 
said,  "  they  are  joined  to  their  idols,  let  them  alone.  " 

7.  Love  to  some  bosom  lust,  which  they  are  unwilling  to  give  up. 
As  long  as  a  man  minds  to  keep  the  sweet  morsel  under  his  tongue, 
he  will  not  stir  up  himself  to  take  hold  of  Christ;  for  he  knows  if  he 
take  hold  of  Christ,  he  must  let  go  his  idol.  "When  people's  hearts 
have  gone  away  from  Christ,  then  they  have  always  some  other  pil- 
low upon  which  to  lean  their  heads  and  take  their  rest.  Often  they 
never  awaken  till  the  Lord  draw  the  bolster  from  under  their  head, 
as  he  took  away  Jonah's  gourd,  Ezek.  xxiv.  25. 

Lastly,  what  wonder  men  stir  not  up  themselves,  for  Satan  will 
see  to  it  that  the  curtains  be  drawn,  all  kept  quiet,  and  that  they 
be  kept  warm  in  the  bed  of  sloth.  The  curtains  are  drawn  on  many, 
and  the  light  kept  out  of  their  eyes.  "  But  if  our  gospel  be  hid,  it 
is  hid  to  them  that  are  lost.  In  whom  the  God  of  this  world  hath 
blinded  the  minds  of  them  that  believe  not,  lest  the   light  of  the 

Vol.  IV.  2  d 


412  OOP  HIDTKG  niS  PACK 

glorious  gospel  of  Christ,  who  is  the  image  of  God,  should  shine  unto 
them."     Light  is  an  enemy  to  sleep,   but  the  sun  may  go  down  at 
noon  with  some.     If  the  man  can  be  brought  to  slight  ordinances, 
and  sit  at  home,  it  is  well,  what  the  eye  sees  the  heart  rues  not.     If 
he  will  come  to  ordinances,  and  his  case  be  there  spoken  to,  then 
Satan  is  at  work,  either  to  make  him  drowsy,  or  to  send  away  his 
heart  to  be  thinking  on  some  other  thing,  or  to  put  the  word  away 
from  himself  to  some  other  person.     And  if  the  word  continue  to  be 
so  troublesome  to  him,  he  may  even  come  to  turn  his  back  on  it  alto- 
gether, and  hate  the  messenger  because  he  never  speakes  good  of  him. 
All  noise  that  may  disturb  them,  is  carefully  kept  out  of  their 
ears.     Conscience  is  a  great  disturber  of  false  peace,  and  therefore 
it  is  either  boasted  or  bribed  to  hold  its  peace.     The  consciences  of 
some   are  boasted  to  silence,  seared  as  with  a  hot  iron,  so  that  its 
speech  is  laid,  1  Tim.  iv.  2.     And  this  especially  by  sinning  over 
the  belly  of  light,  and  by  custom  in  sin,  which  quickly  wears  away 
all  sense,  so  as  a  man  can  sin  without  remorse.     The  consciences  of 
others  are  bribed  to  hold  their  peace,  and  there  are  three  things  by 
which  it  is  bribed  to  hold  peace,  and  allow  them  to  sleep. 

1.  With  some  good  duties,  even  the  easy  duties  of  religion,  as  to 
wrong  no  man,  to  attend  to  ordinances,  to  recommend  themselves  to 
God  while  they  put  off  or  on  their  clothes,  to  say  a  prayer  and  give 
a  sigh  while  they  are  going  backwards,  Hos.  x.  11 ;  Prov.  vii.  14. 
We  have  heard  of  night-walkers,  who  rise  out  of  their  beds,  climb 
up  on  dangerous  places ;  people  are  unwilling  to  awaken  them,  but 
let  them  alone,  they  will  go  to  bed  again.  Many  such  night-walkers 
there  are  in  religion,  who  will  do  some  duties  as  if  they  were  awakcj 
and  yet  are  fast  asleep. 

2.  Abstaining  from  gross  sins  which  cannot  but  wound  the  con- 
science, Luke  xviii.  11.  They  on  whom  is  the  spirit  of  slumber, 
will  sleep  in  any  place  where  there  is  nothing  to  prick  them  ;  like 
children,  who  will  wallow  among  the  dust,  building  their  sand  hil- 
locks, till  the  wind  blow  it  in  their  eyes.  A  roaring  devil  would 
awaken  some,  and  therefore  Satan  transforms  himself  into  an  angel 
of  light. 

3.  Fair  promises  to  be  performed  afterwards,  if  conscience  begin 
to  mutter.  "  Go  thy  way  for  this  time,  when  I  have  a  convenient 
season,  I  will  call  for  thee."  The  man  does  with  conscience,  as  the 
lazy  man  does  with  his  friend  that  comes  too  early  to  him,  engages 
to  meet  him  afterwards ;  and  also  many  make  an  engagement  with 
their  conscience  that  they  never  keep.  However,  the  making  of  the 
engagement  frees  them  from  present  disturbance. 

Finally,  They  are  well  covered.     "  Woe  to  the  rebellious  children, 


FROM   BACKSLIDERS.  413 

•  saith  the  Lord,  that  take  counsel,  bat  not  of  me  ;  and  that  cover  with 
a  covering,  but  not  of  my  Spirit,  that  they  may  add  sin  to  sin." 
There  is  a  threefold  covering  under  which  men  take  a  sound  sleep. 
1.  A  covering  of  pure  mercy,  that  hath  no  affinity  with  justice. 
The  mercy  with  which  the  Spirit  of  God  covers  his  people,  has  red 
lines  of  justice  in  it,  drawn  with  the  blood  of  Christ,  in  whom  the 
soul  is  careful  to  have  an  interest,  Psalm  Ixxxv.  9,  10.  Ask  many 
how  they  think  to  be  saved  ?  They  look  for  mercy.  Why  ?  God 
is  merciful.  Tell  them  no  mercy  out  of  Christ,  they  yield  it ;  but 
believe  it  not,  for  they  are  at  no  pains  to  be  in  him.  2.  A  covering 
of  much  time  to  come,  in  which  they  wrap  themselves,  and  continue 
at  ease ;  as  when  a  man  is  on  a  journey,  he  can  sleep  by  the  way 
when  he  thinks  he  has  much  day  before  his  hand.  3.  A  covering  of 
sufficient  grace,  which  in  effect  is  sufficient  delusion.  Two  sorts 
sleep  soundly  under  this ;  first,  some  that  can  take  their  swing  in 
their  lusts  now,  and  think  it  is  but  to  repent  and  believe,  and  they 
can  do  that  afterwards,  if  it  were  on  a  death-bed.  There  are, 
secondly,  some  that  think  the  bitterness  of  death  is  past.  They  have 
good  desires,  and  that  is  enough  to  secure  heaven.  So  they  are  liiie 
the  unthrifty  tradesman,  who  is  not  greedy  of  wealth,  thinking  he 
has  as  much  as  will  be  a  livelihood,  he  will  not  exert  himself  for 
more,  but  take  his  ease.  Now  this  is  an  easy  sort  of  religion. 
Though  a  man  cannot  work,  he  can  lie  and  wish  upon  his  bed,  for  a 
Christ,  a  pardon,  and  heaven.  But  woe  to  these  desires,  they  will 
be  found  a  covering  not  of  God's  Spirit,  but  of  men's  own  spirit. 
"  The  desire  of  the  slothful  killeth  him,  for  his  hands  refuse  to 
labour."  Thus  many  lay  down  the  conclusion,  that  the  main  work 
is  already  done,  so  they  take  ease.  This  serves  many  as  a  bulwark 
against  all  the  attempts  which  the  gospel  can  make  on  them.  Is 
your  salvation  your  main  work?  Yet  at  most  it  is  but  a  begun 
work,  therefore  work  out  your  salvation  with  fear  and  trembling. 
The  Spirit  of  God's  reasoning  is,  the  nearer  salvation  is,  it  is  so 
much  the  more  high  time  to  awake  out  of  sleep,  Rom.  xiii.  11.  But 
what  do  you  with  the  work  of  glorifying  God,  man's  chief  end.  It 
is  a  shrewd  sign,  salvation  is  far  from  the  man,  that  has  nothing 
to  do  with  grace,  but  to  secure  his  own  salvation. 

Use  I.  Of  lamentation  over  the  low  degree  to  which  religion  is 
come  in  this  generation.  We  may  well  take  up  our  lamentation 
and  say  our  silver  is  become  dross.  The  tokens  of  the  Lord's  anger 
are  gone  out  against  us.  Christ  is  on  his  way  to  leave  us,  the  plague 
is  begun,  the  ark  is  like  to  be  taken,  but  where  is  the  man  that  stir- 
reth  up  himself  to  take  hold  of  the  Lord;  or  that  is  fit  to  stand  in 
the  gap.     Jerusalem  is  sighing  and  going  backward,*.     The  Lord  is 

2  n  2 


414  OOB  HIDING  UIS  FACE 

angry  with  our  raotlier,  threatening  to  give  up  house  with  her,  but 
the  children  generally  are  sleeping.  Ah  !  we  have  fallen  !  fallen  ! 
Once  a  noble  vine,  but  now  the  plant  of  a  degenerate  vine.  Wicked- 
ness is  at  a  height,  and  religion  is  at  a  low  ebb.  Most  of  us  are 
pulling  down  the  house  about  our  ears.  Few,  very  few,  to  hold  it 
up.  The  floods  are  like  to  swallow  up  the  ship,  but  Jonah  is  fast 
asleep.  We  shall  here.  First,  give  evidences  of  this  case ;  and 
Secondly,  shew  the  evil  of  it. 

I.  Let  us  give  evidences  of  the  low  degree  to  which  religion  is 
come  in  our  day  :  and  that  the  text  is  too  applicable  to  us.  "  There 
is  none  that  stirreth  up  himself,"  &c. 

1.  The  gross  wickedness  that  doth  this  day  abound  in  our  land  in 
the  face  of  the  sun,  in  a  land  where  there  is  so  much  gospel  light, 
Hos.  iy.  1 — 3.  That  drunkenness,  swearing,  whoring,  profaning  the 
sabbath,  contempt  of  the  gospel,  and  such  heaven-daring  abomina- 
tions, abound  among  high  and  low,  is  very  evident.  How  rare  to 
find  a  great  man  good.  Profanity  goes  with  many  of  them  for  a 
piece  of  gallantry,  who  by  their  profanity  put  themselves  as  far  be- 
low the  brutes,  as  God  in  his  providence  has  lifted  them  up  above 
other  men.  If  a  man  has  any  sense  of  religon,  he  is  judged  to  have 
been  foundered  in  his  education.  No  wonder  the  church  of  Grod  has 
received  bad  treatment  from  such  persons  and  others,  whose  religion 
will  go  no  farther  than  their  carnal  interest.  The  meaner  sort  write 
as  they  can  after  their  copy,  and  eagerly  embrace  profane  causes,  as 
they  have  temptations  thereto,  Jer.  v.  1 — 6.  If  God  confound  them 
not  in  their  counsels,  ruin  them  not  by  their  own  devices,  and  re- 
turn not  their  way  upon  their  own  head,  we  shall  mark  it  as  a 
miracle  of  providence.  It  is  not  long  since  a  heavy  judgment  was 
inflicted  upon  the  meaner  sort  of  people,  but  there  is  reason  to  look, 
that  God  will  destroy  both  head  and  tail  at  once. 

2.  Is  not  the  profane  spirit  of  the  Gadarenes,  gone  far  through 
the  land  ?  Men  in  eff'ect  saying  to  the  Almighty,  depart  out  of  our 
coasts.  There  are  many  in  Scotland  grudging  and  fretting  to  see 
the  Lord  covering  a  table  for  us,  and  that  would  be  glad  Christ  had 
not  a  foot  of  ground  in  the  land,  but  hill  sides  and  scaff'olds.  They 
are  longing  to  see  the  ways  of  Zion  mourning  desolate,  and  to  hear 
the  word  given  to  return  back  to  Egypt. 

3.  A  profane  spirit  of  neutrality  and  indifferency  carries  away 
many.  They  are  like  Gallio,  care  for  none  of  these  things.  If  they 
get  the  world,  their  clay  god  in  their  arms,  they  care  not  what  side 
be  uppermost,  whether  the  gospel  sink  or  swim.  They  are  wholly 
careless  that  way,  and  behave  as  if  they  were  all  flesh,  as  if  their  souls 
were  but  salt  to  keep  their  bodies  a  while  from  corruption.     As  for 


I'KOM  BACKSLtDJERS.  415 

Christ,  tbey  know  not  him  nor  hia  favour,  and  therefore  he  may  go 
if  he  will  for  them.  They  never  got  any  good  by  his  presence,  no 
wonder  they  are  not  concerned  at  the  hazard  of  his  departure. 

4.  The  dumb  devil  that  possesseth  many  hearts  and  families.  If 
a  Turk  were  in  the  houses  of  some  Christians,  saw  them  in  their 
families  and  in  their  closets  too,  he  would  have  much  difficulty  to 
know  what  religion  they  were  of,  or  whether  they  had  a  God  or  not, 
uuless  it  were  by  their  swearing,  or  mumbling  over  a  grace  to  their 
meat.  Some  make  no  conscience  of  prayer  in  their  families,  Jer. 
X.  25.  Some  perhaps  will  pray  occasionally  in  their  families,  or 
join  therein,  but  live  strangers  to  secret  prayer ;  these  are  careless 
daughters.  I  never  like  that  religion  where  people  have  nothing 
to  tell  Christ,  but  what  they  can  say  before  others.  It  is  not  very 
like  that  these  are  married  to  Christ.  Now,  lay  aside  all  these,  and 
there  will  not  be  very  many  behind  to  take  hold  of  Christ.  But  we 
will  come  a  little  closer,  and  sift  more  narrowly  ;  and  I  believe,  ere 
we  have  done,  if  conviction  can  get  entrance,  we  will  see  the  whole 
Lead  is  sick,  and  the  whole  heart  faint. 

1.  How  many  praying  persons  are  there  in  our  day,  who,  though 
they  have  received  Christ  into  their  mouths  and  houses,  yet  not  into 
their  hearts  ;  but  are  still  in  the  gall  of  bitterness  and  bond  of  ini- 
quity. As  for  some,  their  practice  openly  contradicts  their  profes- 
sion. They  will  swear  and  lie,  and  cheat  and  pray,  and  so  wound 
religion.  It  will  never  be  the  like  of  these  that  will  hold  Christ 
still,  if  they  do  not  reform,  Isa.  i.  11 — 15.  Others  that  are  blame- 
less, yet  never  get  beyond  a  form  of  godliness,  but  remain  strangers, 
to  the  inward  life  of  religion. 

2.  People  confining  themselves  to  morning  and  evening  prayer, 
though  God  puts  other  opportunities  in  their  hands.  A  healthy  man 
keeps  at  his  ordinary  meals,  but  the  sickly  person  that  has  much  to 
do  with  the  physician,  cannot  do  so.  Were  people  in  the  thriving, 
and  exercised  unto  godliness,  they  would  readily  find  an  errand  to 
God  in  the  intervals.  Alas  !  many  are  like  Samson,  they  know  not 
that  the  Lord  is  departed  from  them ;  and  if  they  could  not  reach 
their  knees  with  it,  yet  if  they  were  waking,  they  would  be  often 
looking  up  by  ejaculatory  prayer. 

3.  The  difficulty  people  have  to  get  an  errand  to  Christ,  except 
what  self-preservation  teacheth  them.  They  will  pray  for  heaven, 
because  they  are  afraid  of  hell ;  they  will  pray  for  pardon,  but  to 
tell  Christ  what  ails  them,  except  in  fair  generals,  there  is  the  diffi- 
culty. They  that  are  thriving  are  not  so.  Exercised  souls  will 
have  their  particular  cases  lying  near  their  hearts,  and  they  must 
go  to  Christ  with  them.  The  case  of  their  own  souls  will  furnish 
them  materials  of  prayer,  in  all  its  parts. 


416  GOD  HIDING  HIS  FACE 

4.  The  merry  life  that  many  have  of  it  all  their  days,  except  so 
much  as  is  interrupted  with  crosses  in  the  world,  or  some  visible 
outbreaking,  that  wound  their  reputation.  Men  have  their  sulleu 
dejected  fits,  but  their  sorrow  is  of  the  world.  How  few  are  walk- 
ing mournfully  under  the  hidings  of  God's  face,  prevailing  of  cor- 
ruption, pride,  and  nubelief.  Alas  !  these  things  are  hid  out  of  the 
view  of  many  pretenders  to  religion,  who  feel  nothing  in  their  own 
eye,  unless  it  be  a  beam.  They  reign  as  kings,  without  the  shining 
of  the  Lord's  countenance  upon  them.  But  were  they  really  exer- 
cised to  godliness,  their  wine  would  not  escape  being  sometimes 
mixed  with  water. 

5.  Infrequency  in  reading  or  hearing  the  Scriptures  read.  "Where 
is  the  man  whose  soul's  case  sends  him  away  to  the  Bible,  to  see 
Avhat  he  can  get  there  for  it  ?  Souls  that  are  awake,  are  readily 
thus  employed.  The  Scriptures  are  Christ's  last  will,  the  magazine 
of  Christian  comfort,  where  there  is  what  is  suitable  to  the  cases  of 
our  souls. 

The  saints  turn  to  the  Scriptures  under  deadness,  saying,  "  This 
is  my  comfort  in  my  affliction,  for  thy  word  hath  quickened  me ;" 
also  under  doubts  and  fears,  saying,  thy  testimonies  also  are  my 
delight,  and  my  couusellors.  But  alas  !  the  dust  of  our  Bibles  may 
witness  against  many  of  us.  It  may  long  lie  by  us,  ere  our  own  case 
make  us  turn  a  leaf  of  it. 

6.  The  little  relish  the  Scriptures  have  with  us.  To  the  hungry 
every  bitter  thing  is  sweet.  God  has  promised  his  Spirit  to  teach 
us  all  things,  and  bring  all  things  to  our  remembrance.  An 
awakened  Christian  reads  the  Scriptures  with  another  eye  than 
others  do.  They  say  with  the  two  disciples,  "  Did  not  our  heart 
burn  within  us,  while  he  talked  with  us  by  the  way,  and  while  he 
opened  to  us  the  Sci'iptures."  An  exercised  frame  of  Spirit,  is  a 
good  commentary  on  the  Bible.  It  is  like  the  sun  shining  on  a  lime 
wall,  gets  light  and  reflects  it.  But  the  Scriptures  are  to  many  a 
sealed  book,  tasteless  as  the  white  of  an  egg. 

7.  Unacquaintedness  with  answers  of  prayer,  especially  in  spi- 
ritual things.  Prayer  is  the  exercise  of  those  that  are  kept  stir- 
ring and  looking  up  to  God,  and  disappointments  are  heavy  to  them. 
"  Thou  hast  covered  thyself  with  a  cloud,  that  our  prayer  should 
not  pass  through."  It  would  be  a  confounding  question  to  some, 
were  they  asked,  if  they  ever  had  an  answer  to  prayer  in  spiritual 
things  ;  and  hard  for  many  to  tell  when  they  had  the  last  answer  of 
prayer.  Ah  !  do  we  think  that  these  prayers  avail  ought,  that  God 
hears  not,  or  that  these  are  heard,  about  which  we  are  not  concerned 
whether  they  be  heard  or  not  ?  Many  are  no  better  than  Saul,  1  Sam. 
jxviii.  15;  and  worse  than  he,  in  that  we  are  not  troubled  about  it. 


FROM  BACKSHDEllS.  417 

8.  The  great  love  to  the  world  and  caruality,  Phil.  iii.  18,  19. 
We  sit  down  on  worldly  enjoyments.  It  is  good  to  be  here.  Many 
think  of  the  world,  what  Peter  said  of  being  on  the  mount  of  trans- 
figuration with  Christ,  and  would  make  a  bargain  with  God  on 
lower  terras.  They  would  let  him  keep  his  heaven  to  himself,  so 
that  he  would  but  secure  them  from  his  hell,  and  leave  them  in  the 
world,  to  shift  for  themselves.  Where  is  the  man  "  that  is  coming 
up  from  the  wilderness,  leaning  upon  Christ  his  beloved  ?"  And 
saying,  "  henceforth  there  is  laid  up  for  me  a  crown  of  righteous- 
ness, which  the  Lord  the  righteous  Judge  shall  give  at  that  day : 
and  not  to  me  only,  but  unto  all  them  also,  that  love  his  appear- 
ing." 

9.  The  woeful  misspending  of  the  Sabbath  day.  The  fourth  com- 
mandment is  put  in  the  middle  of  the  decalogue,  with  a  "  remember 
the  Sabbath  day,"  as  being  the  bond  of  all  religion.  The  growth  of 
religion,  or  decay  of  it,  goes  haud  in  hand  with  the  keeping,  or 
neglecting  of  the  Sabbath,  Isa.  Iviii.  13,  14;  Amos  v.  8.  But  alas! 
if  we  take  our  mark  by  this,  we  may  say  religion  is  at  a  low  ebb. 
Few  sermons  in  the  year  serve  some  people,  aud  little  thing  will 
make  some  turn  their  backs  on  them.  If  people  would  do  with  their 
meat,  in  which  there  is  a  mote,  real  or  supposed,  as  they  do  with 
the  ordinances,  some  would  come  quickly  to  the  churchyard,  that 
will  not  come  to  the  church.  Many  spend  much  of  the  Lord's 
day  in  their  beds,  long  in  bed  in  the  morning,  and  soon  to  it  at 
night.  Some  companies  by  their  discourse,  might  be  thought  to  be 
going  to  a  market,  when  coming  to  church.  Betwixt  sermons,  how 
few  go  alone,  to  pray  or  meditate ;  and  in  company  no  spiritual  dis- 
course, but  carnal,  vain,  idle  talk,  unfiting  them  for  the  rest  of  the 
work.  In  going  home,  no  spiritual  conversation.  What  they  heard 
is  buried,  unless  it  be  something  they  mind  to  quarrel  or  dispute 
about.  At  home,  the  day  is  as  ill  closed  with  many,  as  it  was 
begun. 

10.  The  little  spiritual  discourse  that  is,  at  any  time,  among  pro- 
fessors. "  Let  no  corrupt  communication,"  says  Paul,  "  pi'oceed 
out  of  your  mouih  ;  but  that  which  is  good,  to  the  use  of  edifying, 
that  it  may  minister  grace  to  the  hearers."  When  Christian  expe- 
riences are  spoken  by  any,  how  little  do  they  relish  with  others  : 
It  is  an  effectual  way  to  silence  some  companies.  How  few  have 
any  thing  to  add.  It  is  a  mystery  to  many.  A  philosopher  seeing 
a  man  with  a  fair  face,  and  silent  tongue,  bade  him  speak,  that  he 
might  see  him.  When  scholars  or  merchants  meet,  their  discourse 
tells  what  they  are.  Men  of  the  same  nation  in  foreign  countries, 
speak  their  mother  tongue  to  one  another.     Why  not  Chiisiiaus  J 


418  GOD  HIDING  UIS  FACE 

Alas !  religion  is  at  a  low  ebb.  Nearest  the  heart,  nearest  tlie 
mouth.  "When  there  is  fire  on  the  hearth,  smoke  will  come  out  at 
the  chimney.  Let  the  word  of  Christ  dwell  in  you  richly,  in  all 
wisdom ;  teaching  and  admonishing  one  another,  in  psalms,  and 
hymns,  and  spiritual  songs,  singing  with  grace  in  your  hearts  to  the 
Lord. 

11.  The  little  trouble  ministers  and  fellow  Christians  get  in  our 
day,  to  solve  doubts  and  cases  of  conscience,  about  matters  concern- 
ing the  state  and  case  of  the  soul.  This  mnst  be,  either  because 
people  can  guide  all  these  concerns  alone,  and  need  no  help;  but 
often  it  has  been  seen,  that  they  who  could  have  helped  others,  have 
stood  in  need  of  help  themselves,  when  the  case  became  their  own : 
or  that  people  smother  their  exercises  and  cases,  which  is  dangerous ; 
or  that  they  are  not  taken  up  about  these  matters.  Indeed  it  is  to  be 
feared,  the  thing  which  makes  many  of  us  so  easy  is,  either  that 
we  are  sleeping  or  dead,  and  it  is  all  one  thing  to  such  persons 
whether  it  be  night  or  day ;  and  therefore  no  asking  of  that  ques- 
tion, "  Watchman,  what  of  the  night  ?  Watchman,  what  of  the 
night  ?"  It  is  to  be  feared,  that  many  of  us  are  as  Samson,  when 
"  he  wist  not  that  the  Lord  was  departed  from  him."  I  think  we 
that  are  professors,  have  ground  to  propose  that  question,  if  it  be 
so,  why  am  I  thus  ?  So  little  exercised  about  our  soul's  state  and 
case.     I  will  guess  at  some  reasons  of  it, 

1.  The  truths  of  religion  are  speculatively  known  by  many,  but 
realized  by  very  few,  1  Cor.  ii.  14.  It  is  one  thing  to  know  the 
grammatical  construction  of  words  and  their  meaning,  another  thing 
to  see  the  things  themselves  expressed  by  these  words.  One  man 
hears  of  the  bitterness  of  gall,  or  speaks  of  it,  and  is  not  moved ; 
another  tastes  it,  and  his  whole  body  shivers.  Were  the  truth  of 
the  being  of  a  God,  the  nature  and  necessity  of  regeneration,  holi- 
ness, and  the  like,  realized  unto  us,  it  would  be  impossible  for  us  to 
be  so  little  taken  up  about  these  things  as  we  are.  Paul  knew  the 
law  literally,  but  was  not  exercised  about  his  case,  till  it  was  real- 
ized to  him.  "  I  was  alive,"  says  he,  "  without  the  law  once,  but 
when  the  commandment  came,  sin  revived,  and  I  died."  Alas  ! 
God,  heaven,  and  hell,  are  but  lifeless  speculations  to  most  men. 

2.  The  word  heard  is  not  mixed  with  faith  of  application,  other- 
wise it  would  make  some  smart,  Heb.  iv.  2,  Men  having  a  soul 
ruining  way  of  hearing.  Hearing  as  if  we  were  speaking  to  the 
man  in  the  moon,  so  that  we  may  say,  "  To  whom  shall  I  speak  and 
give  warning,  that  they  may  hear  ?  Behold  their  ears  are  uncir- 
cnmcised,  and  they  cannot  hearken.  Behold  the  word  of  the  Lord 
is  unto  them  a  reproach ;    they   have    no   delight  in    it."      Alas ! 


PROM  BACKSLIDERS.  419 

many  are  like  the  sieve  out  of  the  water,  they  lose  all.  But  God's 
word  will  at  length  take  hold  of  them,  that  will  not  take  hold  of  it, 
Zech.  i.  6. 

3.  Many  are  very  little  at  home,  in  the  duty  of  self-examination. 
Some  narrow  spirits  mind  nothing  but  their  own  particular  affairs ; 
some  are  so  taken  up  with  the  public,  that  matters  at  home,  in  their 
own  breasts  go  to  wreck.  0  !  for  the  day,  when  what  God  has 
joined,  men  shall  not  dare  to  put  asunder.  Debt  is  a  great  burden 
to  an  honest  heart,  but  some  go  lightly  under  it.  Augustus  hearing 
of  one  deeply  in  debt,  who  yet  slept  soundly,  sent  for  his  pillow, 
alleging  there  was  some  strange  virtue  in  it.  "Want  of  consider- 
ation is  a  sleepy  pillow  indeed.  If  the  sluggard  manage  the  garden, 
bad  weeds  will  get  leave  to  grow.  If  there  be  no  trial  made,  no 
wonder  all  pass  for  gold  that  glitters,  and  that  bad  wares  go  off  in 
the  dark. 

4.  People  have  some  moonlight  grace  within,  that  will  appear 
very  good,  if  they  take  but  a  slight  view  of  it.  Men  are  not 
troubled  with  questions  about  their  state  and  case.  What  is  tho 
reason  ?  "  He  feedeth  on  ashes  :  a  deceived  heart  hath  turned  him 
aside,  that  he  cannot  deliver  his  soul,  nor  say,  is  there  not  a  lie  in 
my  right  hand  ?"  Such  are  not  disposed  to  rip  up  things  to  the 
quick.  They  find  they  have  good  meanings,  good  desires  of  Christ 
and  grace,  and  upon  these  they  can  charge  conscience  to  be  quiet 
and  back  the  charge,  Matth.  v.  6 ;  2  Cor.  viii.  12.  But  it  is  not 
their  work  to  know  whether  their  former  awakenings  and  present 
desires,  be  of  the  right  stamp  or  not.  Alas  !  that  is  verified  in 
many,  "  the  soul  of  the  sluggard  desireth,  and  hath  nothing.  The 
desire  of  the  slothful  killeth  him,  for  his  hands  refuse  to  labour." 

5.  Religion  is  but  a  by-hand  work  to  many.  It  is  the  real 
business  of  few.  The  many  are  drowned  in  the  thick  clay  of  the 
world.  Their  work  is  like  the  mole  in  the  earth,  that  lifts  not  up 
its  eyes  till  a-dying.  If  they  mind  their  soul's  case  at  any  time, 
they  take  but  a  start  of  that  work.  Many  have  imbibed  Pharaoh's 
cursedjprinciple,  that  religion  is  a  work  only  for  them  that  has  nothing 
else  to  do.  Martha  was  troubled  about  many  things,  and  these  turn 
the  attention  away  from  the  one  thing  needful.  People  will  never 
prosper,  till  they  make  religion  their  business,  and  season  their 
whole  conversation  with  it. 

6.  Satan  who  is  the  cause  of  much  inward  trouble  to  some,  suf- 
fers others  to  be  unmolested,  and  that  because  they  have  nothing 
that  is  worth  to  lose,  except  their  souls,  and  these  are  best  catched, 
while  the  man  is  not  exercised  about  his  case.  If  a  soul  attain  to 
communion  with  God,  victory  over  corruption,  sound  evidences  for 


420  GOD  HIDING  UlS  jrACJB 

heaven,  then  Satan  never  lots  them  rest,  but  does  every  thing  he  can 
to  disturb  them.  It  is  the  rich  ship  which  the  pirate  attacks,  and 
the  heavy  purse  which  the  robber  tries  to  take. 

7.  Many  never  knew  what  true  religion  meant.  Hence,  like  chil- 
dren, they  please  themselves  with  a  bag  full  of  counters,  as  if  they 
were  gold;  "they  think  themselves  rich,  and  increased  in  goods, 
and  standing  in  need  of  nothing."  When  people  know  no  other 
state,  but  that  in  which  they  are,  it  is  little  wonder  they  trouble 
not  themselves  about  it.  One  bred  a  workman  all  his  days,  will  go 
to  his  labour,  his  coarse  fare,  and  cottage,  contentedly ;  whereas  one 
bred  up  in  a  palace,  would  take  ill  with  it,  and  would  weep,  when 
the  other  would  sing. 

8.  Unacquaintedness  with  the  work  of  wrestling  with  God.  There 
is  a  great  difference  betwixt  prayers.  God  regards  not  every  thing 
which  men  call  prayer.  "They  have  not,"  says  he,  "cried  unto  me 
with  their  heart,  when  they  howled  upon  their  beds."  Few  are 
like  Jacob,  or  the  woman  of  Canaan,  Mark  vii.  25,  in  urging  their 
requests.  Nay,  our  coldrife,  lukewarm  prayers  say,  that  our  life 
is  almost  gone,  and  that  which  remains  is  ready  to  die.  We  are 
now, 

II.  To  shew  the  evil  of  this  sleepy  lazy  temper  of  spirit. 

1.  It  is  far  worse  than  it  looks  to  be.  It  is  like  the  locusts  in 
the  Revelations,  "  which  had  hair  as  the  hair  of  women,  and  their 
teeth  were  as  the  teeth  of  lions."  People  are  not  aware  of  the 
danger  of  it,  and  so  it  is  most  dangerous,  for  the  evil  of  it  is  not  so 
easily  discerned  as  in  other  cases;  it  is  but  an  omission,  and  an 
indisposition  for  spiritual  things.  The  sting  of  it  is  concealed.  It 
is  looked  on  as  an  infirmity,  which  the  best  have ;  for  while  the 
Bridegroom  tarried,  they  all  slumbered  and  slept.  It  rests  like  a 
friend  in  the  bosom,  but  is  indeed  a  bosom  enemy. 

It  comes  not  to  an  height  in  an  instant,  but  creeps  on  by  degrees, 
for  it  is  the  soul's  sleep,  which  steals  on  at  great  leisure.  First 
they  grow  heavy,  then  slumber,  and  then  sleep,  Deut.  10 — 18.  Con- 
science is  not  silenced  in  an  instant,  and  Satan  carries  on  his  de- 
signs best  by  degrees.  He  did  not  presently  thrust  the  forbidden 
fruit  into  the  mouths  of  our  first  parents ;  but  first  Eve  must  see  it, 
then  taste,  then  eat,  and  then  give  to  her  husband. 

It  is  also  a  sweet  sin.  0  but  sleep  is  sweet!  Meat  is  sweet,  but 
people  soon  fill  themselves  with  it ;  but  they  are  not  so  soon  satis- 
fied with  sleep.  When  a  man  can  take  no  pleasure  in  any  other 
thing,  yet  he  can  sleep.  When  people  have  lost  all  delight  in  God, 
in  his  word  and  ordinances,  they  can  take  pleasure  in  this  lazy 
temper. 


FROM  BACKSLIDERS.  421 

2.  It  is  a  temper  of  spirit  most  hateful  to  God.  "As  vinegar  to 
the  teeth,  and  as  smoke  to  the  eyes,  so  is  the  sluggard  to  them  that 
send  him."  "  I  would,"  says  Jesus,  "  thou  wert  cold  or  hot.  So 
then,  because  thou  art  lukewarm,  and  neither  cold  nor  hot,  I  will 
spue  thee  out  of  my  mouth."  A  prince  would  take  it  ill  to  be 
brought  into  a  smoky  house,  and  to  have  vinegar  presented  to  him, 
instead  of  wiue;  so  God  abhors  such  a  temper,  and  the  services 
which  proceed  from  it.  God  is  a  living  God,  and  he  cannot  love 
but  loathe  dead  inactive  souls.  Christ  keeps  no  communion  with 
such.  They  are  in  bed,  the  doors  are  shut,  they  cannot  rise  to  let 
him  in,  therefore  he  goes  away,  Song  v.  3,  6,  for  they  prefer  their 
ease  to  communion  with  him.  With  them  it  is  heartless  work,  and 
therefore  God  cannot  love  it. 

8.  It  is  destructive  to  the  soul,  Prov.  xxiv.  30 — 34.  When  men 
sleep,  Satan  will  be  sowing  his  tares,  and  so  there  may  be  a  sowing 
in  joy,  which  will  be  reaped  in  tears.  The  bands  when  laid  on 
the  soul,  may  be  soft  as  wool,  but  as  iron  at  the  breaking  them 
off,  as  in  the  case  of  David.  It  casts  the  gracious  soul  into  a  spirit- 
ual consumption,  and  graceless  souls  it  stings  to  death.  "  By  much 
slothfulness  the  building  decayeth,  and  through  idleness  of  the 
hands,  the  house  droppeth  through." 

This  temper  murders  convictions.  It  stifles  the  harbingers  of  the 
Lord  of  glory,  and  checks  a  good  work  in  the  bud.  Acts  xxiv.  25; 
IIos.  vi.  4.  It  fares  with  many  in  this  case,  as  with  a  sleepy  man, 
who  being  oft  called  to  arise,  still  falls  asleep  again,  till  the  other 
depart  from  him.  It  also  choaks  many  good  resolutions.  0  what 
brave  Christians  would  many  of  us  have  been,  had  we  been  what  we 
resolved  to  be.  But  alas  !  this  temper  has  made  them  like  corn  ou 
the  house  tops,  withered  before  it  be  grown  ;  or  like  Rachel,  beauti- 
ful, but  barren.  Conscience  makes  many  resolve  to  amend,  but  spi- 
ritual laziness  lets  them  not  move  a  foot,  for  it  cuts  the  sinews  of 
all  good  endeavours,  and  makes  men  unfit  both  for  doing  and  suffer- 
ing. For  dohii).  The  Christian's  work,  is  striving,  fighting,  wrest- 
ling, and  running.  But  who  will  be  fit  to  grapple  with  principali- 
ties and  powers,  corruptions  and  temptations,  that  stir  not  up  them- 
selves ?  This  requires  not  only  life  but  liveliness.  It  unfits  also 
for  suffering.  For  this  the  person  is  most  unfit,  because  he  loves 
ease,  and  nothing  uneasy  can  be  pleasing  to  him.  Song  v.  3.  A  suf- 
fering lot  requires  more  than  ordinary  vigour,  but  the  sleepy  Chris- 
tian has  less.  Its  prevalence  says  we  are  unmeet  for  suffering.  It 
says  trials  are  coming  on,  but  that  the  generation  is  very  unfit  for 
tliem. 

4.  It  is  a  mother  sin.     It  is  both  mother  and  nurse  to  other  sins, 


422  aOD  HIDING  HIS  FACE 

Prov.  xxiv.  30,  31.  It  breeds  other  sins,  as  it  did  David's  adultery. 
Look  as  death  seizing  on  the  body,  breeds  worms  and  corruption,  so 
deadness  on  the  soul  doth  produce  noisome  lusts.  Whence  is  all 
that  carnality,  lightness,  want  of  appetite  after  spiritual  things,  but 
from  hence ;  they  are  the  monstrous  births  of  this  womb.  When 
once  a  man  begins  to  awaken,  these  flee  away ;  as  the  wind  blowing, 
purgeth  and  purifieth  the  air.  This  temper  not  only  produces  but 
feeds  them.  Lusts  thrive  well  in  the  heart  under  this  temper. 
Satan  says  to  it,  as  Pharaoh's  daughter  did  to  the  mother  of  Moses, 
nurse  that  child  for  me.  Hence  how  difficult  is  it  to  recover  after 
men  have  been  long  lying  on  this  sleepy  pillow.  If  a  man  take  his 
disease  in  time,  it  may  be  speedily  cured;  but  let  it  run  on,  it  will 
not  be  so  easy.  While  Babel's  children  are  yet  but  young,  they 
may  be  dashed  against  the  stones,  but  being  grown  up,  they  will  be 
more  difficult  to  destroy. 

5.  This  lazy  temper  of  spirit,  is  the  strongest  arm  of  the  devil. 
It  is  one  of  his  master  pieces  for  the  ruin  of  souls.  What  can  he 
not  do  with  people,  when  once  he  has  them  in  this  net  ?  By  it  he  can 
do  two  things  :  1.  He  can  draw  people  by  it.  As  dyers  give  a  dip 
in  the  blue  vat  to  cloth,  that  it  may  the  better  take  on  black ;  so 
Satan  makes  use  of  this  temper  for  drawing  men  into  other  sins. 
Let  men  once  take  a  draught  of  this  intoxicating  cup,  and  they  will 
dance  after  the  devil's  pipe,  Prov.  xxiii.  21.  Thus  he  made  Peter 
deny  his  master,  and  the  spouse  to  give  Christ  his  leave,  Song  v.  3, 
4.  Sometimes  the  man  will  be  ready  to  say.  Am  I  a  dog  to  do  this 
thing  ?  Well,  but  if  Satan  get  the  man  under  this  temper,  he  will 
soon  make  him  do  it.  As  he  draws  them  by  this  temper,  so  he 
holds  them  by  it.  By  this  means  he  holds  fast  his  own.  Has  he  a^ 
mind  to  bring  them  to  rank  poverty,  this  will  do  it.  It  will  shut 
out  the  foolish  virgins.  How  did  Satau  hold  David  by  it,  after  he 
had  fallen  into  adultery.  The  woman  informs  him,  that  the  sin 
cannot  be  concealed,  she  is  with  child,  2  Sam.  xi.  5.  But  Satan 
keeps  the  hold.  David  is  not  awakened  yet ;  he  falls  on  schemes 
still  to  hide  his  sin,  sends  for  Uriah,  bids  him  go  to  his  house,  and 
sends  a  mess  of  meat  after  him,  fills  him  drunk,  and  at  last  murders 
him ;  and  thus  was  he  held  till  the  Lord  brake  the  arm  that  held 
him,  and  awakened  him. 

Lastly,  It  is  that  which  Satan  bends  all  his  force  to  maintain,  as 
being  a  main  pillar  of  his  kingdom.  Art  thou  fallen  into  this 
lazy  frame,  Satan's  net  and  power  shall  fail,  if  thou  get  not  a 
sound  sleep.  He  will  do  his  utmost,  ere  people  be  disturbed,  till  his 
time  come.  It  seems  then,  he  has  a  time,  when  he  will  allow  people 
to  be  awakened.     Yes  !  a  twofold  time  :  1.  When  he  has  got  a  man 


FROM  BACKSLIDERS.  423 

over  head  and  ears  in  some  gross  sins,  that  even  a  natural  conscience 
will  startle  at.  Then  he  will  allow  them  to  rub  their  eyes,  pnt  on 
their  spectacles,  that  they  may  see  the  bloody  sword  of  justice, 
hanging  over  their  heads;  and  so  may,  in  a  fright,  leap  out  of  one 
hell  into  another ;  for  sometimes  Satan  sets  the  house  on  fire  about 
the  lazy  sinner,  that  the  smoke  awakening  him,  he  may  leap  out  of 
his  bed  into  the  iire,  and  perish  in  despair.  Though  sometimes  the 
Lord  plucks  the  brand  out  of  the  fire,  yet,  like  David,  they  escape 
not  without  broken  bones.  Again,  he  permits  them  to  awake,  when 
death  is  come,  and  time  gone.  If  it  were  possible  any  could  be 
secure  beyond  the  line  of  time,  Satan  would  rather  awaken  them 
himself,  than  that  they  should  sleep  on.  The  tempter  turns  accuser 
and  executioner.  "When  time  is  gone,  he  knows  there  is  no  hazard 
in  their  awakening,  Eccles.  ix.  10.  Hence,  some  sleep  on  till  the 
last  breath,  and  pass  off  like  lambs,  no  bands  in  their  death. 

Use  it.  Of  exhortation.  Stir  up  yourselves  to  take  hold  of 
Christ.  There  is  much  need  of  this  exhortation.  0  !  that  I  could 
come  to  every  man's  bed  side  this  day,  and  sound  an  alarm.  I  may 
take  up  the  whole  congregation  in  four  classes.     A  word  to  each, 

1.  Some  that  never  had  any  awakening,  that  had  never  a  qualm 
of  conscience  to  make  them  say,  what  have  I  done  ?  but  can  bless 
God  they  have  lived  in  good  belief  all  their  days.  Like  Moab,  they 
have  been  at  ease  from  their  youth,  and  have  settled  on  their  lees. 
They  have  not  so  much  as  a  form  of  godliness,  but  live  in  ignorance, 
and  profanity,  or  what  they  call  morality,  and  sleep  soundly  in  the 
devil's  arms.  The  danger  of  their  souls  never  brake  their  rest  by 
night  or  by  day.  And  if  they  heard  of  any  under  soul  exercise, 
would  be  ready  to  bless  themselves  from  it,  or  count  it  melancholy 
fits. 

Awaken,  0!  yonng  and  old  sinners,  before  the  pit  shut  its  mouth 
upon  ye,  for  you  are  sleeping  the  sleep  of  death.  God  forbid  !  will 
some  say.  Nay,  others  see  the  devil's  mark  on  your  foreheads, 
though  you  do  not.  Had  you  been  born  again,  you  would  have  had 
some  pangs,  some  awakenings  less  or  more,  and  would  have  been 
stirred  up  to  mind  your  soul's  case. 

1.  Consider  that  by  nature  thou  art  a  child  of  the  devil,  and  an 
heir  of  hell  ;  under  the  wr:\th  and  curse  of  God  for  original  sin,  and 
thou  hast  been  adding  every  moment  to  that  treasure  of  sin,  while 
God  has  been  adding  to  the  treasure  of  wrath.  Thy  soul  got  a 
wrong  set  by  Adam's  fall,  and  so  could  never  to  this  day  step  one 
right  step;  but  God  has  the  account  of  them  all  to  lay  before  thee 
at  length,  Deut.  xxxii.  34;  Rom.  ii.  5.  "Wrath  is  hovering  over  thy 
head.     "  He  that  believeth   not  the   Son  shall  not  see  life,  but  the 


424  ooD  mDiNO  his  fate 

wrath  of  God  abideth  on  him  ;"  and  thou  art  hanging  over  the  pit's 
month,  by  the  brittle  thread  of  life. 

Say  not  you  have  good  hearts,  for  the  heart  is  the  worst  part  of 
you ;  "  It  is  deceitful  above  all  things,  and  desperately  wicked." 
Say  not  that  you  live  an  honest  life  in  the  world.  "  For  an  high 
look,  and  a  proud  heart,  and  the  ploughing  of  the  wicked  is  sin." 
Say  not  that  you  have  good  meanings  and  desires.  "  For  the  sacri- 
fice of  the  wicked  is  an  abomination  to  the  Lord."  Say  not  that 
Christ  is  merciful,  willing  to  save  sinners  ;  for  he  is  not  willing  to 
save  you  in,  but  from,  your  sins.  He  is  not  willing  to  take  dogs 
and  swine  to  heaven.  He  cannot  save  you,  unless  you  take  hold  of 
him  by  faith,  Heb.  xi.  6;  and  you  will  never  do  that  unless  you  be 
awakened,  Matth.  ix.  12. 

2.  Thou  hast  never  yet  been  brought  the  length  of  the  first  step 
to  heaven.  Esau,  Felix,  and  Judas,  were  farther  on  than  ever  thou 
hast  been  ;  for  they  were  awakened  and  convinced,  and  that  is  the 
first  work,  John  xvi.  8. 

3.  The  devil  is  the  master  of  the  household  with  thee.  Till  this 
day,  his  goods  are  at  peace.  Had  the  devil  been  cast  out,  he  would 
not  have  quit  his  possession  with  so  little  noise,  and  they  with 
whom  he  dwells  now,  shall  dwell  with  him  hereafter. 

Lastly,  Awaken  now,  or  you  will  get  a  fearful  awakening.  "  The 
sinners  in  Zion  are  afraid ;  fearfulness  hath  surprised  the  hypo- 
crites :  who  among  us  shall  dwell  with  the  devouring  fire  ?  who 
among  us  shall  dwell  with  everlasting  burnings."  0  sinner,  the 
house  is  on  fire  about  thee,  rise  therefore,  out  of  thy  bed,  and  flee 
for  thy  life.  Is  it  not  time  yet  to  mind  thy  soul  ?  What  breast 
plate  hast  thou  got  on,  that  the  arrows  of  God's  word  cannot  pierce 
thee  ?  Your  confidence  seems  to  be  strong.  But  remember  Job 
xviii.  14;  Isa.  xxviii.  18  ;  Deut  xxix.  19,  20. 

2.  Those  that  sometimes  have  had  an  awakening,  but  now  it  is 
gone,  and  they  are  even  where  they  were  before,  they  are  back  to 
their  old  trade  again.  0  sinner,  did  not  God  once  awaken  thee  ? 
Was  thy  conscience  never  alarmed  ?  Are  there  not  some  who  may 
mind,  how  God  once  took  them  to  Mount  Sinai,  and  caused  them 
to  hear  the  trumpet  of  the  law  ?  Perhaps  at  a  sermon  many 
years  since,  or  on  a  sick  bed,  when  death  came  to  the  bed  side,  and 
stared  them  in  the  face  and  filled  them  with  horror  of  hell  following 
at  its  back  :  they  resolved  never  to  be  again  as  they  had  been  before. 
But  when  the  sermon  was  once  gone  out  of  their  heads,  or  they  re- 
covered out  of  their  sickness,  they  turned  even  the  old  men  and 
women  they  were  before.  I  would  pose  your  consciences  with  a 
few  questions. 


FROM  BACKSLTDKKS.  425 

1.  Wlien  you  liad  the  awakening,  would  you  not  have  given  all 
the  world  to  have  that  undone  which  you  had  done  ;  that  you  had 
spent  the  time  that  was  wasted  in  pursuit  of  your  lusts  in  minding 
the  concerns  of  your  souls  ?  Why  then  have  you  turned  back  ? 
Did  you  not  resolve  for  the  time  to  come,  that  you  would  never  be 
so  unconcerned  about  your  souls  as  you  had  been  ?  What  have 
you  done  with  these  resolutions  now  ?  Were  you  fools  to  make 
them,  or  fools  to  break  them  ? 

3.  Did  you  think  God's  wrath  against  sin,  and  his  threatenings, 
mere  scarecrows  to  affright  children  ?  Why  look  you  so  on  them 
now  ?  Could  you  sleep  sound  this  night  if  God  should  send 
you  home  with  these  arrows  in  your  conscience  again  ?  Perhaps 
you  are  proof  against  these  things  now.  But  they  had  need  of 
very  strong  armour,  to  ward  off  the  blow,  that  have  God  for  their 
opponent. 

Lastly,  Was  not  death  very  terrible  then,  in  your  case  ;  and  is 
the  turning  back  to  your  old  course,  the  way  to  make  it  pleasant 
now?  Is  there  more  sand  in  your  glass  now,  than  there  was  then  ? 
,  It  may  be  farther  from  your  mind,  but  it  is  surely  nearer  to  your 
heels  to  overturn  you,  than  it  was  then.  Awaken  now  again,  ere 
God  awaken  you  in  wrath.  It  had  been  better  for  you,  if  you  had 
never  had  that  awakening.  "  If  I  had  not  come,  said  Jesus,  you 
had  not  had  sin,  but  now  you  have  no  cloak  for  your  sin,"  2  Pet. 
ii.  20,  21.  The  devil  hath  a  surer  hold  of  you  than  ever.  It  will 
be  a  wonder  if  you  escape  ;  "  for  he  that  being  often  reproved, 
hardeneth  his  neck,  shall  suddenly  be  destroyed,  and  that  without 
remedy."  Murdered  convictions  sometimes  rise  again  when  men  are 
dying,  and  with  horrible  cries  drive  men  into  darkness. 

3.  Upsitten  professors,  of  whom  better  things  might  be  expected. 
Alas  !  many  that  have  the  root  of  the  matter  in  them,  are  now 
under  a  decay;  even  Jonah  is  gone  down  into  the  sides  of  the  ship. 
I  have  given  several  evidences  of  this.  But  further  would  you 
know  it,  try  and  find  how  the  pulse  of  your  affections  beat  in 
prayer,  especially  in  secret,  for  in  public  people  have  many  winds 
to  fill  their  sails.  Alas  I  fear  if  we  view  ourselves  in  the  glass  of 
our  secret  conversing  with  God,  many  of  us  will  see  ourselves  so 
decayed  as  that  nothing  is  left  but  skin  and  bone.  Alas,  what  cold 
has  benumbed  our  spiritual  senses?  Perhaps  we  are  something 
before  others,  but  in  secret  are  as  idols,  that  have  eyes  and  see  not, 
ears  and  hear  not.  Little  heat  of  affection  there,  the  body  is  placed 
on  its  knees  before  God,  but  the  world  gets  away  the  heart. 
Though  the  eyes  be  shut,  the  man  sees  a  thousand  varieties.  The 
heart,  like  a  bird,  gets  out  of  the  cage,  and  skips  from  bush  to 
bush,  wanders  here  and  there.     This  argues  a  sad  decay. 


426  GOD  HIDITs^G  HIS  FACE 

Objection.  These  are  but  infirmities  and  little  sins.  Answer  : 
Is  it  but  a  little  sin  to  neglect  him  whom  the  angels  adore  ?  "Would 
you  turn  about  your  back,  speaking  to  a  king?  Be  it  so,  what 
think  you  of  the  number  of  them  ?  Grains  of  sand  heaped  together 
make  a  mountain ;  and  I  believe,  these  your  little  sins,  sometimes 
make  such  a  high  mountain  betwixt  Christ  and  the  soul,  that  the 
soul  cannot  meet  with  Christ  in  the  duty,  nor  can  its  voice  reach 
him.  The  bow  will  not  shoot,  unless  it  be  bended,  nor  will  the  viol 
make  melody,  if  the  strings  be  not  properly  drawn.  Prayer  without 
fervour  of  spirit,  is  like  a  bird,  whose  nature  is  but  to  fly,  but  can- 
not, when  its  wings  are  clipped. 

Objection.  It  is  hard  to  get  the  heart  fixed.  Indeed  it  is.  But  it  is 
not  impossible.  David  could  say, "  0  God  my  heart  is  fixed."  Were 
any  of  us  under  a  sentence  of  death,  and  got  access  to  the  prince's 
chamber  to  petition  for  our  life,  we  would  not  be  gazing  on  the  pictures 
hanging  in  the  room.  A  man  intent  on  his  business  in  the  world,  hears 
not  the  first  knock  at  his  door  for  he  is  busy.  0  for  an  exchange 
of  affections  to  get  these  which  we  give  to  the  world,  to  give  to  God. 
The  assaults  of  these  wanderings  we  cannot  hinder ;  but  there  is  no 
necessity  to  entertain  them.  These  wandering  ghosts  may  knock  at 
our  door,  but  we  need  not  open  unless  we  please.  We  cannot 
hinder  the  birds  to  fly  about  our  heads,  yet  we  need  not  allow  them 
to  nestle  in  our  hair.  But  0  !  what  way  shall  a  poor  creature  be 
kept  from  them.  I  can  tell  you  no  way  how  to  be  kept  altogether 
free  from  their  assaults,  for  I  believe  that  is  reserved  for  heaven. 
The  devil  is  the  father  that  begets  them,  corrupt  nature  brings  them 
forth,  and  if  unwatch fulness  and  laziness  be  there,  it  will  nurse  them. 
But  it  is  the  work  of  grace  to  starve  them.  But  if  they  be  not 
entertained  they  will  not  mar  the  success  of  our  prayers,  and  there- 
fore I  would  give  you  advice  in  that  case. 

1.  Do  as  the  builders  of  the  wall  of  Jerusalem  did,  hold  the 
trowel  in  the  one  hand,  the  sword  in  the  other,  that  you  may  be 
ready  both  to  build  and  to  fight,  to  ward  off  these  irregular  motions 
of  the  heart. 

2.  If  they  do  come  on,  do  as  Abraham  did  with  the  fowls  that 
came  on  the  sacrifice,  drive  them  away.  Refuse  converse  with  them, 
and  closely  apply  yourself  to  the  work  before  you.  The  mind  of 
man  cannot  be  intent  on  two  things  at  once. 

3.  Do  as  Samson  who  took  meat  out  of  the  eater,  and  sweet  out  of 
the  strong :  turn  them  to  an  occasion  of  good,  turn  the  cannon  on 
corruption,  and  see  if  you  can  outshoot  the  devil  with  his  own  bow. 
There  is  a  fourfold  sweet  may  be  extricated  out  of  them  by  a  gracious 
soul. 


FROM  BACKSLIDERS.  42? 

1.  Humiliation  of  soul  before  the  Lord.  "  So  foolish  was  I  and 
ignorant,"  says  Asaph,  "  I  was  a  beast  before  thee."  The  soul 
may  therewith  be  filled  with  shame  and  blushing  before  the  Lord. 
Dost  thou  find  thy  heart  beginning  to  wander,  turn  thyself  to  the 
lamenting  of  the  corruption,  vanity  and  lightness  of  it.  They  are 
the  nasty  old  friends  of  the  bride,  who  beginning  to  draw  about  her 
while  before  the  bridegroom,  may  well  fill  her  face  with  blushing, 
and  remind  her  of  her  father's  house  and  her  own  people. 

2.  Sense  of  need.  Many  times  people  go  to  God,  insensible  of 
their  needs,  and  so  no  wonder  their  hearts  wander,  like  a  man  that 
goes  to  the  market,  wanting  nothing,  and  so  goeth  gazing  up  and 
down.  Well,  turn  this  wandering  deadness  and  darkness  of  heart; 
men  may  quicken  their  sense  of  need  of  help  from  Clirist,  and  sup- 
plies of  grace,  Rom.  vii.  21 — 24. 

3.  Importunity  in  prayer.  These  messengers  from  Satan  should 
make  us  more  importunate.  The  man  going  to  the  city  of  refuge, 
the  nearer  his  heels  the  enemy  is,  he  flees  the  faster,  and  knocks 
more  rudely  at  the  gates. 

4.  A  desire  of  uninterrupted  communication  with  God,  and  per- 
fect freedom  from  that  corrupt  nature,  that  will  needs  draw  a  black 
score  through  the  fairest  line  we  can  write,  Rom.  vii.  24 ;  and  thus  the 
soul  might  be  screwed  up  to  heaven,  and  drawn  from  under  the  feet 
of  these  tyrants.     Resolution  would  do  this. 

Now  to  return,  our  moth  eaten  duties,  our  prayers  that  are  so  run 
with  these  worms  of  our  earthly  hearts,  shew,  that  there  is  little  re- 
sistance made  to  them,  and  that  we  are  upsitten  very  sore.  And  to 
awaken  you,  I  woald  cry  in  your  ears  these  following  : 

Cry.  Jer.  ii.  2,  "  I  remember  thee,  the  kindness  of  thy  youth, 
the  love  of  thy  espousals,  when  thou  wentest  after  me  in  the  wilder- 
ness, in  a  land  not  sown."  0  upsitten  professors,  decayed  christians, 
God  remembers  the  day  when  it  was  otherwise  with  you,  when  you 
could  not  have  lived  as  you  do  now.  Have  you  forgotten  the  days 
of  your  youth  and  the  love  of  your  espousals.  Where  is  your  wil- 
derness love  now  ?  Is  not  Christ  as  good  a  master  as  he  was  ?  Are 
you  oflTended  that  he  has  taken  the  iron  yoke  oft'  your  necks  and 
laid  meat  before  you  ?     Is  this  your  kindness  to  your  friend  ? 

2.  Abner's  cry  to  Joab :  Shall  the  sword  devour  for  ever  ? 
Knowcst  thou  not  that  it  will  be  bitterness  in  the  end  ;  how  long 
shall  it  be  then  ere  thou  bid  the  j>eople  return  from  following  their 
brethren  ?  This  case  is  sweet  in  the  mouth,  but  it  will  be  bitter  in 
the  belly.  The  awakening  may  be  very  harsh,  by  the  blow  of  the 
Lord's  hand,  if  his  word  do  not  it.  There  are  two  ways  God  has 
awakened  sleepy  professors. 

Vol.  IV.  2  e 


428  GOB  HIDING  HIS  FACK 

1.  By  a  dreadful  storm  of  affliction.  Thus  Jonah  and  Joseph's 
brethren  were  awakened.  The  Lord  will  not  let  professors  sleep  on, 
but  if  the  word  will  not  do  it,  the  sword  may.  We  have  reason  to 
fear  some  of  us  are  so  fast  asleep,  that  we  will  not  awaken  till  we 
be  roused  up  by  the  cry  of  ourselves  or  relations,  weltering  in  blood. 

Or,  II.  By  letting  them  be  plunged  in  the  mire  of  some  scandal- 
ous gross  sin,  as  Peter  ;  the  bitterest  way  of  all.  Men  keep  np  the 
body  of  religion,  and  that  does  before  the  world;  but  the  sonl  of 
life  is  gone,  and  the  Lord  lets  them  so  fall,  as  the  world  may  be 
ready  to  judge  they  were  never  honest  at  the  heart. 

3.  The  midnight  cry.  "  Behold  the  bridegroom  cometh,  go  ye  out 
to  meet  him  ;  or,  prepare  to  meet  thy  Grod,  0  Israel."  The  clouds 
are  growing  black  above  our  heads.  The  Lord  seems  to  be  on  his 
way,  coming  out  of  his  place  to  punish  us.  The  cup  of  these  nations 
is  filling  very  fast.  It  is  high  time  to  awake.  It  is  not  good  furni- 
ture for  an  evil  day. 

4.  That  cry,  "  All  flesh  is  grass,"  and  all  the  goodliness  thereof, 
is  as  the  flower  of  the  field.  You  must  die,  and  that  ere  long.  Nay, 
how  soon,  you  do  not  know.  But  where  are  thy  evidences  for  hea- 
ven ?  Art  thou  fit  to  meet  the  Bridegroom  of  souls?  0  up  and 
trim  your  lamps  ;  all  will  have  enough  to  do.  It  is  sad  travelling 
out  of  the  world,  when  people  know  not  where  they  shall  next  take 
up  their  lodging. 

The  church  is  crying  to  you  to  awake.  Zion  spreads  forth  her 
hands,  and  cries  for  help  from  her  children.  Her  Lord  is  angry 
with  her,  threatening  to  give  up  house  with  her.  Enemies  are 
gathering  together  against  her,  saying,  let  Zion  be  defilled,  and  let 
our  eye  look  upon  Zion.  Have  you  not  sucked  the  breasts  of  her 
consolations.  0  stir  up  yourselves  to  plead  with  her  Lord,  for  your 
mother.  The  ark  is  like  to  be  carried  captive,  it  is  not  time  to 
sleep. 

Posterity  is  crying  to  you.  0  pity  the  rising  generation,  the 
generation  yet  unborn.  Murder  not  their  souls  before  their  bodies 
have  got  life.  If  they  be  brought  up  in  darkness,  and  get  poison 
instead  of  food,  the  present  generation  will  bear  the  blame.  The 
generation  of  the  Jews  that  rejected  Christ,  brought  his  blood  upon 
their  children. 

4.  To  those  that  are  awake,  I  shall  only  say. 

I.  Be  thankful.  It  was  God  that  gave  you  grace,  and  he  has 
kept  you  awake.  You  had  been  sleeping  the  sleep  of  death  as  well 
as  others,  if  he  had  not  done  it.  It  is  a  rare  mercy,  seeing  your  case 
is  as  in  the  text.  It  is  a  rare  thing,  a  waking,  active  frame.  It  is 
a  special  favour  from  heaven.     The   Lord  comes  by,  and  goes  by 


FROM  BACKSLIDERS.  429 

many  others'  bed's  side,  and  yet  while  tliey  sleep,  he  awakens  you. 
It  is  also  a  seasonable  mercy.  If  ever  there  was  a  season  to  be 
awake,  to  have  our  lamps  trimmed,  it  is  now,  when  the  enemy  is  at 
the  gate,  and  the  Lord  is  saying,  "prepare  to  meet  thy  God,  0 
Israel." 

2,  Be  watchful.  Perhaps  your  case  now  is  not  so  easy,  yet  it  is 
safer  than  before.  0  beware  of  falling  asleep  again.  Awakening 
grace,  is  a  tender  bud  of  heaven  easily  hurt.  "  Our  vines  have  tender 
grapes."  Therefore  I  say,  I  charge  you,  0  ye  daughters  of  Jerusa- 
lem, by  the  roes  and  by  the  hinds  of  the  field,  that  ye  stir  not  up, 
nor  awaken  ray  love  till  he  please.  It  is  hard  to  keep  awake 
am-ong  a  company  of  sleeping  professors,  Rev.  iii.  4.  Resolve  now 
in  the  Lord's  strength  as  Hezekiah,  "  to  go  softly  all  your  years  in 
the  bitterness  of  your  soul."  Be  sensible  of  your  danger,  and  look 
to  the  Lord  for  continued  supply. 

3.  Be  diligent.  This  is  a  golden  spot  of  time ;  miss  it  not,  nor 
let  it  slip.  "  The  substance  of  a  diligent  man  is  precious."  Now 
you  have  a  fair  wind  for  Immanuel's  land,  spread  out  your  sails 
and  steer  away,  lest  if  you  miss  it,  the  wind  fall,  and  you  tug  and 
row  in  vain.  "  See  then  that  ye  walk  circumspectly,  not  as  fools, 
but  as  wise.  Redeeming  the  time,  seeing  the  days  are  evil."  Now 
you  are  even  between  the  losing  and  the  gaining.  You  are  up  the 
first  step,  go  up  the  second.  Take  hold  of  him ;  get  sure  hold  of 
him  for  yourself  and  for  the  church,  Exod.  xxxiv.  8,  9.  Dig  deep, 
build  on  the  rock,  get  sure  evidences  for  heaven. 

I  shall  shut  up  all,  with  speaking  to  some  important  questions. 
There  are  some  of  the  godly  i-eally  exercised  about  the  case  of  their 
souls,  who  think  themselves  under  a  decay  when  they  are  not  so. 
The  first  question  is.  How  a  person  may  thus  mistake  his  case  ? 

That  God's  people  may  think  their  case  worse  than  it  is,  is  plain, 
Isa.  xlix.  14 — 17.  So  also  did  Jacob,  and  the  disciples  going  to 
Emraaus. 

1.  Tlie  wearing  of  some  glittering,  though  unsanctified  affections, 
which  they  had  before,  while  religion  was  yet  new  to  them.  Some 
never  had  more,  and  therefore,  when  these  are  gone,  all  is  gone. 
True  converts  want  not  these  either.  New  converts  will  have  moi-a 
fears,  desires  of  grace,  joy  and  delight,  than  mature  ones.  When 
grace  comes  first  into  the  soul,  it  is  with  the  man  as  with  the  Israel- 
ites, when  they  came  first  out  of  Egypt.  "  A  mixed  multitude  went 
up  also  with  them."  But  this  multitude  came  not  to  Canaan.  The 
army  indeed  was  then  less,  but  nothing  the  worse  for  want  of  them. 
So  it  is  in  this  case. 

2.  The  settling  of  violent  commotions,  which  they  sometimes  had. 

2c2' 


430  GOD  IIIDINa  HIS  FACE 

When  these  are  gone,  then  some  are  apt  to  think,  0  they  are 
undone.  But  truly  there  is  no  loss,  when  more  solidity  comes  in 
their  room.  New  ale  works  violently,  yet  when  it  is  older,  it  hath 
more  life.  James  and  John,  sometimes  were  at  that,  they  would 
have  fired  whole  towns,  that  would  not  receive  Christ,  Luke  ix.  54. 
But  when  they  received  more  of  the  Spirit,  they  were  not  so  fiery, 
yet  certainly,  they  were  better  men.  Small  rivers  in  time  of  rain, 
run  more  violently,  but  afterwards  they  still  run,  less  violently  in- 
deed, but  more  regularly.  Some  gracious  souls  may  think,  0  the 
love  they  had  to  Christ  once,  by  what  they  have  now.  0  they  could 
not  have  prayed  with  dry  cheeks,  their  prayers  would  have  aifected 
a  thousand  Christians.  Now  it  is  not  so.  But  how  do  you  love 
Christ  now,  would  you  not  rather  part  with  all,  than  with  him? 
Are  you  not  grieved  for  ofl'ending  him  ?  Do  you  pray  weighted  with 
a  sense  of  your  sinfulness  and  unworthiness  ?  Disquiet  not  your- 
selves. Often  where  water  goes  out,  wind  enters.  There  is  much 
false  fire  in  flashes  of  affection.  New  married  people  may  be  fonder, 
but  afterwards  more  loving. 

3.  People's  abating  of  their  rashness  and  indiscretion.  A  man 
that  is  truly  gracious,  yet  rash  and  indiscreet,  when  he  reproves 
sin  ;  if  you  do  not  presently  yield,  then  he  is  in  aflame.  How  sharp 
are  his  reproofs?  0  what  zeal  is  there  ?  Afterwards  God  gives  the 
man  more  knowledge,  and  then  he  has  less  of  his  own  passion  and 
corruption  mixed  with  his  duty.  There  is  no  loss  there.  Num.  xx. 
10;  Psal.  cvi.  32,  33.  See  2  Sam.  xv.  compare  verse  26  with  31. 
Now  he  was  no  less  afl"ected,  but  he  was  more  judicious.  Mark  that 
prayer,  Phil.  i.  9. 

4.  Presumption  and  self-confidence  being  much  weakened.  Grace 
mixed  with  self-confidence,  will  make  a  man  seem  far  more  than 
he  is.  Like  a  man  newly  recovered,  thinks  he  is  well  enough, 
so  walks  stoutly,  till  he  finds  his  strength  fails  ;  and  he  does  not 
do  so  again,  not  because  he  has  less  strength,  but  is  more  sen- 
sible of  his  weakness  than  before.  0  !  how  much  transported  with 
love  to  Christ  seemed  Peter  to  be,  when  he  said,  "  though  all  men 
should  be  ofl^ended  because  of  thee,  yet  will  I  never  be  ofi'endcd." 
He  could  compare  with  all  the  apostles  and  go  beyond  them.  But 
when  Jesus  said  to  him,  "  lovest  thou  me,  more  than  these  thy 
brethren  ?"  Peter  would  now  make  no  comparisons,  but  said, 
"  Yea,  Lord,  thou  knowest  that  I  love  thee."  Did  he  love  Christ 
less,  think  you?  Nay,  surely  ;  but  he  was  less  presumptuous.  The 
wings  of  love  and  humility  were  better  grown,  though  he  did  not 
fly  so  high  us  before. 

5.  A   decay   of  natural  vigour  and  activity.     The  existence  of 


FROM  BACKSLIDERS.  431 

grace  does  not  depend  on  the  temper  of  the  body,  but  yet  the  exer- 
cise of  grace  in  religious  duties,  may  be  much  hindered  or  furthered 
that  way.  There  is  more  grace  necessary  to  make  a  godly  man  na- 
turally timorous,  to  speak  a  word  for  Christ,  than  to  make  a  godly 
man  naturally  bold,  to  draw  a  sword  in  his  quarrel.  A  man  natur- 
ally passionate  to  put  up  with  an  injury,  needs  more  grace  than  a 
man  naturally  mild.  The  one  swims  with  the  stream,  and  goes  a 
greater  way  ;  the  other  against,  and  goes  less,  yet  may  be  the  best 
swimmer  of  the  two.  I  take  this  to  be  the  case  of  some  old  profes- 
sors. Perhaps  they  could  have  remembered  sermons,  continued 
long  in  prayer;  heard  not,  prayed  not  with  dry  cheeks;  but  now  it 
is  not  so  with  them.  Truly,  no  wonder;  when  natural  vigour  is 
gone,  moisture  dried  up,  and  memory  failed.  "Was  David  a  coward, 
when  his  "  men  sware  unto  him,  that  he  should  no  more  go  out  with 
them  to  battle,  that  the  light  of  Israel  should  be  quenched."  The 
man  may  have  as  great  love  to  God,  hatred  to  sin,  desire  to  remem- 
ber the  word  as  ever.  But  he  cannot  make  so  good  music  as  he  did; 
not  because  his  skill  is  failed,  but  the  instrument  is  cracked.  So 
with  young  and  old  ministers. 

6.  The  failing  of  more  than  ordinary  assistance,  which  they  some- 
times had.  It  is  usual  for  the  Lord  thus  to  assist  his  people,  when 
they  first  set  out  on  his  way  ;  even  to  dandle  them  a  while  on  his 
knees,  till  they  be  somewhat  grown.  "  Behold,  says  he,  I  will 
allure  her,  and  bring  her  into  the  wilderness,  and  speak  comfortably 
unto  her."  As  men  do  with  their  children  that  are  learning  to 
walk.  Few  young  children  get  broken  brows,  till  they  can  walk 
freely  alone  ;  and  few  young  converts  have  been  such  a  reproach  to 
religion,  as  standing  Christians,  Hos.  xi.  1 — 3.  Why  that  now,  is 
it  because  they  have  more  grace  ?  No ;  but  they  have  more  extra- 
ordinary assistance.  The  load  may  be  lying  more  heavily  on  tiie 
Christian's  back,  than  before,  yet  no  less  strength. 

7.  More  temptations  than  formerly.  One  that  is  but  dull  and 
heavy,  may  walk  more  quickly  than  the  nimblest  man  with  a  clog 
at  his  heels,  the  horse  retains  his  metal,  though  he  goes  not  so 
quickly  carrying  double,  as  he  did  single.  People  ought  not  to  mis- 
take here.  There  are  times  when  the  Lord  leads  into  temptation, 
and  when  he  holds  them  olf. 

Lastly,  Felt  stirring  of  corruption  more  than  before,  Rom.  vii. 
21 — 24.  This  did  not  say  he  was  uuder  a  decay.  Many  a  time 
corruption  stirs  most  when  it  has  least  strength.  When  it  is  nailed 
to  the  cross,  it  cannot  but  stir  and  make  a  noise. 

Let  not  the  godly  then  that  are  exercised  about  their  case,  mis- 
take here.     Remember    their   is   a  growing   downward   as  well  as 


432  GOD  HIDING  HIS  FACE 

upward,  in  humility,  self-denial,  self-loatliiug,  and  serious  depen- 
dence upon  the  Lord,  Hos.  xiv.  5.  People  may  have  less  comfort 
and  less  strength  by  sense  than  before,  and  yet  have  more  grace, 
walking  by  faith.  The  safest  walk  a  Christian  has  in  the  world,  is 
walking  betwixt  his  own  emptiness  and  the  fulness  of  the  Mediator. 
Question  2.  How  these  that  are  under  a  real  decay,  may  get  an 
upstirring  and  recovery  ? 

1.  Labour  to  work  in  your  hearts  a  deep  sense  of  the  evil  of 
this  woeful  temper.  Ask  your  own  souls  in  secret.  Is  not  this 
the  great  God  provoking  sin  ?  Though  a  man  be  guilty  of  many 
sius,  yet  if  he  stir  up  himself  to  take  hold  of  the  Lord,  his  case  is 
then  not  so  bad  as  when  he  thus  neglects  the  remedy.  This  was 
God's  quarrel  with  the  old  world.  Is  not  this  a  common  sin,  and 
shall  I,  with  the  multitude,  conspire  against  the  Lord  ?  John  vi.  67. 
How  weak  has  it  made  me  ?  Has  it  not  been  Delilah's  lap,  in 
which  my  strength  has  been  taken  away,  and  my  two  eyes  put  out  ? 
Is  not  this  the  very  ruin  of  the  foolish  virgins,  that  have  escaped 
the  pollutions  of  the  world  ? 

2.  Exercise  faith  in  Christ  for  quickening  influences.  He  is  the 
fountain  of  life.  Faith  is  the  hand,  stretch  it  out,  though  withered. 
It  is  the  eye,  open  it,  and  with  one  look  to  thyself,  behold  thine 
own  inability  to  recover  thyself.  Many  times  men  get  an  awaken- 
ing, but  fall  asleep  again.  The  reason  is,  they  intend  to  rise,  not 
to  be  raised  ;  and  so  they  are  even  allowed  to  fall  again,  as  people 
do  with  children  that  are  fallen  and  refuse  help.  Faith  is  a 
self-emptying  grace,  it  sets  down  the  man  for  a  cypher  in  his  own 
account  book,  2  Cor.  xii.  IL 

"With  the  other  eye  look  to  Christ  for  quickening  influences.  It 
is  faith  that  raiseth  the  legally  dead  soul.  Col.  ii.  12.  It  also 
raiseth  the  sick  soul  out  of  a  faint,  "  They  looked  to  him  and  were 
lightened."  A  look  to  the  brazen  serpent  healed  the  stung  Israel- 
ites. A  look  at  a  cruciiied  Saviour  will  do  wonders,  Zech.  xii.  10, 
Let  faith  then  look  earnestly  to  the  blood  of  Christ,  it  cleanseth 
from  all  sin,  and  purgeth  the  conscience  from  dead  works,  to  serve 
the  living  God.  Plead  by  faith  the  end  of  Christ's  coming,  that  we 
might  have  life,  and  that  we  might  have  it  more  abundantly.  Let 
faith  make  use  of  the  privilege  of  union  with  Christ,  and  lay  hold 
of  the  promises  suited  to  your  case,  Hos.  xiv.  7  ;  Mai.  iv.  2. 

3.  Make  conscience  of  godly  conference,  like  the  disciples  going 
to  Emmaus.  Conversation  with  godly  Christians  may  do  much 
good.  He  that  walketh  with  wise  men  shall  be  wise.  You  may 
say  these  are  rare.  But  you  that  ever  have  had  any  experience  of 
religion,  tell  your  case  one  to  another ;  and  though  you,  and  your 


FROM  BACKSLIDERS.  433 

eompany  vrere  both  alike  ;  yet  two  cold  flint  stones  struck  together, 
will  send  forth  fire.  "  Iron  sharpeneth  iron,  so  a  man  sharpeneth 
the  countenance  of  his  friend."  "  Two  are  better  than  one,  because 
they  have  a  good  reward  for  their  labour ;  for  if  they  fall,  the  one 
will  lift  up  his  fellow ;  but  wo  to  him  that  is  alone  when  he  falleth, 
for  he  hath  not  another  to  help  him  up."  Experience  has  confirmed 
all  this.     Christ  sent  out  his  disciples  two  and  two. 

4.  Reflect  on  former  experiences.  Deeply  muse  on  the  days 
when  it  was  better  with  you  than  now.  Recall  to  mind  the  parti- 
cular times  when,  and  where,  you  had  something  of  God,  which  you 
have  not  now,  Psal.  xlii.  6.  God  is  saying  to  you,  "  I  am  the  God 
of  Bethel,  where  thou  anoiutedst  the  pillar,  and  where  thou  vowedst 
a  vow  unto  me."  Old  experiences  sometimes  give  a  fresh  smell, 
when  handled  anew,  Gen.  xxxv.  3.  They  are  like  sinces  that  have 
Jong  lain  by  hand,  yet  when  broken  give  a  fragrant  smell.  They 
do  also  remarkably  contribute  to  fill  our  faces  with  blushing  before 
the  Lord.  Every  experience  comes  out  with  that  inscription,  "  0 
generation,  see  ye  the  word  of  the  Lord ;  have  I  been  a  wilderness 
unto  Israel  ?  a  land  of  darkness."  They  contribute  much  to 
strengthen  our  faith,  and  to  give  us  confidence  with  God,  who  is  un- 
changeable. He  that  has  been  often  cured  by  a  physician,  may 
come  back  to  him  with  the  greater  confidence.  Indeed,  where  we 
pay  nothing,  it  is  just  contrary  among  men;  but  not  so  with  God, 
though  our  hearts  in  a  law  fit  may  think  it  so.  But  the  best  return 
you  can  make  to  God,  is  to  come  always  again,  when  any  thing  is 
the  matter  with  you. 

5.  Comply  with  the  Spirit  in  afilicting  dispensations.  A  sinner 
falls  asleep.  Christ  knocks  by  his  word,  he  awakens  not,  God  then 
bringeth  his  rod  to  awaken  him.  Affliction  is  a  special  season  for 
awakening  influences,  IIos.  xii.  14,  15.  Strike  the  iron  while  it  is 
hot  with  the  fire  of  aftliction,  as  it  is  this  day. 

6.  Consider  seriously  the  signs  of  the  times,  in  order  to  be  stirred 
up,  Matth,  xvi.  3.  Look  about  you,  and  behold  how  the  fields  seem 
to  be  ripening  for  a  harvest  of  judgment.  This  was  the  thing  that 
roused  up  Jouah,  i.  4.  Could  we  but  look  over  our  beds,  and  see 
how  the  fire  is  taking  hold  of  the  house,  it  would  make  us  start  to 
our  feet.  Concern  about  the  public,  not  improved  to  the  advantage 
of  our  own  souls,  is  but  little  worth  ;  but  the  right  noticing  of  state 
affairs,  would  make  us  like  Noah,  beat  when  others  are  worst, 
doubling  our  diligence,  and  getting  ourselves  into  a  posture  for  an 
evil  day,  like  Noah  in  the  ark.  But  alas  !  it  is  to  be  feared  the 
evil  overtake  us,  and  find  us,  as  Agag  or  Saul,  among  the  stuff;  or 
Jouah,  or  the  evil  servant,  Matth.  xxiv.  48,  49. 


434  GOD  HIDING  HIS  FACE 

7.  Labour  to  renew  your  repeutance.  Repentance  is  not  only 
the  work  of  a  sinner  at  first  conversion  to  God,  but  ought  to  be 
carried  on  all  the  days  of  our  life  ;  but  in  a  special  manner  ought 
it  to  be  set  about,  after  great  backslidings.  Then  we  are  called  to 
repent,  and  do  the  first  works.  Satisfy  not  yourselves  to  be  affected 
with  your  decay  on  a  Sabbath  day,  and  to  stuff"  your  prayers  with 
dry  inactive  complaints,  but  forthwith  call  in  your  heart  that  has 
too  long  gone  a  roving.  What  wonder  the  ship  dash  on  rocks,  when 
there  is  none  sitting  at  the  helm.  "  Keep  thy  heart  with  all  dili- 
gence, for  out  of  it  are  the  issues  of  life."  Watch  against  vain 
thoughts  and  words.  Watch  the  beginnings  of  a  revival,  and  blow 
up  the  sparks. 

Lastly,  Pray  for  quickening  influences.  It  is  a  great  mercy,  and 
the  chnrch  prays  for  it,  saying,  "  quicken  us,  and  we  will  call  upon 
thy  name."  When  you  come  to  off'er  your  sacrifices,  pray  as  Elijah, 
1  Kings  xviii.  37,  38.  Cry  mightily  for  it.  If  your  hearts  be  dead, 
yet  try  to  rouse  them,  and  force  their  fervency.  A  person  may  be 
so  benumbed  with  cold,  he  can  scarcely  walk  ;  yet  by  going,  he 
becomes  capable  to  run,  and  running  gathers  heat.  The  residue  of 
tlio  Spirit  is  with  the  Lord. 

Question  3.  What  shall  we  do  to  hold  Christ  still  amongst  us. 

1.  Give  him  lodging  in  the  best  room.  He  is  a  King,  and  must 
be  honourably  entertained.  Receive  him  into  your  hearts.  Christ 
is  standing  at  the  door  of  your  hearts,  knocking  for  entrance,  but 
threatening  to  go  away,  if  you  will  not  open.  "  Be  thou  instructed," 
says  he,  "  0  Jerusalem,  lest  my  soul  depart  from  thee,  lest  I  make 
thee  desolate,  a  land  not  inhabited."  He  has  been  long  knocking, 
if  he  go,  the  bodies  of  some  may  be  in  the  grave,  their  souls  in  hell, 
ere  he  return.  The  Jews  had  much  guilt  lying  on  them,  but  the 
rejecting  of  the  bridegroom,  and  marriage  feast,  was  the  great  thing 
that  ruined  them,  Matth.  xxii.  So  Scotland  has  much  guilt,  but  if 
they  continue  to  reject  Christ,  that  will  ruin  them.  Come  then,  old 
and  young,  to  Christ.  "  Turn  ye  to  the  strong  hold,  ye  prisoners  of 
hope."  Tlie  axe  is  laid  to  the  root  of  the  tree.  God  has  his  Son 
in  the  one  hand,  the  axe  in  the  other.  He  is  setting  life  and  death, 
the  blessing  and  the  curse,  before  you, 

2.  Let  all  his  enemies  be  dismissed,  the  Achans  in  the  camp. 
We  cannot  hold  our  lusts  and  Christ  too.  This  is  reasonable.  He 
requires  us  to  part  with  nothing  but  what  they  may  well  spare. 
Personal  reformation  is  necessary  to  hold  Christ  still.  National 
reformation  is  also  necessary,  but  it  must  begin  at  home.  Let  us, 
therefore,  every  one  reform  ourselves  and  our  families,  for  we  are 
all  guilty.  There  is  none  to  cast  a  stone  at  another.  Every  one 
has  a  hand  in  bringing  on  wrath. 


FRO.M  BACKSHDEUS.  435 

3.  Lament  after  the  Lord.  This  brought  him  hack  when  gone, 
1  Sam.  vii.  2 — 6.  The  tears  of  the  Lord's  people,  and  their  sighs 
after  the  Lord,  go  very  far  with  a  tender-hearted  father.  There  are 
many  things  we  cannot  help  ;  raonrn  over  these,  the  sins  of  former, 
and  present  times.  Alas  !  it  is  easy  to  speak  of  these,  by  what  it 
is  to  be  aifected  with  the  dishonour  done  to  God  by  them. 

4.  Give  him  employment.  Christ  riseth  not  to  pack  up  his  wares, 
•while  sinners  are  about  his  hand,  to  buy  them  from  him.  0  !  for 
a  deep  sense  of  need,  and  a  distinct  view  of  our  wants,  that  would 
make  us  be  hanging  on  about  his  hand  ;  and  need  takes  a  sure  hold 
of  Christ,  and  he  cannot  go  from  such,  Mark  vii.  24 — 30.  If  any 
thing  be  the  ruin  of  this  generation,  it  will  be  wearying  of  God. 
And  alas !  that  is  written  on  our  foreheads,  and  therefore  God  is 
like  to  be  weary  of  us,  and  is  saying  this  day,  "  Ah  !  I  will  ease  me 
of  mine  adversaries,  and  avenge  me  of  mine  enemies." 

5.  Improve  his  ordinances  for  the  end  for  which  they  are  appoin- 
ted, and  labour  to  get,  and  keep  up  communion  with  him  in  them. 
God  has  covered  a  table  for  us,  these  many  years.  How  little  the 
ordinances  are  regarded,  is  too  evident.  We  have  lost  our  appetite. 
God  seems  to  be  calling  enemies  to  draw  our  table.  0 !  that  we 
were  wise,  at  length,  to  prize  them  for  their  worth,  before  the  want 
of  them  convince  us  of  their  value.  If  popery  overspread  this  laud 
again,  what  is  now  lightly  valued,  will,  it  is  likely,  be  highly  es- 
teemed. 

6.  Study  unity,  and  beware  of  division ;  2  Cor.  xiii.  11 ;  Psalm 
cxxxiii.  Our  Lord  lays  an  astonishing  weight  on  unity  amongst  his 
followers ;  "  That  they  all  may  be  one,  as  thou  Father  art  in  me, 
and  I  in  thee ;  that  they  also  may  be  one  in  uSc  that  the  world  may 
believe  that  thou  hast  sent  me."  Let  no  difference  of  judgment,  in 
every  point,  break  the  bond  of  peace  and  communion.  Our  divi- 
sions, if  they  grow,  will  make  us  a  prey  to  the  common  enemy,  as 
they  now  make  us  a  laughing  stock  to  them.  A  kingdom  divided 
against  itself  cannot  stand.  If  ever  there  was  a  time  for  professors 
uniting  it  is  now  ;  as  the  beasts  in  the  ark,  when  the  deluge  was 
come  on.  It  is  to  be  feared,  that  the  fire  is  begun,  that  will  melt 
some  to  their  cost,  before  it  be  put  out.  Shall  we  unite  in  sin  ? 
No,  by  no  means.  But  mark  the  apostle's  rule.  "  Let  us,  therefore, 
as  many  as  be  perfect,  be  thus  minded ;  and  if  in  any  thing,  ye  be 
otherwise  minded,  God  shall  reveal  even  this  unto  you.  Neverthe- 
less, whereto  we  have  alr&ady  attained,  let  us  walk  by  the  same 
rule,  let  us  mind  the  same  thing. 

Lastly,  Pray ;  0 !  pray  that  the  Lord  may  not  leave  us.  "  AViiy 
shouldesl  thou  be  as  a  uiua  astonished  ;  as  a  mighty  man  that  cannot 


436  GOD  HIDING  HIS  FACE 

save  ?  Yet  thou,  0  Lord,  art  in  the  midst  of  us,  and  we  are  called 
by  thy  name ;  leave  us  not."  Our  time  is  a  time  of  need,  that  may 
make  them  pray,  that  never  bowed  a  knee  before.  Prayer  has  done 
great  things.  It  has  opened  the  windows  of  heaven,  James  v.  18. 
Prison  doors.  Acts  xvi.  25,  26.  It  hath  held  the  destroying  hand  of 
God,  Exod.  xxii.  10.  Prayer  has  defeated  armies  of  enemies  invading 
the  land,  2  Cbron.  xx :  Isa.  xxxvii.  God  has  all  in  his  own  hand 
and  prayer  engageth  him  on  a  people's  side.  "  Thus  saith  the  Lord, 
the  Holy  One  of  Israel,  and  his  Maker,  ask  me  of  things  to  come ; 
concerning  my  sons,  and  concerning  the  work  of  my  hands,  com- 
mand ye  me."  Fray  for  yourselves,  for  the  land,  and  for  the 
church. 

Question  4.  Whether  we  have  any  ground  to  think  that  Christ 
■will  not  leave  us  altogether  ?  Although  we  have  no  ground  to  think 
that  we  shall  escape  some  judgment ;  yet  that  God  will  not  utterly 
leave  us,  there  are  some  things  that  give  us  ground  to  hope,  ns, 

1.  There  are  some,  however  few,  in  the  land,  that  are  wrestling, 
partly  resolved  never  to  give  consent  to  Christ's  departure,  by  word 
or  deed,  Psalm  cii.  16 — 18.  Moses  must  let  God  alone,  ere  he  cut  off 
Israel,  Exod.  xxii.  His  prayers  did  not  prevail  to  hold  off  a  stroke, 
but  a  final  stroke.  Never  yet  did  God  altogether  frustrate  the 
prayers  of  a  wrestling  remnant.  "  For  the  Lord  will  be  a  refuge 
for  the  oppressed,  a  refuge  in  times  of  trouble.  And  they  that  know 
thy  name,  will  put  their  trust  in  thee  ;  for  thou.  Lord,  hast  not  for- 
saken them  that  seek  thee." 

2.  There  are  some,  whose  work  it  is  to  walk  with  God,  and  to  fear 
the  Lord,  and  endeavouring  to  keep  their  garments  clean ;  and  how- 
ever few  they  be,  God  has  made  large  promises  unto  them,  Isa.  xxxiii. 
15 — 20.  There  are  some,  who  have  Christ's  love  tokens  yet  lying 
by  them,  to  bring  forth  in  a  day  of  distress ;  who  if  the  Lord 
should  seem  to  cast  off  this  covenanted  land,  would  bring  them  forth 
and  say  discern  to  whom  these  belong,  and  we  are  his. 

3.  Our  mother  is  yet  bearing  children  to  her  husband.  "We  dare 
not  say  that  she  is  so  fruitful  as  she  has  been,  yet  she  is  not  become 
barren.  She  is  still  nursing  some,  and  bringing  forth  others.  As 
there  are  some  yet,  who  drew  their  first  breath  in  the  wilderness,  so 
there  is  a  holy  seed  brought  forth  since  the  revolution,  to  be  the  sub- 
stance of  the  land.  And  in  several  corners  of  the  land,  some  young 
ones  are  looking  kindly  to  Christ.  When  the  gardner  is  planting 
new  slips  in  the  garden,  it  is  an  evidence  he  intends  not  to  give  it 
over.  As  Manoah's  wife  said  unto  him,  "  If  the  Lord  were  pleased 
to  kill  us,  he  would  not  have  received  a  burnt-offering  and  a  meat- 
offering at  our  hands,  neither  would  he  have  shewed  us  all  these 
things,  nor  would  at  this  time  have  told  us  such  things  as  these." 


FROJM  BACKSLIDERS.  437 

4.  This  laud  hath  been  married  to  the  Lord  in  covenant.  It 
was  entered  into  a  covenant  with  the  Lord,  early  after  the  reform- 
ation from  popery.  That  work,  indeed,  hath  suffered  many  interrup- 
tions from  enemies,  yet  it  hath  always  got  up  again.  Many  have 
laid  down  their  lives  for  that  cause.  We  had  their  prayers  for  the 
revival  of  that  work,  and  we  can  scarcely  think  we  have  yet  reaped 
the  full  fruit  of  their  blood  and  prayers ;  or  that  God  will  divorce 
a  people  not  willing  to  part  with  him. 

Lastly,  Much  is  said  of  the  glory  of  the  latter  days,  see  Isaiah  Ix. 
The  man  of  sin  will  be  brought  down ;  and  if  the  pope  fall,  it  is 
likely  prelates  will  not  stand.  But  yet,  matters  in  the  churches  of 
Christ,  will  be  according  to  the  pattern  in  the  mount. 

But  after  all,  there  is  like  to  be  a  sad  stroke  in  the  first  place, 
and  that  some  of  our  eyes  shall  be  closed,  and  many  of  this  genera- 
tion taken  out  of  the  way,  before  the  Lord  return,  if  he  were  once 
gone  away,  as  Micah  vii.  11 — 13.  It  is  like,  our  way  to  it  may  be 
through  a  red  sea;  so  that  we  may  say, as  Balaam,  "Alas  !  who  shall 
live  when  God  doth  this?  " 

Question  Last  — But  what  shall  we  do  in  the  meantime,  in  such  a 
reeling  time  as  this  ? 

Answer. — You  that  never  covenanted  with  God,  enter  into  a  per- 
sonal covenant  with  him'  and  let  others  solemnly  renew  their  cov- 
enant, and  make  a  solemn  upgiving  of  themselves  unto  the  Lord. 
"  One  shall  say,  I  am  the  Lord's,  and  another  shall  call  himself  by 
the  name  of  Jacob;  and  another  shall  subscribe  with  his  hand  unto 
the  Lord,  and  surname  himself  by  the  name  of  Israel."  This  is  a 
chariot,  in  which  Christ's  bride  may  ride  safely  to  heaven,  through 
fire  and  water.  And  as  we  are  again  called  to  national  fasting,  so  in 
the  meantime,  let  that  be  your  exercise.  "And  the  land  shall  mourn, 
every  family  apart;  the  family  of  the  house  of  David  apart,  and 
their  wives  apai't;  the  family  of  the  house  of  Nathan  apart,  and 
their  wives  apart.  All  the  families  that  remain,  every  family 
apart,  and  their  wives  apart." 

2.  Lay  your  accounts  with,  and  prepare  for  suft'ering.  Strive, 
like  Paul,  "  to  be  ready,  not  to  he  bound  only,  but  also  to  die,  for 
the  name  of  tiie  Lord  Jesus."  The  market  is  like  to  be  raised,  and 
our  lightness  and  frothiness  like  to  be  daunted.  The  tender 
mercies  of  Popish  idolaters  are  cruel.  Much  blood  is  in  the  skirts 
of  the  whore  and  there  may  be  more. 

3.  Labour  to  get  yourselves  wrapt  up  in  a  promise.  Gen.  xxxii. 
12.  Many  of  God's  children,  have  dined,  supped,  and  dwelt  in  a 
promise,  in  an  evil  day.  It  has  been  instead  of  all,  and  cheered 
tiieir  hearts  under  the  waut  of  all,  Ilab.  iii.  17.  It  has  been  a  com- 
fort to  them  in  distress,  life,  when  half  dead,  Psalm  cxix.  49,  50. 


438  GOVERNEENT  Of   THE  TONGUE. 

A  song  in  the  house  of  their  pilgrimage,  verse  54.  When  the  water 
of  God's  wrath  is  coming  down,  he  is  a  wise  man  that  climbs  to  such  a 
branch  of  the  tree  of  life  growing  on  the  banks,  and  holds  by  it  till 
the  flood  be  over.     Amen. 


December  22,  1705. 
ON  THE  GOVERNMENT  OF  THE  TONGUE, 

SERMON  XXXVII. 

James  iii.  6, 

The  tongue  is  a  Jire,  a  luorld  of  iniquity. 

The  keeping  of  the  tongue  is  one  of  those  duties,  that  entitles  a 
man  to  safety  from  evil  times,  and  therefore  must  now  be  urged  as 
a  seasonable  duty.  "  What  man  is  he  that  desireth  life,  and  loveth 
many  days,  that  he  may  see  good  ?  Keep  thy  tongue  from  evil,  and 
thy  lips  from  speaking  guile."  The  difficulty  of  this  duty  is  such, 
that  James  saith,  "  If  any  man  offend  not  in  word,  the  same  is  a 
perfect  man,  and  able  also  to  bridle  the  whole  body,"  The  wisest 
monarch  could  hardly  govern  a  great  part  of  the  world ;  how  diffi- 
cult then  must  it  be  to  govern  a  world,  and  that  a  world  of  iniquity. 
The  tongue  is  a  world  of  iniquity,  a  heap  of  evils;  as  in  the  world 
many  things  are  contained,  so  in  the  tongue. 

I  shall  endeavour  to  make  some  discovery  of  this  world  of  ini- 
quity. As  it  is  beyond  my  power,  so  it  is  not  my  design  to  make  a 
full  discovery  of  it.  We  must  leave  a  void  for  the  unknown  parts 
of  it.  But  behold  a  few  of  them  :  This  world  of  iniquity  is  divided 
into  two  parts,  undue  silence,  and  sinful  speaking.  These  are  the 
higher  and  lower  parts  of  this  world,  yet  quickly  may  men  travel 
from  the  one  to  the  other.     I  shall  speak  of  these  in  their  order. 

1.  Undue  silence,  when  the  tongue  rests  idle,  when  God  calls  it 
to  work.  Our  tongues  are  our  glory,  and  should  not  be  involved  in 
a  dark  cloud  of  silence,  when  God  calls  them  to  shine  forth. 

1.  Silence  is  unseasonable,  when  sin  rageth  and  roareth.  When 
men  are  dishonouring  God,  it  is  sad  that  our  tongues  should  be 
nailed.  When  men  declare  their  sin,  as  Sodom,  it  is  sad  that  in 
our  mouths  there  should  be  no  reproofs.     "  Thou  shalt  in  any  wise 


GOVERNMENT  OF  THE  TONGUE.  439 

rebuke  thy  neighbour,  and  not  suffer  sin  upon  him."  Our  tongues 
testify  that  we  are  men,  and  they  should  shew  we  are  Christians 
and  in  a  covenant  with  God,  offensive  and  defensive.  "For  the 
zeal  of  thine  house,"  saith  David,  "hath  eaten  me  np:  and  the 
reproaches  of  them  that  reproached  thee,  are  fallen  upon  me."  By 
this  undue  silence,  we  are  injurious  to  God,  in  that  we  do  not  vindi- 
cate his  glory,  bespattered  with  the  sins  of  others.  His  glory,  I  say, 
who  hath  given  us  a  tongue  as  a  banner,  to  be  displayed  because  of 
truth.  To  run  away  here  with  flying  colours,  doubles  the  dishonour 
of  God ;  while  he  is  once  dishonoured  by  the  sinner,  and  again,  by 
the  silent  professor,  Mark  viii.  38. 

This  undue  silence  is  also  injurious  to  our  neighbour.  We  see 
him  pulling  down  the  house  about  his  ears,  and  yet  we  will  not  help 
him ;  selling  his  soul  for  a  trifle,  and  yet  we  do  not  bid  him  rue  his 
bargain.  0  horrid  cruelty  !  to  stand  with  our  tongues  in  silence, 
when  the  devil  often  casteth  our  neighbour  into  the  fire. 

It  is  injurious  likewise,  to  ourselves,  for  thereby  we  adopt  the 
devil's  children  brought  forth  by  others,  and  set  down  their  debts  to 
our  own  account,  Eph.  v.  7 — 11.  Other  men's  sins  that  we  have 
occasioned,  become  ours,  by  silence,  which  gives  consent ;  and  tho 
flame  that  burns  up  their  house,  will  consume  our  own,  if  it  be  not 
quenched  with  a  testimony  against  it.  This  silence  also  leaves 
a  sting  in  our  conscience,  which  remains  inactive  in  the  hearts  of 
some  for  a  while ;  but  when  the  opportunity  of  bearing  testimony 
against  sin  is  gone,  it  bites  dreadfully  the  hearts  of  those,  whose 
consciences  are  not  seared. 

2.  "When  an  opportunity  of  edifying  others  inviteth  us  to  speak, 
"  let  no  corrupt  communication  proceed  out  of  your  mouth  ;  but  that 
which  is  good,  to  the  use  of.  edifying,  that  it  may  minister  grace 
unto  the  hearers."  0  what  iniquity  is  contracted,  by  the  neglect  of 
heavenly  discourse  among  professors.  A  dumb  Christion  is  a  very 
unprofitable  servant.  A  philosopher  seeing  a  man  with  a  fair  face 
and  a  silent  tongue,  bade  him  speak,  that  he  might  see  him.  When 
scholars  or  merchants  meet,  we  know  what  they  are  by  their  dis- 
course ;  and  why  should  not  Christians  also  discover  themselves. 
When  men  of  the  same  nation,  meet  in  foreign  countries,  they 
speak  the  language  of  their  own  country.  I  will  say  but  three 
things  of  this  neglect : 

1.  Dumb  Christians  are  very  unlike  Christ,  whose  ordinary  way 
it  was  to  spiritualize  all  things,  and  turn  the  current  of  the  dis- 
course toward  heaven.  This  we  see  exemplified  in  every  part  of  his 
history. 

2.  Either  there  is  no  religion  at  all,  or  but  very  little,  in  that 


440  GOVEBNMENT  OP  THE  TONGUE. 

heart.  Nearest  the  heart,  nearest  the  mouth.  If  fire  be  upon  the 
hearth,  the  smoke  will  come  out  at  the  chimney.  "  Let  the  word 
of  Christ  dwell  in  you  richly,  in  all  wisdom  ;  teaching  and  admonish- 
ing one  another,  in  psalms,  hymns,  and  spiritual  songs  ;  singing  with 
grace  in  your  hearts,  to  the  Lord." 

3.  They  are  very  useless  sort  of  people  ;  like  the  vine  that  is  fruit- 
less. "Shall  wood  be  taken  thereof,  to  do  any  work?  or  will  men 
take  a  pin  of  it,  to  hang  any  vessel  thereon." 

3.  Silence  is  unseasonable  when  our  wants  are  crying.  These 
should  make  us  cry  to  God,  like  that  woman,  who  cried  to  the 
king  of  Israel,  saying,  "  Help,  my  Lord,  0  King."  0  !  what  a, 
dreadful  thing  is  it,  to  think  that  a  dumb  devil  should  so  possess 
the  hearts  of  many,  who  will  not  call  upon  God.  That  tongue  shall 
be  tormented  in  hell  flames,  that  will  not  now  cry  to  God  by  prayer. 
"  God  will  pour  out  his  fury  upon  the  heathen,  and  upon  the  fami- 
lies that  call  not  upon  his  name."  They  have  tongue  enough  for 
the  world,  that  have  none  for  God  and  their  poor  souls.  The  wicked, 
through  the  pride  of  his  countenance,  will  not  seek  after  God :  God 
is  not  in  all  his  thoughts. 

II.  Sinful  speaking;  when  the  tongue  is  exercised,  but  ill  exer- 
cised ;  and  this  is  a  throng  piece  of  this  world  of  iniquity.  I  may 
divide  it  again  into  two  parts,  one  against  our  duty  to  God.  the 
the  other  against  our  duty  to  man,  where  mind  ourselfis  our  nearest 
neighbour.  Only  there  is  one  part  of  this  world  of  iniquity,  that 
scorns  to  be  bounded  by  eithei  of  these,  and  that  is  talkativeness, 
or  much  speaking  ;  of  which  we  may  say  they  set  their  mouths 
against  the  heavens,  and  their  tongue  walketh  through  the  earth. 
Some  are  ever  talking,  and  are  never  in  their  element,  but  when 
they  are  prattling ;  and  when  once  they  begin,  it  as  difficult  to  stop 
them,  or  get  word  about,  as  to  stop  a  flood  of  water,  and  turn  the 
stream  another  way.  Though  they  speak  little,  yet  long.  Their 
words  clatter  like  a  loose  window  in  wind  ;  whereby,  though  they 
give  vent  to  their  own  pride,  yet  they  grate  the  ears  of  others,  and 
make  them  sit  on  thorns.     I  will  say  but  two  things  of  it. 

1.  It  is  a  sign  of  a  loose  and  frothy  heart,  where  there  is  little  of 
the  fear  of  God.  "Be  not  rash  with  thy  mouth,  and  let  not  thino 
heart  be  hasty  to  utter  any  thing  before  God :  for  God  is  in  heaven, 
and  thou  upon  earth  ;  therefore  let  thy  word's  be  few."  God  hath 
given  us  two  ears,  and  but  one  tongue,  and  that  with  a  twofold 
guard  upon  it.  "  "Wherefore,  my  beloved  brethren,"  says  James, 
"  let  every  man  be  swift  to  hear,  slow  to  speak,  slow  to  wrath." 
"  Wise  men  lay  up  knowledge,  but  the  mouth  of  the  foolish  is  near 
to  destruction." 


GOVERNMENT  OF  THE  TONGUE.  441 

2.  It  is  the  foors  badge.  "  A  fool's  voice  is  known  by  multitude 
of  words."  It  is  the  empty  barrel  that  makes  most  noise.  Such 
persons  from  want  of  acquaintance  with  themselves,  present  a  fool 
to  others,  while  they  think  him  a  wise  man.  They  that  are  given  to 
much  speaking,  seldom  speak  well.  This  made  an  orator  ask  a 
double  fine  of  a  talkative  scholar ;  one  to  learn  him  to  speak  well, 
another  to  teach  him  to  hold  his  peace.  We  should  be  like  the 
virtuous  woman.  She  openeth  her  mouth  with  wisdom.  Her  mouth 
is  not  always  open,  but  duly  shut,  and  discreetely  opened.  Her 
words  are  few,  true,  and  useful.     Now  come  we  to  the 

I.  "Which  is  against  our  duty  to  God.     Here  I  shall  pitch  on, 

1.  Rash  swearing  by  the  name  of  God.  "  Swear  not  at  all,"  says 
our  Saviour.  0  how  is  the  name  of  God  rent  by  black  mouthed 
atheists  in  our  day,  whose  discourse  bewrayeth  them  to  be  hellileans. 
There  is  swearing  also  by  the  creatures,  as  by  our  conscience,  faith, 
truth,  and  the  like.  These,  men  will  rather  minch  and  keep,  than 
fairly  give  up;  hence  a  brood  of  minched  oaths,  as  Mary,  good  faith, 
and  the  like.  And  the  little  faith  that  is  in  the  world,  makes  men 
hang  by  a  hair  of  an  oath,  after  they  have  been  beaten  from  the 
more  gross  expressing  of  it ;  so  by  faith,  ist  urned  to  faith,  and  by  is 
cut  off;  then  it  is  turned  to  faicks,  then  haith  ;  and  they  will  rather 
eat  in  letters,  and  keep  three,  than  lose  that  hellish  ornament  of 
discourse,  hence,  fai,  do  ye  ;  hai,  do  ye.  And  persons  using  these, 
we  will  see  at  our  own  communion  table.  But,  sinners,  what  plea- 
sure or  profit  accompanies  this  sin.  Other  sins  have  something  of 
this  nature;  this  has  nothing.  You  must  then  love  it  for  itself ;  a 
pure  devilish  love  indeed. 

Again,  know  ye  what  a  terrible  one  God  is,  that  you  dare  abuse 
his  name ;  even  that  dreadful  name,  at  which  the  devils  tremble  ; 
that  name,  to  which  ye  shall  bow  at  length,  whether  you  will  or  not. 
Are  you  not  afraid  he  banish  you  to  hell,  while  the  oath  is  in  your 
mouth  ;  where  you  will  get  a  long  eternity  to  blaspheme  his  name. 
And  you  that  dare  not  swear  by  God,  but  by  your  faith  and  the  like, 
how  dare  you  swear  by  them  that  are  no  gods,  Jer.  v.  ?•  This  is 
a  piece  of  idolatry,  and  I  fear  your  God  (I  mean  your  faith),  will 
not  save  you  at  length.  They  have  little  or  nothing  of  faith  in  their 
hearts,  that  have  it  so  often  in  their  mouths. 

Once  more,  God  will  be  avenged  on  you  for  these  things,  if  you 
repent  not,  Jer.  v.  7 — 9.  Thy  swearing  will  damn  thy  soul. 
"  Above  all  things,  my  brethren,"  says  the  apostle  James,  "  swear 
not,  lest  yo  fall  into  condemnation."  0  !  then  swear  no  more,  lest 
God  swear  in  his  wrath,  that  you  shall  not  enter  into  his  rest. 
"  Thou  shalt  not  take  the  name  of  the  Lord  thy  God  in  vain  ;  for 


442  aovERNjrEifT  of  the  tongue. 

the  Lord  will  not  hold  him  guiltless,  that  taketh  his  name  in  vain." 

Objection  1.  God  forbid  that  be  true,  that  God  will  be  so  severe 
for  words. 

Answer.  "Words  are  a  wind  that  will  blow  you  to  hell :  For  by 
thy  words  thou  shalt  be  justified,  and  by  thy  words  thou  shalt  be 
condemned.  Mind  also  the  roll's  dimensions,  Zech.  v.  2,  3.  There 
it  is  contained,  every  one  that  sweareth,  shall  be  cut  off  as  on  that 
side,  according  to  it.  The  roll  exactly  answers  the  dimensions  of 
their  houses,  and  of  the  porch  of  the  temple  where  the  law  was 
taught,  1  Kings  vi.  3.  It  will  make  you  completely  miserable,  the 
execution  exactly  answering  the  threatening. 

Objection  2.  I  never  swear  but  when  angry. 

Answer.  Nor  does  God  ever  damn  a  man  for  swearing,  or  any 
other  sin,  but  when  he  is  angry.  Is  it  God  that  offends  you  ?  "Why 
do  you  set  your  tongues  against  the  heavens,  when  your  fellow  worms 
displease  you  ? 

Objection  3.  I  have  got  a  custom  of  it. 

Answer.  Custom  is  no  defence.  Is  not  thy  sin  then  the  more 
heinous?  If  a  man  has  a  custom  of  reproaching  you,  will  that  jus- 
tify his  conduct?     Whence  is  this  custom,  but  from  your  casting 

off  God's  fear. 

Objection  4.  It  is  a  common  thing. 

Answer.  So  much  the  worse.  The  men  of  the  world  conspire 
against  God  and  dishonour  him,  and  therefore  you  do  so  too  ;  then, 
you  shall  perish  with  the  world.  Sooth  not  yourselves  with  that, 
that  if  it  be  ill  with  you,  it  will  be  ill  with  many  one  ;  for  although 
most  men  should  perish  eternally,  surely  it  will  be  no  comfort  to  go  to 
hell  with  company. 

2.  A  light,  irreverent,  and  profane  using  of  the  name  of  God,  in 
common  talk.  "We  are  not  worthy  to  take  his  name  in  our  mouths, 
much  less  ought  we  to  abuse  it  in  common  talk.  "Would  we  speak 
of  God  with  reverence,  we  should  speak  as  in  his  sight  and  hearing, 
and  this  would  cut  off  the  irreverent  use  of  God's  name  in  any  little 
matter  that  fools  wonder  at,  or  pretend  to  wonder  at,  and  fear,  as 
"  God  bless  us,  save  us,  Christ,  have  a  care  of  us.  Lord  have  mercy 
on  us."  My  brethren,  the  blessing  of  God  is  a  matter  of  great 
moment,  and  you  should  either  seek  it  on  the  bended  knees  of  your 
body,  or,  at  least,  of  your  heart.  But  it  is  not  they  that  are  seri- 
ous with  God  for  these  things,  that  use  to  seek  them  in  this  way. 

It  would  cut  off  also,  the  irreverent  use  of  God's  name  in  obsecra- 
tions ;  "  as  for  God's  sake,  love  of  God,  Christ's  sake,"  &c.  These 
things  may  be  used  in  weighty  matters,  but  in  trifles  they  are 
horrid.     Let  them  be  great  things,  that  concern  your  own  or  your 


GOVEUNMENT  OF  THE  TONGUE. 


443 


neighbour's  life  or  salvation,  that  you  will  seek  for  God's  sake. 
When  you  do  it,  do  it  with  reverence,  as  in  his  sight. 

It  would  likewise  cut  off  irreverence,  in  appeals  to  God  in  mere 
trifles,  as,  "  God  knows,  where  he  is  I  know  not."  The  omniscience 
of  God  is  no  matter  of  moonshine.  The  serious  thoughts  of  it  may 
make  the  best  of  us  to  tremble,  and  the  worst  of  us  not  to  make 
light  of  it. 

It  would  do  this  also  in  prayers  for  the  dead.  Some  cannot 
speak  of  the  dead  without  a  prayer,  that  perhaps  never  prayed  for 
them  while  living.  The  dead  are  in  an  unchangeable  state ;  and  by 
these  things  you  may  bring  down  wrath  on  the  living,  but  no  help 
to  the  dead. 

Many  such  ways  is  God's  name  abused,  Tea,nt  is  common  with 
many  to  be  very  liberal  of  God's  name,  as  "  let  him  do  it  in  God's 
name."  Nay,  many  will  have  God  or  Lord  in  their  discourse,  when 
neither  others  nor  themselves  know  what  they  would  be  at  by  it,  as, 
"  Lord  man  !"  But  I  fear  we  are  not  at  the  bottom  yet  of  the 
dunghill.  Know  ye  God,  that  he  is  the  Lord,  and  holy  is  his 
name. 

3.  Cursing ;  whereby  we  wish  some  horrid  ill  to  ourselves  or 
neighbours  ;  but,  because  it  is  a  kind  of  profane  prayer,  I  speak  of 
it  under  this  head.  This  is  done,  either,  1.  By  expressing  the 
name  of  God,  as  in  these,  "  God  damn,  confound,"  &c.  Oh!  what 
if  God  should  take  these  poor  wretches  at  their  wish,  they  would 
find  that  damnation  is  no  matter  of  sport.  2.  The  name  of  God 
sometimes  is  supposed,  but  the  profane  prayer  is  belched  out,  as,  "  I 
would  ye  may  break  your  neck,"  &c,  in  which  men  call  on  God  to  be 
an  executioner  of  their  wicked  and  passionate  sentences  on  them- 
selves or  others.  3.  Hitherto  I  refer  to  the  invocating  of  the  devil. 
0  !  what  homage  does  the  devil  get  from  many  Christians,  who  are 
found  oftener  praying  to  him  than  to  God,  as,  "Devil  take  me." 
Sometimes  they  change,  and  minch  his  name,  as,  "  foul  fiend,  sorrow 
one,  for  devil  one,"  &c.  These  are  the  Goliahs,  that  boast  and 
curse  themselves  or  others  by  their  God. 

0  !  beware  of  cursing,  James  iii.  9 — 11.  It  is  very  provoking  to 
God,  and  pleasing  to  the  devil,  who  is  also  ready  to  take  you  by 
your  word,  when  he  can  get  leave.  It  is  the  character  of  a  wicked 
man.  "  His  mouth  is  full  of  cursing,  and  deceit,  and  fraud ;  under 
his  tongue  is  mischief  and  vanity."  Cursing  will  bring  a  curse 
upon  you,  if  repentance  prevent  not.  "  As  he  loved  cursing,  so  let 
it  come  to  him ;  as  he  delighted  not  in  blessing,  so  let  it  be  far  from 
him.  As  he  clothed  himself  with  cursing,  like  as  with  his  garment, 
so  let  it  come  into  his  bowels  like  water,  and  like  oil  into  his  bones," 

YOL.  IV.  2  F 


444  GOVERNMENT  OF  THE  TOXGUE, 

4.  Profaning  of  scripture  phrases,  by  jesting  or  scoffing  on  tlie 
scriptures  ;  or  using  tliem  to  express  the  conceptions  of  men's  wanton 
wits,  alluding  to  them  in  common  talk,  and  the  like.  Alas  I  this  is 
much  used  by  the  profane  generation,  who  hold  forth  their  contempt 
of  the  word,  by  these  means.  It  is  knowing  persons  readily,  that 
are  guilty.  This  is  an  affronting  of  God,  whose  sacred  oracles  the 
scriptures  are.  The  heathens  paid  a  profound  respect  to  the  oracles 
of  their  gods.  The  Jews  and  primitive  Christians,  had  a  great 
respect  for  the  scriptures ;  so  have  all  the  godly,  in  all  ages.  If 
men  should  treat  our  letters  to  them  at  this  rate,  how  would  we  take 
it.  Remember  the  Scriptures  are  the  word  by  which  you  shall  be 
judged.  The  man  that  would  burn  his  rights  to  land,  or  like  a 
child,  tear  them  and  dress  babies  with  them,  would  soon  be  denuded 
of  his  estate  ;  so  they  who  thus  treat  the  Bible,  will  soon  be  de- 
nuded of  heaven,  of  which  the  scriptures  are  the  rights. 

5.  Mocking  of  religion  and  seriousness.  There  are  some,  in  whose 
consciences  the  piety  of  others  leaves  a  sting,  and  therefore  they 
endeavour  to  laugh  it  away,  and  mock  at  those  who  are  serious, 
and  reproach  them  for  that  which  is  their  glory.  "  They  that  sit 
in  the  gate,  speak  against  me,"  says  David,  "  and  I  was  the  song 
of  the  drunkards."     To  mockers,  I  would  say, 

Your  sport  is  not  that  of  God's  people.  Let  me  see  an  instance 
in  all  the  Bible,  of  a  mocker  that  was  a  godly  man.  "The  godly 
man  sitteth  not  in  the  seat  of  the  scorner."  And  as  this  practice  of 
mocking  leads  the  way  to  the  sin  against  the  Holy  Ghost,  so  there 
is  scarcely  any  th-ing  except  that  sin,  that  is  so  sure  a  sign  of  a  ruin- 
ous state. 

Again,  you  do  but  make  the  cords  with  which  you  shall  be  bound 
under  the  wrath  of  God  for  ever.  "  Now,  therefore,  be  not  mockers, 
lest  yonr  bands  be  made  strong."  If  ever  you  get  repentance,  and 
be  saved,  you  must  be  saved  in  that  way  you  mock  now.  Either 
you  must  be  like  them  you  mock,  or  perish  for  ever :  "  For  without 
holiness  no  man  shall  see  the  Lord." 

Objection.  It  is  but  hypocrisy  that  we  mock. 
Answer.  But  that  is  a  horrid  untruth.  If  it  be  so,  why  do  you 
not  imitate  those  you  mock,  so  far  as  they  do  well  ?  Why  do  you 
not  shew  as  ranch  distaste  of  the  ways  of  the  openly  wicked?  But 
how  come  you  to  judge  men's  hearts,  when  their  outward  actions 
appear  good?  Nay,  let  us  entreat  you  to  try  religion,  and  be  not 
as  these,  who  speak  evil  of  the  things  they  know  not,  but  what  tliey 
know  naturally,  as  brute  beasts,  in  those  things  they  corrupt  them- 
selves. I  would  give  you  such  advice  as  was  given  to  the  Athenians, 
that  they  should  be  sure  that  Piiilip  was  dead,  before  they  expressed 


GOVEUKjrEXT  OF  THE  TOUTOUE.  445 

joy  for  his  ileatli.  Bo  sure  that  there  is  no  reality  in  religion, 
before  you  mock  at  it. 

6.  Reasoning  against  religion,  and  defending  sinfnl  opinions  and 
practices.  This  is  very  frequent  with  men  who  love  carnal  liberty,  and 
so  endeavour  to  shelter  sinful  practices,  under  the  cloak  of  reason  ; 
yea,  and  the  Scriptures  too,  by  which  they  bring  God  himself  to  be 
a  patron  to  their  wickedness."  But  the  curse  is  denounced  against 
these.  "Woe  unto  them  that  call  evil  good,  and  good  evil;  that 
put  darkness  for  light,  and  light  for  darkness ;  that  put  bitter  for 
sweet,  and  sweet  for  bitter. 

Lastly,  Murmuring  and  complaining.  Proud  hearts  make  ns  fret 
at  the  dispensations  of  providence.  This  sets  the  tongue  on  fire, 
and  hence  some  are  ever  complaining,  as  if  their  tongues  had  been 
given  them  for  no  other  end,  but  to  accuse  God.  Read  Jude  14,  15, 
16.  It  is  a  base  tongue  that  will  proclaim  our  crosses,  and  bury  our 
mercies,  though  the  last  ai'e  far  more  numerous  than  the  former. 

II.  Against  our  duty  to  man,  I  shall  here  specify  these  follow- 
ing things, 

1.  Idle  speaking.  That  is,  words  spoken  to  no  good  purpose, 
tending  neither  to  the  glory  of  God,  nor  the  good  of  ourselves  or 
others,  either  in  spiritual  or  temporal  things.  This  is  condemned. 
"  But  I  say  unto  you,"  said  Jesus,  "  that  every  idle  word  that'  men 
shall  speak,  they  shall  give  account  thereof,  in  the  day  of  judg- 
ment." It  may  be  comprehended  under  that  foolish  talking  which 
is  not  convenient ;  rash,  roving,  and  impertinent  discourse,  which 
doth  no  good  to  the  hearers,  but  bewrays  the  folly  of  the  speaker. 
It  will  not  be  long  ere  our  speech  be  laid,  so  that  it  is  sad  to  w;iste 
our  little  breath  so  idly.  We  have  enough  besides,  to  fill  our 
accounts,  though  we  wanted  that.  A  gracious  soul  will  beware  of 
idle  words,  as  of  vain  thoughts. 

2.  A  trade  of  jesting.  Paul  says,  "Neither  filthiness,  nor  foolish 
talking,  nor  jesting,  which  are  not  convenient."  It  is  not  unlaw- 
ful to  pass  an  innocent  jest,  to  produce  a  moderate  recreation. 
But  if  a  jest  be  allowed  to  be  sauce  to  our  conversation,  yet  it 
is  impious  to  make  it  the  meat.  For  a  man  to  make  every  word 
a  jest,  is  fitter  for  a  stage  than  Christian  gravity.  And  seldoin,  if 
ever,  is  it  so  managed,  but  it  is  offensive  both  to  God  and  man  ;  but 
some  will  rather  lose  their  friend  than  their  jest. 

3.  Lying ;  of  which  there  are  four  sorts  :  1.  Pernicious.  2.  Ofli- 
cious.  3.  The  sporting  lie.  4.  The  rash  lie  ;  when  men  through 
inadvertency,  and  customary  looseness,  tell  an  untruth  ;  as  when 
tidings  were  brought  to  David,  saying,  Absalom  hath  slain  all  the 
king's  sons,  and  there  is  not  one  of  them  left.     This  is  so  common, 

2  F  2 


446  GOVRRVMBNT  OF  THE  TONGUE. 

that  we  may  say  trutli  hath  fallen  in  the  streets.  Few  so  tender,  as 
to  avoid  making  a  lie.  Consider  God  is  a  God  of  truth,  and  there- 
fore it  is  most  contrary  to  his  nature,  and  the  devil  is  the  father  of 
lies.  It  is  a  hadge  of  the  old  man.  "  Lie  not  one  to  another,  see- 
ing ye  have  put  off  the  old  man."  The  godly  are  children  that  will 
not  lie.  A  lying  tongue  is  an  abomination  to  the  Lord,  and  lies 
will  lodge  the  soul  with  the  devil  for  ever.  All  liars  shall  have 
their  part  in  the  lake  which  burneth  with  fire  and  brimstone.  Say 
not  it  is  only  to  do  good  to  others,  for  we  must  not  speak  wickedly 
for  God.  Some  lie  to  keep  others  from  sin,  but  it  is  an  excess  of 
charity  for  a  man  to  damn  his  own  soul,  to  save  another's.  If  it  is 
to  make  sport,  surely  that  grieves  the  Spirit  of  God,  and  is  indeed 
sport  to  the  devil.  Or,  if  you  say  you  know  no  better,  remember 
God  has  given  you  a  heart  to  think  before  you  speak,  and  before 
you  speak  you  should  be  sure. 

4.  Uncharitable  speaking  of  truth,  to  the  wounding  of  the  repu- 
tation of  others.  It  is  not  enough,  that  what  ill  we  speak  of  others 
be  true,  but  the  speaking  of  it  must  bring  a  greater,  than  the  dis- 
advantage the  party  gets  by  it.  This  brought  the  curse  on  Ham 
and  his  posterity,  Gen.  ix.  22.  And  we  should  imitate  Shem  and 
Japheth,  with  respect  to  the  faults  of  others.  This  uncharitable 
speaking  is  readily  the  effect  of  pride,  while  others  are  cast  down, 
that  we  may  rise  on  their  ruins;  or  of  envy  which,  like  the  flies, 
pass  over  the  sound  parts,  and  feed  on  the  sores  in  the  body.  It  is 
most  contrary  to  charity,  which  covers  the  multitude  of  sins.  Truth 
may  come  from  a  malicious  heart,  as  in  Doeg's  case,  1  Sam.  xxii.  8, 
9  This  does  not  stop  at  the  real  faults  of  others,  but  oftentimes 
breaks  out  to  the  natural  defects  of  others,  or  to  that  which  is  really 
their  affliction  ;  in  which  that  holds  true,  he  that  despiseth  the  poor, 
reproacheth  his  Maker. 

5.  Slandering  or  backbiting.  Of  this,  three  sorts  of  persons  are 
guilty  :  1.  He  that  raiseth  a  false  report  of  his  neighbour,  Exod. 
xxiii.  1.  Here  is  a  true  son  of  the  devil,  with  malice  and  lying  in 
conjunction.  2.  He  who  readily  reports  it,  though  he  knows  it  to 
be  false,  as  readily  receives,  though  he  is  not  sure  it  is  true.  3.  He 
that  spreads  it.  This  is  a  very  common  sin.  Tale  bearers  and 
whisperers  are  found  every  where,  whose  tongues  are  swords  to  stab 
the  reputation  of  others. 

Ye  do  the  devil's  work,  who  is  the  accuser  of  the  brethren.  Ye 
are  his  special  errand-bearers,  and  no  doubt,  will  get  such  wages  as 
he  has  to  give.  Consider  that  sad  passage,  Psal.  1.  20,  22.  "  There- 
fore, speak  not  evil  one  of  another,  brethren.  He  that  speaketh 
evil  of  his  brother,  and  judgeth  his  brother,  speaketh  evil  of  the  law, 
and  judgeth  the  law." 


OOVEilNMENT  OF  THE  TONGUE.  447 

6.  Censoriousness,  which  construes  the  words  and  actions  of  others, 
always  to  the  worse.     Many  are  of  such  a  waspish  nature,  that  they 
can  suck  poison  out  of  the  sweetest  flowers,  and  have  an  evil  tale  of 
every  person,  Matth,  vii.  1,  2. 

7.  Flattery  ;  a  base  kind  of  sin,  by  which  men  strive  to  humour 
others,  at  the  loss  of  truth,  to  the  great  hu  t  of  the  party  flattered. 
Of  such  a  person  it  may  be  said,  "  The  words  of  his  mouth  were 
smoother  than  butter,  but  war  was  in  his  heart;  his  words  were 
softer  than  oil,  yet  were  they  drawn  swords."  But  this  is  remark- 
able, that  these  that  will  speak  fair  before  a  man's  face,  will  not 
stand  to  wound  him  behind  his  back.  The  Lord  shall  cut  off  all 
flattering  lips,  and  the  tongue  that  speaketh  proud  things. 

8.  Boasting;  by  which  men  talk  big  of  themselves,  or  others  con- 
cerned in  them;  trumpeting  out  their  own  praise,  a  sin  which  is 
odious  in  the  sight  of  every  man.  Some  boast  themselves  of  what 
they  have  not.  "  Whoso  boasteth  himself  of  a  false  gift,  is  like 
clouds  and  wind  without  rain."  Others,  of  what  they  have,  setting 
it  in  a  magnifying  glass.     These  are  the  black  roll,  2  Tim.  iii.  2. 

Lastly,  Obscenity.  "  Let  no  corrupt  communication  proceed  out 
of  your  mouth."  This  argues  a  rotten  heart,  and  is  ready  to  infect 
others.  "  Evil  communications  corrupt  good  manners."  0  !  how 
like  the  devil,  that  unclean  Spirit,  do  they  look,  who  cannot  hold 
within  the  bounds  of  common  modesty.  These  are  some  of  the  most 
common  parts  of  the  world  of  iniquity. 

Infeuence  1.  If  the  tongue  be  a  world  of  iniquity,  what  must 
the  heart  be  ;  for  out  of  the  abundance  of  the  heart,  the  mouth 
speaketh.     You  may  know  the  lion  by  his  paw. 

2.  See  wherein  true  greatness  consists  :  to  govern  a  world  of 
iniquity.     Here  is  work  for  you.     To  help  you. 

1.  Labour  to  get  the  heart  purified  from  these  sins  and  lusts  that 
it  vents  by  the  tongue.  Quench  the  fire  on  the  hearth,  and  the 
smoke  will  cease. 

2.  Get  the  fear  of  God  impressed  on  your  hearts,  and  walk  as 
under  the  eye  of  an  all-seeing  God.  This  will  be  a  bridle  and  a 
spur  to  tile  tongue,  for  it  needs  both.     Amen. 


448  DUTY  OF  PKAYING  TOK  THE 

January  12,  1707. 
ON  THE  DUTY  OF  PRAYING  FOR  THE  PEACE  OF  THE  CHURCH. 

SERMON  XXXYIII. 

Psalm  cxxii.  6, 
Pray  for  the  peace  of  Jemsaiem. 

Tills  psalm  seems  to  have  been  penned  when  the  ark  had  been  newly 
brought  to  Jerusalem,  and  set  up  in  the  tabernacle  which  David 
pitched  for  it.  Now  it  was  in  a  fixed  place,  after  it  bad  been  in 
several  places.  See  2  Sam.  vi.  7  ;  1  Chron.  xv.  17-  In  the  text  we 
have,  1.  A  duty;  namely,  prayer,  2.  A  particular  part  of  the 
matter  of  prayer ;  "  the  piece  of  Jerusalem."  This  city  was  now 
ill  peace,  and  the  continuance  of  il  is  to  be  desired.  In  Jerusalem 
now  were  the  tabernacle  and  the  ark,  and  the  solemn  assemblies  for 
worship.     In  this  respect  it  was  a  type  of  the  church. 

Doctrine.  It  is  the  duty  of  all  church  members,  to  pray  for  the 
poace  of  the  church.     Let  us, 

I.  Shew  what  this  peace  is. 

II.  Give  reasons  why  we  should  pray  for  it. 

I.  We  are  to  shew  what  this  peace  is.  It  consists  in  these 
two  : 

1.  The  removal  of  evils  from  the  church  of  Christ.  Many  are 
the  evils  to  which  the  church  is  liable,  while  here  ;  and  therefore  she 
as  a  city,  must  have  her  walls,  bulwarks,  soldiers,  and  watchmen. 
It  is  Jerusalem  above,  only,  which  is  past  hazard.  "  The  gates  of 
it  shall  not  be  shut  at  all  by  day,  for  there  shall  be  no  night  there." 

2.  The  enjoyment  of  positive  blessings.  Her  peace  includes  her 
prosperity  ;  that  she  be  in  a  prosperous  condition,  not  standing  still, 
not  going  backward.  "  Peace  be  within  thy  walls,  and  prosperity 
Avithin  thy  palaces."  All  kingdoms  and  states  have  their  revolu- 
tions. One  while  they  prosper,  another  they  are  in  adversity.  Je- 
rusalem's prosperity  is  spiritual.  It  is  produced  by  the  light  of  God's 
countenance,  and  by  the  communications  of  his  grace.  When 
under  these,  the  children  of  Zion  grow  in  knowledge,  holiness,  and 
comfort,  and  enjoy  all  their  privileges  undisturbed;  then  Jerusa- 
lem hath  peace. 

II. We  arc  to  give  reasons  why  we  are  to  pray  for  the  peace  of 
Jerusalem. 


PEACE  OF  TUE  CHURCH.  449 

1.  Because  God  commands  us  not  to  hold  our  peace,  till  we  see 
her  peace.  This  command  is  express  in  the  text.  Says  God  by 
Isaiah,  "  I  have  set  watchmen  upon  thy  walls,  0  Jerusalem,  which 
shall  never  hold  their  peace,  day  nor  night;  ye  that  make  mention 
ot  the  Lord,  keep  not  silence ;  and  give  him  no  rest,  till  he  estab- 
lish, and  till  he  make  Jerusalem  a  praise  in  the  earth."  Therefore 
the  prophet  himself,  is  peremptory  as  to  this  duty.  "  For  Zion's 
sake  will  I  not  hold  my  peace,  and  for  Jerusalem's  sake  I  will  not 
rest,  until  the  righteousness  thereof  go  forth  as  brightness,  and  the 
salvation  thereof,  as  a  lamp  that  burneth." 

2.  Because  of  her  relation  to  the  God  of  peace.  This  should  not 
only  engage  us  to  pray,  but  may  encourage  us  to  hope  for  her  peace 
at  length.  The  church  is  confederate  with  God,  in  a  covenant  of 
peace.  She  is  the  house  of  God.  The  city  of  the  great  King.  The 
object  of  his  special  providence.  "  Behold  he  that  keepeth  Israel, 
shall  neither  slumber  nor  sleep." 

3.  Because  of  her  relation  to  the  Prince  of  Peace.  The  church  is 
Clirist's  spouse,  his  body,  she  is  built  on  him,  she  is  his  special 
charge  from  the  Father;  aud  is  it  nut  reasonable  that  the  children 
be  concerned  for  the  peace  of  their  mother,  and  the  members  for  the 
body  to  which  they  belong.  The  nearer  relation  any  of  us  have  to 
Christ,  the  more  should  be  our  concern  for  the  peace  of  Jerusalem. 

4.  Because  her  peace  is  purchased  at  a  dear  rate,  even  the  blood 
of  the  Mediator  of  peace.  "  We  are  made  nigh  by  the  blood  of 
Christ,  for  he  is  our  peace."  Not  only  her  inward,  but  her  outward 
peace.  Will  not  we  pour  out  a  prayer  for  that,  for  which  Christ 
poured  out  his  blood  ? 

5.  Because  she  hath  many  enemies  without,  ready  on  all  occasions 
to  disturb  her  peace.  The  enemy  watcheth  at  her  gates,  ready  on 
all  occasions  to  break  in.  The  devil  has  an  army  of  wicked  men, 
constantly  in  arms  and  pay,  to  fight  against  the  church.  The  war 
was  begun  by  Cain,  but  the  sword  is  never  yet  put  up,  noi  will  be 
to  the  end  of  the  world.  As  one  race  of  wicked  men  goes  off 
another  takes  up  their  weapons,  and  stand  in  their  place. 

6.  Because  she  has  disturbers  of  her  peace  within.  There  are 
hypocrites  in  her  bosom,  ready  to  betray  the  spouse,  as  Judas  did 
his  Lord.  There  are  corruptions  in  tho  best ;  so  that  Jerusalem  is 
ofteu  made  to  suffer  by  earthquakes,  by  reason  of  what  is  inclosed 
in  her  own  bowels. 

Use  1.  Of  reproof  to  those  who  are  not  concerned  for  the  peace 
of  Jerusalem.  Some  pray  not  at  all.  Some  are  longing  to  see 
Jerusalem  in  confusion,  laid  in  heaps,  and  her  ways  filled  with 
mourning.     They  are  so  far  from  praying  for  the  church,  that  thty 


450  DUTY  OF  PRAYING  FOE  THE 

would  fain  make  a  prey  of  her,  Isa.  lix.  15.  And  seeing  they  are 
not  acquaint  with  praying,  they  will  drink  her  confusion,  of  which 
they  have  more  skill  than  of  praying.  But  if  that  would  have  done 
it,  we  would  have  all  been  confounded  long  since.  Some  pray,  but 
Oh  !  they  are  not  concerned  for  the  church  of  Christ  that  is  in 
hazard  at  this  day.     Consider  that  this  neglect, 

1.  Is  a  sign  that  you  have  little  or  no  love  to  Jerusalem,  when 
you  see  her  hazard,  and  pray  not  for  her  peace.  When  the  dumb 
son  of  Croesus,  saw  his  father  like  to  be  killed,  his  affection  to  his 
father  loosed  his  tongue,  and  made  him  cry  out,  that  they  might 
spare  his  father. 

2.  That  you  have  no  interest  in  Jerusalem,  in  Christ,  and  ordi- 
nances. Were  your  stock  in  a  ship  at  sea,  how  would  you  be  con- 
cerned for  her  coming  safe  into  the  harbour.  They  that  have  a 
lamb  in  the  flock,  love  all  the  rest  the  better.  Interest  makes  a 
man  concerned.  The  Christian's  all  is  at  stake,  when  Jerusalem  is 
in  hazard. 

3.  You  have  little  or  nothing  of  the  Spirit  of  Christ  in  you,  and 
they  that  have  not  his  Spirit,  are  none  of  his.  The  chief  concern  of 
the  Lord  Jesus,  next  to  the  glory  of  his  Father,  was  the  good  of  his 
church,  John  xvii.  He  that  toucheth  them,  toucheth  the  apple  of 
his  eye.  * 

Use  2-  Of  exhortation.  I  exhort  you  all  to  pray  for  the  peace  of 
our  Jerusalem  at  this  day.  The  dispensations  of  providence  call 
you  to  it.     Four  things  are  implied  in  the  exhortation. 

1.  Be  sensible  of  the  danger  of  Jerusalem.  There  is  no  prayer  in 
heaven,  because  no  danger  there  ;  and  there  will  be  no  prayers  on 
earth,  where  people  see  no  danger.  If  any  think  that  the  church  of 
Clirist  is  not  in  danger  this  day,  I  will  more  suspect  their  honesty 
tlian  admire  their  wisdom.  What  sins  that  ever  brought  judgments 
on  a  church,  that  are  not  to  be  found  among  us  ?  Leaving  our  first 
love,  lukewarmness,  men's  abhorring  the  offering  of  the  Lord,  dread- 
ful profanity,  and  the  like.     Matters  are  at  such  a  pass,  that  we  are 

.  like  the  children  of  Israel  at  the  Red  Sea ;  go  we  forward  or  back- 
ward, there  is  danger,  if  God  do  not  wonderfully  prevent  it. 

2.  Highly  prize  the  peace  of  Jerusalem.  If  people  do  not  value 
it,  they  will  not  go  to  God  in  earnest  with  it.  We  should  have 
such  a  concern  for  it  as  would  swallow  up  our  concern  for  other 
things  ;  for  if  God  depart  from  us,  nothing  will  make  up  that  loss. 
All  the  wealth  of  the  Indies,  is  nothing  in  comparison  of  the  worth 
of  the  gospel,  or  the  pui-ity  of  it. 

3.  Pray  for  it.  Wrestle  with  God  in  prayer  about  it.  Give  it  a 
large  share  in  your  prayers  ;  nay,  make  it  your  very  chief  business, 
when  you  go  to  God.     Pray, 


PEACE  OF  THE  CUURCU.  451 

1.  For  our  Jerusalem's  peace  with  God;  the  chnrch's  peace  with 
heaven  God  has  a  controversy  with  Scotland.  He  is  angry  with  our 
mother,  because  of  her  whoredoms.  The  evidence  of  it  is  our  spirit- 
ual poverty,  occasioned  by  a  decay  of  trade  with  heaven,  whence  all 
the  wealth  of  the  people  of  God  comes.  This  says  our  peace  with 
heaven  is  interrupted,  and  the  reasons  of  it  are  palpable,  even  the 
sins  of  former  and  present  times,  covenant  breaking,  unfruitfulness 
under  the  gospel. 

0  !  that  the  nations  of  Scotland  and  England  were  so  wise,  as  to 
lay  to  heart  the  avowed  breach  which  they  made  with  God,  and 
that  they  are  still  making.  And  0  that  an  uniting  with  hea- 
ven were  set  on  foot,  by  repentance  and  reformation,  and  then  they 
might  think  to  unite  among  themselves  on  lasting  foundations. 

2.  Pray  for  the  peace  of  the  protectors  of  Jerusalem.  For  the 
queen,  under  the  shadow  of  whose  authority,  we  have  the  peaceable 
enjoyment  of  gospel  ordinances  in  purity  and  plenty,  Isa.  xlix.  23. 
When  the  Lord  took  away  our  nursing  father,  he  raised  up  a  nurs- 
ing mother,  and  disappointed  the  hopes  of  enemies.  Pray  for  the 
parliament,  their  peace  with  God  and  among  themselves,  in  the 
Lord,  1  Tim.  ii.  1.  2.  They  have  need  of  prayers,  especially  while 
such  great  things  are  before  them,  as  now  are  in  agitation. 

3.  Pray  for  the  peace  of  Jerusalem  with  her  protectors ;  the 
peace  of  the  church  with  the  state,  Psal.  Ixxii.  3.  Though  we  have 
our  church  privileges  from  Christ,  we  have  from  them  the  peaceable 
enjoyment  of  them.  And  discord  betwixt  nursing  fathers  and  the 
child,  is  a  very  dismal  thing. 

■i.  Pray  for  the  peace  of  the  temple  in  Jerusalem  ;  for  the  peaceable 
enjoyment  of  gospel  ordinances.  They  are  sad  days,  when  the  Lord's 
people  are  in  such  a  case  as  to  fear  the  mingling  of  their  blood  with 
their  sacrifices.  It  is  a  promise,  though  not  absolute,  "  Though  the 
Lord  give  you  the  bread  of  adversity,  and  the  water  of  affliction, 
yet  shall  not  thy  teachers  be  removed  into  a  corner  any  more,  but 
thine  eyes  shall  see  thy  teachers."  If  people  have  other  troubles, 
yet  it  is  a  great  matter,  when  they  have  the  comfort  of  ordinances 
left  them.  Coarse  fare  may  go  better  down,  when  people  are  per- 
mitted to  drink  at  the  wells  of  salvation. 

5.  Pray  for  the  peace  of  the  waters  of  the  sanctuary  in  Jerusalem  ; 
the  purity  of  doctrine  and  worship,  discipline  and  government. 
When  the  fountains  are  troubled  with  error  and  doctrine,  idolatry 
or  superstition  in  worship,  corruption  in  discipline  and  government, 
it  is  a  dangerous  thing.  David  notes  it  as  a  great  blessing,  that  he 
■was  led  by  the  still  waters,  win  re  the  sheep  need  not  be  afraid  to 
drink. 


452  DUTY  OK  PRAYING  FOR  THE,  &C. 

6.  Pray  for  Jerusalem's  peace  with  herself.  Pray  that  the  watch- 
men, the  ministers,  may  be  in  peace  among  themselves.  The  dark- 
ness of  the  (lay,  and  of  the  duty  of  the  day,  creates  hazard  here. 
Bless  God  for  what  peace  and  harmony  yet  appears,  and  pray 
against  division  among  them,  and  amongst  professors,  the  daughters 
of  Jerusalem.  0  I  it  is  sad,  when  it  comes  to  that,  I  am  of  Paul, 
and  I  am  of  Apollos.  Division  eats  out  the  life  of  religion.  When 
the  ship  splits,  the  passengers  must  needs  be  in  hazard.  Christ 
j>rays  for  their  union,  John  xvii.  21  ;  and  the  devil  labours  to  break 
them,  that  he  may  destroy  the  church. 

Lastly,  Pray  for  the  peace  of  the  nation  in  which  Jerusalem  is. 
Pray  for  the  peace  of  Scotland;  for  if  judgments  come  upon  the 
laud,  they  usually  begin  at  the  house  of  God.  I  will  pray  you  to 
comply  with  this. 

1.  For  your  brethren  and  companions'  sake.  Look  about  you, 
and  as  many  men  and  women  as  you  see,  you  have  so  many  motives. 
Some  of  them  have  got  grace,  and  they  must  cleave  to  Christ,  what- 
ever be  the  hazard.  But  0  !  it  is  a  sad  sight  to  see  Jerusalem  laid 
on  heaps,  Psalm  Ixxix.  1 — 3.  Some  are  but  weak,  and  will  faint 
under  trials,  and  wound  their  consciences.  Others  have  no  grace, 
and  how  will  they  get  it,  if  the  doors  of  the  sanctuary  be  shut.  Look 
on  your  little  ones.  Pity  posterity.  What  will  become  of  them,  if 
the  gospel  go  away  ?  What  came  of  our  forefathers,  who  were  born 
and  brought  up  under  popery  ?  What  were  they  obliged  to  their 
fathers  that  sinned  away  the  gospel  ?  What  would  have  come  of 
ourselves  if  God  had  not  overturned  popery  and  prelacy  in  this 
land. 

2.  For  Zion's  sake,  Isa.  Ixii.  1.  For  the  house  of  God's  sake, 
Psalm  cxxii.  9.  Look  upon  Zion,  the  city  of  our  solemnities.  See 
how  your  hearts  could  bear  to  take  your  leave  of  it.  Ordinances 
are  the  glory  of  the  land.  What  a  dismal  business  would  it  be  to 
see  our  sermons  and  communions  gone ;  darkness  instead  of  divine 
light;  the  children  fainting,  and  none  to  break  the  bread  of  life  to 
them.  This  should  prevail  with  us  all,  for  there  is  none  of  us  but 
are  accessary  to  the  disturbing  of  the  peace  of  Jerusalem.  This 
made  it  lie  near  old  Eli's  heart.  If  you  had  a  friend  in  hazard  of 
death,  would  you  not  be  concerned  for  him  ;  especially,  if  you  had 
a  hand  in  casting  him  into  the  disease. 

Lastly,  For  God's  sake,  and  for  Christ's  sake,  Psalm  cxxii.  4,  5. 
How  can  you  think  that  God  should  be  robbed  of  the  honour  of  the 
assemblies  of  his  people ;  that  Christ's  throne  in  the  land  should  be 
overturned,  and  that  enemies  should  blaspheme  his  name. 

4.  It  imports  the  use  of  moans,  in  order  to  attain  the  peace  of 


DUTY  AND  ADVANTAGE,  &C.  453 

Jtiusaleni.  We  must  not  only  pray  for  it,  but  also  live  for  it. 
The  means  then  are  repentauce  and  reformation,  Lam.  iii.  40,  41. 
Many  projects  have  been,  and  are  set  on  foot  to  bring  this  land  out 
of  the  low  state  into  which  it  is  brought.  But  alas  !  the  main  point 
of  all  is  little  regarded,  and  that  is  repentance  and  reformation. 
Till  this  be,  it  will  be  but  building  on  sandy  foundations,  unless  the 
Lord  mind  to  give  us  meat  to  our  lusts,  but  leanness  to  our  souls, 
which  God  forbid. 

Let  us  resolve  then  with  the  zealous  Israelites  in  Babylon,  "  If  I 
forget  thee,  0  Jerusalem,  let  my  right  hand  forget  her  cunning.  If 
1  do  not  remember  thee,  let  my  tongue  cleave  to  the  roof  of  my 
mouth,  if  I  prefer  not  Jerusaleaj  above  my  chief  joy."     Ameu. 


March  16,  1707- 
DUTY   AND   ADVANTAGE   Ob    SOLEMN    MEDITATION. 

SERMON  XXXIX. 

Genesis  xxiv.  26, 
And  Isaac  went  out  to  meditate  in  the  field  at  the  even  tide. 

Man  is  a  social  creature,  and  made  for  society,  to  converse  with  God, 
with  himself,  and  with  others.  But  as  he  is  a  bad  householder 
who  is  always  abroad,  niver  to  be  found  at  home  ;  so  he  is  a  bad 
Christian  who  is  always  at  home,  who  is  not  sometimes  retiring 
from  the  world  and  conversing  with  God  and  himself  in  the  duty  of 
meditation,  by  which  the  soul  is  set  to  its  most  proper  work.  We 
have  in  the  text, 

1.  The  duty  to  which  Isaac  set  himself;  meditation.  It  would 
seem  that  it  was  his  ordinary  practice.  He  had  a  good  father,  and 
a  good  education,  and  the  grace  of  God  in  his  heart ;  all  which  con- 
tributed to  this  practice.  The  word  signifies  to  pray  as  well  as  to 
meditate  ;  and  they  mingle  well  together,  for  meditation  is  to  be 
mixed  with  prayer. 

2.  The  time  which  he  chose  for  this  purpose.  This  in  general, 
was  when  the  weighty  affair  of  his  marriage,  was  in  hand.  Unlike 
to  many  who,  at  such  a  time,  arc  least  serious.  But  surely  he  knew 
liow  much  of  his  happiness  depended  upon  a  right  match,  and  this 


454  DUTY   AND  ADVANTAGE 

sent  him  to  God.  In  particular,  at  the  even  tide  ;  in  the  after- 
noon, sometime  toward  night ;  when,  perhaps,  his  ordinary  business 
was  over. 

3.  The  place  ;  the  fiold,  where  he  might  be  alone,  free  of  the  din 
and  noise  of  the  family ;  for  the  heart  of  man  is  easily  drawn  off, 
therefore  he  goes  alone.  Thus,  also,  with  the  refreshing  of  his  body, 
he  joined  the  working  of  the  heart.  In  the  field,  he  had  the  broad 
view  of  creation  laid  before  him,  to  help  his  meditation,  and  to 
excite  all  his  powers  of  devotion.  Psalm  viii.  3,  4. 

4.  A  dispensation  of  providence  he  met  with,  when  at  this  duty. 
*'  Ue  saw,  and  behold  the  camels  were  coming."  Some  observe 
here,  how  ready  some  worldly  business  is  to  call  us  away,  when  we 
are  at  our  duty.  It  is  true,  however,  I  think  this  was  a  sigTi  of 
God's  accepting  of  his  duty;  and  0  how  sweet  is  it,  when  a  mercy 
coming  to  us,  finds  us  at  our  duly.  I  think  we  may  say  to  it  then, 
as  Jacob  to  Esau,  at  their  meeting,  "  I  have  seen  thy  face,  as  though 
I  had  seen  the  face  of  God." 

Doctrine.  Meditation  is  a  necessary  duty,  to  the  performance  of 
which,  people  should  set  themselves ;  seriously  making  choice  of 
such  times  aud  places  for  it,  as  the  duty  may  be  gone  about  with 
the  best  advantage. 

1  shall  first  explain  the  duty,  and  then  apply  the  subject. 

I.  I  am  to  shew  what  meditation  is.  It  is  twofold.  1.  Occa- 
sional ;  which  is  a  meditation  of  some  spiritual  thing  arising  from 
such  occasions  as  ofi'er  themselves,  and  is  of  such  a  nature  as  ejacn- 
latory  prayer,  a  short  occasional  thought. 

II.  Fixed  and  solemn  ;  when  the  soul  deliberately  sets  itself  to 
think  iipon  some  spiritual  thing,  in  order  to  the  bettering  of  the 
heart  thereby.  This  is  the  meditation  in  the  text,  in  which  three 
things  are  to  be  considered. 

1.  A  choice  of  some  spiritual  subject  to  meditate  upon.  Many 
meditate  upon  sin  with  delight,  and  so  ride  post  to  hell  with  little 
din.  "He  deviseth  mischief  upon  his  bed,  he  setteth  himself  in  a 
way  that  is  not  good  :  he  abhorreth  not  evil."  Others  employ  their 
thoughts,  only  in  the  meditation  of  things  of  the  world.  But  he 
that  would  meditate  aright,  must  choose  some  spiritual  subject  to 
think  upon.  And  it  is  needful  we  should  select  some  one,  and  not 
abide  in  generals,  Psalm  Ixiii.  6;  Song  i.  4. 

2.  A  calling  in  of  the  heart  from  all  other  objects.  The  mind  of 
man  is  too  narrow  to  be  taken  up  to  purpose  about  many  things  at 
once,  especially  with  thoughts  of  divers  kinds  ;  therefore  prays 
David,  "  Unite  my  heart  to  fear  thy  name." 


OP  SOLEMN  MEDITATIOIT.  455 

3.  Einploying  the  lieart  on  the  spiritual  subject  so  chosen,  to 
think  upon  it,  study  it,  and  seriously  consider  of  it;  to  lay  it  before 
our  understandings,  so  as  to  move  our  affections,  and  improve  our 
hearts. 

II.  Let  us  apply  the  subject.  I  exhort  you  to  make  conscience 
of  this  duty  of  meditation,  and  particularly  of  fixed  meditation  ; 
setting  yourselves  as  solemnly  to  it,  as  to  prayer  and  other  duties. 

Motive  1.  Consider  it  is  the  command  of  God.  "Commune  with 
your  own  heart  upou  your  bed."  "  And  meditate  upon  these  things." 
says  Paul  to  Timothy.  Why  do  you  perform  other  duties,  but 
because  God  commands  you  ?  Well,  he  that  bids  you  do  other 
duties,  bids  you  do  this  also.  Remember  "  you  shall  not  be  ashamed, 
when  you  have  respect  to  all  his  commandments."  If  the  command 
of  God  hath  due  weight  with  you  in  one  case,  it  will  have  weight  in 
all,  James  ii.  10,  11. 

2.  It  is  made  desirable,  by  the  testimony  which  it  hath  from  the 
practice  of  the  people  of  God.  Thus  was  Isaac  employed.  Thus 
David,  Psalm  Ixiii.  6.  Yea,  David  puts  it  in  the  description  of  the 
godly  man,  "that  he  meditates  on  the  law  of  God  day  and  night." 

3.  It  is  of  notable  use  for  a  Christian's  improvement.  It  much 
increases  knowledge  :  "  I  have  more  understanding,"  says  David, 
"  than  all  my  teachers,  for  thy  testimonies  are  my  meditation."  It 
is  the  way  to  comfort  under  affliction.  When  David's  enemies 
plotted  against  him,  "thy  servant,"  says  he,  "did  meditate  in  thy 
statutes."  It  makes  a  Christian  tender  in  his  way.  "  I  will  medi- 
tate on  thy  precepts,  and  have  respect  unto  thy  ways."  It  gives  a 
Christian  a  sweet  relish  of  the  goodness  of  God,  Psalm  Ixiii.  5,  6. 

Now  I  would  lay  before  you  some  directions,  in  order  to  your 
right  managing  of  this  work. 

1.  Habituate  yourself  to  occasional  meditation,  to  take  up  a  holy 
meditation  on  things  that  you  see  or  hear,  turning  them  to  a  spi- 
ritual use.  This  was  the  practice  of  Christ,  to  spiritualize  worldly 
things.  None  have  fairer  occasion  of  it  than  husbandmen,  whose 
calling  is  so  much  spiritualized  in  the  Scripture. 

2.  If  your  occasions  will  permit,  and  sometimes  they  will,  retire 
by  yourselves  for  solemn  meditation,  so  as  you  may  go  about  it 
without  disturbance.  But  sometimes  a  man  may  have  good  occasion 
for  meditation,  even  while  at  his  employment  in  the  world. 

3.  Make  choice  of  some  spiritual  matter  to  meditate  upon.  Fix 
this  in  the  first  place,  that  so  you  may  not  be  rambling  from  one 
thing  to  another.  There  is  great  variety  of  subjects:  God  ;  Christ ; 
his  sufferings;  the  love  of  God;  death;  judgment;  heaven,  hell; 
eternity;  the  graces  of  the  Spirit,  faith,  love,  hope;  the  word  and 
works  of  God. 


456  DUTY   AND   ADVANTAGE 

4.  Eegin  wiili  a  short  arid  earnest  prayer ;  either  ejaculatory,  or 
more  solemn.  l*ray  as  David  :  "  0  Lord,  open  mine  eyes,  that  I 
raay  see  wondrous  things  out  of  thy  law." 

5.  When  you  enter  on  the  duty,  be  resolute  to  go  through  with 
it,  for  Satan  will  strive  to  divert  you ;  and  that  you  may  not  want 
matter,  take  these  few  rules :  When  you  enter  upon  a  subject  of 
meditation,  if  it  will  bear  it,  observe, 

1.  To  begin  with  a  description  of  the  thing,  what  it  is;  as  what 
God,  faith,  love  is  ;  or  whatever  be  the  matter  of  meditation. 

2.  If  there  be  sundry  kinds  of  these,  observe  them  ;  as  faith 
feigned,  or  unfeigned. 

3.  Consider  the  causes, 

4.  The  effects. 

5.  Its  properties. 

6.  Its  opposites. 

7.  What  it  is  compared  to. 

Lastly,  Scriptural  testimonies  concerning  it. 

6,  To  think  and  enlarge  on  the  subject,  as  that  your  heart  may 
be  affected  and  touched  with  it.  Here  I  would  advise  you:  1.  To 
get  suitable  affection  and  relish  of  it  in  your  souls.  2.  To  bewail 
the  want  of  that  relish.  3.  To  desire  that,  of  the  want  of  which 
you  complain.  4.  Confess  your  inability  to  do  for  yourself  what 
yon  wish  to  have.  5.  Petition  for  the  Lord's  working  it  in  you. 
Lastly,  Believe  the  Lord  will  grant  your  request. 

7.  Conclude  all  with  thankfulness  to  the  Lord,  and  committing 
yourself  to  him. 

Lastly,  Take  all  outward  helps  you  can,  for  right  managing  of  the 
duty;  and  because  the  sight  of  the  eyes  may  divert  you,  if  need  be 
go  into  the  dark,  or  shut  your  eyes.  And  if  you  cannot  get  your 
heart  kept,  while  your  tongue  is  not  employed,  stand  not  to  speak 
your  meditation  any  way,  so  as  you  be  not  overheard.  The  Hebrew 
word  in  the  test,  signifies  both  meditation  and  speaking. 

To  make  this  morfi  plain  to  you,  I  will  give  you  a  short  medita- 
tion on  death,  enlarged  according  to  these  rules. 

Lord,  gather  my  thoughts,  that  I  may  profitably  meditate  on  this, 
which  will  gather  me  and  all  mankind  into  the  grave  at  length  ;  and 
open  mine  eyes  to  see  it,  before  I  feel  it.  0  my  soul  !  what  is  death  ? 
It  is  a  dissolution  of  soul  and  body ;  a  parting  of  these  two  loving 
companions,  which  God  did  unite  in  the  womb.  Consider,  0  ray 
soul !  there  is  a  twofold  death,  violent  and  natural ;  and  which  of 
them  may  be  my  lot  I  do  not  know.  Each  of  these  may  be  done 
several  ways.  Either  this  life  of  mine  must  go  as  a  candle  that 
is  blown  out,  or  else  will  waste  with  diseases  or  age   till   like  a 


OF  SOLEMN  MEDITATION.  457 

candle,  it  die  out  of  itself,  when  the  wick  and  grease  are  consumed. 
Cut  0  I  what  are  the  causes  of  death  ?  Why,  the  cause  is  in  myself. 
I  bear  about  the  seeds  of  so  many  diseases,  as  will  cut  me  off  at 
length,  but  the  first  cause  of  all  is  sin,  that  brought  death  into  the 
world  with  it.  Seeing  I  have  sinned,  I  must  die.  And  now,  my 
soul,  cast  thine  eyes  on  the  effects  of  death.  How  does  the  ap- 
proach of  this  grim  messenger  fill  all  the  body  with  pains,  make  the 
eyes  stare,  and  the  face  grow  pale  ;  and  when  he  gives  his  stroke, 
the  breath  goes,  the  soul  departs,  the  body  is  left  a  lump  of  lifeless 
clay.  While  friends  fall  a  weeping  that  the  dead  is  gone,  and  they 
will  see  him  no  more  in  the  land  of  the  living.  But  what  are  the 
properties  of  death  ?  Why,  it  is  certain,  it  is  uncertain.  It  is  ter- 
rible in  its  most  pleasant  shape.  It  is  a  way  we  can  but  once  go ; 
if  it  once  go  wrorig,  we  cannot  put  it  right.  0  my  soul !  what  are 
the  opposites  of  it  ?  Even  life  which  we  now  enjoy  here,  which  is 
sweet ;  and  eternal  life  in  glory,  where  we  shall  be  liable  to  no 
more  death.  And  why  should  I  forget  the  death  of  Christ  that 
unstings  it,  according  to  that,  IIos.  xiii.  14.  What  is  death  like  ? 
To  what  may  I  cor  pare  it?  It  is  like  the  blowing  out  or  wasting 
of  a  candle.  Like  the  Egyptian  jailor,  that  opened  the  prison 
door  to  the  baker  and  butler,  restoring  the  one  to  the  court,  and 
sending  the  other  to  the  gibbet.  What  say  the  Scriptures  ?  They 
tell  me,  "  it  is  appointed  unto  all  men  once  to  die." 

Now,  0  my  soul !  how  terrible  is  death  ?  What  a  king  of  terrors 
is  this  ?  What  need  of  preparation  for  it  ?  But  alas !  how  little 
is  my  hard  heart  touched  with  the  consideration  of  this  ?  How  little 
am  I  affected  with  this,  which  I  must  feel?  0  that  I  were  suitably 
affected  with  it  ?  that  I  were  wise,  to  consider  my  latter  end  !  But 
alas !  I  cannot  command  this  of  myself,  I  cannot  have  one  serious 
thought  of  it !  I  may  as  well  dig  through  a  rock  with  my  nails,  as 
think  to  affect  mine  own  heart  with  it.  But,  0  Lord,  to  thee  I  make 
my  request.  Do  thou  give  me  a  heart  duly  touched  with  it.  Thou 
hast  prepared  death  for  me  ;  prepare  me  for  it.  And  I  desire  to 
believe  thou  wilt  do  it,  for  thou  workest  all  our  works  in  us.  Bles- 
sed be  the  Lord,  that  has  opened  a  way,  how  we  may  bo  delivered 
of  its  sting.  And  so,  into  thy  hands,  I  commit  my  spirit.  Bo  my 
God  and  guide  even  unto  death.     Amen. 


458  FAKEW£LL  SERMON. 

June  15,  1707. 
FAREWELL  SERMON.    AT  SIMPRIN. 

SERMOM  XL. 

John  vii.  37, 

I71  the  last  day,  that  great  day  of  the  feast,  Jesus  stood  and  cned,  say- 
ing, if  any  man  thirst,  let  him  come  unto  me,  and  drink. 

Our  Lord  having  kept  the  feast  with  the  Jews  for  several  days,  and 
having  about  the  midst  of  it  begun  to  teach  in  the  temple,  and  being 
now  to  part,  gives  them  the  parting  word  in  the  text.  In  which 
there  is, 

1.  A  large  offer  of  himself,  which  he  makes  to  them.  He  had 
dealt  with  them  before,  but  he  is  resolved  they  shall  have  a  large 
offer  before  they  part.  It  was  a  custom  among  the  Jews,  on  the  last 
day  of  the  feast,  to  draw  water  joyfully,  out  of  the  fountain  of 
Siloara  ;  therefore  Christ  offers  himself  to  them,  under  the  notion  of 
a  fountain  of  water,  inviting  all  thirsty  sinners  to  come  to  him  ;  that 
is,  believe  on  him,  as  he  himself  interprets  it,  ver.  38.  To  drink, 
that  is,  to  make  use  of  him  for  the  supply  of  their  needs.  The  offer 
is  large,  none  are  excluded.  If  any  man  thirst,  be  but  sensible  of 
wants  and  desire  supply,  here  he  may  have  it. 

2.  The  time  when  he  makes  this  offer.  More  generally,  it  was  at 
the  feast,  namely,  of  tabernacles,  John  vii.  2.  This  was  one  of  these 
three  feasts,  at  which  all  the  males  of  the  Jews  were  to  appear  be- 
fore the  Lord,  at  Jerusalem,  Dent.  xvi.  16.  Of  this  feast  we  have  an 
account,  Levit.  xxiii.  33.  More  particularly,  the  last  day  of  the 
feast ;  that  is,  the  eight  day,  which  was  the  great  day  ;  that  is,  a 
solemn  day,  which  was  to  be  observed  s(%  a  sabbath,  and  on  it 
there  was  to  be  a  holy  convocation.  It  was  a  joyful  feast  and 
lasted  long,  yet  it  has  a  last  day.  The  people  had  been  together 
seven  days,  and  now,  on  the  eighth,  they  were  to  part;  and  wliile 
this  feast  is  upon  the  close,  Christ  invites  them  to  a  more  lasting 
feast,  where  the  table  should  never  be  drawn,  even  to  feed  on  him- 
self.    And  so  the  best  wine  comes  last. 

3.  The  way  in  which  he  delivered  this  discourse.  It  was  stand- 
ing, though  he  often  sat  while  he  taught.  But  at  this  time,  he  stood 
and  cried.  The  reason  may  be,  because  of  the  multitude  of  hearers, 
but  especially  to  denote  his  earnestness  with  them  at  parting.     The 


FAREWELL  SERMOy.  459 

matter  was  so  important,  and  it  was  so  that  in  that  manner,  they 
were  not  soon  to  hear  more. 

Doctrine.  If  any  man  be  under  soul  thirst,  Christ  bids  him  wel- 
come to  come  to  him  and  drink.  Or  needy  sinners  are  welcome  to 
Christ,  to  get  supply  of  all  their  wants.     Here  we  shall  shew, 

I.  Who  they  are,  that  are  invited. 

IT.  To  what  tliey  are  invited. 

III.  I  shall  confirm  the  point.     We  are  then, 

I.  To  shew  who  they  are,  that  are  invited.  It  is  any  man  that 
thirsts.  There  is  a  bodily  and  a  soul  thirst.  It  is  the  spiritual 
thirst  that  is  here  meant.     In  all  thirst  there  are  two  things  : 

1.  Sense  of  want.  The  thirsty  soul  wants  something,  and  knows 
that  it  wants.  Every  man  is  sensible  that  he  is  not  self-sufficient, 
that  he  labours  under  some  defects,  and  must  be  supplied  from  some 
quarter  or  another;  but  it  is  not  every  one  that  knows  to  what 
quarter  to  go  for  supply. 

2.  Desire  of  supply.  The  thirsty  soul  craves  what  may  supply 
its  needs,  as  the  hungry  infant  seeks  for  the  breast.  The  soul  of 
man  is  ever  desiring,  till  it  meet  with  that  which  doth  fully  satisfy 
its  desires.     The  object  of  this  thirsting  is  twofold  : 

1.  The  end  where  the  soul  may  rest,  and  that  is  happiness. 
This  every  man  thirsts  after.  All  desire  to  be  happy.  A  man  can- 
not cease  to  desire  to  be  a  happy  man  ;  though,  without  grace, 
he  cannot  go  the  right  way  to  obtain  it. 

2.  Tlie  means  leading  to  this  end.  This  follows  upon  the  other. 
The  man  that  desires  to  be  at  the  journey's  end,  desires  also  to  go 
in  the  way,  though  perhaps  he  mistake  it.  He  that  desires  refresh- 
ment, desires  also  to  drink,  though  he  may  by  ignorance  take  a  cup 
of  poison,  instead  of  proper  drink. 

Now  there  is  a  twofold  thirsting  desire  of  these  things  : 
1,  One  that  is  natural,  and  therefore  is  common  to  all  men.  It 
is  as  natural  for  a  man  to  desire  to  be  happy  and  to  get  satisfaction, 
as  it  is  for  him  to  breathe.  And  upon  supposition  that  the  man 
lives  under  the  gospel,  and  learns  that  Christ  and  grace  are  the 
means  of  happiness,  he  will  thirst  after  these  in  a  natural  wav, 
as  a  bridge  to  carry  him  over  God's  wrath,  John  vi.  34;  Matth. 
XXV  ;  Num.  xxiii.  10.  But  it  is  tlie  plague  of  all  natural  men,  they 
see  not  the  excellency  of  Christ  and  grace,  nor  the  emptiness  of  the 
creatures ;  hence  they  practically  mistake  the  way  to  happiness, 
and  thirst  after  it,  seeking  it  in  the  world  and  their  lusts,  cryin^, 
"  Who  will  shew  us  any  good  ?"  Having  lost  God,  they  are  like  a 
blind  thirsty  man,  still  drawing  at  empty  cisterns.  Here  is  a  thirst, 
but  not  that  which  has  the  promise  of  being  satisfied,  Matth.  v.  6. 
Vol.  IV,  2  o 


460  FARKWELL  SERMON. 

Yet  to  thera  that  liave  it,  this  invitation  is  directed :  "  Ho  !  every 
one  that  thirsteth,  corae  ye  to  the  waters."  Terse  2.  "  "Wherefore 
do  ye  spend  money,  for  that  which  is  not  bread ;  and  your  labour, 
for  that  which  satisfieth  not.  Hearken  diligently  unto  me,  and  eat 
ye  that  which  is  good ;  and  let  your  soul  delight  itself  in  fatness." 
This  sets  them  right,  and  lets  thera  see  a  pure  fountain. 

2.  One  that  is  supernatural,  and  therefore  is  only  given  to  the 
elect  of  God,  whose  hearts  the  hand  of  God  hath  touched.  Thus 
touched,  they  are  made  to  cry,  "  0  God,  thou  art  my  God,  early 
will  I  seek  thee :  ray  soul  thirsteth  for  thee,  my  flesh  longeth  for 
thee,  in  a  dry  and  thirsty  land,  where  no  water  is."  Thus,  these 
that  cared  as  little  for  Christ  as  others  do,  now  long  for  him.  There 
is  a  flame  of  desires  raised  in  their  souls,  after  the  Lord,  by  the 
bearas  of  the  Sun  of  Righteousness  shining  into  their  souls.  So  that 
thirst  is  for  hira,  for  hiraself ;  for  what  he  is,  as  well  as  for  what  he 
has.  "  Unto  them  which  believe,  he  is  precious."  The  sight  of  his 
excellency  has  ravished  the  heart.  The  soul  sees  a  beauty  in  him. 
This  desire  cannot  be  satisfied  without  him.  "  My  soul  thirsteth  for 
God,  for  the  living  God :  when  shall  I  come  and  appear  before  God." 
Clothe  a  thirsty  man  with  scarlet,  and  fill  his  pockets  with  gold, 
yet  nothing  but  drink  can  satisfy  hira.  The  soul  cannot  take  up  its 
rest  short  of  Christ.  The  carrion  of  the  creatures  cannot  satisfy  it. 
To  such,  none  but  Christ  will  suflSce.  The  soul  is  resolute  for  hira. 
Like  Jacob,  "  they  will  not  let  him  go,  till  he  bless  thera ;"  and 
like  the  woraan  of  Canaan  they  will  not  take  a  denial,  till  he  grant 
their  desire.  Therefore  their  earnestness  makes  them  break  through 
all  difficulties,  like  David's  worthies  to  the  well  of  Bethlehem.  Their 
desire,  indeed,  is  humble  before  hira  ;  "  for  to  the  hungry  soul,  every 
bitter  thing  is  sweet."  A  hungry  man  is  not  nice.  A  crumb  that 
falls  from  the  table,  will  be  great  in  their  eyes.  The  prodigal  is 
willing  to  be  placed  among  his  Father's  hired  servants.  We 
proceed, 

II.  To  shew  to  what  they  are  invited. 

1.  They  are  invited  to  corae  to  Christ.  "  If  any  man  thirst," 
says  Jesus,  "  let  him  come  to  rae."  This  raeans  to  believe  on  him, 
to  take  him  and  close  with  him,  ver.  33.  Unbelief  is  a  departing 
from  the  living  God,  so  faith  is  a  coming  back  again  to  God  in 
Christ.  In  all  coming  there  are  two  terms.  Look  how  we  departed 
from  the  Lord.  "  It  was  by  forsaking  him,  the  fountain  of  living 
waters,  and  hewing  out  for  yourselves  cisterns,  broken  cisterns  that 
can  hold  no  water."  Hence  we  may  describe  faith  to  be  the  coming 
of  the  soul  from  the  broken  cisterns  of  created  things  to  a  full 
Christ,  Song  iv.  8.     All  things  in  the  world  are  empty  and  unsatis- 


FAREWELL  SERArOff.  461 

factory  to  the  soul.  Wo  must  go  out  of  ourselves,  our  sins,  our 
lawful  and  unlawful  comforts,  and  take  up  our  rest  in  Christ,  receiv- 
ing him  for  and  instead  of  all.  This  is  that  act  of  faith  which 
unites  us  to  Christ. 

2.  We  are  invited  to  come  to  him  and  drink.  "  Let  him  come  to 
me,"  says  Jesus,  "  and  drink.''^  Our  thirsty  souls  are  desired  to 
drink  here.  This  spiritual  drinking  is  also  an  act  of  faith,  and  de- 
notes the  soul's  really  and  actually  making  use  of  Christ,  for  the 
supply  of  its  wants.     This  points  at  three  things  in  Christ. 

1.  The  fulness  that  is  in  him  for  needy  sinners.  He  is  the  well 
of  living  water,  that  is  ever  full  and  overfloweth ;  who  is  able  to 
fill  up  all  the  wants  of  all  that  will  come  to  him.  "For  it  hath 
pleased  the  Father  that  in  him  should  all  fulness  dwell."  "  Yea, 
in  hira  dwelleth  all  the  fulness  of  the  Godhead  bodily."  There  is 
in  him  a  fulness  of  merit.  His  blood  cleanseth  from  all  sin.  There  is 
a  fulness  of  guilt  on  all  of  us.  Our  hearts,  lips,  and  lives  are  all  full 
of  sin.  Tears,  prayers  and  rivers  of  oil,  cannot  wipe  it  away ;  but 
in  Christ  there  is  a  fulness  of  merit,  to  take  it  off  completely. 
What  Avill  not  the  blood  of  Grod  do  ?  "  Here  is  a  fountain  open  for 
sin  and  for  uncleanness."  The  rock  is  struck,  behold  the  water 
gusheth  out.  There  is  a  sea  to  overwhelm  it.  "  Thou  wilt  cast  all 
their  sins  into  the  depths  of  the  sea."  And  this  redeems  a  for- 
feited heaven.  There  is  also  a  fulness  of  Spirit  in  him,  to  take 
away  the  stain  and  power  of  sin  in  us,"  "  The  Spirit  is  given  to 
him  without  measure."  Who  are  so  dead,  but  the  Spirit  of  life  can 
quicken  them  ?  who  so  defiled,  but  the  Spirit  of  glory  resting  on 
them  will  cleanse,  Isa.  xli.  17.  There  is  abundance  of  spirit  in 
our  head,  to  actuate  all  the  members.  There  is,  moreover,  a  fulness 
of  grace  in  him,  John  i.  16.  He  is  the  fountain  and  storehouse  of 
all  grace,  where  there  is  no  lack.  From  him  all  the  saints  on  earth, 
and  all  in  heaven,  have  derived  their  graces :  And  yet  there  is 
bread  enough. 

2.  It  hath  respect  to  the  suitableness  of  Christ  to  the  case  of  sin- 
ners ;  as  drink  is  suited  to  the  case  of  a  thirsty  man.  There  is  in 
him  a  suitable  remedy  for  every  disorder.  Here  the  dead  soul  may 
have  life  ;  the  blind,  light ;  the  naked,  a  garment;  the  poor,  riches  ; 
the  scorched  soul,  refreshment ;  the  pained,  ease;  the  weak,  strength. 
Whatever  be  their  case  in  life,  death,  time,  eternity,  prosperity  or 
adversity,  there  is  every  thing  suitable  in  him. 

3  It  points  at  his  satisfactoriness.  "  Whosoever,"  saith  Christ, 
"drinketh  of  the  water  that  I  shall  give  him,  shall  never  tinrst : 
but  the  water  that  I  shall  give  him,  shall  be  in  him  a  well  of  water 
springing  up  to  everlasting  life."     Tlie  hungry  infant  set  upon  the 

2o2 


462  FAREWELL  SEKMOX. 

breast,  rests  there,  and  desires  no  more.  The  soul  that  is  thirsty, 
if  it  will  come  hither,  may  suck  at  the  breasts  of  divine  all-suffici- 
ency in  Christ.  It  is  enough,  said  Jacob,  Joseph  liveth,  Heb.  iii. 
17,  18;  Phil.  iv.  18.  When  all  is  gone,  all  the  cisterns  rnu  dry, 
here  is  enough.  Christ  himself  is  able  to  satisfy  the  soul :  "  "Whom 
have  in  I  heaven  but  thee,  and  there  is  none  on  earth  that  I  desire 
besides  thee."  Now  this  is  spiritual  drinking,  or  actual  use-making 
of  Christ  for  supply  of  our  wants,  implies  these  three  things. 

1.  The  soul's  going  out  of  itself,  as  to  the  supply  of  that  par- 
ticular want  or  wants,  it  labours  under,  renouncing  all  confidence 
in  itself,  or  any  creature,  Jer.  xvii.  5.  To  be  sensible  of  our  own 
emptiness  and  inability  to  help  ourselves,  is  a  great  step  to  supply. 

2.  The  soul's  going  out  in  a  desire  after  supply  from  the  Lord 
Jesus,  upou  his  invitation.  "  Open,"  says  he,  "  thy  mouth  wide,  and 
I  will  fill  it."  Tl.is  is  the  «ouTs  placing  its  mouth  at  the  fountain  ; 
and  the  conduit  pipe  to  the  well  of  living  water.  Many  a  time  the 
poor  soul  is  like  Hagar,  in  a  very  hopeless  case,  till  the  Lord  lets 
them  see  this  well,  to  which  they  go  and  drink  for  their  refreshment. 

3.  Believing  application  of  Christ  to  the  soul,  and  of  that  fulness 
thnt  is  in  him,  to  our  particular  cases.  Though  the  thirsty  man  gape 
for  water,  and  lie  down  at  the  fountain,  if  he  take  not  a  draught  of 
the  water,  he  will  not  be  refreshed.  Our  clothes  will  not  cover 
us,  unless  we  put  them  on  ;  nor  fire  warm  us,  usless  we  approach  it. 
This  consists  in  three  things  : 

1.  In  catching  hold  of  the  promise  suited  to  their  case.  The  soul 
must  take  hold  of  the  promise,  though  it  be  with  a  trembling  hand. 
Gen.  xxxii.  10.  The  promises  are  the  staves,  with  which  the  travel- 
ler to  Zion  supports  himself  I  confess  the  soul  will  sometimes  be 
disputing  itself  out  of  the  promise.  They  cannot  see  it  to  be  theirs. 
But  when  they  begin  to  sink,  they  will  even  catch  hold  of  it  again, 
at  all  adventures. 

2.  In  venturing  their  case  upon  the  promise  and  proposed  supply. 
So  Peter  ventured  on  Christ  for  support,  and  so  set  his  foot  on  the 
water.  Is  the  soul  thirsting  for  pardon  or  strength,  then  the  soul 
is  ventured  on  the  blood  of  Christ,  and  on  the  grace  of  Christ,  which 
is  promised  to  be  sufficient  for  them. 

3.  Confidence  of  Christ's  answering  their  necessities,  for  he  hath 
said,  "  All  things,  whatsoever  ye  shall  ask  in  prayer,  believing,  ye 
shall  receive."  This  confidence  is  stronger  or  weaker,  according  to 
the  measure  of  faith.  They  that  expect  nothing,  can  get  nothing. 
We  must  ask  in  faith,  nothing  wavering.  As  Peter's  confidence 
failed,  he  sank.  He  was  not  drowned,  because  he  had  so7ne  faith  ; 
but  almost  drowned,  because  he  had  but  little  faith.     Now, 

III.  To  confirm  this  point,  I  will  only  lay  before  you : 


FARKWELL  SERMOX.  463 

1.  That  you  have  his  word  for  your  welcome.  "  Him  that  coraeth 
to  me,  I  will  in  no  wise  cast  out,"  Rev.  iii.  20.  It  is  the  word  of 
the  living  God,  you  may  venture  on  it.  It  is  a  tried  word.  All  the 
saints  in  glory,  and  on  earth,  have  tried  it,  and  it  never  failed  one 
of  them.  Turn  over  your  Bibles,  look  the  history  of  past  times,  who 
ever  died  at  his  door.  Will  you  go  where  others  have  gone  before 
you,  and  succeeded.  If  you  perish,  you  perish  ;  but  you  will  be  tlie 
first,  for  none  perish  that  trust  in  him. 

2.  You  have  his  oath  for  it.  "  As  I  live,  saith  the  Lord  God,  I 
have  no  pleasure  in  the  death  of  the  wicked,  but  that  the  wicked 
turn  from  his  way  and  live  ;  turn  ye,  turn  ye  from  your  evil  ways  ; 
for  why  will  ye  die,  0  house  of  Israel  ?"  If  you  will  not  venture 
welcome  upon  his  word,  yet  you  may  do  it  upon  his  oath.  0 
wonderful  condescension  !  that  he  should  so  far  yield  to  loose  the 
objections  of  unbelief,  and  to  take  away  the  strife  between  himself 
and  unbelieving  wretches. 

Use.  And  now  in  this  last  day  of  the  feast,  I  do  in  the  name  of 
the  Lord,  invite  you  all,  old  and  young,  to  come  to  Christ  and  drink, 
and  fetch  supply  for  your  souls.  We  make  this  proclamation  this 
once  more,  from  this  place.  "  If  any  man  thirst,  let  him  come  to 
Jesus  and  drink." 

Motive  1.  The  supply  of  the  needs  of  poor  sinners,  is  the  great 
end  of  the  mystery  of  Christ,  next  to  his  glory  ?  Why  was  he  sent 
into  the  world  ?  Why  came  he,  but  to  save  sinners  ?  Why  is  he 
preached,  but  that  sinners  may  come  to  him  ?  He  is  lifted  up  on 
the  pole  of  the  gospel,  that  sinners  may  look  to  him,  and  be  saved. 
He  is  a  fountain  opened,  that  sinners  may  come  and  drink.  The 
rose  of  the  field,  that  all  who  will,  may  pluck.  And  will  you  dare 
to  slight  him  any  more  ? 

2.  He  is  able  to  supply  all  your  wants,  however  great  they  can 
be.  Sometimes  people  meet  with  a  loss  that  they  think  will  never 
be  made  up  again.  But  Christ  "  is  able  to  save  to  the  uttermost,  all 
that  come  to  God  by  him."  Are  you  all  over  filthy  ?  there  is  water 
here  to  wash  you ;  streams,  Isa.  xxxv.  6  ;  a  fountain,  Zech.  xiii.  1  ; 
rivers,  Isa.  xli.  18;  a  sea,  and  depths  of  the  sea,  Micah  vii.  18.  Is 
misery  with  you?  mercy  is  with  him;  a  multitude  of  mercies,  Psal. 
li.  1.  If  one  mercy  will  not  do,  "  mercy  shall  be  built  up,"  one  laid 
upon  another,  Psal.  Ixxxix.  2.  Are  your  sins  deep  as  hell  ?  "  So 
great  is  his  mercy  towards  us,  that  he  delivers  our  souls  from  the 
lowest  hell."  Are  your  sins  as  high  as  heaven  ?  "  The  Lord's  mercy 
is  in  the  heavens." 

3.  Christ  is  a  fountain  that  will  never  run  dry.  The  creatures, 
all  of  them,  are  broken  cisterns.     Little  they  can  hold,  and  that 


464  FAREWELL  SERMON. 

little  is  soon  exhausted.  What  can  they  do  for  us  at  best  aud 
many  times  they  leave  us  in  the  greatest  straits.  All  must  part. 
Christ  is  a  fountain  that  will  serve  you  at  all  times,  iu  all  cases, 
through  time  and  eternity. 

2.  Consider  your  need  of  him.  How  will  yoa  live  or  die  with- 
out him?  Does  not  the  sick  man  need  the  physician?  How  will 
you  get  a  pardon,  peace  with  God,  strength  for  duty,  without  him  ? 

5.  If  you  will  come  now,  you  will  get  a  full  feast  above,  and 
drink  of  the  rivers  of  God's  pleasures  for  evermore.  Rev.  vii.  16,  17. 

Lastly,  Remember  Christ  is  in  your  offer  this  day.  "If  any  man 
thirst,"  &c.  This  cuts  off  all  exceptions,  and  makes  the  offer  par- 
ticular, therefore  delay  no  longer.  "  Now  is  the  accepted  time,  and 
now  is  the  day  of  salvation." 

And  now  I  would  turn  my  speech  to  you  of  this  generation. 
Dearly  beloved,  the  text  tells  us,  that  the  most  joyful  feast  of  ordi- 
nances in  the  world,  may  have  an  end.  God  will  have  a  difference 
betwixt  the  lower  and  the  upper  house.  People  may  be  in  hazard 
of  loathing  their  food,  and  they  must  fast  a  while  to  find  their  ap- 
petites again.  We  have  had  now,  for  near  eight  years,  a  feast  of 
ordinances  together,  and  now  the  last  day  of  that  feast  is  come.  I 
hope  your  table  shall  be  again  covered  to  greater  advantage,  seeing 
God  has  children  here  to  feed.  But  now  I  would  have  you  to 
reflect, 

1.  On  the  entertainment  you  have  had  at  this  feast:  both  ordi- 
nary, at  the  preaching  of  the  word;  and  extraordinary,  at  the 
sacraments.  When  I  entered  on  the  ministry  here,  I  began  and 
preached  man's  natural  state,  for  the  first  eleven  months ;  then  I 
preached  Christ  the  remedy,  I  have  withheld  nothing  from  you  of 
the  whole  counsel  of  God,  so  far  as  I  knew  it,  and  was  necessary 
for  you.  I  have  told  you  the  danger  of  neglecting  the  remedy,  and 
am  free  of  the  blood  of  all  men. 

2.  How  it  has  been  with  you  under  the  means.  If  any  have  been 
brought  to  acquaintance  with  Christ  and  themselves,  and  have  got 
their  souls  refreshed,  bless  God  for  it.  Where  it  has  been  other- 
wise, now  mourn  before  the  Lord  for  it, 

I  have  not  many  advices  to  leave  you,  having  about  half  a  year 
ago  been  pressed  in  my  spirit,  before  I  knew  what  way  I  would  be 
disposed  of,  to  preach  some  things  to  you ;  which  I  began  then,  and 
finished  just  the  last  Lord's  day  I  was  here.  I  will  put  you  in 
mind  of  them  :  I  exhorted  you  to  beware  of  the  evils  of  the  tongue, 
&c.,  &c. 

Take  this  removal  kindly  out  of  the  Lord's  hand.  Search  out 
the  cause  of  it,  sisting  your  consciences  before  the  Lord.     I  think  it 


FAREWELL  SERMON.  465 

will  be  safest  for  every  man  to  leave  his  complaint  on  himself.  It 
is  a  small  thing  for  me,  to  be  judged  of  men.  God  knows  the  heart, 
and  will  bring  secret  things  to  light.  Some  say,  I  needed  not  have 
gone  away,  but  if  I  would.  If  my  heart  deceive  me  not,  it  is  seve- 
ral years  since  I  gave  up  with  mine  own  will,  and  in  this  I  have 
followed  what  I  took  to  be  God's  will.  As  I  came  to  this  place 
nnder  a  sense  of  a  call  from  God,  and  durst  not  do  otherwise  ;  so  I 
go  from  it  under  a  sense  of  God's  call,  which  for  my  soul  I  durst 
not  disobey,  whatever  difficulties  I  may  meet  with,  though  I  should 
die  at  the  end  of  it.  Pray  for  a  minister  from  the  Lord.  Pray  in 
secret.  Meet  together,  and  pray  for  one.  And,  in  the  meantime, 
make  conscience  of  family  duties;  watch  over  one  another,  and  live 
in  peace  together. 

I  leave  my  testimony  to  the  doctrine  of  the  confession  of  faith,  as 
the  doctrine  of  Christ;  and  against  the  errors  of  the  time.  And  I 
exhort  you  to  cleave  to  that  doctrine.  I  give  my  testimony  to  the 
covenanted  work  of  reformation,  and  believe  that  the  national  and 
the  solemn  league  and  covenant  were  of  God  ;  and  I  exhort  you  to 
cleave  thereto,  against  popery,  prelacy,  superstition  and  ceremonies. 
And  mourn  for  this,  that  by  the  union,  a  nail  is  sent  from  Scotland, 
to  fix  the  Dagon  of  the  English  hierarchy  in  its  place  in  our  coun- 
try. 

Above  all,  I  exhort  you  to  go  to  Christ,  and  be  daily  making  use 
of  him,  for  the  supply  of  all  your  wants.  I  dare  not  say  I  have 
been  useless  here.  I  hope  you  and  I  will  not  forget  the  many  sweet 
days  we  have  had  in  this  place.  Christ  has  been  with  us  at  sermons, 
both  on  sabbath  days  and  week  days.  We  have  had  much  of  his 
presence  at  communions,  and  I  bless  God  that  ever  put  it  in  my 
heart  to  celebrate  the  sacrament  in  the  winter.  I  hope  you  will 
particularly  remember,  and  never  forget  the  sabbath  after  our  last 
communion. 

I  have  come  so  far  short  of  my  duty  to  you  as  a  minister,  that  if 
God  should  enter  into  judgment  with  me  on  that  account,  I  should 
undoubtedly  be  damned.  But  for  pardon,  I  flee  to  the  same  blood 
of  Jesus  Christ,  which  I  have  preached  to  you.  And  I  advise  you 
to  take  the  same  course  with  respect  to  your  shortcomings.  Now, 
I  beseech  you,  pray  for  me ;  and  God  forbid  that  I  should  cease  to 
pray  for  you,  that  Simprin  may  always  be  as  a  field  that  the  Lord 
hath  blessed.  Now  I  will  say  no  more,  but  conclude  with  the  words 
of  the  apostle,  Acts  xx.  32,  "  And  now,  brethren,  I  commend  you  to 
God,  and  to  the  word  of  his  grace,  which  is  able  to  build  you  up, 
and  to  give  you  an  inheritance  among  them  that  are  sanctified." 
Amen. 


THE 

DISTINGUISHING     CHARACTERS. 

OP 

REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

Being  the  bubstance  of  several  Sermons. 

Philip,  iii.  3, 

For  we  are  the  circumcision,  which  luorship  God  in  the  spirit,  and  rejoice 
in  Christ  Jesus,  and  have  no  confidence  in  the  fiesh. 

The  apostle  here  gives  a  reason  why  he  had  called  those  false 
teachers,  against  whom  he  cautions  the  Philippiaus,  the  concision; 
viz.  because  he  and  all  true  believers,  and  not  they,  had  the  best 
claina  to  circumcision.     In  the  words  there  are  two  things. 

I.  A  position :  "  "We  are  the  circumcision." 

II.  The  proof  of  it ;  taken  from  the  description  of  the  true  cir- 
cumcision, which  agrees  to  believers,  and  them  only. 

In  the  position  we  have, 

1.  The  party  to  whom  the  honourable  controverted  character 
belongs  :  We.  Which  includes,  (1.)  The  apostle  himself,  who  was 
circumcised  in  the  flesh,  ver.  5.  (2.)  The  Philippian  Church,  to 
whom  hespealis;  who  being  of  the  Gentiles,  were  not  circumcised 
in  the  flesh ;  which  was  the  great  quarrel  the  false  apostles  had  with 
them.  Yet  this  character  doth  not  comprehend  all  of  the  church  of 
Philippi ;  but  the  saints  among  them,  to  whom  the  following  descrip- 
tion agreed,  and  therefore  all  believers  ;  that  is,  all  that  "  worship 
God  in  the  spirit,  and  rejoice  in  Christ  Jesus,  and  have  no  confidence 
in  the  flesh." 

2.  That  character  itself;  "the  circumcision,  i.e.  the  circumcised 
people,  Rom.  xv.  8.  Now,  they  were  not  the  circumcised  in  the 
flesh ;  therefore  it  is  meant  of  their  circumcision  in  the  spirit. 
See  the  distinction,  Rom.  ii.  29,  "He  is  a  Jew,  which  is  one  in- 
wardly ;  and  circumcision  is  that  of  the  heart,  in  the  spirit,  and  not 
in  the  letter,  whose  praise  is  not  of  men,  but  of  God."  They  had 
the   thing  signified   by  circumcision;   while  others  that  boasted  of 


THE  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS.  467 

circumcisiou,  had  only  the  bare  outward  sign.     And  as  the  thing  is 
far  better  than  the  sign  of  it,  so  they  deserved  the  name  best. 

Before  we  proceed  farther,  we  may  deduce  a  few  doctrinal  obser- 
vations from  this  first  part  of  the  verse. 

Doctrine  1.  The  sacraments  of  the  Old  and  New  Testament  are 
in  substance  the  same.  The  baptized  Philippians,  who  were  bap- 
tized with  the  Holy  Ghost,  as  well  as  with  water,  are  said  to  be 
circumcised.  And  so  the  apostle  attributes  our  baptism  and  the 
Lord's  supper  after  a  sort  to  the  church  of  the  Jews ;  1  Cor.  x.  1,  2, 
3,  4,  "  Moreover,  brethren,  I  would  not  that  ye  should  be  ignorant, 
how  that  all  our  fathers  were  under  the  cloud,  and  all  passed 
through  the  sea;  and  were  all  baptized  unto  Moses  in  the  cloud, 
and  in  the  sea;  and  did  all  eat  the  same  spiritual  meat;  and  did 
all  drink  the  same  spiritual  drink  :  (For  they  drank  of  that  spi- 
ritual rock  that  followed  them :  and  that  rock  was  Christ)."  As 
the  covenant  was  always  the'  same  in  substance,  so  the  seals  of  it 
were  the  same  too.  I  note  this,  to  guard  against  the  Popish  error, 
in  making  the  sacraments  of  the  Old  Testament  only  shadow  forth 
that  grace  which  the  sacraments  of  the  New  do  confer,  according  to 
them ;  and  that  they  were  not  the  same  in  efficacy. 

Doctrine  2.  The  reality  of  that  which  seducers  do  pretend  unto, 
will  more  readily  be  found  in  those  that  conscientiously  oppose 
them.  These  men  run  down  the  apostle,  and  other  believers,  in  the 
point  of  circumcisiou;  giving  out  themselves  only  for  the  circum- 
cised ones.  But  the  apostle  proves  they  had  a  better  claim  to  it, 
than  those  that  made  all  the  noise  about  it.  Thus  the  works  of 
holiness  are  to  be  found  more  with  those  that  press  justification  by 
faith,  than  with  others  who  would  be  looked  on  as  the  great  patrons 
of  good  works. 

Use.  Be  not  then  deceived  with  fair  speeches,  but  examine  mat- 
ters to  the  bottom  ;  for  often  do  those  that  have  the  highest  pre- 
tences to  right  on  their  side,  go  farthest  from  it.  And  think  it  no 
uncouth  thing,  to  find  those  who  have  deserted  the  principles  of  the 
Presbyterian  Church  of  Scotland  in  their  separation,  give  out  them- 
selves for  the  only  adherents  thereto.* 

Doctrine  3.  The  sign  in  religion  without  the  thing  signified,  is 
little  worth.     They  are   but   the   concision,  and  deserve  no  other 

•  The  author  means  htre  the  people  called  Old  Dissenters,  the  followeib  of 
Mr.  M'Millan  ;  who  are  also  tie  people  imiiiediatelv  levelled  aj^ainst  iii  his  printed 
sermon  on  ischism. 


468  THE  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

name,  that  have  only  circumcision  in  the  flesh.     "We  are  the  circum- 
cision that  have  the  thing  signified  thereby. 
To  confirm  this,  consider, 

1.  All  it  can  do  is  but  to  give  a  name  before  men,  which  they 
lose  before  God :  Rom.  ii.  28,  29,  "  For  he  is  not  a  Jew,  which  is 
one  outwardly ;  neither  is  that  circumcision,  which  is  outward  in 
the  flesh :  but  he  is  a  Jew,  which  is  one  inwardly ;  and  circumcision 
is  that  of  the  heart,  in  the  spirit,  and  not  in  the  letter,  whose  praise 
is  not  of  men,  but  of  God."  Christians  we  will  be  called  amongst 
men,  upon  our  receiving  the  sign  of  it ;  but  we  will  be  but  as  the 
children  of  the  Ethiopian  before  the  Lord,  if  we  have  no  more.  It 
may  give  us  an  honourable  title  in  the  world,  but  it  is  but  an  empty 
title  before  God. 

2.  The  sign  is  but  a  mere  external  thing,  on  which  nothing  of 
weight  for  salvation  can  hang :  it  is  too  little  to  make  any  saving 
difference  betwixt  them  that  have  it,  and  others  that  want  it.  And 
therefore  when  the  Lord  comes  to  judgment,  he  throws  down  all 
together,  Jer.  ix.  25,  26 ;  for  he  looks  not  to  the  outward  appear- 
ance, to  lay  any  weight  upon  it,  but  to  the  heart. 

3.  The  sign  in  religion  without  the  thing  signified,  is  but  an 
inefiicacious  thing ;  as  a  body  without  a  spirit.  The  sacraments 
have  each  two  parts,  the  sign,  and  the  thing  signified,  sacramentally 
united.  He  then  that  hath  got  the  sign  only,  hath  only  the  half, 
and  the  meanest  half  too.  Sacraments  are  seals  of  the  covenant ; 
but  where  there  is  no  covenant,  there  can  be  no  seal :  and  what 
avails  a  seal  at  a  blank  ?  They  apply  Christ  to  believers ;  but 
where  there  is  no  receiving,  how  can  they  apply? 

4.  As  men  may  in  Christ's  livery  abide  in  the  devil's  service,  so 
they  may  and  will  go  with  it  into  the  place  prepared  for  the  devil 
and  his  angels,  if  they  have  not  the  thing  signified.  Thus  our  Lord, 
Luke  xiii.  26,  27,  tells  us,  that  some  shall  say  to  him  at  the  last 
day,  "  We  have  eaten  and  drunk  in  thy  presence,  and  thou  hast 
taught  in  our  streets ;"  but  that  he  shall  say  unto  such,  "  I  tell 
you,  I  know  you  not  whence  you  are ;  depart  from  me,  all  ye 
workers  of  iniquity."  Some  are  circumcised,  and  yet  are  dogs,  ver. 
2.  Of  this  chapter,  whose  place  is  without.  As  to  this  privilege, 
avail  it  may  to  men's  greater  condemnation,  but  no  further. 

For  Application  :  Is  the  sacramental  sign  little  worth  without 
the  thing  signified  thereby?  then  I  would  have  you  take  a  back-look 
of  your  baptism  and  communicating.  For  to  change  the  word  into 
that  which  the  gospel  gives,  we  may  say.  We,  and  only  we,  are  the 
baptized,  the  communicants,  that  "  worship  God  in  the  Sj>irit,  and 
rejoice  in  Christ  Jesus,  and  have  no  confidence  in  the  flesh."  For 
there  are  two  great  truths  which  plainly  follow  from  this, 


THE  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS.  469 

1.  Baptism  with  water  without  being  baptized  by  the  Holy  Ghost 
is  little  worth.  It  is  the  dreadful  sin  of  the  generation,  that  they 
never  reflect  seriously  on  their  baptism.  Hence  are  two  great  evils. 
(1.)  They  are  children  of  Belial,  they  go  without  a  yoke.  They  live 
as  if  they  had  never  sworn  allegiance  to  the  King  of  heaven,  but 
were  entirely  their  own,  and  none  Lord  over  them.  (2.)  They  will 
be  children  of  Belial,  they  will  go  without  a  yoke.  They  will  not 
renew  their  baptismal  a-ows  in  the  sacrament  of  the  supper,  nor  pre- 
pare themselves  thereto.  They  will  come  under  any  covenant  or 
engagement  to  men  to  advance  their  worldly  interest;  but  they  will  not 
come  under  engagements  to  the  Lord.  They  are  obliged  to  their 
parents'  care  iu  their  infancy,  that  got  them  baptized ;  but  if  they 
had  been  yet  unbaptized,  and  would  act  like  themselves,  they  would 
refuse  and  slight  baptism,  as  well  as  the  other  sacrament.  But  let 
me  lay  home  to  the  consciences  of  baptized  persons,  a  few  queries 
touching  their  baptism. 

1st,  In  the  general.  It  is  true,  ye  are  washed  with  water;  but 
are  ye  baptized  indeed  ?  Ye  have  got  the  sign,  but  have  ye  got  the 
thing  signified  ?  Baptized  ye  were  with  water,  but  were  ye  ever  to 
this  day  baptized  with  the  Holy  Ghost  and  with  fire ;  i.  e.  the  Holy 
Ghost  working  like  fire  ?  Alas  !  that  universal  coldness  in  the 
things  of  God  in  our  affections,  says,  that  as  to  most  men,  the  fire  of 
God's  Spirit  never  came  on  them  yet. 

2dli/,  But  more  particularly,  I  would  ask  you, 

(1.)  Hast  thou  ever  yet  seen  thy  natural  pollution,  that  universal 
defilement  of  thy  whole  man,  how  that  Adam  left  thee  lying  in  thy 
blood,  and  a  child  of  wrath?  Eph.  ii.  3.  Hast  thou  ever  yet  seen 
the  filth  of  sin  so  deep  in  thy  nature  and  life,  that  no  tears,  prayers 
&c.  of  thine,  but  only  the  blood  and  Spirit  of  Christ,  could  wash 
thee  ?  In  baptism  there  is  a  profession  of  all  this.  If  thou  hast 
not  seen  this,  what  avails  thy  baptism  ?  why  wast  thou  washed  at 
all  with  water  in  the  name  of  the  Father,  and  of  the  Son,  and  of  the 
Holy  Ghost  ? 

(2.)  Wast  thou  ever  yet  made  partaker  of  the  washing  of  regener- 
ation, and  renewing  of  tLe  Holy  Ghost;  that  is,  the  thing  signified 
by  baptism.  Tit.  iii.  5.  6  ?  Alas  !  what  avails  the  washing  of  the 
body  with  water  while  the  blood  of  Christ  has  never  been  sprinkled 
on  the  conscience,  nor  the  water  of  the  Spirit  of  Christ  poured  on 
the  filthy  soul,  John  iii.  5  ?  Alas  !  I  fear  many  may  in  this  matter 
make  that  confession  of  their  faith.  Acts  xix.  2.  "  We  have  not  so 
much  as  heard  whether  there  be  any  Holy  Ghost :"  and  therefore  I 
would  say,  ver.  3.  "  Unto  what  then  were  ye  baptized  ?  They  know 
nothing  about  regeneration,  nor  the  Spirit's  work  upon  the  soul. 


470  THE  DISTINGUISHINa  CHARACTEBS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

(3.)  Were  ye  ever  cut  off  from  the  old  stock  of  Adam,  and  in- 
grafted into  Christ  ?  1  Cor.  xii.  13.  Ye  will  then  be  knit  to  Christ 
by  the  Spirit  and  faith  ;  ye  will  be  branches  of  him,  bringing  forth 
the  fruits  of  holiness  by  him  ;  living  in  and  on  him,  living  by  faith. 
Ah  !  baptized  in  the  name  of  Christ,  and  yet  not  in  Christ,  but 
without  Christ,  and  without  God  in  the  world,  makes  sad  work. 

(4.)  Are  lusts  living  and  reigning ;  or  are  they  dying,  and  your 
souls  living  a  new  life?  Rom.  vi.  4,  5.  Tlie  water  was  cast  on  you 
indeed,  as  the  earth  on  a  dead  corpse ;  but  what  avails  that  if  ye 
never  yet  died  to  sin  ?  Ye  have  got  free  of  the  water  cast  on  yoa 
at  baptism,  as  he  that  rises  out  of  the  grave  gets  free  of  the  earth  ; 
but  what  avails  it  if  ye  be  dead  in  sin  still,  and  alienated  from  the 
life  of  God  ?     Ah  !  what  are  most  of  us  but  walking  ghosts  ? 

2.  Communicating  in  the  Lord's  supper  without  the  thing  signi- 
fied, is  little  worth.  To  be  partakers  of  the  bread  of  the  Lord, 
without  being  partakers  of  the  bread  which  is  the  Lord,  will  go  but 
a  small  length. 

1st,  Have  ye  indeed  eaten  Christ's  flesh  and  drank  his  blood  by 
faith  ?  Had  ye  an  appetite  after  Christ,  and  have  ye  relished  the 
sweetness  of  Christ,  and  the  sweetness  of  every  part  of  Christ, 
as  one  does  of  the  bread  which  he  eats ;  and  have  your  souls  knit 
with  him,  and  received  life,  sap,  and  strength  from  him  for  your 
nourishment?  Ah  !  what  avails  bread  and  wine  without  this? 

2c%,  Do  you  live  by  him  ?  John  vi.  57-  Is  Christ  the  staff 
and  comfort  of  your  souls?  Have  ye  set  on  to  live  the  life  of  new 
obedience  ?  It  is  from  him  ye  draw  influences  for  actuating  grace, 
and  for  your  growth  ?  Do  ye  "  worship  God  in  Spirit,  and  rejoice 
in  Christ  Jesus,  and  have  no  confidence  in  the  flesh  ?"  then,  and  not 
otherwise,  are  ye  the  circumcision. 

Doctrine  4.  ult.  "  Believers  in  Christ  are  the  true  circumcision." 
They  have  that  in  the  spirit,  which  the  Jews  by  this  ordinance  had 
in  the  letter.     To  illustrate  this,  consider, 

1.  Circumcision  was  a  token  of  God's  covenant,  Gen,  svii.  IL 
which  see,  ver.  7,  "  And  I  will  establish  my  covenant  between  me 
and  thee,  and  thy  seed  after  thee,  in  their  generations,  for  an  ever- 
lasting covenant;  to  be  a  God  unto  thee,  and  to  thy  seed  after  thee" 
This  is  the  privilege  of  every  believer;  he  is  in  covenant  with  God, 
God  is  his  God.  0  what  a  privilege  is  this,  to  be  confederate  with 
heaven,  yea,  to  have  God  himself  to  be  ours,  heirs  of  God ;  so  that 
God  is  the  heritage  !     "This  honour  have  all  the  saints." 

2.  Circumcision  distinguished  the  Jews  from  others,  as  God's 
people  from  those  that  were  not  his,  Gen.  xvii.  14.     So  are  believers 


THE  DISTr.VOUISHINa  CHARACTERS  OP  REAL  CHRISTIANS.  471 

God's  Israel,  his  peculiar  people,  his  jewels,  his  garden ;  while  the 
rest  of  the  world  are  but  as  his  out-field.  They  have  the  special 
preseuce  of  God  with  them,  his  peculiar  love,  care  pretection,  &c. ; 
and  with  Israel,  are  not  numbered  by  him  among  the  nations. 

3.  Circumcision  was  the  cutting  off  of  a  part  of  the  flesh  ;  signi- 
fying that  which  believers  have  as  their  privilege  as  well  as  duty, 
"the  putting  off  of  the  body  of  sins.  Col.  ii.  11.  Thus  believers 
have  put  off  the  old  man  with  his  deeds.  This  is  begun  in  regenera- 
tion, and  carried  on  in  gradual  sanctification ;  their  lusts  are  cut  off, 
and  cast  from  them  in  some  measure.  Their  hearts  are  circumcised 
to  love  the  Lord,  so  as  they  have  new  affections ;  their  ears  to  hear 
his  voice,  which  could  not  reach  them  before  ;  and  their  lips  to  speak 
holily,  and  for  God. 

4.  Circumcision  was  a  bloody  ordinance  ;  witness  Zipporah,  who 
"took  a  sharp  stone  and  cut  off  the  foreskin  of  her  son,  and  said, 
Surely  a  bloody  husband  thou  art  to  me;  A  bloody  husband  thou 
art  because  of  the  circumcision."  So  it  is  through  the  blood  of 
Christ,  the  blood  of  the  everlasting  covenant,  that  the  elect  become 
God's  people.  They  come  to  all  their  privileges  by  the  way  of 
blood  :  so  that  they  may  write  on  the  covenant,  and  all  their  privi- 
leges, from  the  greatest  seat  in  heaven,  to  the  meanest  drop  of 
water  on  earth.  The  price  of  blood. 

4.  Hence  it  was  a  painful  ordinance.  So  is  the  believer's  morli- 
cation  of  his  lusts.  Gal.  v.  24.  They  are  naturally  addicted  to  the 
ways  of  the  flesh  as  well  as  others  ;  but  they  are  helped  with  grace 
to  cut  off  right  hands,  and  pluck  out  right  eyes,  however  unpleasant 
that  work  is  to  corrupt  nature. 

6.  It  was  the  flesh  of  the  foreskin  that  was  cut  off,  teaching  them 
how  sin  is  propagated  by  ordinary  generation ;  and  in  true  belie- 
vers, the  axe  of  mortification  is  laid  not  only  to  the  branches,  but 
to  the  root  of  the  tree  ;  the  true  circumcision  reaching  a  stroke  not 
only  to  particular  lusts,  but  to  the  sin  of  our  nature.  Gal.  v.  24. 

7.  It  was  in  a  secret  part  of  the  body.  So  true  circumcision  is 
that  of  the  heart  in  believers,  Rom.  ii.  29.  They  are  not  outside 
Christians  only  bnt  the  hidden  man  of  the  heart  is  for  God :  and  the 
King's  daughter  is  all-glorious  within. 

8.  It  sealed  the  covenant  of  promises,  particularly  that  of  the 
righteousness  of  faith,  Rom.  iv.  and  of  Canaan's  land.  So  are  they 
heirs  of  the  heavenly  Canaan,  and  that  righteousness  is  theirs. 

9.  Lastly,  It  was  an  engagement  to  duty  on  them  ;  so  is  the  grace 
of  God  on  believers  a  singular  engagement  to  duty. 

Inference  1.  Then  be  among  believers  who  will  now,  they  shall 
for  ever  be  cut  off  from  among  them  that  are  not  such  as  they. 
"Woe  to  the  hypocritical  professor  who  is  not  thus  honoured. 


472  THE  DISTINGUTSniNft  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIAN9. 

2.  Then  are  all  believers  Abraham's  spiritual  seed,  and  heirs  ac- 
cording to  the  promise.  They  are  the  Israel  of  God,  having  all 
those  privileges  in  spirit  and  truth,  that  the  Israel  according  to 
the  flesh  had  in  the  latter;  which  may  help  them  comfortably  to 
read  and  apply  those  glorious  things  spoke  of  Israel  in  the  Old  Tes- 
tament. Hence  believers  are  called  a  "  chosen  generation,  a  royal 
priesthood,  an  holy  nation,  a  peculiar  people,"  1  Pet.  ii.  9. 

3.  Then  let  the  saints  keep  at  a  distance  from  the  profane  world, 
Acts  X.  28,  and  xi.  3.  They  whom  God  has  distinguished  from 
others,  should  not  mix  themselves,  with  Ephraim,  among  the  people 
Even  a  companion  of  fools  shall  be  destroyed. 

4.  Lastlif,  Then  distinguish  yourselves  from  others  by  your  holy 
life.  Let  it  appear  that  ye  are  circumcised  in  heart,  lip,  and  life  ; 
that  sin  has  got  a  root-stroke,  and  the  lusts  thereof  cut  off.  And 
so  I  come  to  the, 

II.  Second  thing,  the  proof  of  the  position,  contained  in  a  descrip- 
tion of  the  true  circumcision  ;  that  is,  of  the  true  people  of  God, 
real  saints.  There  are  many  disputes  in  the  world  concerning  this  ; 
but  the  apostle  lays  down  a  rule  for  deciding  the  controversy. 
He  gives  three  distinguishing  characters  of  God's  people.  1.  If  ye  con- 
sider their  worship,  they  worship  God  in  spirit;  2.  their  joy,  that  is 
in  Christ.  3.  their  confidence,  they  have  none  in  the  flesh."  Whoso 
ever  can  make  good  his  claim  to  these,  is  a  true  Christian. 

I.  The  /in^t  character  of  a  saint  is,  he  is  one  that  "  worships  God 
in  the  spirit."  In  which  there  are  three  things.  1.  He  is  a  wor- 
shipper, and  so  is  distinguished  from  Atheists.  2.  The  object  of  his 
worship  is  the  true  God  ;  and  so  is  distinguished  from  idolaters,  that 
worship  any  other  than  the  true  God.  3.  The  manner  of  it ;  in  the 
spirit ;  and  so  is  distinguished  from  hypocrites. 

Doctrine.  Those,  and  only  those,  are  God's  people,  true  saints, 
real  Christians,  who  worship  God  in  the  spirit. 

In  discoursing  this  doctrine,  I  shall  shew, 

I.  "What  it  is  to  worship  God  in  the  spirit, 

IT.  That  this  worshipping  of  God  in  spirit,  is  a  distinguishing 
mark  of  a  true  Christian. 

III.  Lastly,  Apply. 

I.  I  shall  shew  "  what  it  is  to  worship  God  in  the  spirit."  It  is, 
in  a  word,  to  give  spiritual  worship  to  God,  to  worship  him,  and 
be  s'piritual  in  the  worship.     Now,  this  hath  a  respect  to  two  things. 

First,  It  hath  a  respect  to  the  whole  of  our  service  and  obe- 
dience to  God  in  our  whole  conversation.  God,  as  our  great  Master, 
hath  given  us  a  law  ;  in  keeping  that  law,  and  obeying  it  in  our 


OF  WOKSHIPPING  GOD  IN  THE  SPIRIT.  47-3 

whole  coaversation,  lies  our  service  to  God.  The  parts  of  it  are 
two;  holiness,  comprehendiDg  oar  duty  to  God  ;  righteousness,  com- 
prehending that  to  our  neighbour.  We  have  both  these  in  one  Scrip- 
ture, viz.  Luke  i.  74,  75,  "  That  he  would  grant  unto  us,  that  we 
being  delivered  out  of  the  hands  of  our  enemies,  might  serve  him 
without  fear,  in  holiness  and  righteousnes  before  him,  all  the  days 
of  our  life."  It  is  the  same  words  as  in  our  text,  which  might  be, 
and  is  by  some  rendered,  "that  serve  God  in  Spirit,"  viz.  not  only 
in  the  acts  of  immediate  worship,  but  in  the  whole  of  their  course. 
And  truly  the  Christian  life  is  as  it  were  one  continued  act  of 
worship,  where  all  their  actions,  natural,  civil,  and  religious,  meet 
in  God  :  and  is  therefore  called  "  a  serving  of  God  day  and  night. 
Acts  xxvi.  7;  Rev.  vii.  15,  in  allusion  to  the  priests  and  Levites 
that  were  always  about  the  temple,  Psalm  cxxxiv.  1  ;  and  no  wonder, 
for  they  are  priests  unto  God.  Second  table  duties  are  turned  by 
them  into  first :  James  i.  27,  "  Pure  religion,  and  undefiled,  before 
God  and  the  Father,  is  this.  To  visit  the  fatherless  and  widows  in 
their  affliction,  and  to  keep  himself  unspotted  from  the  world. 
Heb.  xiii.  16 ;  But  to  do  good,  and  to  communicate,  forget  not :  for 
with  such  sacrifices  God  is  well  pleased."  Now,  the  Christian  is 
spiritual  in  these  things,  Rom.  i.  9.  We  must  preach  in  the  spirit, 
as  well  as  pray  in  the  spirit,  Eph.  v.  21 ;  and  vi.  6. 

Secondly,  It  hath  respect  to  those  duties  of  religion  which  are 
parts  of  worship  properly  so  called,  as  prayer,  praise,  &:c.  A  true 
Christian  will  make  conscience  of  these  ;  he  will  worship  God,  and 
that  in  the  spirit.  If  he  pray,  he  will  pray  in  the  spirit,  praise,  and 
hear  in  the  spirit.  Now,  the  worshipping  of  God  in  spirit  lies  in 
these  two. 

1.  The  true  Christian  worshipping  God,  worships  him  with  his 
heart,  soul,  and  spirit,  and  not  with  his  body  only.  Hence  the 
apostle  says,  Rom.  i.  9,  that  he  "  served  God  with  his  spirit  in  the 
gospel  of  his  Son."  The  Jews  in  our  Saviour's  days  had  religion 
extremely  sunk  among  them  :  it  was  turned  into  mere  bodily  exer- 
cise, for  the  most  part :  therefore  Christ  tells  them,  John  iv.  24, 
that  "  God  is  a  Spirit,  and  they  that  worship  him,  must  worship 
lum  in  spirit  and  in  truth."     Now,  this  implies  these  things. 

1st,  The  true  Christian  is  an  internal  worshipper  of  God.  There  is 
an  external  worship  called  for  in  the  second  commandment,  such  as 
hearing,  praying  with  the  voice,  &c.  There  is  also  an  internal  wor- 
ship called  for  by  the  first  commandment.  In  outward  worship  the 
body  acts  its  part,  in  the  inward  the  soul  only  acts.  This  lies  in 
the  soul's  fearing,  loving,  trusting,  depending  on  God,  &c.  which  are 
the  vital  parts  of  practical  godliness.     The  true  Christian's  soul  is 


474  THE  DISTINOUISIIIN'O  CHARACTEnS  OP  UEAL  CHRISTIAX.S. 

the  temple  of  God  ;  ami  in  the  Christian's  heart,  and  there  only,  is 
God  thus  worshipped.  They  make  din  enough  in  the  outer  court 
with  worship  to  God,  who  never  worship  God  there  ;  while  self,  tho 
creature,  and  lusts  as  the  abomination  of  desolation,  stand  in  the 
holy  place  of  the  heart. 

'2dl(/,  The  true  Christiau  joins  inward  to  ontward  worship,  and  so 
body  and  spirit  p:o  on  jointly.  Hence  the  apostle  exhorts,  as  1  Cor. 
vi.  20,  to  *'  glorify  God  in  the  body,  and  in  the  spirit,  which  are 
God's."  And  as  the  body  without  the  soul,  so  outward  without 
inward  worship  is  but  a  loathsome,  lifeless  lump,  Matth.  xv.  7,  8. 
It  is  not  praying,  but  praying  in  the  spirit,  that  is  the  distinguish- 
ing character  of  a  Christian.  Then  do  men  worship  God  in  spirit, 
when  their  hearts  go  with  their  bodies  before  the  Lord,  when  the 
soul  is  humbled  before  the  Lord  while  the  knees  are  bowed  in  his 
presence,  when  with  the  lifting  up  of  the  hands  the  aifections  are 
lifted  towards  the  Lord.  0  what  avails  the  bowing  of  the  knee=, 
while  the  heart  remains  stout  against  the  Lord  ;  the  moving  of  the 
lips,  while  no  moving  of  agreeable  affections  ;  hearing  of  the  word 
with  the  ear,  while  the  soul  is  like  a  deaf  adder ;  petitions  of  good 
things,  without  sincere  desires  of  them  from  the  heart;  confessions 
of  sin,  without  shame,  and  grief,  and  hatred  of  it ;  thanksgiving?, 
without  a  due  sense  of  mercies  ?     It  is  but  lip-labour. 

Zdly,  The  true  Christian  aims  at,  and  in  some  measure  attains  tie 
spirituality  of  worship.  The  spirit  of  the  Christian,  in  worshipping 
God,  is  employed  in  that  part  whereof  it  alone  is  capable ;  not  only 
to  do  the  thing,  but  to  do  it  in  a  right  manner,  which  is  the  spirit- 
uality of  worship.  As  we  worship  God  with  our  bodies,  not  only 
using  them  in  his  service,  but  composing  them  to  an  allowable  out- 
ward gesture  ;  so  we  worship  God  in  our  spirits,  while  they  are  not 
only  employed  in  conversing  with  God,  and  giving  material  obe- 
dience to  his  commandments,  but  also  acting  in  those  things  iu  the 
manner  prescribed  by  himself.  Now,  there  are  four  things  here 
principally  that  belong  to  the  worshipping  God  in  spirit,  without 
which  the  very  motions  of  our  spirit,  though  good  in  themselves,  in 
worship,  would  be  but  carnal.  So  the  apostle  calls  his  old  obeying 
of  the  law  flesh,  Philip,  iii.  6.  compared  with  ver.  4. 

(L)  The  true  Christian  discerns  the  commandment,  and  acts  in 
worshipping  God  from  a  sense  of  it.  For  "  whatsoever  is  not  of 
faith,  is  sin,"  Ilom.  xiv.  23.  He  believes  so  and  so,  because  God 
has  said  it ;  and  does  so  and  so,  because  God  has  bid  it,  Psal.  cxix. 
115  ;  John  v.  30.  The  will  of  God,  to  a  Christian,  will  not  only  be 
the  rule,  but  the  reason  of  his  worsltip  ;  hence  the  hardest  piece  of 
it  is  not  neglected  ;  as  we  find  in  the  case  of  Abraham's  offering 
Isaac,  Gen.  xxii. 


OF  WORSHIPPIXft   ftOD  IN"  THE  SPIRIT.  475 

(2.)  The  true  Christian  worships  the  Lord  out  of  love  to  him  : 
Heb.  vi.  10,  "  God  is  not  unrighteous,"  says  the  apostle,  "  to  for- 
get your  work  and  labour  of  love,  which  ye  have  shewed  toward  his 
name,"  &c.  Hence  the  whole  of  our  service  to  God  comes  under  the 
name  of  love  in  the  sura  of  the  commandments.  If  the  domineering 
principle  in  our  worship  be  either  self-love,  or  slavish  fear  of  God, 
it  is  not  worshipping  God  in  spirit,  2  Tim.  i.  7,  "  For  God  hath  not 
given  us  the  spirit  of  fear;  but  of  power,  and  of  love,  and  of  a  sound 
mind." 

(3.)  The  true  Christian  worships  God  with  good-will.  Hence  in 
Eph.  vi.  7,  servants  are  exhorted  "  with  good  will  to  do  service,  as 
to  the  Lord,  and  not  to  men."  And  says  the  church.  Is.  Ixiv.  6, 
"  Thou  meetest  hira  that  rejoice th,  and  worketli  righteousness."  If 
the  heart  be  away  fi'om  the  work,  and  it  be  done  grudgingly,  doubt- 
less it  is  spiritless  worship,  unacceptable  to  God. 

(4.)  The  true  Christian  worships  God  for  his  honour  and  glory,  as 
his  chief  end.  God  has  proposed  it  as  such,  1  Cor.  x.  31,  "  "Whether 
ye  eat  or  drink,  or  whatsoever  ye  do,  do  all  to  the  glory  of  God  ;" 
and  the  Christian  aims  at  it  accordingly,  as  Paul  did,  Philip,  i,  21, 
"  For  to  me  to  live  is  Christ,  says  he,  "  and  to  die  is  gain."  If  self 
get  highest  here,  it  is  selfish,  not  spiritual  worship,  Hos,  xii.  1 ; 
Zech.  vii.  6. 

2.  The  true  Christian  worships  God  by  assistance  from  and  in- 
fluence of  th«  Holy  Spirit  of  God.  Compare  Eph.  vi.  18,  "  Praying 
always  witli  all  prayer  and  supplication  in  the  Spirit ;"  with  Jude 
ver.  20,  "  But  ye,  beloved,  praying  in  the  Holy  Ghost,"  &c.  And 
this  assistance  is  given  two  ways. 

1st,  The  Spirit  gives  habitual  grace  to  make  the  man  capable  of 
spiritual  worship  :  1  Tim.  i.  5,  "  Now  the  end  of  the  commandment 
is  charity,  out  of  a  pure  heart,  and  of  a  good  conscience,  and  of  faith 
unfeigued;"  John  iii.  6,  "That  which  is  born  of  the  Spirit,  is  spirit." 
The  carnal  heart  which  the  regenerating  Spirit  has  never  changed, 
is  not  capable  of  this  worship,  1  Cor.  ii.  14, 

2dli/,  He  gives  actual  grace,  influences  to  stir  up  grace  :  Rom.  viii. 
26,  "  For  the  Spirit  helpeth  our  infirmities  :  for  we  know  not  what  we 
should  pray  for  as  we  ought :  but  the  Spirit  itself  maketh  interces- 
sion for  us  with  groanings  which  cannot  be  uttered."  He  blows 
on  the  soul,  and  makes  ttie  spices  send  forth  their  pleasant  smell. 
It  is  through  him  they  mortify  the  deeds  of  the  body,  Horn.  viii.  13; 
and  by  him,  i.  e.  by  influences  from  him,  they  serve  the  Lord,  Eph. 
ii.  18  ;  for  they  live  out  of  themselves,  by  the  Spirit  of  Clirist. 

II.  I  shall  shew  that  this  worshipping  of  God  in  spirit  is  a  dis- 
tingnishing  mark  of  a  true  Christian. 

Vol.  n^  2  h 


476  THE  DISTINGUISHINO  CHAUACTEUS  OP  REAL  CHRISTIANS, 

1.  All  trne  Christians  capable  of  worshipping  God  (for  the 
apostle  speaks  not  of  infants,  idiots,  &c.)  have  it.  It  is  not  the 
attainment  of  the  first  three  only;  the  highest  and  lowest  in  Christ's 
school,  the  strongest  and  weakest  of  Christ's  family,  have  it,  though 
in  different  degrees.     For, 

1st,  All  of  them  are  spiritual,  because  born  of  the  Spirit;  and 
every  thing  that  brings  forth,  brings  forth  its  like,  John  iii.  6.  As 
soon  as  they  are  born,  ere  ever  they  be  grown,  they  are  spirit  fitted 
for  spiritual  actions.  And  seeing  every  thing  acts  according  to  its 
nature,  the  new  nature  will  make  people  serve  the  Lord  "  in  new- 
ness of  the  spirit,  not  in  the  oldness  of  the  letter,"  Rom.  vii.  6. 

2dli/,  All  of  them  have  the  Spirit  of  God  dwelling  in  them  so 
that  "they  are  not  in  the  flesh,  but  in  the  Spirit,  Rom.  viii.  9. 
Now,  the  Spirit  is  given  to  help  our  infirmities,  and  to  help  us  to 
worship  God  in  the  right  manner.  And  he  will  never  leave  his 
people  altogether  carnal. 

Sdli/,  That  worship  which  is  merely  outward,  and  not  in  the 
spirit,  is  but  the  carcase  of  duties,  unacceptable  to  God ;  and  they 
that  never  perform  more  than  this,  are  but  mere  hypocrites.  Hence, 
says  our  Lord  to  the  Scribes  and  Pharisees,  Matth.  xv.  7,  8,  "  Ye 
hypocrites,  well  did  Esaias  prophesy  of  you,  saying,  This  people 
draweth  nigh  unto  me  with  their  mouth,  and  honoureth  me  with 
their  lips  :  but  their  heart  is  far  from  me." 

4:thli/,  External  worship  is  properly  but  the  means  of  worship ;  all 
outward  ordinances,  as  prayer,  hearing,  &c.  do  tend  to  the  promot- 
ing of  love,  trust,  &c. ;  and  the  enjoyment  of  God  can  never  be 
found  but  in  worshipping  him  in  spirit.  So  that  unless  we  will  say 
a  man  may  be  a  true  Christian,  and  never  enjoy  God  in  any  duty 
it  is  plain  all  Christians  must  worship  God  in  the  Spirit. 

2.  That  none  but  true  Christians  have  this  privilege  is  plain  from 
this,  that  none  other  are  spiritual ;  they  are  in  the  flesh,  and  cannot 
please  God;  they  are  sensual,  (Gr.  soully,  natural,  rational),  not 
having  the  Spirit,  Jude,  ver.  19.  What  they  do,  is  at  best  but  the 
product  of  their  own  spirits ;  which  may  carry  the  length  of  moral 
seriousness,  but  no  further.  None  but  true  Christians  can  ever 
attain  the  spirituality  of  worship. 

THE  APPLICATION'. 

IiTFERENCE  1.  Then  there  are  many  in  the  church  that  are  none 
of  God's  people.     This  casts, 

1.  All  those  that  do  not  worship  God.  There  is  a  generation 
that  call  not  upon  God  at  all,  who  never  bow  a  knee  to  him  in 
secret  or  in  their  families.     Such  are  practical  atheists.     Is  there  a 


OF  WORSHIPPING  GOD  IN  THE  SPIRIT.  477 

God,  aud  will  not  ye  worship  liiin  ?     Remember  that  God  will  not 
acknowledge  you  that  acknowledge  not  him. 

2.  Those  that  halve  their  worship.  As,  (1.)  Those  who  will  wor- 
ship God  in  public,  but  in  their  families  and  closets  not  at  all.  (2.) 
Those  who  perform  outward  duties,  but  never  internal  worship  :  it 
is  the  least  half  ye  do. 

3.  Those  whose  religion  is  confined  to  their  solemn  approaches  to 
God,  but  have  nothing  of  it  in  their  ordinary  conversation  ;  whereas 
the  Christian's  life  is  as  it  were  one  continued  act  of  worship;  he 
is  "  in  the  fear  of  the  Lord  all  the  day  long,"  Prov.  xxiii.  17. 

4.  Those  who  worship  not  God  in  spirit.     And, 

(1.)  Those  whose  worship  is  mere  bodily  exercise,  Matth.  xv.  7, 
8 ;  who  may  shew  a  great  deal  of  devotion  in  their  outward  car- 
riage, but  have  nothing  of  soul-devotion  with  it. 

(2.)  Those  whose  worship  is  only  the  exercise  of  their  own  spirits 
by  themselves,  not  by  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord,  and  are  strangers  to 
the  assistance  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  John  xv.  5.  Without  this  our 
worship  is  but  carnal. 

Inference  2.  Then  all  that  worship  God  in  spirit,  may  thence 
comfortably  conclude,  that  they  are  real  Christians,  true  saints. 
Spiritual  worshippers  are  spiritual  Christians,  the  true  Israel  of 
God,  "  whose  praise  is  not  of  men,  but  of  God ;"  and  shall  be 
gathered  among  the  spirits  of  just  men  made  perfect,  when  carnal 
worshippers  shall  be  led  forth  with  the  workers  of  iniquity.  Now, 
for  ridding  of  marches  here,  I  shall  offer  some  marks  or  characters 
to  distinguish  those  that  worship  God  in  spirit  from  others. 

1.  The  spiritual  worshipper's  soul  goes  along  with  his  body 
in  the  worship  of  God ;  his  heart  is  in  some  measure  brought  up  to 
the  duty.  Hence  he  can  say,  with  the  Psalmist,  Psalm  cxix.  58,  "  I 
entreated  thy  favour  with  my  whole  heart."  His  tongue  aud 
other  members  of  the  body  employed  in  worship,  are  faithful  inter- 
preters of  his  mind  :  Lam.  iii.  41,  "  Let  us  lift  up  our  heart  with 
our  hands  (Heb.  to  our  hands)  unto  God  in  the  heavens."  1  Tim. 
ii.  8,  "  I  will  therefore  that  men  pray  every  where,  lifting  up  holy 
hands,  without  wrath  and  doubting."  Psal.  xxi.  2.  "  Thou  hast 
given  him  his  heart's  desire,  and  hast  not  withholden  the  request  of 
of  his  lips."  The  affections  of  the  mind  answer  the  actions  of  the 
body.  1  Cor.  xiv.  14,  My  spirit  prayeth,  but  ray  understanding" 
which  I  have  of  the  thing  I  pray  for  in  an  unknown  tongue  "  is  un- 
fruitful" (to  others  that  know  not  that  tongue).  A  man's  spirit 
prayeth,  (1.)  when  he  knows  what  he  wants  and  seeks ;  (2.)  when  he 
has  affections  answerable  to  his  petitions,  Rom.  viii.  26. 

But  ah  !  what  shall  we  say  of  that  worship  which  is  but  lip-la- 

2  h2 


478  THE  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

bour,  -where  the  heart  joins  not  with  the  body  ?  His  body  prays, 
but  his  spirit  does  not ;  his  ears  hear,  but  his  heart  is  stopped  ;  his 
mouth  eats  and  drinks  bread  and  wine  in  the  Lord's  supper,  but  his 
soul  feeds  not  on  Christ.  Nay,  this  is  not  spiritual,  but  carnal  wor- 
ship.    There  are  three  ways  how  the  soul  joins  not  in  the  worship. 

1st,  Sometimes  the  man's  spirit  leaves  him  in  duty  quite,  unless  it 
be  just  as  far  as  to  keep  him  from  speaking  nonsense  ;  and  oft-times 
it  leaves  him  so  far,  that  indeed  he  speaks  he  knows  not  what  be- 
fore the  Lord.  The  body  is  there,  but  the  heart  is  gone,  Ezek. 
xxxiii.  31.  The  man  is  active  enough  about  business  till  he  comes 
to  his  knees,  and  then  he  expires  as  it  were  ;  the  heart  leaves  him 
at  the  foot  of  the  mount  of  Grod,  and  he  never  finds  it  till  he  comes 
down  again  from  the  mount  of  duties. 

2dlt/.  Sometimes  the  heart  is  intent  on  the  carcase  of  the  worship, 
but  neglects  the  life  and  soul  of  it.  See  the  picture  of  this  case 
drawn,  1  Cor,  xiii.  1.  "Though  I  speak  with  tongues  of  men  and  of 
angels,  and  have  not  charity,  I  am  become  as  sounding  brass,  or  a 
tinkling  cymbal."  The  man  has  burning  lips,  but  a  naughty  heart, 
"  like  a  potsherd  covered  with  silver  dross,"  Prov.  xxvi.  23.  A 
garb  of  devotion  appears  on  him  outwardly  :  there  is  not  an  irreve- 
rent look  in  hearing,  and  yet  never  a  word  received  with  faith  and 
love ;  there  is  never  a  wrong  word  in  the  prayer,  and  never  one 
right  affection,  or  true  concern  about  the  thing.  This  takes  espe- 
cially in  duties  before  others,  where  the  eyes  and  ears  of  men  are 
on  them  ;  which  the  false  heart  is  more  concerned  to  please,  than 
the  heart-searching  God.  And  hence  are  men  oft-times  very  lively 
to  appearance  in  public,  and  yet  as  dead  and  flat  in  secret  as  ever ; 
for  then  the  wild-fire  goes  out,  when  men  want  the  breath  of  ap- 
plause to  blow  it  up. 

Sdli/,  Sometimes  the  heart  is  so  far  from  joining  in  the  wor- 
ship, that  there  are  particulars  which  it  enters  its  dissent  against. 
"  Lord,  make  me  holy ;  kill  this  lust,  let  me  never  turn  to  it  again," 
says  the  man.  If  the  man  truly  consider  what  he  says,  the  heart 
starts  back  from  this  i>etition,  being  glued  to  that  lust;  and  he 
would  think  that  he  had  but  a  sorry  off-come,  if  God  should  take 
him  at  his  word,  Jer.  xiii.  ult :  and  the  heart  would  say,  as  Peter  in 
another  case,  "  Thou  shalt  never  wash  my  feet :"  and  with  the 
Israelites,  Jer.  ii.  25,  "  I  have  loved  strangers,  and  after  them  will 
I  go." 

But  are  your  hearts  in  good  earnest  in  your  worship  ?  Do  you 
labour  to  bring  your  heart  to  duty,  and  to  fix  it  on  the  life  and 
soul,  and  not  merely  on  the  outward  carcase  of  duty  ?  Are  your 
souls  reconciled  to  the  promises,  which  are  the  rule  of  prayers,  par- 


or  WORSHIPPING  GOD  IN  THE  SPIRIT.  479 

ticularly  to  those  of  universal  sanctification,  so  that  you  hare  no  pe- 
titions against  which  the  heart  dissents ;  your  spirit  goes  along  with 
your  body  in  worship,  and  so  ye  are  worshippers  in  spirit  ?  To 
clear  further  this  mark,  I  shall  here  speak  to  two  questions. 

Question  1.  "  May  not  the  heart  of  a  hypocrite,  in  worshipping 
God,  be  intent  upon  the  thing  he  is  about,  and  have  earnest  affec- 
tions to  obtain  it  ?  I  answer,  he  may.  Felix's  mind  was  not  only 
fixed  on  Paul's  words.  Acts  xxiv.  25,  but  on  the  things  preached  by 
him,  otherwise  he  had  not  trembled  so  as  he  did.  The  stony  ground 
hearers  wanted  not  affection  to  the  word  ;  nor  the  foolish  virgins  in 
their  prayer,  Matth.  xxv.  11,  "  Lord,  Lord,  open  to  us  :"  no  doubt 
they  were  in  earnest  in  it.  But  all  this  amounts  to  no  more  than 
moral  seriousness,  upon  that  principle.  Job  ii.  4,  "  Skin  for  skin,  yea, 
all  that  a  man  hath  will  he  give  for  his  life ;"  which  is  far  different 
from  spiritual  sincerity.  Principles  of  self-love  may  tie  a  man's 
heart  to  those  things  which  his  heart  is  persuaded  are  necessary  to 
his  safety.  And  so  all  those  affections  of  hypocrites  to  spiritual 
things,  are  yet  but  carnal  affections,  proceeding  on  a  comparative, 
not  an  absolute  judgment;  that  is  to  say,  the  man  would  rather  part 
with  his  sin  than  go  to  hell  for  it ;  but  otherwise  he  would  be  as 
loathe  to  part  with  his  lust  as  with  a  limb :  in  which  case,  though 
the  man  hold  out  his  leg  to  the  surgeon  to  be  cut  off,  his  heart  is 
far  from  going  along  with  the  action ;  as  the  Lord  afflicts  his  people 
not  willingly,  Lamb.  iii.  33.  (Heb.)  not  from  his  heart.  But  the 
gracious  soul  goes  along  with  it  on  an  absolute  judgment,  as  the 
prisoner  holds  out  his  legs  to  one  that  would  take  off  the  fetters, 
with  which  the  heart  goes  along. 

QuEESTioN  2.  May  not  a  sincere  soul,  in  worship,  fall  into  those 
things  whereby  we  have  said  the  soul  joins  not  with  the  body  in 
worship?  Answer.  1.  In  the  general,  Every  godly  soul  doth  not  at 
all  times  worship  God  in  Spirit.  Hence  says  the  spouse.  Cant.  iii.  1, 
"  By  night  on  my  bed  I  sought  him  whom  my  soul  lovetli :  I  sought 
him,  but  I  found  him  not."  Sometimes  their  spirits  are  taken  nap- 
ping, and  their  worship  would  be  a  very  sorry  evidence  of  their 
state.  The  flesh  gets  above  the  spirit,  and  then  they  will  be  very 
dead  and  formal.  But  that  is  not  their  way,  but  their  wandering 
off  their  way,  which  they  have  been  on,  and  certainly  will  come 
again  to.  2.  More  particularly,  I  would  say,  (1.)  Though  their 
hearts  may  be  apt  to  wander,  yet  when  they  are  any  thing  awake, 
they  will  struggle  with  them  to  bring  them  up  to  the  duty.  And 
though  they  cannot  hinder  (impertinent  thoughts)  the  birds  to  fly 
about  their  heads,  yet  they  will  endeavour  that  they  do  not  nestle 
in  their  hair,  by  entertaining  thera.     (2.)  So  far  as  these  prevail, 


480  THE  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTKRS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

or  a  greater  intenseness  on  the  carcase  than  life  of  duties,  so  far 
will  the  spiritual  ^yorsilipper  be  disatisfied  with  himself,  and  with 
the  duty,  and  reckon  it  lost  duty  with  respect  to  the  ends  of  wor- 
ship ;  which  must  needs  humble  him,  and  make  him  groan  as  under 
a  burden  which  ho  longs  to  be  rid  of.  (3.)  In  so  far  as  there  is  flesh 
in  hira,  there  will  be  likewise  a  dissent  from  the  petitions  of  the 
npirit,  Gal.  v.  17,  and  its  actings  in  worship ;  but  in  so  far  as  there 
is  Spirit  in  him,  there  will  also  be  an  answer  to  that  dissent  of  the 
flesh,  and  a  protestation  of  adherence  to  the  petition,  and  that  ac- 
cording to  the  law  of  grace  it  may  be  granted,  notwithstanding  the 
dissent  of  the  flesh.  Gal.  v.  17-  "  The  Spirit  [lusteth]  against  the 
flesh,"     All  these  things  we  have,  Rom.  vii.  21 — 24. 

2.  The  spiritual  worshipper  aims  at  the  enjoyment  of  God  him- 
self in  duties.  Hence  we  have  the  declaration  of  the  Psalmist, 
Psalm  xxvii.  4,  "  One  thing  have  I  desired  of  the  Lord,  that  will  I 
seek  after,  that  I  may  dwell  in  the  house  of  the  Lord  all  the  days 
of  my  life,  to  behold  the  beauty  of  the  Lord,  and  to  inquire  in  his 
temple."  And  again,  Psal.  Ixiii.  1,2,  "0  God,  thou  art  my  God, 
early  will  I  seek  thee  :  my  soul  thirsteth  for  thee,  my  flesh  longeth 
for  thee  in  a  dry  and  thirsty  laud,  where  no  water  is  :  to  see  thy 
power  and  thy  glory,  so  as  I  have  seen  thee  in  the  sanctury."  He 
comes  to  the  galleries  of  ordinances,  public,  private,  and  secret, 
because  the  King  is  held  there  ;  goes  through  the  streets  and  broad 
ways  of  duties  to  find  his  soul's  beloved.  Thus  as  God  in  Christ  is 
the  object,  so  he  is  the  end  of  their  worship.  I  will  ofl'er  four  things 
to  clear  this. 

1st,  The  spiritual  worshipper  has  a  spiritual  aim  in  worshipping 
of  God.  It  is  a  heavenly  trade  he  is  driving  by  divine  ordinances, 
a  trade  with  another  world,  to  be  enriched  with  the  product  thereof. 
This  was  the  practice  of  the  apostle,  as  we  learn  from  Phil.  iii.  20, 
*'  Our  conversation  (says  he)  is  in  heaven,  from  whence  also  we  look 
for  the  Saviour,  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ."  He  is  carried  above  the 
little  carnal  designs  that  many  narrow  souls  have  in  their  religion, 
as  that  of  a  name,  Matth.  vi.  2,  or  some  other  carnal  interest,  as 
those  who  followed  Christ  for  the  loaves,  and  many  others  who  make 
religion  lacquey  it  at  the  foot  of  interest. 

2dli/,  The  spiritual  worshipper  aims  at  something  in  duties  above 
self,  even  the  enjoyment  of  God.  0  !  it  is  sad  to  think  how  many 
duties  to  God  are  performed,  so  as  they  run  all  as  Jordan  into  the 
desrd  sea  (of  self)  in  the  end.  Most  men  seek  themselves,  their 
peace,  their  security  from  wrath  by  duties,  rather  than  God.  They 
seek  God,  not  for  himself,  but  for  themselves.  But  when  the  heart 
is  spiritualized,  it  is  uuselfed  ;  God  himself  becomes  man's  chief  end. 


OF  WORSHIPPINa  GOD  IN  THE  SPIRIT.  481 

the  centre  of  the  soul,  to  which  it  natively  tends  by  virtue  of  the 
new  nature,  which  is  a  grace  called  godliness,  2  Pet.  i.  6. 

'Mill,  The  spiritual  worshipper  aims  at  himself,  as  well  as  his 
beneiits,  in  his  worship.  They  come  to  seek  him  in  his  worship,  not 
only  as  a  master,  who  must  get  work,  and  so  will  give  wages  ;  but 
as  a  husband  who  gives  himself  to  his  spouse,  who  gives  herself  to 
him.  It  is  in  the  duties  of  his  worship  that  the  soul  comes  to  be 
united  more  and  more  to  God  in  this  world ;  and  they  are  appointed 
for  that  end,  and  used  for  it  by  saints. 

'Stilly,  The  spiritual  worshipper  aims  at  the  being  partaker  of 
the  divine  nature  in  his  worship.  For  as  the  iron  is  laid  in  the  fire 
that  it  may  be  all  fired ;  so  the  spiritual  worshipper  lays  himself 
before  the  Lord,  that  he  may  be  transformed  into  his  image.  And 
this  is  most  properly  the  enjoyment  of  God  ;  while  the  soul  being 
knit  to  him  by  faith,  his  Spirit  acts  in  the  soul  thus  to  change  it, 
2  Cor  iii.  18.  See  how  God  is  enjoyed  in  heaven,  1  John  iii.  2  "  We 
knoWs  that  when  he  shall  appear,  we  shall  be  like  him;  for  we  shall  see 
him  as  he  is."  And  this  is  a  most  distinguishing  character  of  a  spi- 
ritual wprshipper  ;  for  seeing  the  carnal  mind,  though  never  so  much 
refined,  is  enmity  against  God,  and  all  the  attributes  of  God  are 
not  any  thing  distinct  from  him,  the  heart  of  the  most  refined  hypo- 
crite can  no  more  be  reconciled  to  his  perfections,  than  light  to 
darkness.  Wherefore  the  soul  seeking  to  enjoy  God  in  his  com- 
municable perfections  to  be  holy,  as  he  is  holy,  seeks  the  enjoyment 
of  God  himself,  and  is  a  spiritual  worshipper.  Thus  ye  see  the  na- 
ture of  this  mark.     And  hence  two  things  may  be  fairly  inferred. 

(1.)  That  spiritual  worshippers  look  on  external  duties  only  as 
means  to  communion  with  God,  and  therefore  will  not  rest  in  the 
work  done.  They  are  but  the  way  to  communion  with  God,  and 
therefore  are  valuable  only  as  means.  They  that  look  for  no  more 
of  duties,  but  to  get  them  done  and  by  hand,  and  value  their  duties 
while  they  have  no  enjoyment  of  God  in  them,  are  carnal  worship- 
pers, that  take  up  with  the  grave-clothes,  while  the  Lord  is  not 
there.  Have  over  by  this  sermon,  prayer,  &c.  will  the  saint  say ; 
for  he  is  not  as  he  who  is  to  sail  for  pleasure,  and  therefore  seeks 
not  to  go  over  but  as  a  i)assenger. 

(2.  That  spiritual  worshippers  will  not  be  satisfied  with  duties 
unless  they  enjoy  God  in  them ;  as  was  the  case  with  the  spouse, 
Cant.  iii.  2,  3,  4,  "  I  will  arise  now,  and  go  about  the  city  in  the 
streets,  and  in  the  broad  ways  I  will  seek  him  whom  my  soul  loveth  : 
I  sought  him  but  I  found  him  not.  The  watchmen  that  go  about  the 
city,  found  me  :  to  whom  I  said.  Saw  ye  him  whom  my  soul  loveth  ?  It 
was  but  a  little  that  I  passed  from  them,  but  I  found  him  whom  my 


482  THE  DISTINttUiSHIXa  CnAUACTEKS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

BOul  loveth  :  I  held  him,  and  ttouM  not  let  him  go,  until  I  had 
brought  him  into  my  mother's  house,  and  into  the  chamber  of  her 
that  conceived  me."  "What  avail  the  galleries,  while  the  King  is 
not  seen  walking  in  them  ?  And  if  this  be  so,  few  worship  God  in 
spirit,  seeing  so  many  can  tarry  without  grief  of  heart  at  Jerusalem, 
come  to  sermons,  go  to  prayers,  &c  and  never  see  the  King's  face. 

3.  Spiritual  worshippers  act  in  their  worship  from  a  higher  prin- 
ciple than  their  own  spirits,  even  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord.  Spiritual 
worship  is  a  supernatural  action,  which  carnal  men  are  incapable  of; 
and  therefore  there  must  be  a  supernatural  principle  of  it.  The 
most  refined  hypocrite  doth  but  exercise  a  gift  in  worshipping- 
the  Lord,  and  is  destitute  of  the  sanctifying  Spirit's  influences  ;  their 
own  spirits  at  best  do  but  exert  their  natural  powers  in  the  best 
duties  by  them  performed.  Jude  ver.  19,  carnal  men  are  called  sen- 
sual, (Gr.)  soul-men,  or  men  of  soul,  whose  own  souls  are  their  high- 
est principles ;  and  so  it  is  explained  in  the  next  clause,  they  have 
not  the  Spirit,  which  is  necessary  to  spiritualize  a  soul.  And  so, 
ver.  20,  in  opposition  to  these  they  are  bid  pray  in  the  Holy  Ghost. 
And  the  performing  of  spiritual  worship  thus,  says, 

1st,  The  spiritual  worshipper  looks  not  and  lippens  not  to  his 
stock  within  him  for  the  performance  of  duties,  but  comes  to  duty 
under  a  sense  of  wants  and  weakness.  Hence  says  the  apostle, 
2  Cor.  iii.  5,  "  We  are  not  sufficient  of  ourselves  to  think  any  thing 
as  of  ourselves  :  but  our  sufficiency  is  of  God."  He  dare  not  adven- 
ture on  the  Lord's  work  in  his  own  strength  ;  whereas  the  conceity 
hypocrite  lippens  to  and  works  the  duty  out  of  the  stock  within  him  ; 
for  he  is  never  poor  in  spirit,  Matth.  v.  3. 

2dly,  He  looks  to  the  Lord  for  the  influences  of  his  Spirit,  crying^ 
and  spreading  out  his  sails  for  a  gale  from  above  ;  as  did  the  spouse. 
Cant.  iv.  ult.,  "  Awake  0  north-wind,  and  come,  thou  south,  blow 
upon  my  garden,  that  the  spices  thereof  may  flow  out."  He  stretch- 
eth  out  the  withered  hand  to  Christ.  "  Here  is  the  word.  Lord, 
send  the  Spirit  to  "  make  it  eff'ectual,"  &c.  And  this  is  the  exercise 
of  faith  absolutely  necessary  to  spiritual  worship ;  for  its  work  is 
to  fetch  the  fire  of  the  Spirit  from  Christ  our  altar,  to  set  to  the  in- 
cense we  ofi'er.  It  is  that  which  travels  for  ability  for  duty  betwixt 
Christ's  fulness  and  the  creature's  emptiness,  setting  down  the  blind 
and  lame  at  Christ's  door. 

The  worshipping  of  God  thas  by  the  Spirit  is  so  necessary,  that 
no  worship  is  pleasing  to  God  but  what  is  thus  performed.  For 
Christ  will  not  put  in  his  censer  of  intercession,  but  what  is  the  product 
of  his  own  Spirit.  Hence  says  the  Apostle,  Eph.  ii.  18,  "Through 
Christ  we  have  both  an  access  by  one  spirit  unto  the  Father."     And 


OF  WOKSHIPFINGf  GOD  IN  THE  SPIRIT.  483 

it  is  the  iuwrought  prayer  (as  that  word,  James  v.  16,  may  be  read ; 
or  a  prayer  with  such  vhemeucy,  as  one  possessed  by  a  spirit  doth 
express  himself)  that  availeth.  And  a  groan  thus  delivered,  is  bet- 
ter than  a  prayer  from  our  own  spirits,  merely  adorned  with  all  the 
flowers  of  oratory. 

Here  a  grave  question  comes  to  be  handled,  viz.  How  we  may 
distinguish  betwixt  exercising  a  gift  in  duty,  and  acting  from  the 
influences  of  the  Spirit?  Enlargement  will  not  do  it;  for  nature 
has  its  own  enlargements,  and  there  may  be  a  straitening  in  a  gift 
and  enlargement  in  it  too,  as  well  as  in  grace,  Zech.  xi.  ult.  Thus 
God  both  enlarged  and  straitened  Saul  in  his  gift  of  wisdom,  con- 
duct, and  courage.  Delight  in  the  duty  Avill  not  do  it  either,  Ezek. 
xxxiii.  32.  Other  folk's  gifts  may  greatly  delight  us  in  the  exercise 
of  them  ;  and  an  easy  and  neat  exercise  of  a  man's  own  gift,  may 
be  very  pleasant  melody  in  the  man's  own  carnal  ears.     But, 

1.  All  the  influences  of  the  Spirit  are  humbling;  and  always  the 
more  of  them,  the  more  humble  and  vile  they  make  the  man  in  his 
own  eyes.  This  may  be  seen  in  the  angels,  who  though  they  are 
without  sin,  yet  being  under  the  most  abundant  influences  of  the 
Spirit,  do  cast  vile  man  a  copy  of  humility,  Isa.  vi.  2,  3,  "  Above  it 
stood  the  seraphims :  each  one  had  six  wings ;  with  twain  he 
covered  his  face,  and  with  twain  he  covered  his  feet,  and  with  twain 
he  did  fly.  And  one  cried  unto  another,  and  said,  Holy,  holy,  holy 
is  the  Lord  of  hosts,  the  whole  earth  is  full  of  his  glory."  Behold 
it  in  the  man  Christ,  to  whom  the  Spirit  was  given  without  measure, 
who  was  most  exemplary  in  humility,  Matth.  xi.  29,  "  Learn  of 
me,"  says  he,  "  for  I  am  meek  and  lowly  in  heart."  And  it  may  be 
observed  of  all  the  saints  of  God,  that  the  more  of  the  influence  of 
the  Spirit  they  had,  they  were  always  the  more  humble ;  as  we  may 
see  from  the  instances  of  Abraham,  Job,  and  Isaiah.  Paul,  after 
he  was  rapt  up  to  the  third  heavens,  was  in  his  own  eyes  nothing, 
2  Cor.  xii.  11.  And  the  reason  is  plain,  for  the  influences  of  the 
Spirit  do  always  carry  up  the  soul  to  whence  they  came  ;  as  the 
waters  of  the  deluge,  the  more  they  increased,  they  carried  the  ark 
still  nearer  heaven :  and  the  nearer  we  come  to  the  light  of  God's 
countenance,  our  wants,  weakness,  and  nothingness,  must  still  ap- 
pear the  more. 

On  the  other  hand,  the  exercise  of  a  gift  merely,  leaves  always 
the  soul  in  the  same  unhumbled  state  it  found  it.  For  it  is  impos- 
sible that  nature  should  work  the  soul  into  a  gracious  disposition  ; 
and  nature's  force  is  too  weak  to  beat  down  the  natural  pride  of  the 
heart.  Nay,  nature  will  build  up  nature  ;  and  the  better  the  gift  is 
exercised,  it  will  swell  the    heart  the  more :  hence  pnl)licans  and 


484  THE  DISTINGUISHIIfG  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIAKS. 

harlots  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven  before  Pharisees :  Isa. 
Iviii.  3,  "  Wherefore  have  wo  fasted,  say  they,  and  thou  seest  not  ? 
wherefore  liave  we  afflicted  our  soul,  and  thou  takest  no  know- 
ledge ?"  And  thus  many  ssvell  with  the  little  gift  they  get,  till 
they  burst  all  bonds. 

2.  The  Spirit's  influences  in  duty  fill  the  soul  with  a  reverential 
fear  of  God  in  duty,  Heb.  xii.  28.  which  is  excellent  ballast  to  a 
light  and  frothy  heart;  and  always  the  more  of  it,  the  more  reve- 
rence of  God,  Gen.  xxviii.  17.  The  reason  is,  because  the  Spirit  is 
the  Spirit  of  adoption.  Gal.  iv.  6 ;  and  so  will  work  a  child-like  dis- 
position in  the  soul  towards  God,  as  towards  a  father,  and  a  hea- 
venly father :  so  that  the  greatest  familiarity  with  God  will  not 
work  out,  but  work  forward  this  reverence.  Psalm  xlv.  9,  "  Upon 
thy  right  hand  did  stand,"  in  token  of  reverence,  "  the  queen  in 
gold  of  Ophir." 

But  the  mere  exercise  of  a  gift  in  duty  can  never  impress  this 
holy  reverence  of  God  on  the  soul ;  witness  that  lightness  and 
frothiness  of  heart  which  men,  that  way,  bring  with  them  from 
duty,  Prov.  vii.  14,  15.  For  gifts  exercised  without  the  Spirit, 
raise  a  cloud  in  the  soul ;  are  liglit  in  the  inside,  dark  in  the  out- 
side ;  whereby  the  more  they  see  of  themselves,  the  less  they  see 
of  God ;  and  so  their  deluded  spirits  seem  the  more  to  be  near  an 
equal  level  with  him.  To  clear  this  further,  I  shall  propose  and  re- 
solve some  questions :  As, 

Question  1.  May  not  a  hypocrite  have  in  duty  a  great  fear  of 
God  on  his  spirit?  Answer.  A  slavish  fear  of  God  as  almighty 
and  a  judge,  which  casteth  out  love,  a  mau  may  have,  as  Felix  had 
in  hearing  Paul :  but  this  filial  reverential  fear  of  God  intermixed 
with  love  he  cannot  have,  seeing  he  has  not  the  Spirit  of  adoption  ; 
whose  work  it  is  to  knit  the  saint's  hearts  to  God  as  a  Friend  and 
Father,  and  to  draw  them  after  him  with  such  child-like  affections, 
as  makes  them  delight  in  his  commands  and  providences.  Hence 
says  the  apostle,  2  Tim.  i.  7,  "  God  hath  not  given  us  the  spirit  of 
fear;  but  of  power,  and  of  love,  and  of  a  sound  mind;"  (Gr.)  a 
healing  of  mind,  viz.  from  that  slavish  fear. 

Question  2.  But  can  saints  have  no  such  slavish  fear  of  God  ? 
Answer.  As  all  the  graces  of  the  Spirit  are  imperfect  and  mixed  in 
the  saints,  so  is  their  fear  of  God  not  without  a  mixture  of  that  slav- 
ishness.  Hence  saith  Jesus  uuto  his  disciples,  Matth.  viii.  26,  "  Why 
are  ye  so  fearful,  0  ye  of  little  faith  ?  It  is  the  same  word  as  2  Tim. 
i.  7.  It  is  true,  God  never  again  gives  them  the  spirit  of  bondage  ; 
but  they  may,  through  unbelief,  take  up  a  spirit  of  bondage  again. 
But  seeing  they  can  never  again  lose  the  Spirit  of  adoption,  neither 


OF  MOESHIPPIlfG  GOD  IJf  THE  SPIRIT.  485 

can  they  lose  that  grace  of  filial  reverential  fear  altogether :  so  that 
there  is  still  as  much  difference  betwixt  them  and  hypocrites,  as 
betwixt  the  malefactor  fearing  the  judge,  and  a  son's  fearing  his 
father;  who  appears  enraged  against  him,  and  about  to  put  him  out 
of  his  house  ;  which  yet  will  not  kill  natural  affection. 

Question  3.  Eut  how  can  the  saints  fear  God  as  a  Father,  when 
they  are  not  assured  they  are  his  children  ?  Answer.  The  Spirit's 
operations  depend  not  on  our  sense  and  knowledge  of  them.  This 
was  the  wise  observation  of  Solomon,  Eccl.  xi.  5,  "  As  thou  knowest 
not  what  is  the  way  of  the  Spirit,  nor  how  the  bones  do  grow  in  the 
womb  of  her  that  is  with  child  :  even  so  thou  knowest  not  tho 
works  of  God  who  maketh  all."  But  as  the  Spirit  sanctifies  the 
saints  whether  they  know  it  or  not,  so  he  works  that  filial  fear  of 
God  in  them,  whether  they  know  it  or  not.  God's  children  are  like 
those  infants,  who  though  they  know  not  their  father,  yet  by  their 
features  do  father  themselves. 

3.  The  influences  of  the  Spirit  are  always  sanctifying,  as  well  as 
assisting  to  duty  :  Zech  xii.  10,  "  I  will  pour,"  saith  the  Lord,  "  upon 
the  house  of  David,  and  upon  the  inhabitants  of  Jerusalem,  the 
spirit  of  grace  and  of  supplications."  They  are,  as  the  Baptist  was, 
a  burning  and  shining  light.  "When  the  Spirit  was  poured  out, 
according  to  that  prophecy,  Joel  ii.  28;  Acts  ii.  3,  there  appeared 
cloven  tongues,  as  of  fire.  Behold  the  nature  of  the  Spirit's  influ- 
ences. (1.)  They  give  a  man  a  new  tongue  to  speak  of  and  to  God. 
It  is  a  dumb  devil,  aud  not  tlie  Spirit,  that  makes  men  tongue-tied 
iu  prayers  to  and  praises  of  God.  (2.)  They  are  sanctifying,  burn- 
ing up  corruption  in  their  heart  and  life,  as  tongues  of  fire.  For  as 
when  at  Babel  languages  were  confounded,  and  so  the  holy  tongue 
in  which  people  were  taught  remained  but  with  a  few,  then  the 
world  lost  the  knowledge  of  God,  and  grew  most  corrupt  in  their 
lives  ;  so  when  God  was  about  to  remedy  this  with  the  gift  of 
tongues,  these  appeared  as  of  fire,  because  of  the  dross  of  the  world 
that  was  to  be  burnt  up  therewith.  Thus  the  Spirit's  influences  in 
duty  still  tend  to  make  the  man  more  holy  in  heart  and  life,  set 
him  more  at  odds  with  sin,  and  steel  his  spirit  with  new  vigour  to 
pursue  holiness.  Hence  we  have  that  speech  of  the  psalmist,  Psal. 
vi.  8,  9,  "  Depart  from  me,  all  ye  workers  of  iniquity ;  for  the  Lord 
hath  heard  the  voice  of  ray  weeping.  The  Lord  hath  heard  my 
supplications ;  the  Lord  will  receive  my  prayer." 

But  the  exercise  of  a  gift  leaves  the  man  still  as  unholy  as 
before,  as  much  in  love  with  lusts  as  before ;  as  we  learn  from  the 
case  of  those  of  whom  Christ  says,  Matth.  vii.  22,  23,  "  Many  will 
say  to  me  in  that  day.  Lord,  Lord,  liave  we  not  prophesied  in  thy 


486  THE  DISTINGUISUING   CUABACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

name  ?  and  in  thy  name  have  cast  out  devils  ?  and  in  thy  name 
done  many  wonderful  works  ?  And  then  will  I  profess  unto  them, 
I  never  knew  you  :  depart  from  me,  ye  that  work  iniquity."  Truth 
is  prisoner  in  their  heads. 

And  so  much  for  the  marks  of  spiritual  worshippers.  I  come 
now  to 

iNrERENCE  3.  Learn  from  this  not  to  think  of  gifts  for  duty 
above  what  is  meet.  The  matter  of  gifts  for  duty  is  abused  by  two 
sorts  of  persons,  the  proud  hypocrite,  and  the  weak  Christian. 
From  this  doctrine  I  have  a  word  to  both. 

1.  To  the  proud  hypocrite.     And, 

1st.  Are  those,  and  only  those,  God's  people,  true  saints,  real 
Christians,  who  worship  Glod  in  the  spirit  ?  then  ye  pitifully  miss 
the  mark,  when  ye  are  more  careful  to  get  the  gift  than  the  grace 
of  duty  ;  more  concerned  to  order  your  tongues  than  your  hearts  in 
prayer.  Gifts  come  from  God  indeed ;  but  there  is  less  of  God  iu 
them  than  grace,  and  that  makes  them  more  desirable  than  grace  to 
a  corrupt  heart. 

2dly,  Be  not  proud  of  the  gifts  for  duty  that  ye  have.  If  ye 
have  a  gift  of  prayer,  judgment,  or  memory,  or  utterance,  &c.,  think 
not  much  of  it.  Truly  we  have  no  such  reason ;  and  if  we  had  no 
more  of  the  hellish  gift  of  discerning  our  own  attainments  and  ex- 
cellencies, than  of  other  gifts  from  thfi  Lord,  we  would  not  he  so 
conceity.  It  is  light  from  an  ill  airth  that  gives  a  man  such  a  view 
of  his  gifts  as  to  be  puffed  up  with  them,  1  Tim.  iii.  6.  It  is  such  a 
light  as  appears  before  a  man's  eyes  when  he  has  got  such  a  stroke 
on  the  head  as  blinds  him.     But  consider, 

(1.)  They  are  God's  gifts  indeed;  but  they  are  but  left  hand 
ones,  a  crown  that  he  can  set  on  your  head  with  one  hand,  and 
within  a  little  take  from  you  with  the  other,  as  he  did  Saul's. 
They  are  of  that  sort  that  are  common  to  Christ's  sheep  and  the 
devil's  goats.  Grace  is  of  another  nature,  a  right  hand  gift,  with 
which  God  gives  his  heart,  and  is  without  repentance. 

(2.)  They  can  help  you  to  the  outside  of  duty ;  but,  alas  !  they 
can  reach  no  farther ;  and  what  for  serves  the  carcase  of  duty  ?  Ye 
may  worship  God  with  a  gift ;  but  that  is  not  worshipping  in  spirit, 
and  so  cannot  set  you  among  the  children.  The  weak  Christian 
that  would  think  shame  to  speak  before  you  now,  shall  be  brought 
in,  when  the  door  of  heaven  shall  be  cast  in  your  face  for  ever,  if  ye 
have  no  more. 

(3.)  Your  gifts  may  be  useful  to  others ;  but,  alas  !  they  are  use- 
less to  you  as  to  any  spiritual  profit.  Hence  says  the  apostle, 
1  Cor.  xiii.  1,  2,  3,  "Though  I  speak  with  the  tongues  of  men,  and 


OP  WORSHIPPIFa  GOD  TS  THE  SPIRIT.  487 

of  angels,  and  have  not  chanty,  I  am  become  as  sounding  brass,  or 
a  tinkling  cymbal.  And  though  I  have  the  gift  of  prophecy,  and 
understand  all  mysteries,  and  all  knowledge  ;  and  though  I  have 
all  faith,  so  that  I  could  remove  mountains,  and  have  not  charity,  I 
am  nothing.  And  though  I  bestow  all  my  goods  to  feed  the  poor, 
and  though  I  give  my  body  to  be  burned,  and  have  not  charity,  it 
profiteth  me  nothing.  All  is  yours,  whether  Paul,  or  Apollos,  or 
Cephas,  or  the  world,  or  life,  or  death,  or  things  present,  or  things 
to  come,"  0  believers;  even  hypocrites'  gifts  are  yours;  they  are 
given  them,  not  for  their  own  sake,  but  the  sake  of  others.  The 
carpenters  that  built  the  ark,  the  profit  of  their  gift  came  to  Noah, 
not  to  them,  for  they  perished  in  the  deluge.  So  was  the  case  with 
the  raven  that  fed  Elijah.  Your  gifts  may  be  means  to  save  others, 
while  ye  perish  yourselves. 

(4.)  You  may  go  to  hell  for  all  your  gifts,  1  Cor.  xiii.  1,  2; 
Matth.  vii.  22,  23,  forecited.  Light  without  heat  serves  only  to 
show  the  way  to  the  place  where  there  is  heat  without  light,  i.  e.  to 
outer  darkness,  where  the  fire  is  never  quenched.  Gifts  without 
grace  are  like  a  ship  without  balast,  that  will  easily  perish.  And 
when  such  a  man  is  sinking  into  hell,  his  gifts  will  be  like  a  bag  of 
gold  on  a  drowning  man,  precious  in  itself,  but  will  only  help  to 
sink  him  the  deeper.  The  devil  has  greater  gifts  than  the  best 
gifted  in  the  world ;  and  some  have  thought  it  was  his  pride  of  his 
endowments  that  ruined  him  ;  however,  it  is  certain  he  is  ruined 
notwithstanding  his  gifts. 

2.  Some  weak  Christians  are  ready  to  be  discouraged  because 
they  want  those  gifts  for  duty  that  they  see  others  have,  and  from 
thence  may  be  ready  to  conclude  they  have  neither  the  gift  nor 
grace  of  duty.     To  such  I  say, 

1st,  Your  conclusion  is  rash  ;  grace  may  be  where  there  is  but  a 
very  small  measure  of  gifts  :  1  Cor.  i.  26,  27,  28,  "  For  ye  see  your 
calling,  brethren,  how  that  not  many  wise  men  after  the  flesh,  not 
many  mighty,  not  many  noble  are  called.  But  God  hath  chosen 
the  foolish  things  of  the  world,  to  confound  the  wise  ;  and  God  hath 
chosen  the  weak  things  of  the  world,  to  confound  the  things  which 
are  mighty  :  and  base  things  of  the  world,  and  things  which  are  de- 
spised, hath  God  chosen,  yea,  and  things  which  are  not,  to  brino-  to 
nought  things  that  are."  It  was  the  plain  man  Jacob  (Gen.  xxv. 
27.)  who  was  the  prevailer  with  God;  and  the  Spirit  helps  our 
infirmities  with  groanings  which  cannot  be  uttered,"  not  with  flour- 
ishes of  rhetoric. 

2dlf/,  It  is  not  the  gift  of  duty,  but  the  grace  of  it,  that  is  accept- 
able with  God.     Grace  with  little  gifts  will  go  far,  even  to  the  throne 


488  THE  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

of  God  :  Rom.  vii.  26,  27,  "  Likewise  the  Spirit  also  helpetli  our 
infirmities  :  for  we  know  not  what  we  should  pray  for  as  we  ought: 
but  the  Spirit  itself  maketh  intercession  for  us  with  groanings  which 
cannot  be  uttered.  And  he  that  searcheth  the  hearts,  knoweth 
what  is  the  mind  of  the  Spirit,  because  he  maketh  intercession  for 
the  saints  according  to  the  will  of  God."  As  a  father  loves  the 
lisping  speeches  of  his  child  better  than  the  empty  well-worded  com- 
pliments of  another,  so  doth  the  Lord  the  duties  of  his  own  people. 
The  glory  of  the  second  house  was  to  be  greater  than  the  first; 
there  was  more  gold  in  the  first,  but  more  grace,  even  Christ  in  the 
second.  So  if  Christ  be  in  thy  soul,  there  will  be  much  grace,  how- 
ever little  of  gifts.  If  a  beggar  come  to  you,  ye  do  not  wait  till 
he  show  his  parts,  but  till  he  show  his  needs  ;  and  if  he  show  you 
his  sores,  though  he  speak  very  ill,  it  is  enough,  he  is  a  needy  beg- 
gar, he  must  be  served. 

^dly,  Great  gifts  had  need  of  a  great  measure  of  grace  to  be  bal- 
last to  them.  And  it  is  God's  goodness  to  some,  that  they  have  no 
great  gifts,  they  have  so  little  grace  to  guide  them  with.  God  does 
with  them  as  a  wiser  father  with  his  son  that  has  but  a  little  stock ; 
he  sets  him  down  in  a  little  farm,  lest  too  much  in  hand  should 
master  him.  It  may  be  observed,  that  the  men,  the  saints  of 
greatest  parts,  have  usually  got  the  sharpest  exercises  to  be  ballast 
to  their  gifts,  lest  their  heads  turning  over  heavy  for  their  hearts, 
should  truss  them  up,  2  Cor.  xii.  7-  And  ye  see  how  it  did  in  Solo- 
mon's case,  the  wisest  of  men;  his  gifts  mastered  his  grace,  and 
made  him  a  fool  to  a  degree.  And  how  it  broke  his  b  ones,  see  in 
his  penitentials,  Eccl.  per  totum.  Take  for  instance  Heman,  a  man 
of  vast  parts,  1  Kings  iv.  81,  compare  his  Psalm.  Ixxxviii.  Job 
as  an  oracle  for  wit  among  his  neighbours.  Job  xxix.  8,  9,  10 — 21 
— 25.  Paul  the  only  scholar  among  the  apostles,  see  -Acts  ix.  and 
2  Cor.  xii.     Let  the  Christian  be  thankful  for  what  he  has. 

4:thlt/,  Thou  hast  the  thing  that  is  better,  that  is,  grace  ;  a  little 
gold  is  better  than  a  lump  of  lead.  Dost  thou  come  with  thy  heart  to 
God  in  duty  ?  aimest  thou  at  the  enjoyment  of  himself  in  duty  ?  goest 
thou  out  of  thyself  to  the  Lord  for  ability  for  duty  ?  then  though 
thy  gifts  are  very  small,  thou  worshippest  in  spirit.  Good  meat 
never  tastes  the  worse  that  it  is  served  up  in  a  wooden  dish ;  it  is  as 
good  as  in  a  golden  platter,  though  the  last  makes  the  greatest  dash 
in  the  eyes  of  spectators.  If  thy  aifections  to  God  in  duty  be  fer- 
vent, though  your  words  be  not  very  fine,  they  will  never  be  cast  in 
heaven  for  this. 

I  discharge  them  that  are  possessed  with  the  dumb  devil,  to 
meddle  with  this  I  have  been  saying.     They  will  not  bow  a  knee  to 


OF  WORSHIPPING  GOD  IN  SPIRIT,  489 

God,  because,  forsooth,  they  canuot  pray.  They  will  not  open  a 
mouth  for  God,  because  they  have  not  the  gift  that  others  have  ; 
they  will  not  speak  of  spiritual  things,  and  care  as  little  to  hear 
them  spoken  of.  They  are  grossly  ignorant  of  the  principles  of 
religion  ;  but  they  are  at  as  little  pains  to  get  knowledge,  and  will 
not.  But  now,  say  they,  we  have  not  the  gift,  but  God  knows  our 
hearts.  But  I  tell  you  that  are  such,  ye  have  neither  the  gift  nor 
the  grace  of  duty.  It  is  true,  God's  children  may  be  stammerers  in 
speaking  to  or  of  him,  but  none  of  them  are  dumb  like  you.  .  Their 
want  of  gifts  is  not  such  as  to  make  them  neglect  the  very  matter  of 
external  duty  as  ye  do.  And  what  they  have  not,  they  desire  to 
have,  and  endeavour  to  win  at,  that  they  may  glorify  God  with  it. 

Inference  4.  Learn  from  this  not  to  think  much  of  the  bare  per- 
formance of  duties.  We  have  need  to  have  our  thoughts  of  our 
duties  corrected.     And  this  doctrine  affords, 

1.  A  confounding  lesson  to  formal  hypocrites  anent  their  duties; 
and  that  is,  that  all  the  duties  they  have  been  working  at  all  their 
days,  are  naught  in  the  sight  of  God,  because  they  were  never  spi- 
ritual worshippers.  Perhaps  ye  will  be  counting  ye  have  served 
God  so  many  years  ;  ye  pray  twice,  thrice,  or  oftener  in  a  day,  heard 
so  many  sermons,  received  so  many  communions,  &c.  and  be  ready 
to  value  yourselves  on  this.  But  dreadfully  will  the  count  come 
down  when  God  looks  on  it ;  it  will  turn  to  nothing  at  all  in  point 
of  duty.  Nay,  ye  will  find  them  all  set  down  in  another  count,  the 
count  of  your  works  of  iniquity,  where  they  will  make  so  many 
black  items.  0  how  will  the  man's  heart  fail  him  to  hear  what  jus- 
tice has  to  lay  to  his  charge  !  Imprimis,  unbelief,  not  believing  in 
the  Son  of  God ;  item,  God's  name  taken  in  vain  in  so  many  pre- 
tended prayers  ;  item,  so  many  sermons  heard  without  faith,  love, 
and  practice  ;  item,  so  often  bread  and  wine  eaten  at  God's  table, 
while  there  was  no  feeding  on  a  crucified  Christ,  «Sic.  Matth.  vii. 
22,  23,  *'  Many  will  say  to  me  in  that  day,  Lord,  Lord,  have  we  not 
prophesied  in  thy  name  ?  and  in  thy  name  have  cast  out  devils  ? 
and  in  thy  name  have  done  many  wonderful  works  ?  And  then  will 
I  profess  unto  them,  I  never  knew  you :  depart  from  me,  ye  that 
work  iniquity."  Whence  observe,  the  wonderful  works  they  did 
for  Christ,  which  themselves  and  others  wondered  at,  are  in  Christ's 
account  works  of  iniquity.  We  make  a  tripartite  division  of 
people  in  the  visible  church.  (1.)  Some  that  serve  God  sin- 
cerely. (2.)  Some  that  serve  him  hypocritically.  (3.)  Some  that 
serve  him  not  at  all.  God  makes  but  two  sorts,  casting  the  two  last 
into  one,  Mai.  iii.  18,  "  Then  shall  ye  return  and  discern  between 
the  righteous  and  the  wicked ;  between  him  that  serveth  God,  and 


490  THE  DISTINGUISHiyft  CH.VUACTERS  OP  REAL  CHRISTIANg. 

lura  that  serveth  liinl  not.  Compare  ver.  17,  "  And  they  shall  bo 
mine,  saith  the  Lord  of  Hosts,  in  that  day  when  I  make  up  my 
jewels,  and  I  will  spai'e  them  as  a  man  spareth  his  own  son  that  ser- 
veth him."  Whence  learn  (1.)  The  righteous  only  serve  God;  as 
for  others,  whatever  be  the  difference  among  them,  they  agree  in 
that,  both  profane  folk  and  hypocrites,  that  they  serve  not  God. 
(2.)  A  man  who  is  not  a  cliild  of  God,  can  perform  no  service  to 
God  in  his  account ;  slaves'  service  is  no  service,  Hos.  vii.  14.  The 
Lord's  people  are  the  children  that  serve  him  as  a  Father. 

2.  This  doctrine  affords  a  humbling  lesson  to  the  godly  anent  their 
duties.  Many  of  your  duties  are  naught  in  the  sight  of  God.  If 
only  spiritual  worshippers  be  real  saints,  ye  act  not  as  saints  in 
any  duties  but  those  that  are  done  in  the  spirit.  And  truly  if  this 
be  so,  it  will  do  two  things. 

1st,  It  will  bring  your  great  number  of  duties  down  to  very  few, 
so  that  all  ye  have  done  for  God  may  be  soon  told.  Since  ye  were 
acquainted  with  Christ,  ye  durst  never  perhaps  rise  up  nor  lie 
down  without  praying ;  but  when  these  things  come  before  the  Lord, 
it  will  be  found  there  has  been  found  many  a  day  and  week  ye  have 
prayed  none  at  all ;  many  a  sabbath  in  the  kirk  when  ye  have  not 
heard  the  sermon ;  many  a  sweet  portion  of  Scripture  ye  never  read 
to  this  day,  though  ye  have  gone  over  and  over  it  again. 

2dli/,  It  will  make  many  a  long  duty  of  yours  very  short.  Let 
that  be  taken  off  the  duty  that  was  not  done  in  the  spirit,  and  off  it 
must  go,  many  a  long  prayer  and  sermon  will  be  brought  to  a  very 
few  sentences  that  ye  have  heard  or  prayed ;  and  many  a  sentence 
broken  off  in  the  midst  where  the  heart  left  the  man.  I  trow  the 
skin  and  the  dung  of  your  sacrifices  that  must  be  burnt  without  the 
camp,  will  be  more  bulk  than  all  the  flesh  of  them  that  has  come  on 
God's  altar. 

3.  It  affords  a  necessary  lesson  to  both,  namely,  Ye  need  Christ, 
ye  cannot  be  without  him.  0  how  does  the  profane  world  need 
Christ !  But,  0  Sirs,  ye  need  him  as  really  when  ye  are  going  to 
your  prayers,  as  the  man  that  is  going  in  the  devil's  fetters  to  his 
cups  and  his  drunken  companions  needs  him ;  ye  need  him  as  really 
when  ye  are  going  to  the  sermon  on  the  Lord's  day,  as  he  who  pro- 
fanely casts  contempt  on  God's  ordinance,  by  loitering  at  home  on 
the  Lord's  day.  Ye  need  him  when  ye  are  mourning  over  your 
sins,  as  well  as  others  when  they  are  revelling,  and  going  the  broad 
gate  with  tabret  and  pipe. 

1st,  Ye  need  himself.  Sinners,  ye  need  himself,  to  be  united  to 
him,  to  be  one  spirit  with  him.  Hence  says  he,  John  xv.  6,  "  If  a 
man  abide  not  in  me,  he  is  cast  forth  as  a  branch,  and  is  withered  ; 


OF  WORSHIPPING  GOD  IN  THE  SPIRIT.  491 

and  men  gather  them,  and  cast  them  into  the  fire,  and  they  are 
burned."  If  he  would  give  you  never  so  many  gifts,  if  ye  get  not 
himself  ye  are  nothing,  "ye  can  do  nothing,"  ver.  5.  There  is 
nothing  can  make  up  his  room.  An  eternal  barrenness  will  lie  on 
your  souls ;  the  heavens  will  be  as  brass  above  you,  and  the  earth 
as  iron  beneath  you,  if  ye  get  not  himself.  And  the  axe  of  God's 
judgments  will  hew  you  down  with  your  wild  grapes,  as  well  as 
others  that  have  no  shew  of  fruit,  if  ye  get  not  himself.  If  ye  grow 
on  your  own  root,  though  ye  should  water  it  every  day  with  your 
tears,  yea  tears  of  your  blood,  if  ye  get  not  Christ,  your  root  shall 
be  as  rottenness,  and  your  blossom  shall  go  up  as  dust.  Root  and 
fruit  shall  be  destroyed  for  ever  from  the  presence  of  the  Lord. 

Saints,  ye  need  himself,  to  be  more  and  more  closely  united  to 
him,  to  be  growing  up  into  him,  Eph.  iv.  15.  According  to  your 
faith  so  will  it  be  unto  you,  not  only  in  point  of  privilege,  but 
in  point  of  duty,  in  point  of  holiness.  Ye  have  come  to  Christ,  but 
ye  must  be  always  coming  to  him,  1  Pet.  ii.  4.  Mind  to  whom  that 
was  said,  John  xv.  4,  5,  "Abide  in  me,  and  I  in  you.  As  the 
branch  cannot  bear  fruit  of  itself,  except  it  abide  in  the  vine ;  no 
more  can  ye,  except  ye  abide  in  me.  I  am  the  vine,  ye  are  the 
branches :  He  that  abideth  in  me,  and  I  in  him,  the  same  bringeth 
forth  much  fruit ;  for  without  me  ye  can  do  nothing."  Ye  need 
him  for  "  wisdom,  righteousness,  sanctification,  and  redemption," 
1  Cor.  i.  30.  And  it  is  he  that  God  has  made  "  our  wisdom,  and 
righteousness,  and  sanctification,  and  redemption."  Ye  need  him 
for  all. 

2dly,  Ye  need  his  blood.  Sinners,  ye  need  it;  ye  need  it  to 
make  your  persons  accepted,  to  consecrate  you  for  servants  to  the 
Lord,  Heb.  ix.  19.  to  be  priests  unto  God :  and  without  the  sprink- 
ling of  that  blood  on  you,  God  will  no  more  regard  your  services, 
than  a  sacrifice  by  one  who  was  never  consecrated  a  priest ;  for  all 
spiritual  worshippers  are  made  priests,  1  Pet.  ii.  9.  Ye  need  it  to 
take  away  the  guilt  of  your  dead  works  of  duties,  which,  till  it  be 
removed  from  your  conscience,  utterly  unfits  you  to  serve  the  living 
God ;  as  they  which  were  defiled  with  the  touch  of  a  dead  body 
might  not  come  into  the  tabernacle ;  to  which  the  apostle  alludes, 
Heb.  ix.  14. 

Saints,  ye  need  his  blood.  It  is  true,  ye  are  washed  in  that  blood 
already,  but  new  defilements  require  new  washings,  John  xiii.  10. 
There  is  an  allusion  there  to  the  priests  under  the  law,  who  were  to 
bathe  their  whole  bodies  in  the  morning,  but  notwithstanding  at 
every  new  service  through  the  day  they  were  to  wash  their  hands 
and  feet  ere   they  approached  the  altar.     Now,  ye  are  washed  in 

YoL.  lY.  2  I 


492  TUE  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS 

respect  of  your  state,  tliat  continues  ;  but  ye  must  still  be  washing 
for  the  iniquities  of  your  heels,  that  at  every  turn  are  compassing 
you  about.  Therefore  the  sea  of  glass  stands  always  betwixt  the 
saints  and  the  throne.  Rev.  iv.  6. 

Mly,  Ye  need  his  Spirit.  Sinners,  ye  need  him;  there  is  no 
worshipping  in  sj)irit  without  the  Spirit.  They  are  but  lifeless  car- 
cases of  duty  that  are  performed  without  the  Spirit.  That  which 
died  of  itself  was  utterly  unfit  for  a  sacrifice ;  and  such  are  your 
best  performances  without  the  Spirit.  Now,  it  is  from  him  the 
Spirit  conies.  Rev.  iii.  1. 

Saints  also  need  the  Spirit;  for  it  is  not  enough  to  spiritual  wor- 
ship that  the  Spirit  dwells  in  us,  but  that  the  Spirit  influence  us  to 
and  in  duty.  The  Spirit  must  help  our  infirmities,  stirring  up  the 
fire  within  us,  putting  grace  in  exercise,  otherwise  our  performance 
will  be  but  mere  bodily  exercise. 

Inference  5.  Lastly,  To  shut  up  this,  be  exhorted  and  warned  to 
take  heed  how  ye  worship  God  ;  in  what  manner  ye  perform  every 
duty ;  labouring  to  be  spiritual  in  all.  And  there  are  two  things 
ye  would  in  this  mainly  endeavour  to  study. 

1.  To  get  the  heart  brought  up  to  every  duty.  Pray,  confess, 
thank,  petition,  hear,  &c.,  from  the  heart :  Col.  iii.  23,  "  Whatso- 
ever ye  do,  do  it  heartily ;"  (Gr.)  "  work  it  from  your  soul." 
Gold  is  fetched  out  of  the  bowels  of  the  earth,  and  pearls  out  of  the 
bottom  of  the  sea ;  and  spiritual  worship  comes  from  the  inner  man, 
"  the  hidden  man  of  the  heart ;"  while  external  duties,  like  common 
stones,  are  found  lying  every  where  on  the  surface  of  the  earth. 
"We  should  be  fervent,  seething  hot,  as  the  word  imports,  while 
serving  the  Lord,  Rom.  xii.  11. 

2.  To  go  out  of  yourselves  for  ability  to  duty.  This  was  Joshua's 
intent  when  he  told  the  people  that  had  engaged  to  duty,  Josh.  xxiv. 
19,  "  Ye  cannot  serve  the  Lord ;  for  he  is  an  holy  God :  he  is  a 
jealous  God,  he  will  not  forgive  your  transgressions,  nor  your  sins." 
When  we  go  to  duties  we  should  do  as  Elijah  did,  lay  the  sacrifice 
on  the  altar,  and  then  look  to  the  Lord  for  fire  from  heaven  to  con- 
sume it,  1  Kings  xviii.  33,  37,  38.  The  Spirit  of  the  Lord  is  that 
fire  from  heaven  which  burns  our  sacrifices  of  duties,  and  makes  the 
smoke  of  them  ascend  towards  heaven  for  a  sweet-smelling  savour. 
And  as  no  sacrifice  was  accepted  but  what  was  burnt  by  that  fire 
from  heaven,  hence  Psalm  xx.  3,  "  Accept  [Heb.  Reduce  to  ashes] 
thy  burnt  sacrifice ;"  so  no  duty  is  accepted  but  what  is  by  the  in- 
fluence of  the  Spirit.  When,  then,  we  go  to  duty,  sit  down  on  your 
knees,  &c.,  here  is  the  sacrifice  ;  but  where  is  the  fire  ?  If  it  be 
struck  out  of  our  own  spirits  merely,  it   will  make  an  offensive 


OF  WORSniPPING  GOD  IN  THE  SPIRIT.  493 

smoke ;  but  an  acceptable  flame,  if  from  heaven  wo  fetch  it  by  the 
greedy  looks  of  faith.     Consider, 

1st,  God  is  a  Spirit,  and  therefore  must  be  worshipped  in  spirit, 
John  iv.  24.  How  unsuitable  is  mere  bodily  exercise  in  religion  to 
the  nature  of  God  !  Were  we  to  serve  dead  idols,  a  dead  formal 
worship  might  serve.  But  the  living  God  must  have  lively  service, 
or  it  cannot  be  accepted :  Rev.  iii.  19,  "  Be  zealous  therefore  and 
repent." 

2dl}/,  God  takes  special  notice  how  duties  are  done.  Take  heed 
how  ye  hear,  and  so  how  ye  pray,  &c.  God  will  have  his  service 
well  done,  as  well  as  done,  1  Chron.  xxviii.  9  :  yea,  he  reckons  it 
the  main  thing  in  duty ;  so  necessary,  that  the  want  of  it  alters  the 
very  nature  of  duty,  and  turns  it  to  sin,  Hos.  vii.  14  ;  1  Cor.  xi.  20. 

2dli/,  Your  duties  are  the  touchstone  of  your  faith,  of  your  in- 
terest in  Christ,  &c. ;  ye  have  much  need  to  take  heed  to  them. 
Spiritual  worship  is  the  mark  of  a  child  of  God  ;  so  that  by  your 
worship  ye  will  prove  either  that  ye  are  real  saints,  or  that  ye  are 
but  hypocrites. 

And  so  much  for  the  first  character  of  a  saint,  namely,  that  he 
is  one  that  worships  God  in  the  spirit. 

II.  We  come  now  to  the  second  character  of  a  real  saint  he  is 
one  that  "  rejoiceth  in  Christ  Jesus."  In  the  Jlrst  character  a 
saint  is  represented  as  a  great  worker  in  good  works  and  service  to 
God,  going  with  his  heart  into  the  heart,  marrow,  and  soul  of 
duties ;  and  therein  going  beyond  hypocrites,  that  never  go  farther 
in  than  the  outward  court  with  their  duties,  their  duties  being  like 
themselves,  "  having  not  the  Spirit ;"  while  the  sincere  person 
works  in  duties,  as  if  he  minded  to  win  heaven  by  them.  It  would 
then  be  expected  that  those  duties  should  be  the  joy,  confidence, 
comfort,  and  life  of  his  soul.  Sure,  they  that  have  much  less  rea- 
son, make  that  use  of  their  duties ;  but  the  saints  do  not  so. 
Though  they  do  more,  they  trust  less  in  what  they  do  than  others. 
Nay  they  overlook  them  as  to  any  confidence  in  them  before  the 
Lord  ;  and  though  they  "  worship  in  spirit,"  they  "  rejoice  in  Christ 
Jesus."  Though  they  bring  their  hearts  to  duty,  yet  that  is  not  the 
thing  that  keeps  up  their  hearts  before  the  Lord,  but  Christ.  In 
him  they  rejoice,  or,  as  the  original  hath  it,  "  they  glory  :"  which 
is  more  than  simply  to  rejoice.  It  imports  a  glorying  or  boasting 
with  a  strutting  out  of  the  neck,  and  casting  up  of  the  head  in  a 
boasting  way,  Psal.  xliv.  8.  It  is  the  soul's  acquiescing  with  joy  in 
Christ  as  its  only  hope  against  all  that  might  harm  it,  not  being 
ashamed  to  profess  it, 

2  I  2 


494  THE  DISTINGUISHIXG  OIIARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS 

Doctrine.  That  is  tlie  real  Christian,  who  though  he  worship  God 
in  spirit,  yet  rejoiceth  in  Christ  Jesus. 

In  handling  this  doctrine,  I  shall  shew  what  it  is  to  rejoice  in 
Christ  Jesus,  and  in  what  sense  the  true  Christian  rejoices  in  him. 
And  ye  would  notice  this  as  a  mark  of  a  true  saint. 

But  there  is  an  objection  meets  us  here  in  the  threshold,  that 
must  be  removed.  It  is  this  :  If  Joy  in  Christ  be  a  mark  of  a  gra- 
cious state,  what  shall  come  of  poor  doubting  trembling  Christians, 
who  go  mourning  without  the  sun,  that  stand  most  in  need  of  marks 
that  they  may  rejoice  in  Christ;  while  others  that  can  rejoice 
in  Christ,  do  already  see  their  interest  ?  Answer,  The  mark  in  the 
text  is  given  by  the  infallible  Spirit,  and  therefore  doubtless  is  con- 
sistent with  what  he  elsewhere  teacheth  in  his  word,  and  must  be  so 
understood  as  not  to  exclude  the  mournful  worshipper  in  spirit.  But 
to  clear  the  point,  I  offer  these  two  things. 

1.  There  is  a  radical  or  habitual  joy  in  Christ ;  which  is  a  dispo- 
sition of  soul  inclining  and  bending  the  soul  towards  Christ  as  the 
spring  and  object  of  its  joy  before  the  Lord :  for  as  when  God  made 
Adam,  Eccl.  vii.  29,  with  a  frame  of  soul  inclining  to  the  will  of  God, 
this  disposition  did  denominate  him  righteous  before  he  had  done 
one  righteous  act;  so  when  in  the  new  creation,  the  Lord  puts  this 
disposition  in  the  soul,  it  may  denominate  him  a  rejoicer  in  Christ, 
even  before  he  actually  rejoice  in  him.  Then  there  is  an  actual  joy 
or  rejoicing  in  Christ,  wherein  the  soul  acting  from  that  disposition 
solaceth  itself,  in  the  Lord  in  greater  or  lesser  measure.  Upon  this 
I  say, 

Is^,  Every  believer,  even  in  his  darkest  hours,  has  this  radical  and 
habitual  joy  in  Christ:  Psalm  xcvii.  11,  "Light  is  sown  for  the 
righteous,  and  gladness  for  the  upright  in  heart."  As  there  is  a 
worm  of  sorrow  at  the  root  of  every  gourd  under  which  the  wicked 
doth  rejoice,  Prov.  xiv.  13 ;  so  there  is  a  seed  of  joy  even  in  the 
saints'  mournings,  that  will  get  above  the  clods  in  due  time.  There 
are  always  some  pieces  of  heaven  in  their  hottest  hells.  There  are 
everlasting  arms  underneath,  which  for  the  time  are  only  keeping 
the  soul  from  sinking :  but  we  may  say  of  them,  as  Naomi  of  Boaz, 
when  he  had  given  Ruth  six  measures  of  Barley  to  help  them  to  live 
a  while,  "The  man,"  says  she,  Ruth  iii.  ult."  "will  not  be  in  rest, 
nntil  he  have  finished  the  thing  this  day,"  till  you  be  mistress  of  all 
he  has.  So  these  will  not  rest  till  they  have  lifted  up  the  soul  to  a 
fulness  of  joy  in  the  Lord. 

2d!?V,  Though  a  believer  does  not  always  rejoice  actually  before 
the  Lord,  more  than  he  does  always  act  faith,  which  sometimes  is  not 


OF  REJOICIITG  IN  CHRIST  JESUS.  495 

in  exercise  even  in  the  best ;  yet  when  he  does  rejoice  before  the  Lord 
he  rejoices  in  Christ :  Gal.  vi.  14,  "  God  forbid,"  says  the  Apostle 
"  that  I  should  glory  save  in  the  cross  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ." 
If  the  believer's  feast  day  come  but  seldom  about,  yet  when  it  coraes, 
he  keeps  it  in  the  white  raiment  of  Christ's  righteousness,  the  only 
garment  fit  for  a  day  of  joy.  And  he  will  not  lay  off  his  blacks  or 
mournings  till  Christ  send  him  other  garments,  Isa.  Ixi  1 — 3  ;  Lam. 
iii.  39. 

2.  There  is  actual  joy;  which  is  twofold.  (L)  There  is  a  sensible 
joy,  Luke  i.  47,  "  My  spirit,"  says  Mary,  "  hath  rejoiced  in  God  ray 
Saviour ;  leapt  for  joy,"  as  the  word  signifies.  And  this  God's 
people  sometimes  get  in  Christ  so  as  their  very  souls  are  made  to 
leap  within  them,  while  the  wonder  at  his  love  and  rejoice,  and  re- 
joice and  wonder.  And  so  much  are  we  addicted  to  sense  while  in 
this  body,  that  we  will  scarcely  allow  any  thing  but  this  to  be  called 
joy.  But  that  is  a  mistake  :  for,  (2.)  There  is  a  rational  joy ;  which 
is  the  satisfaction  the  reasonable  soul  has  in  that  which  it  loves  and 
desires.  "We  see  this  in  the  man  Christ,  who  being  a  man  of  sor- 
rows, had  little  of  that  sensible  joy  while  in  the  world.  It  is  re- 
marked of  him  that  he  had  one  hour,  or  part  of  an  hour  of  it,  Luke 
X.  21,  "  In  that  hour  Jesus  rejoiced  in  spirit;"  clearly  teaching  it 
was  not  his  ordinary.  Notwithstanding  Christ  had  an  abiding  joy, 
John  XV.  11,  "These  things  have  I  spoken  unto  you,  that  my  joy 
might  remain  in  you,  and  that  your  joy  might  be  full,"  to  wit  a  solid 
satisfaction  in  the  welfare  of  his  disciples.  The  original  words  in 
these  places  clear  this  diflTerence ;  the  former  being  the  same  with 
that,  Luke  i.  47,  the  other  importing  nothing  of  exultation,  but  a  joy 
in  things  prospering  with  a  person. 

Now,  although  the  believer  may  but  seldom  have  this  sensible 
joy  in  Christ ;  and  I  know  not  but  the  spirit  of  heaviness  may  so  sit 
down  on  some,  that  they  may  never  taste  of  this  sensible  joy  till 
they  be  in  heaven,  Heb.  ii.  15;  yet  every  believer  habitually  and  or- 
dinarily, as  they  are  in  the  exercise,  of  other  graces  have  this  ra- 
tional joy  in  Christ :  for  if  the  kingdom  of  God  be  righteousness, 
and  peace,  and  joy  in  the  Holy  Ghost,  Rom.  xiv.  17,  wherever  it 
comes,  these  must  be  there  too.  And  this  I  take  to  be  the  joy 
aimed  at  in  the  text,  as  appears  by  its  being  [opposed  to  hypocrites' 
confidence  in  the  flesh  ;  which  speaks  forth  rather  a  rational  com- 
placency they  have  in  the  flesh,  than  any  sensible  joy. 

The  soul's  union  with  Christ  is  often  held  forth  in  the  Scripture 
under  the  notion  of  a  marriage ;  and  we  read  of  a  twofold  joy  in 
this.  (1.)  The  joy  wherewith  the  bridegroom  rejoiceth  over  the 
bride,  Is.  Ixii.  5.     (2.)  The  joy  wherewith  a  husband,  in  the  continu- 


496  THE  DISTINGUISHING  CIIARACTEllS  OF  REAL  OURISTIANS 

ance  of  his  married  state,  rcjoiceth  over  his  wife,  Prov.  v.  18.  Tlio 
former  is  an  emblem  of  that  sensible  joy  which  believers  sometimes 
have  in  Christ,  and  particularly  at  the  time  of  their  first  receiving 
Christ,  while  they  are  yet  but  young  converts,  and  are  fed  with 
lumps  of  sense,  Hos.  ii.  14.  An  instance  of  it  we  have  in  the  eunuch, 
whom  it  is  said,  that  "he  went  on  his  way  rejoicing,"  Acts  viii. 
39.  But  although  that  sensible  joy  do  not  last,  more  than  the 
fondness  of  a  new  married  couple  ;  yet  there  is  an  habitual  rational 
joy,  which  remains,  as  other  graces,  with  the  people  of  God,  Avhereof 
the  latter  is  a  good  resemblance.  For  as  they  that  have  made  a 
good  choice,  though  they  may  remit  of  their  fondness,  yet  continue 
to  have  a  solid  rational  joy  in  one  another,  which  though  it  be  not 
so  violent  as  the  other,  yet  is  more  strong  and  fixed :  so  it  is  here. 
This  is  that  which  is  here  given  as  a  mark  of  a  true  saint. 

And  in  regard  hypocrites  may  have  a  great  sensible  joy,  Matth.  xiii. 
20,  whatever  sensible  joy  any  pretend  to  must  be  examined  by  this, 
for  this  is  the  root  on  which  all  true  sensible  joy  doth  grow  ;  and 
these  joyful  flashes  of  hypocrites  will  be  found  to  spring  from 
another  root. 

Now,  the  nature  of  this  rejoicing  in  Christ  lies  in  these  four 
things. 

1.  A  holy  complacency  in  Christ. 

2.  A  rolling  of  the  soul  over  on  Christ  for  all. 

3.  A  rest  of  the  heart  in  him  as  a  fit  match  for  the  soul. 

4.  A  confession  of  him  unto  salvation. 

First,  There  is  in  this  rejoicing  in  Christ,  a  holy  complacency  in 
him.  The  believer  has  got  a  view  and  trial  of  Christ,  and  he  is  well 
pleased  with  him.  There  is  a  mutual  joy  of  the  parties  in  the 
spiritual  marriage.  Where  the  soul  is  "Beulah,  married  to  the 
Lord,"  it  is  also  "  Hephzi-bah,  the  Lord  has  a  complacency  in  it," 
Is.  Ixii.  4.  And  so  have  they  in  him,  Mai.  iii.  1,  "The  Lord  whom 
ye  seek,  shall  suddenly  come  to  his  temple  :  even  the  messenger  of 
the  covenant,  whom  ye  delight  in."  All  the  Jews  professed  this  as 
God's  people,  and  the  godly  among  them  really  had  it.  Though 
they  are  eagle-eyed  ones  in  spiritual  things,  in  comparison  of  the 
blind  world  ;  yet  they  spy  no  fault  in  the  mystery  of  Christ,  but  are 
well  pleased  with,  and  acquiesce  in  the  grand  device  of  salvation 
through  Christ  crucified.  The  Father  made  choice  of  him,  carved 
out  every  piece  of  his  work  to  him,  in  the  matter  of  the  redemption 
of  sinners ;  and  he  is  well  pleased  with  his  choice.  Is.  xlii.  1 ;  Matth. 
iii.  17  ;  2  Chron.  vii.  16  :  and  it  is  unanimously  approved  in  every 
point  by  the  multitude  of  them  who  are  "  called,  and  faithful,  and 
chosen  ;"  who  all  with  one  voice  cry,  "  Grace,  grace  to  it ;"  grace, 


OF  REJOICING  IN  CHRIST  JESUS.  497 

grace  to  the  choice  ;  grace,  grace  to  the  contrivance,  and  every  part 
of  it.  Sirs,  since  men  lost  the  way  to  happiness,  but  not  the  desire 
of  it,  they  have  chosen  new  gods  and  guides,  some  one,  some  another ; 
and  "  every  man  will  walk  in  the  name  of  his  god."  God  the 
Father  has  made  a  choice  for  them  of  a  Captain  of  salvation  ;  the 
gospel  is  the  pleading  of  the  excellency  of  this  choice,  and  puts  the 
trying  vote  to  the  world,  Approve,  or,  Not  ?  The  plurality  has 
always  voted.  Not  approve  ;  but  believers  have  with  their  souls 
approved  the  choice,  1  Cor.  i.  23,  24.  And  if  ye  be  amongst  the 
approvers,  take  his  own  word  for  it,  ye  are  his,  Matth.  xi.  6, 
"  Blessed  is  he  whosoever  shall  not  be  offended  in  me." 

Now,  we  cannot  rejoice  in  nor  be  well  pleased  with  any  thing 
unless  we  see  a  suitableness  in  it  to  us.  When  a  man  has  made  his 
choice,  if  afterwards  he  find  it  unsuitable  to  him,  this  kills  his  joy 
in  it :  he  sees  he  was  mistaken  ;  for  when  he  made  the  choice,  it  was 
upon  its  supposed  suitableness.  Accordingly  the  believer  rejoicing 
in  Christ,  surely  beholds  his  absolute  suitableness  unto  that  for 
which  he  has  made  choice  of  him.  And  there  is  a  threefold  suitable- 
ness of  Christ  here  to  be  noticed. 

First,  There  is  a  suitableness  of  Christ,  and  the  mystery  of  Christ, 
to  the  divine  perfections  or  attributes  concerned  in  the  salvation  of 
sinners,  that  is  sweetly  discerned  by  every  believer,  more  or  less 
clearly,  and  acquiesced  in  heartily.  Hence  says  the  apostle,  1  Cor. 
i.  23,  24,  "  We  preach  Christ  crucified — unto  them  which  are  called, 
both  Jews  and  Greeks,  Christ  the  power  of  God,  and  the  wisdom  of 
God."  There  is  no  man  that  knows  what  God  is,  and  what  salvation 
is,  that  has  got  that  matter  of  eternal  salvation  laid  close  home  to  his 
heart,  but  will  know  well  on  what  he  will  venture  his  soul  before  such 
a  holy  God.  They  will  see  that  the  holiness,  justice,  &c.  of  God  are 
such  fixed  rocks,  as  they  will  never  expect  they  shall  be  removed  for 
them;  and  therefore  will  absolutely  despare  of  salvation  in  any  way 
inconsistent  with  the  honour  and  perfections  of  God.  Hence  then  it 
plainly  follows,  that  the  soul  which  indeed  rejoiceth  in  Christ,  hath 
seen  this  suitableness  of  Christ  to  the  divine  perfections.  Blessed  are 
ye  then,  0  believers ;  for  ye  see  and  acquiesce  in  this  way  of  salvation, 
as  suitable  in  that  respect.  And  that  this  character  may  have  the 
more  weight  with  all  the  saints,  and  the  naughtiness  of  others  may 
be  discovered,  consider, 

1.  As  there  is  a  special  illumination  that  believers  get,  and  to 
which  the  most  refined  hypocrite  is  a  stranger,  as  appears  from  John 
iv.  10;  Psalm  ix.  10.  Christ's  differencing  the  sincere  and  hypo- 
crite as  wise  and  foolish ;  so  there  is  an  illumination  in  the  know- 
ledge of  the  mystery  of  Christ  its  suitableness  to  the  divine  perfec- 


498  THE  DISTINGIDSHING  CHARACTERS  OT  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

lions,  that  is  peculiar  to  his  saints,  1  Cor.  i.  23,  24;  2  Cor.  iv.  6. 
And  therefore  the  whole  of  the  work  of  grace  comes  under  the  name 
of  the  revealing  of  Christ  in  a  soul,  Gal.  i.  16.  And  what  is  tho 
ruin  of  many  that  get  convictions  and  reform,  but  the  want  of  this 
saving  discovery  of  Christ  ?  So  that  all  their  religion  ends  in  a 
legal  Christless  turn  given  to  their  lives. 

2.  How  few  are  there  who  ever  dig  so  deep  in  the  sin  of  their 
hearts  and  lives,  as  once  to  put  it  to  the  question,  whether  their 
salvation  be  consistent  with  the  honour  of  God,  or  not  ?  Unto  some 
men  God,  Christ,  and  sin,  are  veiled  all  their  days ;  they  never  get 
a  true  view  of  any  of  them ;  and  so  whatever  they  do  in  religion,  is 
just  a  leap  at  random,  even  as  it  falls,  which  is  the  import  of  that 
word,  "  walking  contrary  unto  the  Lord,"  Lev.  xxvi.  23  :  and  their 
believing  (to  call  it  so)  is  but  a  venturing  of  their  souls  on  they 
know  not  what.  And  as  for  many  others  that  have  had  some  exer- 
cise about  their  soul's  state  on  their  spirits,  they  were  never  brought 
so  low,  but  they  thought  ever  if  they  could  mourn  for  sin  enough, 
reform,  and  believe  in  Christ,  without  any  eye  to  his  atoning  blood, 
shed  to  retrieve  the  honour  of  God  impaired  by  sin,  all  would  be 
well.  They  were  never  so  low  as  to  see  salvation  so  far  above  them 
as  the  honour  of  God  has  set  it,  never  to  be  brought  down  but  upon 
a  just  satisfaction  to  the  honour  of  God  for  what  they  have  done 
against  it ;  and  that  a  satisfaction  utterly  beyond  the  reach  of  their 
sufferings,  reforming,  repenting,  believing,  &c.  To  which  were  they 
brought,  they  would  rejoice  in  Christ  Jesus  as  suited  to  that  work, 
the  repairing  the  honour  of  the  divine  perfections,  which  stand 
betwixt  salvation  and  them,  1  John  i.  7,  "  And  the  blood  of  Jesus 
Christ  his  Son  cleanseth  us  from  all  sin."  But  how  can  they  rejoice 
in  a  salve  for  a  sore  under  which  they  never  smarted?   Rom.  v.  11. 

3.  Consider,  all  men  as  they  are  sons  of  the  first  Adam,  are  sons 
of  pride,  who  see  no  glory  but  in  the  way  of  the  first  covenant ; 
which  is,  that  God  should  have  his  honour  from  them  whom  he 
saves.  And  because  man,  by  the  breaking  of  that  covenant,  lost 
his  eyes,  which  are  never  under  it  restored,  therefore  they  have  but 
low  thoughts  of  the  honour  of  God.  And  hence  we  find  Adam 
staying  in  Paradise,  like  a  shameless  adulteress  in  the  house  of  her 
husband,  till  God  drove  him  out.  Gen.  iii.  24.  with  such  a  sonnet  as 
that,  Jer.  xi.  15,  "  "What  hath  my  beloved  to  do  in  mine  house, 
seeing  she  hath  wrought  lewdness  with  many?"  And  while  they 
have  such  low  thoughts  of  it,  it  is  no  wonder  they  think  little  may 
serve  to  repair  it.  And  the  pride  of  the  heart  being  unsubdued, 
they  can  see  as  little  glory  in  Christ  crucified  repairing  it,  as  a 
proud  bankrupt  would  see  in  his  being  declared  unable  to  pay  his 


OF  REJOICING  IN  CHRIST  JESUS.  499 

debt,  and  one  paying  it  for  him,  while  he  thinks  he  might  have  paid 
it  himself,  or  it  was  not  so  much  but  might  have  been  forgiven. 

Secondly,  There  is  a  suitableness  of  Christ  to  the  case  of  the  soul, 
which  the  believer  sees,  and  so  is  well  pleased  with,  and  acquiesceth 
in  Christ  as  thus  suited  to  his  case.  Unless  the  believer  saw  this, 
he  could  never  rejoice  in  him.  If  ye  would  lodge  a  starving  man 
in  a  palace,  clothe  him  in  the  most  costly  attire,  and  fill  his  pockets 
with  gold,  behold  he  is  at  the  point  of  death  for  lack  of  meat,  and 
what  good  can  these  do  to  him,  how  can  he  rejoice  in  these,  they 
are  not  meat,  and  so  not  suitable  to  his  case  ?  Now,  the  child  of 
God  has  seen  his  case,  and  Christ's  suitableness  to  it  every  way,  and 
so  approves  of  and  acquiesceth  in  him  as  such,  1  Cor.  i.  30,  31,  "  But 
of  him  ai'e  ye  in  Christ  Jesus,  who  of  God  is  made  unto  us  wisdom, 
and  righteousness,  and  sanctification,  and  redemption :  that,  accord- 
ing as  it  is  written,  He  that  glorieth,  let  him  glory  in  the  Lord." 
Every  soul  feels  a  want  of  something ;  and  since  Adam  broke,  and 
turned  himself  and  all  his  posterity  beggars,  they  are  going  up  and 
down  among  the  creatures  seeking  supply  for  their  wants,  and  salve 
for  tlieir  sores.  Now,  whatever  they  can  purchase  among  them, 
though  it  promises  fair  afar  off,  yet  when  they  come  near  and  apply 
it,  still  they  find  it  unsuitable ;  it  will  not  do :  "  The  bed  is  shorter" 
than  that  a  man  can  stretch  himself  on  it :  and  the  covering 
narrower,  than  that  he  can  wrap  himself  in  it."  And  this  makes 
the  heart  secretely  sigh,  while  it  is  attacked  with  a  new  dissatisfac- 
tion on  every  new  disappointment ;  though  they  are  so  besotted,  as 
that  when  they  are  "  wearied  in  the  greatness  of  their  way ;  yet  say 
they  not.  There  is  no  hope,"  Is.  Ivii.  10.  but  go  out  again  to  beg  at 
those  doors  where  they  have  got  a  thousand  naysays  before.  Now, 
while  the  elect  soul  is  thus  wandei-ing  among  the  rest,  the  Lord 
opens  its  eyes,  as  he  did  Hagar's  to  see  the  well.  Gen.  xxi.  and 
Christ  is  discovered  to  the  soul  :  and  the  surprised  soul  cries,  John 
i.  45,  "  I  have  found  him  of  whom  Moses  in  the  law,  and  the  pro- 
phets did  write."  Now,  says  the  soul,  this  is  my  rest,  and  here  I 
will  stay.  Hence  is  that  parable,  Matth.  xiii.  45,  46,  "  The  king- 
dom of  heaven  is  like  unto  a  merchantman  seeking  goodly  pearls ; 
who,  when  he  had  found  one  pearl  of  great  price,  he  went  and  sold 
all  that  he  had,  and  bought  it." 

An  excellent  emblem  of  this  ye  have  in  that,  Mark  v.  25 — 24. 
concerniug  the  woman  which  had  an  issue  of  blood  twelve  years. 
Where  notice,  (1.)  She  never  tries  Christ  till  she  had  tried  others 
one  after  another,  and  found  all  physicians  of  no  value.  (2.)  When 
she  hears  of  Christ,  she  believes,  and  by  faith  concludes,  there  was 
a  physician  now  suited  to  her  case.     (3.)  There  was  a  great  multi- 


500  THE  DISTIJfGUISUING  CnARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS 

tude  about  Clirist  that  stood  as  much  in  need  of  him  as  she :  but 
she  saw  his  suitableness  to  her  case,  while  they  saw  not  how  suitable 
he  was  to  theirs ;  therefore  she  only  gets  the  touch  of  faith.  (4.) 
She  thrusts  forward,  leaves  all  her  other  physicians,  and  takes  hira 
for,  and  instead  of  all,  as  fully  and  only  suited  to  her  case. 

Now,  among  all  those  things  in  which  the  saints  see  Christ's  suit- 
ableness, I  shall  only  instance  in  these  two. 

1.  They  see  a  glorious  suitablenes  to  their  case  in  the  person  of 
Christ,  as  he  is  God-man,  Is.  is.  6  :  that  the  Mediator  as  such  a 
person  is  a  contrivance  to  them  of  infinite  wisdom,  answering  at 
once  the  honour  of  God,  and  the  sinner's  necessities  ;  in  which  the 
child  of  God  heartily  acquiesceth.  The  man  sees  himself  by  nature 
in  a  sad  case,  which  the  whole  creation  cannuot  help.  There  is  a 
breach  betwixt  God  and  the  sinner;  what  man,  what  angel,  can  be 
daysman,  able  to  lay  hands  upon  both  ?  Why,  here  is  one  so  high 
that  he  is  "  the  Father's  fellow"  Zech.  xiii.7;  yet  so  low  as  that  he 
is  "  bone  of  our  bones,  and  flesh  of  our  flesh."  He  is  nearly  related 
to  both.  0  suitable  person  !  The  sinner  is  separate  from  God,  that 
is  hell  begun  on  earth ;  how  shall  the  sinner  be  reunited  to  God  ? 
Will  the  sinner  attempt  immediately  to  unite  with  God  ?  God's 
justice  and  holiness  staves  him  ofl";  they  will  not,  cannot  cleave  to- 
gether, as  iron  is  not  raised  with  clay.  Can  angels  unite  them  ? 
Nay,  they  needed  another  themselves  to  be  a  bond  of  continuance, 
though  not  of  beginning  or  making  their  own  union  with  God.  But 
behold  in  the  person  of  Christ  how  it  may  be  done.  Man's  nature 
is  united  already  to  the  divine  nature  in  the  person  of  Christ. 
Behold  our  new  relation  to  God,  which  the  angels  themselves  cannot 
boast  of.  Here  is  an  union  for  a  foundation  of  the  mystical  union 
which  the  soul  is  seeking.  Here  is  a  suitable  meeting-place  betwixt 
God  and  sinners,  where  they  may  unite  again  with  the  safety  of  the 
divine  honour;  "  The  fulness  of  the  Godhead  dwells  in  him  bodily; 
God  is  in  Christ,  reconciling  the  world  unto  himself,  not  imputing 
their  trespasses  unto  them ;"  and  in  the  flesh  of  Christ,  the  sinner 
may  meet  God  with  safety  of  his  life :  and  so  both  unite  in  him. 
The  sinner  has  fallen,  like  Lucifer,  as  a  star  from  heaven ;  how  can 
he  get  up  again  ?  behold  Christ  as  the  ladder  reaching  betwixt 
heaven  and  earth,  set  as  low  as  the  sinner  could  wish  in  his  human 
nature,  and  reaching  as  high  as  he  can  desire  in  his  divine  nature. 
0  glorious  person  suited  to  the  sinner's  case  ! 

2.  The  saints  see  a  glorious  suitableness  to  their  case  in  the 
offices  of  Christ,  and  such  a  suitableness  as  makes  them  acquiesce  in 
him. 

1st,  He  is  a  Prophet,  the  interpreter  of  the  Father's  mind,  who 


OF  REJOICING  IK  CHRIST  JESUS.  501 

was  in  the  Father's  bosom  from  eternity,  and  is  privy  to  all  his 
counsels  ;  and  so  sent  of  the  Father  to  be  "  the  light  of  the  world." 
0  then  he  is  just  such  an  one  as  the  soul  wants,  Luke  ii.  32,  "  A 
light  to  lighten  the  Gentiles."  The  soul  looks  within  itself,  and 
sees  itself  a  mass  of  darkness  and  confusion,  at  every  turn  ready  to 
mistake  the  way  ;  and  walking  through  a  wilderness  full  of  pits  of 
destruction,  cannot  but  despair  of  ever  falling  on  the  right  way, 
keeping  it,  or  coming  safe  to  the  end  of  their  journey,  if  they  get 
not  a  guide.  Now,  the  soul  sees  Christ  as  "  the  sun  of  righteous- 
ness, the  wisdom  of  Grod,  and  the  power  of  God;  and  so  acqui- 
esceth  in  him,  Psalm  v.  8;  Is.  xlii.  16  ;  knowing,  that  as  there  is  a 
fulness  of  darkness  in  them,  there  is  a  fulnes  of  light  in  him ;  to 
whom  they  may  go  with  all  their  doubts,  and  fears,  and  perplexi- 
ties, and  get  all  their  ravelled  cases  redd,  and  learn  from  him  the 
case  they  cannot  give  a  name  to  themselves,  Judg.  v.  10,  11. 

2dhi,  He  is  a  Priest,  who  has  made  the  atonement  by  the  sacri- 
fice of  himself,  and  is  gone  now  within  the  vail  to  present  to  the 
Father  his  own  blood,  and  thereupon  to  intercede  for  sinners,  and 
ever  liveth  for  that  end,  Heb.  vii.  26.  Hence  says  the  apostle, 
Rom.  viii.  34,  "  It  is  Christ  that  died,  yea  rather,  that  is  risen 
again,  who  is  even  at  the  right  hand  of  God,  who  also  maketh  inter- 
cession for  us."  0  how  suitable  is  this  in  the  saint's  eyes  to  a  sin- 
ner's case  ?  When  sin  and  guilt  is  laid  home  to  a  man's  conscience, 
there  will  be  many  questions  in  the  heart.  0,  says  the  soul, 
"  wherewithal  shall  I  come  before  the  Lord  ?"  How  shall  I  get  the 
demands  of  this  law  that  has  me  by  the  throat  satisfied,  while  they 
run  so  high  above  all  I  can  do  or  sufl'er  ?  What  is  able  to  quench 
this  fire  of  wrath  that  has  gone  out  against  me  for  my  sins?  How 
will  a  pardon  be  obtained?  or  conscience  purged  of  guilt?  But 
Christ  being  discovered  to  the  soul  in  the  glory  of  his  priestly  office, 
easeth  the  distressed  soul.  For  in  him  he  sees  all  the  demands  of 
justice  and  the  law  answered  to  the  full ;  an  everlasting  righteous- 
ness brought  in,  in  which  a  sinner  may  stand  before  the  Lord  ; 
atoning,  peace-making  blood,  that  is  able  to  quench  the  fire  of  God's 
wrath,  wash  out  the  deepest  dyed  guilt,  to  cancel  all  the  items  that 
stand  in  justice's  debt-book  against  them,  so  as  they  shall  never 
more  be  chargeable  on  them,  and  to  purge  the  conscience  from  dead 
works.     And  thus  the  soul  acquioscth  in  him  as  the  only  refuge. 

And  then  for  his  intercession  tlic  soul  beholds  a  glorious  suitable- 
ness to  its  case  therein  ;  which  makes  them  rejoice  and  glory  in 
him,  Rom.  viii.  34,  above-cited.  They  have  much  business  in  the 
court  of  heaven,  and  they  cannot  manage  it.  0  how  sweet  to  have 
a  friend   at  court,  through  whose  intercession  the  purchase  of  his 


602  THE  DISTINaUISiriNG  CIIARArTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS 

blood  comes  to  be  first  applied  to  tlie  soul,  Jolin  xvii.  20,  21, 
"  Neither  pray  I  for  these  alone,  but  for  them  also  which  shall 
believe  on  me  through  their  word  :  that  they  all  may  be  one,  as 
thou,  Father,  art  in  me,  and  I  in  thee  ;  that  they  also  may  be  one 
in  us  :  that  the  world  may  believe  that  thou  hast  sent  me."  They 
are  oftending  every  day  ;  0  but  in  him  they  have  a  constant  resi- 
dent at  the  court  of  heaven  to  take  up  emergent  differences,  so  that 
it  cannot  come  to  a  total  rupture  betwixt  God  and  them,  Heb.  ix. 
24,  "  For  Christ  is  entered  into  heaven,  now  to  appear  in  the  pre- 
sence of  God  for  us."  But  how  shall  guilty  creatures  have  access 
to  the  King's  presence  ?  Why,  through  him,  Eph.  iii.  12  ;  for  he 
is  the  Father's  favourite,  the  great  Secretary  of  heaven,  who  leads 
by  the  hand  (as  that  word  signifies)  the  suppliants  into  the  preserce- 
chamber.  They  dare  not  present  their  petitions  in  their  own  name  ; 
then  he  takes  them  and  presents  them,  and  the  Father  hears  them 
out  of  his  mouth  ;  and  so  they  cannot  but  come  speed,  when  he 
offers  them  with  the  incense  of  his  intercession  upon  the  merits  of 
his  blood,  Rev.  viii.  3 — 5. 

Sdlj/,  He  is  a  King,  and  that  one  "  against  whom  there  is  no  ris- 
ing up."  He  is  "the  King  of  glory.  But  who  is  this  King  of 
glory  ?  Even  the  Lord  strong  and  mighty,  the  Lord  mighty  in 
battle,"  Psal.  xxiv.  8.  Surely  I  am,  looking  to  the  white  side  of  this 
displayed  glory,  every  soul  that  has  a  spark  of  grace  will  say,  then 
he  is  just  whom  I  want,  whom  my  soul  desires.  0  suitable  King  of 
glory!  The  soul  sees  it  must  fight,  and  will  fight;  but  0  weak, 
weak  in  battle  is  it.  It  is  not  man  enough  for  the  corrupt  nature, 
the  ill  heart,  no  not  to  turn  away  the  face  of  one  of  the  least  of 
that  hellish  master's  captains ;  unable  to  grapple  with  and  over- 
come the  least  lust  in  its  own  strength,  more  than  a  child  can 
grapple  with  a  giant.  Satan  is  too  hard  for  them  ;  the  world  too 
sore,  especially  having  friends  within  them  ready  to  side  with  these 
enemies.  0  what  a  glorious  figure  must  this  King  of  glory  make  in 
their  eyes  in  this  case  ?  "What  rejoicing  of  heart  must  the  appear- 
ance of  the  Captain  of  the  Lord's  host  bring  to  them?  Isa.  xxxiii. 
22,  "  The  Lord  is  our  King,  he  will  save  us."  In  hira  will  the 
saints  acquiesce,  and  look  no  where  else  for  help,  but  be  content  to 
go  at  his  back  against  all  the  powers  of  hell,  to  rencounter  Goliath, 
though  they  have  but  stones  of  the  brook  for  the  attack,  and 
adventure  on  the  walls  of  the  cursed  Jericho,  though  they  can  do 
nothing  but  walk  about  them,  and  give  the  shout ;  for,  says  the 
soul,  "  In  the  Lord  have  I  righteousness  and  strength." 

0  Sirs,  have  ye  ever  seen  this  suitableness  of  Christ  to  your  case  ? 
and  do  your  soul's  acquiesce  in  him  as  such,  as  only  and  fully  suit- 


OF  REJOICING  IN  CHRIST  JESUS.  503 

able  to  it  ?  (for  that  is  the  sense  of  th3  text.)  Is  he  and  only  he,  in 
your  eyes,  the  party  fit  for  you  in  your  case  ?  ye  are  they  then  that 
rejoice  in  Christ  Jesus.  But,  ah  !  it  is  to  be  feared  that  Christ  is  a 
vailed  beauty  to  many  of  us,  and  that  there  are  not  a  few  in 
whose  eyes  there  are  other  things  as  suitable  and  more  for  them, 
than  that  Christ  in  whom  the  saints  see  this  heart-attracting  glory  : 
Cant.  V.  9,  "  What  is  thy  beloA'ed  more  than  another  beloved,  0 
thou  fairest  among  women  ?  what  is  thy  beloved  more  than  another 
beloved,  that  thou  dost  so  charge  us  ?"  Consider  for  evidences  of 
this. 

1.  There  is  a  generation  whose  hopes  of  pardon  and  salvation  are 
built  on  the  foundation  of  the  mercy  of  an  absolute  unatoned  God. 
They  see  no  need  of  the  Lord  Jesus ;  they  know  hira  not  as  the 
only  mean  of  conveyance  of  saving  mercy  to  sinners.  Do  these  re- 
joice in  Christ  ?  Xo,  they  cannot,  nor  never  will,  till  their  hearts 
be  wounded  with  an  arrow  they  have  not  yet  felt.  Know  ye,  that 
the  earth  shall  sooner  be  forsaken,  and  the  rocks  shall  sooner  be  re- 
moved for  you,  than  ye  shall  ever  taste  of  mercy  to  salvation 
but  through  Christ.  If  ye  be  out  of  Christ,  mercy  cannot  save  yon, 
seeing  it  cannot  act  in  prejudice  of  justice,  and  God  cannot  deny 
himself:  Acts  iv.  12,  "Neither  is  there  salvation  in  any  other  :  for 
there  is  none  other  name  under  heaven  given  among  men  whereby 
we  mnst  be  saved."  If  thou  rejoice  in  Christ,  and  hast  seen  his 
suitableness,  the  sight  of  an  absolute  God  will  be  a  terror  to  thee, 
and  thou  wilt  desire  to  know  no  God  but  the  God  and  Father  of  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ,  Eph.  i.  3;  nor  wilt  thou  dare  to  look  to  God, 
but  through  the  vail  of  the  flesh  of  Christ,  Heb.  x.  19,  20.  Thou 
wilt  expect  no  pardon,  but  what  comes  streaming  through  the  blood 
of  the  Mediator,  though  thou  had  a  flood  of  tears  to  fetch  it  in ;  nor 
no  embraces  from  the  Lord,  but  with  arras  dyed  red  in  that  precious 
atoning  blood  ;  nor  a  smile  of  his  face,  but  through  his  wounds.  It 
is  the  character  of  Christ's  church  and  people,  1  Thess.  i.  1.  they  are 
"  in  God  the  Father,  and  in  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ ;"  whereby  is  not 
only  signified  their  union  with  both,  1  John  i.  3.  but  they  are  distin- 
guished from  the  now  rejected  synagogue,  1  Thess.  ii.  16,  which  wor- 
ship the  Father,  but  kill  his  Son,  ver.  15  ;  and  therefore  please  not 
God,  ih :  for  "he  that  honoureth  not  the  Son,  honoureth  not  the 
Father  which  hath  sent  him,  John  v.  23. 

2.  There  is  a  generation,  who,  like  Moab,  have  been  at  ease  from 
their  youth.  They  confess  they  are  sinners,  and  who  denies  that  ? 
but  they  have  hitherto  stood  ont  proof  against  convictions  of  their 
sin  and  misery ;  and  that  question,  "  What  shall  I  do  to  be  saved?" 
never  came  so  close  home  to  them,  as  these,  "  What  shall  T  eat?" 


50-t         THE  DISTINOUISIIINO  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CURISTIANS. 

or,  "  Wherewithal!  shall  I  be  clotlied  ?"  And  consequently  they 
nevfir  saw  Christ  so  suitable  to  their  case,  as  earthly  supplies ;  for 
the  joy  in  the  remedy  cannot  rise  higher  than  the  apprehension  of 
the  evil  of  the  disease.  And  amongst  those  who  have  had  their  convic- 
tions, there  are  not  a  few  with  whom  that  axe  never  went  to  the 
root  of  the  tree,  but  the  trouble  they  have  had  has  risen  only  from 
their  actual  sins  ;  but  the  sin  of  their  nature,  that  root  fixed  in  the 
earth  with  bands  of  iron  and  brass,  has  still  lain  out  of  their  sight : 
and  therefore  vows,  resolutions,  watchings  against  and  mourning 
over  these  have  still  appeared  more  suitable  to  their  case,  than  the 
sanctifying  spirit  of  Christ,  who  alone  can  change  our  nature.  But 
if  thou  art  a  rejoicer  in  Christ,  thou  hast  got  the  best  view  of  his 
glorious  suitableness  to  thy  case  out  of  the  depths  of  the  corruption 
of  thy  nature  :  Rom.  vii-  24,  25,  "  0  wretched  man  that  T  am  who 
shall  deliver  me  from  the  body  of  this  death  !  I  thank  God,  through 
Jesus  Christ  our  Lord."  See  how  the  Lord  raised  Elisha's  credit 
amongst  the  people  of  Jericho,  that  they  might  own  him  for  the  pro- 
phet of  the  Lord  ;  it  was  by  healing  of  their  waters,  2  Kings  ii.  19 
• — 22.  As  for  the  waters  that  were  in  their  vessels  within  their 
houses,  they  might  several  ways  correct  the  nnwholesomeness  of  it 
themselves  ;  and  if  nothing  would  do,  they  could  have  cast  it  to  the 
door :  and  if  Elisha  had  gone  through  all  their  houses  and  healed 
their  waters  they  had  fetched  in  their  vessels,  it  would  have  been  a 
shortlived  kindness  to  them  ;  for  when  that  had  been  spent,  they 
would  have  been  just  where  they  were  before :  but  Elisha  goes  to 
the  spring,  casts  in  the  salt  there,  and  miraculously  heals  it ;  and 
this  sets  him  on  high  in  their  esteem.  The  application  is  easy,  to 
Christ's  healing  of  our  corrupt  natures. 

3.  There  is  a  generation  who  are  easily  diverted  from  the  i)ursuit 
of  an  interest  in  Christ.  If  they  can  get  it  with  ease,  well  and  good 
it  is  ;  but  if  not,  they  will  let  it  go :  Prov.  xxi.  25,  "  The  desire  of 
the  slothful  killeth  him :  for  his  hands  refuse  to  labour."  Hence 
when  concience  is  awakened  with  some,  they  will  cry  for  an  interest 
in  Christ ;  they  will  follow  religion  with  some  vigour  for  a  while, 
but  not  finding  that  sweetness  in  religion  that  they  expected,  their 
tired  souls  fall  even  asleep  again  in  the  lap  of  their  lusts.  As 
when  the  Lord  brought  his  people  out  of  Egypt,  there  was  a  mixed 
multitude,  that  were  not  Israelites,  who  went  out  with  them,  Exod. 
xii.  38 :  they  would  stay  no  longer  in  Egypt,  but  away  with  that 
happy  people  to  the  happy  land  flowing  with  milk  and  honey.  But 
when  they  came  to  the  wilderness,  and  found  not  what  they  ex- 
pected, they  fell  a  lusting,  Num.  xi.  4.  and  downwards ;  the  heat 
of  their  hearts  after  Canaan  was  cooled,  and  many  a  rueful  look 


OF  REJOICING  IN  CHRIST  JESUS.  505 

they  gave  back  to  Egypt  again.  And  the  very  fish,  leeks,  and 
onions  of  Egypt,  that  they  had  eaten  there,  were  sweeter  to  them 
than  all  the  milk  and  honey  of  Canaan,  which  they  thought  they 
were  never  like  to  taste;  as  appears  from  the  complaints  of  the  Is- 
raelites, which  they  learned  from  that  Egyptian  rabble,  ver.  5,  6. 
Such  cannot  rejoice  in  Christ ;  he  is  not  to  them  either  only  or  fully 
suitable.  But  if  thou  art  one  that  rejoiceth  in  Christ,  thou  hast, 
like  Caleb  and  Joshua,  another  spirit,  even  to  follow  the  Lord  fully. 
Num.  xiv.  24.  Such  will  leave  no  mean  unessayed  in  order  to  get 
an  interest  in  Christ.  It  is  a  matter  of  the  greatest  weight,  and  ne- 
cessity has  no  law.  Hunger  will  break  through  stone  walls,  Mark 
vii.  24.  If  they  must  die,  they  will  die  at  Christ's  door,  knowing 
with  the  lepers,  2  Kings  vii.  4.  that  if  they  go  back  to  the  city 
whence  they  came,  the  famine  is  in  that  city,  and  they  will  die 
there  ;  and  therefore  they  will  put  on  Ruth's  generous  resolution, 
Ruth  i.  15,  "Intreat  me  not  to  leave  thee,  or  to  return  from  follow- 
ing after  thee  :  for  whither  thou  goest,  I  will  go ;  and  where  thou 
lodffest,  I  will  lodge :  thy  people  shall  be  ray  people,  and  thy  God 
my  Grod ;"  being  as  she  stedfastly  minded,  or,  as  the  word  is 
strengthening  herself,  to  wit,  against  all  the  discouragements  and 
temptations  she  had  to  go  back. 

4.  There  is  a  generation  that  was  never  brought  to  be  content  to 
part  with  all  for  Christ,  and  to  have  him  on  any  terms.  There  is 
still  some  idol  that  is  dearer  to  them  than  to  part  with  at  any  rate. 
Such  a  one  was  that  young  man,  Mark  x.  21,  22,  "Then  Jesus 
beholding  him,  loved  him,  and  said  unto  him,  one  thing  thou  lack- 
est :  go  thy  way,  sell  whatsoever  thou  hast,  and  give  to  the  poor ; 
and  thou  shalt  have  treasure  in  heaven;  and  come,  take  up  the 
cross,  and  follow  me.  And  he  was  sad  at  that  saying,  and  went 
away  grieved :  for  he  had  great  possessions."  He  loved  eternal  life 
well,  and  therefore  went  away  sorrowful;  but  he  loved  the  world 
better,  and  therefore  he  went  away.  These  cannot  rejoice  in  Christ 
as  only  and  fully  suited  to  their  case.  If  ye  saw  a  man  prigging  in 
a  market,  and  resolved  not  to  have  the  commodity  at  the  rate  pro- 
posed, ye  would  conclude,  that  that  man  either  can  want  it,  or  he 
knows  how  to  get  his  want  supplied  another  way.  In  that  John  vi. 
66.  we  find  some  going  away  from  Christ :  hereupon  Christ  puts  the 
question  to  the  twelve,  ver.  G7,  "  Will  ye  also  go  away  ?"  Mark 
Peter's  answer,  ver.  G8,  "  Lord,  to  whom  shall  we  go  ?  thou  hast 
the  words  of  eternal  life."  As  if  he  had  said.  Lord,  it  seems  those 
that  have  gone  away  think  they  can  fend  without  thee :  but  as  for 
us,  how  can  we  go  away  ?  for  if  wo  abide  not  with  thee,  we  know 
of  no  other  door  to  go  to,  where  our  wants  can  be  supplied ;  and 


506  THE  DISTINGUISHING  CIIAEACTERS  OF  RBAL  CHRISTIANS 

tliereforo  go  who  will,  we  must  abide.  Now,  wlien  a  man  is  brought 
to  this,  he  must  needs  put  a  blank  in  Christ's  hand,  as  Paul,  Acts 
ix.  6,  "  Lord,  what  wilt  thou  have  me  to  do?"  He  will  be  ready  to 
part  with  all  with  heart  and  good  will.  If  he  rejoice  in  Christ  as 
the  "  treasure  hid  in  the  field,"  for  joy  thereof  he  will  sell  all,  that 
the  field  and  treasure  may  be  his,  Matth.  xiii.  44.  From  all  which 
it  appears,  that  there  are  but  few  who  have  got  this  view  of  Christ 
as  suitable  to  their  case.  But  happy  are  they  who  have  got  it. 
"The  election  hath  obtained  it,  but  the  rest  were  blinded." 

Thirdly,  Christ  is  suited  to  the  saints'  mind.  And  if  it  were  not 
so,  they  could  not  rejoice  in  him.  Christ  is  very  suitable  to  the 
case  of  every  unbeliever,  Rev.  iii.  18.  but,  alas  ?  he  is  not  suited  to 
their  minds ;  and  therefore  they  cannot  rejoice  in  him,  more  than  a 
child  in  the  cutting  off  of  a  leg  or  arm,  which  yet  may  be  very  suit- 
able to  its  case.  Give  a  natural  man  his  idols,  the  drunkard  his 
cups,  the  unclean  person  his  queans,  the  proud  and  ambitious  man 
honour,  the  covetous  man  his  clay-god  the  world,  these  are  suitable 
to  his  mind ;  but  as  unsuitable  to  his  case,  as  a  sword  for  a  mad- 
man's hand,  or  poison  for  a  sick  man.  But  Christ  is  not  only  suited 
to  the  believer's  case,  but  to  his  mind  ;  for  he  is  by  grace  made  par- 
taker of  the  divine  nature.  Christ  is  that  stone,  which  though  dis- 
allowed of  men,  is  yet  chosen  of  God,  and  precious,  1  Pet.  ii.  4, 
"  Unto  you  therefore  who  believe  he  is  (also)  precious."  There  is  not 
a  child  of  God  but  Christ  answers  the  desires  of  their  souls  in  breadth 
and  length,  Psal.  Ixxiii.  25,  "  Whom  have  I  in  heaven  but  thee  ? 
and  there  is  none  upon  earth  that  I  desire  besides  thee."  There  is 
none  beside  him,  none  like  him,  none  after  him  to  the  believer,  I 
have  read  a  story  of  the  king  of  Armenia's  son,  whose  wife  being 
taken  captive  by  Cyrus,  was  asked  by  the  conqueror  what  ransom 
he  would  give  for  her.  Truly,  says  he,  I  would  redeem  her  even 
with  my  own  life.  She  being  set  free,  and  they  all  come  home  in 
j)eace,  some  commended  Cyrus  for  one  thing,  some  for  another, 
all  admiring  him.  The  king's  son  asks  his  wife,  what  she  thought 
of  him.  Truly,  says  she,  I  did  not  so  much  as  look  on  him. 
"Whom  looked  you  on  then?  says  he.  On  him,  replied  she,  who 
said  he  would  redeem  me  with  his  own  life.  Thus  Christ  becomes  a 
covering  of  the  eyes  unto  those  who  behold  his  glory  by  faith.  He 
is  just  the  person  their  soul  desireth  :  if  they  had  their  choice  to 
make  a  thousand  times,  it  would  still  be  none  but  Christ.  For  to 
them  he  is  altogether  lovely,  or,  wholly  desires,  Cant.  v.  ult :  he  is 
most  desirable  ;  every  thing  in  or  about  him  is  desirable  to  them. 
I  shall  only  point  at  three  things  wherein  Christ  is  suited  to  the 
minds  of  the  saints,  and  to  none  others. 


OF  KEJOICmG  IN^  CHRIST  JESUS.  507 

1.  They  are  pleased  at  the  heart,  that  he,  even  he,  should  build 
the  temple  of  the  Lord,  and  that  he  should  bear  the  glory,  as  is  ap- 
pointed of  God,  Zech.  vi.  12,  13.  The  great  design  of  the  gospel  is, 
to  exalt  free  grace  in  Christ ;  and  grace  runs  through  every  vein  of 
this  contrivance :  and  as  nature  is  contrary  to  it,  so  grace  casts  the 
soul  into  the  same  mould,  Matth.  xi.  5,  "  The  poor  have  the  gospel 
preached  to  them;  the  poor  are  gospelled"  (if  our  language  would 
bear  it.)  The  gospel  comes  to  their  ears,  and  goes  down  to  their 
hearts,  and  changes  them  into  the  same  image  ;  and  they  are  de- 
livered into  that  form  of  doctrine,  (as  the  margin  hath  it),  Rom.  vi. 
17  ;  even  as  melted  metal  cast  into  moulds  comes  out  with  the  impres- 
sion figure  on  it.  Alluding  to  that  which  David  said  to  Solomon, 
1  Chron.  xxii.  8,  9.  I  may  say  the  saints  think  it  not  meet  that 
the  first  Adam  should  build  the  temple  of  the  Lord,  because  he  has 
"  shed  blood  abundantly,"  at  once  murdered  himself  and  all  his 
posterity,  and  has  had  great  wars  with  heaven  ;  but  their  souls  go 
along  with  that,  that  the  temple  he  built  by  that  son  of  his,  Luke 
iii.  23 — 38 ;  the  man  Christ,  typified  by  Solomon,  who  was  the  only 
man  of  rest  among  all  the  sons  of  Adam,  since  their  father  put 
them  out  of  rest  in  God ;  and  who  can  "  give  peace  and  quietness 
to  Israel."  See  how  the  psalmist  sings  to  this  glorious  building, 
Psal.  Ixxxix.  1,  2,  "  Mercy  shall  be  built,  said  I."  There  is  no 
merit  of  men  in  this  building  ;  it  is  a  building  of  pure  mercy  ;  and 
the  building  shall  go  on  still,  by  laying  one  mercy  above  another, 
and  that  for  ever.  It  is  pleasing  to  the  heart  of  the  saints,  to  be 
proclaimed  dyvors  to  raise  the  glory  of  the  Redeemer's  love,  to  be 
drowned  in  the  debt  of  free  grace,  and  to  have  the  advantage  of  an 
eternity  to  acknowledge  it  in,  Psal,  Ixxxix.  1,  3,  to  throw  down 
their  righteousness  and  their  unrighteousness  together,  to  be  step- 
ping stones  to  his  glory,  and  that  on  which  he  may  mount  his 
throne;  to  be  nothing,  and  worse  than  nothing,  that  Christ  may  be 
all.  This  suits  not  the  minds  of  natural  men.  He  is  "  the  stone 
which  the  builders  disallowed :"  they  were  so  far  from  allowing  him 
to  be  the  chief  corner-stone,  that  they  laid  him  by  as  a  stone  unfit 
to  have  so  much  as  the  least  place  in  it.  And  Peter  says,  (1  epist. 
ii.  7,  8,)  he  is  "  a  stone  of  stumbling,  and  rock  of  oflfence  to  the  dis- 
obedient," or  them  that  believe  not ;  and  all  natural  men  are  such. 
Yea,  and  Christ  himself  pronounces  them  blessed,  who  having  him 
in  their  ofi'er,  are  not  offended  in  him,  do  not  see  something  in  hira 
that  they  cannot  away  with,  Matth.  xi.  6,  "Blessed  is  he  whosoever 
shall  not  be  oflTended  in  me."  And  therefore,  let  men  deceive  them- 
selves as  they  will,  and  contradict  this  as  they  please,  "  Let  God  be 
true,  and  every  man  a  liar."  None  but  the  saints  of  God  are  thus 
Vol.  IV.  2  k 


508  THE  DISTINGUISHINO  ClIAUAOTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

pleased  with  hiin,  as  will  further  appear  by  what  I  shall  offer  next. 
2.  They  are  pleased  at  the  heart  with  his  laws.  They  rejoice  ia 
him  as  a  Lawgiver,  as  well  as  a  Saviour :  Is.  xxxiii.  22,  "  Tlie  Lord 
is  our  lawgiver,  the  Lord  is  our  king,  he  will  save  us."  All  the 
saints,  and  they  only,  would  vote  the  government  to  be  laid  on  his 
shoulders,  on  whom  the  Father  has  laid  their  help.  Christ  makes 
such  a  reasonable  proposal  to  sinners,  as  Jepthah  did  to  the  Gilead- 
ites,  Judg.  xi.  9,  "  If  ye  bring  me  home  again  to  fight  against  the 
children  of  Ammon,  and  the  Lord  deliver  them  before  me;  shall  I 
be  your  head  ?"  and  all  whose  hearts  the  Lord  has  touched,  will 
heartily  acquiesce  therein,  to  wit,  that  Christ  being  their  hand  to 
save  them,  he  be  also  their  head  to  rule  them.  Christ's  yoke  is  wel- 
come to  them  in  every  part  of  it,  so  far  as  they  know  it  to  be  his  ; 
his  law  is  suitable  to  their  minds,  because  their  minds  and  hearts, 
by  the  power  of  grace,  are  suited  to  the  law.  Psalm  cxix.  128,  "  I 
esteem  all  thy  precepts  concerning  all  things  to  be  right;  and  I  hate 
every  false  way  :"  for  the  law  is  "  written  in  their  hearts,"  Heb.  viii. 
10;  there  are  gracious  inclinations  wrought  in  their  souls  towards 
the  several  parts  of  that  purity  and  holiness  which  is  required  by 
the  law.  For  as  the  law  is  a  sort  of  transcript  of  the  nature  of 
God,  (wherein  God  shews  what  a  one  he  is,  and  what  is  pleasing 
to  him),  so  they  are  made  partakers  of  the  divine  nature,  2  Pet.  i. 
4.  But  because  this  partaking  of  the  divine  nature  is  but  imper- 
fect in  this  present  state  of  the  saints,  and  there  is  in  them  an 
unregenerate  part  as  well  as  a  regenerate,  therefore  th3  sin  that 
dwelleth  in  them,  will  have  its  reluctancy  against  the  sweet  yoke  of 
Christ :  but  it  is  only  a  partial  reluctancy,  not  total ;  seeing  there  is 
a  principle  of  grace  within  them  likewise,  that  approves  and  embraces 
the  law  as  holy,  and  the  commandment  as  holy,  just  and  good," 
Rom.  vii.  12.  But  this  is  far  from  the  wicked,  even  the  most  refined 
hypocrite,  who  always  finds  in  the  yoke  of  Christ,  "  some  stone  of 
stumbling,  and  rock  of  offence  ;"  some  part  of  holiness,  not  only  that 
they  cannot  attain,  but  that  their  hearts  are  never  reconciled  with  ; 
otherwise  the  Psalmist  had  laid  an  unsure  ground  of  comfort  to 
himself  in  that.  Psalm  cxix.  6,  "  Then  shall  I  not  be  ashamed,  when 
I  have  respect  unto  all  thy  commandments."  Both  the  godly  and 
ungodly  man  will  readily  be  found  to  have  some  sin  which  the  heart 
cleaveth  to  by  others,  or  cleaveth  to  them  more  than  other  sins  : 
which  is  like  Eli's,  1  Sam.  iii.  13,  "  the  iniquity  which  he  knoweth.". 
Let  the  trial  be  made  herein,  and  it  will  be  found,  that  the  lust,  and 
not  the  law,  is  suited  to  the  minds  of  most  men ;  and  that  they 
would  bestow  the  blood  of  their  bodies  in  the  matter  to  blot  out 
that  lust  crossing  command  out  of  the  law,  rather  than  find  the 


OF  REJOICINft  IN  CHRIST  JESUS.  609 

efficacy  of  Christ's  blood  killing  aud  utterly  carrying  off  that  law 
icrossing  lust;  desiring  rather  to  have  the  law  brought  down  to  them 
in  the  point,  than  themselves  brought  up  to  the  law.  And  it  will 
be  found  contrariwise,  in  those  that  rejoice  in  Christ,  to  whose 
minds  he  is  suited,  and  to  whom  his  laws  that  directly  fly  in  the 
face  of  those  lusts  that  do  so  easily  encompass  them,  are  as  chains 
of  gold  about  their  necks,  which  they  love,  and  approve,  and  em- 
brace; whereas  they  are  to  others  as  iron  fetters;  Rom.  vii.  12,  22, 
23,  24,  and  viii.  7. 

3.  Their  hearts  are  well  pleased  with  that  fulness  of  the  Spirit 
of  sanctification  that  dwells  in  him  to  be  communicated ;  and  that 
the  Father  has  appointed  him  to  be  the  head  of  influences,  1  Cor.  i. 
30,  31,  "  But  of  him  are  ye  in  Christ  Jesus,  who  of  God  is  made 
unto  us — sanctification ; — that,  according  as  it  is  written.  He  that 
glorifieth,  let  him  glory  in  the  Lord."     And  thus  they  will  be  found 
to  rejoice  more  in  the  grace  of  God  without  them  in  Christ,  than 
the  very  grace  of  God  within  them  :  as  he  whose  own  the  well  is, 
rejoiceth  more  in  the  spring,  than  all  his  vessels  full  of  it ;  though 
a  stranger  will  rejoice  more  in  the  fuliiesss  of  the  vessel  given  hira, 
than  the  fulness  of  the  fountain  which  is  not  his.     "  Thy  spirit  is 
good,  (says  the  Psalmist),  lead  me  into  the  land  of  uprightness," 
Psalm  cxliii.  10.     0  but  the  Spirit  is  good  in  the  saints'  eyes,  and  it 
is  good  that  the  fulness  of  the  Spirit  is  lodged  in  him.     To  whom  sin 
is  hateful,  and  the  spirit  of  the  world  an  unwelcome  guest,  the  Spirit 
of  holiness  must  needs  be  precious ;  where  the  power  and  stain  of 
sin  are  loathsome,  as  well  as  the  guilt  heavy,  the  water  that  came 
out  of  Christ's  side,  will  be  suited  to  their  minds,  as  well  as  the 
blood.     Where  the  love  of  God  dwells,  the  Spirit  will  be  precious, 
as  that  whereby  they  are  "  changed  into  the  same  image  from  glory 
to  glory."     Aud  as  the  Father  hath  appointed  him  head  of  influen- 
ces, as  the  great  channel  of  conveyance  of  spiritual  influences,  so  do 
they  acquiesce  in  that,  by  chusing  him  as  such  to  them,  Hos.  i.  ult. 
*'  Then  shall  the  children  of  Judah,  aud  the  children  of  Israel  be 
gathered  together,  and  appoint  themselves  one  head,  and  they  shall 
come  up  out  of  the  land."     But  seeing  in  others  the  spirit  of  the 
world  reigns,  the  Spirit  of  holiness  is  not  suited  to  their  minds  :  for 
"  what  agreement  hath  light  with  darkness  ?"  or  what  pleasure  can 
an  owl  take  in  the  sun,  that  hates  the  light  ?  or  they  whoso  hearts 
are  glued  to  sin,  take  in  that  which  is  destructive  thereto  ?     Yea, 
and  that  seeming  holiness  which  some  natural  men  attain  to,  is  but 
the  product  of  nature,  assisted  with  external  revelation,  and  the 
common  opcratioi^  of  the  Spirit,  while  they  remain  estranged  from 
the  life  of  God  through  Jesus  Christ,  who  is  the  life  of  the  saints. 

2  K  2 


510  THE  DTSTINGUISHINft  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

It  is  not  among  nature's  inclination  to  go  out  of  itself  for  sanctifica- 
tion  ;  but  nature's  way  hero  is  for  a  man  to  go  in  to  himself  for  it. 
Tlie  way  of  gospel  sanctification,  as  well  as  of  justification,  is  a 
stumbling-block  in  tlie  way  of  unbelievers,  1  Cor.  i.  23,  30.  See 
how  they  stumbled  at  it,  John  vi.  57,  "  As  the  living  Father  hath 
sent  me,  and  I  live  by  the  Father  :  so  he  that  eateth  me,  even  he 
shall  live  by  me."  Compared  with  ver.  63,  "  It  is  the  spirit  that 
quickeneth,  the  flesh  profiteth  nothing  :  the  words  that  I  speak  unto 
you,  they  are  spirit,  and  they  are  life."  But  mark  vers.  60,  66, 
"  Many  therefore  of  his  disciples,  when  they  had  heard  this,  said, 
This  is  an  hard  saying,  who  can  hear  it  ?  From  that  time  many  of 
his  disciples  went  back,  and  walked  no  more  with  him."  That  soul 
whose  choice  is  the  humble  dependent  life  on  Christ  as  the  head  of 
influences,  going  out  of  itself  for  sanctification  to  Christ  in  the  way 
of  believing,  is  a  happy  soul.  See  how  the  text  joins  these  together, 
"  worshipping  God  in  spirit,  and  rejoicing  in  Christ  Jesus,"  as  the 
altar  of  burning-offering  where  the  fire  continually  burns,  which 
they  may  fetch  to  set  to  the  incense  of  their  duties.  And  so  much 
for  the  first  thing  in  this  rejoicing,  which  is  the  main  thing.  I  shall 
be  more  brief  in  the  rest,  which  do  of  course  follow  on  this  holy 
complacency  of  the  soul  in  Christ,  and  the  mystery  of  Christ. 

Secondly,  Then  there  is  in  this  rejoicing  in  Christ,  "  a  rolling  of 
the  soul  over  on  him  for  all.  Rejoicing  in  Christ  Jesus,  and  have 
no  confidence  in  the  flesh."  The  child  of  God  beholding  him  suited 
to  the  divine  perfections,  to  his  case,  and  to  his  mind,  goeth  out  to 
liim,  and  embraceth  him  accordingly,  laying  the  whole  stress  of  his 
soul  upon  him,  taking  him  joyfully  for  his  case.  This  is  intimated 
to  us  in  the  parable  of  the  "  treasure  hid  in  a  field  :  the  which  when 
a  man  hath  found,  he  hideth,  and  for  joy  thereof  goeth  and  selleth 
all  that  he  hath,  and  buyeth  that  field,  Matth.  xiii.  44.  The  gospel 
is  that  field,  and  Christ  is  the  treasure.  Observe,  (1.)  To  whomso- 
ever the  gospel  comes,  they  may  have  Christ  if  they  will  :  he  offers 
himself  in  it.  For  the  treasure  is  in  the  field,  and  the  field  and 
treasure  are  to  be  sold.  (2.)  Few  see  the  glory  and  excellency  of 
Christ  held  forth  in  the  gospel,  and  therefore  he  and  his  gospel  too 
are  slighted.  Many  go  over  the  field,  but  find  no  treasure  in  it, 
behold  not  the  riches  of  the  glory  of  the  mystery  of  Christ,  and  hid- 
den wisdom  of  God,  therein  ;  and  therefore  says,  what  is  that  field 
more  than  another,  "that  beloved  more  than  another  beloved?" 
(3.)  Whensoever  the  glory  of  Christ  is  discovered  to  a  soul,  that 
soul  is  pleased  with  him,  beholds  him  as  an  upmaking  portion ;  so 
as  the  man  concludes,  that  if  he  had  him,  he  woujd  have  enough  in 
him.     For  he  has  joy  thereof  on  the  discovery,  and  is  willing  to  part 


OF  KEJOICING  IN  CHKIST  JESUS.  511 

with  all  for  it.  (4.)  Tliat  soul  will  not  rest  till  the  happy  bargain 
be  made,  and  Christ  be  his,  Rnth  iii.  ult.  (5.)  That  soul  quits  the 
gripe  of  all  other  to  live  on  Christ,  to  take  hira  for  and  instead  of 
all ;  he  lays  his  all  upon  the  treasure  :  if  it  hold  good,  he  has  all ; 
if  it  should  fail,  he  has  nothing.  From  that  time  that  treasure  is  all 
his  stock,  all  that  he  has  to  lippen  to.  Happy  tliat  soul  that  thus 
rejoiceth  in  Christ.  That  is  the  wise  man,  who  digs  till  he  comes  to 
the  rock,  and  then  with  joy  builds  on  it.  The  soul  finds  it  has  a 
heavy  weiglit  of  wants,  weakeuess,  and  miseries,  which  it  is  neither 
able  to  bear  nor  throw  off;  but  finding  that  Christ  is  every  way 
suitable  to  such  a  one's  case,  and  hearing  such  a  comfortable  voice 
of  Christ  in  the  gospel,  as  the  old  man  in  Gibeah  gave  to  the  Levite, 
while  he  sat  in  the  street  of  the  city,  and  no  man  offered  to  take  him 
into  his  house,  "  Let  all  thy  wants  lie  upon  me,"  Judg.  xix.  18,  20, 
the  soul  heartily  complies  with  the  offer,  and  casts  all  its  burdens 
on  Christ  for  time  and  eternity,  Psal.  Iv.  22  ;  and  especially  these 
two. 

1.  Their  weight  of  guilt. 

2.  Their  weight  of  duties. 

First,  Their  weight  of  guilt  is  laid  over  upon  him  "  through  faith 
in  his  blood,"  Rom.  iii.  25.  Guilt  is  a  heavy  load,  able  to  sink  the 
soul  into  the  lowest  hell ;  but  the  soul  comes  as  the  offerer  under  the 
law,  and  lays  its  hand  on  the  head  of  the  sacrifice,  thereby  casting 
over  this  weight  on  a  crucified  Christ.  They  come  with  their  pol- 
luted souls  to  the  blood  of  sprinkling,  that  speaks  mercy,  and  speaks 
away  wrath  from  the  guilty  creature,  Heb.  xii.  24.  Christ  is  the 
city  of  refuge  ;  and  thither  they  go,  and  throw  themselves  into  it,  as 
the  only  place  suitable  for  them  to  dwell  in,  Heb.  vi.  18.  All  with- 
out this  city  of  refuge  is  under  the  dominion  of  the  law ;  there  death 
reigns  ;  there  justice  is  doing,  and  ready  to  do  more  eyecutiou  ; 
there  floods  run  sweeping  away  the  refuges  of  lies ;  there  the  hea- 
vens ai'e  black,  the  windows  of  heaven  opened,  and  the  fountains  of 
the  great  deep  broken  up,  and  a  broken  law  without  intermission 
raining  curses  on  the  guilty  heads.  Wherefore  the  soul  at  first 
makes  haste  to  escape,  as  Lot  was  bidden  do  to  get  out  of  Sodom  ; 
and  throwing  itself  into  Christ  as  the  city  of  refuge,  the  only  place 
where  no  wrath  can  fall  on  the  guilty,  carefully  abides  there,  and 
dare  not  set  out  its  head  without  the  gates  for  ever,  Psal.  xci.  1, 
"  He  that  dwelleth  in  the  secret  place  of  the  Most  High,  shall  abide 
under  tlie  shadow  of  the  Almighty,"  Verse  2,  "  I  will  say  of  the 
Lord,  He  is  my  refuge."  I  have  said,  I  do  say  it,  and  will  ever  say 
it,  that  "  he  is  my  refuge,"  to  whom  I  will  betake  myself,  and  under 
whose  protection  I  may  be  safe,  as  the  chickens  under  the  wings  of 


512  THE  BISTINGUISHING  ClIAKACTERS  OF  KEAL  CHRISTIANS. 

the  lien,  as  the  word  the  Holy  Ghost  here  useth  is  explained,  Ruth 
ii.  12,  "  The  Lord  God  of  Israel,  under  whose  wings  thou  art  come 
to  trust."  And  thus  Christ  himself  holds  out  that  safe  covert  of 
his  righteousness  and  grace,  which  he  offers  to  sinners  in  the  gospel, 
Matth.  xxiii.  37,  "  How  often  would  I  have  gathered  thy  children 
together,  even  as  a  hen  gathereth  her  chickens  under  her  wings  !" 
They  are  weak,  and  in  hazard  of  being  made  a  pray  ;  but  under  the 
wings  of  his  grace  they  may  find  safety,  tender  affection,  and  cherish- 
ing for  their  dejected  souls,  Psal.  xci.  4 ;  and  therefore  come  they 
to  "  trust  under  his  wings."  His  blood  is  the  only  propitiation  to 
which  they  lippen  their  souls,  his  righteousness  their  only  cover,  his 
satisfaction  their  only  plea,  or  ground  on  which  they  will  plead 
mercy,  his  payment  of  the  debt  their  only  plea  for  their  discharge  ; 
for  they  have  had  the  sentence  of  death  in  themselves  carried  and 
thrust  home  into  their  souls  by  the  law,  that  they  might  trust  in  him 
who  raiseth  the  dead,  while  others  keep  up  their  confidence  in  the 
flesh.  Such  the  Lord  pronounceth  blessed,  Matth.  v.  3,  "  Blessed 
are  the  poor  in  spirit." 

Secondly,  Their  weight  of  duties  is  laid  over  on  him. 

1.  For  performance.  Christ  lays  his  yoke  upon  the  believer,  and 
lie  receives  it,  and  lays  himself  and  it  over  on  himself  again  as  the 
fountain  of  strength  :  Matth.  xi.  29,  "  Take  my  yoke  upon  you," 
says  Christ,  "and  learn  of  me,  for  I  am  meek  and  lowly  in  heart; 
and  ye  shall  find  rest  unto  your  souls."  And  says  the  Psalmist, 
Psal.  cvi.  9,  10,  "  I  will  walk  before  the  Lord  in  the  land  of  the 
living.  I  believed,  therefore  have  I  spoken."  Hence  it  becomes  a 
sweet  and  easy  yoke,  which  before  was  a  burden  unsupportable. 
How  can  that  be  ?  Why,  duties  are  indeed  a  dead  weight  while 
laid  on  purely  by  the  hand  of  the  law,  and  borne  merely  by  virtue 
of  the  poor  remains  of  that  strength  which  the  first  Adam  left  us ; 
which  in  effect  is  but  mere  weakness,  and  cannot  make  us  bear  it 
more  than  a  child  can  bear  a  mountain,  John  xv.  5,  "  "Without  me 
ye  can  do  nothing."  But  as  for  the  yoke  of  Christ,  it  is  laid  on 
with  a  promise  of  strength,  and  with  it  is  laid  into  the  heart  a  prin- 
ciple of  rolling  over  the  soul  and  it  on  Christ  again :  Gal.  ii.  20,  "  I 
am  crucified  with  Christ,"  says  the  apostle  :  "  Nevertheless  I  live  ; 
yet  not  I,  but  Christ  liveth  in  me  r  and  the  life  which  I  now  live  in 
the  flesh,  1  live  by  the  faith  of  the  Son  of  God,  who  loved  me,  and 
gave  himself  for  me."  And  so  he  bears  the  heavy  end  of  his  own 
yoke,  and  bears  them  and  their  burden  too.  Thus  the  believer  has 
(to  speak  with  reverence)  a  kind  of  derived  omnipotency,  Phil.  iv. 
13,  "  I  can  do  all  things  through  Christ  which  strengtheneth  me. 
Tor  it  is  God  which  worketh  in  you,  both  to  will  and  to  do  of  his 


OP  REJOICING  IN  CHRIST  JESUS.  513 

good  pleasure,  cliap.  ii.  13.  He  works  tlie  will  for  the  work,  and 
the  work  for  us  when  he  has  wrought  the  will  for  it.  A  vast  weight 
may  be  on  a  little  stone  in  a  building,  without  its  sinking,  when  it, 
and  all  that  is  on  it,  lies  upon  a  rock.  And  hence  the  11th  chapter 
of  the  epistle  to  the  Ilebrews  is  spent  in  shewing  the  mighty  things 
the  saints  have  done  and  suffered  by  faith.  For  in  a  believer  there 
is  a  most  suitable  match,  sufficiency  joined  with  insufficiency,  2  Cor. 
iii.  5.  strength  with  weakness,  all  fulness  with  wants  and  poverty ; 
even  the  mighty  God  with  worm  Jacob.  And  thus  the  believer  goes 
out  of  himself  for  performance  of  duties,  while  the  hypocrite  goes  iu 
to  himself.  For  it  is  a  plain  truth,  that  the  way  and  manner  of 
working  follows  the  manner  of  being  and  living,  and  every  man  will 
act  as  he  lives.  Now,  the  believer  lives  by  Christ,  John  vi.  57-  and 
therefore  must  act  by  him ;  and  with  the  same  care  will  endeavour 
to  hold  off  lippening  to  his  own  strength,  as  to  his  own  righteous- 
ness. Psalm  Ixxi.  16;  and  to  take  Christ  for  sanctification,  as  well 
as  for  righteousness,  God  having  made  him  both  to  his  people. 
Natural  men  are  without  Christ,  i.  e.  separate  from  him,  John  xv. 
5 ;  and  so  are  as  trees  by  themselves,  having  their  own  root  in  the 
ground :  and  hence  for  the  fruit  of  duty  all  the  natural  powers  of 
their  souls  are  called  together  as  in  a  solemn  day.  Josh.  xxiv.  18, 
19  :  but  because  their  root  is  rottenness,  their  blossom  goes  up  as 
dust ;  and  their  fruits  are  like  the  apples  of  Sodom,  which  are  very 
pleasant  to  the  eye,  but  being  cut  up,  are  found  nothing  but  a  heap 
of  loathsome  matter ;  and  no  wonder,  seeing  they  grow  by  the  dead 
sea  of  self.  But  the  godly  are  branches  whose  fruit  depends  on 
influence  from  Christ,  as  the  true  vine  into  which  they  are  in- 
grafted :  hence  the  bent  of  the  believer's  soul  lies  that  way,  not  to 
trust  his  natural  powers,  gifts,  nay,  nor  inhex"ent  graces  either; 
seeing  these  depend  on  Christ,  as  light  on  the  sun,  and  are  but  rays, 
not  the  fountain  of  light,  and  therefore  must  still  be  fed  from  the 
fountain  ;  but  to  go  out  of  himself,  in  the  way  of  believing,  Phil.  iv. 
13,  "  I  can  do  all  things  through  Christ  which  strengtheneth  me." 
And  therefore,  while  others  like  common  boatmen  serve  themselves 
with  their  oars,  seeing  they  never  go  out  of  the  barren  region  of 
self;  they  will  depend  on  Christ  for  the  blowings  of  his  Spirit,  hav- 
ing a  mind  for  Immanuel's  laud. 

2.  For  acceptance  of  their  duties,  Heb.  xi.  4,  '•  By  faith  Abel 
offered  unto  God  a  more  excellent  sacrifice  than  Cain."  God  in 
Christ  is  the  alone  object  of  the  saints'  worship.  The  saints'  labour 
in  duties  which  is  accepted,  is  a  labour  of  love,  Heb.  vi.  10.  Our 
love  to  God  is  but  the  reflex  of  God's  love  to  us,  1  John  iv.  19. 
God's  special  love  to  us  darts  its  beams  unto  us  no  other  way  but 


514  THE  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CURISTIANS. 

through  the  veil  of  tlie  flesh  of  Christ;  and  it  most  be  through  the 
same  veil  that  our  love  returns  to  hira,  and  itself  and  its  fruits  ac- 
cepted, Eph.  i.  6.  Duties  rightly  done  and  acceptably,  are  the  re- 
turns of  influences  from  heaven  ;  which  are  communicated  through 
Christ,  who  lies  at  the  fountain-head,  as  the  great  mean  of  commu- 
nion betwixt  God  and  the  saints :  and  as  influences  come  from  God 
by  him,  so  the  duty  is  directed  to  God  through  him.  As  God  will 
not  accept,  so  the  saints  acting  as  saiuts  dare  not  oifer  for  accept- 
ance, prayer,  or  praise,  but  through  him,  Eph.  i.  3  ;  nor  any  good 
work,  though  it  were  a  sacrifice  of  their  own  blood,  but  as  dipt,  yea, 
"washed  in  the  blood  of  the  Lamb,"  Rev,  vii.  14.  They  will  not 
expect  any  of  their  sacrifices  to  be  accepted,  but  such  as  are  laid  on 
the  altar  Christ,  which  sanctifies  the  gift.  Here  the  stress  is  laid 
for  acceptance  by  the  saints ;  to  which  the  view  they  have  of  God's 
holiness,  the  naughtiness  of  their  own  and  their  best  duties,  their 
complacency  in  God's  method  of  grace,  and  contrivance  of  salvation 
through  Christ,  and  that  gospel-turn  that  grace  has  given  their 
hearts,  do  determine  them  ;  while  the  natural  man  is  a  stranger  and 
blind  to  all  these,  and  so  rushes  forward  to  the  throne  with  his  du- 
ties, not  honouring  the  Son,  and  thereby  dishonouring  the  Father  ; 
for  worshipping  in  the  name  of  Christ,  is  no  less  than  faith  in  his 
blood. 

Thirdly,  In  this  rejoicing  in  Christ  there  is  a  rest  of  the  heart  in 
hira  as  a  fit  match  for  the  soul.  For  as  in  marriage  there  is,  in  the 
first  place,  a  view  of  such  a  person  as  a  fit  match,  whereupon  fol- 
lows the  choice  and  acceptance  ;  and  in  case  the  person  chosen  ans- 
wer the  expectation,  (and  none  can  ever  have  too  high  thoughts  of 
Christ),  there  ariseth  from  thence  a  rest  of  the  heart  in  such  a  per- 
son, which  is  the  solid  joy  of  that  lot,  Ruth  iii.  1  ;  Prov.  xxxi.  11  : 
so  when  the  soul  is  pleased  with  Christ  as  every  way  suitable,  it 
rolls  itself  over  on  him,  and  rests  in  hira  as  a  fit  match.  Our  first 
father  Adam  did  us  two  ill  turns.  He  led  us  off  the  path  of  life, 
not  knowing  how  to  get  on  it  again;  and  so  left  us  with  a  conscience 
full  of  guilt.  He  led  us  away  from  the  living  God,  not  knowing 
how  to  get  to  him  again  ;  and  so  left  us  with  a  heart  full  of  unsatis- 
fied desires.  Hence  the  sons  of  Adam  quickly  find  themselves  like 
the  "  horse  leech  having  two  daughters,  crying.  Give,  give  ;  a  rest- 
less conscience,  and  a  restless  heart ;  to  each  of  which  they  must 
needs  say,  Shall  I  not  seek  for  thee,  that  it  may  be  well  with  thee  ? 
And  so  the  soul  sets  to  work  ;  and  the  first  way  it  goes,  is,  through 
dry  places,  seeking  rest,  as  the  devil  when  he  goes  out  of  a  man. 
And, 

1.  For  the  conscience ;  the  natural  man  goes  through  the  dry  and 


or  REJOICING  IN  CHRIST  JESUS.  515 

barren  region  of  tlie  law,  seeking  rest  to  it,  "  going  about  to  estab- 
lish his  own  righteousness,"  Rom.  ix.  3.  The  sun  is  gone  down  on 
them,  and  therefore  they  light  their  candles,  and  compass  themselves 
about  with  their  own  sparks.  And  in  what  measure  that  restless- 
ness has  seized  their  consciences,  so  far  do  they  go  the  round  of  law 
obedience  to  still  it.  The  cousciences  of  some  are  easily  lulled 
asleep;  a  few  coldrife  wishes  will  do  it  with  some;  some  shreds  of 
moral lity  serve  to  wrap  others  in,  in  which  they  can  lie  at  peace ; 
others  can  get  no  rest  till  they  go  the  round  of  all  the  external  du- 
ties of  religion  ;  nay,  so  restless  are  the  consciences  of  some,  that  it 
will  cost  them  to  do  many  things,  with  lierod,  to  remove  many  be- 
loved lusts  that  keep  the  conscience  unquiet,  to  water  the  couch  with 
tears,  and  lull  it  asleep  with  mournful  songs  of  prayers  and  confes- 
sions, to  bind  it  down  with  vows,  resolutions,  and  engagements  of  re- 
formation, and  after  all  carefully  to  watch  against  those  things  that 
disturbed  it  before.  And  yet  for  all  this,  because  it  is  not  sprinkled 
with  blood,  it  can  get  no  solid  rest ;  it  gets  but  an  unsound  nap,  out 
of  which  it  will  have  a  fearful  awakening.  It  is  still  but  "  as  he 
that  lieth  down  in  the  midst  of  the  sea,  or  as  he  that  lieth  upon  the 
top  of  a  mast,  Prov.  xxiii.  34.  Now,  Christ  finds  his  elect  in  this 
same  case,  seeking  rest  to  their  consciences  in  the  law :  and  what- 
ever rest  they  may  sometimes  find  it,  he  doth  at  length  set  fire  to 
their  nest,  and  draw  the  pillow  from  under  their  head,  till  he  make 
them  efi'ectually  dispair  of  ever  finding  rest  there  to  their  cons- 
ciences, whose  wounds  bleed  still,  and  spurn  all  remedy  from  their 
best  and  most  serions  duties  ;  and  then  discovers  to  them,  and  by 
his  Spirit  draws  them,  so  as  they  come  to  the  blood  of  sprinkling, 
the  only  conscience  purging  remedy  :  And  here  the  soul  finds  rest 
to  the  conscience  :  Heb.  ix.  14.  "  How  much  more  shall  the  blood  of 
Christ,  who,  through  the  eternal  Spirit,  oflfered  himself  without  spot 
to  God,  purge  your  conscience  from  dead  works  to  serve  the  living 
God  ?"  Chap.  xii.  24,  "  Ye  are  come — to  the  blood  of  sprinkling, 
that  speaketh  better  things  than  that  of  Abel."  1  John  i.  7,  "  And 
the  blood  of  Jesus  Christ  his  Son  cleanseth  us  from  all  sin."  The 
conscience  rests  in  him  ;  of  which  before  in  the  second  head.  But 
that  which  I  aim  at  here,  is, 

2.  The  rest  of  the  heart ;  which  the  natural  man  and  the  Chris- 
tian both  seek  :  but  the  soul  out  of  Christ  never  finds  it ;  only  they 
that  are  in  Christ  find  it,  and  find  it  in  him.  For  clearing  of  which, 
consider, 

1st,  Our  hearts  naturally  are  full  of  desires  of  happiness,  which 
crave  satisfaction.  Even  when  desire  fails,  Eccles.  xii.  these  are 
still  fresh  and  vigourous  ;  and  a  man  shall  as  soon  cease  to  be  a  man, 


516  THE  DISTHSTGUISHINtt  CHARACTERS  OP  REAL  CHKISTIANS. 

as  cease  to  desire  to  be  a  happy  man.  The  heart  of  man  is  an  empty- 
craving  thing,  of  a  large  capacity.  And  wants  are  interwoven  with 
our  nature,  and  desires  of  the  supply  of  these  wants,  that  man  seems 
to  be  little  else  but  a  compound  of  wants  and  desires,  which  are  en- 
larged as  the  ocean.  Heap  together  unto  Christless  hearts  all  per- 
fections that  are  to  be  found  in  all  the  men  of  the  earth,  increase  the 
heap  to  them  with  all  that  is  to  be  found  in  other  creatures,  all 
would  be  overwhelmed  with  a  vast  infinite  mass  of  wants,  as  a  filing 
of  gold  under  a  mountain ;  and  their  desires  after  all  remain  wide 
as  the  sea,  seeing  the  soul,  by  its  natural  make  and  constitution.  Is 
capable  of  an  infinite  good.  Ye  shall  as  soon  tell  the  motes  that 
appear  restlessly  flying  through  a  new-swept  house,  where  the  beams 
of  the  sun  are  let  in,  number  the  stars,  and  tell  to  the  least  grain  of 
sand  by  the  sea-shore  as  ye  shall  come  to  the  last  desire  of  a  man's 
heart,  if  you  keep  off  an  infinite  good.  Behold,  with  what  a  wide 
mouth  the  heart  of  man  appears  :  satisfied  it  must  be,  or  it  can  have 
no  rest ;  but  where  will  it  find  an  answerable  fulness  ?  Peace  and 
rest  they  would  have  ;  but,  alas !  the  way  of  peace  they  have  not 
known,  Rom.  iii.  17;  there  is  none  that  seeketh  after  God,  ver.  11, 
though  their  throat  is  an  open  sepulchre,  ver.  13,  standing  always 
open,  crying,  Give,  give,  and  never  saying  it  is  enough,  Prov.  xxx. 
16.     Hence, 

2dlii,  The  natural  man  goeth  through  the  dry  places  of  the  crea- 
tion, seeking  rest,  but  findeth  none  (Jer.  ii.  3,)  to  his  restless  heart. 
They  are  bewildered  travellers,  that  have  lost  their  way  ;  they  wan- 
der in  the  wilderness  of  created  things,  but  find  no  city  to  dwell  in  ; 
hungry  and  thirsty,  their  soul  fainteth  in  them :  for  Solomon  hits 
their  miserable  case,  and  plainly  shews  how  the  matter  is  with  them, 
Eccl.  X.  15,  "  The  labour  of  the  foolish  wearieth  every  one  of  them, 
because  he  knoweth  not  how  to  go  to  the  city."  The  man  goes 
about  extracting  the  sweet  of  every  created  thing  he  can  reach  for 
satisfaction,  squeezeth  the  sap  out  of  them  ;  but  they  will  not,  can- 
not answer  his  expectation.  They  are  in  quest  of  satisfaction ;  but 
are  in  that  case  of  the  Sodomites  at  Lot's  house  when  struck  with 
blindness,  where  all  were  for  the  door,  but  one  gripes  one  part  of 
the  wall  for  it,  another  gripes  another  part,  never  one  of  them 
could  find  it.  Some  fix  on  the  profits  of  the  world,  and  drink 
greedily  at  these  broken  cisterns  :  their  hungry  hearts  fly  at  them 
as  a  ravenous  bird  at  the  prey,  Prov.  xxiii.  5.  And  the  cream  and 
strength  of  their  afi'ections  are  spent  on  these;  and  yet  at  length 
they  flnd  they  are  but  spending  their  labour  for  which  is  not  bread. 
Is.  Iv.  2.  Some  hang  at  the  breasts  of  the  world's  pleasures,  lawful 
or  unlawful ;  and  often  press  so  hard  for  satisfaction  in  these,  that 


OF  REJOICING  IN  CUEIST  JESUS.  517 

they  wring  out  blood  instead  of  railk  ;  and  as  men  hammering  a 
flinty  rock  for  water,  bring  forth  fire  flushing  on  their  faces.  The 
man  is  like  the  hungry  beast,  which  if  it  abide  within  the  hedge  rives 
up  all  the  red  earth ;  neither  doth  that  satisfy,  but  they  break  oyer 
the  hedge  too,  if  so  be  the  forbidden  fruit  can  aff"ord  that  rest,  which 
that  which  is  allowed  cannot.  Some  pursue  the  lust  of  the  eye,  but 
that  is  never  satisfied  with  seeing;  some  the  lust  of  the  flesh,  and 
the  more  it  is  gratified,  the  more  it  craves;  and  some,  the  pride  of 
life,  and  that  can  never  be  satisfied,  Hab.  ii.  5;  Is.  v.  14.  Some 
soar  a  little  above  the  common  gang  of  mankind  ;  and  they  seem 
to  espy  in  knowlege  what  is  not  to  be  found  in  other  things,  and 
their  souls  fly  out  in  an  eager  pursuit  after  satisfaction  in  that,  which 
indeed  bids  fairest  for  it  among  all  created  things :  but  what  comes 
it  to  at  length  ?  The  soul  finds  the  way  to  it  sore  travel,  Eccl.  i. 
13  ;  and  after  they  have  travelled  far  and  sore  for  it,  tlieir  hearts 
are  stung  with  these  questions.  Job  xxviii.  12,  "But  where  shall 
wisdom  be  found  ?  and  where  is  the  jilace  of  understanding  ?  Vers. 
20,  21,  Whence  then  cometh  wisdom?  and  where  is  the  place  of  under- 
standing ?  seeing  it  is  hid  from  the  eyes  of  all  living,  and  kept  close 
from  the  fowls  of  the  air."  And  what  scraps  of  it  is  gathered  here  and 
there,  are  far  from  giving  the  promised  rest  to  the  heart :  Eccl.  i.  ult. 
"For  much  wisdom  is  much  grief:  and  he  that  increaseth  knowledge, 
increaseth  sorrow."  Thus  men  labour  in  the  very  fire,  and  weary 
themselves  for  vanity.  The  world  is  like  the  air  in  a  summer-day 
full  of  insects ;  and  natural  men  are  like  a  company  of  foolish  chil- 
dren, one  running  to  catch  one,  another  to  catch  another ;  and  when 
all  is  done,  none  of  them  can  fill  the  hand.  And  0  how  humbling 
is  it  to  think,  that  after  the  restless  heart  is  disappointed  in 
real  enjoyments,  it  goes  about  to  satisfy  and  feed  itself  with 
mere  fancies ;  so  that  the  imagination  is  let  loose,  and,  like  quick- 
silver, rolls  and  runs  hither  and  thither,  skips  like  a  bird  from 
bush  to  bush,  forms  to  itself  a  thousand  airy  nothings,  traver- 
ses the  world,  and  turns  the  man  into  a  thousand  fine  shapes, 
giving  the  man  a  multitude  of  possessions,  if  not  possessions  of 
the  hand,  yet  possessions  of  the  heart ;  as  that  word  properly 
signifies,  Job  xvii.  11 ;  as  if  the  foolish  heart,  when  it  had  tried  all 
other  means  in  vain,  would  strive  to  dream  itself  full  and  happy  ? 
But  when  that  "  wandering  of  the  desire,"  or  "  walking  of  the  soul," 
is  stopped,"  Eccl.  vi.  9,  "he  awaketh,  and  behold,  his  soul  is  faint." 
But  will  the  tired  soul  sit  down  and  rest  after  all  '■  No,  no,  Isa. 
Ivii.  10 ;  but  goes  back  again  to  the  same  door  where  it  has  got  a 
hundred  refusals.  0,  thinks  the  man,  if  I  had  such  a  thing,  I 
would  be  well.  May  be  he  gets  it ;  but  he  finds  for  as  big  as  it  was 
afar  oft",  it  will  not  fill  his  hand,  when  he  gripes  it ;   but  it  must  be 


518  TUB  DISTINGUISHlXa  CHARACTERS   OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

filled,  else  no  rest :  hence  new  labour  to  bring  forth  new  disappoint- 
ments without  end. 

Sdli/,  Christ  finds  the  elect  soul  in  the  day  of  converting  grace, 
thus  wandering,  and  seeking  rest  among  the  rest  of  the  blinded 
world,  brings  it  to  despair  of  ever  finding  it  there,  discovers  himself 
to  it  as  the  fountain  of  satisfaction,  as  he  opened  Hagar's  eyes  to 
see  the  well  when  she  had  laid  by  the  child  for  death.  And  then 
the  man  hears  a  voice  in  the  innermost  part  of  his  soul,  from 
Christ,  by  his  Spirit,  Psalm  Ixxxi.  10,  "  Open  thy  mouth  wide,  and 
I  will  fill  it."  1  can  do  and  will  do  for  you  what  all  the  creatures 
cannot;  "I  will  fill  you."  Many  a  time  you  have  opened  your 
mouth  wide  enough  to  your  idols,  so  wide,  that  it  has  been  no  small 
pain  to  get  it  closed  again,  and  yet  still  empty  ;  but  now  "  open  it 
to  me,  I  will  fill  it."  Lay  the  mouth  of  your  soul  on  the  breasts  of 
my  consolations,  and  they  shall  flow  abundantly."  The  word  for 
believing  conies  from  a  root  that  signifies  to  nurse  ;  as  if  faith  were 
nothing  else  but  the  laying  of  the  soul  on  the  breasts  of  Christ's  con- 
solations, in  whom  dwells  all  the  fulness  of  the  Godhead,  that  they 
may  suck,  and  be  satisfied,  Isa.  Ixvi.  11.  And  truly  the  soul  is  like 
the  hungry  infant,  that  gapes,  weeps,  cries,  sucks  every  thing  that 
comes  near  its  mouth  ;  yet  cannot  tell  what  it  would  have,  but  is 
still  restless,  till  the  mother  set  it  to  the  breast :  and  then  it  rests  : 
and  so  doth  the  believing  soul  in  Christ.  The  heaven-born  soul  is 
seeking  a  match  for  itself,  but  cannot  find  it  among  all  the  crea- 
tures ;  none  of  them  are  commensurable  to  the  desires  of  the  soul  ; 
there  is  always  something  wanting  to  satisfaction  in  every  thing 
the  soul  meets  with,  till  it  come  to  Christ ;  and  there  the  soul  finds 
at  length  a  match  for  it  in  its  enlarged  desires,  and  so  takes  up  its 
everlasting  rest  in  him ;  and,  after  many  years'  restlessness  and 
watching,  falls  asleep  in  the  bosom  of  God  in  Christ,  in  whom  they 
have  all,  and  abound;  for  coming  to  him,  they  come  to  the  utmost 
of  their  desires.  Ye  may  take  up  the  rest  of  the  heart  in  Christ  in 
these  two  particulars. 

1.  The  desires  of  the  soul  centering  and  meeting  in  Christ. 
"  Unite  my  heart,"  says  the  Psalmist,  Psal.  Ixxxvi.  11.  The  heart 
naturally  is  as  it  were  in  a  thousand  pieces,  each  of  them  following 
some  one  or  another  vanity ;  and  the  desires  of  the  heart,  like  a 
flock  of  hungry  ravening  fowls,  are  scattered  on  the  face  of  the 
earth,  crying  and  catching  what  they  can  get,  till  a  crucified  Christ, 
in  whom  dwells  the  fulness  of  the  Godhead,  is  discovered  by  an  eye 
of  faith  ;  and  then  where  the  carcase  is,  there  will  the  eagles  be 
gathered  together,  1  Cor.  ii.  2  ;  and  then  as  the  scattered  rays  of 
the  sun  are  contracted  in  the  burning-glass,  and  fix  on  one  thing,  so 


OF  EEJOICING  IN  CHRIST  JESUS.  519 

the  desires  of  the  soul  are  brought  to  meet  in  one  point,  even  in 
hira,  Psal.  xsvii.  4  ;  Luke  x.  41,  42.  The  heart  is  never  right  till 
it  come  to  this ;  for  while  the  natural  man's  heart  is  in  its  blind 
ramble  in  quest  of  happiness,  and  his  desires  are  sent  out  to  bring 
it  in  from  all  quarters,  no  wonder  some  of  them  stumble  upon 
Christ,  as  those  John  vi.  34,  who  said  unto  Christ,  "  Lord,  evermore 
give  us  this  bread  :"  seeing  they  have  a  double  heart,  a  heart,  and 
a  heart,  why  may  not  Christ  get  one,  while  the  world  and  lusts 
keep  another  ?  But  that  is  not  the  rest  of  the  heart  in  Christ,  the 
desires  of  the  heart  not  meeting  in  him,  but  parted  between  him 
and  others.  As  Jacob  found  his  marriage  with  Leah  and  Rachel 
both,  not  a  rest,  but  a  rack  to  his  heart ;  so  shall  the  divided  heart 
ever  be  found  a  restless  heart. 

But  alas  !  may  some  say,  I  find  indeed  desires  in  my  heart  going 
out  after  Christ ;  but  as  true  it  is,  there  are  many  desires  in  it 
going  another  way,  yea,  a  contrary  way.  Can  such  a  heart  be  said 
to  rejoice  and  rest  in  Christ  ?  For  answer  to  this,  consider,  that  as 
faith  is  not  perfected  in  this  life,  so  neither  is  the  believer's  rejoic- 
ing and  resting  on  Christ.  The  flesh  hath  its  desires  as  well  as  the 
spirit,  which  surely  go  another  way  than  to  Christ :  Gal.  v.  17, 
"  The  flesh  lusteth  against  the  Spirit,  and  the  Spirit  against  the 
flesh :  and  these  are  contrary  the  one  to  the  other ;  so  that  ye  can- 
not do  the  things  that  ye  would."  And  therefore  though  they  that 
believe  do  enter  into  rest,  and  they  that  come  to  Christ  do  even 
find  rest  in  him  here,  yet  there  remains  a  rest  to  the  people  of  God, 
which  they  shall  get  in  heaven.     But  to  clear  this  case,  consider, 

1st,  In  what  channel  runs  the  main  stream  of  thy  desires  ? 
Though  a  river  may  oa  each  side  have  its  small  strands  that  run 
very  irregularly,  yet  we  account  the  main  stream  and  channel,  that 
wherein  the  several  brooks  that  make  it  up,  do  meet.  And  thus  in 
the  child  of  God,  though  there  may  be  many  irregular  desires,  yet 
the  main  stream  of  desire  in  them  goes  Christ-ward  and  God-ward. 
The  Psalmist  wanted  not  desires  of  the  flesh ;  yet,  says  he,  "  One 
thing  have  I  desired  of  the  Lord,  that  will  I  seek  after,  that  I  may 
dwell  in  the  house  of  the  Lord  all  the  days  of  my  life,  to  behold  the 
beauty  of  the  Lord,  and  to  inquire  in  his  temple,"  Psalm  xxvii.  4, 
because  it  was  the  main  thing.  In  the  natural  man  it  is  quite  con- 
trary ;  his  main  desires  are  after  the  world  and  his  lusts,  the  bent 
of  his  soul  lies  that  way,  the  strength  of  his  aff'ections  are  spent  on 
these,  so  that  there  is  nothing  left  for  Christ  but  a  few  languishing 
desires,  that  bear  no  more  proportion  to  his  desires  after  other 
things,  than  a  little  side-stream  to  the  main  stream  o£  the  water. 
Thus  the  Psalmist  distinguishes  himself  from  natural  men.  Psalm  iv. 


520       THE  DrsTrNatrrsHiNa  cirA.RACTRRS  op  real  ciinisTrANs, 

6,  7,  "  There  be  many  that  say,  Who  will  shew  us  any  good  ?  Lord, 
lift  thou  up  the  light  of  thy  countenance  upon  us.  Thou  hast  put 
gladness  in  ray  heart,  more  than  in  the  time  that  their  corn  and  their 
wine  increased."  But  remember  I  am  now  speaking  of  desires 
after  Christ  as  a  rest  to  the  heart,  not  a  rest  to  the  conscience  ;  for 
seeing  "  skin  for  skin,  yea,  all  that  a  man  hath,  will  he  give  for 
his  life,"  the  terrors  of  a  restless  conscience  may  make  the  chief 
stream  of  desire  go  after  Christ  for  rest  to  the  conscience,  as  the 
foolish  virgins  when  they  saw  their  lamps  were  gone  out,  and  the 
bridegroom  coming,  left  all  their  other  trafficking  wherein  they  had 
spent  their  former  time,  and  went  to  buy  oil,  Matth.  xxv.  And  this 
leads  me  to  a 

2d  Thing.  Consider  whether  or  not  thine  absolute  desires  do 
center  and  meet  in  Christ.  If  ye  were  left  this  day  to  your  free 
choice,  never  to  be  called  to  an  account  for  it  whatever  way  ye 
made  it,  either  Christ  or  lusts,  on  whom  would  your  desires  meet, 
where  would  they  center  ?  Is  there  so  much  native  beauty,  and 
glory,  and  fulness  for  heart  satisfaction  seen  by  you  in  Christ,  as 
would  draw  your  desires  after  him  ;  ye  are  the  virgins  whose  heart 
Christ  has.  Cant.  i.  3.  Let  the  natural  man's  desires  after  Christ 
be  never  so  strong,  I  may  well  say,  they  do  not  so  much  desire  him 
because  they  would  have  him,  as  because  they  cannot  want  him  : 
they  do  in  this  what  they  would  not,  and  therefore  it  is  not  they 
that  do  it,  but  conscience  that  dwelleth  in  them.  And  on  the  con- 
trary, the  saints  have  their  desires  after  lusts  ;  but  so  complying 
with  them,  do  what  they  would  not ;  and  therefore  it  is  not  they, 
but  sin  that  dwelleth  in  them. 

^dly,  Consider  what  are  those  desires  in  thy  heart  that  swallow 
up  all  other,  as  the  sea  in  which  all  the  rivers  do  meet  ?  If  thou 
can  say,  it  is  the  desires  after  Christ  in  thy  h^art,  thou  art  one  that 
rejoiceth  and  resteth  in  Christ,  and  a  real  saint :  Psal.  Ixxiii.  25, 
"  Whom  have  I  in  heaven  but  thee  ?  and  there  is  none  upon  earth 
that  I  desire  besides  thee."  In  the  heart  of  a  saint  there  are  other 
sheaves  besides  Christ's  sheaf,  but  all  others  must  bow  to  his.  Do 
thy  desires  after  Christ  rebound  on  thy  desires  after  other  things, 
towards  the  weakening  and  wearing  them  off?  though  ye  see  ye 
come  but  little  speed,  it  is  a  good  sign  :  Rom.  vii.22,  "  For  I  delight 
in  the  law  of  God,  after  the  inward  man."  Compared  with  ver.  24. 
"  0  wretched  man  that  I  am,  who  shall  deliver  me  from  the  body 
of  this  death  !"  The  godly  soul  may  have  many  woeful  desires,  but 
the  heart  would  be  content  to  deny  itself  of  all  of  them,  if  it  could 
be  rid  of  them,  for  Christ.  But  on  the  contrary,  the  natural  man's 
desire  after  other  things  than  Christ,  swallows  up  all  other,  like 


OF  REJOICING  IN"  CHRIST  JESUS.  621 

Pharaoh's  lean  kine,  eating  up  the  fat  ones,  and  yet  still  lean.  His 
desires  of  Christ  nnist  yield  to  his  desires  of  lusts  ;  seeing  the 
hungry  heart  craves  satisfaction,  and  they  never  yet  found  as  much 
sweetness  to  the  heart  in  Christ,  as  they  have  found  in  other  things; 
and  therefore  would  judge  it  but  a  sorry  bargain  to  sell  all  for  the 
one  pearl ;  and  their  souls  are  never  content  to  part  with  all  for 
Christ,  as  was  the  case  with  the  young  man,  Mark  x.  21,  22. 

2.  The  desires  of  the  heart  "  abiding  on  him  for  satisfaction." 
The  soul,  after  long  wandering  amongst  the  creatures  for  satisfaction, 
at  length  seeing  through  them,  beholds  that  all  is  vain  and  unsatis- 
factory; and  beholding  the  fulness  of  Christ  by  faith,  lays  hold  on 
him,  and  rests  in  him  as  .an  object  adequate  to  the  desires  of  the 
heart,  as  one  that  is  match  for  the  boundless  desires  of  the  soul, 
and  in  whom  it  may  be  filled  :  Psal.  Ixxiii.  25,  "  Whom  have  I  in 
heaven  but  thee  ?  and  there  is  none  upon  earth  that  I  desire  besides 
thee."  And  thus  the  soul  is  brought  at  length  to  an  utmost  of  its 
desires ;  there  they  terminate  as  on  an  object  completely  satis- 
factory. Tliis  is  their  rest,  and  here  they  will  stay.  Here  is  the 
treasure  hid,  and  here  will  they  halt  and  dig  for  it.  This  is  the 
city  which  they  find  to  rest  in ;  there  will  they  abide  ;  and  there 
and  nowhere  else,  will  they  seek  a  place  wherein  to  dwell.  This 
rest  of  the  heart  in  Christ,  is  sometimes  in  some  of  God's  children 
screwed  up  far  higher,  when  they  are  filled  as  with  marrow  and 
with  fat,  in  the  sensible  enjoyment  of  him ;  yea  and  have  as  much 
as  they  can  hold  in  this  frail  state ;  when  they  are  filled  with  joy  in 
believing,  even  joy  unspeakable  and  full  of  glory ;  beholding  the 
unsearchable  boundless  riches  of  Christ,  and  assuredly  know  that 
all  is  theirs,  then  they  can  say  with  Paul,  Phil.  iv.  18,  "  I  have  all, 
and  abound."  But  this  is  too  high  to  be  a  mark  of  a  saint,  and 
would  leave  most  part  of  them  at  most  times  out  of  the  roll  of 
saints.  But  he  whose  desires  abide  on  Christ  for  satisfaction,  has 
taken  up  his  rest  in  him ;  for  he  can  say  with  David,  "  This  is  all 
my  desire,  although  he  make  it  not  to  grow,"  2  Sam.  xxiii.  5.  The 
heart  could  be  content  with  Christ  alone,  but  nothing  can  content  it 
without  him.  And  this  does  so  far  dry  up  the  devouring  deeps  of 
carnal  desires,  wherewith  the  soul  was  before  plagued,  whose  gaping 
mouths  it  was  the  man's  constant  work  to  seek  to  satisfy,  that  the 
soul  never  goes  abroad  for  satisfaction  among  the  creatures  in  such 
manner  as  it  was  wont.  Christ  becomes  to  the  soul  a  covering  of 
the  eyes,  as  Abraham  was  to  Sarah ;  and  a  draught  of  the  water  of 
life  quenches  that  scorching  thirst  they  had  before  after  creature- 
sweetness,  John  iv.  14.  They  give  over  the  trade  of  begging  at  the 
creature's  door,  and  the  door  of  their  lusts,  seeing  their  hearts  are 


522  THE  DISTINGUISHrNG  CnARACTERS  OF  REAL  CIIRISTIAyS. 

persuaded  there  is  bread  enough  in  their  Father's  house,  and  to 
spare,  Luke  xv.  17-  When  the  soul  comes  to  Christ,  it  takes  up  its 
rest  in  him,  saying,  upon  the  discovery  of  him,  as  one  was  wont  to 
say  when  rising  from  prayer,  "  Be  closed  now,  0  mine  eyes,  be 
closed;  for  henceforth  shall  ye  never  see  a  more  lovely  object." 
Hence, 

1st,  The  gracious  soul  can  be  content  with  Christ  alone,  Psalm 
Ixxiii.  25.  forecited.  This  is  plainly  the  attainment  of  all  that  attain 
to  Christ.  Every  man  that  finds  the  treasure  hid  in  the  field,  and 
the  one  pearl  of  great  price,  sells  all  he  hath  with  joy  to  purchase 
them ;  which  he  could  not  do,  if  he  could  not  be  contented  with  the 
treasure  and  pearl  alone.  And  by  the  want  of  this  disposition  of 
soul  Christ  discovered  the  hypocrisy  of  that  young  man  spoken  of 
Mark  x.  21.  For  certainly  that  heart  is  divided  that  can  have  no 
contentment  in  Christ,  unless  it  turn  aside  by  the  flocks  of  his  com- 
panions also :  it  loves  him  not  as  a  suitable  match  for  the  soul, 
seeing  the  heart  cannot  rest  in  him.  Wherefore  the  gracious  soul 
sees  that  satisfaction  in  Christ,  that  it  can  live  on  him  without  its 
former  lusts,  Prov.  iii.  8;  Hos.  xiv.  8;  yea  and  though  all  the 
things  in  the  world  be  gone  from  him,  while  his  God  is  not  gone, 
his  rest  and  rejoicing  will  be  to  the  fore,  Hab.  iii.  17,  18;  John 
xvi.  22. 

2dli/.  Nothing  can  fill  Christ's  room  with  them,  have  what  they 
will ;  the  want  of  him  squeezes  the  sap  out  of  all  other  enjoyments 
to  them,  Psalm  xxx.  7.  As  if  a  thousand  cyphers  were  set  together 
without  a  figure,  the  total  will  still  be  naught ;  so  unto  the  gracious 
soul  all  without  Christ  is  naught,  because  he  is  the  rest  of  their 
hearts.  Hence  says  the  apostle,  Phil.  iii.  8,  "  Yea  doubtless,  and  I 
count  all  things  but  loss,  for  the  excellency  of  the  knowledge  of 
Christ  Jesus  my  Lord  :  for  whom  I  have  snff"ered  the  loss  of  all 
things,  and  do  count  them  but  dung,  that  I  may  win  Christ."  The 
worldly  man's  indefinite  wish  says,  he  is  too  easily  pleased;  it  is 
any  good.  Psalm  iv.  6  ;  it  is  any  one  he  seeks  it  of:  but  the  godly 
man's  wish  is  very  particular,  "  the  liglit  of  thy  countenance  ;"  it  is 
the  Lord  he  seeks  it  of;  the  favour  of  God  in  Christ,  or  nothing. 
As  the  raven  sent  out  of  the  ark  missed  not  the  ark  while  there  was 
carrion  enough  without  it,  to  feed  on  ;  so  give  natural  men  whereon 
to  feed  their  lusts,  and  something  to  appease  their  conscience,  they 
will  reign  as  kings  without  Christ.  These  are  their  good  things, 
Luke  xvi.  25.  But  the  heart  of  the  child  of  God  will  say.  Lord, 
what  wilt  thou  give  me,  if  I  go  without  thyself  the  chief  good  ? 

Question.  But  doth  the  heart  of  a  saint  always  thus  rest  in 
Christ?     Answee.   There  is  no  doubt  but  sometimes  one  that  has 


OF  KEJOICING  IX  CHRIST  JESUS.  523 

taken  up  his  heart's  rest  in  Christ,  may  fall  oif  his  rest,  that  he  may 
liave  his  soul  to  bespeak  to  return  to  his  rest  again.  Saints  may 
sometimes  take  up  their  rest  under  some  created  shadow,  but  they 
will  nut  dwell  there.  "  Jonah  was  exceeding  glad  of  the  gourd," 
chap.  iv.  9.  But  even  in  this  case  there  will  be  found  a  twofold 
difference  betwixt  them  and  natural  men. 

1.  The  saints  never  get  such  kindly  rest  as  the  natural  man  in 
these  things.  The  reason  is  plain  ;  the  natural  man  is  in  his  own 
element  in  that  case  ;  the  saint  is  not.  The  natural  man  is  as  one 
who  is  at  home  in  his  own  bed,  the  other  is  as  one  abroad,  2  Sam. 
xii.  4.  This  is  clear  from  the  case  of  the  spouse.  Cant.  v.  2.  She 
is  asleep,  but  it  is  very  unkindly  rest  she  gets.  We  may  notice 
here  three  things  that  make  it  so.  (1.)  There  is  a  thorn  of  self- 
condemnation  in  the  conscience  :  I  sleep  ;  I  am  out  of  order,  this  is 
not  the  case  I  should  be  in.  The  soul  is  accused  of  ingratitude  to 
Christ.  Christ  is  at  the  door,  lie  knocks,  and  has  stood  over-long. 
"  Is  this  thy  kindness  to  thy  friend  ?"  says  conscience.  "  Have  I 
been  a  wilderness  unto  Israel  ?  a  land  of  darkness  ?"  says  the 
Lord,  Jer.  ii.  31.  And  the  man  is  speechless,  like  Jonah ;  of  whom 
it  may  be  observed,  Jonah  iv.  10,  11,  that  he  answered  not  again  ; 
and  like  Job,  chap.  xl.  5.  (2.)  There  is  a  wound  of  self-dissatisfac- 
tion in  the  heart,  "  My  heart  waketh."  There  is  a  secret  discontent 
with  this  condition,  because  the  enjoyment  of  Christ  is  not  in  it. 
The  little  grace  that  is  left  frowns  on  corruption,  though  it  is  not 
able  to  master  it.  Such  persons  would  be  glad  of  Christ's  return, 
though  their  souls  are  fettered  that  they  cannot  go  after  him,  till 
he  put  in  his  hand  by  the  hole  of  the  lock.  (3.)  There  is  a  faint 
moving  of  the  affections  after  him  :  "  It  is  the  voice  of  my  beloved." 
He  is  the  beloved  still.  Though  the  soul  has  written  the  bill  of 
divorce,  in  fond  affection  to  another,  yet  she  would  not  sign  it  for 
ten  thousand  worlds.  Though  she  is  not  able  to  rise  to  let  him  in, 
yet  she  cannot  think  of  his  going  quite  away.  It  is  another  sort  of 
rest  the  natural  man  has  in  these  things  ;  where  there  is  but  one 
principle,  to  wit,  that  of  corruption  :  so  that  whatever  disquiet  con- 
science may  give  him  at  a  time,  yet  it  is  but  a  carnal  defiled  con- 
science. Tit.  i.  15,  and  cannot  disturb  the  heart's  rest  in  lusts  ;  as 
Balaam's  conscience  left  still  his  heart  in  love  with  the  wages  of 
unrighteousness,  2  Pet.  ii.  15,  though  his  conscience  stood  in  the 
way  of  winning  them.  And  though  the  heart  of  the  natural  man 
c^annot  be  free  of  disquiet,  seeing  it  is  impossible  to  find  satisfaction 
in  the  creatures  ;  yet  it  is  not  because  Clirist  is  not  in  that  case  of  his 
for  the  rest  of  his  heart,  but  because  the  creature  cannot  answer  the 
hungry  appetite  of  his  heart ;  yet  though  one  cannot,  he  hopes  an- 

VoL  .IV.  2  h 


524        TUB  niSTiNGUisinNG  ciiaracteus  of  heal  christians. 

other  may,  Tsa.  Ivii.  10;  and  so  all  that  it  amounts  to,  is,  the  slug- 
gard turning  him  on  his  bed.     Which  brings  me  to  a 

2.  Thing,  namely,  the  Lord  does  always  at  length  hunt  the  saint 
out  of  his  starting-holes,  till  his  soul  return  to  its  rest.  Hence 
says  he,  Hos.  ii.  6,  7,  "  Therefore,  behold,  I  will  hedge  up  thy  way 
with  thorns,  and  mate  a  wall  that  she  shall  not  find  her  paths. 
And  she  shall  follow  after  her  lovers,  but  she  shall  not  overtake 
them  ;  and  she  shall  seek  them,  but  shall  not  find  them  :  then  shall 
she  say,  I  will  go  and  return  to  my  first  husband,  for  then  was  it 
better  with  me  than  now."  As  the  needle  in  the  compass  touched 
Avith  a  good  loadstone,  rests  not  till  it  turn  towards  the  north  ;  so 
the  man  who  is  partaker  of  the  divine  nature,  and  is  born  from 
above,  will  get  no  kindly  rest  with  his  affections  on  the  earth  ;  dis- 
turbed they  will  be  till  they  be  set  on  things  above.  The  saint  for 
his  heart's  rest  goes  back  to  God  from  the  creatures,  Jer.  iii.  22,  23 ; 
the  natural  man  for  his  goes  from  one  creature  to  another ;  and 
when  one  stream  runs  dry,  goes  to  another,  being  conjured  as  it 
were  within  the  circle  of  created  things.  For  why,  the  curse  of  the 
serpent  is  on  such  persons ;  and  though  they  may  change  their  par- 
ticular place,  their  holes  of  the  earth,  yet  dust  is  their  meat,  and  on 
their  belly  must  they  go.  They  want  the  seraphim's  wings  which 
grace  gives  the  saints,  and  so  never  mount  heavenward.  We  do  not 
read  of  one  among  all  the  saints  more  like  a  bird  that  wandereth 
from  his  nest  than  Solomon.  His  father  had  warned  him,  1  Chron. 
xxviii.  9,  to  "  serve  the  Lord  with  a  perfect  heart,"  that  is,  accord- 
ing to  the  import  of  the  word,  a  peaceable,  quiet,  entire  heart,  rest- 
ing in  God,  not  falling  in  pieces,  and  gading  after  idols;  "and 
with  a  willing  mind,"  a  mind  taking  delight  in  God,  without  which 
the  heart  cannot  lie  at  peace  in  him.  But  when  Solomon  grew  old, 
his  heart  though  it  was  sincere,  yet  it  was  not  perfect  with  the 
Lord,  1  Kings  xi.  4.  He  fell  off  his  rest  in  God,  and  went  after 
idols,  verse  5.  And  many  a  door  he  went  to,  while  he  travelled 
throu'^h  the  book  of  creation,  as  his  book  of  Ecclesiastes  tells  us  ; 
hut  he  was  repulsed  at  them  all,  and  at  length  brought  back  again 
to  God,  with  that  report,  "  Vanity  of  vanities,  all  is  vanity."  For 
though  a  son  may  vague  a  while,  yet  seeing  his  father  has  a  house, 
he  will  grow  wise  at  length,  and  return  to  it:  Psal.  xc.  1,  "Lord, 
thou  hast  been  our  dwelling-place  in  all  generations  ;"  though  some- 
times they  are  not  at  home,  but  lodge  elsewhere.  But  the  common 
beggar  must  needs  be  still  going  from  house  to  house,  and  so  spend 
the  time  of  his  life,  because  he  has  no  certain  dwelling-place. 

Las^tly,  In  this  rejoicing  in  Christ  there  is  a  confession  of  him  nnto 
salvation,  Rom.  x.  10,  "  With  the  heart  man  believeth  nnto  righte- 


OF  REJOrCIXG  IN  CnRIST  JESUS.  525 

ousness,  and  with  the  raouth  confession  is  made  unto  salvation." 
This  the  word  which  the  apostle  useth  in  the  text,  and  properly  sig- 
nifies to  glory  in  a  thing,  doth  plainly  intimate.  And  as  the  image 
of  God  that  was  impressed  on  man's  soul  in  his  creation  did  shine 
through  his  body,  as  the  candle  through  the  lantern  ;  so  that 
complacency,  confidence,  and  rest  of  the  heart  in  Christ,  of  which 
before,  that  in  themselves  are  hidden  things,  will  nevertheless  shine 
forth  in  the  saint's  outward  conversation.  There  is  such  a  dexterity 
that  some  hypocrites  have  in  aping  God's  children  in  their  con- 
versation, that  it  will  be  very  difficult  to  know  what  to  say  in  this 
point ;  which  I  profess  I  would  rather  hear  of  than  speak  of.  But 
being  convinced  the  text  intimates  a  difference,  I  dare  not  quite  pass 
it ;  hoping  the  Lord  that  has  laid  it  in  the  way,  will  give  something 
that  may  be  useful ;  though  I  would  not  have  people  to  lay  the 
main  stress  of  their  evidence  of  their  state  here,  but  to  use  it  as  an 
adminicle  or  help  to  let  them  in  to  the  view  of  what  lies  more  in- 
wardly. I  shall  consider  this  holy  glorying  in  Christ,  and  confes- 
sion of  him,  with  respect  to  men's  ordinary  conversation,  and  with 
respect  to  their  conversion  in  suffering  times  ;  and  I  think  the  text 
looks  to  both. 

First,  With  respect  to  the  gracious  soul's  ordinary  conversation. 

1.  This  inward  rejoicing  in  Christ  wears  off  that  air  of  pride  and 
self-conceit,  that  is  seen  about  many  professors  vainly  puffed  up  with 
their  fleshly  mind.  They  will  not  only  have  humbleness  of  mind, 
but  they  will  be  clothed  with  humility  as  an  upper  garment,  1  Pet. 
v.  5.  Whatever  may  be  attributed  to  the  natural  temper  of  any,  it 
is  hard  to  think  a  saint  will  in  his  ordinary  conversation  shew  such 
an  air  of  vanity  about  him,  as  still  to  make  him  loathsome  to  tender 
and  discerning  Christians. 

2.  Grace  will  circumcise  the  self-commending  lips.  Boasters  are 
in  the  black  roll  with  those  that  have  but  a  form  of  godliness,  2  Tim. 
iii.  2.  They  that  rejoice  in  Christ,  feel  such  a  weight  of  corruption 
in  the  heart,  that  it  will  be  an  embargo  on  their  tongue,  to  keep  them 
from  a  course  of  proclaiming  their  own  goodness,  as  most  men,  but 
not  all  men,  not  faithful  men,  do,  Prov.  xx.  6.  But  it  is  sad  to  think 
of  the  strain  of  many  professors'  discourse,  of  their  condition,  abili- 
ties, attainments,  &c. ;  where  is  not  wanting  still  a  fat  sacrifice  to 
self,  notwithstanding  acknowledgements  of  God's  goodness  in  be- 
stowing these  on  them  ;  like  the  Pharisee,  Luke  xviii.  11,  who 
"  stood  and  prayed  thus  with  himself,  God,  I  thank  thee,  that  I  am 
not  as  other  men  are,  extortioners,  unjust,  adulterers,  or  even  as  this 
jiublican." 

3.  Gracious  souls  will  readily  discover  in  their  serious  converse, 

2l  2 


526  THE  DISTINGIUSniNG  CHAUACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

a  native  tendency  in  the  strain  of  their  discourse  towards  the  cor- 
ruption of  nature,  and  tlie  riches  and  freedom,  necessity  and  power 
of  the  grace  of  God  in  Jesus  Christ.  There  is  something  charming 
in  these  things  to  thera  that  rejoice  in  Christ.  Nearest  the  heart, 
■we  say,  nearest  the  mouth.  Grief  and  love  are  two  passions  that 
niightly  fix  the  mind  on  their  objects.  And  the  one  is  their  greatest 
burden,  the  other  their  greatest  support.  And  how  can  it  be  other- 
wise, seeing  the  great  design  of  the  gospel,  into  the  mould  of  which 
they  are  cast,  is  to  exalt  Christ  and  free  grace,  and  that  upon  the 
ruins  of  nature  ;  to  make  Christ  all,  and  the  creature  nothing  ?  Rom. 
iv.  16.  But  there  is  a  generation  to  whom  these  things  in  preaching 
are  tasteless  as  the  white  of  an  egg.  And  in  conversation  they  are 
knocked  in  the  head  with  them ;  and  are  so  far  from  entertaining 
others  with  these  matters,  that  they  cannot  entertain  them  from 
others,  unless  it  be  by  some  general  expressions,  that  it  may  be 
known  they  are  not  ignorant  of  these  things,  which  they  look  upon 
as  common  things,  and  treat  thera  as  unclean.  I  think  I  observe  in 
Paul's  epistles  a  more  than  ordinary  elevation  of  his  spirit  when  he 
comes  on  these  points.  It  is  quite  contrary  in  many  professors, 
whose  tongues  are  ready  interpreters  of  the  mind  in  matters  of  con- 
troversy, this  and  the  other  duty,  opinion,  enlargement,  attainment, 
&c. ;  but  when  these  come,  they  stumble  and  faulter,  because  the 
heart  runs  not  that  way. 

4.  They  will  readily  be  found,  as  occasion  offers,  to  be  no 
strangers  to  heart-exercise  about  their  state,  whether  they  be  in 
Christ  or  not,  and  will  discover  something  of  their  experience  that 
way  ;  or  if  they  do  not,  such  converse  as  hits  these  things  they  will 
be  ready  to  make  welcome,  and  will  not  snuff  at  them,  and  weary  of 
them,  as  if  they  were  out  of  their  element ;  for  they  "  rejoice  in 
Christ  Jesus;"  their  life  is  in  the  "  light  of  his  countenance,"  but  it 
does  not  always  shine  to  them.  And  therefore  the  question  of  the 
heart  will  be.  Cant.  iii.  3,  "  Saw  ye  him  whom  my  soul  loveth  ?" 
But  there  are  many  who  have  no  changes,  and  therefore  they  fear 
not  God ;  and  therefore,  like  Gallio,  they  care  for  none  of  these 
things ;  they  are  rich,  and  increased  with  goods,  and  stand  in  need 
of  nothing  that  way.  They  have  had  a  reel  among  their  affections 
some  time  ;  and  now  they  think  they  believe,  and  keep  up  the  prac- 
tice of  religious  duties,  and  there  is  an  end  of  it.  But  for  that  part 
of  religion  that  lies  about  the  vitals  of  it,  that  is  not  their  study, 
yea,  and  the  hearing  of  it  grates  upon  their  ears. 

5.  Rejoicing  in  Christ  Jesus  will  make  men  tender  of  other  Chris- 
tians, in  judging  of  them.  Hence  is  that  exhortation.  Gal.  vi.  1, 
"Brethren,  if  a  man  be  overtaken  in  a  fault,  ye  which  are  spiritual 


OF  REJOICING  IN  CHRIST  JESUS.  527 

restore  such  an  oue  iu  the  spirit  of  meekness;  considering  thyself, 
lest  thou  also  be  tempted."  The  man  that  finds  his  own  sore  run- 
ning on  him,  which  leaves  him  no  glorying  but  in  Christ,  will  be 
fair  to  handle  the  sores  of  his  brethren  with  a  spirit  of  meekness, 
and  be  ready  to  bless  God,  that  it  was  not  he  who  was  so  left  off  the 
Lord.  But  that  disposition  of  many,  which  makes  them  conclude 
people's  hypocrisy  from  particular  slips  in  their  way,  appears  most 
opposite  to  this,  and  to  be  the  i^roduct  of  self-confidence.  And  as 
they  thus  trample  on  those  that  are  fallen  below  them,  it  will  be 
found  they  very  little  honour  or  value  those  that  are  above  them  in 
spiritual  tenderness  and  experience  of  religion,  as  if  all  were  to  be 
cut  off  that  are  beyond  their  measure  :  for  the  truth  is  they  are 
heart  enemies  to  the  power  of  godliness ;  and  where  it  shines  most, 
especially  outshining  them,  their  carnal  hearts  rise  most  against  it ; 
and  in  such  a  case  will  readily  pitch  on  their  sores,  and  slightingly 
say,  "  Is  Saul  also  among  the  prophets  ?"  1  Sam.  x.  11.  It  is  but 
one  in  a  place  (very  few)  that  will  say,  And  who  is  their  Father  ? 
acknowledging  heartily  the  free  grace  of  God,  that  gives  to  every 
one  as  he  will,  whose  eye  is  not  evil,  because  the  Lord's  is  good; 
but  love  the  Lord's  image  wherever  they  see  it. 

6.  Such  as  rejoice  in  Christ  will  be  found  to  have  a  peculiar  con- 
verse with  the  word,  and  a  peculiar  relish  of  it  on  their  spirits,  ac- 
cording to  the  promise,  Isa.  lix.  21,  "  As  for  me,  this  is  my  covenant 
with  them,  saith  the  Lord,  my  spirit  that  is  upon  thee,  and  my 
words  which  I  have  put  in  thy  mouth,  shall  not  depart  out  of  thy 
mouth,  nor  out  of  the  mouth  of  thy  seed,  nor  out  of  the  mouth  of 
thy  seed's  seed,  saith  the  Lord,  from  henceforth  and  for  ever."  The 
Bible  being  the  discovery  of  the  heart  of  Christ  towards  sinners,  the 
word  on  which  he  causeth  them  to  hope,  the  magazine  of  their  com- 
fort, the  sword  of  the  Spirit  only  fit  to  repulse  their  doubts  and 
fears,  it  is  not  to  be  doubted,  but  they  will  shew  a  peculiar  respect 
to  it  as  such.  And  it  will  be  their  book  above  all  others;  their 
book  for  heart  holiness,  and  not  for  bare  head  knowledge ;  their 
book  by  which  they  desire  to  walk,  and  not  only  whereof  they  may 
talk.  And  those  places  which  go  most  near  to  discover  the  naughti- 
ness of  man's  nature,  and  the  remedy  thereof  in  Christ,  will  be  most 
prized,  and  the  name  of  Christ  crucified  in  it,  the  ointment  that  per- 
fumes all. 

7.  Lastly.  They  will  be  found  to  have  a  peculiar  respect  to  the 
place  where  his  honour  dwells,  to  the  ordinances.  If  men  rejoice  in 
Christ  Jesus  in  their  hearts  it  is  not  to  be  supposed  but  that  iu  their 
conversation  there  will  shine  a  peculiar  respect  to  the  galleries 
wherein   Christ  walks,  the   place  where  he   records  his  name,  and 


528  THE  DISTIiVUUISniNG   CIIAUACTERS  OF  UEAL  CHRISTIANS. 

usually  feeds  his  people.     Hence  says  the  Psalmist,  Psal.  Ixiii.  1,  2, 
"  0  Grod,  lliou  art  my  God,  early  will  I  seek  thee  :  my  soul  thirst- 
eth  for  thee,  my  flesh  lougeth  for  thee  in  a  dry  and  thirsty  laud, 
where  no  water  is  :  to  see  thy  power  and  thy  glory,  so  as  1  have 
seen  thee  in  the  sanctuary."     And  because  they  have  business  there 
for  eternity  for  communion  with  God,  and  participation  of  his  holi- 
ness, there  will  be  something  in  their  conversation  there  shewing 
them  more  kindly  guests  than  others.     It  is  an  open  confession  of 
Chi'ist,  to  worship  him  in  the  assemblies  of  his  saints.     I  know  not 
how  they  satisfy  themselves  that  they  rejeice  in  Christ  Jesus,  that 
rejoice  not  when  it  is  said  to  them,  "  Let  us  go  up  to  the  house  of 
the  Lord ;  how  they  satisfy  themselves  that  have  an  interest  in  the 
treasure,  while  they  so  little  value  the  opening  of  the  field  to  dis- 
cover the  treasure.     The  slighting  of  the  ordinances,  I  suppose,  will 
be  found  not  to  be  at  least  the  ordinary  spot  of  God's  people,  according 
to  the  Scriptures.     And  as  for  such  of  you  as  do  not  ordinarily  at- 
tend the  public  ordinances,  (as  there  are  not  a  few  amongst  us),  be 
your  impediment  what  it  will,  if  it  be  not  to  your  souls  as  the  draw- 
ing of  the  hungry  babe  off  the  breast,  your  affliction,  and  not  your 
choice,  ye  may  be  accounted  slighters  of  the  treasure  and  the  field 
both  ;  as  men  may  punctually  attend  all  ordinances,  and  yet  be  far 
from  rejoicing  in  the  Lord  of  ordinances,  and  from  any  such  joy 
shining  out  in  their  conversation  about  them.     It  is  not  every  one 
that  gathers  the  manna  there,  though  it  falls  at  the  tent-doors  of  all 
alike.     But  that  still  remains  a  truth  in  the  "worst  of  times,  that 
"  God's  words  do  good  to  him  that  walketh  uprightly,"  Mic.  ii.  7- 
And  it  fares  with  gospel  hearers  as  it  did  with  Jonathan's  servant, 
1  Sam.  XX.  38,  39,  "  And  Jonathan  cried  after  the  lad.  Make  speed, 
haste,  stay  not.     And  Jonathan's  lad  gathered  up  the  arrows,  and 
came  to  his  master.     But  the  lad  knew  not  any  thing  :  only  Jona- 
than and  David  knew  the  matter. 

Secondly,  With  respect  to  the  gracious  soul's  conversation  in  a 
suffering  time,  the  man's  glorifying  in  Christ  with  respect  to  the 
cross ;  our  Lord  has  a  weighty  word,  Mark  viii.  38,  "  Whosoever 
shall  be  ashamed  of  me,  and  of  my  words,  in  this  adulterous  and  sin- 
ful generation,  of  him  also  shall  the  Son  of  man  be  ashamed  when  he 
Cometh  in  the  glory  of  his  Father,  with  the  holy  angels."  In  oppo- 
sition to  this,  we  must  glory  in  Christ  even  at  such  a  time,  if  we 
would  evidence  ourselves  true  Christians. 

1.  The  saints  will  keep  on  Christ's  side,  though  it  may  be  lowest; 
as  better  with  the  cross,  than  the  world's  side  with  the  crown. 
There  is  never  a  soul  engageth  with  Christ  aright,  but  is  reconciled 
to  the  cross  of  Christ ;  and  in  the  day  of  its  closing  with  him,  lays 


OF  REJOICINa  IN  CHRIST  JESUS.  529 

down  its  all  at  his  feet,  taking  them  up  again  at  his  command,  to 
hold  them  as  his,  and  to  use  them  for  him,  ay  and  till  he  call  for 
them,  Luke  xiv.  26  :  and  so  is  content  to  run  all  hazards  with  him, 
and  Avill  not  be  boasted  away  from  him  ;  "  For  love  is  strong  as 
death,  jealousy  is  cruel  as  the  grave,"  Cant.  viii.  6.  In  a  time  of 
prosperity  Christ  gets  such  a  backing  as  Gideon  with  his  thirty  two 
thousand  men,  Judg.  vii :  but  whenever  the  storm  arises,  there  goes 
off  a  large  multitude  ;  and  when  they  are  particularly  brought  down 
to  the  waters  of  suffering,  there  goes  off  another  party,  till  few  do 
remain.  But  they  to  whom  the  kingdom  is  appointed,  will  continue 
with  him  in  the  trial.  But  it  seems  self  is  such  a  salamander  as 
can  live  in  the  fire,  1  Cor.  xiii.  3  ;  and  that  though  men,  by  deny- 
ing Christ  to  shift  the  cross,  may  prove  themselves  naught,  yet  even 
suffering  for  Christ  will  not  prove  one  to  be  a  saint ;  2  Cor.  xi.  13, 
"  For  such  are  false  apostles,  deceitful  workers,  transforming  them- 
selves into  the  apostles  of  Christ."  Compared  with  ver.  23,  "Are 
they  ministers  of  Christ  ?  (I  speak  as  a  fool),  I  am  more  ;  in  labour 
more  abundant,  in  stripes  above  measure,  in  prisons  more  frequent, 
in  deaths  oft."     Consider  then, 

2.  The  saints  will  carry  in  this  matter  meekly  and  humbly,  how- 
ever boldly,  as  knowing  the  snare,  and  their  own  weakness  to  resist; 
and  not  from  a  Roman  courage,  or  natural  stiffness  and  briskness 
of  spirit,  which  being  from  proud  self,  will  never  make  the  man  act 
humbly  or  suffer  so.  Hence  is  that  exortation,  1  Pet.  iii.  15,  "  Be 
ready  always  to  give  an  answer  to  every  man  that  asketh  you  a 
reason  of  the  hope  that  is  in  you,  with  meekness  and  fear."  They 
will  glory  in  Christ,  not  only  as  he  for  whom,  but  also  as  he  by 
whom  they  suffer.  Often  has  it  been  observed,  that  the  humble, 
self-distrusting  man,  whose  soul  has  trembled  within  him  for  fear  of 
dishonouring  the  Lord,  by  his  fainting  in  time  of  trial,  has  been  the 
sound-hearted  sufferer ;  while  the  brisk,  fearless  professor  has  made 
a  sad  account  of  himself,  when  it  came  to  the  point  of  suffering  in 
earnest :  Is.  xl.  29,  30,  31,  "  The  Lord  giveth  power  to  the  faint : 
and  to  them  that  have  no  might,  he  increaseth  strength.  Even  the 
youths  shall  faint  and  be  weary,  and  the  young  men  shall  utterly 
fail.  But  they  that  wait  upon  the  Lord,  shall  renew  their  strength  ; 
they  shall  mount  up  with  wings  as  eagles,  they  shall  run  and  not  be 
weary,  and  they  shall  walk  and  not  faint." 

3.  Lastly,  Though  the  saints  will  glory  in  the  cross  of  Christ 
before  the  world,  yet  they  will  glory  more  in  himself  even  before 
them,  but  before  God  no  glorifying  but  in  Christ.  But  it  will 
readily  be  found,  that  if  men  do  suffer  for  Christ  that  have  no  inte- 
rest in  him,  they  will  glory  more  in  his  cross  than  himself;  I  mean, 


530  THE  DISTINGUISHING  CUAKAOTEKS  OF  KBAL  CHKISTIANS. 

/the  cross  they  bear  for  his  cause,  not  the  sufferings  of  Christ,  called 
"  the  cross  of  Christ,"  Gal.  vi.  14.  It  appears,  that  those  seducers 
that  disturbed  the  churches,  gloried  much  in  their  sufferings  for 
Christ,  2  Cor.  xi.  23  :  but  in  our  text,  the  apostle,  to  difference  him- 
self and  other  believers  from  them,  says,  "  We  are  the  circumcision, 
that — rejoice  in  Christ  Jesus."  Thus  far  of  the  second  character  of 
a  gracious  soul,  which  I  may  sum  up  in  the  words  of  the  apostle, 
Rom.  X.  9,  10,  "  If  thou  shalt  confess  with  thy  mouth  the  Lord 
Jesus,  and  shalt  believe  in  thine  heart,  that  God  hath  raised  him 
from  the  dead,  thou  shalt  be  saved.  For  with  the  heart  man 
believeth  unto  righteousness,  and  with  the  mouth  confession  is  made 
unto  salvation."     I  shall  straightway  proceed  to  the 

III.  Third  and  Last  character  of  a  real  saint.  "  And  have  no 
confidence  in  the  flesh."  This  is  an  inference  from  the  second  cha- 
racter, and  natively  follows  thereupon;  for  if  our  rejoicing  be  in 
Christ,  it  will  not  be  in  another.  The  fixing  of  the  soul  on  him,  is 
the  removing  of  it  from,  and  the  rejecting  of  all  other  confidences. 
And  therefore  I  shall  endeavour  briefly  to  dispatch  it.  I  shall  not 
trouble  you  with  the  various  acceptation  of  this  word  flesh  in  the 
Scripture.  It  is  taken  here  for  any  created  thing  whatsoever,  with- 
out Christ,  that  is  to  say,  which  is  not  in  Christ,  on  which  men  con- 
fide in  whole  or  in  part,  to  commend  them  to  God,  whether  they  be 
external  things  or  internal.  Thus  the  saints  '*  have  no  confidence  in 
the  flesh ;  or  they  confide  not,  or  have  not  confidence  in  the  flesh, 
as  others  read  it.  The  expressions  are  much  the  same ;  only  it 
must  be  considered,  that  this  character  is  given  them,  not  in  the  eye 
of  the  law,  but  in  the  eye  of  the  gospel,  as  may  afterwards  appear. 
"  He  who  placeth  his  confidence  for  salvation,"  (they  are  the  words 
of  a  judicious  commentator  on  the  place),  "  either  in  whole  or  in 
part,  in  any  thing  whatsoever,  which  is  not  Christ,  or  in  Christ, 
certainly  confides  not  in  Christ,  nor  glories  in  him  ;  and  therefore 
is  none  of  the  circumcison,  nor  born  of  the  Spirit."  That  this  is 
the  true  sense  of  the  words,  appears  from  the  opposition,  in  the 
text,  betwixt  rejoicing  in  Christ  and  confidence  in  the  flesh  ;  as  also 
from  the  Apostle's  own  expilcation,  vers.  4 — 8 ;  where  he  shews  what 
he  meant  by  the  flesh,  not  only  external  but  internal  things,  drawing 
off  his  confidences  from  all  things  without  Christ,  and  centering  the 
same  on  Christ  alone.  This  is  the  character  of  a  believer,  but  not 
as  the  former  two,  a  positive  mark  of  a  saint ;  it  is  only  a  negative 
mark.  The  man  that  is  not  thus  qualified  is  no  saint:  yet  a  man's 
being  thus  qualified,  -will  not  of  itself  prove  hira  a  saiiit;  as  is 
clear  from  the  case  of  Judas,  and  all  despairing  persons,  who  have 
confidence  in  nothing,  and  so  no  confidence  in  the  flesh.  And  so  it 
is  to  be  taken  in  conjunction  with  the  former. 


OF  HAVING  NO  CONFIDENCE  IN  THE  FLESH.  53l 

Doctrine.  lie  is  the  real  Christian,  who  rejoicing  in  Christ  Jesus 
liath  no  confidence  in  any  thing,  that  is  not  Christ,  nor  in  Christ,  in 
the  matter  of  salvation. 

There  are  two  things  which  men's  confidence  in  the  matter  of  sal- 
vation doth  respect ;  God's  favour  to  them,  and  their  duty  to  God. 
All  know  they  cannot  be  happy  without  the  favour  of  God,  and  that 
there  is  uo  attaining  to  salvation  but  in  the  way  of  duty,  though  most 
men  cut  their  duty  very  short,  and  many  bring  it  down  to  believing 
and  repenting  at  the  hour  of  death,  they  make  it  so  scrimp.  Accor- 
dingly we  say,  1.  The  real  Christian  hath  no  confidence  but  in 
Christ  in  the  point  of  justification,  the  pardon  of  his  sin,  and  ac- 
ceptance into  favour  with  God.  2.  He  hath  no  confidence  but  in 
Christ  for  sanctification,  and  with  respect  to  his  duty.  And  both 
these  the  text,  I  think,  aims  at ;  and  the  matter  of  sanctification  is 
not  to  be  excluded,  seeing  the  Christian  worships  God  in  spirit, 
and  rejoices  in  Christ  Jesus.  These  two  points  I  shall  endeavour  to 
clear. 

I.  The  true  Christian  hath  no  confidence  iu  any  thing  that  is  not 
Christ,  nor  in  Christ,  in  point  of  justification.  He  dare  not,  he  will 
not  place  his  confidence,  in  whole  or  in  part,  in  any  other  thing,  to 
corajnend  hira  to  God  and  his  favour.  Christ  is  the  only  sconce  he 
lippens  to  for  his  defence  against  wrath  ;  only  his  blood  is  the  saint's 
life,  his  righteousness  his  only  covering.  Hence  says  the  Apostle, 
Phil.  iii.  7,  8,  "  What  things  were  gain  to  me,  those  I  counted  loss 
for  Christ.  Yea  doubtless,  and  I  count  all  things  but  loss,  for  the 
excellency  of  the  knowledge  of  Christ  Jesus  my  Lord :  for  whom  I 
have  suffered  the  loss  of  ail  things,  and  do  count  them  but  dung,  that 
I  may  win  Christ."  The  saint's  best  things  are  of  no  value  with 
him  in  this  matter ;  he  accounts  all  his  righteousness  as  filthy  rags, 
Is.  Ixiv.  6.  He  renounces  all  pleas  before  the  Lord,  but  the  plea  of 
Christ's  satisfaction ;  turns  his  back  on  all  other  refuges,  and  runs 
to  the  horns  of  the  altar,  and  holds  there.  He  owns  guilt,  acknow- 
ledges himself  a  just  object  of  vengeance,  but  throws  himself  into 
the  arms  of  a  Mediator,  and  looks  not  for  a  smile  from  the  throne 
but  through  the  Redeemer's  wounds,  nor  a  pardon  but  what  is 
written  in  the  characters  of  Christ's  blood  without  mixture.  Happy 
is  the  man  that  so  doth  ;  Christ  himself  says  it,  Matth.  v.  3,  "Bles- 
sed are  the  poor  in  spirit."  He  is  of  the  circumcision ;  for  he  re- 
joiceth  iu  Christ,  having  had  his  confidence  cut  oflT  from  those  things 
in  which  many  place  their  confidence,  to  the  ruin  of  their  souls.  It 
is  not  to  be  expected  we  can  reckon  up  the  false  confidences  that 
the  heart  out  of  Christ  hath.     Many  a  starting-hole  will  the  soul 


532  THE  UISTINGUISUINO  CHAUACTEUS  0¥  KEAL  CURISTIANS. 

have,  till  it  be  driven  out  of  tlicm  all  to  Cliiist.  The  ignorant,  the 
profane,  the  formalist,  the  natural  man  awakened,  have  their  seve- 
ral confidences,  whereby  they  hope  to  do  well  enough  without  Christ, 
or  at  least  not  to  be  obliged  to  him  for  all.  I  sliall  hint  at  some  of 
these,  whereby  ye  may  judge  of  the  rest  accordingly.  I  have 
already  shown,  that  the  saints  have  no  confidence  in  the  mercy  of 
God  out  of  Christ;  and  yet  that  is  the  strong  confidence  of  many. 
But  there  are  two  things,  besides,  on  v/hich  many  build  their  con- 
fidence, to  wit,  external  things,  and  internal  things;  some  things 
without  them,  and  some  things  within  them. 

First,  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  external  things,  and  will  be 
loathe  to  lay  their  weight,  in  whole  or  in  i)art,  upon  them ;  whether 
they  be  man's  externals,  or  God's  externals. 

1.  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  man's  externals.  I  call 
those  things  so,  which  God  never  made  duty,  but  men  make  them 
so.  These  are  not  only  vain  confidences,  but  vain  worship  and  ser- 
vice, that  is  loathsome  to  God,  Matth.  xv.  9.  Men  are  apt  to  cut 
the  law  short  enough,  as  it  is  found  in  the  word  ;  but  men's  nature 
has  a  wonderful  itching  after  making  additions  of  their  own  to  it. 
Hence  a  cloud  of  superstition  has  darkened  some  churches,  and  the 
simplicity  of  gospel  worship  is  despised ;  men's  inventions  are 
brought  in  upon,  yea,  and  instead  of  divine  institutions  :  and  when 
God  has  taken  off  the  yoke  of  ceremonies  instituted  by  himself, 
which  the  church  was  not  able  to  bear.  Acts  xv.  10,  men  have 
devised  out  of  their  own  hearts  a  yoke  of  ceremonies  in  the  worship 
of  God,  to  tempt  God,  and  bind  it  on  the  neck  of  the  churches. 
But  though  they  shall  be  bound  on  with  the  tie  of  antiquity,  as 
Matth.  V.  21.  there  is  no  prescription  against  the  law  of  God,  Matth. 
XV.  2,  3;  with  the  tie  of  church-authority,  as  Matth.  xxiii.  4,  the 
church  can  do  nothing  against  the  truth,  but  for  the  truth,  2  Cor. 
xiii.  8;  or  with  the  tie  of  civil  authority,  as  Hos.  v.  11 ;  seeing  it 
cannot  be  set  home  on  the  conscience  with,  Thus  saith  the  Lord,  it 
is  to  be  rejected,  and  by  no  means  complied  with,  be  the  hazard 
what  it  will.  For  it  is  from  Satan,  and  not  from  God  :  2  Cor.  xi.  2, 
3,  "  For  I  am  jealous  over  you  with  godly  jealousy :  for  I  have 
espoused  you  to  one  husband,  that  I  may  present  you  as  a  chaste 
virgin  to  Christ.  But  I  fear  lest  by  any  means,  as  the  serpent 
beguiled  Eve  through  his  subtilty,  so  your  minds  should  be  cor- 
rupted from  the  simplicity  that  is  in  Christ."  Deut.  iv.  2,  "  Ye 
shall  not  add  unto  the  word  which  I  command  you,  neither  shall 
you  diminish  ought  from  it,  that  ye  may  keep  the  commandments  of 
the  Lord  your  God  which  I  command  you."  Hence  also  flows  a 
crowd  of  opinions  and  practices  in  the  matters  of  God  not  found  in 


OF  HAVING  NO  CONFIDENCE  IN  THE  FLESH,  533 

tlie  word,  but  contrary  to  it,  which  men  zealously  stick  to  as  certain 
duties.  Men  greedily  drink  up  these,  aud  will  be  far  more  forward 
in  them  than  commanded  duties,  because  nature  is  always  fond  of 
its  own  brats.  If  men  once  take  in  these  things,  very  readily  will 
they  have  confidence  in  them,  and  highly  value  themselves  upon 
them,  Jiidg.  xvii.  12,  13 ;  as  is  plain  from  the  case  of  the  Pharisees, 
and  of  others  who  herein  tread  in  their  steps  :  for  it  may  be 
observed,  that  in  every  society,  according  as  these  things  do  rise, 
the  very  doctrine  of  free  grace  falls  proportionably,  and  men  will 
be  found  more  zealous  for  a  trifling  ceremony,  an  unwarrantable 
opinion  or  practice,  than  for  the  vitals  of  Christianity.  As  all 
gospel  truths  and  institutions  have  a  tendency  towards  the  life  of 
faith,  and  centre  in  Jesus  Christ,  Eph.  iv.  20,  21 ;  so  it  will  be 
found,  that  all  unscriptural  institutions,  opinions,  and  practices, 
under  whatever  pretences  of  holiness  they  be  advanced,  have  a 
tendency  to  weaken  the  life  of  faith,  to  carry  men  oiT  from  Christ 
and  are  subservient  to  self,  to  high  aud  towering  imaginations 
against  Christ,  Matth.  xv.  4,  5,  6 ;  Col.  ii.  18,  19,  21.  There  is  no 
error  in  the  head,  but  has  some  corruption  in  the  heart,  to  which  it 
is  allied,  and  will  strive  to  advance.  But  do  others  as  they  will, 
the  saints  will  rejoice  in  Christ,  and  not  make  men's  externals  their 
confidence,  Phil.  iii.  5,  7-     And  no  wonder ;  for, 

2.  The  saints  have  no  confidence  even  in  God's  externals ;  by 
which  I  understand  those  external  things  that  are  laid  before  us  by 
God  himself,  which  nevertheless  have  a  mighty  stress  laid  upon 
them  by  carnal  men.     And, 

1st,  They  have  no  confidence  in  their  external  condition  in  the 
world.  Whatever  it  be  by  the  providence  of  God,  they  will  not 
look  on  it  as  a  thing  that  may  commend  them  to  God.  Strange  is 
the  deceit  of  a  carnal  heart.  If  a  man  be  poor  and  mean  in  the 
world,  he  thinks  that  is  sufficient  to  secure  him  against  eternal 
poverty ;  and  concludes  thence,  that  God  will  have  him  to  suffer  all 
his  misery  here,  as  if  it  could  not  consist  with  the  justice  of  God, 
to  make  him  miserable  here  and  hereafter  too.  If  he  be  rich  and 
honourable,  that  swells  him  with  conceit  of  himself,  and  his  riches 
are  his  strong  tower.  As  he  is  set  before  othei'S  in  the  world,  he 
looks  to  come  before  others  in  another  world  on  the  same  score. 
Let  the  word  say  to  him  what  it  will,  he  keeps  his  confidence,  saying, 
IIos.  xii.  8,  "  Yet  I  am  become  rich,  1  have  found  me  out  substance : 
in  all  my  labours  they  shall  find  none  iniquity  in  me,  that  were  sin." 
And  if  a  man  meet  with  some  signal  favourable  providences  as  to 
his  outward  condition,  he  looks  on  himself  as  the  darling  of  heaven. 
But  the  saints  will  not  place  their  confidence  there  :  •'  For  the  king- 


534  THE  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTERS  OP  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

doin  of  God  is  not  meat  and  drink,  but  righteousness,  and  peace, 
and  joy  in  the  Holy  Ghost,"  lioin.  xiv.  17-  They  cannot  so  much 
as  be  evidences,  far  less  confidences.  Hence  says  the  Preacher, 
Eccl.  ix.  1,  2,  "  For  all  this  I  considered  in  my  heart  even  to  de- 
clare all  this,  that  the  righteous,  and  the  wise,  and  their  works, 
are  in  the  hand  of  God:  no  man  knoweth  either  love  or  hatred,  by 
all  that  is  before  them.  All  things  come  alike  to  all,  there  is  one 
event  to  the  righteous  and  to  the  wicked,"  &c.  Ye  may  be  poor 
and  miserable  here,  and  miserable  through  eternity,  Job  xv.  23,  24. 
Ye  may  fare  deliciously  every  day,  with  the  rich  man,  and  yet  iu 
hell  lift  up  your  eyes,  Luke  xvi.  And  though  like  Saul  seeking 
asses,  ye  found  a  kingdom,  ye  may  be  rejected  of  God  as  he  was. 

2dly,  The  saints  have  no  confidence  iu  their  external  privileges. 
The  false  apostles  boasted  much  of  their  being  Abraham's  seed,  of 
their  circumcision,  and  the  like.  But,  says  the  apostle,  "  We  have 
no  confidence  in  the  flesh."  He  renounces  all  confidence  in  these 
things,  vers.  5,  7 ;  2  Cor.  v.  16,  "  Wherefore  henceforth  know  we  no 
man  after  the  flesh,"  says  he  :  "  yea,  though  we  have  known  Christ 
after  the  flesh,  yet  now  henceforth  know  we  him  no  more."  We 
reckon  no  more  on  our  being  the  children  of  Abraham,  nay  nor  the 
brethren  of  Christ  himself  by  nation.  But  where  will  the  confi- 
dence of  many  be  if  these  be  removed,  that  they  are  church  mem- 
bers, partakers  of  all  church  privileges,  and  in  society  with  Christ's 
party  in  the  world  ?  But  rased  it  is  iu  the  saints,  and  rased  it  must 
be  in  others  now,  or  it  will  be  done,  when  there  will  be  no  occasion 
of  getting  another  foundation  of  confidence  laid :  Luke  xiii.  26,  27, 
"  Then  shall  ye  begin  to  say,  We  have  eaten  and  drunk  in  thy  pre- 
sence, and  thou  hast  taught  in  our  streets.  But  he  shall  say,  I  tell 
you,  I  know  you  not  whence  you  are ;  depart  from  me,  all  ye 
workers  of  iniquity."  And  when  the  children  of  the  kingdom  are 
shut  out,  their  case  of  all  men  will  be  most  sad. 

2>dly,  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  their  external  attain- 
ments ;  as  was  the  case  with  the  apostle,  Phil.  iii.  6,  7,  who,  "  con- 
cerning zeal,  persecuted  the  church ;  touching  the  righteousness, 
which  is  in  the  law,  (was)  blameless.  But  what  things  were  gain 
to  (him,)  those  (he)  counted  loss  for  Christ."  Great  confidence  have 
some  in  their  negative  holiness,  Luke  xviii.  11  ;  they  can  hold  up 
their  face  to  heaven,  and  say,  "  God,  I  thank  thee,  that  I  am  not  as 
other  men  are,  extortioners,  unjust,  adulterers,"  &c.  They  have 
lived  honestly  all  their  days,  never  wronged  their  neighbours  ;  they 
are  not  profane,  they  are  neither  drunkards,  swearers.  Sabbath 
breakers,  unclean  persons,  &c.,  and  have  observed  the  commands  of 
God  better  that  many.     And  indeed  they  have  been  going  to  hell 


OF  HAVING  NO  CONFIDENCE  IN  THE  FLESH.  535 

without  letting  the  world  hear  the  sound  of  their  feet.  Or  perhaps, 
though  they  have  been  profane,  yet  that  was  but  the  folly  of  youtli  ; 
but  now  they  have  taken  up  themselves,  they  are  not  what  they 
were  ;  and  therefore  doubt  not  of  God's  favour.  Sirs,  this  is  not  the 
spot  of  God's  people;  they  will  as  soon  venture  to  sea  in  a  bottom- 
less boat,  as  venture  their  souls  on  this,  that  know  ought  of  God  or 
of  his  law.  There  are  in  hell  this  day,  who  have  had  all  that  to  say 
that  ye  trust  in;  and  if  ye  renounce  it  not,  and  get  Christ  in  you 
the  hope  of  glory,  ye  shall  never  see  heaven  :  Matth.  v.  20,  "  For 
except  your  righteousness  shall  exceed  the  righteousness  of  the 
scribes  and  Pharisees,  ye  shall  in  no  case  enter  into  the  kingdom  of 
heaven." 

4thy,  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  their  external  duties  ;  they 
have  renounced  their  confidsnce,  in  whole  and  in  part,  in  what  they 
do  or  have  done,  Phil.  iii.  6,  7,  above-cited.  Yer.  8.  Yea,  doubt- 
less, and  I  count  all  things  but  loss,  for  the  excellency  of  the  know- 
ledge of  Christ  Jesus  my  Lord :  for  whom  I  have  suffered  the  loss 
of  all  things,  and  do  count  them  but  dung,  that  I  may  win  Christ." 
By  doing  they  never  think  to  see  heaven.  There  are  two  sorts  of 
men  opposite  to  the  Christian  in  this. 

(1.)  There  is  a  rude,  ignorant  generation,  who  do  little  at  all  in 
the  way  of  external  duties,  and  yet  they  say,  they  serve  God  as 
well  as  they  can ;  or  though  they  have  no  strength  in  themselves, 
they  do  as  well  as  God  will  give  them  grace  ;  yea,  some  will  say, 
they  do  as  well  as  God  will  give  them  leave.  I  speak  what  I  know 
to  be  true.  And  here  is  their  cursed  confidence.  All  this  is  the 
filthy  vomit  of  a  proud  and  rebellious  heart  against  God,  by  which 
they  very  plainly  lay  the  blame  on  God  that  they  do  not  better, 
like  fallen  Adam,  Gen.  iii.  12.  But  dare  such  say  before  a  heart 
searching  God,  that  they  have  done  all  they  could  have  done  ? 
Could  ye  not  have  holden  in  rash  words  that  ye  have  spoken  ?  could 
ye  not  have  done  something  for  eternity  that  ye  did  not  ?  &c.  But 
suppose,  0  man,  thou  hadst  done  all  thou  couldst,  God's  law  is  the 
rule  of  thy  duty,  and  not  thy  strength  ;  and  if  thou  get  not  in  to 
Christ,  God's  curse  lies,  and  shall  lie  on  thee  through  eternity,  because 
thou  "  continuest  not  in  all  things  that  are  written  in  the  book  of  the 
law  to  do  them,"  Gal.  iii.  10.  The  devils  have  no  strength  to  do 
good,  nor  will  God  give  them  grace  :  and  yet  their  damnation  is 
just:  so  will  thine  be.  Thou  hast  grace  in  thine  offer,  which  he 
is  not  obliged  to  give  thee ;  but  thou  art  a  despiser  and  rejecter 
of  grace,  John  v.  40,  "Ye  will  not  come  to  me,"  says  Christ, 
"  that  ye  might  have  life."  Read  your  doom,  Matth.  xxv.  24, 
25,  "  Then  he  which  had  received  the  one  talent,  carao  and  said. 


536  THE  DISTINGUISniNO  OIIAT?ACTERS  OF  REAL  CHIUSTIAT^^S, 

Lord,  I  knew  thee  that  thou  art  an  hard  man,  reaping  where  thou 
hast  not  sown,  and  gathering  where  thou  hast  not  strawed  :  and  I 
was  afraid,  and  went  and  hid  tliy  talent  in  the  earth  :  lo,  there  thou 
hast  that  is  thine."  Verse  30,  "Cast  ye  the  unprofitable  servant 
into  outer  darkness  :  there  shall  be  weeping  and  gnashing  of  teeth." 

(2.)  There  is  another  sort  who  do  indeed  go  the  round  of  external 
duties ;  they  attend  public  ordinances,  worship  God  in  secret  and  in 
their  families;  and  as  men  can  quarrel  nothing  in  their  outward 
duties  towards  Grod,  so  they  neglect  not  their  external  duties  of 
righteousness  and  mercy  toward  others.  They  have  the  outward 
form  of  godliness.  And  these  are  but  few ;  would  God  there  were 
more  of  whom  that  could  be  said.  But,  alas  !  in  the  mean  time 
they  rest  on  these  external  things,  Luke  xviii.  12;  Isa.  Iviii.  3. 
They  put  them  in  Christ's  room.  But  these  things  are  so  unftt  to 
be  confidences,  that  they  cannot  be  evidences ;  for  there  is  nothing 
in  all  the  form  of  godliness  beyond  the  reach  of  a  hypocrite ;  and  as 
they  are  mere  external  duties,  they  are  an  abomination  to  the  Lord, 
Tsa.  i.  11,  &c. ;  Mark  x.  20,  21.  And  will  ye  make  them  your  con- 
fidence ?  Thy  doing  so  demonstrates,  that  thou  knowest  neither  the 
law  of  God,  which  cannot  be  satisfied  but  with  inward,  as  well  as 
outward  obedience,  nor  the  gospel  of  Christ,  which  overturns  all 
these  confidences  before  the  Lord.  Believe  it,  "  The  Lord  hath 
rejected  thy  confidences,  and  thou  shalt  not  prosper  in  them,"  Jer. 
ii.  37-  Sure  the  saints  dare  have  no  confidence  in  them,  nor  will 
they  venture  before  the  Lord  in  these  filthy  rags,  Is.  Ixiv,  6. 

Lastly,  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  their  external  sufferings, 
though  for  Christ  and  his  cause.  Paul  was  a  great  sufferer,  2  Cor. 
xi.  23.  to  the  end ;  but  yet  he  "  suffered  the  loss  of  all  things  for 
Christ,"  Phil.  iii.  8 ;  and  so  suffered  the  loss  of  his  sufferings  in 
point  of  confidence,  among  the  rest.  There  is  a  party.  Rev.  vii.  14 
15,  whose  garments  had  been  rolled  in  their  own  blood  for  the  cause 
of  Christ;  but  durst  they  appear  before  the  Lord  in  them  ?  No; 
they  "  washed  them  in  the  blood  of  the  Lamb  ;"  and  "  therefore  are 
they  before  the  throne  ;"  otherwise  they  had  gone  from  the  scaft'old 
for  Christ,  into  the  pit  of  hell  from  the  presence  of  the  Lord.  And 
far  less  will  they  have  confidence  in  their  other  sufferings,  of  what 
sort  soever  they  be.  Few  can  suffer  for  Christ ;  but  there  are  yet 
fewer,  who  can  both  suffer,  and  not  have  confidence  in  their  suffer- 
ings. 0  it  is  hard  to  lay  out  goods  and  gear,  liberty  and  life,  on 
the  cause  of  Christ,  and  after  all  to  think  Christ  is  nothing  at  all  in 
our  debt :  and  that  he  may  very  justly  bring  others  that  have  had  at 
far  cheaper  religion,  as  far  in  as  ourselves.  The  unhumbled  suf- 
ferer  may  read    his    heart  in    that   murmuring   complaint  of  the 


OF  HAVINO  NO  CONFIDENCE  IN  THE  FLESH.  53? 

Inbourers,  Matth.  xx.  12,  "  These  last  liave  wrouglit  but  one  hour, 
and  thou  hast  made  them  equal  unto  us,  which  have  borne  the  bur- 
den and  heat  of  the  day."  But  if  men's  confidence  be  not  cut  off 
from  their  suiferings,  sad  and  dreadful  will  the  doom  be  at  length, 
ver.  14,  "  Take  that  thine  is,"  said  the  good  man  of  the  house,  "  and 
go  thy  way :  I  will  give  unto  this  last,  even  as  unto  thee."  Verse 
16,  So  the  last  shall  be  first,  and  the  first  last :  for  many  are  called, 
but  few  chosen."  If  they  be  lippened  to  in  whole  or  in  part,  what  is 
given  to  them  is  robbed  from  the  sufferings  of  Christ ;  and  so  will  they 
prove  a  broken  reed,  that  will  not  only  fail,  but  pierce  the  hand  and 
heart  through  with  eternal  sorrows.  There  is  also  a  rude  ignorant 
generation,  who  think  if  they  suffer  what  is  laid  on  them  by  com- 
mon providence,  all  Avill  be  well  with  them  in  the  world  to  come, 
for  they  suffer  their  misery  here  :  and  particularly  women  dying  in 
child-birth  are  accounted  happy  on  this  very  account,  by  a  generation 
ignorant  of  God ;  for  they  say,  these  pains  are,  of  all  pains  here- 
away, likest  the  pains  of  hell.  0  brutish  ignorance !  0  the  per- 
verseness  of  a  hellish  heart,  to  take  the  curse  for  a  confidence  in  the 
matter  of  obtaining  the  blessing !  The  apostle  indeed,  1  Tim.  ii.  15, 
gives  a  comfort  to  godly  women  in  the  pains  of  child-birth,  that 
they  shall  be  saved  in  child-bearing,  if  they  continue  in  faith ;  but 
says  not,  they  shall  be  saved  by  it,  or  that  they  shall  be  saved 
"whether  they  believe  or  not.  Let  men  or  women's  hell  be  as  hot  as 
it  will  in  the  world,  if  they  renounce  not  all  confidence  in  their 
sufferings,  and  betake  themselves  to  the  sufferings  of  Christ  al- 
lernally,  they  shall  assuredly,  when  they  die,  go  out  of  one  hell  into 
another. 

Secondly.  The  saints  have  no  confidence  for  the  favour  of  God, 
in  internals,  in  any  thing  within  them.  I  have  no  exception  to  make 
here  but  one  ;  and  that  is,  Christ  in  you,  the  hope  of  glory,  Col.  i. 
27.  There  are  precious  things  in  the  saints,  that  make  them  all 
glorious  within ;  but  nothing  but  Christ  that  can  be  confidences  for 
God's  favour;  though  some  of  them  may  indeed  be  eyidences. 

1.  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  their  internal  dispositions. 
The  dispositions  of  their  hearts  are  none  of  their  confidences  before 
the  Lord  ;  for  "  he  that  trusteth  in  his  own  heart,  is  a  fool,"  Prov. 
xxviii.  26.  Many  have  a  deal  of  confidence  in  those  good  hearts 
they  have  towards  God,  as  they  speak.  They  see  not  the  naughti- 
ness of  their  hearts,  and  the  enmity  against  God  that  lurks  there. 
Satan  has  them  so  blinded  with  self-love,  that  they  cannot  believe 
an  ill  tale  ot  their  hearts.  This  is  not  the  spot  of  God's  people. 
There  is  little  goodness  of  lieart  in  the  world ;  but  the  best  heart  is 
always  worst  looked  upon,  ^latth.  xxvi.  22,  25  ;  1  Tim.  i.  15  ;  and  no 


538  THE  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS 

wonder,  for  they  believe  God's  testimony  of  it,  Jer.  xvii.  9,  *•  The 
heart  is  deceitful  above  all  things,  and  desperately  wicked,  who  can 
know  it  ?"  Again,  men  wish  they  were  better,  and  hope  they  may 
be  better,  and  find  a  disposition  in  their  spirits  to  do  much  and  sulfer 
much  for  Christ,  and  a  great  aversion  to  many  ill  things  they  see  in 
the  world.  And  indeed  people  may  draw  evidences  of  their  state 
from  the  dispositions  of  their  hearts  ;  but  they  had  need  to  examine 
them  well,  seeing  all  these  may  be  in  hypocrites,  Prov.  xiii.  4;  Hos. 
vi.  4 ;  2  Kings  x.  16 ;  Luke  xviii.  11.  But  at  best  they  can  be  no 
confidences,  seeing  there  is  always  such  a  mixture  of  evil  dispositions 
with  them,  as  might  ruin  men. 

2,  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  their  internal  exercises  upon 
their  spirits.  Hypocrites  may  have  their  exercises  about  their  soul's 
matters.  They  may  be  troubled  about  their  soul's  state,  as  we  see 
in  Simon,  Acts  viii.  and  Felix,  Acts  xxiv.  They  may  have  great 
inward  struggles  betwixt  corruption  and  an  enlightened  conscience, 
upon  a  temptation  laid  in  their  way  ;  as  in  the  case  of  Herod,  about 
beheading  John ;  and  of  Pilate,  about  the  condemning  Christ ; 
yea  so  as  the  temptation  may  be  resisted  in  the  end,  as  in  Balaam's 
case.  What  restlessness  of  spirit,  self-indignation,  was  in  Judas's 
case  ?  "What  strong  resolutions  did  terrors  on  Saul  and  Pharaoh 
produce  in  them  ?  The  saints  have  more  kindly  exercises.  But  one 
diff'erence  amongst  many  betwixt  the  two,  is,  that  the  exercises  of 
the  godly  issue  still  in  driving  them  further  out  of  themselves,  Matth. 
V.  3,  and  consequently  out  of  any  confidence  in  their  exercises; 
while  the  other  are  either  by  theirs  driven  out  of  all  hope,  as  Judas, 
or  driven  more  into  themselves,  as  those,  Rom.  x.  3,  who  "  being 
ignorant  of  God's  righteousness,  and  going  about  to  establish  their 
o^vn  righteousness,  have  not  submitted  themselves  unto  the  righte- 
ousness of  God." 

3.  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  their  internal  attainments. 
Hypocrites  may  have  vast  attainments,  great  gifts,  enlargements  in 
the  exercise  of  these  gifts  by  a  common  operation  of  the  Spirit. 
They  may  attain  to  raptures  of  joy  in  holy  duties,  yea,  and  taste  of 
the  heavenly  gift,  and  the  powers  of  the  world  to  come.  Read 
these  scriptures,  1  Cor.  xiii.  1,  2,  3 ;  Matth.  xiii.  20,  21 ;  Heb.  vi.  4, 
5,  6.  But  although  these  cannot  be  evidences,  they  make  them 
confidences,  and  ruin  themselves  thereby,  Matth.  vii.  22,  23.  So 
many  build  their  confidence  on  the  like  of  these  things  ;  and  whereas 
they  should  lead  them  to  Christ,  they  are  carried  the  farther  from 
Christ  by  them.  But  miserable  comforters  will  they  find  them  all 
at  length.  The  saints  have  far  higher  attainments  than  these. 
The  least  measure  of  saving  knowledge,  communion  with  God  in 


OF  HAVINO  NO  CONFIDENCE  IN  THE  FLESH.  539 

Clirist,  tlie  least  groan  from  a  heart  touched  with  gospel-grace,  Rom. 
viii.  26,  is  better  than  all  those  bulky  attainments  of  the  hypocrite. 
Yet  because  they  are  not  Christ,  nor  in  Christ,  but  in  themselves, 
though  from  Christ,  they  will  not,  they  dare  not  make  them  their  con- 
fidences for  the  Lord's  favour.  They  know  God  to  be  holy,  them- 
selves impure  vessels,  into  which  nothing  can  be  poured,  be  it  never 
go  good,  but  it  will  be  tinctured  with  impurity.  And,  therefore, 
Paul,  who  was  caught  up  into  the  third  heavens,  yet  abhors  to 
glory  in  any  thing  but  the  sutferings  of  Christ,  Gal.  vi.  14;  Phil.  iii.  8. 

4.  Lastly,  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  their  graces,  their  in- 
herent graces.  Grace  is  precious,  and  makes  the  soul  in  some 
measure  like  God.  Happy  is  the  man  that  has  it.  Every  believer 
has  the  image  of  God  on  him,  grace  for  grace  that  is  in  Christ,  as 
the  wax  has  on  it  the  print  of  the  seal.  But  this  I  confidently  say, 
it  is  the  grace  of  God  in  Christ,  not  the  grace  of  God  in  the  saints, 
that  they  confide  in  before  the  Lord.  However  precious  inherent 
grace  is,  it  is  not  Christ ;  it  is  but  a  created  quality  in  a  sinner. 
Let  it  be  screwed  to  its  highest  pitch  that  it  comes  to  in  any  saint 
on  earth,  it  cannot  answer  the  demands  of  the  law,  being  mixed 
with  corruption  ;  and  being  lippened  unto  that  way,  would  prove 
but  an  arm  of  flesh.  It  is  gold  indeed,  but  not  such  as  will  abide 
the  fiery  trial  of  the  law's  furnace  :  it  is  white  raiment  indeed ;  but 
it  is  not  pure,  but  stained  white,  which  is  no  fit  garment  for  a  crimi- 
nal to  stand  in  for  favour  at  the  court  of  heaven  :  and  therefore 
Christ  offers  sinners  tried  gold,  unstained  white  raiment,  of  his  own 
suff'erings  and  righteousness.  Rev.  i  ii.  18.  And  so  the  saints  renounce 
all  without  them  and  within  them  for  it.  Hence,  says  the  apostle, 
Phil.  iii.  8,  9,  "  Yea  doubtless,  and  I  count  all  things  but  loss,  for 
the  excellency  of  the  knowledge  of  Christ  Jesus  my  Lord :  for 
whom  have  I  suffered  the  loss  of  all  things,  and  do  count  them  but 
dung,  that  I  may  win  Christ,  and  be  found  in  him,  not  having  mine 
own  righteousness,  which  is  of  the  law,  but  that  which  is  through 
the  faith  of  Christ,  the  righteousness  which  is  of  God  by  faith." 

I  shall  instance  in  these  two,  which  are  in  effigy  most  abused  by 
carnal  men,  and  set  up  against  Christ. 

l*^.  The  grace  of  repentance.  There  is  an  ignorant  generation, 
ask  them,  how  they  think  to  he  saved  ?  they  will  tell  you,  they 
repent  of  their  sins  day  and  night.  This  they  will  say  whom  their 
soul's  hazard  never  kept  from  an  hour's  sleep  all  their  days.  The 
matter  is,  they  rue  many  things  they  do ;  and  no  wonder,  for  they 
cannot  be  fond  of  destruction.  And  thus  they  know  not  what  sin 
is,  nor  what  repentance  is  indeed.  0  what  needed  Christ  to  have 
eorae,  and  groaned  and  died  on  a  cross,  under  the  weight  of  wrath, 

Vol.  IV.  2  m 


540  TIIR  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTERS  OF  EEAL  CHRISTIANS. 

if  people  may  be  saved  tliis  way  ?     Lippen  to  this  as  ye  will,  ye 
will  repent  in  hell  that  ever  ye  should  have  made  it  either  evidence 
or  confidence.     But  there  are  some  who  spin  a  more  fine  thread  of 
soul  deception  of  themselves,  as  the  word  is,  Gal,  vi.  3.     They  have 
in  very  deed  legal  qualms  of  conscience,  and  their  guilt  cuts  them 
to  the  heart;  and  they  go  to  God,  and  confess  their  sin,  are  resolved 
to  forsake,  and  never  do  the  like  again  ;  and  so  build  their  confi- 
dence here,  especially  if  they  get  tears  for  it ;  and  they  think  they 
can  give  Scripture  for  this  confidence  of  theirs,  as  Prov.  xxviii.  13, 
"  Whoso  confesseth  and  forsaketh  his  sins,  shall  have  mercy ;"  and 
Matth.  V.  4,  "  Blessed  are  they  that  mourn ;  for  they  shall  be  com- 
forted."    Sirs,  hypocrites  may  do  all  this  ;  Judas  repented  as  bit- 
terly as  ever  ye  did,  Pharaoh  and  Saul  confessed  and  had  their 
resolutions  to  forsake,  and  Esau  his  tears.     But  what  law  or  what 
gospel  allows  you  to  make  this  your  confidence  ?     Will  your  confes- 
sion, prayers,  tears,  forsaking  of  sin,  (which  yet  indeed  ye  do  not 
from  the  heart),  answer   the  demands  of  the  law?      Will  these 
shield  you  from  the  strokes  of  justice  ?     Remember  it  is  "  shedding 
of  blood,"  not  pouring  out  of  water,  much  less  pouring  ont  of  words, 
that  can  purchase  remission.     Many  times  where  water  goes  out, 
•wind  enters  in,  and  makes  the  tears  so  abominable  as  they  cannot 
come  into  the  Lord's  bottle.     Cursed  be  those  tears  that  blind  the 
soul  so  as  it  cannot  see  the  absolute  necessity  of  the  blood  of  Christ, 
that  are  not  brought  to  the  fountain  of  Christ's  blood,  and  washed 
there,  lest  they  make  the  soul  abominable  in  the  sight  of  a  holy 
God.     If  you  think  the  gospel  gives  you  ground,  sure  it  is  not  the 
gospel  of  Christ  does  it ;  for  Christ's  gospel   establishes  the  law, 
which  ye  do  thus  overturn,  Rom.  iii.  31  ;  and  x.  4.     The  truth  is, 
in  this  way  ye  reject  both  the  true  law  and  gospel,  and  treat  with 
God  in  the  way  of  a  bastard  covenant  of  works  of  your  own  making', 
•which  God  will  never  agree  to  ;  nor  does  he  agree  to  it  by  those 
promises  made  to  them  that  confess,  and  them  that  mourn.     Con- 
sider, they  must  either  be  promises  of  the  covenant  of  works,  or  of 
the  covenant  of  grace.     Promises  of  the  covenant  of  works  they  are 
not ;  for  that  is  express.  Gal.  iii.  10,  "  Cursed  is  every  one  that 
continueth  not  in  all  things  which  are  written  in  the  book  of  the 
law  to  do  them."     If  they  be  promises  of  the  covenant  of  grace,  how 
come  ye  to  plead  them  without  first  laying  hold  by  faith  on  hira  in 
whom  they  are  all  yea  and  amen  ?     Now,  this  ye  cannot  do,  accord- 
ing to  the  text,  unless  ye  have  no  confidence  in  any  thing  that  is 
not  Christ,  or  in  Christ.     Do  ye  think  that  the  Spirit  of  God  makes 
there  a  promise  of  mercy  from  an  unatoned  God,  or  directs  to  a  con- 
fession not  put  in  the  hand  of  the    "  Advocate,   Jesus  Christ  the 
righteous?"  1  John  ii.  1.     No;  "God  heareth  not  sinners,  but  he 


OF  HAVING  NO  CONFIDENCE  IN  THE  FLESH.  541 

heareth  him  always;  and  those  petitions  that  are  presented  hy  him, 
he  grants  thera  to  sinners  for  his  sake.  And  that  promise,  Matth. 
V.  4,  "  Blessed  are  they  that  mourn ;  for  they  shall  be  comforted," 
is  it  to  all  mourners,  think  ye  ?  is  it  to  Esau's  tears,  and  Judas's 
groans?  It  is  to  gospel  mourners:  and  therefore  that  men  might 
have  no  ground  to  mistake  these  blessings,  our  Lord  fixeth  that 
point  first,  and  sets  it  in  the  front  of  the  blessings,  to  be  carried 
through  all  the  rest,  ver,  3,  "Blessed  are  the  poor  in  spirit."  And 
such  are  all  true  penitents;  and  therefore  will  never  make  their 
repenting  and  mourning  their  confidence  before  the  Lord.  They  ai"e 
dissatisfied  with  all  they  do,  because  they  can  do  nothing  as  they 
ought,  Is.  Ixiv.  6 ;  and,  upon  a  review  of  their  repentance,  they  see 
such  defects  in  it,  as  needs  a  cover  of  blood  ;  their  tears  clear  their 
eyes  to  see  the  necessity  of  the  Mediator's  blood  the  better  :  there- 
fore says  David,  in  his  bitter  repentings,  Psalm  li.  7,  "  Purge  me 
with  hyssop  ;"  that  is  with  the  blood  of  the  everlasting  coveuaat,  the 
blood  of  the  Redeemer,  typified  by  the  blood  of  the  sacrifices  sprin- 
kled with  hyssop  on  the  people,  Heb.  ix.  19,  20,  and  by  the  blood  of 
a  bird  sprinkled  with  hyssop  on  the  leper,  when  he  was  to  be  cleansed, 
and  restored  to  society,  Luke  xiv.  6,  7-  Wash  me,  to  wit,  as  a  ful- 
ler washeth  cloth  to  make  it  pure  white.  It  seems  he  thought  his 
own  plunging  himself  in  his  tears  could  not  whiten  the  stained  soul. 
Nay,  the  true  penitent  is  free  grace's  debtor  for  all,  and  will  acknow- 
ledge it  is  free  grace  that  he  is  not  shut  out  from  the  presence  of  God 
and  his  merey,  after  he  hath  bathed  himself  in  his  tears,  Psal,  li.  11, 
"  Cast  me  not  away  from  thy  presence ;  and  take  not  thy  Holy 
Spirit  from  me."  Here  he  acknewledgeth,  he  might  justly  get  Cain 
and  Saul's  measure.  "  Cast  me  not  away  from  thy  presence,"  as 
thou  didst  Cain  the  first  murderer ;  "  Take  not  thy  Holy  Spirit 
from  me,"  as  thou  took  thy  Spirit  from  Saul  the  first  king  of  Israel 
upon  his  disobedience,  1  Sam.  xvi.  14.     Compare  2  Sara.  vii.  16. 

2c%,  The  grace  of  faith.  There  is  an  ignorant  generation  that 
say  they  believe  in  God  or  in  Christ ;  but  their  faith  cannot  be 
called  knowledge,  as  Isa.  liii.  11,  for  they  are  full  of  darkness  in. 
their  minds,  they  know  not  what  faith  is,  nor  how  they  came  by  it ; 
their  faith  grew  up  with  them,  (for  they  think  they  believed  all 
their  days,)  and  it  will  die  with  them.  They  have  a  strong  confi- 
dence of  mercy ;  which  is  but  gross  presumption,  seeing  it  neither 
purifies  heart  nor  life,  Acts  xv.  9  ;  1  John  iii.  '6 ;  and  therefore 
•'  shall  be  rooted  out  of  (their)  tabernacle,  and  it  shall  bring  (them) 
to  the  king  of  terrors,"  Job  xvii.  14.  And  there  are  others  who 
came  not  so  easily  by  the  faith  they  have  ;  yet  it  is  not  faith  un- 
feigned, 1  Tim.  i.  5,  but  they  make  it  their  confidence.  There  are 
many  thiugs  that  men  call  faith,  among  ignorant  and  knowing  folk 


542  THE  DISTINatriSHINO  CHARACTERS  OP  REAIi  CHRISTIANS. 

too,  who  are  yet  in  the  state  of  nature.  The  revelation  of  the  abso- 
lute necessity  of  faith  to  salvation  is  so  clear,  that  hardly  can  a 
person  be  a  hearer  of  the  gospel,  and  not  know  it ;  and  every  man 
naturally  has  a  principle  of  self-preservation  :  hence  upon  the  hear- 
ing of  this,  and  especially  upon  awakenings  of  conscience,  nature 
will  make  some  efforts  for  believing.  But  faith  being  produced  only 
by  the  "  working  of  God's  mighty  power,"  Eph.  i,  19,  and  not  by 
the  power  of  nature,  the  result  of  all  nature's  efforts  this  way,  is  but 
some  misshapen  brat  instead  of  faith.  Hence  we  read  of  Simon's 
believing.  Acts  viii.  13  ;  and  many  believing  in  bis  name,  whom  yet 
Christ  knew  to  be  naught,  John  ii.  23,  24,  25 ;  and  some  "  staying 
themselves  upon  the  God  of  Israel,  but  not  in  truth  and  righteous- 
ness," Is.  xlviii.  1,  2.  I  am  not  here  to  enter  on  the  several  sorts 
of  feigned  faith ;  but  with  relation  to  our  purpose,  there  is  one 
thing  to  be  noticed  concerning  them  all,  and  that  is,  they  never 
carry  a  man  out  of  himself  to  Jesus  Christ  for  all,  as  true  faith 
doth.  That  misshapeu  f;iith  is  not  the  soul's  going  out  of  itself  to 
Christ  to  live  in  and  by  him  :  but  is  the  soul's  going  of  itself  and 
with  self  to  Christ,  as  a  servant  to  a  master.  For  nature"*  cannot 
act  but  in  the  way  of  the  first  covenant :  and  to  a  natural  man,  in 
his  practical  judgment,  the  gospel-way  of  salvation  differs  not  in  kind 
from  the  way  of  Adam's  covenant,  but  only  in  the  measure  and 
degree  of  obedience  ;  for  to  them  it  is  still,  "  Do  this,  and  live  ;  Do 
this,"  not  do  perfect  obedience  indeed,  they  know  they  cannot  reach 
that;  but  repent,  believe,  reform,  "Do  this."  Now,  the  natural 
man  accordingly  does  this  ;  and  so  the  work  of  faith  (for  I  must 
call  it  so)  is  to  him  the  fulfilling  of  the  condition  of  this  new  cove- 
nant, and  turns  his  confidence  before  the  Lord  for  his  favour,  as 
Adam's  perfect  obedience  to  the  law  would  have  been  his  confidence. 
This  was  the  confidence  of  Israel  when  they  had  "  cast  off  the  thing 
that  was  good,"  Hos.  viii.  2,  "  Israel  shall  cry  unto  ine.  My  God, 
we  know  thee  ;"  and  of  the  foolish  virgins,  Matth.  xxv.  11,  "  Lord, 
Lord,  (they  plead  a  covenant  interest  in  him,  Matth  vii.  21,)  open 
to  us,  us  virgins."  Thus  may  ye  see  how  their  faith  is  their  folly,  as 
being  put  in  the  room  of  Christ ;  and  so  they  have  but  rags  for 
righteousness.  But  the  saints  have  a  faith  of  the  operation  of  God» 
yet  do  they  not  rest  in  it,  but  by  it  rest  and  confide  on  Jesus  Christ. 
It  carries  the  saint  out  of  himself,  even  his  gracious  self,  Phil,  iii- 
8.  True  faith  is  not  a  burden-bearer,  but  an  onlayer  of  burdens* 
Psalm  Iv.  22.  It  is  not  a  leaning  stock,  but  an  act  of  leaning,  Cant, 
viii.  5.  It  purifies  indeed,  Acts  xv.  9,  but  no  other  way  but  as  it 
lays  open  the  soul  to  Christ,  that  a  stream  of  blood  may  run  through 
it.  The  hyssop  and  scarlet  wool  were  no  doubt  a  blithe  sight 
to  the  people,  and  particularly  to  the  poor  lepers  under  the  law  : 


OF  havhto  no  conmdkncb  in  the  flesh.  543 

but  had  the  dry  hyssop  and  wool  been  shaken  never  so  oft  over 
them,  what  would  they  have  availed  ?  but  they  are  dipt  in  the 
blood,  and  the  people  sprinkled  with  that  blood  from  off  the  hys- 
sop and  scarlet  wool.  And  when  the  blood  fell,  the  people  were 
ceremonially  purged,  and  the  leper  cleansed.  And  so  is  it  in 
the  case  of  believing.  Thus  ye  see  the  saints  have  no  confidence 
in  point  of  justification,  or  for  obtaining  God's  favour,  in  any  thing 
that  is  not  Christ,  oi   in  Christ. 

The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  point  of  sanctification,  or  with  res- 
pect to  duty,  in  any  thing  that  is  not  Christ,  nor  in  Christ.  As  they 
have  taken  him  alone  for  justification,  so  they  take  him  alone  for 
sanctification  ;  for  he  is  made  unto  us  sanctification,"  as  well  as  righte- 
ousness, 1  Cor  i.  30.  The  Father  has  constituted  him  the  head  of 
influences  for  duty ;  and  from  that  head  it  is  that  all  the  body  hav- 
ing nourishment  ministered,  iucreaseth  with  the  increase  of  God," 
Col,  ii  19.  And  this  is  that  life  of  faith  for  sanctification  that  the 
saints  live  :  John  vi.  57-  "As  the  living  Father  hath  sent  me,  and 
I  live  by  the  Father  :  so  he  that  eateth  me,  even  he  shall  live  by  me." 
Gal.  ii  20.  "  I  am  crucified  with  Christ:  Nevertheless  I  live  ;  yet 
not  I,  but  Christ  liveth  in  me :  and  the  life  which  I  now  live  in  the 
flesh,  I  live  by  the  faith  of  the  Son  of  God,  who  loved  me,  and  gave 
himself  for  me."  Tliere  are  here  also  many  things  men  make  their 
confidences,  which  I  cannot  particularly  name  ;  but,  in  the  general 
there  are  seven  things  I  shall  touch  at,  which  are  but  arms  of  flesh 
when  lippened  to,  in  the  matter  of  sanctification. 

1.  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  their  stock  of  natural  aud  ac- 
quired abilities,  gifts  or  parts,  in  the  point  of  sanctification,  or  perform- 
ance of  duties.  Hence  says  the  Apostle,  2  Cor.  iii.  5.  "  We  are 
not  sufficient  of  ourselves  to  think  any  thing  as  of  ourselves."  This 
is  the  stock  which  is  the  confidence  of  many  in  their  religious  duties; 
and  upon  it  they  can  venture  on  duty  undaunted,  their  work  being 
rather  to  be  filled  with  the  thoughts  of  their  own  strength,  and  what 
their  abilities  may  reach,  than  to  be  emptied  of  themselves  ;  to  must- 
ier up  their  forces,  than  to  be  looking  to  the  Lord  tor  strength  from 
abov«,  and  overlooking  themselves.  Thus  a  gift  of  knowledge,  utter- 
ance, a  good  natural  temper  or  disposition,  and  such  like,  are  by  na- 
tural men  put  in  Christ's  room ;  and  on  these  they  confide  for  perfor- 
ming of  duties,  and  bearing  out  against  temptations.  And  upon 
this  foudation  have  stately  buildings  of  morality  been  reared  up 
and  very  glorious  form  of  godliness,  which  beholders  have  blessed 
while  God,  that  seetli  the  heart,  has  cursed  them  :  Jer.  xvii.  5.  "  Thus 
saith  the  Lord,  Cursed  be  the  man  that  trusteth  in  man,  and  maketh 
flesh  his  arm,  and  whose  heart  departelh  from  the  Lord."  But  this 
is  not  the  way  of  the  saints  :  Psal.  xliv.  5,  6.  "  Through  thee  will  we 


544  THE  l>ISTINGmSHING  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

push  down  our  enemies,"  says  the  Psalmist ;  "  through  thy  name  will 
we  tread  them  under  that  rise  up  against  us.  For  I  will  not  trust 
in  my  bow,  neither  shall  my  sword  save  me."  Is.  xl.  29,  30.  Natu. 
ral  men  are  represented  as  youths  full  of  natural  vigour,  strength 
and  activity,  who  will  do  their  work  by  themselves,  aud  wait  not 
upon  the  Lord.  But  the  godly  are  distinguished  from  them  as  men 
who  see  their  strength  failed,  aud  not  to  be  lippened  to  ;  aud  hence 
look  without  themselves  for  it,  and  roll  their  way  on  the  Lord,  is 
finding  their  own  shoulders  unable  for  the  burden. 

2.  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  the  means  of  sanctificatiou,  as 
the  word,  sacrements,  prayer,  afliictions,  and  the  like;  knowing  that 
"  it  is  the  spirit  that  quickeneth, "  John  vi.  63.  and  that  they  are 
only  means  through  which  influences  are  conveyed  from  Christ  to  the 
souls  of  his  people.  None  look  with  such  an  aff"ectionate  eye  on  the 
ordinances  as  they,  but  none  look  so  far  above  them  either,  Psal. 
xxvii.  4. ;  for  the  natural  man  either  tramples  on  them,  or  idolizeth 
them,  being  satisfied  with  the  chair  of  state  though  empty.  Many 
are  ruined  with  their  confidence  in  this  way :  they  rest  in  the  work 
done,  as  if  that  would  heal  their  sores  ;  they  place  that  confidence, 
in  means  and  instruments,  which  they  should  place  in  Christ  himself: 
and  hence  they  go  from  one  mean  to  another,  and  still  are  "  like  the 
heath  in  the  wilderness,  that  seeth  not  when  good  cometh,  and  that 
inhabiteth  the  parched  places  in  the  wilderness,  in  a  salt  land  and 
not  inhabited,  Jer.  xvii.  6.  There  is  a  voice  they  hear  within  them 
stirring  them  up  to  holiness  of  life  ;  but  upon  the  hearing  of  it,  they 
do  as  young  Samuel,  who,  when  the  Lord  called  him,  went  to  Eli : 
so  they  go  to  this  and  the  other  mean  of  sanctificatiou,  but  never 
look  beyond  them  to  the  fountain  of  sanctificatiou  in  the  Mediator, 
or  as  the  woman  labouring  under  the  issue  of  blood,  spent  all  her 
meaus  on  the  physicians  ere  she  came  to  Christ. 

3.  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  their  purposes  and  resolutions 
for  holiness.  Hence  says  the  Psalmist,  Psal.  cxvi  .9,  10.  "  I  will 
walk  before  the  Lord  in  the  laud  of  the  living.  I  believed,  there- 
fore have  I  spoken."  He  had  resolved,  but  his  confidence  was  in 
the  Lord,  in  whom  he  had  believed.  Compare  what  the  Apostle 
says,  2  Tim.  i  12.  "I  know  whom  I  have  believed,  and  I  am  per- 
suaded that  he  is  able  to  keep  that  which  I  have  committed  unto 
him  against  that  day.  0  how  venturous  is  nature,  being  once  fleshed 
with  vigorous  purposes  and  resolves  !  but  when  the  temptation  comes 
they  fall  down  like  the  walls  of  Joricho,  at  the  sounding  of  ram's 
horns,  Prov.  vii.  21,  22;  Matth.  viii.  19,  20.  Their  bent  bow  in 
which  they  trusted  quickly  misgives ;  the  fire-edge  soon  wears  off 
the  spirit  that  is  not  staid  on  the  Lord.  How  many  purposes  and 
strong  resolutions  come  to  nought,  because  in  taking  them  up  men 


OF  irAVma  NO  CONFIDENCE  IN  THE  FLESH.  545 

look  not  to  tlif!  Lord  as  tlie  fountain  of  strength,  but  to  themselves  . 
and  when  they  are  raade,  there  is  more  weight  laid  on  them  than 
they  can  bear  ?  Hence  the  root  being  rottenness,  the  blossom  flies 
up  as  dust ;  as  was  the  case  with  the  young  man  void  of  understand- 
ing, who  when  a  whore  "  with  her  much  fair  speech  caused  him  to 
yield,  and  with  the  flattering  of  her  lips  forced  him,  went  after  her 
straightway,  as  an  ox  goeth  to  the  slaughter,  or  as  a  fool  to  the 
correction  of  the  stocks,  Prov.  vii.  21,  22. 

4.  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  their  vows  and  engagements 
to  holiness,  or  any  particular  duty;  knowing  that  these  are  too 
weak  bands  for  a  masterful  ill  heart,  which  nothing  but  the  power 
of  the  Spirit  of  Christ  can  hedge  in.  Every  saint  is  devoted  to  the 
Lord  with  his  own  deliberate  consent,  having  given  away  himself 
wholly  to  Christ,  to  be  disposed  of  as  he  will,  2  Cor.  viii.  5  ;  and  will 
look  on  his  soul  and  body  as  consecrated  things,  and  no  more  his 
own  but  the  Lord's,  to  do  and  sufl'er  for  him,  according  to  his  will. 
But  while  the  saints  take  on  these  solemn  bands,  and  come  under 
these  awful  and  sacred  engagements  to  duty,  their  confidence  is  not 
in  the  bands,  but  in  him  to  whom  they  are  bound,  and  to  whom  they 
bind  themselves  as  to  the  fountain  of  strength:  Isa.  xlv.  23,  24,  "  I 
have  sworn  by  myself,  the  word  is  gone  out  of  my  mouth  in  righte- 
ousness, and  shall  not  return,  that  unto  me  every  knee  shall  bow 
every  tongue  shall  swear.  Surely,  shall  one  say,  in  the  Lord  have 
I  righteousness  and  strength."  But,  alas!  the  vows  of  many  are  in 
eff'ect  a  vowing  themselves  away  from  Christ.  Nature  awakened 
is  very  fruitful  in  vows.  Sometimes  the  man  will  bind  a  yoke  on  him- 
self that  the  word  never  bound  on  him,  and  insnare  himself  with  a  vow 
to  abstain  from  such  and  such  a  thing  altogether,  when  his  conscience 
gets  up  on  him  for  his  running  to  some  monstrous  excess  in  it.  Or 
if  it  be  a  duty  he  was  wofully  slighted,  he  will  come  under  a  vow 
not  only  to  set  about  it,  but  so  often,  and  at  such  and  such  times 
particularly,  which  is  not  yet  determined  by  the  word.  And  when  he 
has  been  carried  oft  into  courses  absolutely  condemned  by  the  word 
and  in  which  his  natural  conscience  will  give  hira  no  rest,  there  shall 
be  a  violent  sally  of  the  soul  against  them,  ending  in  a  solemn  pro- 
mise and  vow  to  the  Lord,  never  to  do  any  more,  without  any 
eye  to  the  corruption  of  nature,  which  might  make  him  weary  of  his 
words  before  the  Lord,  or  to  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  without  whom 
we  can  do  nothing,  and  from  whom  all  our  strength  must  come. 
And  thus  the  poor  blinded  soul  thinks  it  is  fenced,  and  in  this  mud- 
wall  of  vows  is  its  confidence.  But  what  is  the  end  of  it  ?  The 
man  is  even  like  one  that  has  a  brook  running  through  his  ground, 
which  often  spoils  it  with  its  outbreakings,  and  he  builds  a  call  to 
stop  it ;  but  is  not  so  wise  as  to  fill  up  the  spring,  or  turn  the  stream 


546  THE  DISTINGCriSniNG  CHARACTERS  OF  HEAL  CHRISTIANS. 

another  way,  where  it  could  not  do  such  harm  :  and  so  within  a 
little  time  the  water  gathers,  and  forcibly  breaks  down  the  call,  run- 
ning out  with  more  violence  than  ever.  And  so  the  vows  go  like 
Samson's  green  withs,  when  he  heard  the  Philistines  were  upon  him. 

5.  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  their  own  endeavours  after 
holiness.  Hence  says  the  Psalmist,  Psalm  cxxvii.  1,  "Except  the 
Lord  build  the  house,  they  labour  in  vain  that  build  it :  except  the 
Lord  keep  the  city,  the  watchmen  waketh  but  in  vaiu."  It  is  the 
property  of  a  saint,  to  work  as  diligently  as  if  he  had  none  to  help, 
but  to  overlook  his  work  as  if  he  had  not  put  hand  to  it  at  all : 
1  Cor.  XV.  10,  I  laboured  more  abundantly  than  they  all,"  says  the 
Apostle  :  "  yet  not  I,  but  the  grace  of  God  which  was  with  me."  0, 
there  is  much  to  be  done  for  the  advancing  of  holiness  ;  but  none  have 
so  much  confidence  in  what  is  done  for  that  end,  as  those  that  do  least 
that  way.  A  man  may  do  very  much  to  win  over  some  lusts,  and  to  at- 
tain to  such  a  sort  of  life  as  his  conscience  tells  him  is  necessary  for  him 
if  he  would  see  heaven,  and  yet  be  naught,  as  working  from  himself, 
resting  in  himself.  Herod  did  many  things.  It  is  a  difficult  thing  in- 
deed, for  a  man  to  be  pursuing  a  good  life,  and  to  win  over  trouble- 
some lusts,  and  in  pursuit  thereof  to  pray  often,  and  vigorously  too, 
yea,  to  fast  and  pray  for  the  casting  out  of  some  devils,  to  struggle 
against  them,  watch  against  them,  and  to  keep  at  a  distance  from  the 
occasions  of  temptation,  and  such  like  :  but  it  is  far  more  diflicult  to  be 
denied  to  all  these  when  they  are  done,  and  to  have  no  confidence  in 
them,  but  for  all  to  trust  in  him  that  raiseth  the  dead.  Men  under 
the  law's  tutory  may  do  the  former;  for,  skin,  for  skin,  yea,  all  that 
a  man  hath  will  he  give  for  his  life  ;  but  grace  is  necessary  to  the  lat- 
ter, as  that  which  can  only  carry  a  man  out  of  himself  to  Christ. 

6.  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  the  good  frame  and  disposi- 
tion of  their  hearts ;  that  is  to  say,  in  actual  grace.  A  good  frame 
is  a  most  desirable  thing,  and  makes  a  great  facility  in  the  way  of 
God  while  it  lasts.  It  is  a  precious  ointment  that  refreshes  the 
traveller  ;  but  it  is  no  good  staflf  to  lean  on,  it  will  not  bear  the 
weight  of  one  duty:  it  is  a  lamp  that  will  quickly  go  out,  if  it  be 
not  fed  with  fresh  oil  from  the  fountain  of  grace,  the  Lord  Jesus. 
Remarkable  is  that  petition  of  David  for  the  people  when  they  were 
in  an  excellent  frame,  1  Chron.  xxix.  17,  18,  "  As  for  me,"  says  he, 
"  in  the  uprightness  of  mine  heart  I  have  willingly  oflTered  all  these 
things :  and  now  have  I  seen  with  joy  thy  people  which  are  present 
here,  to  offer  willingly  unto  thee.  0  Lord  God  of  Abraham,  Isaac,  and 
of  Israel,  our  fathers,  keep  this  for  ever  in  the  imagination  of  the 
thoughts  of  the  heart  of  thy  people,  and  prepare  their  heart  unto 
thee."  He  saw  it  was  not  to  be  made  a  confidence,  and  therefore  lays 
the  weight  of  all,  and  even  of  preserving  that  frame,  upon  the  Lord 


OF  HAVING  NO  CONFIDENCE  IN  THE  FLESH.  547 

himself.  But  mauy,  though  their  frame  is  no  actual  grace,  but  the 
product  of  some  common  operations  on  their  spirits,  make  them  their 
confidence,  and  in  the  strength  thereof  go  out  to  their  duties  :  but 
assuredly  they  shall  not  see  when  good  cometh,  who  thus  put  their 
frame  in  the  room  of  Christ ;  and  often-times  for  that  cause,  in  the 
just  judgment  of  God,  it  fails  them,  ere  they  win  through  with  the 
duty,  that  they  may  see  it  is  not  Christ,  but  a  broken  reed. 

7.  Lastli/,  The  saints  have  no  confidence  in  habitual  grace.     Paul 
had  a  great  stock  of  it,  but  he  durst  not  venture  to  live  on  it.  Gal. 
ii.  20,  "  I  am  crucified  with  Christ,"  says  he  :  "  Nevertheless  I  live ; 
yet  not  I,  but  Christ  liveth  in  me :  and  the  life  which  I  now  live  in 
the  flesh,  I  live  by  the  faith  of  the  Son  of  God,  who  loved  me,  and 
gave  himself  for  me."     As  I  said  in  the  point  of  justification,  so  in 
the  point  of  sanctification,  it  is  not  the  grace  of  God  within  them 
which  they  confide  in,  but  the  grace  without  them,  in  Jesus  Christ. 
The  grace  within  the  saints  is  a  well  whose  springs  are  oft  stopped, 
and  whose  streams  are  oft  very  dry ;  but  the  grace  without  them,  in 
Christ,  is  an  ever-flowing  fountain,  to  which  they  can  never  come 
wrong.     Where  were  the  life  and  fruit  of  the  branch,  if  it  were  left 
to  the  sap  within  itself,  which  would  quickly  evaporate  and  the 
branch  wither  ?  but  it  is  the  sap  in  the  stock  that  keeps  the  branch 
living ;  and  so  it  is  the  grace  in  Christ  that  keeps  the  believer  liv- 
ing, John  vi.  57.     But,  alas  !   there  are  not  a  few  who  have  neither 
repentance,  love,  faith,  nor  other  graces  in  truth,  but  the  shadows 
of  them,  who  yet  make  what  they  have,  their  confidence  in  point  of 
sanctification ;  who,  when  they  would  make  the  fashion  of  believing, 
mourning,  «S;c.  look  in  to  themselves  for  it,  but  look  not  up  to 
Christ;  whereas  the  pathway  of  the  saints,  is  to  mount  up  with 
wings  as  eagles,  and  then  fall  down  on  the  prey.     Thus  ye  see  the 
saints  have  no  confidence  in  the  flesh,  either  in  point  of  justification 
or  sanctification ;  no  confidence  in  any  thing  without  them  or  within 
them,  that  is  not  Christ  or  in  Chi'ist.     And  whatever  it  is  I  have 
named,  or  that  I  have  not  named,  which  men  make  their  confidence 
before  the  Lord  either  of  these  ways,  to  set  it  in  the  room  of  Christ, 
or  to  set  it  beside  him,  so  far  as  it  is  made  a  confidence,  be  it  de- 
voted to  a  curse,  and  as  such  for  ever  exterminated  and  rooted  out ; 
Jer.  xvii.  5,  6,  "  Thus  saith  the  Lord,  Cursed  be  the  man  that  trust- 
eth  in  man,  and  raaketh  flesh  his  arm,  and  whose  heart  departeth 
from  the  Lord.     For  he  shall  be  like  the  heath  in  the  desert,  and 
shall  not  see  when  good  cometh,  but  shall  inliabit  the  parched  places 
in  the  wilderness,  in  a  salt  land  and  not  inhabited." 

Question.  Is  it  so  that  every  saint  is  altogether  free  of  those 
false  confidences,  and  no  ways  tainted  in  that  sort  ?     Answek.    I 
Vol.  lY.  2  n 


648  TUB  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

told  you  when  entering  on  this  clause,  that  this  is  not  understood  of 
the  saints  as  if  they  were  pure  from  it  in  the  eye  of  the  law,  but  in 
the  eye  of  the  gospel.  There  is  a  great  and  weighty  truth  supposed 
as  the  foundation  of  this  description  of  the  true  Christian,  and  that 
is,  That  corrupt  nature  is  quite  opposite  to  Christ,  and  to  the  con- 
trivance of  salvation  by  him.  It  may  be  I  may  afterwards  touch  on 
it.*  The  way  of  the  covenant  of  works  is  natural  to  men.  Now, 
seeing  that  the  best  are  but  in  part  renewed,  it  is  evident  that  there 
are  in  the  greatest  saints  remains  of  a  legal  temper,  and  that 
nature  now  and  then  has  in  them  its  flings  against  the  gospel-way, 
and  towards  cursed  self,  both  in  the  point  of  obtaining  God's  fa- 
vour, as  in  the  case  of  Peter,  Matth.  xix.  27.  who  said  unto  Jesus, 
"Behold,  we  have  forsaken  all,  and  followed  thee;  what  shall 
we  have  therefore  ?"  and  in  the  point  of  duty,  as  in  the  case  of 
James  and  John  the  sons  of  Zebedee,  Matth.  xx.  22,  who,  after  Jesus, 
had  put  the  question  to  them,  "Are  ye  able  to  drink  of  the  cup  that 
I  shall  drink  of,  and  to  be  baptized  with  the  baptism  that  I  am  bap- 
tized with  ?     They  said  unto  him,  "  We  are  able."     But, 

1.  Every  saint  in  his  closing  with  Christ  has  been  carried  freely 
out  of  himself  to  Christ,  though  self  has  not  yet  been  carried  fully 
out  of  him  :  Psal.  ex.  3,  "  Thy  people  shall  be  willing  [willingnesses] 
in  the  day  of  thy  power."  They  shall  pour  out  their  hearts  to  him 
like  water  that  comes  freely  away,  though  the  vessel  is  not  presently 
dry,  but  something  of  the  water  still  cleaves  to  it  for  a  time. 
Where  the  soul  comes  to  Christ,  there  is  a  digging  deep  in  that  soul, 
that  looses  the  confidence  in  the  flesh  at  the  root ;  so  that  the  saint's 
heart  is  loosed  from  it,  and,  devoting  it  to  a  curse,  lays  itself  naked 
and  bare  at  Christ's  feet,  without  any  thing  to  condemn  it  to  him, 
but  for  all  ventures  into  the  arms  of  free  grace.  But  the  hypocrite 
never  comes  freely  out  of  himself  to  Christ :  his  closing  with  Christ 
is  but  a  forced  put  at  best ;  as  Adonijah  ran  to  the  horns  of  the 
altar  when  in  hazard  of  his  life,  who,  it  is  like,  cared  very  little  for 
it  otherwise ;  as  the  Israelites,  Psal.  Ixxviii.  34 — 36,  37.  Nor 
does  the  hypocrite  ever  come  to  the  market  of  free  grace  without 
money  in  his  hand ;  the  proud  heart  has  still  something  in  itself 
whereupon  to  challenge  welcome. 

2.  Every  saint  habitually  walks  in  the  way  of  renouncing  all  con- 
fidence in  the  flesh  ;  the  habitual  bent  and  set  of  their  souls  lies  out 
of  themselves  to  Christ,  though,  through  the  prevailing  of  corruption, 
they  want  not  often  the  risings  of  self  in  them.  And  God  reckons 
of  his  people  according  to  what  they  habitually  are,  and  not  according 
to  what  starting  aside  their  corruption  does  occasion.     So  they  are 

See  Human  nature  in  its  fourfold  state,  state  2.   'lead  1.  concerning  the   corrup- 
tion of  the  will. 


OF  HAVING  NO  CONFIDENCE  IN  THE  FLESH.  549 

said  to  "  live  by  hira,"  John  vi.  57  ;  though  they  are  sometimes  set 
down  at  another  table,  where,  by  their  feeding  on  wind,  some  false 
flesh  grows  on  them,  which  grace  makes  afterward  to  fall;  as  in 
Peter's  case,  Matth.  xxvi.  33,  compared  with  ver,  75 :  and  they 
return  with  that  in  their  mouths,  Jer.  iii,  22,  23,  "  Behold,  we  come 
unto  thee,  for  thou  art  the  Lord  our  God.  Truly  in  vain  is  salva- 
tion hoped  for  from  the  hills,  and  from  the  multitude  of  mountains : 
ti'uly  in  the  Lord  our  God  is  the  salvation  of  Israel."  But  the 
hypocrite's  habitual  confidence  is  in  the  flesh,  seeing  they  were  never 
spiritually  circumcised,  nor  their  hearts  truly  cut  oif  from  it. 

3.  The  saints  have  their  struggles  against  this  selfish  disposition, 
as  against  other  members  of  the  old  man.  Self-denial  is  the  lesson 
Christ  puts  first  in  the  hands  of  his  people,  and  it  serves  them  to 
be  learning  it  all  their  days.  The  saints  have  a  double  work  with 
their  hearts  about  duties ;  first,  to  get  them  up  to  them  ;  Secondly,  to 
hold  them  down  in  them,  that  they  get  not  up  in  point  of  confidence 
in  them.  Many  see  not  this  disposition  in  their  hearts,  and  therefore 
it  is  not  their  work  to  mortify  it :  but  though  the  tares  may  be  sown 
and  grow  while  men  sleep,  they  are  not  plucked  up  but  when  men 
are  awake,  and  their  hand  at  work.  If  there  were  hurtful  weeds 
growing  in  a  garden,  and  the  gardener  knew  nothing  of  plucking 
them  up,  it  would  be  a  shrewd  sign  they  were  there  still. 

Lastly,  When  the  godly  do  their  duties  best,  they  are  farthest 
from  confidence  in  the  flesh  :  with  others  it  is  not  so.  Nature  builds 
always  up  nature ;  but  the  more  grace  and  nearness  to  God,  the 
more  vile  is  the  saint  in  his  own  eyes,  1  Chron.  xxix.  14.  And  it  is 
confirmed  by  the  experience  of  the  saints,  that  when  they  have  had 
greatest  help  in  duties,  they  have  afterwards  been  watched,  and  so 
treated  by  providence,  that  in  that  case  they  have  got  such  ballast, 
as  has  made  them  more  than  ever  see  the  necessity  of  the  blood  and 
Spirit  of  Christ ;  as  in  the  apostles  case,  2  Cor.  xii.  7. 

Use.  I  exhort  you  from  this  to  rejoice  in  Christ  Jesus,  and  to 
have  no  confidence  in  the  flesh.  What  is  already  said,  may  serve 
for  evidences  to  convince  of  this  cursed  confidence.  And  therefore 
I  shall  insist  no  further  upon  it  at  present. 

Thus  I  have  gone  through  these  characters  of  a  person  in  the  state 
of  grace  ;  and  have  insisted  the  longer  on  them,  that  I  might  dis- 
cover to  you  your  state  before  the  Lord.  Let  me  now  in  a  few 
words  sum  up  the  evidence  of  the  text.  A  saint  is  one  that  works 
as  if  he  were  to  win  heaven  by  his  working.  He  worships  and  serves 
God,  and  that  in  spirit,  his  heart  is  at  the  work  ;  yet  overlooks  all 
his  works  before  the  Lord,  as  if  he  had  done  nothing  at  all.  He 
"  rejoiceth  in  Christ  Jesus,  and  hath  no  confidence  in  the  flesh." 
Christ  is  his  life,  duty  is  his  work  ;  but  he  dies  in  point  of  confi- 


550  TUE  DISTINGUISHING  CHARACTERS  OF  REAL  CHRISTIANS. 

dence  to  his  duties,  that  he  may  live  to  Christ.     Ho  is  neither  a 
workless  believer,  nor  a  faithless  worker,  but  a  working  believer. 

And  now,  Sirs,  to  conclude,  I  beseech  you  in  the  bowels  of  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ,  that  ye  will  consider  what  I  have  said,  and 
impartially  try  your  state  by  it.  It  was  with  fear  and  trembling  I 
entered  upon,  and  went  through  these  words,  because  of  the  exceed- 
ing weightiness  of  the  matter,  as  determining  the  state  of  souls 
before  the  Lord ;  and  therefore  I  did  not  choose  to  heap  up  many 
particulars,  but  to  speak  largely  to  a  few,  that  the  evidences  might 
be  plain,  useful,  searching,  and  safe.  For  1  reckon,  that  as  giv- 
ing of  marks  of  true  saints  is  one  of  the  most  difficult  parts  of 
preaching,  so  marks  overly  proposed,  and  not  followed  out,  are  to 
the  most  part  of  hearers  either  useless  or  hurtful.  I  hope  they 
have  been  confirming  to  some ;  I  wish  they  might  reach  their  design 
in  others,  yet  strangers  to  Christ.  Let  it  be  acknowledged  to  the 
praise  of  the  good  hand  of  God,  that  falling  to  be  delivered  in  the 
winter,  (in  which  I  have  something  to  remark  for  myself  with  thank- 
fulness), the  season  has  been  so  very  good,  that  ye  have  not  been 
hindered,  by  the  badness  of  the  weather,  from  attending,  as  usu- 
ally in  that  time  of  the  year;  though,  alas  for  it!  summer  and 
winter  are  much  alike,  in  that  respect,  to  several  careless  perishing 
souls  among  you.  Sirs,  according  to  the  state  of  your  souls  now,  so 
will  it  be  with  you  through  eternity.  Examine  yourselves  therefore 
now,  whether  Christ  be  in  you  or  not ;  whether  ye  be  yet  in  the 
black  state  of  nature,  uncircumcised  spiritually ;  or  whether  ye  be 
in  the  state  of  grace,  and  of  the  true  circumcision.  Ye  have  heard 
the  characters,  let  conscience  make  the  application ;  and  judge 
yourselves,  that  ye  be  not  judged  and  condemned  with  the  world. 
See  now  on  what  ground  ye  stand ;  for  as  ye  stand  in  the  world, 
BO  shall  ye  stand  before  the  tribunal  of  God.  Deceive  not  your- 
selves :  Religion  is  a  mystery  to  most  of  the  hearers  of  the  gospel ; 
and  as  some  have  no  shadow  of  it,  many  embrace  the  shadow  of 
it  instead  of  the  substance,  and  please  themselves  with  those  things 
that  will  not  abide  trial  by  the  word  here,  and  will  evanish 
as  a  dream  when  they  are  sisted  before  the  tribunal  of  Christ. 
If  your  state  be  found  right  upon  an  impartial  trial,  it  will 
be  an  unspeakable  comfort :  if  it  be  found  wrong,  it  is  not  the  trial 
that  makes  it  so,  it  only  discovers  it  to  be  what  it  is ;  and  there  is 
yet  time  to  get  wrongs  righted,  and  to  lay  a  new  foundation,  which 
may  last  for  the  eternal  welfare  of  your  souls.  Consider  what  I 
have  said,  and  the  Lord  give  you  understanding  in  all  things. 


PRINTED  BY  GEORGE    &  ROBERT  KING,  ST.  NICHOLAS  STREET,  ABERDEEN. 


Princeton    Thfologic.il  Sfminrtry-Spe. 


1    1012  01147  4733 


DATE  DUE 

Bi^id.isA'^f^'-^ 

! 

GAYLORD 

PRINTED  IN  U.S.A.